The Project Gutenberg eBook of Austral English
This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.
Title: Austral English
Author: Edward Ellis Morris
Release date: February 3, 2009 [eBook #27977]
Language: English
Credits: Produced by Geoffrey Cowling
*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK AUSTRAL ENGLISH ***
Produced by Geoffrey Cowling
AUSTRAL ENGLISH
A DICTIONARY OF AUSTRALASIAN WORDS, PHRASES AND USAGES
with those Aboriginal-Australian and Maori words which have
become incorporated in the language and the commoner scientific
words that have had their origin in Australasia
by Edward E. Morris M.A., Oxon.
Professor of English, French and German Languages and
Literatures in the University of Melbourne.
1898
INTRODUCTION
CONTENTS
I. ORIGIN OF THE WORK
First undertaken to help O.E.D.
The Standard Dictionary
II. TITLE AND SCOPE OF THE BOOK
Not a Slang Dictionary
III. SOURCES OF NEW WORDS:--
1. Altered English
2. Words quite new to the language:--
(a) Aboriginal Australian
(b) Maori
IV. THE LAW OF HOBSON-JOBSON
Is Austral English a corruption?
V. CLASSIFICATION OF WORDS
VI. QUOTATIONS. THEIR PURPOSE
VII. BOOKS USED AS AUTHORITIES
VIII.SCIENTIFIC WORDS
IX. ASSISTANCE RECEIVED
X. ABBREVIATIONS:--
1. Of Scientific Names
2. General
I. ORIGIN OF THE WORK.
About a generation ago Mr. Matthew Arnold twitted our nation
with the fact that "the journeyman work of literature" was much
better done in France--the books of reference, the biographical
dictionaries, and the translations from the classics. He did
not especially mention dictionaries of the language, because he
was speaking in praise of academies, and, as far as France is
concerned, the great achievement in that line is Littre and not
the Academy's Dictionary. But the reproach has now been rolled
away--nous avons change tout cela--and in every branch
to which Arnold alluded our journeyman work is quite equal to
anything in France.
It is generally allowed that a vast improvement has taken place
in translations, whether prose or verse. From quarter to
quarter the Dictionary of National Biography continues
its stately progress. But the noblest monument of English
scholarship is The New English Dictionary on Historical
Principles, founded mainly on the materials collected by
the Philological Society, edited by Dr. James Murray, and
published at the cost of the University of Oxford. The name
New will, however, be unsuitable long before the
Dictionary is out of date. Its right name is the Oxford
English Dictionary (`O.E.D.'). That great dictionary is
built up out of quotations specially gathered for it from
English books of all kinds and all periods; and Dr. Murray
several years ago invited assistance from this end of the world
for words and uses of words peculiar to Australasia, or to
parts of it. In answer to his call I began to collect; but
instances of words must be noted as one comes across them, and
of course they do not occur in alphabetical order. The work
took time, and when my parcel of quotations had grown into a
considerable heap, it occurred to me that the collection, if a
little further trouble were expended upon it, might first enjoy
an independent existence. Various friends kindly contributed
more quotations: and this Book is the result.
In January 1892, having the honour to be President of the
Section of "Literature and the Fine Arts" at the Hobart Meeting
of the Australasian Association for the Advancement of Science,
I alluded to Dr. Murray's request:
A body like this Section, composed of men from different parts
of scattered colonies, might render valuable help in organising
the work of collecting authorities for our various peculiar
words and usages. Twenty or thirty men and women, each
undertaking to read certain books with the new dictionary in
mind, and to note in a prescribed fashion what is peculiar,
could accomplish all that is needed. Something has been done
in Melbourne, but the Colonies have different words and uses of
words, and this work is of a kind which might well extend
beyond the bounds of a single city. At first it may seem as if
our words were few, as if in the hundred years of Australian
life few special usages have arisen; but a man with a
philological turn of mind, who notes what he hears, will soon
find the list grow. Some philologers speak, not perhaps very
satisfactorily, of being "at the fountains of language": we can
all of us testify to the birth of some words within our own
memory, but the origin of these, if not noted, will in time be
lost. There are many other words which the strictest cannot
condemn as slang, though even slang, being the speech of the
people, is not undeserving of some scientific study; words, for
instance, which have come into the language from the
Aborigines, and names of animals, shrubs, and flowers. It
might even be possible, with sufficient co-operation, to
produce an Australian dictionary on the same lines as the
New English Dictionary by way of supplement to it.
Organisation might make the labour light, whilst for many it
would from its very nature prove a pleasant task.
These suggestions were not carried out. Individuals sent
quotations to Oxford, but no organisation was established to
make the collection systematic or complete, and at the next
meeting of the Association the Section had ceased to exist,
or at least had doffed its literary character.
At a somewhat later date, Messrs. Funk and Wagnall of New York
invited me to join an "Advisory Committee on disputed spelling
and pronunciation." That firm was then preparing its
Standard Dictionary, and one part of the scheme was to
obtain opinions as to usage from various parts of the
English-speaking world, especially from those whose function it
is to teach the English Language. Subsequently, at my own
suggestion, the firm appointed me to take charge of the
Australian terms in their Dictionary, and I forwarded a certain
number of words and phrases in use in Australia. But the
accident of the letter A, for Australian, coming early in the
alphabet gives my name a higher place than it deserves on the
published list of those co-operating in the production of this
Standard Dictionary; for with my present knowledge I see
that my contribution was lamentably incomplete. Moreover, I
joined the Editorial Corps too late to be of real use. Only
the final proofs were sent to me, and although my corrections
were reported to New York without delay, they arrived too late
for any alterations to be effected before the sheets went to
press. This took the heart out of my work for that Dictionary.
For its modernness, for many of its lexicographical features,
and for its splendid illustrations, I entertain a cordial
admiration for the book, and I greatly regret the unworthiness
of my share in it. It is quite evident that others had
contributed Australasian words, and I must confess I hardly
like to be held responsible for some of their statements. For
instance--
"Aabec. An Australian medicinal bark said to promote
perspiration."
I have never heard of it, and my ignorance is shared by the
greatest Australian botanist, the Baron von Mueller.
"Beauregarde. The Zebra grass-parrakeet of Australia.
From F. beau, regarde. See BEAU n. and REGARD."
As a matter of fact, the name is altered out of recognition,
but really comes from the aboriginal budgery, good, and
gar, parrot.
"Imou-pine. A large New Zealand tree. . . . called
red pine by the colonists and rimu by the
natives."
I can find no trace of the spelling "Imou." In a circular to
New Zealand newspapers I asked whether it was a known variant.
The New Zealand Herald made answer--"He may be sure that
the good American dictionary has made a misprint. It was
scarcely worth the Professor's while to take notice of mere
examples of pakeha ignorance of Maori."
"Swagman. [Slang, Austral.] 1. A dealer in cheap trinkets, etc.
2. A swagger."
In twenty-two years of residence in Australia, I have never heard
the former sense.
"Taihoa. [Anglo-Tasmanian.] No hurry; wait."
The word is Maori, and Maori is the language of New Zealand, not
of Tasmania.
These examples, I know, are not fair specimens of the accuracy
of the Standard Dictionary, but they serve as indications of
the necessity for a special book on Australasian English.
II. TITLE AND SCOPE OF THE BOOK.
In the present day, when words are more and more abbreviated,
a "short title" may be counted necessary to the welfare of a
book. For this reason "Austral English" has been selected.
In its right place in the dictionary the word Austral
will be found with illustrations to show that its primary meaning,
"southern," is being more and more limited, so that the word
may now be used as equivalent to Australasian.
"Austral" or "Australasian English" means all the new words and
the new uses of old words that have been added to the English
language by reason of the fact that those who speak English
have taken up their abode in Australia, Tasmania, and New
Zealand. Hasty inference might lead to the remark that such
addition is only slang, but the remark is far from being
accurate; probably not one-tenth of the new vocabulary could
fairly be so classified. A great deal of slang is used in
Australasia, but very much less is generated here than is
usually believed. In 1895 a literary policeman in Melbourne
brought out a small Australian Slang Dictionary. In
spite of the name, however, the compiler confesses that "very
few of the terms it contains have been invented by
Australians." My estimate is that not one word in fifty in his
little book has an Australian origin, or even a specially
Australian use.
The phrase "Australasian English" includes something much wider
than slang. Those who, speaking the tongue of Shakspeare, of
Milton, and of Dr. Johnson, came to various parts of
Australasia, found a Flora and a Fauna waiting to be named in
English. New birds, beasts and fishes, new trees, bushes and
flowers, had to receive names for general use. It is probably
not too much to say that there never was an instance in history
when so many new names were needed, and that there never will
be such an occasion again, for never did settlers come, nor can
they ever again come, upon Flora and Fauna so completely
different from anything seen by them before. When the
offshoots of our race first began to settle in America, they
found much that was new, but they were still in the same North
Temperate zone. Though there is now a considerable divergence
between the American and the English vocabulary, especially in
technical terms, it is not largely due to great differences in
natural history. An oak in America is still a Quercus,
not as in Australia a Casuarina. But with the whole
tropical region intervening it was to be expected that in the
South Temperate Zone many things would be different, and such
expectation was amply fulfilled. In early descriptions of
Australia it is a sort of commonplace to dwell on this complete
variety, to harp on the trees that shed bark not leaves, and
the cherries with the stones outside. Since the days when
"Adam gave names to all cattle and to the fowl of the air and
to every beast of the field" never were so many new names
called for. Unfortunately, names were not given by the best
educated in the community, but often by those least qualified
to invent satisfactory names: not by a linguist, a botanist, an
ornithologist, an ichthyologist, but by the ordinary settler.
Even in countries of old civilisation names are frequently
conferred or new words invented, at times with good and at
times with unsatisfactory results, by the average man, whom it
is the modern fashion to call "the man in the street." Much of
Australasian nomenclature is due to "the man in the bush"
--more precise address not recorded. Givers of new names may
be benefactors to their language or violators of its purity and
simplicity, but in either case they are nearly always, like the
burial-place of Moses, unknown.
III. SOURCES OF NEW WORDS.
Of Australasian additions to the English language there are two
main sources, which correspond to the twofold division of them
into new words and new uses of old words.
1. Altered English.
The commoner origin of Australasian English words is the
turning and twisting of an already existing English name. The
settler saw a fruit somewhat like a cherry. Though he knew
well that it was not a cherry, he christened it the "native
cherry." It may here be remarked that the prefix native is not
a satisfactory distinguishing adjective. Native bear, native
cherry, may teach the young Australian that the bear and the
cherry so named are not as the bear of the Arctic Regions or
the cherry of Europe. But in the British Museum the label does
not help much. The settler heard a bird laugh in what he
thought an extremely ridiculous manner, its opening notes
suggesting a donkey's bray--he called it the "laughing
jackass." His descendants have dropped the adjective, and it
has come to pass that the word "jackass" denotes to an
Australian something quite different from its meaning to other
speakers of our English tongue. The settler must have had an
imagination. Whip-bird, or Coach-whip, from the sound of the
note, Lyre-bird from the appearance of the outspread tail, are
admirable names.
Another class of name brought the Australian word nearer to its
English use. "Robin" for instance is applied to birds of
various species not known in Europe. Bird-names, fish-names,
plant-names, are sometimes transferred to new species,
sometimes to a new genus, sometimes to an entirely different
Natural Order, bearing a resemblance to the original, either
real or fancied, as for instance "Magpie." It is hardly
necessary to dwell longer on this point, for almost every page
of the Dictionary bears witness to it.
2. Words new to the Language.
(a) Aboriginal Australian.
Many of the new Australasian words are taken from the languages
of the aborigines, often with considerable alteration due to
misunderstanding. Such words are either Australian or Maori.
Whilst in New Zealand careful attention has been paid by
competent scholars to the musical Maori language, it can hardly
be claimed that the Australian family of languages has ever
been scientifically studied, though there is a heap of printed
material--small grammars and lists of words--rudis
indigestaque moles. There is no doubt that the
vocabularies used in different parts of Australia and Tasmania
varied greatly, and equally little doubt that the languages, in
structure and perhaps originally in vocabulary, were more or
less connected. About the year 1883, Professor Sayce, of
Oxford, wrote a letter, which was published in The
Argus, pointing out the obligation that lay upon the
Australian colonies to make a scientific study of a vanishing
speech. The duty would be stronger were it not for the
distressing lack of pence that now is vexing public men.
Probably a sum of L300 a year would suffice for an educated
inquirer, but his full time for several years would be needed.
Such an one should be trained at the University as a linguist
and an observer, paying especial attention to logic and to
Comparative Philology. Whilst the colonies neglect their
opportunities, and Sibylla year by year withdraws her offer,
perhaps "the inevitable German" will intervene, and in a
well-arranged book bring order out of the chaos of vocabularies
and small pamphlets on the subject, all that we have to trust
to now.
The need of scientific accuracy is strong. For the purposes of
this Dictionary I have been investigating the origin of words,
more or less naturalised as English, that come from aboriginal
Australian, in number between seventy and a hundred. I have
received a great deal of kind assistance, many people taking
much trouble to inform me. But there is a manifest lack of
knowledge. Many supplied me with the meanings of the words as
used in English, but though my appeal was scattered far and
wide over Australia (chiefly through the kindness of the
newspapers), few could really give the origin of the words.
Two amongst the best informed went so far as to say that
Australian words have no derivation. That doctrine is hard to
accept. A word of three syllables does not spring complete
from the brain of an aboriginal as Athene rose fully armed from
the head of Zeus.
It is beyond all doubt that the vocabularies of the Aborigines
differed widely in different parts. Frequently, the English
have carried a word known in one district to a district where
it was not known, the aboriginals regarding the word as pure
English. In several books statements will be found that such
and such a word is not Aboriginal, when it really has an
aboriginal source but in a different part of the Continent.
Mr. Threlkeld, in his Australian Grammar, which is
especially concerned with the language of the Hunter River,
gives a list of "barbarisms," words that he considers do not
belong to the aboriginal tongue. He says with perfect
truth-"Barbarisms have crept into use, introduced by sailors,
stockmen, and others, in the use of which both blacks and
whites labour under the mistaken idea, that each one is
conversing in the other's language." And yet with him a
"barbarism" has to be qualified as meaning "not belonging to
the Hunter District." But Mr. Threlkeld is not the only writer
who will not acknowledge as aboriginal sundry words with an
undoubted Australian pedigree.
(b) Maori.
The Maori language, the Italian of the South, has received very
different treatment from that meted out by fate and
indifference to the aboriginal tongues of Australia. It has
been studied by competent scholars, and its grammar has been
comprehensively arranged and stated. A Maori Dictionary,
compiled more than fifty years ago by a missionary, afterwards
a bishop, has been issued in a fourth edition by his son, who
is now a bishop. Yet, of Maori also, the same thing is said
with respect to etymology. A Maori scholar told me that, when
he began the study many years ago, he was warned by a very
distinguished scholar not to seek for derivations, as the
search was full of pitfalls. It was not maintained that words
sprang up without an origin, but that the true origin of most
of the words was now lost. In spite of this double warning, it
may be maintained that some of the origins both of Maori and of
Australian words have been found and are in this book recorded.
The pronunciation of Maori words differs so widely from that of
Australian aboriginal names that it seems advisable to insert a
note on the subject.
Australian aboriginal words have been written down on no
system, and very much at hap-hazard. English people have
attempted to express the native sounds phonetically according
to English pronunciation. No definite rule has been observed,
different persons giving totally different values to represent
the consonant and vowel sounds. In a language with a spelling
so unphonetic as the English, in which the vowels especially
have such uncertain and variable values, the results of this
want of system have necessarily been very unsatisfactory and
often grotesque. Maori words, on the other hand, have been
written down on a simple and consistent system, adopted by the
missionaries for the purpose of the translation of the Bible.
This system consists in giving the Italian sound to the vowels,
every letter--vowel and consonant--having a fixed and
invariable value. Maori words are often very melodious. In
pronunciation the best rule is to pronounce each syllable with
a nearly equal accent.
Care has been taken to remember that this is an Australasian
English and not a Maori Dictionary; therefore to exclude
words that have not passed into the speech of the settlers.
But in New Zealand Maori is much more widely used in the matter
of vocabulary than the speech of the aborigines is in
Australia, or at any rate in the more settled parts of
Australia; and the Maori is in a purer form. Though some words
and names have been ridiculously corrupted, the language of
those who dwell in the bush in New Zealand can hardly be called
Pigeon English, and that is the right name for the
"lingo" used in Queensland and Western Australia, which, only
partly represented in this book, is indeed a falling away from
the language of Bacon and Shakspeare.
IV. LAW OF HOBSON-JOBSON.
In many places in the Dictionary, I find I have used the
expression "the law of Hobson-Jobson." The name is an
adaptation from the expression used by Col. Yule and
Mr. Burnell as a name for their interesting Dictionary of
Anglo-Indian words. The law is well recognised, though it has
lacked the name, such as I now venture to give it. When a word
comes from a foreign language, those who use it, not
understanding it properly, give a twist to the word or to some
part of it from the hospitable desire to make the word at home
in its new quarters, no regard, however, being paid to the
sense. The most familiar instance in English is
crayfish from the French ecrevisse, though it is
well known that a crayfish is not a fish at all. Amongst the
Mohammedans in India there is a festival at which the names of
"Hassan" and "Hosein" are frequently called out by devotees.
Tommy Atkins, to whom the names were naught, converted them
into "Hobson, Jobson." That the practice of so altering words
is not limited to the English is shown by two perhaps not very
familiar instances in French, where "Aunt Sally" has become
ane sale, "a dirty donkey," and "bowsprit" has become
beau pre, though quite unconnected with "a beautiful
meadow." The name "Pigeon English" is itself a good example.
It has no connection with pigeon, the bird, but is an
Oriental's attempt to pronounce the word "business." It
hardly, however, seems necessary to alter the spelling to
"pidjin."
It may be thought by some precisians that all Australasian
English is a corruption of the language. So too is
Anglo-Indian, and, pace Mr. Brander Matthews, there are
such things as Americanisms, which were not part of the
Elizabethan heritage, though it is perfectly true that many of
the American phrases most railed at are pure old English,
preserved in the States, though obsolete in Modern England; for
the Americans, as Lowell says, "could not take with them any
better language than that of Shakspeare." When we hear railing
at slang phrases, at Americanisms, some of which are admirably
expressive, at various flowers of colonial speech, and at words
woven into the texture of our speech by those who live far away
from London and from Oxford, and who on the outskirts of the
British Empire are brought into contact with new natural
objects that need new names, we may think for our comfort on
the undoubted fact that the noble and dignified language of the
poets, authors and preachers, grouped around Lewis XIV., sprang
from debased Latin. For it was not the classical Latin that is
the origin of French, but the language of the soldiers and the
camp-followers who talked slang and picked words up from every
quarter. English has certainly a richer vocabulary, a finer
variety of words to express delicate distinctions of meaning,
than any language that is or that ever was spoken: and this is
because it has always been hospitable in the reception of new
words. It is too late a day to close the doors against new
words. This Austral English Dictionary merely
catalogues and records those which at certain doors have
already come in.
V. CLASSIFICATION OF THE WORDS.
The Dictionary thus includes the following classes of Words,
Phrases and Usages; viz.--
(1) Old English names of Natural Objects--Birds, Fishes,
Animals, Trees, Plants, etc.--applied (in the first instance by
the early settlers) either to new Australian species of such
objects, or to new objects bearing a real or fancied
resemblance to them--as Robin, Magpie, Herring, Cod, Cat,
Bear, Oak, Beech, Pine, Cedar, Cherry, Spinach, Hops, Pea,
Rose.
(2) English names of objects applied in Australia to others
quite different-as Wattle, a hurdle, applied as the name
of the tree Wattle, from whose twigs the hurdle was most
readily made; Jackass, an animal, used as the name for
the bird Jackass; Cockatoo, a birdname, applied
to a small farmer.
(3) Aboriginal Australian and Maori words which have been
incorporated unchanged in the language, and which still denote
the original object--as Kangaroo, Wombat, Boomerang, Whare,
Pa, Kauri.
(4) Aboriginal Australian and Maori words which have been
similarly adopted, and which have also had their original
meaning extended and applied to other things--as Bunyip,
Corrobbery, Warrigal.
(5) Anglicised corruptions of such words--as Copper-Maori,
Go-ashore, Cock-a-bully, Paddy-melon, Pudding-ball,
Tooky-took.
(6) Fanciful, picturesque, or humorous names given to new
Australasian Natural Objects--as Forty-spot, Lyre-bird,
Parson-bird, and Coach-whip (birds); Wait-a-while (a
tangled thicket); Thousand-jacket, Jimmy Low, Jimmy
Donnelly, and Roger Gough (trees); Axe-breaker,
Cheese-wood, and Raspberry Jam (timbers); Trumpeter,
Schnapper and Sergeant Baker (fishes);
Umbrella-grass and Spaniard (native plants), and
so on.
(7) Words and phrases of quite new coinage, or arising from
quite new objects or orders of things--as Larrikin, Swagman,
Billy, Free-selector, Boundary-rider, Black-tracker,
Back-blocks, Clear-skin, Dummyism, Bushed.
(8) Scientific names arising exclusively from Australasian
necessities, chiefly to denote or describe new Natural Orders,
Genera, or Species confined or chiefly appertaining to
Australia--as Monotreme, Petrogale, Clianthus, Ephthianura,
Dinornis, Eucalypt, Boronia, Ornithorhynchus, Banksia.
(9) Slang (of which the element is comparatively small)--
as Deepsinker, Duck-shoving, Hoot, Slushy, Boss-cockie,
On-the-Wallaby.
VI. QUOTATIONS.
With certain exceptions, this Dictionary is built up, as a
Dictionary should be, on quotations, and these are very
copious. It may even be thought that their number is too
large. It is certainly larger, and in some places the
quotations themselves are much longer, than could ever be
expected in a general Dictionary of the English Language. This
copiousness is, however, the advantage of a special Dictionary.
The intention of the quotations is to furnish evidence that a
word is used as an English word; and many times the quotation
itself furnishes a satisfactory explanation of the meaning. I
hope, however, I shall not be held responsible for all the
statements in the quotations, even where attention is not drawn
to their incorrectness. Sundry Australasian uses of words are
given in other dictionaries, as, for instance, in the parts
already issued of the Oxford English Dictionary and in
The Century, but the space that can be allotted to them
in such works is of necessity too small for full explanation.
Efforts have been made to select such quotations as should in
themselves be interesting, picturesque, and illustrative. In a
few cases they may even be humorous.
Moreover, the endeavour has been constant to obtain quotations
from all parts of the Australasian Colonies--from books that
describe different parts of Australasia, and from newspapers
published far and wide. I am conscious that in the latter
division Melbourne papers predominate, but this has been due to
the accident that living in Melbourne I see more of the
Melbourne papers, whilst my friends have sent me more
quotations from books and fewer from newspapers.
The quotations, however, are not all explanatory. Many times
a quotation is given merely to mark the use of a word at a
particular epoch. Quotations are all carefully dated and
arranged in their historical order, and thus the exact
chronological development of a word has been indicated. The
practice of the `O.E.D.' has been followed in this respect and
in the matter of quotations generally, though as a rule the
titles of books quoted have been more fully expressed here than
in that Dictionary. Early quotations have been sought with
care, and a very respectable antiquity, about a century, has
been thus found for some Australasian words. As far as
possible, the spelling, the stops, the capitals, and the
italics of the original have been preserved. The result is
often a rich variety of spelling the same word in consecutive
extracts.
The last decade has been a very active time in Australian
science. A great deal of system has been brought into its
study, and much rearrangement of classification has followed as
the result. Both among birds and plants new species have been
distinguished and named: and there has been not a little change
in nomenclature. This Dictionary, it must be remembered, is
chiefly concerned with vernacular names, but for proper
identification, wherever possible, the scientific name is
added. In some cases, where there has been a recent change in
the latter, both the new and the older names are recorded.
VII. AUTHORITIES.
The less-known birds, fishes, plants, and trees are in many
cases not illustrated by quotations, but have moved to their
places in the Dictionary from lists of repute. Many books have
been written on the Natural History of Australia and New
Zealand, and these have been placed under contribution. Under
the head of Botany no book has been of greater service than
Maiden's Useful Native Plants. Unfortunately many
scientific men scorn vernacular names, but Mr. Maiden has taken
the utmost pains with them, and has thereby largely increased
the utility of his volume. For Tasmania there is Mr. Spicer's
Handbook of Tasmanian Plants; for New Zealand, Kirk's
Forest Flora and Hooker's Botany.
For Australian animals Lydekker's Marsupials and
Monotremes is excellent; especially his section on the
Phalanger or Australian Opossum, an animal which has
been curiously neglected by all Dictionaries of repute. On New
Zealand mammals it is not necessary to quote any book; for when
the English came, it is said, New Zealand contained no mammal
larger than a rat. Captain Cook turned two pigs loose; but it
is stated on authority, that these pigs left no descendants.
One was ridden to death by Maori boys, and the other was killed
for sacrilege: he rooted in a tapu burial-place. Nevertheless,
the settlers still call any wild-pig, especially if lean and
bony, a "Captain Cook."
For the scientific nomenclature of Australian Botany the
Census of Australian Plants by the Baron von Mueller
(1889) is indispensable. It has been strictly followed. For
fishes reliance has been placed upon Tenison Woods' Fishes
and Fisheries of New South Wales (1882), on W. Macleay's
Descriptive Catalogue of Australian Fishes (Proceedings
of the Linnaean Society of New South Wales, vols. v. and vi.),
and on Dr. Guenther's Study of Fishes. For the
scientific nomenclature of Animal Life, the standard of
reference has been the Tabular List of all the Australian
Birds by E. P. Ramsay of the Australian Museum, Sydney
(1888); Catalogue of Australian Mammals by J. O. Ogilby
of the Australian Museum, Sydney (1892); Catalogue of
Marsupials and Monotremes, British Museum (1888);
Prodromus to the Natural History of Victoria by Sir
F. McCoy. Constant reference has also been made to Proceedings
of the Linnaean Society of New South Wales, Proceedings and
Transactions of the Royal Societies of Victoria and Tasmania,
and to the journal of the Field Naturalist Club of Victoria.
The birds both in Australia and New Zealand have been
handsomely treated by the scientific illustrators. Gould's
Birds of Australia and Buller's Birds of New
Zealand are indeed monumental works. Neither Gould nor Sir
Walter Buller scorns vernacular names. But since the days of
the former the number of named species of Australian birds has
largely increased, and in January 1895, at the Brisbane Meeting
of the Australasian Association for the Advancement of Science,
a Committee was appointed to draw up a list of vernacular
bird-names. By the kindness of a member of this Committee
(Mr. A. J. Campbell of Melbourne) I was allowed the use of a
list of such vernacular names drawn up by him and Col. Legge
for submission to the Committee.
VIII. SCIENTIFIC WORDS.
The example of The Century has been followed in the
inclusion of sundry scientific names, especially those of
genera or Natural Orders of purely Australasian objects.
Although it is quite true that these can hardly be described as
Australasian English, it is believed that the course
adopted will be for the general convenience of those who
consult this Dictionary.
Some of these "Neo-Latin" and "Neo-Greek" words are
extraordinary in themselves and obscure in their origin, though
not through antiquity. In his Student's Pastime, at
p. 293, Dr. Skeat says "Nowhere can more ignorant etymologies
be found than in works on Botany and `scientific' subjects.
Too often, all the science is reserved for the subject, so that
there is none to spare for explaining the names."
A generous latitude has also been taken in including some words
undoubtedly English, but not exclusively Australasian, such as
Anabranch, and Antipodes, and some mining and
other terms that are also used in the United States.
Convenience of readers is the excuse. Anabranch is more
frequently used of Australian rivers than of any others, but
perhaps a little pride in tracking the origin of the word has
had something to do with its inclusion. Some words have been
inserted for purposes of explanation, e.g. Snook, in
Australasia called Barracouta, which latter is itself an
old name applied in Australasia to a different fish; and
Cavally, which is needed to explain Trevally.
IX. ASSISTANCE RECEIVED.
There remains the pleasant duty of acknowledging help. Many
persons have given me help, whose names can hardly be listed
here. A friend, an acquaintance, or sometimes even a stranger,
has often sent a single quotation of value, or an explanation
of a single word. The Editors of many newspapers have helped
not a little by the insertion of a letter or a circular. To
all these helpers, and I reckon their number at nearly 200, I
tender my hearty thanks.
Various officers of the Melbourne Public Library, and my friend
Mr. Edward H. Bromby, the Librarian of this University, have
rendered me much assistance. I have often been fortunate
enough to obtain information from the greatest living authority
on a particular subject: from the Baron von Mueller, from Sir
Frederick M'Coy, or from Mr. A. W. Howitt. [Alas! since I
penned this sentence, the kind and helpful Baron has been taken
from us, and is no longer the greatest living authority on
Australian Botany.] My friend and colleague, Professor Baldwin
Spencer, a most earnest worker in the field of Australian
science, gave many hours of valuable time to set these pages
right in the details of scientific explanations.
Mr. J. G. Luehmann of Melbourne has kindly answered various
questions about Botany, and Mr. A. J. North, of Sydney, in
regard to certain birds. Mr. T. S. Hall, of the Biological
Department of this University, and Mr. J. J. Fletcher, of
Sydney, the Secretary of the Linnaean Society of New South
Wales, have rendered me much help. The Rev. John Mathew, of
Coburg, near Melbourne, has thrown much light on aboriginal
words. The Rev. E. H. Sugden, Master of Queen's College in
this University, has furnished a large number of useful
quotations. His name is similarly mentioned, honoris
causa, in Dr. Murray's Preface to Part I. of the `O. E. D.'
Mr. R. T. Elliott of Worcester College, Oxford, has given
similar help. The Master himself,--the Master of all who
engage in Dictionary work,--Dr. Murray, of Oxford, has kindly
forwarded to me a few pithy and valuable comments on my
proof-streets. He also made me a strong appeal never to pass
on information from any source without acknowledgment. This,
the only honest course, I have striven scrupulously to follow;
but it is not always easy to trace the sources whence
information has been derived.
When gaps in the sequence of quotations were especially
apparent on the proofs, Mr. W. Ellis Bird, of Richmond,
Victoria, found me many illustrative passages. For New Zealand
words a goodly supply of quotations was contributed by Miss
Mary Colborne-Veel of Christchurch, author of a volume of
poetry called The Fairest of the Angels, by her sister,
Miss Gertrude Colborne-Veel, and by Mr. W. H. S. Roberts of
Oamaru, author of a little book called Southland in
1856. In the matter of explanation of the origin and meaning
of New Zealand terms, Dr. Hocken of Dunedin, Mr. F. R. Chapman
of the same city, and Mr. Edward Tregear of Wellington, author
of the Maori Polynesian Dictionary, and Secretary of the
Polynesian Society, have rendered valuable and material
assistance. Dr. Holden of Bellerive, near Hobart, was perhaps
my most valued correspondent. After I had failed in one or two
quarters to enlist Tasmanian sympathy, he came to the rescue,
and gave me much help on Tasmanian words, especially on the
Flora and the birds; also on Queensland Flora and on the whole
subject of Fishes. Dr. Holden also enlisted later the help of
Mr. J. B. Walker, of Hobart, who contributed much to enrich my
proofs. But the friend who has given me most help of all has
been Mr. J. Lake of St. John's College, Cambridge. When the
Dictionary was being prepared for press, he worked with me for
some months, very loyally putting my materials into shape.
Birds, Animals, and Botany he sub-edited for me, and much of
the value of this part of the Book, which is almost an
Encyclopaedia rather than a Dictionary, is due to his ready
knowledge, his varied attainments, and his willingness to
undertake research.
To all who have thus rendered me assistance I tender hearty
thanks. It is not their fault if, as is sure to be the case,
defects and mistakes are found in this Dictionarv. But should
the Book be received with public favour, these shall be
corrected in a later edition.
EDWARD E. MORRIS.
The University, Melbourne,
February 23, 1897
LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS OF NAMES
Ait. . . . Aiton.
Andr. . . . Andrews.
B. and L. . Barere and L.
Bail. . . . Baillon.
Bechst. . . Bechstein.
Benth. . . Bentham.
Bl. . . . Bleeker.
Bodd. . . . Boddaert
Bp. )
) . Bonaparte.
Bonap. )
R. Br. . . Robert Brown
Brong. . . Brongniart.
Cab. . . . Cabanis.
Carr. . . . Carriere.
Castln. . . Castelnau.
Cav. . . . Cavanilles.
Corr. . . . Correa.
Cunn. )
) . A. Cunningham
A. Cunn. )
Cuv. . . . Cuvier.
De C. . . . De Candolle.
Dec. . . . Decaisne.
Desf. . . . Desfontaines.
Desm. . . . Desmarest.
Desv. . . . Desvaux.
De Tarrag. . De Tarragon
Diet. . . . Dietrich.
Donov. . . Donovan.
Drap. . . . Drapiez.
Dryand. . . Dryander.
Endl. . . . Endlicher.
Fab. . . . Fabricius.
Forsk. . . Forskael.
Forst. . . Forster.
F. v. M. . . Ferdinand von Mueller
G. Forst. . G. Forster.
Gaertn. . . Gaertner.
Gaim. . . . Gaimard.
Garn. . . . Garnot.
Gaud. . . Gaudichaud.
Geoff. . . Geoffroy.
Germ. . . Germar.
Gmel. . . Gmelin.
Guich. . . Guichenot.
Gunth. . . Guenther.
Harv. . . Harvey.
Hasselq. . . Hasselquin.
Haw. . . . Haworth.
Hens. . . Henslow.
Herb. . . Herbert.
Homb. . . Hombron.
Hook. . . J. Hooker.
Hook. f. . . Hooker fils.
Horsf. . . Horsfield.
Ill. . . . Illiger.
Jacq. . . . Jacquinot.
Jard. . . . Jardine.
L. and S. . Liddell and Scott.
Lab. )
) . Labillardiere.
Labill. )
Lacep. . . Lacepede.
Lath. . . . Latham.
Lehm. . . Lehmann.
Less. . . Lesson.
L'herit. . . L'Heritier.
Licht. . . Lichtenstein.
Lindl. . . Lindley.
Linn. . . . Linnaeus.
Macl. . . . Macleay.
McC. . . . McCoy.
Meissn. . . Meissner.
Menz. . . Menzies.
Milne-Ed. . Milne-Edwards.
Miq. . . . Miquel.
Parlat. . . Parlatore.
Pers. . . . Persoon.
Plan. )
) . Planchol.
Planch. )
Poir. . . Poiret.
Q. . . . Quoy.
Rafll. . . Raffles.
Rein. . . . Reinwardt.
Reiss. . . Reisseck.
Rich. )
) . Richardson.
Richards.)
Roxb. . . Roxburgh
Sal. . . . Salvadori.
Salisb. . . Salisbury.
Schau. . . Schauer.
Schl. )
) . Schlechten
Schlecht.)
Selb. . . . Selby.
Ser. . . . Seringe.
Serv. . . . Serville.
Sieb. . . . Sieber.
Sm. . . . Smith.
Sol. . . . Solander.
Sow. . . . Sowerby.
Sparrm. . . Sparrman.
Steph. . . Stephan.
Sundev. . . Sundevall.
Sw. )
) . Swainson.
Swains. )
Temm. . . Temminck.
Thunb. . . Thunberg.
Tul. . . . Tulasne.
V. and H. . Vigors and Horsfield.
Val. . . . Valenciennes.
Vent. . . . Ventenat.
Vieill. . . Vieillot.
Vig. . . . Vigors.
Wagl. . . . Wagler.
Water. . . Waterhouse.
Wedd. . . . Weddell.
Willd. . . Willdenow.
Zimm. . . . Zimmermann.
OTHER ABBREVIATIONS
q.v. quod vide, which see.
i.q. idem quod, the same as.
ibid. ibidem, in the same book.
i.e. id est, that is.
sc. scilicet, that is to say.
s.v. sub voce, under the word.
cf. confer, compare.
n. noun,
adj. adjective.
v. verb.
prep. preposition.
interj. interjection.
sic, "thus," draws attention to some peculiarity of
diction or to what is believed to be a mistake.
N.O. Natural Order.
sp. a species,
spp. various species.
A square bracket [ ] shows an addition to a quotation by way
of comment.
O.E.D. "Oxford English Dictionary," often formerly quoted
as "N.E.D." or "New English Dictionary."
AUSTRALASIAN DICTIONARY
A
Absentee, n. euphemistic term for a convict.
The word has disappeared with the need for it.
1837. Jas. Mudie, `Felonry of New South Wales,' p. vii.:
"The ludicrous and affected philanthropy of the present
Governor of the Colony, in advertising runaway convicts under
the soft and gentle name of absentees, is really
unaccountable, unless we suppose it possible that his
Excellency as a native of Ireland, and as having a
well-grounded Hibernian antipathy to his absentee countrymen,
uses the term as one expressive both of the criminality of the
absentee and of his own abhorrence of the crime."
Acacia, n. and adj. a genus of shrubs or
trees, N.O. Leguminosae. The Australian species often
form thickets or scrubs, and are much used for hedges. The
species are very numerous, and are called provincially by
various names, e.g. "Wattle," "Mulga," "Giddea," and "Sally,"
an Anglicized form of the aboriginal name Sallee (q.v.).
The tree peculiar to Tasmania, Acacia riceana, Hensl.,
(i>N.O. Leguminosae, is there called the Drooping
Acacia.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 202:
"We possess above a hundred and thirty species of the acacia."
1839. Dr. J. Shotsky, quoted in `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 5,
p. 5, col. 2:
"Yet, Australian sky and nature awaits and merits real artists
to portray it. Its gigantic gum and acacia trees, 40 ft. in
girth, some of them covered with a most smooth bark, externally
as white as chalk. .. ."
1844. L. Leichhardt, Letter in `Cooksland,' by J. D. Lang, p. 91:
"Rosewood Acacia, the wood of which has a very agreeable violet
scent like the Myal Acacia (A. pendula) in Liverpool
Plains."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 149:
"The Acacias are innumerable, all yielding a famous bark for
tanning, and a clean and excellent gum."
1869. Mrs. Meredith, `A Tasmanian Memory,' p. 8:
"Acacias fringed with gold."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 24:
"The name Acacia, derived from the Greek, and indicative of a
thorny plant, was already bestowed by the ancient naturalist
and physician Dioscorides on a Gum-Arabic yielding
North-African Acacia not dissimilar to some Australian species.
This generic name is so familiarly known, that the appellation
`Wattle' might well be dispensed with. Indeed the name Acacia
is in full use in works on travels and in many popular writings
for the numerous Australian species . . . Few of any genera of
plants contain more species than Acacia, and in Australia it is
the richest of all; about 300 species, as occurring in our
continent, have been clearly defined."
Acrobates, n. the scientific name of the
Australian genus of Pigmy Flying-Phalangers, or, as they
are locally called, Opossum-Mice. See Opossum-Mouse,
Flying-Mouse, Flying-Phalanger, and Phalanger. The
genus was founded by Desmarest in 1817.
(Grk. 'akrobataes, walking on tiptoe.)
AEpyprymnus, n. the scientific name of the genus
of the Rufous Kangaroo-Rat. It is the tallest and
largest of the Kangaroo-Rats (q.v.). (Grk. 'aipus,
high, and prumnon, the hinder part.)
Ailuroedus, n. scientific name for the genus of
Australian birds called Cat-birds (q.v.). From
Grk. 'ailouros, a cat, and 'eidos, species.
Ake, n. originally Akeake, Maori name for either
of two small trees, (1) Dodonaea viscosa, Linn., in New
Zealand; (2) Olearia traversii, F. v. M., in the Chatham
Islands. Ake is originally a Maori adv. meaning
"onwards, in time." Archdeacon Williams, in his `Dictionary of
New Zealand Language,' says Ake, Ake, Ake,
means " for ever and ever." (Edition 182.)
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand' (Church
Missionary Society), p.133:
"Akeake, paulo post futurum"
1835. W. Yale, `Some Account of New Zealand,' p. 47:
"Aki, called the Lignum vitae of New Zealand."
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 43:
"The ake and towai . . . are almost equal, in point of colour,
to rosewood."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook to New Zealand,' p. 131:
"Ake, a small tree, 6 to 12 feet high. Wood very hard,
variegated, black and white; used for Maori clubs; abundant in
dry woods and forests."
Alarm-bird, n. a bird-name no longer used in
Australia. There is an African Alarm-bird.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 9:
"Lobivanellus lobatus (Lath.), Wattled Pewit, Alarm Bird of
the Colonists."
Alectryon, n. a New Zealand tree and flower,
Alectryon excelsum, De C., Maori name Titoki
(q.v.); called also the New Zealand Oak, from the
resemblance of its leaves to those of an oak. Named by
botanists from Grk. 'alektruown, a cock.
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' I. 7, p. 16:
"The early season could not yet
Have ripened the alectryon's beads of jet,
Each on its scarlet strawberry set."
Alexandra Palm, n. a Queensland tree,
Ptychosperma alexandrae, F. v. M. A beautifully marked
wood much used for making walking sticks. It grows 70 or 80
feet high.
Alluvial, n. the common term in Australia and
New Zealand for gold-bearing alluvial soil. The word is also
used adjectivally as in England.
1889. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 403:
"The whole of the alluvial will be taken up, and the Terrible
Hollow will re-echo with the sound of pick and shovel."
Ambrite (generally called ambrit), n.
Mineral [from amber + ite, mineral formative, `O.E.D.'], a
fossil resin found in masses amidst lignite coals in various
parts of New Zealand. Some identify it with the resin of
Dammara australis, generally called Kauri gum
(q.v.).
1867. F. von Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 79:
"Although originating probably from a coniferous tree related
to the Kauri pine, it nevertheless has been erroneously taken
for Kauri gum."--[Footnote]: "It is sufficiently characterised
to deserve a special name ; but it comes so near to real
amber that it deserves the name of Ambrite."
[This is the earliest use of the word.]
Anabranch, n. a branch of a river which leaves
it and enters it again. The word is not Australian, though it
is generally so reckoned. It is not given in the `Century,'
nor in the `Imperial,' nor in `Webster,' nor in the `Standard.'
The `O.E.D.' treats Ana as an independent word, rightly
explaining it as anastomosing, but its quotation from
the `Athenaeum' (1871), on which it relies,is a misprint. For
the origin and coinage of the word, see quotation 1834. See
the aboriginal name Billabong.
1834. Col.Jackson, `Journal of Royal Geographical Society,' p. 79:
"Such branches of a river as after separation re-unite, I would
term anastomosing-branches; or, if a word might be
coined, ana-branches, and the islands they form,
branch-islands. Thus, if we would say, `the river in
this part of its course divides into several
ana-branches,' we should immediately understand the
subsequent re-union of the branches to the main trunk."
Col. Jackson was for a while Secretary and Editor of the
Society's Journal. In Feb. 1847 he resigned that position, and
in the journal of that year there is the following amusing
ignorance of his proposed word--
1847. `Condensed Account of Sturt's Exploration in the
Interior of Australia--Journal of the Royal Geographical
Society,' p. 87:
"Captain Sturt proposed sending in advance to ascertain the
state of the Ana branch of the Darling, discovered by Mr. Eyre
on a recent expedition to the North."
No fewer than six times on two pages is the word
anabranch printed as two separate words, and as if
Ana were a proper name. In the Index volume it appears
"Ana, a branch of the Darling."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 35:
"The river itself divided into anabranches which . . . made the
whole valley a maze of channels."
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. i. p. 298:
"What the Major calls, after the learned nomenclature of
Colonel Jackson, in the `Journal of the Geographical Society,'
anabranches, but which the natives call billibongs, channels
coming out of a stream and returning into it again."
1871. `The Athenaeum,' May 27, p. 660 (' O.E.D.'):
"The Loddon district is called the County of Gunbower,
which means, it is said, an ana branch [sic]."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' p. 48:
"A plain bordering an ana-branch sufficient for water."
Anchorwing, n. a bird-name, Falco
melanogenys, Gould. The Black-cheeked Falcon, so called
because of the resemblance of the wings outspread in flight to
the flukes of an anchor.
Anguillaria, n. one of the vernacular names
used for the common Australian wild flower, Anguillaraa
australis, R. Br., Wurmbsea dioica, F. v. M.,
N.O. Liliaceae. The name Anguillarea is from the
administrator of the Botanic Gardens of Padua, three centuries
ago. There are three Australian forms, distinguished by Robert
Brown as species. The flower is very common in the meadows in
early spring, and is therefore called the Native Snow
Drop. In Tasmania it is called Nancy.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' 67:
"Spotted Anguillaria. Nancy. The little lively white flower
with blue spots in the centre, about 2 inches high, that
everywhere enlivens our grassy hills in spring, resembling the
Star of Bethlehem."
1878. W. R. Guilfoyle, `Australian Botany,' p. 83:
"Native Snowdrop. Anguillaria Australis. The earliest
of all our indigenous spring-flowering plants. . . . In early
spring our fields are white with the flowers of this pretty
little bulbous-rooted plant."
Ant-eater, n.
(1) i.q. Ant-eating-Porcupine. See Echidna.
(2) The Banded Ant-eater (q.v.).
Ant-eater, Banded. See Banded Ant-eater.
Antechinornys, n. scientific name for the genus
with the one species of Long legged Pouched-Mouse
(q.v.). (Grk. 'anti, opposed to, 'echivos,
hedgehog, and mus, mouse, sc. a mouse different to the
hedgehog.) It is a jumping animal exclusively insectivorous.
Antipodes, n. properly a Greek word, the plural
of 'antipous, lit. "having feet opposed." The
ancients, however, had no knowledge of the southern hemisphere.
Under the word perioikos, Liddell and Scott explain that
'antipodes meant "those who were in opposite parallels
and meridians." The word Antipodes was adopted into the
Latin language, and occurs in two of the Fathers, Lactantius
and Augustine. By the mediaeval church to believe in the
antipodes was regarded as heresy. `O.E.D.' quotes two examples
of the early use of the word in English.
1398. `Trevisa Barth. De P. R.,' xv. lii. (1495), p. 506:
"Yonde in Ethiopia ben the Antipodes, men that have theyr fete
ayenst our fete."
1556. `Recorde Cast. Knowl.,' 93:
"People . . . called of the Greeks and Latines also
'antipodes, Antipodes, as you might say
Counterfooted, or Counterpasers."
Shakspeare uses the word in five places, but, though he knew
that this "pendent world" was spherical, his Antipodes were not
Australasian. In three places he means only the fact that it
is day in the Eastern hemisphere when it is night in England.
`Midsummer Night's Dream,' III. ii. 55:
"I'll believe as soon
This whole earth may be bored, and that the moon
May thro' the centre creep and so displease
His brother's noontide with the Antipodes."
`Merchant of Venice,' V. 127:
"We should hold day with the Antipodes
If you would walk in absence of the sun."
`Richard II.,' III. ii. 49:
"Who all this while hath revell'd in the night,
Whilst we were wandering with the Antipodes."
In `Henry VI.,' part 3, I. iv. 135, the word more clearly
designates the East:
"Thou art as opposite to every good
As the Antipodes are unto us,
Or as the South to the Septentrion." [sc. the North.]
But more precise geographical indications are given in `Much
Ado,' II. i. 273, where Benedick is so anxious to avoid
Beatrice that he says--
"I will go on the slightest errand now to the Antipodes that
you can devise to send me on. I will fetch you a tooth-picker
now from the farthest inch of Asia; bring you the length of
Prester John's foot; fetch you a hair of the great Kam's beard;
do you any embassage to the Pygmies rather than hold three
words conference with this harpy."
Now the Pygmies lived on the Upper Nile, near Khartoum,
Prester John in India, and the great Kam (Khan) in Tartary.
The word Antipodes in modern use is applied rather to
places than to people. Geographically, the word means a place
exactly opposite on the surface of the globe, as Antipodes
Island (Eastward of New Zealand), which is very near the
opposite end of the diameter of the globe passing through
London. But the word is often used in a wider sense, and the
whole of Australasia is regarded as the Antipodes of Great
Britain.
The question is often asked whether there is any singular to
the word Antipodes, and `O.E.D.' shows that antipode is
still used in the sense of the exact opposite of a
person. Antipod is also used, especially playfully. The
adjectives used are Antipodal and Antipodean.
1640. Richard Brome [Title]:
"The Antipodes; comedy in verse." [Acted in 1638, first
printed 4t0. 1640.]
Ant-orchis, n. an Australian and Tasmanian
orchid, Chiloglottis gunnii, Lind.
Apple and Apple-tree, n. and
adj. The names are applied to various indigenous trees,
in some cases from a supposed resemblance to the English fruit,
in others to the foliage of the English tree. The varieties
are--
Black or Brush Apple--
Achras australis, R. Br.
Emu A.--
Owenia acidula, F. v. M.; called also Native
Nectarine and Native Quince.
Petalostigma quadriloculare, F. v. M.; called also
Crab-tree, Native Quince, Quinine-tree
(q.v.)
Kangaroo A.--
See Kangaroo Apple.
Mooley A. (West N.S.W. name)--
Owenia acidula, F. v. M.
Mulga A.--
The Galls of Acacia aneura, F. v. M.
Oak A.--
Cones of Casuarina stricta, Ait.
Rose A.--
Owenia cerasifera, F. v. M.
1820. John Oxley, `Journal of Two Expeditions into the Interior
of New South Wales,' p. 187:
"The blue gum trees in the neighbourhood were extremely fine,
whilst that species of Eucalyptus, which is vulgarly called the
apple-tree . . . again made its appearance. . . ."
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 260:
"It builds its nest of sticks lined with grass in
Iron-bark and Apple-trees (a species of
Angophora)."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. i. p. 200:
"The apple-trees resemble the English apple only in leaf."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 195:
"In looking down upon the rich flats below, adjoining the
stream, I was perpetually reminded of a thriving and rich
apple-orchard. The resemblance of what are called apple-trees
in Australia to those of the same name at home is so striking
at a distance in these situations, that the comparison could
not be avoided, although the former bear no fruit, and do not
even belong to the same species."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 52:
"I have heard of men employed in felling whole apple-trees
(Angophera lanceolata) for the sheep."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii. c.
iv. p. 132;
"Red Apple, Quonui, affects salt grounds."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Phillipsland,' p. 256:
"The plains, or rather downs, around it (Yass) are thinly but
most picturesquely covered with `apple-trees,' as they are
called by the colonists, merely from their resemblance to the
European apple-tree in their size and outline, for they do not
resemble it in producing an edible fruit."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 32:
"The musk-plant, hyacinth, grass-tree, and kangaroo apple-tree
are indigenous."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 219:
"Pomona would indignantly disown the apple-tree, for there is
not the semblance of a pippin on its tufted branches."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 113:
"Sandy apple-tree flats, and iron-bark ridges, lined the creek
here on either side."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 158:
"The desolate flats where gaunt apple-trees rot."
Apple-berry, n. the fruit of an Australian
shrub, Billardiera scandens, Smith,
N.O. Pittosporeae, called by children "dumplings."
1793. J. E. Smith, `Specimen of Botany of New Holland,' pp. 1, 3:
"Billardiera scandens. Climbing Apple Berry. . . .
The name Billardiera is given it in honour of James Julian la
Billardiere, M.D., F.M.L.S., now engaged as botanist on board
the French ships sent in search of M. de la Peyrouse."
Apple-gum, n. See Gum.
Apple-scented gum, n. See Gum.
Apteryx, n. [Grk. 'a privative and
pterux, a wing.] A New Zealand bird about the size of
a domestic fowl, with merely rudimentary wings.See Kiwi.
1813. G. Shaw, `Naturalist's Miscellany.' c. xxiv. p. 1058
(`O.E.D.'):
"The Southern Apteryx."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 137:
"The present Apterix or wingless bird of that country (New
Zealand)."
1851. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 300 [Letter from Rev. W. Colenso,
Waitangi, Hawke's Bay, New Zealand, Sept. 4, 1850:
"You enquire after an Apteryx. How delighted should I
be to succeed in getting you one. Three years ago Owen
expressed a similar wish, and I have repeatedly tried, but
failed. Yet here they still are in the mountain forests,
though, doubtless, fast hastening towards extinction. I saw
one in its wild state two years ago in the dense woods of the
interior; I saw it clearly. . . . Two living specimens were
lately taken by the Acheron, steamer, to Sydney, where they
died; these were obtained at the Bay of Islands, where also I
once got three at one time. Since then I have not been able to
obtain another, although I have offered a great price for one.
The fact is, the younger natives do not know how to take them,
and the elder ones having but few wants, and those fully
supplied, do not care to do so. Further, they can only be
captured by night, and the dog must be well trained to be of
service."
1874. F. P. Cobbe, in `Littell's Age,' Nov. 7, p. 355
(`Standard'):
"We have clipped the wings of Fancy as close as if she were
an Apteryx.'
Arbutus, Native, n. See Wax-Cluster.
Ardoo, n. See Nardoo.
Artichoke, n. name given to the plant
Astelia Alpina, R. Br., N.O. Liliaceae.
Ash, n. The name, with various epithets, is
applied to the following different Australasian trees--
Black Ash--
Nephelium semiglaucum, F. v. M.,
N.O. Sapindaceae; called also Wild Quince.
Black Mountain A.-- Eucalyptus leucoxylon, F. v. M.,
N.O. Myrtaceae.
Blue A.--
Elaeodendron australe, Vent., N.O. Celastrinae.
Blueberry A.-- Elaeocarpus holopetalus, F. v. M.,
N.O. Tiliaceae.
Brush Apple-- Acronychia baueri, Schott. (of Illawarra,
N.S.W.).
Crow's A.--
Flindersia australis, R. Br., N.O. Meliaceae.
Elderberry A. (of Victoria)--
Panax sambucifolius, Sieb., N.O. Araliaceae.
Illawarra A.--
Elaeocarpus kirtonia, F. v. M., N.O. Tiliaceae.
Moreton Bay A.--
Eucalyptus tessellaris, Hook., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Mountain A. (see Mountain Ash).
New Zealand A. (see Titoki).
Pigeonberry A.--
Elaeocarpus obovatus, G. Don., N.O. Tiliaceae.
Red A.--
Alphitonia excelsa, Reiss, N.O. Rhamnaceae.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 75:
"The Moreton Bay Ash (a species of Eucalyptus). ..was
here also very plentiful."
Assigned, past part. of verb to assign,
to allot. Used as adj. of a convict allotted to a
settler as a servant. Colloquially often reduced to "signed."
1827. `Captain Robinson's Report,' Dec. 23:
"It was a subject of complaint among the settlers, that their
assigned servants could not be known from soldiers, owing to
their dress; which very much assisted the crime of
`bush-ranging.'"
1837. J. D. Lang, `New South Wales,' vol. ii. p. 31
"The assigned servant of a respectable Scotch family residing
near Sydney."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 75:
"Of the first five persons we saw to Van Diemen's Land, four
were convicts, and perhaps the fifth. These were the assigned
servants of the pilot."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 324:
"Under the old practice, the convicts, as soon as they arrived
from Britain, were assigned among the various applicants. The
servant thus assigned was bound to perform diligently, from
sunrise till sunset, all usual and reasonable labour."
Assignee, n. a convict assigned as a servant. The
word is also used in its ordinary English sense.
1843. `Penny Cyclopaedia,' vol. xxv. p. 139, col. 2:
"It is comparatively difficult to obtain another
assignee,--easy to obtain a hired servant."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 324:
"Any instance of gross treatment disqualified him for the
future as an assignee of convict labour."
Assignment, n. service as above.
1836. C. Darwin, `Journal of Researches' (1890),
c. xix. p. 324:
"I believe the years of assignment are passed away with
discontent and unhappiness."
1852. John West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 126:
"That form of service, known as assignment, was established by
Governor King in 1804."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 117:
"The assignment system was then in operation, and such as
obtained free grants of land were allowed a certain proportion
of convicts to bring it into cultivation."
Asthma Herb, Queensland, n. Euphorbia
pilulifera, Linn. As the name implies, a remedy for asthma.
The herb is collected when in flower and carefully dried.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 183:
"This plant, having obtained some reputation in Australasia in
certain pulmonary complaints, has acquired the appellation to
the Colonies of `Queensland Asthma Herb'. Nevertheless, it is
by no means endemic in Australasia, for it is a common tropical
weed."
Aua, n. Maori name for a New Zealand fish,
Agonostoma forsteri, Bleek. Another Maori name is
Makawhiti; also called Sea-Mullet and sometimes
Herring; (q.v.). It is abundant also in Tasmanian
estuaries, and is one of the fishes which when dried is called
Picton Herring (q.v.). See also Maray and
Mullet. Agonostoma is a genus of the family
Mugilidae or Grey-Mullets.
Aurora australis, n. the Southern equivalent
for Aurora borealis.
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 214:
"Sept. 5, 1788. About half after six in the evening, we saw an
Aurora Australis, a phenomenon uncommon in the southern
hemisphere."
Austral, adj. "Belonging to the South,
Southern. Lat. Australis, from auster,
south-wind." (`O.E.D.') The word is rarely used in Australasia
in its primary sense, but now as equivalent to Australian or
Australasian.
1823. Wentworth's Cambridge poem on `Australasia':
"And grant that yet an Austral Milton's song,
Pactolus-like, flow deep and rich along,
An Austral Shakespeare rise, whose living page
To Nature true may charm in every age;
And that an Austral Pindar daring soar,
Where not the Theban Eagle reach'd before."
1825. Barron Field, `First Fruits of Australian Poetry,' Motto in
Geographical Memoir of New South Wales, p. 485:
"I first adventure. Follow me who list;
And be the second Austral harmonist."
Adapted from Bishop Hall.
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 184:
"For this, midst Austral wilds I waken
Our British harp, feel whence I come,
Queen of the sea, too long forsaken,
Queen of the soul, my spirit's home."--Alien Song.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 43:
"Every servant in this Austral Utopia thinks himself a
gentleman."
1868. C. Harpur, `Poems' (ed. 1883), p. 215:
"How oft, in Austral woods, the parting day
Has gone through western golden gates away."
1879. J. B. O'Hara, `Songs of the South,' p. 127:
"What though no weird and legendary lore
Invests our young, our golden Austral shore
With that romance the poet loves too well,
When Inspiration breathes her magic spell."
1894. Ernest Favenc [Title]:
"Tales of the Austral Tropics."
1896. [Title]:
"The Austral Wheel--A Monthly Cycling Magazine, No. 1, Jan."
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 53
"Our Austral Spring." [Title of an article describing Spring in
Australia.]
Australasia, n. (and its adjectives), name
"given originally by De Brosses to one of his three divisions
of the alleged Terra australis." (`O.E.D.') Now used as
a larger term than Australian, to include the continent of
Australia, New Zealand, Tasmania, Fiji and islands. For
peculiar use of the name for the Continent in 1793, see
Australia.
1756. Charles de Brosses, `Histoire des Navigations aux Terres
Australes,' tom. i. p. 80:
"On peut de meme diviser le monde austral inconnu en trois
portions. .. .L'une dans l'ocean des Indes au sud de l'Asie que
j'appellerai par cette raison australasie."
1766. Callander, `Terra Australis,' i. p. 49 (Translation of
de Brosses)(`O.E.D.):
"The first [division] in the Indian Ocean, south of Asia, which
for this reason we shall call Australasia."
1802. G. Shaw, `Zoology,' iii. p. 506 (`O.E.D.'):
"Other Australasian snakes."
1823. Subject for English poem at Cambridge University:
`Australasia.'
[The prize (Chancellor's Medal) was won by Winthrop Mackworth
Praed. William Charles Wentworth stood second.] The concluding
lines of his poem are:
"And Australasia float, with flag unfurl'd,
A new Britannia in another world."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 77:
"How far had these ideas been acted upon by the Colonists of
Austral Asia?" [sic.]
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. 1. p. 109:
"`The Austral-Asiatic Review,' by Murray, also made its
appearance [in Hobart] in February, 1828."
1855. Tennyson, `The Brook,' p. 194:
" Katie walks
By the long wash of Australasian seas
Far off, and holds her head to other stars,
And breathes in converse seasons."
[Altered in Edition of 1894 to "breathes in April-autumns."]
1857. Daniel Bunce [Title]:
"Australasiatic reminiscences."
1864. `The Australasian,' Oct. 1, First Number [Title]:
"The Australasian."
1880. Alfred R. Wallace [Title]:
"Australasia." [In Stanford's `Compendium of Geography and
Travel.']
1881. David Blair [Title]:
"Cyclopaedia of Australasia."
1890. E. W. Hornung, `Bride from the Bush,' p. 29:
"It was neither Cockney nor Yankee, but a nasal blend of both:
it was a lingo that declined to let the vowels run alone, but
trotted them out in ill-matched couples, with discordant and
awful consequences; in a word, it was Australasiatic of the
worst description."
1890. `Victorian Consolidated Statutes,' Administration and
p.obate Act, Section 39:
"`Australasian Colonies,' shall mean all colonies for the time
being on the main land of Australia. ..and shall also include
the colonies of New Zealand, Tasmania and Fiji and any other
British Colonies or possessions in Australasia now existing or
hereafter to be created which the Governor in Council may from
time to time declare to be Australasian Colonies within the
meaning of this Act."
1895. Edward Jenks [Title]:
"History of the Australasian Colonies."
1896. J. S. Laurie [Title]:
"The Story of Australasia."
Australia, n., and Australian,
adj. As early as the 16th century there was a belief in
a Terra australis (to which was often added the epithet
incognita), literally "southern land," which was
believed to be land lying round and stretching outwards from
the South Pole.
In `Proceedings of the Royal Geographical Society of
Australasia,' Sydney, Jan. 1892, is printed a paper read at the
Geographical Congress at Berne, by E. Delmar Morgan, on the
`Early Discovery of Australia.' This paper is illustrated by
maps taken from `Nordenskiold's Atlas.' In a map by Orontius
Finoeus, a French cosmographer of Provence, dated 1531, the
Terra australis is shown as "Terra Australis recenter
inventa, sed nondum plene cognita." In Ortelius' Map, 1570, it
appears as "Terra Australis nondum cognita." In Gerard
Mercator's Map, 1587, as "Terra Australis" simply.
In 1606 the Spaniard Fernandez de Quiros gave the name of
Terra Australis del Espiritu Santo to land which he
thought formed part of the Great Southland. It is in fact one
of the New Hebrides.
The word "Australian " is older than "Australia"
(see quotations, 1693 and 1766). The name Australia was
adapted from the Latin name Terra Australis. The
earliest suggestion of the word is credited to Flinders, who
certainly thought that he was inventing the name. (See
quotation, 1814.) Twenty-one years earlier, however, the word
is found (see quotation, 1793); and the passage containing it
is the first known use of the word in print. Shaw may thus be
regarded as its inventor. According to its title-page, the
book quoted is by two authors, the Zoology, by Shaw and
the Botany by Smith. The Botany, however, was
not published. Of the two names--Australia and
Australasia--suggested in the opening of the quotation,
to take the place of New Holland, Shaw evidently favoured
Australia, while Smith, in the `Transactions of the
Linnaean Society,' vol. iv. p. 213 (1798), uses
Australasia for the continent several times. Neither
name, however, passed then into general use. In 1814, Robert
Brown the Botanist speaks of "Terra Australis," not of
"Australia." "Australia" was reinvented by Flinders.
Quotations for " Terra Australis"--
1621. R. Burton, `Anatomy of Melancholy' (edition 1854), p. 56:
"For the site, if you will needs urge me to it, I am not fully
resolved, it may be in Terra Australis incognita, there
is room enough (for of my knowledge, neither that hungry
Spaniard nor Mercurius Britannicus have yet discovered half of
it)."
Ibid. p. 314:
"Terra Australis incognita. ..and yet in likelihood it
may be so, for without all question, it being extended from the
tropic of Capricorn to the circle Antarctic, and lying as it
doth in the temperate zone, cannot choose but yield in time
some flourishing kingdoms to succeeding ages, as America did
unto the Spaniards."
Ibid. p. 619:
"But these are hard-hearted, unnatural, monsters of men,
shallow politicians, they do not consider that a great part of
the world is not yet inhabited as it ought, how many colonies
into America, Terra Australis incognita, Africa may be
sent?"
Early quotations for "Australian"
1693. `Nouveau Voyage de la Terre Australe, contenant les
Coutumes et les Moeurs des Australiens, etc.' Par Jaques
Sadeur [Gabriel de Foigny].
[This is a work of fiction, but interesting as being the first
book in which the word Australiens is used. The next
quotation is from the English translation.]
1693. `New Discovery, Terra Incognita Australis,' p. 163
(`O.E.D.'):
"It is easy to judge of the incomparability of the Australians
with the people of Europe."
1766. Callander, `Terra Australis' (Translation of De Brosses),
c. ii. p. 280:
"One of the Australians, or natives of the Southern World,
whom Gonneville had brought into France."
Quotations for "Australia"
1793. G. Shaw and I. E. Smith, `Zoology and Botany of New
Holland,' p. 2:
"The vast Island or rather Continent of Australia, Australasia,
or New Holland, which has so lately attracted the particular
attention of European navigators and naturalists, seems to
abound in scenes of peculiar wildness and sterility; while the
wretched natives of many of those dreary districts seem less
elevated above the inferior animals than in any other part of
the known world; Caffraria itself not excepted; as well as less
indued with the power of promoting a comfortable existence by
an approach towards useful arts and industry. It is in these
savage regions however that Nature seems to have poured forth
many of her most highly ornamented products with unusual
liberality."
1814. M. Flinders, `Voyage to Terra Australis,' Introduction,
p. iii. and footnote:
"I have . . . ventured upon the readoption of the original
Terra Australis, and of this term I shall hereafter make
use, when speaking of New Holland [sc. the West] and New
South Wales, in a collective sense; and when using it in the
most extensive signification, the adjacent isles, including
that of Van Diemen, must be understood to be comprehended."
[Footnote]: "Had I permitted myself any innovation upon the
original term, it would have been to convert it into Australia;
as being more agreeable to the ear, and an assimilation to the
names of the other great portions of the earth."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. i. p. 9:
"New South Wales (or Australia, as we colonials say)."
1839. C. Darwin, `Naturalist's Voyage' (ed. 1890), p. 328:
"Farewell, Australia! You are a rising child, and doubtless
some day will reign a great princess in the South; but you are
too great and ambitious for affection, yet not great enough for
respect. I leave your shores without sorrow or regret."
1852. A Liverpool Merchant [Title]:
"A Guide to Australia and the Gold Regions."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. viii. (new
ed.) p. 152:
"The colonies are determined to be separate. Australia is a
term that finds no response in the patriotic feeling of any
Australian. . . . But this will come to an end sooner or later.
The name of Australia will be dearer, if not greater, to
Australian ears than the name of Great Britain."
[Mr. Trollope's prophecy has come true, and the name of
Australia is now dearer to an Australian than the name of his
own separate colony. The word "Colonial" as indicating
Australian nationality is going out of fashion. The word
"Australian" is much preferred.]
1878. F. P. Labilliere, `Early History of the Colony of
Victoria,' vol. i. p. 184:
"In a despatch to Lord Bathurst, of April 4th, 1817, Governor
Macquarie acknowledges the receipt of Captain Flinders's charts
of `Australia.' This is the first time that the name of
Australia appears to have been officially employed. The
Governor underlines the word. . . . In a private letter to
Mr. Secretary Goulbourn, M.P., of December 21st, 1817, [he]says
. . . `the Continent of Australia, which, I hope, will be the
name given to this country in future, instead of the very
erroneous and misapplied name hitherto given it of New Holland,
which, properly speaking, only applies to a part of this
immense Continent.'"
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 64:
"It is pleasant to reflect that the name Australia was selected
by the gallant Flinders; though, with his customary modesty, he
suggested rather than adopted it."
1895. H. M. Goode, `The Argus,' Oct. 15, p. 7, col. 4:
"Condemning the absurd practice of using the word `Colonial' in
connection with our wines, instead of the broader and more
federal one, `Australian.' In England our artists, cricketer,
scullers, and globe-trotters are all spoken of and acknowledged
as Australians, and our produce, with the exception of wine, is
classed as follows:--Australian gold and copper, Australian
beef and mutton, Australian butter, Australian fruits, &c."
Ibid. p. 14:
"Merops or Bee-Eater. A tribe [of birds] which appears to be
peculiarly prevalent in the extensive regions of Australia."
Australian flag, n. Hot climate and country
work have brought in a fashion among bushmen of wearing a belt
or leather strap round the top of trousers instead of braces.
This often causes a fold in the shirt protruding all round from
under the waistcoat, which is playfully known as "the
Australian flag." Slang.
Australioid and Australoid, adj. like
Australian, sc. aboriginal--a term used by ethnologists. See
quotations.
1869. J. Lubbock, `Prehistoric Times,' vol. xii. p. 378:
"The Australoid type contains all the inhabitants of Australia
and the native races of the Deccan."
1878. E. B. Tylor, `Encyclopaedia Britannica,' vol. ii. p. 112:
"He [Professor Huxley] distinguishes four principal types of
mankind, the Australioid, Negroid, Mongoloid, and Xanthochroic,
adding a fifth variety, the Melanochroic. The special points
of the Australioid are a chocolate-brown skin, dark brown or
black eyes, black hair (usually wavy), narrow (dolichocephalic)
skull, brow-ridges strongly developed, projecting jaw, coarse
lips and broad nose. This type is best represented by the
natives of Australia, and next to them by the indigenous tribes
of Southern India, the so-called coolies."
Austral Thrush, n. See Port-Jackson
Thrush.
Avocet, n. a well-known European bird-name.
The Australian species is the Red-necked A., Recurvirostra
nova-hollandiae, Vieill.
Aweto, n. Maori name for a
vegetable-caterpillar of New Zealand. See quotation.
1889. E. Wakefield, `New Zealand after Fifty Years,' p. 81:
". . . the aweto, or vegetable-caterpillar, called by
the naturalists Hipialis virescens. It is a perfect
caterpillar in every respect, and a remarkably fine one too,
growing to a length in the largest specimens of three and a
half inches and the thickness of a finger, but more commonly to
about a half or two-thirds of that size. . . . When
full-grown, it undergoes a miraculous change. For some
inexplicable reason, the spore of a vegetable fungus
Sphaeria Robertsii, fixes itself on its neck, or between
the head and the first ring of the caterpillar, takes root and
grows vigorously . . . exactly like a diminutive bulrush from 6
to 10 inches high without leaves, and consisting solely of a
single stem with a dark-brown felt-like head, so familiar in
the bulrushes . . . always at the foot of the rata."
1896. A. Bence Jones, in `Pearson's Magazine,' Sept., p. 290:
"The dye in question was a solution of burnt or powdered resin,
or wood, or the aweto, the latter a caterpillar, which,
burrowing in the vegetable soil, gets a spore of a fungus
between the folds of its neck, and unable to free itself, the
insect's body nourishes the fungus, which vegetates and
occasions the death of the caterpillar by exactly filling the
interior of the body with its roots, always preserving its
perfect form. When properly charred this material yielded a
fine dark dye, much prized for purposes of moko." [See
Moko.]
Axe-breaker, n. name of a tree, Notelaea
longifolia, Vent., N.O. Jasmineae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 579:
"Axe-breaker. Wood hard, close-grained and firm. Its
vernacular name emphasizes its hardness."
B
Baal, or Bail, interj. and adv.
"An aboriginal expression of disapproval." (Gilbert Parker,
Glossary to `Round the Compass in Australia,' 1888.) It was
the negative in the Sydney dialect.
1893. J. F. Hogan, `Robert Lowe,' p. 271, quoting from `The
Atlas' (circa 1845):
"Traces, however, of the Egyptian language are discoverable
among the present inhabitants, with whom, for instance, the
word `Bale' or `Baal' is in continual use . . . ." [Evidently
a joke.]
Babbler, n. a bird-name. In Europe, "name
given, on account of their harsh chattering note, to the
long-legged thrushes." (`O.E.D.') The group "contains a great
number of birds not satisfactorily located elsewhere, and has
been called the ornithological waste-basket." (`Century.') The
species are--
The Babbler--
Pomatostomus temporalis, V. and H.
Chestnut-crowned B.--
P. ruficeps, Hart.
Red-breasted B.--
P. rubeculus, Gould.
White-browed B.--
P. superciliosus, V. and H.
Back-blocks, n. (1) The far interior of
Australia, and away from settled country. Land in Australia is
divided on the survey maps into blocks, a word confined, in
England and the United States, to town lands.
(2) The parts of a station distant from the frontage
(q.v.).
1872. Anon. `Glimpses of Life in Victoria,' p. 31:
". . . we were doomed to see the whole of our river-frontage
purchased. . . . The back blocks which were left to us were
insufficient for the support of our flocks, and deficient in
permanent water-supply. . . ."
1880. J. Mathew, Song--`The Bushman':
"Far, far on the plains of the arid back-blocks
A warm-hearted bushman is tending his flocks.
There's little to cheer in that vast grassy sea:
But oh! he finds pleasure in thinking of me.
How weary, how dreary the stillness must be!
But oh! the lone bushman is dreaming of me."
1890. E. W. Horning, `A Bride from the Bush,' p. 298:
"`Down in Vic' you can carry as many sheep to the acre as acres
to the sheep up here in the `backblocks.'"
1893. M. Gaunt, `English Illustrated, `Feb., p. 294:
"The back-blocks are very effectual levellers."
1893. Haddon Chambers, `Thumbnail Sketches of Australian
Life,' p. 33
"In the back-blocks of New South Wales he had known both hunger
and thirst, and had suffered from sunstroke."
1893. `The Australasian,' Aug. 12, p. 302, col. 1:
"Although Kara is in the back-blocks of New South Wales, the
clothes and boots my brother wears come from Bond Street."
Back-block, adj. from the interior.
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `Sydneyside Saxon,' vol. xii. p. 215:
"`What a nice mare that is of yours!' said one of the
back-block youngsters."
Back-blocker, n. a resident in the back-blocks.
1870. `The Argus,' March 22, p. 7, col. 2
"I am a bushman, a back blocker, to whom it happens about once
in two years to visit Melbourne."
1892. E. W. Hornung, `Under Two Skies,' p. 21:
"As for Jim, he made himself very busy indeed, sitting on his
heels over the fire in an attitude peculiar to back-blockers."
Back-slanging, verbal n. In the back-blocks
(q.v.) of Australia, where hotels are naturally scarce and
inferior, the traveller asks for hospitality at the
stations (q.v.) on his route, where he is always made
welcome. There is no idea of anything underhand on the part of
the traveller, yet the custom is called back-slanging.
Badger, n. This English name has been
incorrectly applied in Australia, sometimes to the Bandicoot,
sometimes to the Rock-Wallaby, and sometimes to the Wombat. In
Tasmania, it is the usual bush-name for the last.
1829. `The Picture of Australia,' p. 173:
"The Parameles, to which the colonists sometimes give
the name of badger. . . ."
1831. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 265:
"That delicious animal, the wombat (commonly known at that
place [Macquarie Harbour] by the name of badger, hence
the little island of that name in the map was so called, from
the circumstance of numbers of that animal being at first found
upon it)."
1850. James Bennett Clutterbuck, M.D., `Port Phillip in 1849,'
p. 37:
"The rock Wallaby, or Badger, also belongs to the family of the
Kangaroo; its length from the nose to the end of the tail is
three feet; the colour of the fur being grey-brown."
1875. Rev. J. G. Wood, `Natural History,' vol. i. p. 481:
"The Wombat or Australian Badger as it is popularly called by
the colonists. . . ."
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 8:
"With the exception of wombats or `badgers,' and an occasional
kangaroo . . . the intruder had to rely on the stores he carried
with him."
ibid. p. 44:
"Badgers also abound, or did until thinned out by hungry
prospectors."
Badger-box, n. slang name for a roughly-
constructed dwelling.
1875. `Proceedings of the Royal Society of Tasmania,'
September, p. 99 [`Port Davey in 1875,' by the Hon. James Reid
Scott, M.L.C.]:
"The dwellings occupied by the piners when up the river are of
the style known as `Badger-boxes,' in distinction from huts,
which have perpendicular walls, while the Badger-box is like an
inverted V in section. They are covered with bark, with a
thatch of grass along the ridge, and are on an average about 14
x 10 feet at the ground, and 9 or 10 feet high."
Bail, n. "A framework for securing the head of
a cow while she is milked." (`O.E.D.')
This word, marked in `O.E.D.' and other Dictionaries as
Australian, is provincial English. In the `English Dialect
Dictionary,' edited by Joseph Wright, Part I., the word is
given as used in "Ireland, Northamptonshire, Norfolk, Suffolk,
Hampshire and New Zealand." It is also used in Essex.
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 83:
"In every milking yard is an apparatus for confining a cow's
head called a `bail.' This consists of an upright standiron,
five feet in height, let into a framework, and about six inches
from it another fixed at the heel, the upper part working
freely in a slit, in which are holes for a peg, so that when
the peg is out and the movable standiron is thrown back, there
is abundance of room for a cow's head and horns, but when
closed, at which time the two standirons are parallel to each
other and six inches apart, though her neck can work freely up
and down, it is impossible for her to withdraw her head . . ."
1874. W. M. B., `Narrative of Edward Crewe,' p. 225:
"The former bovine female was a brute to manage, whom it would
have been impossible to milk without a `bail.' To what man or
country the honour of this invention belongs, who can tell? It
is in very general use in the Australian colonies; and my
advice to any one troubled with a naughty cow, who kicks like
fury during the process of milking, is to have a bail
constructed in their cow-house."
Bail up, v. (1) To secure the head of a cow in a
bail for milking.
(2) By transference, to stop travellers in the bush, used of
bushrangers. The quotation, 1888, shows the method of
transference. It then means generally, to stop. Like the
similar verb, to stick up (q.v.), it is often used
humorously of a demand for subscriptions, etc.
1844. Mrs. Chas. Meredith, `Notes and Sketches of New South
Wales,' p. 132:
"The bushrangers . . . walk quickly in, and `bail up,' i.e.
bind with cords, or otherwise secure, the male portion."
1847. Alex. Marjoribanks, `Travels in New South Wales,' p. 72:
". . . there were eight or ten bullock-teams baled up by three
mounted bushrangers. Being baled up is the colonial phrase for
those who are attacked, who are afterwards all put together,
and guarded by one of the party of the bushrangers when the
others are plundering."
1855 W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. ii. p. 309:
"So long as that is wrong, the whole community will be wrong,--
in colonial phrase, `bailed up' at the mercy of its own
tenants."
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania and Victoria,'
p. 192:
"`Come, sir, immediately,' rejoined Murphy, rudely and
insultingly pushing the master; `bail up in that corner, and
prepare to meet the death you have so long deserved.'"
1879. W. J. Barry, `Up and Down,' p. 112:
"She bailed me up and asked me if I was going to keep my
promise and marry her."
1880. W. Senior, `Travel and Trout,' p. 36:
"His troutship, having neglected to secure a line of retreat,
was, in colonial parlance, `bailed up.'"
1880. G. Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p.133:
"The Kelly gang . . . bailed up some forty residents in the local
public house."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 76:
"Did I ever get stuck-up? Never by white men, though I have
been bailed up by the niggers."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 105:
"A little further on the boar `bailed up' on the top of a
ridge."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 368:
"One of the young cows was a bit strange with me, so I had to
shake a stick at her and sing out `Bail up' pretty rough before
she'd put her head in. Aileen smiled something like her old
self for a minute, and said, `That comes natural to you now,
Dick, doesn't it ?' I stared for a bit and then burst out
laughing.It was a rum go, wasn't it? The same talk for cows
and Christians. That's how things get stuck into the talk in a
new country. Some old hand like father, as had been assigned
to a dairy settler, and spent all his mornings in the cow-yard,
had taken to the bush and tried his hand at sticking up people.
When they came near enough of course he'd pop out from behind a
tree, with his old musket or pair of pistols, and when he
wanted `em to stop, `Bail up, d-- yer,' would come a deal
quicker and more natural-like to his tongue than `Stand.' So
`bail up' it was from that day to this, and there'll have to be
a deal of change in the ways of the colonies, and them as come
from `em before anything else takes its place between the man
that's got the arms and the man that's got the money."
Bailing-up Pen, n. place for fastening up cattle.
1889. R. M. Praed, `Romance of Station,' vol. i. c. ii.
[`Eng. Dial. Dict.']:
"Alec was proud of the stockyard and pointed out . . . the
superior construction of the `crush,' or branding lane, and the
bailing-up pen."
Bald-Coot, n. a bird-name, Porphyrio
melanotus, Temm.; Blue, P. bellus, Gould. The
European bald-coot is Fulica atra.
Ballahoo, n. a name applied to the
Garfish (q.v.) by Sydney fishermen. The word is West
Indian, and is applied there to a fast-sailing schooner; also
spelled Bullahoo and Ballahou.
Balloon-Vine n. Australian name for the common
tropical weed, Cardiospermum halicacabum, Linn.,
N.O. Sapindaceae: called also Heart-seed,
Heart-pea, and Winter-cherry. It is a climbing
plant, and has a heart-shaped scar on the seed.
Balsam of Copaiba Tree, n. The name is applied
to the Australian tree, Geijera salicifolia, Schott,
N.O. Rutaceae, because the bark has the odour of the
drug of that name.
Bamboo-grass, n. an Australian cane-like grass,
Glyceria ramigera, F. v. M. ; also called Cane
Grass. Largely used for thatching purposes. Stock eat the
young shoots freely.
Banana, n. There are three species native to
Queensland, of which the fruit is said to be worthless--
Musa Banksii, F. v. M.
M. Hillii, F. v. M.
M. Fitzalani, F. v. M., N.O. Scitamineae.
The Bananas which are cultivated and form a staple
export of Queensland are acclimatized varieties.
Banana-land, n. slang name for Queensland,
where bananas grow in abundance.
Banana-lander, n. slang for a Queenslander (see
above).
Banded Ant-eater, n. name given to a small
terrestrial and ant-eating marsupial, Myrmecobius
fasciatus, Waterh, found in West and South Australia. It
is the only species of the genus, and is regarded as the most
closely allied of all living marsupials to the extinct
marsupials of the Mesozoic Age in Europe. It receives its name
banded from the presence along the back of a well-marked series
of dark transverse bands.
1871. G. Krefft, `Mammals of Australia':
"The Myrmecobius is common on the West Coast and in the
interior of New South Wales and South Australia: the
Murrumbidgee River may be taken as its most eastern boundary."
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' p. 340:
"Thus we have here [W. Australia] alone the curious little
banded ant-eater (Myrmecobius fasciatus), which presents
the nearest approach in its dentition to the most ancient known
mammals whose remains are found in the oolite and Trias of the
Mesozoic epoch."
Banded-Kangaroo, i.q. Banded-Wallaby. See
Lagostrophus and Wallaby.
Banded-Wallaby, n. sometimes called
Banded-Kangaroo. See Lagostrophus and
Wallaby.
Bandicoot, n. an insect-eating marsupial
animal; family, Peramelidae; genus, Perameles.
"The animals of this genus, commonly called Bandicoots
in Australia, are all small, and live entirely on the ground,
making nests composed of dried leaves, grass and sticks, in
hollow places. They are rather mixed feeders; but insects,
worms, roots and bulbs, constitute their ordinary diet."
(`Encyclopaedia Britannica,' 9th edit., vol. xv. p. 381.) The
name comes from India, being a corruption of Telugu
pandi-kokku, literally "pig-dog," used of a large rat
called by naturalists Mus malabaricus, Shaw, Mus
giganteus, Hardwicke; Mus bandis coota, Bechstein.
The name has spread all over India. The Indian animal is very
different from the Australian, and no record is preserved to
show how the Anglo-Indian word came to be used in Australia.
The Bandicoots are divided into three genera--the True
Bandicoots (genus Perameles, q.v.), the Rabbit
Bandicoots (genus Peragale, q.v.), and the
Pig-footed Bandicoots (q.v.) (genus Choeropus,
q.v.). The species are--
Broadbent's Bandicoot--
Perameles broadbenti, Ramsay.
Cockerell's B.--
P. cockerelli, Ramsay.
Common Rabbit B.--
Peragale lagotis, Reid.
Desert B.--
P. eremiana, Spencer.
Doria's B.--
Perameles dorerana, Quoy & Gaim.
Golden B.--
P. aurata, Ramsay.
Gunn's B.--
P. gunni, Gray.
Less Rabbit B.--
Peragale minor, Spencer.
Long-nosed B.--
Perameles nasuta, Geoffr.
Long-tailed B.--
P. longicauda, Peters & Doria.
North-Australian B.--
P. macrura, Gould.
Port Moresby B.--
P. moresbyensis, Ramsay.
Raffray's B.--
P. rafrayana, Milne-Edw.
Short-nosed B.--
P. obesula, Shaw.
Striped B.--
P. bougainvillii, Quoy & Gaim.
White-tailed Rabbit B.--
P. lesicura. Thomas.
Pig-footed B.--
Choeropus castanotis, Gray.
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales',
vol. ii. p. 188 (Bass's Diary at the Derwent, January 1799):
"The bones of small animals, such as opossums, squirrels,
kangooroo rats, and bandicoots, were numerous round their
deserted fire-places."
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description o New South Wales,' p. 3:
"The animals are, the kangaroo, native dog (which is a smaller
species of the wolf), the wombat, bandicoot, kangaroo-rat,
opossum, flying squirrel, flying fox, etc. etc."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 316
"The bandicoot is about four times he size of a rat, without
a tail, and burrows in the ground or in hollow trees."
1832. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' vol. ii. p. 28:
"The bandicoot is as large as a rabbit. There are two kinds,
the rat and the rabbit bandicoot."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 233:
"The common people are not destitute of what Wordsworth calls
`the poetry of common speech,' many of their similes being very
forcibly and naturally drawn from objects familiarly in sight
and quite Australian. `Poor as a bandicoot,' `miserable as a
shag on a rock.'"
Ibid. p. 330:
"There is also a rat-like animal with a swinish face, covered
with ruddy coarse hair, that burrows in the ground--the
bandicoot. It is said to be very fine eating."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 26:
"The bandicoot is the size of a large rat, of a dark brown
colour; it feeds upon roots, and its flesh is good eating.
This animal burrows in the ground, and it is from this habit,
I suppose, that when hungry, cold, or unhappy, the Australian
black says that he is as miserable as the bandicoot."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals, p. 92:
"The bandicoots are good eating even for Europeans, and in my
opinion are the only Australian mammals fit to eat. They
resemble pigs, and the flesh tastes somewhat like pork."
Bangalay, n. a Sydney workmen's name for the
timber of Eucalyptus botrioides, Smith. (See
Gum.) The name is aboriginal, and by workmen is always
pronounced Bang Alley.
Bangalow, n. an ornamental feathery-leaved
palm, Ptychosperma elegans, Blume, N.O. Palmeae.
1851. J. Henderson, `Excursions in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p.229
"The Bangalo, which is a palm. . . The germ, or roll of young
leaves in the centre, and near the top, is eaten by the
natives, and occasionally by white men, either raw or boiled.
It is of a white colour, sweet and pleasant to the taste."
1884. W. R. Guilfoyle, `Australian Botany,' p. 23:
"The aborigines of New South Wales and Queensland, and
occasionally the settlers, eat the young leaves of the cabbage
and bangalo palms."
1886. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 193:
You see he was bred in a bangalow wood,
And bangalow pith was the principal food
His mother served out in her shanty."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 592:
"Bangalow. . . . The small stems sometimes go under the name
of `Moreton Bay Canes.' It is a very ornamental,
feathery-leaved palm."
Bang-tail muster. See quotation.
1887. W. S. S. Tyrwhitt, `The New Churn in the Queensland Bush,'
p. 61:
"Every third or fourth year on a cattle station, they have what
is called a `bang tail muster'; that is to say, all the cattle
are brought into the yards, and have the long hairs at the end
of the tail cut off square, with knives or sheep-shears. . .
The object of it is. . .to find out the actual number of
cattle on the run, to compare with the number entered on the
station books."
Banker, n. a river full up to the top of the
banks. Compare Shakspeare: "Like a proud river, peering o'er
his bounds." (`King John,' III. i. 23.)
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol, iii. p. 175
"The Murrumbidgee was running a `banker'--water right up to the
banks."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. vii. p. 52:
"The driver stated that he had heard the river was `a banker.'"
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 45:
"The creeks were bankers, and the flood
Was forty miles round Bourke."
Ibid. p. 100:
"Till the river runs a banker,
All stained with yellow mud."
Banksia, n. "A genus of Australian shrubs with
umbellate flowers,--now cultivated as ornamental shrubs in
Europe." (`O.E.D.') Called after Mr. Banks, naturalist of the
Endeavour, afterwards Sir Joseph Banks. The so-called
Australian Honeysuckle (q.v.). See also
Bottle-brush.
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 221:
"The different species of banksia. The finest new genus
hitherto found in New Holland has been destined by Linnaeus,
with great propriety, to transmit to posterity the name of Sir
Joseph Banks, who first discovered it in his celebrated voyage
round the world."
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' p. 557:
"A few berries, the yam and fern root, the flowers of the
different banksia, and at times some honey, make up the whole
vegetable catalogue."
1829. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of the Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 312:
"Scrubs where the different species of banksia are found, the
flowers of which I (Mr. Caley) have reason to think afford it
sustenance during winter."
1833. C. Sturt, `South Australia,' vol. ii. c. ii. p. 30:
"Some sandhills . . . crowned by banksias."
1845. J. Q. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 39:
"Many different species of banksia grow in great plenty in the
neighbourhood of Sydney, and from the density of their foliage
are very ornamental."
1846. L. Leichhardt, quoted by J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 331:
"The table-land is covered by forests of stringy-bark, of
melaleuca-gum, and banksia."
1851. `Quarterly Review,' Dec., p. 40:
"In this they will find an extremely rich collection of
bottle-brush-flowered, zigzag-leaved, grey-tinted, odd-looking
things, to most eyes rather strange than beautiful,
notwithstanding that one of them is named Banksia
speciosa. They are the `Botany Bays' of old-fashioned
gardeners, but are more in the shrub and tree line than that of
flowering pots. Banksia Solandei will remind them to
turn to their `Cook's Voyages' when they get home, to read how
poor Dr. Solander got up a mountain and was heartily glad to get
down again."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 46:
"The banksias are of historic interest, inasmuch as the genus
was dedicated already by the younger Linne in 1781 to Sir
Joseph Banks, from whom the Swedish naturalist received
branchlets of those species, which in Captain Cook's first
voyage more than 100 years ago (1770) were gathered by Banks at
Botany-Bay and a few other places of the east coast of
Australia."
1887. J. Bonwick, `Romance of the Wool Trade,' p. 228:
"A banksia plain, with its collection of
bottle-brush-like-flowers, may have its charms for a botanist,
but its well-known sandy ground forbids the hope of good
grasses."
Baobab, n. a tree, native of Africa,
Adansonia digitata. The name is Ethiopian. It has been
introduced into many tropical countries. The Australian
species of the genus is A. gregorii, F. v. M., called also
Cream of Tartar or Sour Gourd-tree,
Gouty-stem (q.v.), and Bottle-tree (q.v.).
Barber, or Tasmanian Barber, n. a name
for the fish Anthias rasor, Richards., family
Percidae; also called Red-Perch. See
Perch. It occurs in Tasmania, New Zealand, and Port
Jackson. It is called Barber from the shape of the
praeoperculum, one of the bones of the head. See
quotation.
1841. John Richardson, `Description of Australian Fish,' p. 73:
"Serranus Rasor.-- Tasmanian Barber. . . . The
serrature of the preoperculum is the most obvious and general
character by which the very numerous Serrani are connected with
each other . . . The Van Diemen's Land fish, which is described
below, is one of the `Barbers,' a fact which the specific
appellation rasor is intended to indicate; the more
classical word having been previously appropriated to another
species. . . Mr. Lempriere states that it is known locally as
the `red perch or shad.'"
[Richardson also says that Cuvier founded a subdivision of the
Serrani on the characters of the scales of the jaws,
under the name of `les Barbiers,' which had been previously
grouped by Block under the title Anthias.]
Barcoo-grass, n. an Australian grass,
Anthistiria membranacea, Lindl. One of the best pasture
grasses in Queensland, but growing in other colonies also.
Barcoo Rot, n. a disease affecting inhabitants
of various parts of the interior of Australia, but chiefly
bushmen. It consists of persistent ulceration of the skin,
chiefly on the back of the hands, and often originating in
abrasions.
It is attributed to monotony of diet and to the cloudless
climate, with its alternations of extreme cold at night and
burning heat by day. It is said to be maintained and
aggravated by the irritation of small flies.
1870. E. B. Kennedy, `Four Years in Queensland,' p. 46:
"Land scurvy is better known in Queensland by local names,
which do not sound very pleasant, such as `Barcoo rot,'
`Kennedy rot,' according to the district it appears in. There
is nothing dangerous about it; it is simply the festering of
any cut or scratch on one's legs, arms or hands. . . They take
months to heal. . . Want of vegetables is assigned as the
cause."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 58:
"In Western Queensland people are also subject to bad sores on
the hand, called Barcoo-rot."
Barcoo Vomit, n. a sickness occurring in
inhabitants of various parts of the high land of the interior
of Australia. It is characterized by painless attacks of
vomiting, occurring immediately after food is taken, followed
by hunger, and recurring as soon as hunger is satisfied.
The name Barcoo is derived from the district traversed
by the river Barcoo, or Cooper, in which this complaint and the
Barcoo Rot are common. See Dr. E. C. Stirling's `Notes
from Central Australia,' in `Intercolonial Quarterly Journal of
Medicine and Surgery,' vol. i. p. 218.
Bargan, n. a name of the Come-back
Boomerang (q.v.). (Spelt also barragan.)
1892. J. Fraser, `Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 70:
"The `come-back' variety (of boomerang) is not a fighting
weapon. A dialect name for it is bargan, which word may be
explained in our language to mean `bent like a sickle or
crescent moon.'"
Barking Owl, n. a bird not identified, and not
in Gould (who accompanied Leichhardt).
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition, p. 47:
"The glucking-bird and the barking-owl were heard throughout
the moonlight night."
Barrack, v. to jeer at opponents, to interrupt
noisily, to make a disturbance; with the preposition "for," to
support as a partisan, generally with clamour. An Australian
football term dating from about 1880. The verb has been ruled
unparliamentary by the Speaker in the Victorian Legislative
Assembly. It is, however, in very common colloquial use. It
is from the aboriginal word borak (q.v.), and the sense
of jeering is earlier than that of supporting, but jeering at
one side is akin to cheering for the other. Another suggested
derivation is from the Irish pronunciation of "Bark," as
(according to the usually accepted view) "Larrikin" from
"larking." But the former explanation is the more probable.
There is no connection with soldiers' "barracks;" nor is it
likely that there is any, as has been ingeniously suggested,
with the French word baragouin, gibberish.
1890. `Melbourne Punch,' Aug. 14, p. 106, col. 3:
"To use a football phrase, they all to a man `barrack' for the
British Lion."
1893. `The Age,' June 17, p. 15, col. 4:
"[The boy] goes much to football matches, where he barracks,
and in a general way makes himself intolerable."
1893. `The Argus,' July 5, p. 9, col. 4, Legislative Assembly:
"Mr. Isaacs:. . . He hoped this `barracking' would not
be continued." [Members had been interrupting him.]
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), Sept. 9, p. 1, col. 6:
"He noticed with pleasure the decrease of disagreeable
barracking by spectators at matches during last season.
Good-humoured badinage had prevailed, but the spectators had
been very well conducted."
Barracker, n. one who barracks (q.v.).
1893. `The Age,' June 27, p. 6, col. 6:
"His worship remarked that the `barracking' that was carried on
at football matches was a mean and contemptible system, and was
getting worse and worse every day. Actually people were afraid
to go to them on account of the conduct of the crowd of
`barrackers.' It took all the interest out of the game to see
young men acting like a gang of larrikins."
1894. `"The Argus,' Nov. 29, p. 4, col. 9:
"The `most unkindest cut of all' was that the Premier, who was
Mr. Rogers's principal barracker during the elections, turned
his back upon the prophet and did not deign to discuss his
plan."
Barracks, n. a building on a station with rooms
for bachelors.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 100
"A roomy, roughly-finished building known as the `barracks.'
. . . . Three of the numerous bedrooms were tenanted by young
men, . . . neophytes, who were gradually assimilating the love
of Bush-land."
Barracouta, or Barracoota, n. The
name, under its original spelling of Barracuda, was
coined in the Spanish West Indies, and first applied there to a
large voracious fish, Sphyraena pecuda, family
Sphyraenidae. In Australia and New Zealand it is
applied to a smaller edible fish, Thyrsites atun,
Cuv. and Val., family Trichiuridae, called Snook
(q.v.) at the Cape of Good Hope. It is found from the Cape of
Good Hope to New Zealand.
1845. `Voyage to Port Philip,' p. 40:
"We hook the barracuda fish."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fishes of New South Wales,'
p. 69:
"Sphyrenidae. The first family is the barracudas, or
sea-pike." [Footnote]: "This name is no doubt the same as
Barracouta and is of Spanish origin. The application of it to
Thyrsites atun in the Southern seas was founded on some
fancied resemblance to the West Indian fish, which originally
bore the name, though of course they are entirely different."
(2) The word is used as a nickname for an inhabitant of Hobart;
compare Cornstalk.
Barramunda, n. a fish, i.q. Burramundi
(q.v.).
Basket-Fence, n. Local name for a stake-hedge.
See quotation.
1872. G. S. Baden-Powell, `New Homes for the Old Country,' p. 208:
"For sheep, too, is made the `basket fence.' Stakes are driven
in, and their pliant `stuff' interwoven, as in a stake hedge in
England."
Bastard Dory and John Dory (q.v.), spelt also
Dorey, n. an Australian fish, Cyttus australis,
family Cyttidae; the Australian representative of
Zeus faber, the European "John Dory," and its close
relative, is called Bastard Dorey in New Zealand, and
also Boar-fish (q.v.).
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 387:
"Histiopterus. . . .The species figured attains to a
length of twenty inches, and is esteemed as food. It is known
at Melbourne by the names of `Boar-fish' or `Bastard Dorey'
(fig.), Histiopterus recurvirostris."
Bastard Trumpeter, n. a fish. See Morwong,
Paper-fish, and Trumpeter. In Sydney it is
Latris ciliaris, Forst., which is called Moki in
New Zealand; in Victoria and Tasmania, L. forsteri,
Casteln.
1883. `Royal Commission on the Fisheries of Tasmania,' p. 35:
"The bastard trumpeter (Latris Forsteri). . . .Scarcely
inferior to the real trumpeter, and superior to it in abundance
all the year round, comes the bastard trumpeter. . . This fish
has hitherto been confounded with Latris ciliaris
(Forst.); but, although the latter species has been reported as
existing in Tasmanian waters, it is most probably a mistake:
for the two varieties (the red and the white), found in such
abundance here, have the general characters as shown
above. . . They must be referred to the Latris Forsteri
of Count Castelnau, which appears to be the bastard trumpeter
of Victorian waters."
Bat-fish, n. The name in England is given to a
fish of the family Maltheidae. It is also applied to
the Flying Gurnard of the Atlantic and to the Californian
Sting-ray. In Australia, and chiefly in New South Wales, it is
applied to Psettus argenteus, Linn., family
Carangidae, or Horse Mackerels. Guenther says that the
"Sea Bats," which belong to the closely allied genus
Platax, are called so from the extraordinary length of
some portion of their dorsal and anal fins and of their
ventrals.
Bathurst Bur, n. Explained in quotation.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 261:
"The Bathurst bur (Xanthium spinosuzn), a plant with
long triple spines like the barbary, and burs which are ruinous
to the wool of the sheep--otherwise, itself very like a
chenopodium, or good-fat-hen."
Bats-wing-coral, n. the Australian wood
Erythrina vespertilio, Bentham, N.O. Leguminosae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 426:
"Batswing Coral. . . .The wood is soft, and used by the
aborigines for making their `heilamans,' or shields. It is
exceedingly light and spongy, and of the greatest difficulty to
work up to get anything like a surface for polishing."
Bauera, n. a shrub, Bauera rubioides,
Andr., N.O. Saxifrageae, the Scrub Vine, or
Native Rose; commonly called in Tasmania "Bauera,"and
celebrated for forming impenetrable thickets in conjunction
with "cutting grass," Cladium psittacorum, Labill.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 70:
"Bauera rubiaefolia. Madder leaved Bauera. A pretty little
plant with pink flowers. This genus is named after the
celebrated German draughtsman, whose splendid works are yet
unrivalled in the art, especially of the Australian plants
which he depicted in his voyage round New Holland with
Capt. Flinders in the Investigator."
1888. R. M. Johnston, `Geology of Tasmania,' Intro. p. vi.:
"The Bauera scrub . . . is a tiny, beautiful shrub . . . Although
the branches are thin and wiry, they are too tough and too much
entangled in mass to cut, and the only mode of progress often
is to throw one's self high upon the soft branching mass and
roll over to the other side. The progress in this way is slow,
monotonous, and exhausting."
1891. `The Australasian,' April 4, p. 670, col. 2:
"Cutting-grass swamps and the bauera, where a dog can't hardly
go,
Stringy-bark country, and blackwood beds, and lots of it broken
by snow."
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 7:
"Interposing the even more troublesome Bauera shrub; whose
gnarled branches have earned for it the local and expressive
name of `tangle-foot' or `leg ropes.' [It] has been named by
Spicer the `Native Rose.'"
Beal, Bool, or Bull, n. a sweet
aboriginal drink.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.:
"A good jorum of bull (washings of a sugar bag)" [given
to aborigines who have been working].
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. ii. p. 288:
"The flowers are gathered, and by steeping them a night in
water the natives made a sweet beverage called `bool.'"
1878. R. Brough Smyth, `Aborigines of Victoria,' vol. i. p. 210:
"In the flowers of a dwarf species of banksia
(B. ornata) there is a good deal of honey, and this was
got out of the flowers by immersing them in water. The water
thus sweetened was greedily swallowed by the natives. The
drink was named beal by the natives of the west of
Victoria, and was much esteemed."
Beal (2), n. i.q. Belar (q.v.).
Bean, Queensland, or Leichhardt, or
Match-box, n. Entada scandens, Benth.,
N.O. Leguminosae. Though this bean has two Australian
names, it is really widely distributed throughout the tropics.
A tall climbing plant; the seeds are used for match-boxes.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 425:
"The seeds are about two inches across, by half-an-inch thick,
and have a hard woody and beautifully polished shell, of a dark
brown or purplish colour. These seeds are converted into
snuff-boxes, scent-bottles, spoons, etc., and in the Indian
bazaars they are used as weights. (`Treasury of Botany.') In
the colonies we usually see the beans of this plant mounted
with silver, as match-boxes. The wood itself is soft, fibrous,
and spongy."
Bean-Tree, n. called also Moreton Bay
Chestnut, Castanospermum australe, Cunn. and Fraser,
N.O. Leguminosae; a tall tree with red flowers and large
seed-pods. The timber of young specimens has beautiful dark
clouding.
Bear, Native, n. the colonists' name for an
animal called by the aborigines Koala, Koolah, Kool-la, and
Carbora (Phascolarctus cinereus). It is a tree-climbing
marsupial, about two feet in length, like a small bear in its
heavy build. Its food is the young leaves of the Eucalyptus,
and it is said that the Native Bear cannot be taken to England
because it would die on board ship, owing to there being no
fresh gum leaves. The writers are incorrect who call the
animal a sloth.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 317
"Our coola (sloth or native bear) is about the size of an
ordinary poodle dog, with shaggy, dirty-coloured fur, no tail,
and claws and feet like a bear, of which it forms a tolerable
miniature. It climbs trees readily and feeds upon their
leaves."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 57:
"The bear (phascolomys) of the colonists is in reality a
species of sloth, and partakes of all the characteristics of
that animal; it is of the marsupial order, and is found chiefly
in the neighbourhood of thickly timbered high land; its flesh
is used by the aborigines for food, but is tough and
unpalatable; its usual weight is from eight to twelve pounds."
[Note: Phascolomys is the name of the Wombat, not the
Bear.]
1854. G. H. Hayden, `The Australian Emigrant,' p. 126:
"The luckless carbora fell crashing through the
branches." [Footnote] "The native name of an animal of the
sloth species, but incorrectly called by the colonists a bear."
1855. W. Blandowski, `Transactions of Philosophical Society of
Victoria,' vol. i. p. 68:
"The koala or karbor (Phascolarctus cinereus) frequents
very high trees, and sits in places where it is most sheltered
by the branches. . . . Its fur is of the same colour as the
bark . . . like the cat has the power of contracting and
expanding the pupil of the eye . . . . Its skin is remarkably
thick . . . dense woolly fur . . . . The natives aver that the
koala never drinks water."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery and
Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 448:
"They were soon entirely out of provisions, but found a sort of
substitute by living on the native bear (Phascolarctus
cinereus), which was plentiful even in the forests."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 214:
"Look, high up in the branches of that tall tree is a native
bear! It sits motionless. It has something the appearance of
a solemn old man. How funny his great ears and Roman nose
look! He sits on the branch as if it was a chair, holding with
hand-like claws the surrounding twigs."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 9:
"We learned that a koala or native bear (Phascolarctus
cinereus) was sitting on a tree near the but of a
shepherd . . . not a dangerous animal. It is called `native
bear,' but is in no wise related to the bear family. It is an
innocent and peaceful marsupial, which is active only at night,
and sluggishly climbs the trees, eating leaves and sleeping
during the whole day. As soon as the young has left the pouch,
the mother carries it with her on her back. The Australian
bear is found in considerable numbers throughout the eastern
part of the continent, even within the tropical circle."
Bearded Lizard, n. See Jew Lizard.
Beardie, or Beardy, n. a fish. In
Scotland the name is applied to the Bearded Loach,
Nemachilus barbatus, of Europe; in New South Wales the
name is given to the fish Lotella marginata, Macl., of
the family Gadidae, or Cod-fishes, which is also called
Ling (q.v.).
Beaver-rat, n. an aquatic rodent, something
like the English water-rat, genus Hydromys.
1864. `Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van Diemen's Land'
[paper by Morton Allport], p. 62:
"Common to both fresh and brackish water is the yellow bellied
beaver-rat or musk-rat (Hydromys chrysogaster)."
Beech, n. There is only one true Beech in
Australia, Fagus cunninghamii, Hook,
N.O. Cupuliferae; but the name is applied to many other
kinds of Australian trees, viz.--
(1) Simply to
Cryptocarya glaucescens, R. Br., N.O. Laurineae,
called also Black Sassafras, White Laurel, She Beech, and Black
Beech.
Flindersia australis, R. Br., N.O. Meliaceae,
called also Flindosa Ash, Crow's Ash, and Rasp-pod, and
invariably Myrtle to Tasmania.
Gmelina leichhardtii, F. v. M., N.O. Verbenaceae.
Monotoca elliptica, R. Br., N.O. Epacrideae.
Phyllanthus ferdinandi, Muell. and Arg., N.O.
Euphorbiaceae, called also Pencil Cedar in Southern
New South Wales.
Schizomeria ovata, D. Don, N.O. Saxifrageae,
called also Corkwood, Light-wood, Coachwood, and White Cherry.
Trochocarpa laurina, R. Br., N.O. Epacrideae,
called also Brush Cherry, and Brush Myrtle.
(2) With various epithets the name is also used as follows--
Evergreen Beech--
Fagus cunninghamii, Hook, N.O. Cupuliferae,
called also Myrtle and Negro-head Beech.
Flindosy B.--
Flindersia schottiana, F. v. M., N.O. Meliaceae,
called also Ash and Stave-wood.
Indian B.--
Pongamia glabra, Vent., N.O. Leguminosae, B. Fl.
Mountain B.--
Lomatia longifolia, R. Br., N.O. Proteaceae.
Native B.--
Callicoma serratifolia, Andr., N.O. Saxifragiae,
"one of the trees called by the early colonists `Black Wattle,'
from the fancied resemblance of the flowers to those of some of
the wattles." (Maiden, p. 389.)
Negro-head B., i.q. Evergreen B. (q.v. supra).
Queensland B.--
Gmelina leichhardtii , F. v. M., N.O. Verbenaceae,
a tall valuable timber-tree.
Red B.--
Tarrietia trifoliata, F. v. M., N.O. Sterculiaceae.
She B.--
Cryptocazya obovata, R. Br., H.0. Laurineae, B. Fl.,
called also Bastard Sycamore.
White B.--
Elaeocarpus kirtoni, F. v. M., N.O. Tiliaceae,
called also Mountain Ash.
(3) In New Zealand, there are six species of true beeches, which
according to Kirk are as follows--
Blair's B.--
Fagus blairii, T. Kirk.
Entire-leaved B.--
F. solandri, Hook. f.
Mountain B.--
F. cliffortioides, Hook. f.
Pointed-leaved B.--
F. apiculata, Colenso.
Silver B.--
F. Menziesii, Hook. f.
Tooth-leaved B.--
F. fusca, Hook. f.
All these, however, are commonly called Birches.
See also the words Ash, Myrtle, Sassafras.
Bee-eater, n. a bird-name. The European
Bee-eater is Merops apiaster; the Australian species is
Merops ornatus, Lath. The bird was called
"M. phrygius, the Embroidered Merops," by Shaw.
1793. G. Shaw, `Zoology [and Botany] of New Holland,' p. 14:
"Specific character.--Black Merops varied with yellow. The
bird figured in its natural size on the present plate is a
species of Merops or Bee-eater; a tribe which appears to be
peculiarly prevalent in the extensive regions of Australia,
since more birds of this genus have been discovered than of any
other, except the very numerous one of Psittacus."
[The birds, however, have been since this date further
differentiated, and are now all classed in other genera, except
the present species.]
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 144:
"The wattled bee-eater, of which a plate is annexed, fell in
our way during the course of the day. . . . Under the eye,
on each side, is a kind of wattle of an orange colour. . .
This bird seems to be peculiar to New Holland."
Ibid. p. 190:
"We this day shot a knob-fronted bee-eater (see plate annexed).
This is about the size of a black-bird." [Description follows.]
Beef-wood, n. the timber of various Australian
trees, especially of the genus Casuarina, and some of
the Banksias; often used as a synonym of She-oak (q.v.).
The name is taken from the redness of the wood.
1826. J. Atkinson, `Agriculture and Grazing in New South Wales,'
p. 31:
"The wood is well known in England by the names of Botany Bay
wood, or beef wood.The grain is very peculiar, but the wood is
thought very little of in the colony; it makes good shingles,
splits, in the colonial phrase, from heart to bark . . ."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. c. i. p. 22:
"They seemed to be covered with cypresses and beef-wood."
1846. C. Holtzapffel, `Turning,' vol. i. p. 74:
"Beef wood. Red-coloured woods are sometimes thus named, but
it is generally applied to the Botany-Bay oak."
1852. G. C. Munday, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 219:
"A shingle of the beef-wood looks precisely like a raw
beef-steak."
1856. Capt. H. Butler Stoney, `A Residence in Tasmania,' p. 265:
"We now turn our attention to some trees of a very different
nature, Casuarina stricta and quadrivalvis,
commonly called He and She oak, and sometimes known by the name
of beef-wood, from the wood, which is very hard and takes a
high polish, exhibiting peculiar maculae spots and veins
scattered throughout a finely striated tint . . ."
1868. Paxton's `Botanical Dictionary,' p. 116:
"Casuarinaceae,or Beefwoods. Curious branching, leafless trees
or shrubs, with timber of a high order, which is both hard and
heavy, and of the colour of raw beef, whence the vulgar name."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants.' (See `Index of
vernacular names.')
Belar, n. (various spellings, Belah, billa,
beela, beal), an aboriginal name for the tree Casuarina
glauca. The colonists call the tree Bull-oak, probably
from this native name.
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 18:
"A voice in the beela grows wild in its wail."
1868. J. A. B., `Meta,' p. 19:
"With heartfelt glee we hail the camp,
And blazing fire of beal."
[Footnote]: "Aboriginal name of the gum-tree wood."
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. vi. p. 110:
"These scrubs . . . sometimes crown the watersheds as `belar.'"
Bell-bird, n. name given to several birds,
from
their note, like the tinkling of a bell. In Australia,
a Honey-eater, Myzantha melanophrys, Gould ('Birds of
Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 80), the `Australian Bell-bird' (the
same bird as Myzantha flavirostris, V. and H.), chiefly
found in New South Wales; also Oreoica gutturalis, Gould
(vol. ii. pl. 81), the `Bell-bird' of Western Australia; and
Oreoica cristata, Lewin. In New Zealand, Anthornis
melanura, Sparrm., chief Maori names, Korimako
(q.v.) in North, and Makomako in South. Buller gives
ten Maori names. The settlers call it Moko (q.v.).
There is also a Bell-bird in Brazil.
1774. J. Hawkesworth, `Voyages,' vol. ii. p. 390 [Journal of
Jan. 17, 1770):
"In the morning we were awakened by the singing of the birds;
the number was incredible, and they seemed to strain their
throats in emulation of each other. This wild melody was
infinitely superior to any that we had ever heard of the same
kind; it seemed to be like small bells most exquisitely tuned,
and perhaps the distance, and the water between, might be no
small advantage to the sound. Upon enquiry we were informed
that the birds here always began to sing about two hours after
midnight, and continuing their music till sunrise were, like
our nightingales, silent the rest of the day."
[This celebrated descriptive passage by Dr. Hawkesworth is
based upon the following original from `Banks's Journal,' which
now, after an interval of 122 years, has just been published in
London, edited by Sir J. D. Hooker.]
1770. J. Banks, `Journal,' Jan. 17 (edition 1896):
"I was awakened by the singing of the birds ashore, from whence
we are distant not a quarter of a mile. Their numbers were
certainly very great. They seemed to strain their throats with
emulation, and made, perhaps, the most melodious wild music I
have ever heard, almost imitating small bells, but with the
most tunable silver sound imaginable, to which, maybe, the
distance was no small addition. On inquiring of our people, I
was told that they had observed them ever since we had been
here, and that they began to sing about one or two in the
morning, and continue till sunrise, after which they are silent
all day, like our nightingales."
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,'
c. viii. p. 84:
"The cry of the bell-bird seems to be unknown here."
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 319:
"Mr. Caley thus observes on this bird: `Dell-bird or Bell-bird.
So called by the colonists. It is an inhabitant of bushes,
where its disagreeable noise (disagreeable at least to me) [but
not to the poets] may be continually heard; but nowhere more so
than on going up the harbour to Paramatta, when a little above
the Flats.'"
1835. T. B. Wilson, `Voyage Round the World,' p. 259:
"During the night, the bell bird supplied, to us, the place of
the wakeful nightingale . . . a pleasing surprise, as we had
hitherto supposed that the birds in New Holland were not formed
for song."
1839. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' p. 23:
"Every bough seemed to throng with feathered musicians: the
melodious chimes of the bell-bird were specially distinct."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 102:
"Look at the bell-bird's nest, admire the two spotted salmon
coloured eggs."
Ibid. ('Verses written whilst we lived in tents'), p. 171:
"Through the Eucalyptus shade,
Pleased could watch the bell-bird's flutter,
Blending with soft voice of waters
The delicious tones they utter."
1846. Lady Martin, `Bush journey, 1846, Our Maoris,' p. 93:
"We did hear the birds next morning as Captain Cook had
described --first the bell-bird gave its clear, full note, and
then came such a jargoning as made one's heart glad."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 81:
"Oreoica gutturalis, Gould. Crested Oreoica.
Bell-bird, Colonists of Swan River [Western
Australia]. . . I find the following remarks in my note-book--
`Note, a very peculiar piping whistle, sounding like
weet-weet-weet-weet-oo, the last syllable fully drawn
out and very melodious. . . . In Western Australia, where the
real Bell-bird is never found, this species has had that
appellation given to it,--a term which must appear ill-applied
to those who have heard the note of the true Bell-bird of the
brushes of New South Wales, whose tinkling sound so nearly
resembles that of a distant sheep-bell as occasionally to
deceive the ears of a practised shepherd."
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 93:
"Every now and then we stood, by common consent, silent and
almost breathless, to listen to the bell-bird, a dingy little
fellow, nearly as large as a thrush with the plumage of a
chaffinch, but with such a note! How can I make you hear its
wild, sweet, plaintive tone, as a little girl of the party said
`just as if it had a bell in its throat;' but indeed it would
require a whole peal of silver bells to ring such an exquisite
chime."
1868. F. Napier Broome, `Canterbury Rhymes,' second edition, p. 108:
"Where the bell-bird sets solitudes ringing,
Many times I have heard and thrown down
My lyre in despair of all singing."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 21:
"Listen to the bell-bird. Ping, ping, sounds through the vast
hushed temple of nature."
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 81:
"The bell-bird, with metallic but mellow pipe, warns the
wanderer that he is near water in some sequestered nook."
1886. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 8:
"And softer than slumber and sweeter than singing,
The notes of the bell-bird are running and ringing."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 85:
"Anthornis melanura. Chatham Island Bell-bird
(A. Melanocephala), the Bell-bird--so-called from the
fanciful resemblance of one of its notes to the distant tolling
of a bell."
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,' p. 119:
"Bell-bird, Korimako,or Makomako (Anthornis melanura),
is still common in many parts of the South Island--e.g. in the
neighbourhood of Dunedin; but has almost disappeared from the
North Island. Its song is remarkably fine."
1893. W. P. Reeves, `The Passing of the Forest,' `Review of
Reviews,' Feb. 1893, p. 45:
"Gone are the forest birds, arboreal things,
Eaters of honey, honey-sweet in song;
The tui, and the bell-bird--he who sings
That brief rich music one would fain prolong.'
1896. G. A. Keartland, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Part II., Zoology, Aves, p. 74:
"In the north they [Oreoica] are frequently called
`Bell-birds,' but bear no resemblance to Manorhina
melanophrys in plumage, shape, or note. The Oreoica is
such an accomplished ventriloquist that it is difficult to
find."
Bell-bottomed, adj. a particular fashion of
trouser affected by the larrikin (q.v.).
1891. `The Argus,' Dec. 5, p. 13, col. 2:
"Can it be that the pernicious influence of the House is
gradually tingeing the high priests of the bell-bottomed
ballottee with conservatism!"
Bell-Frog, Golden, n. See Golden Bell-Frog.
Bell-topper, n. The ordinary Australian name
for the tall silk-hat.
1860. W. Kelly, `Life in Victoria,' p. 268 [Footnote]:
"Bell-topper was the derisive name given by diggers to old
style hat, supposed to indicate the dandy swell."
Benjamin, n. a husband, in Australian
pigeon-English.
1870. Chas. H. Allen, `A Visit to Queensland and her Goldfields,'
p. 182:
"There are certain native terms that are used by the whites
also as a kind of colonial slang, such as `yabber,' to talk;
`budgeree,' good; `bale,' no; `yan,' to go; `cabon,' much; and
so on.
"With the black people a husband is now called a `benjamin,'
probably because they have no word to their own language to
express this relationship."
Benjamin-Tree, n. also called Weeping
Fig in Queensland, Ficus benjaminea, Linn.,
N.O. Urticaceae.
Bent-grass. n. See Grass.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 65:
"Agrostis virginica. Virginian Agrostis, or Bent-grass.
. . . Many species of this genus go under the general name of
Bent-grass. Their roots spread along among light and sandy
soil in which they generally grow with joints like the Squitch
or Couch grass of England."
Berigora, n. aboriginal name for a bird of
genus Falco, from beri, claw, and gora,
long. See Hawk
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,' vol.
xv. p. 185:
"The native name of this bird which we have adopted as its
specific name, is Berigora. It is called by the
settlers Orange-speckled Hawk."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' I. i. pl. 11:
"Hieracidea berigora. Brown Hawk. Berigora, Aborigines
of New South Wales. Orange-speckled Hawk of the Colonists."
Berley, n. term used by Australian fishermen
for ground bait. It is probably of aboriginal origin.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods,
`Fish and Fisheries of New South Wales,' p. 75:
"With hook and line along the rocks of our sea-coast these
fishes are caught, but the bait should be crabs. It is usual
to wrench legs and shell off the back, and cast them out for
Berley."
1896. `Badminton Magazine,' August, p. 201:
"I would signal to the sharks by opening and washing out a few
of the largest fish at the boat's head, sometimes adding bait
chopped small to serve for what Australian fishermen call
Berley."
Betcherrygah, n. bird-name, Melopsittacus
undulatus, Shaw. See Budgerigar.
Bettongia, n. the scientific name of the genus
of Prehensile-tailed Kangaroo-Rats, whose aboriginal name
is Bettong. They are the only ground-dwelling
marsupials with prehensile tails, which they use for carrying
bunches of grasses and sticks. See Kangaroo-Rat.
Biddy-biddy, or Biddybid, n. a
corruption of Maori name piripiri. It is a kind of bur.
1880. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open, `New Zealand Country Journal,'
vol. xii. p. 95:
"Piri-piri (acaena sanguisorbe) by settlers has been
converted or corrupted into biddy-biddy; a verb has been formed
on it, which is in very constant use for a good part of the
year at least. To biddy, is to rid one of burrs, as `I'll just
biddy my clothes before I come in.' Small birds are
occasionally found in a wretched state of discomfort in which
they appear a moving mass of burrs. Parroquets, pipets, and
the little white-eyes, have been found victims suffering from
these tenacious burrs of the piri-piri, just moving little
brown balls unable to fly till picked up and released from
their bonds."
1896. `Otago Witness,' Jan. 23, vol. ii. p. 36:
"Yes, biddybids detract very materially from the value of the
wool, and the plant should not be allowed to seed where sheep
are depastured. They are not quite so bad as the Bathurst
burr, but they are certainly in the same category."
Biddy, v. See Biddy-biddy, n.
Bidgee Widgee, n. name given to a Tasmanian
Bur (q.v.).
Bidyan Ruffe, n. a fresh-water fish of New
South Wales, Therapon richardsonii, Castln., family
Percidae. Mr. J. Douglas Ogilby, Assistant Zoologist at
the Australian Museum, Sydney, says in a letter "The Bidyan
Ruffe of Sir Thomas Mitchell is our Therapon ellipticus,
Richards (T. richardsonii, Castln.). Found in all the
rivers of the Murray system, and called Kooberry by the
natives." It is also called the Silver Perch and
sometimes Bream.
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 95 [Note]:
"Bidyan is the aboriginal name."
Ibid. vol. i. p. 135:
"Abundance of that which the men commonly called bream
(Cernua bidyana), a very coarse but firm fish, which
makes a groaning noise when taken out of the water."
Big-head, n. a fish. The name is used locally
for various fishes; in Australia it is Eleotris
nudiceps, Castln., family Gobiidae, a river fish.
Of the genus Eleotris, Guenther says that as regards
form they repeat almost all the modifications observed among
the Gobies, from which they differ only in having the ventral
fins non-coalescent. See Bull-head (2).
Billabong, n. an effluent from a river,
returning to it, or often ending in the sand, in some cases
running only in flood time.
In the Wiradhuri dialect of the centre of New South Wales, East
coast, billa means a river and bung dead. See
Bung. Billa is also a river in some Queensland
dialects, and thus forms part of the name of the river
Belyando. In the Moreton Bay dialect it occurs in the form
pill , and in the sense of `tidal creek.' In the
`Western Australian Almanack' for 1842, quoted in J. Fraser's
`Australian Language,' 1892, Appendix, p. 50, Bilo is
given for River.
Billabong is often regarded as a synonym for
Anabranch (q.v.); but there is a distinction. From the
original idea, the Anabranch implies rejoining the
river; whilst the Billabong implies continued separation
from it; though what are called Billabongs often do
rejoin.
1862. W. Landsborough, `Exploration of Australia,' p. 30:
"A dried-up tributary of the Gregory, which I named the
Macadam."
[Footnote]: "In the south, such a creek as the Macadam is
termed a billy-bonn [sic], from the circumstance of the
water carrier returning from it with his pitcher (billy)
empty (bong, literally dead)."
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia, vol. i. p. 298:
"What the Major calls, after the learned nomenclature of
Colonel Jackson, in the `Journal of the Geographical Society,'
anabranches, but which the natives call billibongs, channels
coming out of a stream and returning into it again."
1880. P. J. Holdsworth, `Station Hunting on the Warrego:'
"In yon great range may huddle billabongs."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 25:
"What a number of swallows skim about the `billabongs' along
the rivers in this semi-tropical region."
1893. `The Argus,' April 8, p. 4, col. 1:
"Let's make a start at once, d'ye hear; I want to get over to
the billabong by sunrise."
Billet, n. an appointment, a position; a very
common expression in Australia, but not confined to Australia;
adapted from the meaning, "an official order requiring the
person to whom it is addressed to provide board and lodging for
the soldier bearing it." (`O.E.D.')
1890. E. W. Hornung, `A Bride from the Bush,' p. 267:
"If ever she went back to Australia, she'd remember my young
man, and get him a good billet."
Billy, n. a tin pot used as a bushman's kettle.
The word comes from the proper name, used as abbreviation for
William. Compare the common uses of `Jack,' `Long Tom,'
`Spinning Jenny.' It came into use about 1850. It is not used
in the following.
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 48:
"He then strikes a light and makes a fire to boil his kettle
and fry his bacon."
About 1850, the billy superseded the quart-pot (q.v.),
chiefly because of its top-handle and its lid. Another
suggested derivation is that billy is shortened from
billycan, which is said to be bully-can (sc.
Fr. bouili). In the early days "boeuf bouilli"
was a common label on tins of preserved meat in ship's stores.
These tins, called "bully-tins," were used by diggers and
others as the modern billy is (see quotation 1835). A third
explanation gives as the origin the aboriginal word
billa (river or water).
1835. T. B. Wilson, `Voyage Round the World,' p. 238:
"An empty preserved meat-canister serving the double purpose of
tea-kettle and tea-pot."
[The word billy is not used, but its origin is
described.]
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. i. p. 202:
"A tin pan bearing the familiar name of a billy."
1871 J. J. Simpson, `Recitations,' p. 5:
"He can't get a billy full for many a mile round."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 41:
"A billy (that is a round tin pitcher with a lid) in his hand."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 69:
"A tin can, which the connoisseurs call for some reason or
other a `billy.'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' p. 24:
"A very black camp-kettle, or billy, of hot tea."
1892. `The Australasian,' April 9, p. 707, col. 4:
"How we praised the simple supper
(we prepared it each in turn),
And the tea! Ye gods! 'twas nectar.
Yonder billy was our urn."
Billy-can, n. a variation of the above, more
used by townsmen than bushmen.
1892. `The Australasian,' April 9, p. 707, col. 4:
"But I said, `Dear friend and brother, yonder billy-can is
mine; You may confiscate the washing that is hanging on the
line, You may depredate the larder, take your choice of pot and
pan; But, I pray thee, kind sundowner, spare, oh spare, my
billy-can.'"
Bingy [g soft], n. stomach or belly.
Aboriginal. The form at Botany Bay was bindi; at Jervis
Bay, binji.
1851. Rev. David Mackenzie, `Ten Years in Australia,' p. 140:
"They lay rolling themselves on the ground, heavily groaning in
pain, and with their hands rubbing their bellies, exclaiming,
`Cabonn buggel along bingee' (that is, I am very sick in the
stomach)."
Birch, n. In New Zealand, the trees called
birches are really beeches (q.v.), but the term birch is
used very vaguely; see quotation 1889. In Tasmania, the name is
applied to Dodonaea ericifolia, Don., N.O.
Sapindaceae.
1853. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 125:
"White-birch of Nelson and Otago (from colour of bark),
Black-heart Birch of Wellington, Fagus solandri, Hook, a
lofty, beautiful ever-green tree, 100 feet high. Black-birch
(Tawhai) of Auckland and Otago (from colour of bark), Red-birch
of Wellington and Nelson (from colour of timber), Fagus
fusca, N.O. Cupuliferae, a noble tree 60 to 90 feet high."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 91:
"Like all small-leaved forest trees it [Fagus solandri,
Hook. f.] is termed `birch' by the bushman. . . . It is not
too much to say that the blundering use of common names in
connection with the New Zealand beeches, when the timber has
been employed in bridges and constructive works, has caused
waste and loss to the value of many thousands of pounds."
Bird-catching Plant, n. a New Zealand shrub or
tree, Pisonia brunoniana, Endl.,
N.O. Nyctagineae; Maori name, Parapara.
1883. R. H. Govett, `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xvi. Art. xxviii. p. 364::
"A Bird-killing Tree. . . . In a shrub growing in my father's
garden at New Plymouth, two Silver-eyes (Zosterops) and
an English Sparrow had been found with their wings so glued by
the sticky seed-vessels that they were unable to move, and
could only fly away after having been carefully washed."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 293:
"It is sometimes termed the `birdcatching plant' by settlers
and bushmen . . . It will always be a plant of special
interest, as small birds are often found captured by its viscid
fruits, to which their feathers become attached as effectively
as if they were glued."
Bird's-nest fungus, n. a small fungus of the
genus Cyathus, four species of which occur in
Queensland.
Bitter-Bark, n. an Australian tree,
Petalostigma quadrilo culare, F. v. M.,
N.O. Euphorbiacea. Called also Crab-tree, Native
Quince, Emu apple, and Quinine-tree. The bark
contains a powerful bitter essence, which is used medicinally.
The name is also applied to Tabernaemontana orientalis,
R. Br., N.O. Apocyneae, and to Alstonia
constricta, F. v. M., N.O. Aporynacece, which is also
called Feverbark.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 204:
"Bitter Bark. This small tree has an intensely bitter bark,
and a decoction of it is sometimes sold as `bitters."
Bitter-Leaf, n. a Tasmanian name for the
Native Hop. See Hops and Hopbush.
Bittern, n. bird-name well known in England.
The Australian species are--
The Bittern--
Botaurus paeciloptilus, Wagl.
Black B.--
Butoroides flavicollis, Lath.
Green B.--
B. javanica, Horsfield.
Little B.--
Ardetta pusilla, Vieill.
Blackberry, Native, or Bramble, n.
called also Raspberry. Three species of the genus
Rubus occur in Queensland--Rubus moluccanus,
Linn., R. parvifolius, Linn., R.
rosifolius, Smith, N.O. Rosaceae See also
Lawyer.
Blackbird, n. "A cant name for a captive negro,
or Polynesian, on board a slave or pirate ship." (`O.E.D.') But
no instance is given of its use for a negro.
1871. `Narrative of the Voyage of the Brig Carl' [pamphlet]
"They were going to take a cruise round the islands
`black-bird' catching."
1872. `The Argus,' Dec. 21, Supplement, p. 2, col. 1 [Chief
Justice's charge in the case of the `Carl Outrage']:
"They were not going pearl-fishing but blackbird-hunting. It
is said you should have evidence as to what blackbird-hunting
meant. I think it is a grievous mistake to pretend to
ignorance of things passing before our eyes everyday. We may
know the meaning of slang words, though we do not use them. Is
there not a wide distinction between blackbird-hunting and a
legitimate labour-trade, if such a thing is to be carried on?
What did he allude to? To get labourers honestly if they could,
but, if not, any way?"
1881. `Chequered Career,' p.188 (`O.E.D.')
"The white men on board know that if once the `blackbirds'
burst the hatches . . . they would soon master the ship."
Black-birding, n. kidnapping natives of South
Sea islands for service in Queensland plantations.
1871. `Narrative of the Voyage of the Brig Carl' [pamphlet]:
"All the three methods, however, of obtaining labour in the
South Seas--that which was just and useful, that which was of
suspicious character, and that which was nothing, more or less,
than robbery and murder--were in use the same time, and all
three went by the same general slang term of `blackbirding,' or
`blackbird catching.'"
1872. Rev. H. S. Fagan, `The Dark Blue' (Magazine), June,
p. 437:
"Well, you see how it is that C is not safe, even though he is
a missionary bishop, after A has made the name of missionary an
offence by his ingenious mode of `black-birding.'"
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 78:
"In the early days of sugar-planting there may have been
black-birding, but it was confined to a very few, and it is
done away with altogether now."
Black-birding, adj.
1883. `The Academy,' Sept. 8, p. 158 (`O.E.D.')
"[He] slays Bishop Patteson by way of reprisal for the
atrocities of some black-birding crew."
Blackboy, n. a grass-tree. Name applied to all
species of the genus Xanthorroea, but especially to
X. preissii, Endl., N.O. Liliaceae. Compare
Maori-head.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discovery in Australia,' ii. 4, 132:
"Black Boy . . . gum on the spear, resin on the trunk."
Ibid. ii. 12, 280 [Note]
"These trees, called blackboys by the colonists, from the
resemblance they bear in the distance to natives."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 92:
"Gas admirably fitted for domestic purposes had been extracted
from the shrub called the `blackboy.' I regret to state that
the gas . . . is not . . . at present known in the colony."
1886. R. Henty, `Australiana,' p. 15:
"The common grass-tree or `blackboy,' so called from its long
dark stem and dark seed head (when dry)."
1896. `The Australasian,' Feb. 15, p. 313 (with an
Illustration):
"The Blackboy trees are a species of grass-tree or
Xanthorrhoea, exuding a gummy substance used by the
blacks for fastening glass and quartz-barbs to their spears.
Many years ago, when coal was scarce in Western Australia, an
enterprising firm . . . erected a gas-making plant, and
successfully lit their premises with gas made from the
Blackboy."
1896. Modern:
A story is told of a young lady saying to a naval officer:--
"I was this morning watching your ship coming into harbour,
and so intently that I rode over a young blackboy." The officer
was shocked at her callousness in expressing no contrition.
Black-Bream, n. an Australian fish,
Chrysophrys australis, Gunth., family Sparidae,
or Sea-Breams; called in Tasmania Silver-Bream, the fish
there called Black-Bream being another of the
Sparidae, Girella tricuspidata, Cuv. and Val.
See Tarwhine and Black-fish.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,' p. 42:
"Chrysophrys comprises the tarwhine and black-bream of
the Sydney fishermen. . . . We have two species in
Australia. . . . The black-bream, C. australis,
Gunth., and the tarwhine, C. sarba, Forsk. . . .
The Australian bream is as common on the south as on the east
coast. It affords excellent sport to anglers in Victoria."
Blackbutt, n. Eucalyptus pilularis, Smith,
Victoria; E. regnans, F. v. M., New South Wales; a timber
tree, a gum. Another name is Flintwood. The lower part
of the trunk is black.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 49:
"The range . . . having with the exception of the Blackbutt all
the trees . . . of Moreton Bay."
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings among Gum-trees,' p. 86:
"'Tis there the `blackbut' rears its head."
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue, Economic Woods,' p. 30:
"A tree of considerable size. . . The bark smooth and falling
off in flakes upward, and on the branches."
1897. `The Age,' Feb. 22, p. 5, col. 3:
"Mr. Richards stated that the New South Wales black butt and
tallow wood were the most durable and noiseless woods for
street-paving, as well as the best from a sanitary point of
view."
Black-Cod, n. a New Zealand fish, Notothenia
angustata.
Blackfellow, n. an aboriginal Australian.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discovery in Australia,' i. 4, 74:
"The native Miago . . . appeared delighted that these `black
fellows,' as he calls them, have no throwing sticks."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 9:
"The well-known tracks of blackfellows are everywhere visible."
1871. Dingo, `Australian Rhymes,' p. 14:
"Wurragaroo loved Wangaraday
In a blackfellow's own peculiar way."
Black-Fern, n. The Tasmanian species so called
is Athyrium australe, Presl., N.O. Polypodeae.
Black-fish, n. The name is given, especially in
Sydney, to the sea-fishes Girella simplex, Richards (see
Ludrick), and Girella tricuspidata, Cuv. and
Val.; also to a fresh-water fish all over Australia,
Gadopsis marmoratus, Richards. G. marmoratus is
very common in New South Wales, Victoria, South Australia, and
parts of Tasmania. There are local varieties. It is much
esteemed as a food fish, but is, like all mud fishes, rich and
oily. Girella belongs to the family Sparida, or
Sea-Breams, and Gadopsis to the Gadopsidae, a
family allied to that containing the Cod fishes. The name was
also formerly applied to a whale.
1853. C. St. Julian and E. K. Silvester, `Productions,
Industry, and Resources of New South Wales,' p. 115:
"There is a species of whale called by those engaged in the
south sea fishing the Black-fish or Black-whale,
but known to the naturalist as the Southern Rorqual, which the
whalemen usually avoid."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 100
"Nothing is better eating than a properly cooked black-fish.
The English trout are annihilating them, however."
Black-Line. See Black-War.
Black-Perch, n. a river fish of New South Wales.
Therapon niger, Castln., family Percidae.
A different fish from those to which the name is applied
elsewhere. See Perch.
Black-and-white Ringed Snake. See under Snake.
Black Rock-Cod, n. an Australian fish, chiefly
of New South Wales, Serranus daemeli, Gunth.; a
different fish from the Rock-Cod of the northern
hemisphere. The Serrani belong to the family Percidae,
and are commonly called "Sea-perches."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 33:
"The genus Serranus comprises most of the fishes known
as `rock cod.'. . . One only is sufficiently useful as an
article of food to merit notice, and that is the `black rock
cod' (Serranus damelii, Guenther), without exception the
very best of all our fishes."
Black-Snake. See under Snake.
Black-Swan. See Swan.
Black Thursday, the day of a Victorian conflagration,
which occurred on Feb. 6, 1851. The thermometer was 112
degrees in the shade. Ashes from the fire at Macedon, 46 miles
away, fell in Melbourne. The scene forms the subject of the
celebrated picture entitled "Black Thursday," by William
Strutt, R.B.A.
1859. Rev. J. D. Mereweather, `Diary of a Working Clergyman in
Australia,' p. 81:
"Feb. 21 . . . Dreadful details are reaching us of the great
bush fires which took place at Port Phillip on the 6th of this
month . . . . Already it would seem that the appellation of
`Black Thursday' has been given to the 6th February, 1851, for
it was on that day that the fires raged with the greatest
fury."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillman, `Australian Life,' p. 39:
"The old colonists still repeat the most terrible stories of
Black Thursday, when the whole country seemed to be on fire.
The flames leaped from tree to tree, across creeks, hills, and
gullies, and swept everything away. Teams of bullocks in the
yoke, mobs of cattle and horses, and even whole families of
human beings, in their bush-huts, were completely destroyed,
and the charred bones alone found after the wind and fire had
subsided."
Black-Tracker, n. an aboriginal employed in
tracking criminals.
1867. `Australia as it is,' pp. 88-9:
"The native police, or `black trackers,' as they are sometimes
called, are a body of aborigines trained to act as policemen,
serving under a white commandant--a very clever expedient for
coping with the difficulty . . . of hunting down and discovering
murderous blacks, and others guilty of spearing cattle and
breaking into huts . . ."
1870. `The Argus,' March 26, p. 5, col. 4:
"The troopers, with the assistance of two black trackers,
pursued the bushrangers . . ."
1870. Ibid. April 13, p. 6, col. 7:
. . . two members of the police force and a black tracker . . .
called at Lima station . . ."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xvii. p. 165:
"Get the black-trackers on the trail."
1893. `The Argus,' April 8, p. 4, col. 3 .
"Only three weeks before he had waddied his gin to death for
answering questions put to her by a blacktracker, and now he
advanced to Charlie . . . and said,. . . `What for you come alonga
black fella camp?'"
1896. `The Argus,' March 30, p. 6, col. 9:
"About one hundred and fifty horsemen have been out to-day in
addition to the local police. The black-trackers arrived by
the train last night, and commenced work this morning."
Black-Trevally. See Trevally.
Black-War, or Black-Line, a military
operation planned in 1830 by Governor Arthur for the capture
of the Tasmanian aborigines. A levy en masse of the
colonists was ordered. About 5000 men formed the "black line,"
which advanced across the island from north to south-east, with
the object of driving the tribes into Tasman's Peninsula. The
operation proved a complete failure, two blacks only being
captured at a cost to the Government of L 30,000.
1835. H. Melville, `History of Van Diemen's Land,' p. 103:
"The parties forming the `black line,' composed, as they were,
of a curious melange of masters and servants, took their
respective stations at the appointed time. As the several
parties advanced, the individuals along the line came closer
and closer together --the plan was to keep on advancing slowly
towards a certain peninsula, and thus frighten the Aborigines
before them, and hem them in."
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol, ii. p. 54:
"Thus closed the Black War. This campaign of a month supplied
many adventures and many an amusing tale, and, notwithstanding
the gravity of his Excellency, much fun and folly . . . . Five
thousand men had taken the field. Nearly L 30,000 had been
expended, and probably not much less in time and outlay by the
settlers, and two persons only were captured."
Black Wednesday, n. a political phrase for a
day in Victoria (Jan. 9, 1878), when the Government without
notice dismissed many Civil Servants, including heads of
departments, County Court judges and police magistrates, on the
ground that the Legislative Council had not voted the money for
their salaries.
1878. `Melbourne Punch,' May 16, vol. xlvi. p. 195 [Title of
Cartoon]:
"In Memoriam. Black Wednesday, 9th January 1878."
1896. `The Argus,' [Sydney telegram] Aug. 18, p. 6, col. 4:
"The times in the public service at present reminded him of
Black Wednesday in Victoria, which he went through. That
caused about a dozen suicides among public servants. Here it
had not done so yet, but there was not a head of a department
who did not now shake in his shoes."
Blackwood, n. an Australian timber, Acacia
melanoxylon, R. Br.; often called Lightwood; it is
dark in colour but light in weight.
1828. `Report of Van Diemen's Land Company,' Bischoff, `Van
Diemen's Land, 1832,' p. 118
"Without a tree except a few stumps of blackwood."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' p. 21:
"Grassy slopes thickly timbered with handsome Blackwood trees."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 359:
"Called `Blackwood' on account of the very dark colour of the
mature wood."
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue, Economic Woods,' p. 4:
"Blackwood, Lightwood--rather frequent on many rich river-flats
. . . .It is very close-grained and heavy, and is useful for
all purposes where strength and flexibility are required."
Bladder Saltbush, n. a Queensland shrub,
Atriplex vesicarium, Heward, N.O. Salsolaceae.
The Latin and vernacular names both refer to "the bladdery
appendage to fruiting perianth." (Bailey.) See
Saltbush.
Blandfordia, n. the scientific name of the
Gordon-Lily (see under Lily). The plant was
named after George, Marquis of Blandford, son of the second
Duke of Marlborough. The Tasmanian aboriginals called the
plant Remine, which name has been given to a small port
where it grows in profusion on the west coast.
Bleeding-Heart, n. another name for the
Kennedya (q.v.).
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 53:
"The trailing scarlet kennedyas, aptly called the `bleeding-
heart' or `coral-pea,' brighten the greyness of the sandy
peaty wastes."
Blight. See Sandy-blight.
Blight-bird, n. a bird-name in New Zealand for
the Zosterops (q.v.). Called also Silver-eye
(q.v.), Wax-eye, and White-eye (q.v.). It is
called Blight-bird because it eats the blight on trees.
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 130:
"The white-eye or blight-bird, with cheerful note, in crowded
flocks, sweeps over the face of the country, and in its
progress clears away multitudes of small insect pests."
1885. A. Hamilton, `Native Birds of Petane, Hawke's Bay,'
`Transactions of New Zealand Institute,' vol. xviii. p. 125:
"Zosterops lateralis, white-eye, blight-bird. One of
our best friends, and abundant in all parts of the district."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' (2nd ed.)
vol. i. p. 82:
"By the settlers it has been variously designated as Ring-eye,
Wax-eye, White-eye, or Silver-eye, in allusion to the beautiful
circlet of satiny-white feathers which surrounds the eyes; and
quite as commonly the `Blightbird' or `Winter-migrant.' . . .
It feeds on that disgusting little aphis known as American
blight, which so rapidly covers with a fatal cloak of white the
stems and branches of our best apple-trees; it clears our early
cabbages of a pestilent little insect, that left unchecked
would utterly destroy the crop; it visits our gardens and
devours another swarming parasite that covers our roses."
Blind Shark, or Sand Shark,
n. i.q. Shovel-nose (q.v.).
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods `Fish and Fisheries of New
South Wales, p. 97:
"Rhinobatus granulatus or shovel-nose, which is properly
speaking a Ray, is called here the blind or sand shark, though,
as Mr. Hill remarks, it is not blind. He says `that it
attains the length of from 6 to 7 feet, and is also harmless,
armed only with teeth resembling small white beads secured
closely upon a cord; it however can see tolerably well, and
searches on sandy patches for crustaceae and small shell fish.'"
1886. J. Douglas-Ogilby, `Catalogue of the Fishes of New South
Wales,' p. 5:
"Rhinobatus Granulatus . . . I have not seen a New South Wales
example of this fish, which appears to have been confounded
with the following by writers on the Australian fauna.
Rhinobatus Bongainvillei, Muell and Heule,
Habitat Port Jackson. Shovel-nosed Ray of Sydney
fishermen."
Blind-your-Eyes, n. another name for the
Milky Mangrove. See Mangrove.
, doing the, v. lounging in the
fashionable promenade. In Melbourne, it is Collins Street,
between Elizabeth and Swanston Streets. In Sydney, "The Block"
is that portion of the city bounded by King, George, Hunter,
and Pitt Streets. It is now really two blocks, but was all in
one till the Government purchased the land for the present Post
Office, and then opened a new street from George to Pitt
Street. Since then the Government, having purchased more land,
has made the street much wider, and it is now called Martin's
Place.
1869. Marcus Clarke, `Peripatetic Philosopher,' (in an Essay on
`Doing the Block') (reprint), p. 13:
"If our Victorian youth showed their appreciation for domestic
virtues, Victorian womanhood would `do the Block' less
frequently."
1872. `Glimpses of Life in Victoria by a Resident,' p. 349:
"A certain portion of Collins street, lined by the best
drapers' and jewellers' shops, with here and there a bank or
private office intervening, is known as `the Block,' and is the
daily resort of the belles and beaux. . . ."
1875. R. and F. Hill, `What We Saw in Australia,' p. 267:
"To `do the block' corresponds in Melbourne to driving in Hyde
Park."
1876. Wm. Brackley Wildey, `Australasia and the Oceanic Region,'
p. 234:
"The streets are thronged with handsome women, veritable
denizens of the soil, fashionably and really tastefully
attired, `doing the block,' patrolling Collins-street, or
gracefully reclining in carriages. . . ."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 126:
"You just do as I tell you, and we'll go straight off to town
and `do the block.'"
1894. `The Herald' (Melbourne), Oct. 6, p. 6, col. 1:
"But the people doing the block this morning look very nice."
Block, on the.(1) On the promenade above referred to.
1896. `The Argus,' July 17, p. 4. col. 7:
" We may slacken pace a little now and again, just as the busy
man, who generally walks quickly, has to go slowly in the crowd
on the Block."
(2) Term in mining, fully explained in `The Miner's Right,'
chapters vii. and viii.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' p. 86:
"I declare the Liberator Lead to be `on the block.'"
`Extract from Mining Regulation 22' (Ibid. p. 77):
"The ground shall be open for taking up claims in the block
form."
Blood-bird, n. name given to the Sanguineous
Honey-eater. See Honey-eater.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 63:
"Myzomela sanguinolenta, Sanguineous Honey-eater.
Blood-bird of the Colonists of New South Wales."
Blood-sucker, n. popular name for certain
species of Lizards belonging to the genus Amphibolurus
(Grammatophora). Especially applied to A. muricata,
Shaw.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 37:
"Another description of lizard is here vulgarly called the
`bloodsucker.' "
1890. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Natural History of Victoria,'
Dec. 12, pl. cxi.:
"Why the popular name of `Bloodsucker' should be so universally
given to this harmless creature by the Colonists (except on the
locus a non lucendo principle) I cannot conceive."
1890. A. H. S. Lucas, `Handbook of the Australasian Association
for the Advancement of Science,' Melbourne, p. 70:
"Two species of `blood sucker' so absurdly designated."
Blood-wood, or Blood-tree, n. a name
applied, with various epithets, to many of the Gum-trees
(q.v.), especially to--(1) Eucalyptus corymbosa, Smith,
sometimes called Rough-barked bloodwood; (2) E. eximia,
Schauer, Mountain or Yellow bloodwood; (3) Baloghia
lucida, Endl., N.O. Euphorbiaceae, called Brush
Bloodwood. The sap is blood-red, running copiously when cut
across with a knife.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 271:
"The natives tell me it breeds in the winter in Mun'ning-trees
or Blood-trees of the colonists (a species of Eucalyptus)."
1847. L.Leichhardt,' Overland Expedition,' p. 292:
"The bergue was covered with fine bloodwood trees,
stringy-bark, and box."
1892. A. J. North, `Proceedings of Linnaean Society,' New South
Wales, vol. vii. series 2, p. 396:
"I traced her to a termite nest in a bloodwood tree
(Eucalyptus corymbosa)."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' 448:
"It [E. eximia] is called `bloodwood,' partly because
kino exudes in the concentric circles of the wood . . . partly
because its fruits are in shape very similar to those of
E. corymbosa."
Blow, n. stroke of the shears in sheep-shearing.
1890. `The Argus,' September 20, p. 13, col. 7:
"The shearers must make their clip clean and thorough. If it
be done so incompetently that a `second blow' is needed, the
fleece is hacked."
Blow,/2/ n. braggadocio, boasting.
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' viii. p. 71:
"Is there not very much that the Australian may well be proud
of, and may we not commend him for a spice of blow?"
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `Sydney-Side Saxon,' p. 77:
"He can walk as fast as some horses can trot, cut out any beast
that ever stood on a camp, and canter round a cheese-plate.
This was a bit of blow."
1893. `The Australasian,' Aug. 12, p. 102, col. 1:
"Now Digby Holland will think it was mere Australian blow."
Blow, v. to boast; abbreviated from the phrase
"to blow your own trumpet." The word is not Australian though
often so regarded. It is common in Scotland and in the United
States.
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 387:
"The blast of the trumpet as heard in Victoria is louder than
all the blasts--and the Melbourne blast beats all the other
blowing of that proud colony. My first, my constant, my
parting advice to my Australian cousins is contained in two
words, `don't blow.'"
Blower, n. a boaster. (See Blow, v.)
1890. Rolf Boldrewood,' A Colonial Reformer,' p. 411:
"A regular Sydney man thinks all Victorians are blowers and
speculators."
Blowing, verbal n. boasting.
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 387:
"A fine art much cultivated in the colonies, for which the
colonial phrase of `blowing' has been created."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 9:
"Blowing (that is, talking loudly and boastingly on any and
every subject)."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 45:
"He was famous for `blowing' in Australian parlance . . .
of his exploits."
Bluebell, n. The name is given in Tasmania
to the flower Wahlenbergia gracilis, De C., N.O.
Campanulaceae.
Blueberry, n. i.q. Native Currant
(q.v.). The name is also given to Dianella longifolia,
R. Br., N.O. Liliaceae.
Blueberry Ash, n. a Victorian tree,
Elaeocarpus holopetalus, F. v. M.
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue, Economic Woods,' p. 15:
"Blueberry Ash or Prickly Fig. A noble tree, attaining a
height of 120 feet. Wood pale, fine-grained; exquisite for
cabinet work."
Blue-bush, n. an Australian forage plant,
a kind of Salt-bush, Kochia pyrainidata, Benth,
N.O. Chenopodiaceae.
1876. W. Harcus. `South Australia,' p. 124:
"[The country] would do splendidly for sheep, being thickly
grassed with short fine grass, salt and blue bush, and geranium
and other herbs."
Blue-Cod, n. name given to a New Zealand fish,
Percis colias, family Trachinidae. Called also
in New Zealand Rock-Cod (q.v.). The fish is of a
different family from the Cod of the northern
hemisphere.
Blue-creeper, n. name given to the creeper,
Comesperma volubile, Lab., N.O. Campanulaceae.
Blue-eye, n. a bird name. The Blue faced
Honey-eater (q.v.).
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 68:
"Entomyza cyanotis, Swains. Blue-faced Entomyza.
Blue-eye of the colonists."
Blue-fish, n. name given in Sydney to
Girella cyanea, of the family Sparidae, or
Sea-Breams. It is different from the Blue-fish of the
American coasts, which is of the family Carangidae.
Blue-Groper, n. a fish of New South Wales and
Tasmania, Cossyphus gouldii, one of the Labridae
or Wrasses, often called Parrot-Fish in Australia.
Called also Blue-head in Tasmania. Distinct from the
fish called the Groper (q.v).
Blue-gum, n. See under Gum. It is an
increasing practice to make a single word of this compound, and
to pronounce it with accent on the first syllable, as
`wiseman,' `goodman.'
Blue-head, n. Tasmanian name for the fish
called the Blue-Groper (q.v.)
Blue Lobelia, n. The indigenous species in
Tasmania which receives this name is Lobelia gibbosa,
Lab., N.O. Campanulaceae.
Blue-pointer, n. a name given in New South
Wales to a species of Shark, Lamna glauca, Mull. and
Heule, family Lamnidae, which is not confined to
Australasia.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 95:
"On the appearance of a `blue pointer' among boats fishing for
schnapper outside, the general cry is raised, `Look out for the
blue pointer.' . . . These are high swimming fishes, and may
be readily seen when about pushing their pursuits; the
beautiful azure tint of their back and sides, and independent
manner they have of swimming rapidly and high among the boats
in search of prey, are means of easy recognition, and they
often drive the fishermen away."
Bluestone, n. a kind of dark stone of which many
houses and public buildings are built.
1850. `The Australasian' (Quarterly), Oct. [Footnote], p. 138:
"The ancient Roman ways were paved with polygonal blocks of a
stone not unlike the trap or bluestone around Melbourne."
1855. R. Brough Smyth, `Transactions of Philosophical Society,
Victoria,' vol. i. p. 25:
"The basalt or `bluestone,' which is well adapted to structural
purposes, and generally obtains where durability is desired."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook to New Zealand,' p. 62:
"Basalts, locally called `bluestones,' occur of a quality
useful for road-metal, house-blocks, and ordinary rubble
masonry."
1890. `Proceedings of the Royal Society of Tasmania,' p. xx.
[Letter from Mr. S. H. Wintle]:
"The newer basalts, which in Victoria have filled up so
extensively Miocene and Pliocene valleys, and river channels,
are chiefly vesicular Zeolitic dolerites and
anaemesites, the former being well represented by the
light-coloured Malmsbury `bluestone' so extensively employed in
buildings in Melbourne."
Blue-tongued Lizard, n. name given to
Tiliqua nigroluteus, Gray, a common Australian and
Tasmanian lizard belonging to the family Scincidae.
The name is derived from its blue-coloured tongue, and on
account of its sluggish habits it is also often called the
Sleepy lizard.
1887. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,' Dec. 14,
pl. 131:
"Not uncommon about Melbourne, where it is generally called the
`Blue-tongued Lizard,' or `Sleepy Lizard.'"
Blue-wing, n. a sportsman's name (as in England)
for the bird called the Shoveller (q.v.).
Bluey, n. (1) A blue blanket commonly used by
swagmen in Australia. He wraps his bundle in it, and the whole
is called a Swag (q.v.). To hump bluey means to
go on the tramp, carrying a swag on the back.
(2) In the wet wildernesses of Western Tasmania a rough shirt
or blouse is made of this material, and is worn over the coat
like an English smock-frock. Sailors and fishermen in England
call it a "Baltic shirt."
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 16, p. 13, col. 2:
"We shall have to hump bluey again."
1891. R. Wallace, `Rural Economy and Agriculture of Australia
and New Zealand,' p. 73:
"`Humping bluey' is for a workman to walk in search of work."
1891. W. Tilley, `The Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 29:
"Leehan presents an animated scene . . . . Heavily laden
drays, pack-horses and mules, form constant processions
journeying from Dundas or Trial; miners with their swags,
surveyors in their `blueys' . . . all aid effectively in the
panorama."
Board, n. term used by shearers. See quotation.
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), Dec. 23, p. 6, col. 1:
"`The board' is the technical name for the floor on which the
sheep are shorn."
With a full board, with a full complement of shearers.
1894. `The Herald,' Oct. 6, p. 1. Col. 2:
"The secretary of the Pastoralists' Association . . . reports
that the following stations have started shearing with full
boards."
Boar-fish, n. a name applied in England to
various dissimilar fishes which have projecting snouts.
(`Century.') In New Zealand it is given to Cyttus
australis, family Cyttidae, which is related to the
John Dory (q.v.). This name is sometimes applied to it,
and it is also called Bastard Dory (q.v.). In Melbourne
the Boar-fish is Histiopterus recurvirostris,
family Percidae, and Pentaceropsis
recurvirostris, family Pentacerotidae.
Mrs. Meredith, in `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' 1880 (pl. vi.),
figures Histiopterus recurvirostris with the vernacular
name of Pig-faced Lady. It is a choice edible fish.
Boil down, v. to reduce a statement to its
simplest form; a constant term amongst pressmen. Over the
reporters' table in the old `Daily Telegraph' office
(Melbourne) there was a big placard with the words-"Boil it
down." The phrase is in use in England. `O.E.D.' quotes
`Saturday Review,' 1880. The metaphor is from the numerous
boiling-down establishments for rendering fat sheep into
tallow. See quotation, 1878.
1878. F. P. Labilliere, `Early History of the Colony of
Victoria,' vol. ii. p. 330:
"The first step which turned the tide of ill-fortune was the
introduction of the system of boiling down sheep. When stock
became almost worthless, it occurred to many people that, when
a fleece of wool was worth from half-a-crown to three shillings
in England, and a sheep's tallow three or four more, the value
of the animal in Australia ought to exceed eighteenpence or two
shillings. Accordingly thousands of sheep were annually boiled
down after shearing . . . until . . . the gold discovery; and
then `boiling down,' which had saved the country, had to be
given up. . . . The Messrs. Learmonth at Buninyong . . . found
it answered their purpose to have a place of their own, instead
of sending their fat stock, as was generally done, to a public
`boiling down' establishment."
1895. `The Argus,' Aug. 17, p. 8, col. 2:
"Boiled down, the matter comes to this."
Bonduc Nuts, n. a name in Australia for the
fruit of the widely distributed plant Caesalpina
bonducella, Flem., N.O. Leguminosae. Called
Molucca Beans in Scotland and Nicker Nuts
elsewhere.
Bonito, n. Sir Frederick McCoy says that the
Tunny, the same fish as the European species Thynnus
thynnus, family Scombridae, or Mackerels, is called
Bonito, erroneously, by the colonists and fishermen. The
true Bonito is Thynnus pelamys, Linn., though the
name is also applied to various other fishes in Europe, the
United States, and the West Indies.
Bony-Bream, i.q. Sardine (q.v.).
Boobook, n. an owl. Ninox boobook (see
Owl); Athene boobook (Gould's `Birds of
Australia,' vol.i. pl. 32)." From cry or note of bird. In the
Mukthang language of Central Gippsland, BawBaw, the mountain in
Gippsland, is this word as heard by the English ear."
(A. W. Howitt.) In South Australia the word is used for a
mopoke.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 188:
"The native name of this bird, as Mr. Caley informs us, is
Buck'buck. It may be heard nearly every night during winter,
uttering a cry, corresponding with that word. . . .The lower
order of the settlers in New South Wales are led away by the
idea that everything is the reverse in that country to what it
is in England : and the cuckoo, as they call this bird, singing
by night, is one of the instances which they point out."
1894. `The Argus,' June 23, p. 11, col. 4:
"In most cases--it may not be in all--the familiar call, which
is supposed to sound like `More-pork,' is not the mopoke (or
podargus) at all, but the hooting of a little rusty red
feather-legged owl, known as the Boobook. Its double note is
the opposite of the curlew, since the first syllable is dwelt
upon and the second sharp. An Englishman hearing it for the
first time, and not being told that the bird was a `more-pork,'
would call it a night cuckoo."
Booby, n. English bird-name. Used in Australia
for the Brown-Gannet. See Gannet.
Boobyalla, or Boobialla, n. the
aboriginal name for the tree Acacia longifolia, Willd.,
N.O. Leguminosae, also called Native Willow. A
river in Tasmania bears the name of Boobyalla, the tree being
plentiful on the coast.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p63:
"Acacia sophora. Sophora podded Acacia or Booby-aloe.
This species forms a large shrub on the sand-hills of the
coast."
1843. J. Backhouse, `Narrative of a Visit to the Australian
Colonies,' p. 59:
"The sandbanks at the mouth of Macquarie Harbour are covered
with Boobialla, a species of Acacia, the roots of which
run far in the sand."
1855. J. Milligan, `Vocabulary of Dialects of the Aboriginal
Tribes of Tasmania,' `Proceedings of the Royal Society of
Tasmania,' vol. iii. p. 238:
"Wattle tree--seaside. (Acacia Maritinia) Boobyallah."
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' vol. ii. p. 62:
"Boobyalla bushes lay within the dash of the ceaseless spray."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 359:
"Boobyalla . . . an excellent tree for binding coast-sands."
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue, Economic Woods,' p. 4:
"On the coast it is known by the native name, Boobyalla."
Boomah, or Boomer, n. name of a very
large kangaroo, Macropus giganteus, Shaw. The spelling
"boomah" seems due to a supposed native origin. See
quotation, 1872, the explanation in which is probably
erroneous. It is really from the verb to boom, to rush with
violence.
1830. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 110:
"Snapped the boomah's haunches, and he turned round to offer
battle."
1833. Lieut. Breton, `Excursions in New South Wales, Western
Australia, and Van Diemen's Land,' p. 251:
"Boomah. Implies a large kangaroo."
Ibid. p. 254:
"The flying gin (gin is the native word for woman or female)
is a boomah, and will leave behind every description of dog."
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 244:
"The Great or Forest Kangaroo (Macropus giganteus), the
`Forester' of the Colonists. . . .The oldest and heaviest male
of the herd was called a `Boomer,' probably a native term."
1853. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 325:
"The forester (Macropus major, Shaw), the male being
known by the name of `boomer,' and the young female by that of
`flying doe,' is the largest and only truly gregarious
species."
1854. G. H. Haydon, `The Australian Emigrant,' p. 124:
"It was of an old man kangaroo,a regular boomer."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 169:
"An officer from Van Diemen's Land told me that he had once
killed in that colony a kangaroo of such magnitude, that, being
a long way from home, he was unable, although on horseback, to
carry away any portion except the tail, which alone weighed
thirty pounds. This species is called the boomah, and stands
about seven feet high."
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. i. p. 47:
"Sometimes starting a grand boomah, or great red kangaroo."
1862. F. J. Jobson, `Australia,' c. v. p. 124:
"Some of the male kangaroos, called `boomers,' were described
as being four or five feet high."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' p. 55:
"The Boomer starts, and ponders
What kind of beasts we be."
1867. W. Richardson, `Tasmanian Poems,' p. 26:
"The dogs gather round a `boomer' they've got."
1872. Mrs. E. Millett, `An Australian Parsonage,' p. 195:
"A tall old Booma, as the natives call the male
kangaroo, can bring his head on a level with the face of a man
on horseback. . . . A kangaroo's feet are, in fact, his
weapons of defence with which, when he is brought to bay, he
tears his antagonists the dogs most dreadfully, and instances
are not wanting of even men having been killed by a large old
male. No doubt this peculiar method of disposing of his
enemies has earned him the name of Booma, which in the
native language signifies to strike."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 16:
"As he plunged into the yellow waters, the dogs were once more
by his side, and again the `boomer' wheeled, and backed against
one of the big trees that stud these hollows."
Applied generally to something very large.
1885. `Australasian Printers' Keepsake,' p. 76:
"When the shades of evening come,
I choose a boomer of a gum."
Boomerang, n. a weapon of the Australian
aborigines, described in the quotations. The origin of the
word is by no means certain. One explanation is that of
Mr. Fraser in quotation, 1892. There may perhaps be an
etymological connection with the name woomera (q.v.),
which is a different weapon, being a throwing stick, that is,
an instrument with which to throw spears, whilst the
boomerang is itself thrown; but the idea of throwing is
common to both. In many parts the word is pronounced by the
blacks bummerang. Others connect it with the aboriginal word
for "wind," which at Hunter River was burramaronga, also
boomori. In New South Wales and South Queensland there
is a close correspondence between the terms for wind and
boomerang.
1827. Captain P. P. King, `Survey of Intertropical and West
Coasts of Australia,' vol. i. p. 355:
"Boomerang is the Port Jackson term for this weapon, and may
be retained for want of a more descriptive name."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 108:
"We gambolled all the way up, throwing small pieces of bark at
each other, after the manner of the native youths, who practise
this with a view of strengthening their arms, and fitting them
for hurling a curious weapon of war called a `bomering,' which
is shaped thus:"
\
\
/
/
Ibid. p. 280:
"Around their loins was the opossum belt, in one side of which
they had placed their waddies, with which they meant to break
the heads of their opponents, and on the other was the
bomering, or stick, with which they threw their spears."
[This is a confusion between boomerang and
woomera (q.v.). Perhaps Mr. Dawson wrote the second
word, and this is a misprint.]
1839. Major T. L. `Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the
Interior of Eastern Australia,' vol. ii. p. 348:
"The bommereng, or their usual missile, can be thrown by a
skilful hand, so as to rise upon the air, and thus to deviate
from the usual path of projectiles, its crooked course being,
nevertheless, equally under control."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 186:
"The admirable dexterity with which they fling the bomerangs.
To our thinking the thrower was only sending the instrument
along the ground, when suddenly, after spinning along it a
little way, it sprung up into the air, performing a circle, its
crescent shape spinning into a ring, constantly spinning round
and round, until it came and fell at his feet."
1845. O. Wendell Holmes, `Modest Request' (in Poems):
"Like the strange missile which the Australian throws,
Your verbal boomerang slaps you on the nose."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 39:
"This instrument, called a bommereng, is made of wood, and is
much like the blade of a scimitar. I believe it has been
introduced into England as a plaything for children."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 57:
"The boomerang is an extraordinary missile, formed in the shape
of a crescent, and when propelled at an object, apparently
point blank, it turns in any direction intended by the
thrower, so that it can actually be directed in this manner
against a person standing by his side. The consummate art
visible in its unnatural-looking progression greatly depends
upon the manner in which it is made to rebound from the ground
when thrown."
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. p. 107;
"He [Sir Thomas Mitchell] applied to the screw propeller the
revolving principle of the boomerang of the Australian
natives."
1867. G. G. McCrae, `Balladeadro,' p. 25:
"While circling thro' the air there sang
The swift careering boomerang."
1888. A. Seth, `Encyclopaedia Britannica,' vol. xxiv. p. 530,
col. 2:
"He [Archbishop Whately] was an adept in various savage sports,
more especially in throwing the boomerang."
1889. P. Beveridge, `Aborigines of Victoria and Riverina,' p. 49:
"Boomerang: a thin piece of wood, having the shape of a
parabola, about eighteen inches or two feet long from point to
point, the curve being on the thin side. Of the broad sides of
the missile one is slightly convex, the other is flat. The
thin sides are worked down finely to blunt edges. The peculiar
curve of the missile gives it the property of returning to the
feet of the thrower. It is a dangerous instrument in a melee.
Of course the wood from which it is made is highly seasoned by
fire. It is therefore nearly as hard as flint."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 49:
[A full description of the use of the boomerang is given,
with illustrations.]
"The boomerang is a curved, somewhat flat, and slender weapon,
made from a hard and heavy wood, Brigalow (Acacia
excelsa), or Myall (Acacia pendula), but the best
one I found was made of a lighter kind of wood. The curving of
the boomerang, which often approaches a right angle, must be
natural, and in the wood itself. One side is perfectly flat,
and the other slightly rounded. The ends are pointed."
1890. G. W. Rusden, `Proceedings, Royal Colonial Institute,' vol.
xxii. p. 62:
"You hardly ever see an allusion in the English Press to the
boomerang which does not refer to it as a weapon of war which
returns to the thrower, whereas the returning boomerang is not
a weapon of war, and the boomerang which is a weapon of war
does not return to the thrower. There are many kinds of
boomerang--some for deadly strife, some for throwing at game,
and the returning boomerang, which is framed only for
amusement. If a native had no other missile at hand, he would
dispatch it at a flight of ducks. Its circular course,
however, makes it unfit for such a purpose, and there is a
special boomerang made for throwing at birds. The latter keeps
a straight course, and a native could throw it more than two
hundred yards."
1892. J. Fraser, `The Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 69:
"The name bumarang has always hitherto been written boomerang;
but, considered etymologically, that is wrong, for the root of
it is buma--strike, fight, kill; and -ara, -arai, -arang, are
all of them common formative terminations."
1893. `The Argus,' July 1, p. 8, col. 7:
"`I tell you, sir,' said Mr. Healy at an Irish political
meeting, `that there are at the present moment crystallizing
in this city precedents which will some day come home to
roost like a boomerang.'"
Boongary, n. the tree-kangaroo of North
Queensland, a marsupial tree-climber, about the size of a large
wallaby, Dendrolagus lumholtzii, Collett. A native
name. Bangaray = Red Kangaroo, in Governor Hunter's
vocabulary of the Port Jackson dialect (1793).
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 226:
"The tree-kangaroo is without comparison a better-proportioned
animal than the common kangaroo. The fore-feet, which are
nearly as perfectly developed as the hind-feet, have large
crooked claws, while the hind-feet are somewhat like those of a
kangaroo, though not so powerful. The sole of the foot is
somewhat broader and more elastic on account of a thick layer
of fat under the skin. In soft ground its footprints are very
similar to those of a child. The ears are small and erect, and
the tail is as long as the body of the animal. The skin is
tough, and the fur is very strong and beautiful. . . . Upon
the whole the boongary is the most beautiful mammal I have seen
in Australia. It is a marsupial, and goes out only in the
night. During the day it sleeps in the trees, and feeds on the
leaves."
Bora, n. a rite amongst the aborigines of
eastern Australia; the ceremony of admitting a young black to
the rights of manhood. Aboriginal word.
The word bur, given by Ridley, means not only girdle but
`circle.' In the man-making ceremonies a large circle is made
on the ground, where the ceremonies take place.
1875. W. Ridley, `Kamilaroi,' p. 24:
"Girdle--bor or bur. Hence Bora, the ceremony of initiation
into manhood, where the candidate is invested with the belt of
manhood."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 24:
"The great mystery of the Blacks is the Bora--a ceremony at
which the young men found worthy receive the rank of warriors."
1892. J. Fraser, `Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 6:
"These ceremonies are . . . called the Bora."
Borage, Native, n. a plant, Pollichia
zeylanica, F. v. M., N.O. Boragineae. The so-called
Native Borage is not endemic to Australia. In India it
is used as a cure for snake bites.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 124:
"The native borage (Trichodesina zeylanica, R. Br.)."
Borak, n. aboriginal word of New South Wales,
meaning banter, chaff, fun at another's expense. (See
quotation, 1845.) Prior to 1870 the word was much in use on
the stations in New South Wales. About 1870 Victorian farmers'
sons took shearing work there, and brought back the word with
them. It was subsequently altered to barrack (q.v.).
1845. C. Griffith, `Present State and Prospects of the Port
Phillip District of New South Wales,' p. 162:
"The following is a specimen of such eloquence:--`You
pilmillally jumbuck, plenty sulky me, plenty boom, borack
gammon,' which, being interpreted, means--`If you steal my
sheep I shall be very angry, and will shoot you and no
mistake.'"
1856. W. W. Dobie, `Recollections of a Visit to Port Phillip,
Australia, in 1852-55' p. 93:
". . . he gravely assured me that it was `merrijig' (very
good), and that `blackfellow doctor was far better than
whitefellow doctor.' In proof of which he would say, `Borak
you ever see black fellow with waddie (wooden) leg.
Bungalallee white fellow doctor cut him leg, borak black
fellow stupid like it that."
1885. `Australasian Printers' Keepsake,' p. 75:
"On telling him my adventures, how Bob in my misery had `poked
borack' at me. . . ."
1888. Alfred J.Chandler,' Curley' in `Australian Poets,'
1788-1888, ed. Sladen, p. 100:
"Here broke in Super Scotty, `Stop
Your borak, give the bloomin' man a show.'"
1893. `The Argus,' Aug. 26, p. 13, col. 1:
"It does not do for a man whose mission it is to wear stuff and
a horse-hair wig to `poke borak' at that venerable and
eminently respectable institution--the law, and still worse is
it for a practising barrister to actually set to work, even in
the most kindly spirit, to criticise the judges, before whom at
any moment he may be called upon to plead."
Borboby, n. i.q. Corrobbery (q.v.), but
the word is rare.
1890. Carl Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals' [Title of illustration],
p. 122:
"A warrior in great excitement just before Borboby commences."
Boree, n. aboriginal name for the tree
Acacia pendula, A. Cunn., N.O. Leguminosae; a
variety of Myall, probably from Queensland aboriginal
word Booreah, fire. It would be preferred by black or
white man as firewood over any other timber except
giddea (q.v.).
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 363:
"Weeping, or true myall. It is sometimes called bastard gidgee
in Western New South Wales. Called boree by aboriginals, and
often boree, or silver-leaf boree, by the colonists of Western
New South Wales. Nilyah is another New South Wales name."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' iii. p. 30:
"Myall and boree belts of timbers."
1893. `The Times,' [Reprint] `Letters from Queensland,' p. 6o:
"The timber, of course, when seen close at hand is strange.
Boree and gidyah, coolibah and whitewood, brigelow, mulgah, and
myall are the unfamiliar names by which you learn to recognise
the commonest varieties."
Borer, n. name applied to an Australian insect.
See quotation.
1876. W. Harcus, `South Australia,' p. 110:
"There is another destructive insect called the `borer,' not
met with near the sea-coast, but very active and mischievous
inland, its attacks being chiefly levelled against timber.
This creature is about the size of a large fly."
Boronia, n. scientific and vernacular name of a
genus of Australian plants, certain species of which are noted
for their peculiar fragrance. The genus is especially
characteristic of West Australia, to which out of fifty-nine
species thirty-three are confined, while only five are known in
Tasmania. Boronia belongs to the N.O. Rutaceae.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 72:
"Boronia variabilis. A beautiful little heath-like
plant growing about the Cascade and other hills round about
Hobart Town. . . . This genus is named after Borone, an
Italian servant of the late Dr. Sibthorp, who perished at
Athens. . . .Another species found in Van Diemen's Land is the
Lemon plant of the mountains."
1896. `The Melburnian,' vol. xxii., No. 3, August 28, p. 53:
"Winter does not last for ever, and now at each street corner
the scent of boronia and the odour of wattle-blossom greet us
from baskets of the flower-girl."
Boss-cockie, n. a slang name in the bush for a
farmer, larger than a Cockatoo (see Cockatoo, n. 2), who
employs other labour as well as working himself.
Botany Bay, n. lying to the south of the
entrance to Port Jackson, New South Wales, the destination of
the first two shiploads of convicts from England. As a matter
of fact, the settlement at Botany Bay never existed. The
"First Fleet," consisting of eleven sail under Governor
Phillip, arrived at Botany Bay on January 18, 1788. The
Governor finding the place unsuitable for a settlement did not
land his people, but on January 25 removed the fleet to Port
Jackson. On the next day (January 26) he landed his people at
Sydney Cove, and founded the city of Sydney. The name,
however, citing to popular imagination, and was used sometimes
as the name of Australia. Seventy years after Governor
Phillip, English schoolboys used "go to Botany Bay" as an
equivalent to "go to Bath." Captain Cook and his naturalists,
Banks and Solander, landed at Botany Bay, and the name was
given (not at first, when the Bay was marked Stingray, but a
little later) from the large number of plants collected there.
1770. `Captain Cook's Original Journal,' ed. by Wharton, 1893,
p. 247:
"6 May. . . .The great quantity of plants Mr. Banks and Dr.
Solander found in this place occasioned my giving it the Name
of Botany Bay."
1789. [Title]:
"The Voyage of Governor Phillip to Botany Bay," published in
London.
1789. Captain Watkin Tench [Title]: "A Narrative of the
Expedition to Botany Bay," published in London.
1793 G. Barrington [Title]:
"Voyage to Botany Bay," [published in London.]
This was the popular book on the new settlement, the others
being high priced. As Lowndes says, "A work of no authority,
but frequently printed." Barrington, the pickpocket, whose
name it bears, had nothing to do with it. It was pirated from
Phillip, Collins, etc. It went through various editions and
enlargements to 1810 or later. After 1795 the name was altered
to `Voyage to New South Wales.'
1798. D. Collins, `Account of the English Colony in New South
Wales,' vol. i. p. 502:
"The word `Botany Bay' became a term of reproach that was
indiscriminately cast on every one who resided in New South
Wales."
1840. Thos. Hood, `Tale of a Trumpet:
"The very next day
She heard from her husband at Botany Bay."
1851. Rev. David Mackenzie, `Ten Years in Australia,' p. 50:
". . . a pair of artificially black eyes being the Botany Bay
coat of arms."
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' Vol. ii. p. 91:
"Some gentlemen, on a visit to a London theatre, to draw the
attention of their friends in an opposite box, called out
cooey; a voice in the gallery answered `Botany Bay!'"
1894. `Pall Mall Budget,' May 17, p. 20, col. 1:
"The owner of the ship was an ex-convict in Sydney--then called
Botany Bay--who had waxed wealthy on the profits of rum, and
the `shangai-ing' of drugged sailors."
Botany-Bay Greens, n. a vegetable common to all
the colonies, Atriplex cinereum, Poir, N.O.
Salsolaceae.
1810. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 263:
"Botany Bay greens are abundant; they much resemble sage in
appearance; and are esteemed a very good dish by the
Europeans."
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 134:
"I do not think it necessary to enter upon any description of
the Barilla shrubs (Atriplex halimus, Rhagodur
billardiera; and Salicornia arbuscula), which, with
some others, under the promiscuous name of Botany Bay greens,
were boiled and eaten along with some species of seaweed, by
the earliest settlers, when in a state of starvation."
1835. Ibid. p. 69:
"Atriplex Halimus. Barrilla. Botany Bay Greens. This is the
plant so common on the shores of Cape Barren and other islands
of the Straits, from which the alkaline salt is obtained and
brought up in boats to the soap manufactory at Hobart Town. It
has been set down as the same plant that grows on the coast of
Spain and other parts of Europe."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 9:
"Once used as a pot-herb in New South Wales. Leichhardt used a
species of Atriplex as a vegetable, and spoke very
highly of it."
Botany-Bay Oak, or Botany-Bay Wood,
n. a trade name in England for the timber of
Casuarina. See Beef-wood.
Bottle-brush, n. name given to various species
of Callistemon and Melaleuca,
N.O. Myrtaceae; the Purple Bottle-brush is
Melaleuca squamea, Lab. The name is also more rarely
given to species of Banksia, or Honeysuckle
(q.v.). The name bottle-brush is from the resemblance
of the large handsome blossoms to the brush used to clean out
wine-bottles.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 359:
"Red Bottle-brush. The flowers of some species of
Callistemon are like bottle-brushes in shape."
Bottle-Gourd, n. an Australian plant,
Lagenaria vulgaris, Ser., N.O. Cucurbitaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 192:
"Bottle Gourd. This plant, so plentiful along the tropical
coast of Queensland, is said to be a dangerous poison. It is
said that some sailors were killed by drinking beer that had
been standing for some time in a bottle formed of one of these
fruits. (F. M. Bailey.)"
Bottle-Swallow, n. a popular name for the bird
Lagenoplastis ariel, otherwise called the Fairy
Martin. See Martin. The name refers to the bird's
peculiar retort shaped nest. Lagenoplashs is from the
Greek lagaenos, a flagon, and plautaes, a modeller.
The nests are often constructed in clusters under rocks or the
eaves of buildings. The bird is widely distributed in
Australia, and has occurred in Tasmania.
Bottle-tree, n. an Australian tree, various
species of Sterculia, i.q. Kurrajong (q.v.). So
named from its appearance. See quotations.
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 264:
"The sterculia, or bottle-tree, is a very singular curiosity.
It generally varies in shape between a soda-water and port-wine
bottle, narrow at the basis, gradually widening at the middle,
and tapering towards the neck."
1848. L. Leichhardt, Letter in `Cooksland, by J. D. Lang,
p. 91:
"The most interesting tree of this Rosewood Brush is the true
bottle-tree, a strange-looking unseemly tree, which swells
slightly four to five feet high, and then tapers rapidly into a
small diameter; the foliage is thin, the crown scanty and
irregular, the leaves lanceolate, of a greyish green; the
height of the whole tree is about forty-five feet."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery and
Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 127:
"It was on this range (Lat. 26 degrees, 42') that Mitchell saw
the bottle-tree for the first time. It grew like an enormous
pear-shaped turnip, with only a small portion of the root in
the ground."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 60:
"A `Kurrajong.' The `Bottle-tree' of N.E. Australia, and also
called `Gouty-stem,' on account of the extraordinary shape of
the trunk. It is the `Binkey' of the aboriginals.
"The stem abounds in a mucilaginous substance resembling pure
tragacanth, which is wholesome and nutritious, and is said to
be used as an article of food by the aborigines in cases of
extreme need. A similar clear jelly is obtainable by pouring
boiling water on chips of the wood."
Bottom, n. in gold-mining, the old river-bed
upon which the wash-dirt rests, and upon which the richest
alluvial gold is found; sometimes called the gutter.
1887. H. H. Hayter, `Christmas Adventure,' p. 5:
"We reached the bottom, but did not find gold."
Bottom, v. to get to the bedrock, or clay,
below which it was useless to sink (gold-mining).
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria,' c. xv. p. 219:
"In their anxiety to bottom their claims, they not seldom threw
away the richest stuff."
Boundary-rider, n. a man who rides round the
fences of a station to see that they are in order.
1890. E. W. Hornung, `A Bride from the Bush,' p. 279:
"A boundary-rider is not a `boss' in the Bush, but he is an
important personage in his way. He sees that the sheep in his
paddock draw to the water, that there is water for them to draw
to, and that the fences and gates are in order. He is paid
fairly, and has a fine, free, solitary life."
1892. `Scribner's Magazine,' Feb., p. 147:
"The manager's lieutenants are the `boundary-riders,' whose
duty it is to patrol the estate and keep him informed upon
every portion of it."
Bower-bird n. Australian bird. See quotation,
1891. See Ptilonorhynchinae. The following are the
varieties---
Fawn-breasted Bower-bird--
Chlamydoderea cerviniventris, Gould.
Golden B.--
Prionodura newtoniana, De Vis.
Great B.--
Chlambydodera nuchalis, Gould (`Birds of Australia,'
vol.iv. pl. 9).
Queensland B.--
C. orientalis, Gould.
Satin B.--
Ptilonorhynchus violaceus, Vieillot.
Spotted B.--
Chlamydodera maculata, Gould (ibid. pl. 8).
Yellow-spotted B.--
C. gutttata, Gould.
And the Regent-bird (q.v.).
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 140:
"The same person had the last season found, to his surprise,
the playhouse, or bower, of the Australian satin bower-bird."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 28:
"Any shred of glass or metal which arrests the eye or reflects
the rays of the sun is a gem in the bower-bird's collection,
which seems in a sense to parody the art decorations of a
modern home."
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"In one is a representation of the playing place of the spotted
bowerbird. These bowers are quite independent of the birds'
nests, which are built on neighbouring trees. They first
construct a covered passage or bower about three feet long, and
near it they place every white or bright object they can find,
such as the bleached bones of animals, pieces of white or
coloured stone, feathers, shells, etc., etc.; the feathers they
place on end. When these curious playing places were first
discovered, they were thought to be made by the native women
for the amusement of their children. More than a bushel of
small pieces of bleached bones or shells are often found at one
of these curious sporting places. Sometimes a dozen or more
birds will assemble, and they delight in chasing each other
through the bower and playing about it."
Box, Box-tree, Box-gum,
n. The name is applied to many Eucalypts, and to
a few trees of the genus Tristania, as given below, all
of the N.O. Myrtaceae, chiefly from the qualities of
their timber, which more or less resembles "Boxwood." Most of
these trees also bear other vernacular names, and the same tree
is further often described vernacularly as different kinds of
Box. China-, Heath-, and Native-Box (q.v. below)
are of other Natural Orders and receive their names of
Box from other reasons. The following table is compiled
from Maiden:--
Bastard Box--
Eucalyptus goniocalyx, F. v. M.;
E. largiflorens, F. v. M. (called also Cooburn);
E. longifolia, Link.; E. microtheca, F. v. M.;
E. polyanthema, F. v. M.; E. populifolia,
Hook. (called also Bembil or Bimbil Box and Red Box);
Tristania conferta, R. Br.;
T. laurana, R. Br., all of the N.O. Myrtaceae.
Black Box--
Eucalyptus obliqua, L'Herit.;
E. largiflorens, F. v. M.;
E. microtheca, F. v. M.
Brisbane Box---
Tristania conferta, R. Br.
Broad-leaved Box--
Eucalyptus acmenoides, Schau.
Brown Box--
Eucalyptus polyanthema, Schau.
Brush Box--
Tristania conferta, R. Br.
China Box-- Murraya exotica, Linn., N.O. Rutaceae
(not a tree, but a perfume plant, which is found also in India
and China).
Dwarf, or Flooded Box-- Eucalyptus microtheca,
F. v. M. (Also called Swamp Gum, from its habit of growing on
land inundated during flood time. An aboriginal name for the
same tree is goborro.)
Grey Box--
Eucalyptus goniocalyx, F. v. M.;
E. hemiphloia, F. v. M.;
E. largiflorens, F. v. M.;
E. polyanthema, Schau.;
E. saligna, Smith.
Gum-topped Box--
Eucalyptus hemiphloia, F. v. M.
Heath Box-- Alyxia buxifolia, R. Br.,
N.O. Apocyneae (called also Tonga-beanwood,
owing to its scent)
Iron-bark Box--
Eucalyptus obliqua, L'Herit.
Narrow-leaved Box--
Eucalyptus microtheca, F. v. M.
Native Box-- Bursaria spinosa, Cav.,
N.O. Pittosporeae. (Called also Box-thorn
and Native-Olive. It is not a timber-tree but a forage-
plant. See quotation, 1889.)
Poplar Box--
Eucalyptus populifolia, Hook.
Red Box--
Eucalyptus populifolia, Hook.;
E. polyanthema, Schau.;
Tristania
conferta, R. Br.
Thozet's Box--
Eucalyptus raveretiana, F. v. M.
White Box--
Eucalyptus hemiphloia, F. v. M.;
E. odorata, Behr.;
E. populifolia, Hook.;
Tristania conferta, R. Br.
Yellow Box--
Eucalyptus hemiphloia, F. v. M.
E. largiflorens, F. v. M.
E. melliodora, A. Cunn.
1820. John Oxley, `Two Expeditions,' p. 126:
"The country continued open forest land for about three miles,
the cypress and the bastard-box being the prevailing timber;
of the former many were useful trees."
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions, vol. ii. p. 55:
"The small kind of tree . . . which Mr. Oxley, I believe, terms
the dwarf-box, grows only on plains subject to inundation
. . . . It may be observed, however, that all permanent waters
are invariably surrounded by the `yarra.' These peculiarities
are only ascertained after examining many a hopeless hollow,
where grew the `goborro' only; and after I had found my sable
guides eagerly scanning the `yarra' from afar, when in search
of water, and condemning any view of the `goborro' as hopeless
during that dry season."
[See Yarra, a tree.]
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. p. 6:
"Belts of open forest land, principally composed of the
box-tree of the colonists, a species of eucalyptus (in no
respect resembling the box of Europe)."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 15:
"The Honey-Eucalypt (Eucalyptus melliodora). This tree
passes by the very unapt vernacular name Yellow Box-tree,
though no portion of it is yellow, not even its wood, and
though the latter resembles the real boxwood in no way
whatever. Its systematic specific name alludes to the odour of
its flowers, like that of honey, and as the blossoms exude much
nectar, like most eucalypts, sought by bees, it is proposed to
call it the small-leaved Honey-Eucalypt, but the Latin name
might as easily be conveyed to memory, with the advantage of
its being a universal one, understood and used by all nations."
1881. A.C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 46:
"Poor country, covered with ti-tree, box, and iron-bark
saplings, with here and there heavy timber growing on
sour-looking ridges."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 7:
"The clumps of box-gums clinging together for sympathy."
1888. J. Howlett Ross, `Laureate of the Centaurs,' p. 41:
"Box shrubs which were not yet clothed with their creamy-white
plumes (so like the English meadowsweet)."
1889. P. Beveridge, `Aborigines of Victoria and Riverina,'
p. 59:
"These spears are principally made from a tall-growing box (one
of the eucalypts) which often attains to an altitude of over
100 feet; it is indigenous to the north-western portion of the
colony, and to Riverina; it has a fine wavy grain, consequently
easily worked when in a green state. When well seasoned,
however, it is nearly as hard as ebony."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 121:
"Native box is greedily eaten by sheep, but its thorny
character preserves it from extinction upon sheep-runs: usually
a small scrub, in congenial localities it developes into a
small tree."
Box, n. See succeeding verb.
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 67:
"Great care must of course be taken that no two flocks come
into collision, for a `box,' as it is technically called,
causes an infinity of trouble, which is the reason that the
stations are so far apart."
Box, v. to mix together sheep that ought to be
kept separate apparently from "to box" in the sense of to shut
up in narrow limits (`O.E.D.' v. i. 5); then to shut up
together and so confuse the classification; then the sense of
shutting up is lost and that of confusion remains.
1881. A.C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 253:
"All the mobs of different aged lambs which had been hitherto
kept apart were boxed up together."
1889. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 356:
"After they'd got out twenty or thirty they'd get boxed, like a
new hand counting sheep, and have to begin all over again."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 84:
"At nightfall, the fifteen flocks of sheep were all brought in,
and `boxed,' or mixed together, to Ernest's astonishment."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 166:
"He must keep tally when the sheep are being counted or
draughted, I'm not sure which, and swear--no, he needn't
swear--when they get boxed."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 54:
"But the travelling sheep and the Wilga sheep were boxed on the
Old Man Plain.
'Twas a full week's work ere they drafted out and hunted them off
again."
Boxer, n. This word means in Australia the
stiff, low-crowned, felt hat, called a billy-cock or
bowler. The silk-hat is called a bell-topper
(q.v.).
1897. `The Argus,' Jan. 9, p. 14, col. 2:
"And will you wear a boxer that is in a battered state ?
I wonder, will you--now that you're a knight?"
Box-wood, n. a New Zealand wood, Olea
lanceolata, Hook., N.O. Jasminea (Maori name,
Maire). Used by the `Wellington Independent' (April 19,
1845) for woodcuts, and recommended as superior to box-wood for
the purpose. See also Box, n.
Boyla, n. aboriginal word for a sorcerer.
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. i. p. 384:
"The absolute power of boylas or evil sorcerers . . . he
chanted gloomily:--
Oh, wherefore would they eat the muscles?
Now boylas storm and thunder make.
Oh, wherefore would they eat the muscles ?"
Bramble, Native, n. See Blackberry.
Bread, Native, n. a kind of fungus. "The
sclerotium of Polyporus mylitta, C. et M. Until quite
recently the sclerotium was known, but not the fructification.
It was thought probable that its fruit would be ascomycetous,
and on the authority of Berkeley it was made the type of a
genus as Mylitta Australis. It is found throughout
Eastern Australia and Tasmania. The aborigines ate it, but to
the European palate it is tough and tasteless, and probably as
indigestible as leather." (L. Rodway.)
1843. James Backhouse, `Narrative of a Visit to the Australian
Colonies,' p. 40:
"Natural Order. Fungi. . . . Mylitta Australis. Native
Bread. This species of tuber is often found in the Colony,
attaining to the size of a child's head: its taste somewhat
resembles boiled rice. Like the heart of the Tree-fern, and
the root of the Native Potato, cookery produces little change."
1848. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 157:
"11th October, 1848 . . . Specimens of the fungus known
as `native bread,' Mylitta Australis, lay upon the
table. A member observed that this substance, grated and made
into a pudding with milk alone, had been found by him very
palatable. Prepared in the same way, and combined with double
its weight of rice or sago, it has produced a very superior
dish. It has also been eaten with approval in soup, after the
manner of truffle, to which it is nearly allied."
1857. Dr. Milligan, in Bishop Nixon's `Cruise of the Beacon,'
p. 27:
"But that which afforded the largest amount of solid and
substantial nutritious matter was the native bread, a
fungus growing in the ground, after the manner of the truffle,
and generally so near the roots of trees as to be reputed
parasitical."
1896. `Hobart Mercury,' Oct. 30, p. 2, last col.:
"A large specimen of `native bread,' weighing 12 lb., has been
unearthed on Crab Tree farm in the Huon district, by
Mr. A. Cooper. It has been brought to town, and is being
examined with interest by many at the British Hotel. It is one
of the fungi tribe that forms hard masses of stored food for
future use."
Breadfruit-tree, name given by the explorer Leichhardt
to the Queensland tree, Gardenia edulis, F. v. M.,
N.O. Rubiaceae.
Breakaway, n.(1) A bullock that leaves the
herd.
1893. `The Argus,' April 29, p. 4, col. 4:
"The smartest stock horse that ever brought his rider up within
whip distance of a breakaway or dodged the horns of a sulky
beast, took the chance."
(2) The panic rush of sheep, cattle, or other animals at the
sight or smell of water.
1891: "The Breakaway," title of picture by Tom Roberts at
Victorian Artists' Exhibition.
Bream, n. The name is applied in Australia to
various species of Chrysophrys, family Sparidae,
and to other fishes of different families. The
Black-Bream (q.v.) is C. australis, Gunth.
The Bony-Bream is also called the Sardine (q.v.).
The Silver-Bream (q.v.) or White-Bream is
Gerres ovatus, Gunth., family Percidae. The
Red-Bream is a Schnapper (q.v.) one year old. The
popular pronunciation is Brim, and the fishes are all
different from the various fishes called Bream in the
northern hemisphere. See also Tarwhine and
Blue-fish.
Brickfielder, n. (1) Originally a Sydney name
for a cold wind, blowing from the south and accompanied by
blinding clouds of dust; identical with the later name for the
wind, the Southerly Buster (q.v.). The brickfields lay
to the south of Sydney, and when after a hot wind from the west
or north-west, the wind went round to the south, it was
accompanied by great clouds of dust, brought up from the
brickfields. These brickfields have long been a thing of the
past, surviving only in "Brickfield Hill," the hilly part of
George Street, between the Cathedral and the Railway Station.
The name, as denoting a cold wind, is now almost obsolete, and
its meaning has been very curiously changed and extended to
other colonies to denote a very hot wind. See below (Nos. 2
and 3), and the notes to the quotations.
1833. Lieut. Breton, R.N., `Excursions in New South Wales and
Van Diemen's Land,' p. 293:
"It sometimes happens that a change takes place from a hot wind
to a `brickfielder,' on which occasions the thermometer has
been known to fall, within half an hour, upwards of fifty
degrees! That is to say, from above 100 degrees to 50
degrees! A brickfielder is a southerly wind, and it takes its
local name from the circumstances of its blowing over, and
bringing into town the flames [sic] of a large brick-field: it
is nearly as detestable as a hot wind."
[Lieut. Breton must have had a strong imagination. The
brickfields, at that date, were a mile away from the town, and
the bringing in of their flames was an impossibility.
Perhaps, however, the word is a misprint for fumes; yet
even then this earliest quotation indicates part of the source
of the subsequent confusion of meaning. The main
characteristic of the true brickfielder was neither
flames nor fumes,--and certainly not heat,--but
choking dust.]
1839. W. H. Leigh, `Reconnoitering Voyages, Travels, and
Adventures in the new Colony of South Australia,' etc., p. 184:
"Whirlwinds of sand come rushing upon the traveller, half
blinding and choking him,--a miniature sirocco, and decidedly
cousin-german to the delightful sandy puffs so frequent at Cape
Town. The inhabitants call these miseries `Brickfielders,' but
why they do so I am unable to divine; probably because they are
in their utmost vigour on a certain hill here, where bricks are
made."
[This writer makes no allusion to the temperature of the wind,
whether hot or cold, but lays stress on its especial
characteristic, the dust. His comparison with the sirocco
chiefly suggests the clouds of sand brought by that wind from
the Libyan Desert, with its accompanying thick haze and
darkness (`half blinding and choking'), rather than its
relaxing warmth.]
1844. John Rae, `Sydney Illustrated,' p. 26:
"The `brickfielder' is merely a colonial name for a violent
gust of wind, which, succeeding a season of great heat, rushes
in to supply the vacuum and equalises the temperature of the
atmosphere; and when its baneful progress is marked, sweeping
over the city in thick clouds of brick-coloured dust (from the
brickfields), it is time for the citizens to close the doors
and windows of their dwellings, and for the sailor to take more
than half his canvas in, and prepare for a storm."
[Here the characteristic is again dust from the
brickfields, as the origin of the name, with cold as an
accompaniment.]
1844. Mrs.Meredith, `Notes and Sketches of New South Wales,'
p. 44:
"These dust winds are locally named `brickfielders,' from the
direction in which they come" [i.e. from neighbouring
sandhills, called the brickfields].
[Here dust is the only characteristic observed, with the
direction of the wind as the origin of its name.]
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 4:
"The greatest peculiarity in the climate is what is called by
colonists a brickfielder. This wind has all the
characteristics of a sirocco in miniature . . . . Returning
home, he discovers that the house is full of sand; that the
brickfielder has even insinuated itself between the leaves of
his books; at dinner he will probably find that his favourite
fish has been spoiled by the brickfielder. Nor is this all;
for on retiring to rest he will find that the brickfielder has
intruded even within the precincts of his musquito curtains."
[Here again its dust is noted as the distinguishing
feature of the wind, just as sand is the distinguishing feature
of the `sirocco' in the Libyan Desert, and precipitated
sand,--`blood rain' or `red snow,'--a chief character of the
sirocco after it reaches Italy.]
1847. Alex. Marjoribanks, `Travels in New South Wales,' p. 61:
"The hot winds which resemble the siroccos in Sicily are,
however, a drawback . . . but they are almost invariably
succeeded by what is there called a `brickfielder,' which is a
strong southerly wind, which soon cools the air, and greatly
reduces the temperature."
[Here the cold temperature of the brickfielder is described,
but not its dust, and the writer compares the hot wind
which precedes the brickfielder with the sirocco. He in fact
thinks only of the heat of the sirocco, but the two preceding
writers are thinking of its sand, its thick haze, its quality
of blackness and its suffocating character,--all which
applied accurately to the true brickfielder.]
1853. Rev. H. Berkeley Jones, `Adventures in Australia in 1852
and 1853,' p. 228:
"After the languor, the lassitude, and enervation which some
persons experience during these hot blasts, comes the
`Brickfielder,' or southerly burster."
[Cold temperature noticed, but not dust.]
1853. `Fraser's Magazine,' 48, p. 515:
"When the wind blows strongly from the southward, it is what
the Sydney people call a `brickfielder'; that is, it carries
with it dense clouds of red dust or sand, like brick dust,
swept from the light soil which adjoins the town on that side,
and so thick that the houses and streets are actually hidden;
it is a darkness that may be felt."
[Here it is the dust, not the temperature, which
determines the name.]
(2) The very opposite to the original meaning,--a severe hot
wind. In this inverted sense the word is now used, but not
frequently, in Melbourne and in Adelaide, and sometimes even in
Sydney, as the following quotations show. It will be noted
that one of them (1886) observes the original prime
characteristic of the wind, its dust.
1861. T. McCombie,' Australian Sketches,' p. 79:
"She passed a gang of convicts, toiling in a broiling
`brickfielder.'"
1862. F. J. Jobson, `Australia with Notes by the Way,' p. 155:
"The `brickfielders' are usually followed, before the day
closes, with `south-busters' [sic.]."
1886. F. Cowan, `Australia, a Charcoal Sketch':
"The Buster and Brickfielder: austral red-dust blizzard;
and red-hot Simoom."
This curious inversion of meaning (the change from cold to hot)
may be traced to several causes. It may arise--
(a) From the name itself. People in Melbourne and Adelaide,
catching at the word brickfielder as a name for a
dusty wind, and knowing nothing of the origin of the
name, would readily adapt it to their own severe hot north
winds, which raise clouds of dust all day, and are described
accurately as being `like a blast from a furnace,' or `the
breath of a brick-kiln.' Even a younger generation in Sydney,
having received the word by colloquial tradition, losing its
origin, and knowing nothing of the old brickfields, might apply
the word to a hot blast in the same way.
(b) From the peculiar phenomenon.--A certain cyclonic change of
temperature is a special feature of the Australian coastal
districts. A raging hot wind from the interior desert (north
wind in Melbourne and Adelaide, west wind in Sydney) will blow
for two or three days, raising clouds of dust; it will be
suddenly succeeded by a `Southerly Buster' from the
ocean, the cloud of dust being greatest at the moment of
change, and the thermometer falling sometimes forty or fifty
degrees in a few minutes. The Sydney word brickfielder
was assigned originally to the latter part--the dusty
cold change. Later generations, losing the finer distinction,
applied the word to the whole dusty phenomenon,and ultimately
specialized it to denote not so much the extreme dustiness of
its later period as the more disagreeable extreme heat of its
earlier phase.
(c) From the apparent, though not real, confusion of terms, by
those who have described it as a `sirocco.'--The word
sirocco (spelt earlier schirocco, and in Spanish
and other languages with the sh sound, not the s)
is the Italian equivalent of the Arabic root sharaga,
`it rose.' The name of the wind, sirocco, alludes in
its original Arabic form to its rising, with its cloud of sand,
in the desert high-lands of North Africa. True, it is defined
by Skeat as `a hot wind,' but that is only a part of its
definition. Its marked characteristic is that it is
sand-laden, densely hazy and black, and therefore
`choking,' like the brickfielder. The not unnatural
assumption that writers by comparing a brickfielder with
a sirocco, thereby imply that a brickfielder is a
hot wind, is thus disposed of by this characteristic, and by
the notes on the passages quoted. They were dwelling only on
its choking dust, and its suffocating qualities,--`a
miniature sirocco.' See the following quotations on this
character of the sirocco:--
1841. `Penny Magazine,' Dec. 18, p. 494:
"The Islands of Italy, especially Sicily and Corfu, are
frequently visited by a wind of a remarkable character, to
which the name of sirocco, scirocco, or schirocco, has been
applied. The thermometer rises to a great height, but the air
is generally thick and heavy . . . . People confine themselves
within doors; the windows and doors are shut close, to prevent
as much as possible the external air from entering; . . . but a
few hours of the tramontane, or north wind which
generally succeeds it, soon braces them up again. [Compare this
whole phenomenon with (b) above.] There are some peculiar
circumstances attending the wind. . . . Dr. Benza, an Italian
physician, states:--`When the sirocco has been impetuous and
violent, and followed by a shower of rain, the rain has carried
with it to the ground an almost impalpable red micaceous sand,
which I have collected in large quantities more than once in
Sicily. . . . When we direct our attention to the island of
Corfu, situated some distance eastward of Sicily, we find the
sirocco assuming a somewhat different character. . . . The
more eastern sirocco might be called a refreshing breeze
[sic]. . . . The genuine or black sirocco (as it is called)
blows from a point between south-east and south-south-east.'"
1889. W. Ferrell, `Treatise on Winds,' p. 336:
"The dust raised from the Sahara and carried northward by the
sirocco often falls over the countries north of the
Mediterranean as `blood rain,' or as `red snow,' the moisture
and the sand falling together. . . .The temperature never rises
above 95 degrees."
1889. `The Century Dictionary,' s.v. Sirocco:
"(2) A hot, dry, dust-laden wind blowing from the highlands of
Africa to the coasts of Malta, Sicily and Naples. . . . During
its prevalence the sky is covered with a dense haze."
(3) The illustrative quotations on brickfielder, up to
this point, have been in chronological consecutive order. The
final three quotations below show that while the original true
definition and meaning, (1), are still not quite lost, yet
authoritative writers find it necessary to combat the modern
popular inversion, (2).
1863. Frank Fowler, `The Athenaeum,' Feb. 21, p. 264, col. 1:
"The `brickfielder' is not the hot wind at all; it is but
another name for the cold wind, or southerly buster, which
follows the hot breeze, and which, blowing over an extensive
sweep of sandhills called the Brickfields, semi-circling
Sydney, carries a thick cloud of dust (or `brickfielder')
across the city."
[The writer is accusing Dr. Jobson (see quotation 1862, above)
of plagiarism from his book `Southern Lights and Shadows.']
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' vol. ii. p. 11:
"A dust which covered and penetrated everything and everywhere.
This is generally known as a `brickfielder.'"
1896. `Three Essays on Australian Weather,' `On Southerly
Buster,' by H. A. Hunt, p. 17:
"In the early days of Australian settlement, when the shores of
Port Jackson were occupied by a sparse population, and the
region beyond was unknown wilderness and desolation, a great
part of the Haymarket was occupied by the brickfields from
which Brickfield Hill takes its name. When a `Southerly
Burster' struck the infant city, its approach was always
heralded by a cloud of reddish dust from this locality, and in
consequence the phenomenon gained the local name of
`brickfielder.' The brickfields have long since vanished, and
with them the name to which they gave rise, but the wind
continues to raise clouds of dust as of old under its modern
name of `Southerly Burster."
Bricklow, n. obsolete form of Brigalow
(q.v.).
Brigalow, n. and adj. Spellings various.
Native name, Buriargalah. In the Namoi dialect in New
South Wales, Bri or Buri is the name for
Acacia pendula, Cunn.; Buriagal, relating to the
buri; Buriagalah == place of the buri tree. Any
one of several species of Acacia, especially
A. harpophylla, F. v. M., H.O. Leguminosae. J. H.
Maiden (`Useful Native Plants,' p. 356, 1889) gives its uses
thus:
"Wood brown, hard, heavy, and elastic; used by the natives for
spears, boomerangs, and clubs. The wood splits freely, and is
used for fancy turnery. Saplings used as stakes in vineyards
have lasted twenty years or more. It is used for building
purposes, and has a strong odour of violets.'
1846. L. Leichhardt, quoted by J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,'
p. 312:
"Almost impassable bricklow scrub, so called from the bricklow
(a species of acacia)."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 4:
"The Bricklow Acacia, which seems to be identical with the
Rosewood Acacia of Moreton Bay; the latter, however, is a fine
tree, 50 to 60 feet high, whereas the former is either a small
tree or a shrub. I could not satisfactorily ascertain the
origin of the word Bricklow, but as it is well understood and
generally adopted by all the squatters between the Severn River
and the Boyne, I shall make use of the name. Its long,
slightly falcate leaves, being of a silvery green colour, give
a peculiar character to the forest, where the tree
abounds."--[Footnote]: "Brigaloe Gould."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 79:
"Good-bye to the Barwan and brigalow scrubs."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 190:
"Now they pass through a small patch of Brigalow scrub. Some
one has split a piece from a trunk of a small tree. What a
scent the dark-grained wood has!"
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia;' vol. iv. p. 69:
"There exudes from the Brigalow a white gum, in outward
appearance like gum-arabic, and even clearer, but as a
`sticker' valueless, and as a `chew-gum' disappointing."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 23:
"The glare of a hard and pitiless sky overhead, the infinite
vista of saltbush, brigalow, stay-a-while, and mulga, the
creeks only stretches of stone, and no shelter from the
shadeless gums."
Brill, n. a small and very bony rhomboidal fish
of New Zealand, Pseudorhombus scaphus, family
Pleuronectidae. The true Brill of Europe is
Rhombus levis.
Brisbane Daisy, n. See Daisy, Brisbane.
Bristle-bird, n. a name given to certain
Australian Reed-warblers. They are--Sphenura
brachyptera, Latham; Long-tailed
B.--S. longirostris, Gould; Rufous-headed
B.--S. broadbentii, McCoy. See Sphenura.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 232:
"He (Mr. Caley) calls it in his notes `Bristle Bird.'"
Broad-leaf, n. a settlers' name for
Griselinia littoralis, Raoul; Maori name,
Paukatea.
1879. W. N. Blair, `Building Materials of Otago,' p. 155:
"There are few trees in the [Otago] bush so conspicuous or so
well known as the broad-leaf. . . . It grows to a height of
fifty or sixty feet, and a diameter of from three to six; the
bark is coarse and fibrous, and the leaves a beautiful deep
green of great brilliancy."
1879. J. B. Armstrong, `Transactions of New Zealand
Institute,' vol. xii. Art. 49, p. 328:
"The broadleaf (Griselinia littoralis) is abundant in
the district [of Banks' Peninsula], and produces a hard red
wood of a durable nature."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 103:
"The rough trunks and limbs of the broadleaf."
Broker, n. Australian slang for a man
completely ruined, stonebroke.
1891. `The Australasian,' Nov. 21, p. 1014:
"We're nearly `dead brokers,' as they say out here. Let's
harness up Eclipse and go over to old Yamnibar."
Bronze-wing, n. a bird with a lustrous
shoulder, Phaps chalcoptera, Lath. Called also
Bronze-wing Pigeon.
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 145:
"One of the gold-winged pigeons, of which a plate is annexed.
[Under plate, Golden-winged Pigeon.] This bird is a curious
and singular species remarkable for having most of the feathers
of the wing marked with a brilliant spot of golden yellow,
changing, in various reflections of light, to green and
copper-bronze, and when the wing is closed, forming two bars of
the same across it."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' vol. ii. p. 31:
"The pigeons are by far the most beautiful birds in the island;
they are called bronze-winged pigeons."
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. ii. p. 57:
"Mr. Fitzpatrick followed his kangaroo hounds, and shot his
emus, his wild turkeys, and his bronze-wings."
1865. `Once a Week.' `The Bulla-Bulla Bunyip.'
"Hours ago the bronze-wing pigeons had taken their evening
draught from the coffee-coloured water-hole beyond the
butcher's paddock, and then flown back into the bush to roost
on `honeysuckle' and in heather."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 122:
"Another most beautiful pigeon is the `bronze-wing,' which is
nearly the size of the English wood-pigeon, and has a
magnificent purply-bronze speculum on the wings."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 33:
"Both the bronze-wing and Wonga-Wonga pigeon are hunted so
keenly that in a few years they will have become extinct in
Victoria."
1893. `The Argus,' March 25, p. 4, col. 6:
"Those who care for museum studies must have been interested in
tracing the Australian quail and pigeon families to a point
where they blend their separate identities in the partridge
bronze-wing of the Central Australian plains. The eggs mark
the converging lines just as clearly as the birds, for the
partridge-pigeon lays an egg much more like that of a quail
than a pigeon, and lays, quail fashion, on the ground."
Brook-Lime, n. English name for an aquatic
plant, applied in Australia to the plant Gratiola
pedunculata, R. Br., N.O. Scrophularinae. Also
called Heartsease.
Broom, n. name applied to the plant
Calycothrix tetragona, Lab., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Broom, Native, n. an Australian timber,
Viminaria denudala, Smith, N.O. Leguminosae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 612:
"Native broom. Wood soft and spongy."
Broom, Purple, n. a Tasmanian name for
Comesperma retusum, Lab., N.O. Polygaleae.
Brown Snake, n. See under Snake.
Brown-tail, n. bird-name for the Tasmanian
Tit. See Tit.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii, pl. 54:
"Acanthiza Diemenensis, Gould. Brown-tail, colonists of
Van Diemen's Land."
Brown Tree-Lizard, n. of New Zealand,
Naultinus pacificus.
Browny or Brownie, n. a kind of
currant loaf.
1890. E. D. Cleland, `The White kangaroo,' p. 57:
"Cake made of flour, fat and sugar, commonly known as
`Browny.'"
1890. `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 57:
"Four o'clock. `Smoke O!' again with more bread and brownie
(a bread sweetened with sugar and currants)."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass,' p. 36:
"Roast mutton and brownie are given us to eat."
Brumby, Broombie (spelling various), n. a wild
horse. The origin of this word is very doubtful. Some claim
for it an aboriginal, and some an English source. In its
present shape it figures in one aboriginal vocabulary, given in
Curr's `Australian Race' (1887), vol. iii. p. 259. At p. 284,
booramby is given as meaning "wild" on the river Warrego
in Queensland. The use of the word seems to have spread from
the Warrego and the Balowne about 1864. Before that date, and
in other parts of the bush ere the word came to them, wild
horses were called clear-skins or scrubbers,
whilst Yarraman (q.v.) is the aboriginal word for a
quiet or broken horse. A different origin was, however, given
by an old resident of New South Wales, to a lady of the name of
Brumby, viz. "that in the early days of that colony, a
Lieutenant Brumby, who was on the staff of one of the
Governors, imported some very good horses, and that some of
their descendants being allowed to run wild became the
ancestors the wild horses of New South Wales and Queensland."
Confirmation of this story is to be desired.
1880. `The Australasian,' Dec. 4, p. 712, col. 3:
"Passing through a belt of mulga, we saw, on reaching its edge,
a mob of horses grazing on the plains beyond. These our guide
pronounced to be `brumbies,' the bush name here [Queensland]
for wild horses."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 176:
"The wild horses of this continent known all over it by the
Australian name of `brumbies.'"
Ibid. p. 178:
"The untamed and `unyardable' scrub brumby."
1888. R. Kipling, `Plain Tales from the Hills,' p. 160:
"Juggling about the country, with an Australian larrikin; a
`brumby' with as much breed as the boy. . . . People who lost
money on him called him a `brumby.'"
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms.' p. 67:
"The three-cornered weed he rode that had been a `brumbee.'"
1895. `Chambers' Journal,' Nov. 2, Heading `Australian Brumbie
Horses':
"The brumbie horse of Australia, tho' not a distinct equine
variety, possesses attributes and qualities peculiar to itself,
and, like the wild cattle and wild buffaloes of Australia, is
the descendant of runaways of imported stock."
1896. `Sydney Morning Herald,' (Letter from `J. F. G.,' dated
Aug. 24):
"Amongst the blacks on the Lower Balonne, Nebine, Warrego, and
Bulloo rivers the word used for horse is `baroombie,' the `a'
being cut so short that the word sounds as `broombie,' and as
far as my experience goes refers more to unbroken horses in
distinction to quiet or broken ones (`yarraman')."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 156:
"Yet at times we long to gallop where the reckless bushman rides
In the wake of startled brumbies that are flying for their
hides."
Brush, n. at first undergrowth, small trees, as
in England; afterwards applied to larger timber growth and
forest trees. Its earlier sense survives in the compound
words; see below.
1820. Oxley, `New South Wales' (`O.E.D.'):
"The timber standing at wide intervals, without any brush or
undergrowth."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' (2nd ed.) vol. i. p. 62:
"We journeyed . . . at one time over good plains, at another
through brushes."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. i. Introd. p. 77:
"Jungle, or what in New South Wales would be called brush."
Ibid. vol. v. Pl. 59:
"Those vast primeval forests of New South Wales to which the
colonists have applied the name of brushes."
1853. Chas. St. Julian and Edward K. Silvester, `The
Productions, Industry, and Resources of New South Wales,'
p. 20:
"What the colonists term `brush' lands are those covered with
tall trees growing so near each other and being so closely
matted together by underwood, parasites, and creepers, as to be
wholly impassable."
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 67,
note:
"Brush was allotted to the growth of large timber on alluvial
lands, with other trees intermixed, and tangled vines. The
soil was rich, and `brushland' was well understood as a
descriptive term. It may die away, but its meaning deserves to
be pointed out."
Brush-Apple, n. See Apple.
Brush-Bloodwood, n. See Bloodwood.
Brush-Cherry, n. an Australian tree,
Trochocarpa laurina, R. Br., and Eugenia
myrtifolia, Simms. Called also Brush-Myrtle.
Brush-Deal, n. a slender Queensland tree,
Cupania anacardioides, A. Richard. See Brush,
above.
Brusher, n. a Bushman's name, in certain parts,
for a small wallaby which hops about in the bush or scrub with
considerable speed. "To give brusher," is a phrase derived
from this, and used in many parts, especially of the interior
of Australia, and implies that a man has left without paying
his debts. In reply to the question "Has so-and-so left the
township? "the answer, "Oh yes, he gave them brusher," would
be well understood in the above sense.
Brush-Kangaroo, n. another name for the
Wallaby (q.v.).
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. viii.
p. 273:
"A place . . . thickly inhabited by the small brush-kangaroo."
1830. `Proceedings of the Royal Geographical Society,' i. 29:
"These dogs . . . are particularly useful in catching the
bandicoots, the small brush kangaroo, and the opossum."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 28:
"The brush-kangaroo . . . frequents the scrubs and rocky hills."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. iii. p. 24:
"Violet was so fast that she could catch the brush-kangaroo
(the wallaby) within sight."
Brush-Myrtle, i.q. Brush-Cherry (q.v.)
Brush-Turkey, n. See Turkey.
Brush-Turpentine, n. another name for the tree
Syncarpia leptopetala, F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae,
called also Myrtle (q.v.).
Bubrush, n. See Wonga and Raupo.
Buck, v. Used "intransitively of a horse, to
leap vertically from the ground, drawing the feet together like
a deer, and arching the back. Also transitively to buck off."
(`O.E.D.') Some say that this word is not Australian, but all
the early quotations of buck and cognate words are
connected with Australia. The word is now used freely in the
United States; see quotation, 1882.
1870. E. B. Kennedy, `Four Years in Queensland,' p. 193:
"Having gained his seat by a nimble spring, I have seen a man
(a Sydney native) so much at his ease, that while the horse has
been `bucking a hurricane,' to use a colonial expression, the
rider has been cutting up his tobacco and filling his pipe,
while several feet in the air, nothing to front of him
excepting a small lock of the animal's mane (the head being
between its legs), and very little behind him, the stern being
down; the horse either giving a turn to the air, or going
forward every buck."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 131:
"`Well,' said one, `that fellow went to market like a bird.'
`Yes,' echoed another, `Bucked a blessed hurricane.' `Buck a
town down,' cried a third. `Never seed a horse strip himself
quicker,' cried a fourth."
1882. Baillie-Grohman, `Camps in the Rockies,' ch. iv. p. 102
('Standard'):
"There are two ways, I understand, of sitting a bucking horse
. . . one is `to follow the buck,' the other `to receive the
buck.'"
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 55:
"The performance is quite peculiar to Australian horses, and no
one who has not seen them at it would believe the rapid
contortions of which they are capable. In bucking, a horse
tucks his head right between his fore-legs, sometimes striking
his jaw with his hind feet. The back meantime is arched like a
boiled prawn's; and in this position the animal makes a series
of tremendous bounds, sometimes forwards, sometimes sideways
and backwards, keeping it up for several minutes at intervals
of a few seconds."
Buck, n. See preceding verb.
1868. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 224:
"I never saw such bucks and jumps into the air as she [the
mare] performed."
1886. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 206:
"For, mark me, he can sit a buck
For hours and hours together;
And never horse has had the luck
To pitch him from the leather."
Bucker, Buck-jumper, n. a horse given
to bucking or buck-jumping.
1853. H. Berkeley Jones, `Adventures in Australia in 1852 and
1853,' [Footnote] p. 143:
"A `bucker' is a vicious horse, to be found only in Australia."
1884. `Harper's Magazine,' July, No. 301, p. 1 (`O.E.D.'):
"If we should . . . select a `bucker,' the probabilities are
that we will come to grief."
1893. Haddon Chambers, `Thumbnail Sketches of Australian Life,'
p. 64:
"No buck jumper could shake him off."
1893. Ibid. p. 187:
"`Were you ever on a buck-jumper?' I was asked by a friend,
shortly after my return from Australia."
Buck-jumping, Bucking, verbal nouns.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 43:
"At length it shook off all its holders, and made one of those
extraordinary vaults that they call buck-jumping."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' vol. ii. p. 212:
"That same bucking is just what puzzles me utterly."
1859. Rev. J. D. Mereweather, `Diary of a Working Clergyman in
Australia and Tasmania, kept during the years 1850-1853,'
p. 177:
"I believe that an inveterate buckjumper can be cured by
slinging up one of the four legs, and lunging him about
severely in heavy ground on the three legs. The action they
must needs make use of on such an occasion somewhat resembles
the action of bucking; and after some severe trials of that
sort, they take a dislike to the whole style of thing. An
Irishman on the Murrumbidgee is very clever at this schooling.
It is called here `turning a horse inside out.'"
1885. Forman (Dakota), item 26, May 6, 3 (`O.E.D.'):
"The majority of the horses there [in Australia] are vicious
and given to the trick of buck jumping." [It may be worth while
to add that this is not strictly accurate.]
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 94:
"`I should say that buck jumping was produced in this country
by bad breaking,' said Mr. Neuchamp oracularly. `Don't you
believe it, sir. Bucking is like other vices--runs in the
blood.'"
Buck-shot, n. a settlers' term for a
geological formation. See quotation.
1851. `The Australasian Quarterly,' p. 459:
"The plain under our feet was everywhere furrowed by Dead
men's graves, and generally covered with the granulated
lava, aptly named by the settlers buck-shot, and found
throughout the country on these trappean `formations.
Buck-shot is always imbedded in a sandy alluvium,
sometimes several feet thick."
Buddawong, n. a variation of Burrawang
(q.v.).
1877. Australie, `The Buddawong's Crown,' `Australian Poets,'
1788-1888, ed. Sladen, p. 39:
"A Buddawong seed-nut fell to earth,
In a cool and mossy glade,
And in spring it shot up its barbed green swords,
Secure 'neath the myrtle's shade.
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
And the poor, poor palm has died indeed.
But little the strangers care,
`There are zamias in plenty more,' they say,
But the crown is a beauty rare."
Budgeree, adj. aboriginal word for good, which
is common colloquially in the bush. See Budgerigar.
1793. J.Hunter, `Port Jackson,' p. 195:
"They very frequently, at the conclusion of the dance, would
apply to us . . . for marks of our approbation . . . which we
never failed to give by often repeating the word
boojery, good; or boojery caribberie, a good
dance."
Budgerigar, or Betcherrygah, n.
aboriginal name for the bird called by Gould the Warbling
Grass-parrakeet; called also Shell-parrot and
Zebra- Grass-parrakeet. In the Port Jackson dialect
budgeri, or boodgeri, means good, excellent. In
`Collins' Vocabulary' (1798), boodjer-re = good. In New South
Wales gar is common as first syllable of the name for
the white cockatoo, as garaweh. See Galah. In
the north of New South Wales kaar= white cockatoo. The
spelling is very various, but the first of the two above given
is the more correct etymologically. In the United States it is
spelt beauregarde, derived by `Standard' from French
beau and regarde, a manifest instance of the law
of Hobson -Jobson.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 297:
"The betshiregah (Melopsittacus Undulatus, Gould) were
very numerous."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. Pl. 44:
"Melopsittacus Undulatus. Warbling Grass-Parrakeet.
Canary Parrot--colonists. Betcherrygah--natives of
Liverpool Plains."
1857. Letter, Nov.17, in `Life of Fenton J. A. Hort' (1896), vol.
i. p. 388:
"There is also a small green creature like a miniature
cockatoo, called a Budgeragar, which was brought from
Australia. He is quaint and now and then noisy, but not
on the whole a demonstrative being."
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. i. p. 48:
"Young paroquets, the green leeks, and the lovely speckled
budgregores."
1865. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 7:
"I saw several pairs of those pretty grass or zebra parroquets,
which are called here by the very inharmonious name of
`budgereghars.'"
2890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. xiv. p. 127:
"The tiny budgeriegar, sometimes called the shell parrot."
Bugle, n. name given to the Australian plant
Ajuga australis, R. Br., N.O. Labiatae.
Bugler, n. a name given in Tasmania to the fish
Centriscus scolopax, family Centriscidae; called
in Europe the Trumpet-fish, Bellows-fish, the
latter name being also used for it in Tasmania. The structure
of the mouth and snout suggests a musical instrument, or,
combined with the outline of the body, a pair of bellows. The
fish occurs also in Europe.
Bugong, or Bogong, or Bougong,
n. an Australian moth, Danais limniace, or
Agrotis spina, eaten by the aborigines.
1834. Rev. W. B. Clarke, `Researches in the Southern Gold Fields
of New South Wales' (second edition), p. 228:
"These moths have obtained their name from their occurrence on
the `Bogongs' or granite mountains. They were described by my
friend Dr. Bennett in his interesting work on `New South
Wales,' 1832-4, as abundant on the Bogong Mountain, Tumut
River. I found them equally abundant, and in full vigour, in
December, coming in clouds from the granite peaks of the
Muniong Range. The blacks throw them on the fire and eat
them."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 355:
"The westward range is called the Bougongs. The blacks during
summer are in the habit of coming thus far to collect and feed
on the great grey moths (bougongs) which are found on the
rocks."
1871. `The Athenaeum,' May 27, p. 660:
"The Gibbs Land and Murray districts have been divided into the
following counties: . . . Bogong (native name of grubs and
moths)."
1878. R. Brough Smyth, `The Aborigines of Victoria,'
vol. i. p. 207
"The moths--the Bugong moths(Agrolis suffusa) are
greedily devoured by the natives; and in former times, when
they were in season, they assembled in great numbers to eat
there, and they grew fat on this food." [Also a long footnote.]
1890. Richard Helms, `Records of the Australian Museum,'
vol. i. No. 1:
"My aim was to obtain some `Boogongs,' the native name for the
moths which so abundantly occur on this range, and no doubt
have given it its name."
1896. `Sydney Mail,' April 4, Answers to Correspondents:
"It cannot be stated positively, but it is thought that the
name of the moth `bogong' is taken from that of the mountain.
The meaning of the word is not known, but probably it is an
aboriginal word."
Bull-a-bull, or Bullybul, n. a child's
corruption of the Maori word Poroporo (q.v.), a
flowering shrub of New Zealand. It is allied to the
Kangaroo-Apple (q.v.).
1845. `New Plymouth's National Song,' in Hursthouse's `New
Zealand,' p. 217:
"And as for fruit, the place is full
Of that delicious bull-a-bull."
Bullahoo, n. See Ballahoo.
Bull-ant, n. contracted and common form of the
words Bull-dog Ant (q.v.).
Bull-dog Ant, n. (frequently shortened to
Bull-dog or Bull-ant), an ant of large size with
a fierce bite. The name is applied to various species of the
genus Myrmecia, which is common throughout Australia and
Tasmania.
1878. Mrs. H. Jones, `Long Years in Australia,' p. 93:
"Busy colonies of ants (which everywhere infest the
country). . . One kind is very warlike--the `bull-dog':
sentinels stand on the watch, outside the nest, and in case of
attack disappear for a moment and return with a whole army of
the red-headed monsters, and should they nip you, will give you
a remembrance of their sting never to be forgotten."
1888. Alleged `Prize Poem,' Jubilee Exhibition:
"The aborigine is now nearly extinct,
But the bull-dog-ant and the kangaroo rat
Are a little too thick--I think."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 142:
"Where the wily free-selector walks in armour-plated pants,
And defies the stings of scorpion and the bites of bull-dog
ants."
Bull-dog Shark, i.q. Bull-head (1) (q.v.).
Bull-head, n. The name is applied to many
fishes of different families in various parts of the world,
none of which are the same as the following two. (1) A shark
of Tasmania and South Australia of small size and harmless,
with teeth formed for crushing shells, Heterodontus
phillipi , Lacep., family Cestraciontidae; also
called the Bull-dog Shark, and in Sydney, where it is
common, the Port-Jackson Shark : the aboriginal name was
Tabbigan. (2) A freshwater fish of New Zealand,
Eleotris gobioides, Cuv.and Val., family
Gobiidae. See Bighead.
Bulln-Bulln, n. an aboriginal name for the
Lyre-bird (q.v.). This native name is imitative. The most
southerly county in Victoria is called Buln-Buln; it is
the haunt of the Lyre-bird.
1857. D. Bunce, `Travels with Leichhardt in Australia,' p. 70:
"We afterwards learned that this was the work of the Bullen
Bullen, or Lyre-bird, in its search for large worms, its
favourite food."
1871. `The Athenaeum,' May 27, p. 660:
"The Gipps Land and Murray districts have been divided into the
following counties: . . . Buln Buln (name of Lyre-bird)."
Bull-Oak, n. See Oak.
Bullocky, n. and adj. a bullockdriver."
In the bush all the heavy hauling is done with bullock-drays.
It is quite a common sight up the country to see teams of a
dozen and upwards." (B. and L.)
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xii. p. 121:
"By George, Jack, you're a regular bullocky boy."
Bull-puncher, or Bullock-puncher,
n. slang for a bullockdriver. According to Barrere and
Leland's `Slang Dictionary,' the word has a somewhat different
meaning in America, where it means a drover. See Punch.
1872. C. N. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 49:
"The `bull-puncher,' as bullock-drivers are familiarly called."
1873. J. Mathew, song `Hawking,' in `Queenslander,' Oct. 4:
"The stockmen and the bushmen and the shepherds leave the station,
And the hardy bullock-punchers throw aside their occupation."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 143:
"These teams would comprise from five to six pairs of bullocks
each, and were driven by a man euphoniously termed a
`bull-puncher.' Armed with a six-foot thong, fastened to a
supple stick seven feet long. . . ."
Bull-rout, n. a fish of New South Wales,
Centropogon robustus, Guenth., family
Scorpaenidae.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 48:
"It emits a loud and harsh grunting noise when it is
caught. . . . The fisherman knows what he has got by the noise
before he brings his fish to the surface. . . . When out of the
water the noise of the bull-rout is loudest, and it spreads its
gills and fins a little, so as to appear very formidable. . . .
The blacks held it in great dread, and the name of bull-rout
may possibly be a corruption of some native word."
Bull's-eye, n. a fish of New South Wales,
Priacanthus macracanthus, Cuv.and Val.
Priacanthus, says Guenther, is a percoid fish with short
snout, lower jaw and chin prominent, and small rough scales all
over them and the body generally. The eye large, and the
colour red, pink, or silvery.
1884. E. P. Ramsay, `Fisheries Exhibition Literature,' vol. v.
p. 311:
"Another good table-fish is the `bull's-eye,' a beautiful
salmon-red fish with small scales. . . . At times it enters
the harbours in considerable numbers; but the supply is
irregular."
Bulls-wool, n. colloquial name for the inner
portion of the covering of the Stringybark-tree (q.v.).
This is a dry finely fibrous substance, easily disintegrated by
rubbing between the hands. It forms a valuable tinder for
kindling a fire in the bush, and is largely employed for that
purpose. It is not unlike the matted hair of a bull, and is
reddish in colour, hence perhaps this nickname, which is common
in the Tasmanian bush.
Bully, n. a Tasmanian fish, Blennius
tasmanianus, Richards., family Blennidae.
Bulrush, n. See Wonga and Raupo.
Bung, to go, v. to fail, to become bankrupt.
This phrase of English school-boy slang, meaning to go off with
an explosion, to go to smash (also according to Barrere and
Leland still in use among American thieves), is in very
frequent use in Australia. In Melbourne in the times that
followed the collapse of the land-boom it was a common
expression to say that Mr. So-and-so had "gone bung," sc. filed
his schedule or made a composition with creditors; or that an
institution had "gone bung," sc. closed its doors, collapsed.
In parts of Australia, in New South Wales and Queensland, the
word "bung" is an aboriginal word meaning "dead," and even
though the slang word be of English origin, its frequency of
use in Australia may be due to the existence of the aboriginal
word, which forms the last syllable in Billabong (q.v.),
and in the aboriginal word milbung blind, literally,
eye-dead.
(a) The aboriginal word.
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 430:
"A place called Umpie Bung, or the dead houses."
[It is now a suburb of Brisbane, Humpy-bong.]
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 175
[in Blacks' pigeon English]:
"Missis bail bong, ony cawbawn prighten. (Missis not dead,
only dreadfully frightened.)"
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 73:
"But just before you hands 'im [the horse] over and gets
the money, he goes bong on you" (i.e. he dies).
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p: 142:
"Their [the blacks'] ordinary creed is very simple. `Directly
me bung (die) me jump up white feller,' and this seems to be
the height of their ambition."
1895. `The Age,' Dec. 21, p. 13, col. 6:
"`Then soon go bong, mummy,' said Ning, solemnly.
`Die,' corrected Clare. You mustn't talk blacks' language.'
`Suppose you go bong,' pursued Ning reflectively, `then you go
to Heaven.'"
(b) The slang word.
1885. `Australian Printers' Keepsake,' p. 40:
"He was importuned to desist, as his musical talent had
`gone bung,' probably from over-indulgence in confectionery."
1893. `The Argus,' April 15 (by Oriel), p. 13, col. 2:
"Still change is humanity's lot. It is but the space of a day
Till cold is the damask cheek, and silent the eloquent tongue,
All flesh is grass, says the preacher, like grass it is withered
away,
And we gaze on a bank in the evening, and lo, in the morn
'tis bung."
1893. Professor Gosman, `The Argus,' April 24, p. 7, col. 4:
"Banks might fail, but the treasures of thought could never go
`bung.'"
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), April 25, p. 2, col. 4:
"Perhaps Sydney may supply us with a useful example. One
member of the mischief-making brotherhood wrote the words `gone
bung' under a notice on the Government Savings Bank, and he was
brought before the Police Court charged with damaging the
bank's property to the extent of 3d. The offender offered the
Bench his views on the bank, but the magistrates bluntly told
him his conduct was disgraceful, and fined him L 3 with costs,
or two months' imprisonment."
Bunga or Bungy, n. a New Zealand
settlers' corruption of the Maori word punga (q.v.).
Bunt, n. a Queensland fungus growing on wheat,
fetid when crushed. Tilletia caries, Tul.,
N.O. Fungi.
Bunya-Bunya, n. aboriginal word. [Bunyi
at heads of Burnett, Mary, and Brisbane rivers, Queensland;
baanya, on the Darling Downs.] An Australian tree,
Araucaria bidwillii, Hooker, with fruit somewhat like
Bertholletia excelsa, N.O. Coniferae.
Widgi-Widgi station on the Mary was the head-quarters for the
fruit of this tree, and some thousands of blacks used to
assemble there in the season to feast on it; it was at this
assembly that they used to indulge in cannibalism ; every third
year the trees were said to bear a very abundant crop. The
Bunya-Bunya mountains in Queensland derive their name from this
tree.
1843. L. Leichhardt, Letter in `Cooksland, by J. D. Lang,
p. 82:
"The bunya-bunya tree is noble and gigantic, and its
umbrella-like head overtowers all the trees of the bush."
1844. Ibid. p. 89:
"The kernel of the Bunya fruit has a very fine aroma,
and it is certainly delicious eating."
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 25:
"The Bunya-Bunya or Araucaria on the seeds of which
numerous tribes of blacks are accustomed to feed."
1879. W. R. Guilfoyle, `First Book of Australian Botany,' p. 58:
"A splendid timber tree of South Queensland, where it forms
dense forests, one of the finest of the Araucaria tribe,
attaining an approximate height of 200 feet. The Bunya-Bunya
withstands drought better than most of the genus, and
flourishes luxuriantly in and around Melbourne."
1887. J. Mathew, in Curr's `Australian Race,' vol. iii. p. 161:
[A full account.] "In laying up a store of bunyas, the blacks
exhibited an unusual foresight. When the fruit was in season,
they filled netted bags with the seeds, and buried them."
1889. Hill, quoted by J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 7:
"The cones shed their seeds, which are two to two and a half
inches long by three-quarters of an inch broad; they are sweet
before being perfectly ripe, and after that resemble roasted
chestnuts in taste. They are plentiful once in three years,
and when the ripening season arrives, which is generally in the
month of January, the aborigina&ls assemble in large numbers
from a great distance around, and feast upon them. Each tribe
has its own particular set of trees, and of these each family
has a certain number allotted, which are handed down from
generation to generation with great exactness. The bunya is
remarkable as being the only hereditary property which any of
the aborigines are known to possess, and it is therefore
protected by law. The food seems to have a fattening effect on
the aborigines, and they eat large quantities of it after
roasting it at the fire."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 377:
"The `Bunya-bunya' of the aboriginals--a name invariably
adopted by the colonists."
1892. J. Fraser, `Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 50:
"The Bunya-bunya tree, in the proper season, bears a fir cone
of great size--six to nine inches long-and this, when roasted,
yields a vegetable pulp, pleasant to eat and nutritious."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 19, p. 7, col. 1:
"There is a beautiful bunya-bunya in a garden just beyond, its
foliage fresh varnished by the rain, and toning from a rich
darkness to the very spring tint of tender green."
Bunyip, n. (1) the aboriginal name of a
fabulous animal. See quotations. For the traditions of the
natives on this subject see Brough Smyth, `Aborigines of
Victoria,' vol. i. p. 435.
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 391:
"Certain large fossil bones, found in various parts of
Australia Felix, have been referred by the natives, when
consulted on the subject by the colonists, to a huge animal of
extraordinary appearance, called in some districts the Bunyup,
in others the Kianpraty, which they assert to be still alive.
It is described as of amphibious character, inhabiting deep
rivers, and permanent water-holes, having a round head, an
elongated neck, with a body and tail resembling an ox. These
reports have not been unattended to, and the bunyup is said to
have been actually seen by many parties, colonists as well as
aborigines. . . .[A skull which the natives said was that of a
`piccinini Kianpraty' was found by Professor Owen to be that of
a young calf. The Professor] considers it all but impossible
that such a large animal as the bunyup of the natives can be
now living in the country. [Mr. Westgarth suspects] it is only
a tradition of the alligator or crocodile of the north."
1849. W. S. Macleay, `Tasmanian journal,' vol. iii. p. 275:
"On the skull now exhibited at the Colonial Museum of Sydney as
that of the Bunyip."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 214:
"Did my reader ever hear of the Bunyip (fearful name to the
aboriginal native!) a sort of `half-horse, half-alligator,'
haunting the wide rushy swamps and lagoons of the interior?"
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 258:
"The river is too deep, child, and the Bunyip lives in the
water under the stones."
1865. `Once a Week,' Dec. 31, p. 45, The Bulla Bulla Bunyip':
"Beyond a doubt, in `Lushy Luke's' belief, a Bunyip had taken
temporary lodgings outside the town. This bete noire of
the Australian bush Luke asserted he had often seen in bygone
times. He described it as being bigger than an elephant, in
shape like a `poley' bullock, with eyes like live coals, and
with tusks like a walrus's. * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
"What the Bunyip is, I cannot pretend to say, but I think it is
highly probable that the stories told by both old bushmen and
blackfellows, of some bush beast bigger and fiercer than any
commonly known in Australia, are founded on fact. Fear and the
love of the marvellous may have introduced a considerable
element of exaggeration into these stories, but I cannot help
suspecting that the myths have an historical basis."
1872. C. Gould, `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society
of Tasmania,' 1872, p. 33:
"The belief in the Bunyip was just as prevalent among the
natives in parts hundreds of miles distant from any stream in
which alligators occur. . . . Some other animal must be sought
for." . . . [Gould then quotes from `The Mercury' of April 26,
1872, an extract from the `Wagga Advertiser']: "There really is
a Bunyip or Waa-wee, actually existing not far from us . . . in
the Midgeon Lagoon, sixteen miles north of Naraudera . . . I
saw a creature coming through the water with tremendous
rapidity . . . . The animal was about half as long again as an
ordinary retriever dog, the hair all over its body was jet
black and shining, its coat was very long." [Gould cites other
instances, and concludes that the Bunyip is probably a seal.]
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 202:
"In the south-eastern part of Australia the evil spirit of the
natives is called Bunjup, a monster which is believed to
dwell in the lakes. It has of late been supposed that this is
a mammal of considerable size that has not yet been discovered
. . . is described as a monster with countless eyes and
ears. . . . He has sharp claws, and can run so fast that it is
difficult to escape him. He is cruel, and spares no one either
young or old."
1894. `The Argus,' June 23, p. 11, col. 4:
"The hollow boom so often heard on the margin of reedy swamps
--more hollow and louder by night than day--is the mythical
bunyip, the actual bittern."
(2) In a secondary sense, a synonym for an impostor.
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 214:
"One advantage arose from the aforesaid long-deferred discovery
--a new and strong word was adopted into the Australian
vocabulary: Bunyip became, and remains a Sydney synonoyme for
impostor, pretender, humbug, and the like. The black
fellows, however, unaware of the extinction, by superior
authority, of their favourite loup-garou, still continue
to cherish the fabulous bunyip in their shuddering
imagination."
1853. W. C. Wentworth--Speech in August quoted by Sir Henry
Parkes in `Fifty Years of Australian History' (1892),
vol. i. p. 41:
"They had been twitted with attempting to create a mushroom, a
Brummagem, a bunyip aristocracy; but I need scarcely observe
that where argument fails ridicule is generally resorted to for
aid."
Burnet, Native, n. The name is given in
Australia to the plant Acaena ovina, Cunn.,
N.O. Rosaceae.
Burnett Salmon, n. one of the names given to
the fish Ceratodus forsteri, Krefft. See
Burramundi.
Burnt-stuff, n. a geological term used by miners.
See quotation.
1853. Mrs. Chas. Clancy, `Lady's Visit to Gold Diggings,' p. 112:
"The top, or surface soil, for which a spade or shovel is used,
was of clay. This was succeeded by a strata almost as hard as
iron--technically called `burnt-stuff'--which robbed the pick
of its points nearly as soon as the blacksmith had steeled them
at a charge of 2s. 6d. a point."
Bur, n. In Tasmania the name is applied to
Acaena rosaceae, Vahl., N.O. Rosaceae.
Burramundi, or Barramunda, n. a
fresh-water fish, Osteoglossum leichhardtii, Guenth.,
family Osteoglossidae, found in the Dawson and Fitzroy
Rivers, Queensland. The name is also incorrectly applied by
the colonists to the large tidal perch of the Fitzroy River,
Queensland, Lates calcarifer, Guenth., a widely
distributed fish in the East Indies, and to Ceratodus
forsteri, Krefft, family Sirenidae, of the Mary and
Burnett Rivers, Queensland. Burramundi is the aboriginal name
for O. leichhardtii. The spelling barramunda is
due to the influence of barracouta (q.v.). See
Perch.
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,'
vol. i. p. 189:
"There is a fish too at Rockhampton called the burra mundi,--
I hope I spell the name rightly,--which is very commendable."
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 357:
"Ceratodus. . . . Two species, C. forsteri and
C. miolepis, are known from fresh-waters of
Queensland. . . . Locally the settlers call it `flathead,'
`Burnett or Dawson salmon,' and the aborigines `barramunda,' a
name which they apply also to other largescaled fresh-water
fishes, as the Osteoglossum leichhardtii. . . . The
discovery of Ceratodus does not date farther back than
the year 1870."
1882. W. Macleay, `Descriptive Catalogue of Australian fishes'
('Proceedings of the Linnaean Society of New South Wales,'
vol. vi. p. 256):
"Osteoglossum leichhardtii, Gunth. Barramundi of the
aborigines of the Dawson River."
1892. Baldwin Spencer, `Proceedings of the Royal Society
of Victoria,' vol. iv. [Note on the habits of Ceratodus
forsterii]
"It has two common names, one of which is the `Burnett Salmon'
and the other the `Barramunda" . . . the latter name . . . is
properly applied to a very different form, a true teleostean
fish (Osteoglossum leichhardtii) which is
found . . . further north . . . in the Dawson and
Fitzroy . . . Mr. Saville Kent states that the Ceratodus is much
prized as food. This is a mistake, for, as a matter of fact,
it is only eaten by Chinese and those who can afford to get
nothing better."
Burrawang, or Burwan, n. an Australian
nut-tree, Macrozamia spiralis, Miq.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 221:
"The burwan is a nut much relished by our natives, who prepare
it by roasting and immersion in a running stream, to free it
from its poisonous qualities."
1851. J. Henderson, `Excursions in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 238
"The Burrowan, which grows in a sandy soil, and produces
an inedible fruit, resembling the pine-apple in appearance."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 41:
"Burrawang nut, so called because they used to be, and are to
some extent now, very common about Burrawang, N.S.W. The nuts
are relished by the aboriginals. An arrowroot of very good
quality is obtained from them."
Bush, n. Not originally an Australian
application. "Recent, and probably a direct adoption of the
Dutch Bosch, in colonies originally Dutch" (`O.E.D.'),
[quoting (1780) Forster, in `Phil. Trans.' lxxi. 2, "The common
Bush-cat of the Cape;" and (1818) Scott, `Tapestr. Chamber,'
"When I was in the Bush, as the Virginians call it"].
"Woodland, country more or less covered with natural wood
applied to the uncleared or untitled districts in the British
Colonies which are still in a state of nature, or largely so,
even though not wooded; and by extension to the country as
opposed to the towns." (`O.E.D.')
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 48:
"I have spent a good deal of my time in the woods, or bush, as
it is called here.'
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 85:
"With the exception of two or three little farms, comprising
about 20 or 30 acres of cultivation, all was `bush' as it is
colonially called. The undergrowth was mostly clear, being
covered only with grass or herbs, with here and there some low
shrubs."
1837. J. D. Lang, `New South Wales,' vol. i. p. 253:
"His house was well enough for the bush, as the country is
generally termed in the colony."
1855. From a letter quoted in Wathen's `The Golden Colony,'
p. 117:
"`The Bush,' when the word is used in the towns, means all the
uninclosed and uncultivated country . . . when in the country,
`the Bush' means more especially the forest. The word itself
has been borrowed from the Cape, and is of Dutch origin."
1857. `The Argus,' Dec. 14, p. 5, col. 7:
"`Give us something to do in or about Melbourne, not away in
the bush,' says the deputation of the unemployed."
1861. T. McCombie,' Australian Sketches,' p. 123:
"At first the eternal silence of the bush is oppressive, but a
short sojourn is sufficient to accustom a neophyte to the new
scene, and he speedily becomes enamoured of it."
1865. J. F. Mortlock, `Experiences of a Convict,' p. 83:
"The `bush,' a generic term synonymous with `forest' or
`jungle,' applied to all land in its primaeval condition,
whether occupied by herds or not."
1872. A. McFarland, `Illawarra and Manaro,' p. 113:
"All the advantages of civilized life have been surrendered
for the bush, its blanket and gunyah."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,'
vol. i. p. 250:
"The technical meaning of the word `bush.' The bush is the
gum-tree forest, with which so great a part of Australia is
covered, that folk who follow a country life are invariably
said to live in the bush. Squatters who look after their own
runs always live in the bush, even though their sheep are
pastured on plains. Instead of a town mouse and a country
mouse in Australia, there would be a town mouse and a bush
mouse; but mice living in the small country towns would still
be bush mice."
Ibid. c. xx. p. 299:
"Nearly every place beyond the influence of the big towns is
called `bush,' even though there should not be a tree to be
seen around."
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 67, n.:
"Bush was a general term for the interior. It might be thick
bush, open bush, bush forest, or scrubby bushterms which
explain themselves."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 40:
"The first thing that strikes me is the lifeless solitude of
the bush. . . . There is a deep fascination about the freedom
of the bush."
1890. E. W. Hornung [Title]:
"A Bride from the Bush."
1896. `Otago Daily Times,' Jan. 27, p. 2, col. 5:
"Almost the whole of New South Wales is covered with bush.
It is not the bush as known in New Zealand. It is rather
a park-like expanse, where the trees stand widely apart,
and where there is grass on the soil between them."
Bush, adj. or in composition, not always
easy to distinguish, the hyphen depending on the fancy of the
writer.
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 75:
"The round trundling of our cart wheels, it is well known, does
not always improve the labours of Macadam, much less a bush
road."
1848. Letter by Mrs. Perry, given in Canon Goodman's `Church
in Victoria, during Episcopate of Bishop Perry,'p. 75:
"A hard bush sofa, without back or ends."
1849. J. Sidney, `Emigrants' Journal, and Travellers'
Magazine,' p. 40 (Letter from Caroline Chisholm):
"What I would particularly recommend to new settlers is
`Bush Partnership'--Let two friends or neighbours agree
to work together, until three acres are cropped, dividing the
work, the expense, and the produce--this partnership will grow
apace; I have made numerous bush agreements of this kind . . .
I never knew any quarrel or bad feeling result from these
partnerships, on the contrary, I believe them calculated to
promote much neighbourly good will; but in the association of a
large number of strangers, for an indefinite period, I have no
confidence."
1857. W. Westgarth, `Victoria,' c. xi. p. 250:
"The gloomy antithesis of good bushranging and bad bush-roads."
[Bush-road, however, does not usually mean a made-road through
the bush, but a road which has not been formed, and is in a
state of nature except for the wear of vehicles upon it, and
perhaps the clearing of trees and scrub.]
1864. `The Reader,' April 2, p. 40, col. 1 (`O.E.D.'):
"The roads from the nascent metropolis still partook mainly of
the random character of `bush tracks.'"
1865. W. Hewitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. p. 211:
"Dr. Wills offered to go himself in the absence of any more
youthful and, through bush seasoning, qualified person."
1880. `Blackwood's Magazine,' Feb., p. 169 [Title]:
"Bush-Life in Queensland."
1881. R. M. Praed, `Policy and Passion,' c. i. p. 59:
"The driver paused before a bush inn."
[In Australia the word "inn" is now rare. The word "hotel"
has supplanted it.]
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv.p. 3:
"Not as bush roads go. The Australian habit is here followed
of using `bush' for country, though no word could be more
ludicrously inapplicable, for there is hardly anything on the
way that can really be called a bush."
1894. `Sydney Morning Herald' (exact date lost):
"Canada, Cape Colony, and Australia have preserved the old
significance of Bush--Chaucer has it so--as a territory on
which there are trees; it is a simple but, after all, a kindly
development that when a territory is so unlucky as to have no
trees, sometimes, indeed, to be bald of any growth whatever,
it should still be spoken of as if it had them."
1896. Rolf Boldrewood, in preface to `The Man from Snowy
River':
"It is not easy to write ballads descriptive of the bushland
of Australia, as on light consideration would appear."
1896. H. Lawson, `While the Billy boils,' p. 104:
"About Byrock we met the bush liar in all his glory. He was
dressed like--like a bush larrikin. His name was Jim."
Bush-faller, n. one who cuts down timber in the
bush.
1882. `Pall Mall Gazette,' June 29, p. 2, col. 1:
"A broken-down, deserted shanty, inhabited once, perhaps, by
rail-splitters or bush-fallers." [`O.E.D.,' from which this
quotation is taken, puts (?) before the meaning; but "To fall"
is not uncommon in Australia for "to fell."]
Bush-fire, n. forests and grass on fire in hot
summers.
1868. C. Dilke, `Greater Britain,' vol. ii. part iii. c. iii.
p. 32:
"The smoke from these bush-fires extends for hundreds of miles
to sea."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xxii. p. 156:
"A reserve in case of bush-fires and bad seasons."
Bush-lawyer, n. (1) A Bramble.
See Lawyer.
(2) Name often used for a layman who fancies he knows all about
the law without consulting a solicitor. He talks a great deal,
and `lays down the law.'
1896. H. G. Turner, `Lecture on J. P. Fawkner':
"For some years he cultivated and developed his capacity for
rhetorical argument by practising in the minor courts of law in
Tasmania as a paid advocate, a position which in those days,
and under the exceptional circumstances of the Colony, was not
restricted to members of the legal profession, and the term
Bush Lawyer probably takes its origin from the practice of this
period."
Bush-magpie, n. an Australian bird, more
commonly called a Magpie (q.v.).
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 235:
". . . the omnipresent bush-magpie. Here he may warble all the
day long on the liquid, mellifluous notes of his Doric flute,
fit pipe indeed for academic groves . . . sweetest and brightest,
most cheery and sociable of all Australian birds."
Bushman, n. (1) Settler in the bush.
Used to distinguish country residents from townsfolk.
1852. `Blackwood's Magazine,' p. 522 (`O.E.D.'):
"Where the wild bushman eats his loathly fare."
1880. J. Mathew, song, `The Bushman:'
"How weary, how dreary the stillness must be!
But oh! the lone bushman is dreaming of me."
1886. Frank Cowan: `Australia; a Charcoal Sketch':
"The bushman . . . Gunyah, his bark hovel; Damper,
his unleavened bread baked in the ashes; Billy, his
tea-kettle, universal pot and pan and bucket; Sugar-bag,
his source of saccharine, a bee-tree; Pheasant, his
facetious metaphoric euphism for Liar, quasi Lyre-bird; Fit
for Woogooroo, for Daft or Idiotic; Brumby, his
peculiar term for wild horse; Scrubber, wild ox;
Nuggeting, calf-stealing; Jumbuck, sheep, in
general; an Old-man, grizzled wallaroo or kangaroo;
Station, Run, a sheep- or cattle-ranch; and
Kabonboodgery--an echo of the sound diablery for ever in
his ears, from dawn to dusk of Laughing Jackass and from dusk
to dawn of Dingo--his half-bird -and-beast-like vocal
substitute for Very Good. . . ."
1896. H.Lawson, `While the Billy boils,' p. 71:
"He was a typical bushman, . . . and of the old bush school;
one of those slight active little fellows, whom we used to see
in cabbage-tree hats, Crimean shirts, strapped trousers, and
elastic-side boots."
(2) One who has knowledge of the bush, and is skilled in its
ways. A "good bushman" is especially used of a man who can
find his way where there are no tracks.
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, Founder of Victoria,' pp. 78, 79:
"It is hardly likely that so splendid a bushman as Mr. Batman
would venture upon such an expedition had he not been well.
In fact a better bushman at this time could not be met with."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 3:
"The worst bushman had to undertake the charge of the camp,
cook the provisions, and look after the horses, during the
absence of the rest on flying excursions."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 40:
"Very slight landmarks will serve to guide a good bushman,
for no two places are really exactly alike."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 78:
"One of the best bushmen in that part of the country: the men
said he could find his way over it blindfold, or on the darkest
night that ever was."
(3) Special sense. See quotation.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 80:
"Some were what is termed, par excellence, bushmen--that
is, men who split rails, get posts, shingles, take contracts
for building houses, stockyards, etc.--men, in fact, who work
among timber continually, sometimes felling and splitting,
sometimes sawing."
Bushmanship, n. knowledge of the ways of the
bush.
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 261:
"A good laugh at the bushmanship displayed."
Bushranger, n. one who ranges or traverses the
bush, far and wide; an Australian highwayman; in the early days
usually an escaped convict. Shakspeare uses the verb `to
range' in this connection.
"Then thieves and robbers range abroad unseen
In murders and in outrage, boldly here."
(`Richard II.,' III. ii. 39.)
"Ranger" is used in modern English for one who protects
and not for one who robs; as `the Ranger' of a Park.
1806. May 4, `Sydney Gazette' or `New South Wales Advertiser,
given in `History of New South Wales,' p. 265:
"Yesterday afternoon, William Page, the bushranger repeatedly
advertised, was apprehended by three constables."
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description of New South Wales,'
p. 166:
[The settlements in Van Diemen's Land have] "been infested for
many years past by a banditti of runaway convicts, who have
endangered the person and property of every one. . . . These
wretches, who are known in the colony by the name of
bushrangers. . ."
1820. Lieut. Chas. Jeffreys, `Van Dieman's [sic] Land,' p. 15:
"The supposition . . . rests solely on the authority of the Bush
Rangers, a species of wandering brigands, who will be elsewhere
described."
1838. T. L. `Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 9:
"Bushrangers, a sub-genus in the order banditti, which happily
can now only exist there in places inaccessible to the mounted
police."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 81:
"This country [Van Diemen's Land] is as much infested as New
South Wales with robbers, runaway convicts, or, as they are
termed, Bush-rangers."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 77:
"The whole region was infested by marauding bands of
bush-rangers, terrible after nightfall."
1887. J. F. Hogan, `The Irish in Australia, p. 252:
"Whilst he was engaged in this duty in Victoria, a band
of outlaws--'bushrangers' as they are colonially termed--
who had long defied capture, and had carried on a career
of murder and robbery, descended from their haunts in
the mountain ranges."
Bush-ranging, n. the practice of the Bushranger
(q.v.).
1827. `Captain Robinson's Report,' Dec. 23
"It was a subject of complaint among the settlers, that their
assigned servants could not be known from soldiers, owing to
their dress; which very much assisted the crime of
`bush-ranging.'"
Bush-scrubber, n. a bushman's word for a boor,
bumpkin, or slatternly person. See Scrubber.
1896. Modern. Up-country manservant on seeing his new
mistress:
"My word! a real lady! she's no bush-scrubber!"
Bush-telegraph, n. Confederates of bushrangers
who supply them with secret information of the movements of the
police.
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 507:
"The police are baffled by the false reports of the
confederates and the number and activity of the bush
telegraphs."
1893. Kenneth Mackay, `Out Back,' p. 74:
"A hint dropped in this town set the bush telegraphs riding in
all directions."
Bushwoman, n. See quotation.
1892. `The Australasian,' April 9, p. 707, col. 1:
"But who has championed the cause of the woman of the bush--
or, would it be more correct to say bushwoman, as well as
bushman?--and allowed her also a claim to participate in the
founding of a nation?"
Bush-wren, n. See Wren.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 108:
[A full description.]
Bushed, adj., quasi past participle,
lost in the bush; then, lost or at a loss.
1661. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 115:
"I left my seat to reach a shelter, which was so many miles
off, that I narrowly escaped being `bushed.'"
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. i. p. 283:
"The poor youth, new to the wilds, had, in the expressive
phrase of the colonials, got bushed, that is, utterly
bewildered, and thus lost all idea of the direction that he
ought to pursue."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 29:
"I get quite bushed in these streets."
1896. `The Argus,' Jan. 1, p. 4, col. 9:
"The Ministry did not assume its duty of leading the House, and
Mr. Higgins graphically described the position of affairs by
stating that the House was `bushed;' while Mr. Shiels compared
the situation to a rudderless ship drifting hither and
thither."
Bustard, n. "There are about twenty species,
mostly of Africa, several of India, one of Australia, and three
properly European." (`Century.') The Australian variety is
Eupodotis australis, Gray, called also Wild
Turkey, Native Turkey, and Plain Turkey. See
Turkey.
Buster, Southerly, n. The word is a corruption
of `burster,' that which bursts. A sudden and violent squall
from the south. The name, used first in Sydney, has been
adopted also in other Australian cities. See Brickfielder.
1863. F. Fowler, in `Athenaeum,' Feb. 21, p. 264, col. 1:
"The cold wind or southerly buster which . . . carries a thick
cloud of dust . . . across the city."
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 587:
"Southerly Busters by `Ironbark.'"
1886. F. Cowan, `Australia, a Charcoal Sketch':
"The Buster and Brickfielder: austral red-dust blizzard;
and red-hot Simoom."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' p. 40:
"Generally these winds end in what is commonly called a
`southerly buster.' This is preceded by a lull in the hot
wind; then suddenly (as it has been put) it is as though a
bladder of cool air were exploded, and the strong cool
southerly air drives up with tremendous force. However
pleasant the change of temperature may be it is no mere pastime
to be caught in a `southerly buster,' but the drifting rain
which always follows soon sets matters right, allays the dust,
and then follows the calm fresh bracing wind which is the more
delightful by contrast with the misery through which one has
passed for three long dreary days and nights."
1893. `The Australasian,' Aug. 12, p. 302, col. 1:
"You should see him with Commodore Jack out in the teeth
of the `hard glad weather,' when a southerly buster sweeps
up the harbour."
1896. H. A.Hunt, in `Three Essays on Australian Weather'
(Sydney), p. 16:
An Essay on Southerly Bursters, . . . with Four Photographs
and Five Diagrams."
[Title of an essay which was awarded the prize of L 25 offered
by the Hon. Ralph Abercrombie.]
Butcher, n. South Australian slang for a long
drink of beer, so-called (it is said) because the men of a
certain butchery in Adelaide used this refreshment regularly;
cf. "porter" in England, after the drink of the old London
porters.
Butcher-bird, n. The name is in use elsewhere,
but in Australia it is applied to the genus Cracticus.
The varieties are--
The Butcher-bird--
Cracticus torquatus, Lath.; formerly
C. destructor, Gould.
Black B.--
C. quoyi, Less.
Black-throated B.--
C. nigrigularis, Gould.
Grey B. (Derwent Jackass)--
C. cinereus, Gould (see Jackass).
Pied B.--
C. picatus, Gould.
Rufous B.--
C. rufescens, De Vis.
Silver-backed B.--
C. argenteus, Gould.
Spalding's B.--
C. spaldingi, Masters.
White-winged B.--
C. leucopterus, Cav.
The bird is sometimes called a Crow-shrike.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 213:
"Mr. Caley observes--Butcher-bird. This bird used frequently
to come into some green wattle-trees near my house, and in wet
weather was very noisy; from which circumstance it obtained the
name of `Rain-bird.'"
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. Pl. 52:
"Cracticus Destructor. Butcher Bird, name given by
colonists of Swan River, a permanent resident in New South
Wales and South Australia. I scarcely know of any Australian
bird so generally dispersed."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 50:
"Close to the station one or two butcher-birds were piping
their morning song, a strange little melody with not many
notes, which no one who has heard it will ever forget."
Buttercup, n. The familiar English flower is
represented in Australia and Tasmania by various species of
Ranunculus, such as R. lappaceus, Sm.,
N.O. Ranunculaceae.
Butter-fish, n. a name given in Australia to
Oligorus mitchellii, Castln. (see Murray Perch);
in Victoria, to Chilodactylus nigricans, Richards. (see
Morwong); in New Zealand, to Coridodax pullus,
Forst., called also Kelp-fish. The name is in allusion
to their slippery coating of mucus. See Kelp-fish.
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip,' vol. iii. p. 44:
"In the bay are large quantities of . . . butter-fish."
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 533:
"The `butter-fish,' or `kelp-fish' of the colonists of New
Zealand (C. pullus), is prized as food, and attains to a
weight of four or five pounds."
Butterfly-conch, n. Tasmanian name for a marine
univalve mollusc, Voluta papillosa, Swainson.
Butterfly-fish, n. a New Zealand sea-fish,
Gasterochisma melampus, Richards., one of the
Nomeidae. The ventral fins are exceedingly broad and
long, and can be completely concealed in a fold of the abdomen.
The New Zealand fish is so named from these fins; the European
Butterfly-fish, Blennius ocellaris, derives its name
from the spots on its dorsal fin, like the eyes in a peacock's
tail or butterfly's wing.
Butterfly-Lobster, n. a marine crustacean, so
called from the leaf-like expansion of the antennae. It is
"the highly specialized macrourous decapod Ibacus
Peronii." (W. A. Haswell.)
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 248:
"Those curious crustaceans that I have heard called `butterfly
lobsters'. . . the shell of the head and body (properly known
as the carapace) expands into something like wing-forms,
entirely hiding the legs beneath them."
Butterfly-Plant, n. a small flowering plant,
Utricularia dichotoma, Lab., N.O. Leutibularina.
Button-grass, n. Schaenus
sphaerocephalus, Poiret, N.O. Cyperaceae. The grass
is found covering barren boggy land in Tasmania, but is not
peculiar to Tasmania. So called from the round shaped flower
(capitate inflorescence), on a thin stalk four or five feet
long, like a button on the end of a foil.
Buzzard, n. an English bird-name applied in
Australia to Gypoictinia melanosternon, Gould, the
Black-breasted Buzzard.
C
Cabbage Garden, a name applied to the colony of
Victoria by Sir John Robertson, the Premier of New South Wales,
in contempt for its size.
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' p. 30:
"`The cabbage garden,' old cynical Sir John Robertson, of New
South Wales, once called Victoria, but a garden
notwithstanding. Better at any rate `the cabbage garden' than
the mere sheep run or cattle paddock."
Cabbage-Palm, n. same as Cabbage-tree
(1) (q.v.).
Cabbage-tree, n (1)Name given to various palm
trees of which the heart of the young leaves is eaten like the
head of a cabbage. In Australia the name is applied to the fan
palm, Livistona inermis, R. Br., and more commonly to
Livistona australis, Martius. In New Zealand the name
is given to various species of Cordyline, especially to
Cordyline indivisa. See also Flame-tree (2).
1769. `Capt. Cook's Journal,' ed. Wharton (1893), p. 144:
"We likewise found one Cabage Tree which we cut down for the
sake of the cabage."
1802. G.Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 60:
"Even the ships crews helped, except those who brought the
cabbage trees."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. c. iv.
p. 132:
"Cabbage-tree . . . grew in abundance."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 72:
"Several of my companions suffered by eating too much of the
cabbage-palm."
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. i. p. 414:
"Clumps of what the people of King George's Sound call
cabbage-trees."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 240:
"There stands an isolated `cabbage-tree' (Ti of the natives;
Cordyline Australis) nearly thirty feet high, with
ramified branches and a crown of luxuriant growth."
(2) A large, low-crowned, broad-brimmed hat, made out of the
leaves of the Cabbage-tree (Livistona).
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' 335:
"This hat, made of white filaments of the cabbage-tree,
seemed to excite the attention of the whole party."
1852. G. F. P., `Gold Pen and Pencil Sketches,' xv.:
"With scowl indignant flashing from his eye,
As though to wither each unshaven wretch,
Jack jogs along, nor condescends reply,
As to the price his cabbage-tree might fetch."
1864. `Once a Week,' Dec. 31, p. 45, The Bulla Bulla Bunyip':
"Lushy Luke endeavoured to sober himself by dipping his head in
the hollowed tree-trunk which serves for the water-trough of an
up-country Australian inn. He forgot, however, to take off his
`cabbage-tree' before he ducked, and angry at having made a
fool of himself, he gave fierce orders, in a thick voice, for
his men to fall in, shoulder arms, and mark time."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. pp. 160, 161:
"The cabbage-palm was also a new species, called by Mr. Brown
the Livistonia inermis. It was abundant; but the
cabbage (the heart of the young budding leaves) too small to be
useful as an article of food, at least to a ship's company.
But the leaves were found useful. These dried and drawn into
strips were plaited into hats for the men, and to this day the
cabbage-tree hat is very highly esteemed by the Australians, as
a protection from the sun, and allowing free ventilation."
[Note]: "A good cabbage-tree hat, though it very much resembles
a common straw hat, will fetch as much as L3."
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 527:
". . . trousers, peg-top shaped, and wore a new cabbage-tree
hat."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 33:
"A brand-new cabbage-tree hat protected his head."
Cabbage-tree Mob, and Cabbagites, obsolete
Australian slang for modern Larrikins (q.v)., because
wearing cabbage-tree hats.
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes `(edition 1855), p. 17:
"There are to be found round the doors of the Sydney Theatre a
sort of `loafers' known as the Cabbage-tree mob,--a
class who, in the spirit of the ancient tyrant, one might
excusably wish had but one nose in order to make it a bloody
one. . . . Unaware of the propensities of the cabbagites he
was by them furiously assailed."
Cad, n. name in Queensland for the Cicada
(q.v.).
1896. `The Australasian,' Jan. 11, p. 76, col. 1:
"From the trees sounds the shrill chirp of large green cicada
(native cads as the bushmen call them)."
Caddie, n. a bush name for the slouch-hat or
wide-awake. In the Australian bush the brim is generally
turned down at the back and sometimes all round.
Cadet, n. term used in New Zealand,
answering to the Australian Colonial Experience,
or jackaroo (q.v.).
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 68:
"A cadet, as they are called--he is a clergyman's son learning
sheepfarming under our auspices."
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 6:
"The military designation of cadet was applied to any young
fellow who was attached to a sheep or cattle station in the
same capacity as myself. He was `neither flesh nor fowl nor
good red herring,' neither master nor man. He was sent to work
with the men, but not paid."
Caloprymnus, n. the scientific name of the
genus called the Plain Kangaroo-Rat.
(Grk. kalos, beautiful, and prumnon, hinder
part.) It has bright flanks. See Kangaroo-Rat.
Camp, n. (1) A place to live in, generally
temporary; a rest.
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' pp. 46, 47:
" I was shown my camp, which was a slab but about a hundred
yards away from the big house. . . . I was rather tired, and
not sorry for the prospect of a camp."
(2) A place for mustering cattle.
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 64:
"All about the run, at intervals of fire or six miles, are
cattle-camps, and the cattle that belong to the surrounding
districts are mustered on their respective camps."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 26:
"There was never his like in the open bush,
And never his match on the cattle-camps."
(3) In Australia, frequently used for a camping-out expedition.
Often in composition with "out," a camp-out.
1869. `Colonial Monthly,' vol. iv.p. 289:
"A young fellow with even a moderate degree of sensibility must
be excited by the novelty of his first `camp-out' in the
Australian bush."
1880. R. H. Inglis, `Australian Cousins,' p. 233:
"We're going to have a regular camp; we intend going to Port
Hocking to have some shooting, fishing, and general diversion."
(4) A name for Sydney and for Hobart, now long obsolete,
originating when British military forces were stationed there.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 70:
"It is the old resident--he who still calls Sydney, with its
population of twelve thousand inhabitants, the
camp,--that can appreciate these things: he who still
recollects the few earth-huts and solitary tents scattered
through the forest brush surrounding Sydney Cove (known
properly then indeed by the name of `The Camp')."
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 193:
"Living during the winter in Hobarton, usually called `the
camp,' in those days."
Camp, v. (1) Generally in composition with
"out," to sleep in the open air, usually without any covering.
Camping out is exceedingly common in Australia owing to the
warmth of the climate and the rarity of rain.
1867. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 125:
"I like to hear of benighted or belated travellers when they
have had to `camp out,' as it is technically called."
1875. R. and F. Hill, `What we saw in Australia,' p. 208:
"So the Bishop determined to `camp-out' at once where a good
fire could be made."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 43:
"There is room here for fifty, rolled up on the floor; and
should that fail them, there is no end of other places; or the
bush, as a fall back, where, indeed, some of them prefer
camping as it is."
1891. `The Australasian,' Nov. 14, p. 963, col. 1: `A Lady in
the Kermadecs':
"For three months I `camped out' there alone, shepherding a
flock of Angoras."
(2) By extension, to sleep in any unusual place, or at an
unusual time.
1893. `Review of Reviews' (Australasian ed. ), March, p. 51:
"The campaign came to an abrupt and somewhat inglorious close,
Sir George Dibbs having to `camp' in a railway carriage, and
Sir Henry Parkes being flood-bound at Quirindi."
1896. Modern:
"Visitor,--`Where's your Mother?' `Oh, she's camping.'" [The
lady was enjoying an afternoon nap indoors.]
(3) To stop for a rest in the middle of the day.
1891. Mrs. Cross (Ada Cambridge), `The Three Miss Kings,'
p. 180:
"We'll have lunch first before we investigate the caves--if
it's agreeable to you. I will take the horses out, and we'll
find a nice place to camp before they come."
(4) To floor or prove superior to. Slang.
1886. C. H. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 207:
"At punching oxen you may guess
There's nothing out can camp him.
He has, in fact, the slouch and dress,
Which bullock-driver stamp him."
Camphor-wood, n. an Australian timber; the wood
of Callitris (Frenea) robusta, Cunn.,
N.O. Coniferae. Called also Light, Black, White,
Dark, and Common Pine, as the wood varies much in
its colouring. See Pine.
Canajong, n. Tasmanian aboriginal name for
the plants called Pig-faces (q.v.).
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 44:
"Pig-faces. It was the canajong of the Tasmanian
aboriginal. The fleshy fruit is eaten raw by the aborigines:
the leaves are eaten baked."
Canary, n. (1) A bird-name used in New Zealand
for Clitonyx ochrocephala, called also the
Yellow-head. Dwellers in the back-blocks of Australia
apply the name to the Orange-fronted Ephthianura
(E. aurifrons, Gould), and sometimes to the
White-throated Gerygone (Gerygone albigularis).
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 56:
"Clitonyx Ochrocephala. Yellow-head. `Canary' of the
colonists."
(2) Slang for a convict. See quotations. As early as 1673,
`canary-bird' was thieves' English for a gaol-bird.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 117:
"Convicts of but recent migration are facetiously known by the
name of canaries, by reason of the yellow plumage in
which they are fledged at the period of landing."
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' c. ii. p. 72:
"The prisoners were dressed in yellow-hence called `canary
birds.'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. vi. p. 49:
"Can't you get your canaries off the track here for about
a quarter of an hour, and let my mob of cattle pass ?"
Candle-nut, n. The name is given in Queensland
to the fruit of Aleurites moluccana, Willd.,
N.O. Euphorbiaceae. The nuts are two or more inches
diameter. The name is often given to the tree itself, which
grows wild in Queensland and is cultivated in gardens there
under the name of A. triloba, Forst. It is not endemic
in Australia, but the vernacular name of Candle-nut is
confined to Australia and the Polynesian Islands.
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 472:
"Candle-nut. The kernels when dried and stuck on a reed are
used by the Polynesian Islanders as a substitute for candles,
and as an article of food in New Georgia. These nuts resemble
walnuts somewhat in size and taste. When pressed they yield a
large proportion of pure palatable oil, used as a drying-oil
for paint, and known as country walnut-oil and artists' oil."
Cane-grass, n. i.q. Bamboo-grass
(q.v.).
Cape-Barren Goose, n. See Goose.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 114,
[Footnote]:
"The `Cape Barren Goose' frequents the island from which it
takes its name, and others in the Straits. It is about the
same size as a common goose, the plumage a handsome mottled
brown and gray, somewhat owl-like in character."
[Cape Barren Island is in Bass Strait, between Flinders Island
and Tasmania. Banks Strait flows between Cape Barren Island
and Tasmania. The easternmost point on the island is called
Cape Barren.]
Cape-Barren Tea, n. a shrub or tree, Correa
alba, Andr., N.O. Rutaceae.
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 134:
"Leptospermum lanigerum, hoary tea-tree; Acacia
decurrens, black wattle; Correa alba, Cape Barren
tea. The leaves of these have been used as substitutes for tea
in the colony."
Cape Lilac, n. See Lilac.
Cape Weed, n. In Europe, Roccella
tinctoria, a lichen from the Cape de Verde Islands, from
which a dye is produced. In New Zealand, name given to the
European cats-ear, Hypaechoris radicata. In Australia
it is as in quotation below. See `Globe Encyclopaedia,' 1877
(s.v.).
1878. W. R. Guilfoyle, `First Book of Australian Botany,'
p. 60:
"Cape Weed. Cryptostemma Calendulaceum. (Natural
Order, Compositae.) This weed, which has proved such
a pest in many parts of Victoria, was introduced from the Cape
of Good Hope, as a fodder plant. It is an annual, flowering
in the spring, and giving a bright golden hue to the fields.
It proves destructive to other herbs and grasses, and though
it affords a nutritious food for stock in the spring, it dies
off in the middle of summer, after ripening its seeds, leaving
the fields quite bare."
Caper-tree, n. The Australian tree of this name
is Capparis nobilis, F. v. M., N.O. Capparideae.
The Karum of the Queensland aboriginals. The fruit is
one to two inches in diameter. Called also Grey Plum or
Native Pomegranate. The name is also given to
Capparis Mitchelli, Lindl. The European caper is
Capparis spinosa, Linn.
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue, Economic Woods,' p. 10:
"Native Caper Tree or Wild Pomegranate. Natural Order,
Capparideae. Found in the Mallee Scrub. A small tree.
The wood is whitish, hard, close-grained, and suitable for
engraving, carving, and similar purposes. Strongly resembles
lancewood."
Captain Cook, or Cooker, n. New
Zealand colonists' slang. First applied to the wild pigs of
New Zealand, supposed to be descended from those first
introduced by Captain Cook; afterwards used as term of reproach
for any pig which, like the wild variety, obstinately refused
to fatten. See Introduction.
1879. W. Quin, `New Zealand Country Journal,' vol. iii. p. 55:
"Many a rare old tusker finds a home in the mountain gorges.
The immense tusks at Brooksdale attest the size of the wild
boars or Captain Cooks, as the patriarchs are generally named."
1894. E. Wakefield, `New Zealand after Fifty Years,' p. 85:
"The leanness and roughness of the wild pig gives it quite a
different appearance from the domesticated variety; and hence a
gaunt, ill-shaped, or sorry-looking pig is everywhere called in
derision a `Captain Cook.'"
Carbora, n. aboriginal name for (1) the
Native Bear. See Bear.
(2) A kind of water worm that eats into timber between high and
low water on a tidal river.
Cardamom, n. For the Australian tree of this
name, see quotation.
1890. C. Lumholtz,' Among Cannibals,' p. 96:
"The Australian cardamom tree." [Footnote]: "This is a
fictitious name, as are the names of many Australian plants and
animals. The tree belongs to the nutmeg family, and its real
name is Myristica insipida. The name owes its
existence to the similarity of the fruit to the real cardamom.
But the fruit of the Myristica has not so strong and
pleasant an odour as the real cardamom, and hence the tree is
called insipida."
Carp, n. The English fish is of the family
Cyprinidae. The name is given to different fishes in
Ireland and elsewhere. In Sydney it is Chilodactylus
fuscus, Castln., and Chilodactylus macropterus,
Richards.; called also Morwong (q.v.). The Murray
Carp is Murrayia cyprinoides, Castln., a percoid
fish. Chilodactylis belongs to the family
Cirrhitidae, in no way allied to Cyprinidae,
which contains the European carps. Cirrhitidae, says
Guenther, may be readily recognized by their thickened
undivided lower pectoral rays, which in some are evidently
auxiliary organs of locomotion, in others, probably, organs of
touch.
Carpet-Shark, n. i.q. Wobbegong (q.v.)
Carpet-Snake, n. a large Australian snake with
a variegated skin, Python variegata, Gray. In
Whitworth's `Anglo-Indian Dictionary,' 1885 (s.v.), we are told
that the name is loosely applied (sc. in India) to any kind of
snake found in a dwelling-house other than a cobra or a dhaman.
In Tasmania, a venomous snake, Hoplocephalus curtus,
Schlegel. See under Snake.
Carrier, n. a local name for a water-bag.
1893. A. F. Calvert, `English Illustrated,' Feb., p. 321:
"For the water-holders or `carriers' (made to fit the bodies of
the horses carrying them, or to `ride easily' on
pack-saddles)."
Carrot, Native, (1) Daucus brachiatus, Sieb.,
N.O. Umbelliferae. Not endemic in Australia.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 64:
"The native carrot . . . was here withered and in seed."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 124:
"Native carrot. Stock are very fond of this plant when young.
Sheep thrive wonderfully on it where it is plentiful. It is a
small annual herbaceous plant, growing plentifully on sandhills
and rich soil; the seeds, locally termed `carrot burrs,' are
very injurious to wool, the hooked spines with which the seeds
are armed attaching themselves to the fleece, rendering
portions of it quite stiff and rigid. The common carrot
belongs, of course, to this genus, and the fact that it is
descended from an apparently worthless, weedy plant, indicates
that the present species is capable of much improvement by
cultivation."
(2) In Tasmania Geranium dissectum, Linn., is also
called "native carrot."
Cascarilla, Native, n. an Australian timber,
Croton verreauxii, Baill., N.O. Euphorbiaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 408:
"Native cascarilla. A small tree; wood of a yellowish colour,
close-grained and firm."
Cassowary, n. The word is Malay, the genus
being found in "the Islands in the Indian Archipelago."
(`O.E.D.') The Australian variety is Casuarius
australis, Waller. The name is often erroneously applied
(as in the first two quotations), to the Emu (q.v.), which is
not a Cassowary.
1789. Governor Phillip, `Voyage,' c. xxii. p. 271:
"New Holland Cassowary. [Description given.] This bird is not
uncommon to New Holland, as several of them have been seen
about Botany Bay, and other parts. . . . Although this bird
cannot fly, it runs so swiftly that a greyhound can scarcely
overtake it. The flesh is said to be in taste not unlike
beef."
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,'
c. xi. p. 438:
"The cassowary of New South Wales is larger in all respects
than the well-known bird called the cassowary."
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia' (Supplement):
"Casuarius Australis, Wall., Australian Cassowary,
sometimes called Black Emu."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 73:
"One day an egg of a cassowary was brought to me; this bird,
although it is nearly akin to the ostrich and emu, does not,
like the latter, frequent the open plains, but the thick
brushwood. The Australian cassowary is found in Northern
Queensland from Herbert river northwards, in all the large
vine-scrubs on the banks of the rivers, and on the high
mountains of the coasts."
Ibid. p. 97.
"The proud cassowary, the stateliest bird of Australia
. . . this beautiful and comparatively rare creature.'"
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"The Australian cassowary. . . . They are somewhat shorter
and stouter in build than the emu."
Casuarina, n. the scientific name of a large
group of trees common to India, and other parts lying between
India and Australasia, but more numerous in Australia than
elsewhere, and often forming a characteristic feature of the
vegetation. They are the so-called She-oaks (q.v.). The
word is not, however, Australian, and is much older than the
discovery of Australia. Its etymology is contained in the
quotation, 1877.
1806. `Naval Chronicles,' c. xv. p. 460:
"Clubs made of the wood of the Casuarina."
1814. R. Brown, `Botany of Terra Australis,' in M. Flinders'
`Voyage to Terra Australis,' vol. ii. p. 571:
"Casuarinae. The genus Casuarina is certainly not
referable to any order of plants at present established
. . . it may be considered a separate order. . . . The maximum
of Casuarina appears to exist in Terra Australis, where it
forms one of the characteristic features of the vegetation."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 160:
"The dark selvage of casuarinas fringing its bank."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 10:
"The vegetation assumed a new character, the eucalyptus and
casuarina alternating with the wild cherry and honeysuckle."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 34:
"The scientific name of these well-known plants is as
appropriate as their vernacular appellation is odd and
unsuited. The former alludes to the cassowary (Casuarius), the
plumage of which is comparatively as much reduced among birds,
as the foliage of the casuarinas is stringy among trees. Hence
more than two centuries ago Rumph already bestowed the name
Casuarina on a Java species, led by the Dutch colonists, who
call it there the Casuaris-Boom. The Australian vernacular
name seems to have arisen from some fancied resemblance of the
wood of some casuarinas to that of oaks, notwithstanding the
extreme difference of the foliage and fruit; unless, as
Dr. Hooker supposes, the popular name of these trees and shrubs
arose from the Canadian `Sheack.'"
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 397:
"From a fancied resemblance of the wood of casuarinas to that
of oak, these trees are called `oaks,' and the same and
different species have various appellations in various parts."
1890. C. Lumholtz; `Among Cannibals,' p. 33:
"Along its banks (the Comet's) my attention was drawn to a
number of casuarinas--those leafless, dark trees, which always
make a sad impression on the traveller; even a casual observer
will notice the dull, depressing sigh which comes from a grove
of these trees when there is the least breeze.'"
Cat-bird, n. In America the name is given to
Mimus carolinensis, a mocking thrush, which like the
Australian bird has a cry resembling the mewing of a cat. The
Australian species are--
The Cat-bird--
Ailuraedus viridis, Lath.
Spotted C.--
Ailuraedus maculosus, Ramsay.
Pomatostomus rubeculus, Gould.
Tooth-billed C.--
Scenopaeus dentirostris, Ramsay.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 11:
"Its loud, harsh and extraordinary note is heard; a note which
differs so much from that of all other birds, that having been
once heard it can never be mistaken. In comparing it to the
nightly concert of the domestic cat, I conceive that I am
conveying to my readers a more perfect idea of the note of this
species than could be given by pages of description. This
concert, like that of the animal whose name it bears, is
performed either by a pair or several individuals, and nothing
more is required than for the hearer to shut his eyes from the
neighbouring foliage to fancy himself surrounded by London
grimalkins of house-top celebrity."
1888. D.Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 36:
"One of the most peculiar of birds' eggs found about the Murray
is that of the locally-termed `cat-bird,' the shell of which is
veined thickly with dark thin threads as though covered with a
spider's web."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals.' p. 96:
"The cat-bird (AEluraedus maculosus), which makes its
appearance towards evening, and has a voice strikingly like the
mewing of a cat."
1893. `The Argus,' March 25:
"Another quaint caller of the bush is the cat-bird, and its
eggs are of exactly the colour of old ivory."
1896. G. A. Keartland, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,'
pt. ii. Zoology, p. 92:
"Their habit of mewing like a cat has gained for them the local
cognomen of cat-birds."
Cat-fish, n. The name is applied in the Old
World to various fishes of the family Siluridae, and
also to the Wolf-fish of Europe and North America. It arises
from the resemblance of the teeth in some cases or the
projecting "whiskers" in others, to those of a cat. In
Victoria and New South Wales it is a fresh-water fish,
Copidoglanis tandanus, Mitchell, brought abundantly to
Melbourne by railway. It inhabits the rivers of the Murray
system, but not of the centre of the continent. Called also
Eel-fish and Tandan (q.v.). In Sydney the same
name is applied also to Cnidoglanis megastoma, Rich.,
and in New Zealand Kathetostoma monopterygium.
Cnidoglanis and Cnidoglanis are Siluroids, and
Kathetostoma is a"stargazer," i.e. a fish having eyes
on the upper surface of the head, belonging to the family
Trachinidsae.
1851. J. Henderson, `Excursions in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 207:
"The Cat-fish, which I have frequently caught in the McLeay,
is a large and very ugly animal. Its head is provided with
several large tentacatae, and it has altogether a disagreeable
appearance. I have eat its flesh, but did not like it."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 213
[Footnote]:
"Mr. Frank Buckland . . . writing of a species of rock-fish,
says--`I found that it had a beautiful contrivance in the
conformation of its mouth. It has the power of prolongating
both its jaws to nearly the extent of half-an-inch from their
natural position. This is done by a most beautiful bit of
mechanism, somewhat on the principle of what are called `lazy
tongs.' The cat-fish possesses a like feature, but on a much
larger scale, the front part of the mouth being capable of
being protruded between two and three inches when seizing
prey.'"
Cat, Native, n. a small carnivorous marsupial,
of the genus Dasyurus. The so-called native cat is not
a cat at all, but a marsupial which resembles a very large rat
or weasel, with rather a bushy tail. It is fawn-coloured or
mouse-coloured, or black and covered with little white spots; a
very pretty little animal. It only appears at night, when it
climbs fences and trees and forms sport for moonlight shooting.
Its skin is made into fancy rugs and cloaks or mantles.
The animal is more correctly called a Dasyure (q.v.).
The species are--
Black-tailed Native Cat
Dasyurus geoffroyi, Gould.
Common N.C. (called also Tiger Cat, q.v.)--
D. viverrimus, Shaw.
North Australian N.C.--
D. hallucatus, Gould.
Papuan N.C.--
D. albopienetatus, Schl.
Slender N.C.--
D. gracilis, Ramsay.
Spotted-tailed N.C. (called also Tiger Cat)--
D. maculatus, Kerr.
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 67:
"The native cat is similar [to the Tiger Cat; q.v.] but
smaller, and its for is an ashy-grey with white spots.
We have seen two or three skins quite black, spotted with white,
but these are very rare."
1885. H. H.Hayter, `Carboona,' p. 35:
"A blanket made of the fur-covered skins of the native cat."
1894. `The Argus,' June 23, p. 11, col. 4:
"The voices of most of our night animals are guttural and
unpleasing. The 'possum has a throaty half-stifled squeak,
the native cat a deep chest-note ending with a hiss and easily
imitated." [See Skirr.]
Catholic Frog, n. name applied to a frog living
in the inland parts of New South Wales, Notaden
bennettii, Guenth., which tides over times of drought in
burrows, and feeds on ants. Called also "Holy Cross Toad."
The names are given in consequence of a large cross-shaped
blackish marking on the back.
1801. J. J. Fletcher, `Proceedings of the Linnaean Society,
New South Wales,' vol. vi. (2nd series), p. 265:
"Notaden bennettii, the Catholic frog, or as I have
heard it called the Holy Cross Toad, I first noticed in January
1885, after a heavy fall of rain lasting ten days, off and on,
and succeeding a severe drought."
Cat's Eyes, n. Not the true Cat's-eye,
but the name given in Australia to the opercula of Turbo
smaragdus, Martyn, a marine mollusc. The operculum is the
horny or shelly lid which closes the aperture of most spiral
shell fish.
Cat's-head Fern, n. Aspidium aculeatum, Sw.:
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 220:
"The cat's-head fern; though why that name was given to it I
have not the remotest idea. . . . It is full of beauty--the
pinnules so exquisitely formed and indented, and gemmed beneath
with absolute constellations of Spori Polystichum
vestitum."
Catspaw, n. a Tasmanian plant, Trichinium
spathulatum, Poir., N.O. Amarantaceae.
Cat's Tail, n. See Wonga.
Cattle-bush, n. a tree, Atalaya
hemiglauca, F. v. M., N.O. Sapindacea.
It is found in South Australia, New South Wales,
and Queensland, and is sometimes called Whitewood.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 117:
"Cattle-bush . . . The leaves of this tree are eaten by stock,
the tree being frequently felled for their use during seasons
of drought."
Cattle-duffer, n. a man who steals cattle
(usually by altering their brands). See also Duffer.
1886. `Melbourne Punch,' July 15, Cartoon Verses:
"Cattle-duffers on a jury may be honest men enough,
But they're bound to visit lightly sins in those
who cattle duff."
Cattle-racket, n. Explained in quotation.
1852. `Settlers and Convicts; or Recollections of Sixteen
Years' Labour in the Australian Backwoods,' p. 294:
"A Cattle-racket. The term at the head of this chapter was
originally applied in New South Wales to the agitation of
society which took place when some wholesale system of plunder
in cattle was brought to light. It is now commonly applied to
any circumstance of this sort, whether greater or less, and
whether springing from a felonious intent or accidental."
Caustic-Creeper, n. name given to Euphorbia
drummondii, Boiss., N.O. Euphorbiaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 127:
"Called `caustic-creeper' in Queensland. Called `milk-plant'
and `pox-plant' about Bourke. This weed is unquestionably
poisonous to sheep, and has recently (Oct. 1887) been reported
as having been fatal to a flock near Bourke, New South
Wales. . . . When eaten by sheep in the early morning, before
the heat of the sun has dried it up, it is almost certain to be
fatal. Its effect on sheep is curious. The head swells to an
enormous extent, becoming so heavy that the animal cannot
support it, and therefore drags it along the ground; the ears
suppurate. (Bailey and Gordon.)"
Caustic-Plant, or Caustic-Vine,
n. Sarcostemma australis, R. Br., N.O.
Asclepiadea. Cattle and sheep are poisoned by eating it.
Cavally, n. the original form of the Australian
fish-name Trevally (q.v.). The form Cavally is
used to Europe, but is almost extinct in Australia; the form
Trevally is confined to Australia.
Cedar, n. The true Cedar is a Conifer
(N.O. Coniferae) of the genus Cedrus, but the
name is given locally to many other trees resembling it in
appearance, or in the colour or scent of their wood. The New
Zealand Cedar is the nearest approach to the true
Cedar, and none of the so-called Australian
Cedars are of the order Coniferae. The following
are the trees to which the name is applied in Australia:--
Bastard Pencil Cedar--
Dysoxylon rfum, Benth., N.O. Meliaceae.
Brown C.--
Ehretia acuminata, R. Br., N.O. Asperifoliae.
Ordinary or Red C.-- Cedrela australis, F. v. M.
Cedrela toona, R. Br., N.O. Meliaceae.
[C. toona is the "Toon" tree of India: its timber is
known in the English market as Moulmein Cedar; but the Baron
von Mueller doubts the identity of the Australian Cedar with
the "Toon" tree; hence his name australis.]
Pencil C.--
Dysoxylon Fraserianum, Benth., N.O. Meliaceae.
Scrub White C.-- Pentaceras australis, Hook. and Don.,
N.O. Rutacea.
White C.--
Melia composita, Willd., N.O. Meliaceae.
Yellow C.--
Rhus rhodanthema, F. v. M., N.O. Anacardiacae.
In Tasmania, three species of the genus Arthrotaxis are
called Cedars or Pencil Cedars; namely, A. cupressoides,
Don., known as the King William Pine; A. laxifolza,
Hook., the Mountain Pine; and A. selaginoides, Don., the
Red Pine. All these are peculiar to the island.
In New Zealand, the name of Cedar is applied to Libocedrus
bidwillii, Hook., N.O. Coniferae; Maori name,
Pahautea.
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions, vol. i. p. 328:
"The cedar of the colony (Cedrela toona, R. Br.), which
is to be found only in some rocky gullies of the coast range."
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 63:
"Besides being valuable as a timber-producing tree, this red
cedar has many medicinal properties. The bark is spoken of as
a powerful astringent, and, though not bitter, said to be a
good substitute for Peruvian bark in the cure of remitting and
intermitting fevers."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 123:
"Pahautea, Cedar. A handsome conical tree sixty to eighty feet
high, two to three feet in diameter. In Otago it produces a
dark-red, freeworking timber, rather brittle . . . frequently
mistaken for totara."
Celery, Australian, or Native,
n. Apium australe, Thon. Not endemic
in Australia. In Tasmania, A. prostratum, Lab.,
N.O. Umbelliferae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 7:
"Australian Celery. This plant may be utilised as a culinary
vegetable. (Mueller.) It is not endemic in Australia."
Celery-topped Pine. n. See Pine. The
tree is so called from the appearance of the upper part of the
branchlets, which resemble in shape the leaf of the garden
celery.
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 9:
"The tanekaha is one of the remarkable `celery-topped pines,'
and was discovered by Banks and Solander during Cook's first
voyage."
Centaury, Native, n. a plant, Erythraea
australis, R. Br., N.O. Gentianeae. In New South
Wales this Australian Centaury has been found useful in
dysentery by Dr. Woolls.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 175:
"Native centaury . . . is useful as a tonic medicine, especially
in diarrhoea and dysentery. The whole plant is used and is
pleasantly bitter. It is common enough in grass-land, and
appears to be increasing in popularity as a domestic remedy."
Centralia, n. a proposed name for the colony
South Australia ,(q.v.).
1896. J. S. Laurie, `Story of Australasia,' p. 299:
"For telegraphic, postal, and general purposes one word is
desirable for a name--e.g. why not Centralia; for West
Australia, Westralia; for New South Wales, Eastralia?"
Cereopsis, n. scientific name of the genus
of the bird peculiar to Australia, called the Cake Barren
Goose. See Goose. The word is from Grk.
kaeros, wax, and 'opsis, face, and was given
from the peculiarities of the bird's beak. The genus is
confined to Australia, and Cereopsis novae-hollandiae
is the only species known. The bird was noticed by the early
voyagers to Australia, and was extraordinarily tame when first
discovered.
Channel-Bill, n. name given to a bird
resembling a large cuckoo, Scythrops novae-hollandiae,
Lath. See Scythrops.
Cheesewood, n. a tree, so-called in Victoria (it
is also called Whitewood and Waddywood in Tasmania),
Pittosporum bicolor, Hook., N.O. Pittosporeae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 588:
"Cheesewood is yellowish-white, very hard, and of uniform
texture and colour. It was once used for clubs by the
aboriginals of Tasmania. It turns well, and should be tested
for wood engraving. (`Jurors' Reports, London International
Exhibition of 1862.') It is much esteemed for axe-handles,
billiard-cues, etc."
Cherry, Herbert River, n. a Queensland tree,
Antidesma dallachyanum, Baill., N.O. Euphorbiaceae.
The fruit is equal to a large cherry in size, and has a sharp acid
flavour.
Cherry, Native, n. an Australian tree,
Exocarpus cupressiformis, R. Br.,
N.O. Santalaceae.
1801. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 242:
"Of native fruits, a cherry, insipid in comparison of the
European sorts, was found true to the singularity which
characterizes every New South Wales production, the stone being
on the outside of the fruit."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 411:
"The shrub which is called the native cherry-tree appears like
a species of cyprus, producing its fruit with the stone united
to it on the outside, the fruit and the stone being each about
the size of a small pea. The fruit, when ripe, is similar in
colour to the Mayduke cherry, but of a sweet and somewhat
better quality, and slightly astringent to the palate,
possessing, upon the whole, an agreeable flavour."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1851, p. 219:
"The cherry-tree resembles a cypress but is of a tenderer
green, bearing a worthless little berry, having its stone or
seed outside, whence its scientific name of exocarpus."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 33:
"We also ate the Australian cherry, which has its stone, not on
the outside, enclosing the fruit, as the usual phrase would
indicate, but on the end with the fruit behind it. The
stone is only about the size of a sweet-pea, and the fruit only
about twice that size, altogether not unlike a yew-berry, but
of a very pale red. It grows on a tree just like an arbor
vitae, and is well tasted, though not at all like a cherry in
flavour."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 40:
"The principal of these kinds of trees received its generic
name first from the French naturalist La Billardiere, during
D'Entrecasteaux's Expedition. It was our common Exocarpus
cupressiformis, which he described, and which has been
mentioned so often in popular works as a cherry-tree, bearing
its stone outside of the pulp. That this crude notion of the
structure of the fruit is erroneous, must be apparent on
thoughtful contemplation, for it is evident at the first
glance, that the red edible part of our ordinary exocarpus
constitutes merely an enlarged and succulent fruit-stalklet
(pedicel), and that the hard dry and greenish portion,
strangely compared to a cherry-stone, forms the real fruit,
containing the seed."
1889. J. H. `Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 30:
"The fruit is edible. The nut is seated on the enlarged
succulent pedicel. This is the poor little fruit of which so
much has been written in English descriptions of the
peculiarities of the Australian flora. It has been likened to
a cherry with the stone outside (hence the vernacular name) by
some imaginative person."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 19, p. 7, col. 1:
"Grass-trees and the brown brake-fern, whips of native cherry,
and all the threads and tangle of the earth's green russet
vestment hide the feet of trees which lean and lounge between
us and the water, their leaf heads tinselled by the light."
Cherry-picker, n. bird-name. See quotation.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. p. 70:
"Melithreptus Validirostris, Gould. Strong-billed
Honey-eater [q.v.]. Cherry-picker, colonists of Van Diemen's
Land."
Chestnut Pine, n. See Pine.
Chewgah-bag, n. Queensland aboriginal
pigeon-English for Sugar-bag (q.v.).
Chinkie, n. slang for a Chinaman. "John,"
short for John Chinaman, is commoner.
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 233:
"The pleasant traits of character in our colonialised `Chinkie,'
as he is vulgarly termed (with the single variation `Chow')."
Chock-and-log, n. and adj. a particular
kind of fence much used on Australian stations. The
Chock is a thick short piece of wood laid flat, at
right-angles to the line of the fence, with notches in it to
receive the Logs, which are laid lengthwise from
Chock to Chock, and the fence is raised in four
or five layers of this chock-and-log to form, as it
were, a wooden wall. Both chocks and logs are rough-hewn or
split, not sawn.
1872. G. S. Baden-Powell,'New Homes for the Old Country,' p. 207:
"Another fence, known as `chock and log,' is composed of long
logs, resting on piles of chocks, or short blocks of wood."
1890. `The Argus.' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 5:
"And to finish the Riverine picture, there comes a herd of
kangaroos disturbed from their feeding-ground, leaping through
the air, bounding over the wire and `chock-and-log' fences like
so many india-rubber automatons."
Choeropus, n. the scientific name for the genus
of Australian marsupial animals with only one known species,
called the Pigfooted-Bandicoot (q.v.), and see
Bandicoot. (Grk. choiros, a pig,
and pous, foot.) The animal is about the size
of a rabbit, and is confined to the inland parts of Australia.
Christmas, n. and adj. As Christmas
falls in Australasia at Midsummer, it has different
characteristics from those in England, and the word has
therefore a different connotation.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' p. 184:
"Sheep-shearing in November, hot midsummer weather at
Christmas, the bed of a river the driest walk, and corn
harvest in February, were things strangely at variance
with my Old-World notions."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 164:
"One Christmas time when months of drought
Had parched the western creeks,
The bush-fires started in the north
And travelled south for weeks."
Christmas-bush, n. an Australian tree,
Ceratopetalum gummiferum, Smith,
N.O. Saxifrageae. Called also Christmas-tree
(q.v.), and Officer-bush.
1888. Mrs. McCann, `Poetical Works,' p. 226:
"Gorgeous tints adorn the Christmas bush with a crimson blush."
Christmas-tree, n. In Australia, it is the same
as Christmas-bush (q.v.). In New Zealand, it is
Metrosideros tomentosa, Banks, N.O. Myrtaceae;
Maori name, Pohutukawa (q.v.).
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 240:
"Some few scattered Pohutukaua trees (Metrosideros
tomentosa), the last remains of the beautiful vegetation
. . . About Christmas these trees are full of charming purple
blossoms; the settler decorates his church and dwelling with
its lovely branches, and calls the tree `Christmas-tree'! "
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 186:
"The Christmas-tree is in a sense the counterpart of the holly
of the home countries. As the scarlet berry gives its ruddy
colour to Christmas decorations in `the old country,' so here
the creamy blossoms of the Christmas-tree are the only shrub
flowers that survive the blaze of midsummer."
1889. E. H. and S. Featon, `New Zealand Flora,' p. 163:
"The Pohutukawa blossoms in December, when its profusion of
elegant crimson-tasselled flowers imparts a beauty to the
rugged coast-line and sheltered bays which may fairly be called
enchanting. To the settlers it is known as the
`Christmas-tree,' and sprays of its foliage and flowers are
used to decorate churches and dwellings during the festive
Christmastide. To the Maoris this tree must possess a weird
significance, since it is related in their traditions that at
the extreme end of New Zealand there grows a Pohutukawa from
which a root descends to the beach below. The spirits of the
dead are supposed to descend by this to an opening, which is
said to be the entrance to `Te Reinga.'"
Chucky-chucky, n. aboriginal Australian name
for a berry; in Australia and New Zealand, the fruit of species
of Gaultheria. See Wax Cluster.
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 146:
"To gather chucky-chuckies--as the blacks name that most
delicious of native berries."
1891. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' `New Zealand Country
Journal,' vol. xv. p. 198:
"When out of breath, hot and thirsty, how one longed for a
handful of chuckie-chucks. In their season how good we used to
think these fruits of the gaultheria, or rather its
thickened calyx. A few handfuls were excellent in quenching
one's thirst, and so plentifully did the plant abound that
quantities could soon be gathered. In these rude and simple
days, when housekeepers in the hills tried to convert carrots
and beet-root into apricot and damson preserves, these notable
women sometimes encouraged children to collect sufficient
chuckie-chucks to make preserve. The result was a jam of a
sweet mawkish flavour that gave some idea of a whiff caught in
passing a hair-dresser's shop."
Chum, n. See New Chum.
Chy-ack, v. simply a variation of the English
slang verb, to cheek.
1874. Garnet Walch, `Adamanta,' Act ii. sc. ii. p. 27:
"I've learnt to chi-ike peelers."
[Here the Australian pronunciation is also caught. Barere and
Leland give "chi-iked (tailors), chaffed unmercifully," but
without explanation.]
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 742 :
"The circle of frivolous youths who were yelping at and
chy-acking him."
1894. E. W. Hornung, `Boss of Taroomba,' p. 5:
"It's our way up here, you know, to chi-ak each other and our
visitors too."
Cicada, n. an insect. See Locust.
1895. G. Metcalfe, `Australian Zoology,' p. 62:
"The Cicada is often erroneously called a locust. . . . It is
remarkable for the loud song, or chirruping whirr, of the males
in the heat of summer; numbers of them on the hottest days
produce an almost deafening sound."
Cider-Tree, or Cider-Gum, n. name given
in Tasmania to Eucalyptus gunnii, Hook.,
N.O. Myrtaceae. See Gum.
1830. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 119:
"Specimens of that species of eucalyptus called the cider-tree,
from its exuding a quantity of saccharine liquid resembling
molasses. . . . When allowed to remain some time and to
ferment, it settles into a coarse sort of wine or cider, rather
intoxicating if drank to any excess."
City, n. In Great Britain and Ireland the word
City denotes "a considerable town that has been,
(a) an episcopal seat,
(b) a royal burgh, or
(c) created to the dignity, like Birmingham, Dundee, and Belfast,
by a royal patent. In the United States and Canada, a
municipality of the first class, governed by a mayor and
aldermen, and created by charter." (`Standard.')
In Victoria, by section ix. of the Local Government Act, 1890,
54 Victoria, No. 1112, the Governor-in-Council may make orders,
#12:
"To declare any borough, including the city of Melbourne and
the town of Geelong, having in the year preceding such
declaration a gross revenue of not less than twenty thousand
pounds, a city."
Claim, n. in mining, a piece of land
appropriated for mining purposes: then the mine itself.
The word is also used in the United States. See also
Reward-claim and Prospecting-claim.
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria,' c. xiv. p. 213:
"A family named Cavanagh . . . entered a half-worked claim."
1863. H. Fawcett, `Political Economy,' pt. iii. c. vi.
p. 359 (`O.E.D.'):
"The claim upon which he purchases permission to dig."
1887. H. H. Hayter, `Christmas Adventure,' p. 3:
"I decided . . . a claim to take up."
Clay-pan, n. name given, especially in the dry
interior of Australia, to a slight depression of the ground
varying in size from a few yards to a mile in length, where the
deposit of fine silt prevents the water from sinking into the
ground as rapidly as it does elsewhere.
1875. John Forrest, `Explorations in Australia,' p. 260:
"We travelled down the road for about thirty-three miles over
stony plains; many clay-pans with water but no feed."
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,'
Narrative, vol. i. p. 17:
"One of the most striking features of the central area and
especially amongst the loamy plains and sandhills, is the
number of clay-pans. These are shallow depressions, with no
outlet, varying in length from a few yards to half a mile,
where the surface is covered with a thin clayey material, which
seems to prevent the water from sinking as rapidly as it does
in other parts."
Clean-skins, or Clear-skins,
n. unbranded cattle or horses.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 206:
"These clean-skins, as they are often called, to distinguish
them from the branded cattle."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xv. p. 109:
"Strangers and pilgrims, calves and clear-skins, are separated
at the same time."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' p. 82:
"`Clear-skins,' as unbranded cattle were commonly called, were
taken charge of at once."
1893. `The Argus,' April 29, p.4, col. 4:
"As they fed slowly homeward bellowing for their calves, and
lowing for their mates, the wondering clean-skins would come up
in a compact body, tearing, ripping, kicking, and moaning,
working round and round them in awkward, loblolly canter."
Clearing lease, n. Explained in quotation.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i. c. x.
p. 321:
"[They] held a small piece of land on what is called a clearing
lease--that is to say, they were allowed to retain possession
of it for so many years for the labour of clearing the land."
Clematis, n. the scientific and vernacular name
of a genus of plants belonging to the
N.O. Ranunculaceae. The common species in Australia is
C. aristata, R. Br.
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 124:
"The beautiful species of clematis called
aristata, which may be seen in the months of November
and December, spreading forth its milk-white blossoms over the
shrubs . . . in other places rising up to the top of the highest
gum-trees."
Clianthus, n. scientific name for an
Australasian genus of plants, N.O. Leguminosae,
containing only two species--in Australia, Sturt's Desert
Pea (q.v.), C. dampieri; and in New Zealand, the
Kaka-bill (q.v.), C. puniceus. Both species are
also called Glory-Pea, from Grk. kleos, glory,
and anthos, a flower.
1892. `Otago Witness,' Nov.24, `Native Trees':
"Hooker says the genus Clianthus consists of the
Australian and New Zealand species only, the latter is
therefore clearly indigenous. `One of the most beautiful
plants known' (Hooker). Sir Joseph Banks and Dr. Solandel
found it during Cook's first voyage."
Climbing-fish, n. i.q. Hopping-fish
(q.v.).
Climbing-Pepper, n. See Pepper.
Clitonyx, n. the scientific name of a genus of
New Zealand birds, including the Yellow-head (q.v.) and
the White-head (q.v.); from Greek klinein, root
klit, to lean, slant, and 'onux, claw. The genus
was so named by Reichenbach in 1851, to distinguish the New
Zealand birds from the Australian birds of the genus
Orthonyx (q.v.), which formerly included them both.
Clock-bird, n. another name for the Laughing
Jachass. See Jackass.
Clock, Settlers', n. i.q. Clock-bird,
(q.v.)
Cloudy-Bay Cod, n. a New Zealand name for the
Ling (q.v.). See also Cod.
Clover-Fern, n. another name for the plant
called Nardoo (q.v.).
Clover, Menindie, n. an Australian fodder
plant, Trigonella suavissima, Lind.,
N.O. Leguminoseae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 143:
`From its abundance in the neighbourhood of Menindie, it is
often called Menindie-clover.' It is the `Australian shamrock'
of Mitchell. This perennial, fragrant, clover-like plant is a
good pasture herb."
Clover-Tree, n. a Tasmanian tree, called also
Native Laburnun. See under Laburnum.
Coach, n. a bullock used as a decoy to catch
wild cattle. This seems to be from the use of coach as the
University term for a private tutor.
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. vi. p. 110:
"To get them [sc. wild cattle] a party of stockmen take a small
herd of quiet cattle, `coaches.'"
Coach, v. to decoy wild cattle or horses with
tame ones.
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. vi. p. 121:
"Here he [the wild horse] may be got by `coaching' like wild
cattle."
Coach-whip Bird, n. Psophodes crepitans,
V. and H. (see Gould's `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 15);
Black-throated C.B., P. nigrogularis, Gould. Called also
Whipbird and Coachman.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 330:
"This bird is more often heard than seen. It inhabits bushes.
The loud cracking whip-like noise it makes (from whence the
colonists give it the name of coachwhip), may be heard from a
great distance."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 158:
"If you should hear a coachwhip crack behind, you may
instinctively start aside to let the mail pass; but
quickly find it is only our native coachman with his spread-out
fantail and perked-up crest, whistling and cracking out his
whip-like notes as he hops sprucely from branch to branch."
1844. Mrs. Meredith, `Notes and Sketches of New South Wales,'
p. 137:
"Another equally singular voice among our feathered friends was
that of the `coachman,' than which no title could be more
appropriate, his chief note being a long clear whistle, with a
smart crack of the whip to finish with."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 177:
"The bell-bird, by the river heard;
The whip-bird, which surprised I hear,
In me have powerful memories stirred
Of other scenes and strains more dear;
Of sweeter songs than these afford,
The thrush and blackbird warbling clear."
--Old Impressions.
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 71:
"The coach-whip is a small bird about the size of a sparrow,
found near rivers. It derives its name from its note, a slow,
clear whistle, concluded by a sharp jerking noise like the
crack of a whip."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. ii. p. 76:
"The whip-bird, whose sharp wiry notes, even, are far more
agreeable than the barking of dogs and the swearing of
diggers."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 24:
"That is the coach-whip bird. There again.
Whew-ew-ew-ew-whit. How sharply the last note sounds."
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. vi. p. 54:
"The sharp st--wt of the whip-bird . . . echoed through the
gorge."
1888. James Thomas, `May o' the South,' `Australian Poets
1788-1888' (ed. Sladen), p. 552:
"Merrily the wagtail now
Chatters on the ti-tree bough,
While the crested coachman bird
`Midst the underwood is heard."
Coast, v. to loaf about from station to
station.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' xxv. 295:
"I ain't like you, Towney, able to coast about without a job
of work from shearin' to shearin'."
Coaster, n. a loafer, a Sundowner
(q.v.).
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' viii. 75:
"A voluble, good-for-nothing, loafing impostor, a regular
`coaster.'"
Cobb, n. sometimes used as equivalent to a
coach. "I am going by Cobb." The word is still used, though
no Mr. Cobb has been connected with Australian coaches for many
years. See quotation.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 184:
"Mr. Cobb was an American, and has returned long ago to his
native country. He started a line of conveyances from
Melbourne to Castlemaine some time after the gold discoveries.
Mr. Cobb had spirit to buy good horses, to get first-class
American coaches, to employ good Yankee whips, and in a couple
of years or so he had been so extensively patronised that he
sold out, and retired with a moderate fortune." [But the
Coaching Company retained . . . the style of Cobb & Co.]
1879 (about). `Queensland Bush Song':
"Hurrah for the Roma Railway!
Hurrah for Cobb and Co.!
Hurrah, hurrah for a good fat horse
To carry me Westward Ho!"
Cobbler, n. (1) The last sheep, an Australian
shearing term. (2) Another name for the fish called the
Fortescue (q.v.)
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), Dec. 23, p. 6, col. 1:
"Every one might not know what a `cobbler' is. It is the last
sheep in a catching pen, and consequently a bad one to shear,
as the easy ones are picked first. The cobbler must be taken
out before `Sheep-ho' will fill up again. In the harvest field
English rustics used to say, when picking up the last sheaf,
`This is what the cobbler threw at his wife.' `What?' `The
last,' with that lusty laugh, which, though it might betray `a
vacant mind,' comes from a very healthy organism."
Cobblers-Awl, n. bird-name. The word is a
provincial English name for the Avocet. In Tasmania,
the name is applied to a Spine-Bill (q.v.) from the
shape of its beak.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 61:
"Acanthorhynchus tenuirostris, Lath., Slender-billed
Spine-bill. Cobbler's Awl, Colonists of Van Diemen's
Land. Spine-bill, Colonists of New South Wales."
Cobbler's Pegs, name given to a tall erect annual
weed, Erigeron linifolius, Willd.,
N.O. Compositae and to Bidens pilosus, Linn.,
N.O. Compositae.
Cobbra, n. aboriginal word for head, skull.
[Kabura or Kobbera, with such variations as
Kobra, Kobbera, Kappara, Kopul, from Malay Kapala, head: one of
the words on the East Coast manifestly of Malay
origin.--J. Mathew. Much used in pigeon converse with
blacks. `Goodway cobra tree' = `Tree very tall.'] Collins,
`Port Jackson Vocabulary,' 1798 (p. 611), gives `Kabura,
ca-ber-ra.' Mount Cobberas in East Gippsland has its name from
huge head-like masses of rock which rise from the summit.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 31:
"The black fellow who lives in the bush bestows but small
attention on his cobra, as the head is usually called in the
pigeon-English which they employ."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xiii. p. 134:
"I should be cock-sure that having an empty cobbra, as the
blacks say, was on the main track that led to the grog-camp."
Cock-a-bully, n. a popular name for the New
Zealand fish Galaxias fasciatus, Gray, a corruption of
its Maori name Kokopu (q.v.).
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 3:
"During my stay in New Zealand my little girl caught a fish
rather larger than an English minnow. Her young companions
called it a `cock-a bully.' It was pretty obvious to scent
a corruption of a Maori word, for, mark you, cock-a-bully has
no meaning. It looks as if it were English and full of meaning.
Reflect an instant and it has none. The Maori name for the
fish is `kokopu'"
Cockatiel, -eel, n. an arbitrary
diminutive of the word Cockatoo, and used as another name for
the Cockatoo-Parrakeet, Calopsitta novae-hollandiae,
and generally for any Parrakeet of the genus Calopsitta.
(`O.E.D.')
Cockatoo, n. (1) Bird-name. The word is Malay,
Kakatua. (`O.E.D.') The varieties are--
Banksian Cockatoo--
Calyptorhynchus banksii, Lath.
Bare-eyed C.--
Cacatua gymnopis, Sclater.
Black C.--
Calyptorhynchus funereus, Shaw.
Blood-stained C.--
Cacatua sanguinea, Gould.
Dampier's C.--
Licmetis pastinator, Gould.
Gang-gang C.-- Callocephalon galeatum, Lath. [See
Gang-gang.]
Glossy C.--
Calyptorhynchus viridis, Vieill.
Long-billed C.--
Licmetis nasicus, Temm. [See Corella.]
Palm C.--
Microglossus aterrimus, Gmel.
Pink C.--
Cacatua leadbeateri, V. & H. (Leadbeater, q.v.).
Red-tailed C.--
Calyptorhynchus stellatus, Wagl.
Rose-breasted C.-- Cacatua roseicapilla, Vieill. [See
Galah. Gould calls it Cocatua eos.
White C.--
Cacatua galerita, Lath.
White-tailed C.--
Calyptorhynchus baudinii, Vig.
See also Parrakeet.
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions, vol. ii. p. 62:
"We saw to-day for the first time on the Kalare, the redtop
cockatoo (Plyctolophus Leadbeateri)."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' c. viii. p. 272:
"The rose-breasted cockatoo (Cocatua eos, Gould) visited
the patches of fresh burnt grass."
Ibid. p. 275:
"The black cockatoo (Calyptorhynchus Banksii) has been
much more frequently observed of late."
1857. Daniel Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 175:
"Dr. Leichhardt caught sight of a number of cockatoos; and,
by tracking the course of their flight, we, in a short time,
reached a creek well supplied with water."
1862. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,'
c. ix. p. 331:
"White cockatoos and parroquets were now seen."
1890. `Victorian Statutes, Game Act, Third Schedule':
"Black Cockatoos. Gang-gang Cockatoos. [Close season.] From
the 1st day of August to the 10th day of December next
following in each year."
1893. `The Argus,' March 25, p.4, col. 6:
"The egg of the blood-stained cockatoo has not yet been
scientifically described, and the specimen in this collection
has an interest chiefly in that it was taken [by Mr. A. J.
Campbell] from a tree at Innamincka waterholes, not far from
the spot where Burke the explorer died."
(2) A small farmer, called earlier in Tasmania a
Cockatooer (q.v.). The name was originally given in
contempt (see quotations), but it is now used by farmers
themselves. Cocky is a common abbreviation. Some people
distinguish between a cockatoo and a
ground-parrot, the latter being the farmer on a very
small scale. Trollope's etymology (see quotation, 1873) will
not hold, for it is not true that the cockatoo scratches the
ground. After the gold fever, circa 1860, the selectors
swarmed over the country and ate up the substance of the
squatters; hence they were called Cockatoos. The word
is also used adjectivally.
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings among the Gum-trees,'
p. 154:
"Oi'm going to be married
To what is termed a Cockatoo--
Which manes a farmer."
1867. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 110:
"These small farmers are called cockatoos in Australia by the
squatters or sheep-farmers, who dislike them for buying up the
best bits on their runs; and say that, like a cockatoo, the
small freeholder alights on good ground, extracts all he can
from it, and then flies away, to `fresh fields and pastures
new.' . . . However, whether the name is just or not, it is a
recognised one here; and I have heard a man say in answer to a
question about his usual `occupation, `I'm a cockatoo.'"
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,'
vol. ii. p. 135:
"The word cockatoo in the farinaceous colony has become so
common as almost to cease to carry with it the intended
sarcasm. . . . It signifies that the man does not really
till his land, but only scratches it as the bird does."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 32:
"It may possibly have been a term of reproach applied to the
industrious farmer, who settled or perched on the resumed
portions of a squatter's run, so much to the latter's rage and
disgust that he contemptuously likened the farmer to the
white-coated, yellow-crested screamer that settles or perches
on the trees at the edge of his namesake's clearing."
1889. `Cornhill Magazine,' Jan., p. 33:
"`With a cockatoo' [Title]. Cockatoo is the name given
to the small, bush farmer in New Zealand."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xliii. p. 377:
"The governor is a bigoted agriculturist; he has contracted
the cockatoo complaint, I'm afraid."
1893, `The Argus,' June 17, p. 13, col. 4:
"Hire yourself out to a dairyman, take a contract with a
rail-splitter, sign articles with a cockatoo selector;
but don't touch land without knowing something about it."
Cockatoo, v. intr. (1) To be a farmer.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. xx. p. 245:
"Fancy three hundred acres in Oxfordshire, with a score or two
of bullocks,and twice as many black-faced Down sheep. Regular
cockatooing."
(2) A special sense--to sit on a fence as the bird sits.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' c. xviii. p. 224:
"The correct thing, on first arriving at a drafting-yard, is to
`cockatoo,' or sit on the rails high above the tossing
horn-billows."
Cockatooer, n. a variant of Cockatoo
(q.v.), quite fallen into disuse, if quotation be not a nonce
use.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 137:
"A few wretched-looking huts and hovels, the dwellings of
`cockatooers,' who are not, as it might seem, a species of
bird, but human beings; who rent portions of this forest
. . . on exorbitant terms . . . and vainly endeavour to exist
on what they can earn besides, their frequent compulsory
abstinence from meat, when they cannot afford to buy it, even
in their land of cheap and abundant food, giving them some
affinity to the grain-eating white cockatoos."
Cockatoo Fence, n. fence erected by small
farmers.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xxii. p. 155:
"There would be roads and cockatoo fences . . . in short, all
the hostile emblems of agricultural settlement."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. xiv. p. 120:
"The fields were divided by open rails or cockatoo fences, i.e.
branches and logs of trees laid on the ground one across the
other with posts and slip-rails in lieu of gates."
Cockatoo Bush, n. i.q. Native Currant
(q.v).
Cockatoo Orchis, n. a Tasmanian name for the
Orchid, Caleya major, R. Br.
Cock-eyed Bob, a local slang term in Western Australia
for a thunderstorm.
1894. `The Age,' Jan. 20, p. 13, col. 4:
"They [the natives of the northwest of Western Australia] are
extremely frightened of them [sc. storms called Willy
Willy, q.v.], and in some places even on the approach of an
ordinary thunderstorm or `Cock-eyed Bob,' they clear off to the
highest ground about."
Cockle, n. In England the name is given to a
species of the familiar marine bivalve mollusc, Cardium.
The commonest Australian species is Cardium
tenuicostatum, Lamarck, present in all extra-tropical
Australia. The name is also commonly applied to members of the
genus Chione.
Cock-Schnapper, n. a fish; the smallest kind of
Schnapper (q.v.). See also Count-fish.
1882. Rev. I. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 41:
"The usual method of estimating quantity for sale by the
fisherman is, by the schnapper or count-fish, the school-fish,
and squire, among which from its metallic appearance is the
copper head or copper colour, and the red bream. Juveniles
rank the smallest of the fry, not over an inch or two in
length, as the cock-schnapper. The fact, however, is now
generally admitted that all these are one and the same genus,
merely in different stages of growth."
Cod, n. This common English name of the
Gadus morrhua is applied to many fishes in Australia of
various families, Gadoid and otherwise. In Melbourne it is
given to Lotella callarias, Guenth., and in New South
Wales to several fishes of the genus Serranus.
Lotella is a genus of the family Gadidae, to
which the European Cod belongs; Serranus is a Sea perch
(q.v.). See Rock Cod, Black Rock Cod, Red Rock Cod, Black
Cod, Elite Cod, Red Cod, Murray Cod, Cloudy Bay Cod, Ling,
Groper, Hapuku, and Haddock.
Coffee-Bush, n. a settlers' name for the New
Zealand tree the Karamu (q.v.). Sometimes called also
Coffee-plant.
Coffer-fish, n. i.q. Trunk-fish (q.v.).
Coffee Plant, or Coffee Berry, n. name
given in Tasmania to the Tasmanian Native Holly (q.v.).
Colonial Experience, n. and used as
adj. same as cadet (q.v.) in New Zealand;
a young man learning squatting business, gaining his colonial
experience. Called also jackaroo (q.v.).
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 95:
"You're the first `colonial experience' young fellow that it
ever occurred to within my knowledge."
Colonial Goose, n. a boned leg of mutton
stuffed with sage and onions. In the early days the sheep was
almost the sole animal food. Mutton was then cooked and served
in various ways to imitate other dishes.
Colour, n. sc. of gold. It is sometimes used
with `good,' to mean plenty of gold: more usually, the `colour'
means just a little gold, enough to show in the dish.
1860. Kelly, `Life in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 222:
". . . they had not, to use a current phrase, `raised the
colour.'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood. `Miner's Right,' c. xiv. p. 149:
"This is the fifth claim he has been in since he came here,
and the first in which he has seen the colour."
1891. W. Lilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 14:
"After spending a little time there, and not finding more than
a few colours of gold, he started for Mount Heemskirk."
Convictism, n. the system of transportation of
convicts to Australia and Van Diemen's Land, now many years
abolished.
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 309:
"May it remain nailed to the mast until these colonies are
emancipated from convictism."
1864. `Realm,' Feb. 24, p.4 (`O.E.D.'):
"No one who has not lived in Australia can appreciate the profound
hatred of convictism that obtains there."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 16:
"They preferred to let things remain as they were, convictism
included."
Coobah, n. an aboriginal name for the tree
Acacia salicina, Lindl., N.O.Leguminosae. See
Acacia. The spellings vary, and sometimes begin with a K.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' v. 46:
"A deep reach of the river, shaded by couba trees and
river-oaks."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xxviii. p. 400:
"The willowy coubah weeps over the dying streamlet."
Coo-ee, or Cooey, n. and
interj. spelt in various ways. See quotations. A call
borrowed from the aborigines and used in the bush by one
wishing to find or to be found by another. In the vocabulary
of native words in `Hunter's Journal,' published in 1790, we
find "Cow-ee = to come."
1827. P. Cunningham, `New South Wales,' vol. ii. p. 23:
"In calling to each other at a distance, the natives make use
of the word Coo-ee, as we do the word Hollo,
prolonging the sound of the coo, and closing that of the
ee with a shrill jerk. . . . [It has] become of general
use throughout the colony; and a newcomer, in desiring an
individual to call another back, soon learns to say
`Coo-ee' to him, instead of Hollo to him."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 162:
"He immediately called `coo-oo-oo' to the natives at the fire."
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 84:
"There yet might be heard the significant `cooy' or
`quhy,' the true import of which was then unknown to our ears."
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' p. 46:
"Although Mr. Brown made the woods echo with his `cooys.'"
[See also p. 87, note.]
1845. Clement Hodgkinson, `Australia from Port Macquarie to
Moreton Bay,' p. 28:
"We suddenly heard the loud shrill couis of the natives."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 231:
"Their cooieys are not always what we understand by the word,
viz., a call in which the first note is low and the second
high, uttered after sound of the word cooiey. This is a note
which congregates all together and is used only as a simple
`Here.'"
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 91:
"Like the natives of New South Wales, they called to each other
from a great distance by the cooey; a word meaning `come
to me.' The Sydney blacks modulated this cry with successive
inflexions; the Tasmanian uttered it with less art. It is a
sound of great compass. The English in the bush adopt it: the
first syllable is prolonged; the second is raised to a higher
key, and is sharp and abrupt."
1862. W. Landsborough, `Exploration of Australia,' [Footnote]
p. 24:
"Coo-oo-oo-y is a shrill treble cry much used in the
bush by persons wishful to find each other. On a still night
it will travel a couple of miles, and it is thus highly
serviceable to lost or benighted travellers."
1869. J. F. Townend, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 155:
"The jingling of bells round the necks of oxen, the cooey of
the black fellow . . . constituted the music of these desolate
districts."
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 82:
"Hi! . . . cooey! you fella . . . open 'im lid."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 183:
"A particular `cooee' . . . was made known to the young men
when they were initiated."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of the Goldfields,' p. 40:
"From the woods they heard a prolonged cooee, which evidently
proceeded from some one lost in the bush."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 276:
"Two long farewell coo-ees, which died away in the silence of
the bush."
1890. E. W. Hornung, `A Bride from the Bush,' p. 184:
"The bride encircled her lips with her two gloved palms,
and uttered a cry that few of the hundreds who heard it ever
forgot--`coo-ee!' That was the startling cry as nearly as
it can be written. But no letters can convey the sustained
shrillness of the long, penetrating note represented by the
first syllable, nor the weird, die-away wail of the second.
It is the well-known bushcall,the `jodel' of the black fellow."
Cooee, within, adv. within easy distance.
1887. G. L. Apperson, in `All the Year Round,' July 30, p. 67,
col. 1 (`O.E.D.'):
"A common mode of expression is to be `within cooey' of a
place. . . . Now to be `within cooey' of Sydney is to be
at the distance of an easy journey therefrom."
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), June 26, p. 2, col. 6:
"Witness said that there was a post-office clock `within
coo-ee,' or within less than half-a-mile of the station."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 80:
"Just to camp within a cooey of the Shanty for the night."
Cooee, v.intr. to utter the call.
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 81:
"Our sable guides `cooed' and `cooed' again, in their usual
tone of calling to each other at a distance."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition, p. 115:
"Brown cooyed to him, and by a sign requested him to wait for
us."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Phillipsland,' p. 85 [Footnote]:
"Cooey is the aboriginal mode of calling out to any person at a
distance, whether visible or not, in the forest. The sound is
made by dwelling on the first syllable, and pronouncing the
second with a short, sharp, rising inflexion. It is much
easier made, and is heard to a much greater distance than the
English holla! and is consequently in universal use
among the colonists. . . . There is a story current in the
colony of a party of native-born colonists being in London, one
of whom, a young lady, if I recollect aright, was accidentally
separated from the rest, in the endless stream of pedestrians
and vehicles of all descriptions, at the intersection of Fleet
Street with the broad avenue leading to Blackfriars Bridge.
When they were all in great consternation and perplexity at the
circumstance, it occurred to one of the party to cooey,
and the well-known sound, with its ten thousand Australian
associations, being at once recognised and responded to, a
reunion of the party took place immediately, doubtless to the
great wonderment of the surrounding Londoners, who would
probably suppose they were all fit for Bedlam."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 90:
"They [the aborigines] warily entered scrubs, and called out
(cooyed) repeatedly in approaching water-holes, even when yet
at a great distance."
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 91:
"A female, born on this division of the globe, once stood at
the foot of London Bridge, and cooyed for her husband, of whom
she had lost sight, and stopped the passengers by the novelty
of the sound; which however is not unknown in certain
neighbourhoods of the metropolis. Some gentlemen, on a visit
to a London theatre, to draw the attention of their friends in
an opposite box, called out cooey; a voice in the gallery
answered `Botany Bay!'"
1880 (circa). `Melbourne Punch,' [In the days of long trains]:
"George, there's somebody treading on my dress; cooee to the
bottom of the stairs."
Coo-in-new, n. aboriginal name for "a useful
verbenaceous timber-tree of Australia, Gmelina
leichhardtii, F. v. M. The wood has a fine silvery grain,
and is much prized for flooring and for the decks of vessels,
as it is reputed never to shrink after a moderate seasoning."
(`Century.') Usually called Mahogany-tree (q.v.).
Coolaman or Kooliman, n. an aboriginal
word, Kamilaroi Dialect of New South Wales. [W. Ridley,
`Kamilaroi,' p. 25, derives it from Kulu, seed, but it
is just as likely from Kolle, water.--J. Mathew.] A
hollowed knot of a tree, used as a seed vessel, or for holding
water. The word is applied to the excrescence on the tree as
well as to the vessel; a bush hand has been heard to speak of a
hump-backed man as `cooliman-backed.'
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 269:
"Three koolimans (vessels of stringy bark) were full of honey
water, from one of which I took a hearty draught."
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings among the Gum-trees,'
p. 37:
"And the beautiful Lubrina
Fetched a Cooliman of water."
[In Glossary.] Cooliman, a hollow knot of a tree for holding
water.
186. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia, vol. ii. p. 24:
"Koolimans, water vessels. . . The koolimans were made of the
inner layer of the bark of the stringy-bark tree."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 185:
"Coolaman, native vessel for holding water."
1885. Mrs. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 76:
"Cooliman, a vessel for carrying water, made out of the bark
which covers an excrescence peculiar to a kind of gum-tree."
Cooper's-flag, n. another name in New Zealand
for Raupo (q.v.).
Coopers-wood, n. the timber of an Australian
tree, Alphitonia excelsa, Reiss, N.O. Rhamneae.
The wood becomes dark with age, and is used for coopers' staves
and various purposes.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 373:
"Variously called Mountain-ash, Red-ash, Leather-jacket,
and Coopers-wood."
Coordaitcha. See Kurdaitcha.
Coot, n. common English birdname; the
Australian species is Fulica australis, Gould.
See also Bald-Coot.
Copper-head, n. See under Snake.
Copper Maori. This spelling has been influenced by
the English word Copper, but it is really a corruption
of a Maori word. There is a difference of opinion amongst
Maori scholars what this word is. Some say Kapura, a
common fire used for cooking, in contradistinction to a
`chief's fire,' at which he sat, and which would not be allowed
to be defiled with food. Others say Kopa. The Maori
word Kopa was (1) adj. meaning bent, (2)
n. angle or corner, and (3) the native
oven, or more strictly the hole scooped out for the oven.
1888. T. Pine, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,' `A
local tradition of Raukawa,' vol. xxi. p. 417:
"So they set to work and dug holes on the flat, each hole about
2 ft. across and about 1 1/2 ft. deep, and shaped something
like a Kopa Maori."
1889. H. D. M. Haszard, ibid. `Notes on some Relics of
Cannibalism,' vol. xxii. p. 104:
"In two distinct places, about four chains apart, there were a
number of Kapura Maori, or native ovens, scattered about
within a radius of about forty feet."
Coprosma, n. scientific and vernacular
name fora large genus of trees and shrubs of the order
Rubiaceae. From the Greek kopros, dung,
on account of the bad smell of some of the species.
See quotation. The Maori name is Karamu (q.v.).
Various species receive special vernacular names,
which appear in their places in the Dictionary.
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 110:
"Corosma comprises about forty species, of which at
least thirty are found in New Zealand, all of which are
restricted to the colony except C. pumila, which extends
to Australia. Five species are found in Australia, one of
which is C. pumila mentioned above. A few species occur
in the Pacific, Chili, Juan Fernandez, the Sandwich Islands,
&c."
Coral, n. See Batswing-Coral.
Coral-Fern, n. name given in Victoria to
Gleichenia circinata, Swartz, called in Bailey's list
Parasol-Fern. See Fern.
Coral-Flower, n. a plant, Epacris
(q.v.), Epacris microphylla, R. Br.,
N.O. Epacrideae.
Coral-Pea, n. another name for the Kennedya
(q.v.).
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 53:
"The trailing scarlet kennedyas, aptly called the
`bleeding-heart' or `coral pea,' brighten the greyness of the
sandy, peaty wastes."
Coranderrk, n. the aboriginal name for the
Victorian Dogwood (q.v.). An "aboriginal station," or
asylum and settlement for the remaining members of the
aboriginal race of Victoria, is called after this name because
the wood grew plentifully there.
Cordage-tree, n. name given in Tasmania to a
Kurrajong (q.v.). The name Sida pulchella has
been superseded by Plagianthus sidoides, Hook.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 108:
"Sida pulchella. Handsome Sida. Currijong or cordage tree of
Hobart Town. . . . The bark used to be taken for tying up post
and rail fences, the rafters of huts, in the earlier periods of
the colony, before nails could be so easily procured."
Corella, n. any parrot of the genus
Nymphicus; the word is dim. of late Lat. cora =
korh, a girl, doll, etc. The Australian Corella is
N. novae-hollandiae, and the name is also given to
Licmetus nasicus, Temm, the Long-billed Cockatoo
(q.v.). It is often used indiscriminately by bird-fanciers for
any pretty little parrot, parrakeet, or cockatoo.
Cork-tree, n. See Bat's-wing Coral.
Corkwood, n. a New Zealand tree, Entelea
arborescens, R. Br., N.O. Tiliaceae. Maori name,
Whau.
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 45:
"The whau . . . is termed corkwood by the settlers on account
of its light specific gravity."
Cormorant, n. common English bird-name.
In Australia the name is applied to the following birds:--
Black Cormorant--
Graculus novae-hollandiae, Steph.
Little C.--
G. melanoleucus, Vieill.
Little-black C.--
G. stictocephalus, Bp. .
Pied C.--
G. varius, Gm.
White-breasted Cormorant--
G. leucogaster, Gould.
White-throated C.--
G. brevirostris, Gould.
Cornstalk, n. a young man or a girl born
and bred in New South Wales, especially if tall and big.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. ii. p. 116:
"The colonial-born, bearing also the name of cornstalks (Indian
corn), from the way in which they shoot up."
1834. Geo. Benett, `Wanderings in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 341:
"The Australian ladies may compete for personal beauty and
elegance with any European, although satirized as `Cornstalks,'
from the slenderness of their forms."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 68:
"Our host was surrounded by a little army of `cornstalks.'. . .
The designation `cornstalk' is given because the young people
run up like the stems of the Indian corn."
1869. W. R. Honey, `Madeline Clifton,' Act III. sc. v. p. 30:
"Look you, there stands young cornstalk."
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 526:
"If these are the heroes that my cornstalk friends worship
so ardently, they must indeed be hard up for heroes."
1893. Haddon Chambers, `Thumbnail Sketches of Australian Life,'
p. 217:
"While in the capital I fell in with several jolly cornstalks,
with whom I spent a pleasant time in boating, fishing, and
sometimes camping out down the harbour."
Correa, n. the scientific name of a genus of
Australian plants of the N.O. Rutaceae, so named after
Correa de Serra, a Portuguese nobleman who wrote on rutaceous
plants at the beginning of the century. They bear scarlet or
green and sometimes yellowish flowers, and are often called
Native Fuchsias (q.v.), especially C. speciosa, Andrews,
which bears crimson flowers.
1827. R. Sweet, `Flora Australasica,' p. 2:
"The genus was first named by Sir J. E. Smith in compliment to
the late M. Correa de Serra, a celebrated Portuguese botanist."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 384:
"The scarlet correa lurked among the broken quartz."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 70:
"With all wish to maintain vernacular names, which are not
actually misleading, I cannot call a correa by the common
colonial name `native fuchsia,' as not the slightest structural
resemblance and but little habitual similarity exists between
these plants; they indeed belong to widely different orders."
Ibid.:
"All Correas are geographically restricted to the south-eastern
portion of the Australian continent and Tasmania, the genus
containing but few species."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 23:
"I see some pretty red correa and lilac." [Footnote]: "Correa
speciosa, native fuchsia of Colonies."
Corrobbery, n. This spelling is nearest to the
accepted pronunciation, the accent falling on the second
syllable. Various spellings, however, occur,
viz.--Corobbery, Corrobery, Corroberry, Corroborree,
Corrobbory, Corroborry, Corrobboree, Coroboree, Corroboree,
Korroboree, Corroborri, Corrobaree, and Caribberie.
To these Mr. Fraser adds Karabari (see quotation, 1892),
but his spelling has never been accepted in English. The word
comes from the Botany Bay dialect.
[The aboriginal verb (see Ridley's `Kamilaroi and other
Australian Languages,' p. 107) is korobra, to dance; in the
same locality boroya or beria means to sing; probably koro is
from a common Australian word for emu.--J. Mathew.]
(1) An aboriginal name for a dance, sacred, festive, or
warlike.
1793. Governor Hunter, `Port Jackson, p. 195:
"They very frequently, at the conclusion of the dance, would
apply to us . . . for marks of our approbation . . . which we
never failed to give by often repeating the word boojery,
good; or boojery caribberie, a good dance."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 280:
"Dancing with their corrobery motion."
Ibid. p. 311:
"With several corrobery or harlequin steps."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. ii. c. iii. p. 55:
"They hold their corrobbores (midnight ceremonies)."
1836. C. Darwin, `Journal of the Voyage of the Beagle' (ed. 1882),
c. xix. p. 450:
"A large tribe of natives, called the white cockatoo men,
happened to pay a visit to the settlement while we were there.
These men as well as those of the tribe belonging to King
George's Sound, being tempted by the offer of some tubs of rice
and sugar were persuaded to hold a `corrobery' or great dancing
party." [Description follows.]
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. ii. p. 4:
"There can be little doubt that the corrobboree is the medium
through which the delights of poetry and the drama are enjoyed
in a limited degree, even by these primitive savages of New
Holland."
1844. Mrs. Meredith. `Notes and Sketches of New South Wales,'
p. 91:
"Great preparations were made, as for a grand corrobory, or
festival, the men divesting themselves of even the portions of
clothing commonly worn, and painting their naked black bodies
in a hideous manner with pipe-clay. After dark, they lit their
fires, which are small, but kept blazing with constant
additions of dry bark and leaves, and the sable gentry
assembled by degrees as they completed their evening toilette,
full dress being painted nudity. A few began dancing in
different parties, preparatory to the grand display, and the
women, squatting on the ground, commenced their strange
monotonous chant, each beating accurate time with two
boomerangs. Then began the grand corrobory, and all the men
joined in the dance, leaping, jumping, bounding about in the
most violent manner, but always in strict unison with each
other, and keeping time with the chorus, accompanying their
wild gesticulations with frightful yells, and noises. The
whole `tableau' is fearfully grand! The dark wild forest
scenery around--the bright fire-light gleaming upon the savage
and uncouth figures of the men, their natural dark hue being
made absolutely horrible by the paintings bestowed on them,
consisting of lines and other marks done in white and red
pipe-clay, which gives them an indescribably ghastly and
fiendish aspect--their strange attitudes, and violent
contortions and movements, and the unearthly sound of their
yells, mingled with the wild and monotonous wail-like chant of
the women, make altogether a very near approach to the horribly
sublime in the estimation of most Europeans who have witnessed
an assembly of the kind."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 103:
"They have no instrument of music, the corobery's song being
accompanied by the beating of two sticks together, and by the
women thumping their opossum rugs.'"
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 447 [Footnote]:
"These words, which were quite as unintelligible to the natives
as the corresponding words in the vernacular language of the
white men would have been, were learned by the natives, and are
now commonly used by them in conversing with Europeans, as
English words. Thus corrobbory, the Sydney word for a
general assembly of natives, is now commonly used in that sense
at Moreton Bay; but the original word there is
yanerwille. Cabon, great; narang, little;
boodgeree, good; myall, wild native, etc. etc.,
are all words of this description, supposed by the natives [of
Queensland] to be English words, and by the Europeans to be
aboriginal words of the language of that district."
[The phrase "general assembly" would rise naturally in the mind
of Dr. Lang as a Presbyterian minister; but there is no
evidence of anything parliamentary about a corrobbery.]
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 78:
"The exact object or meaning of their famous corrobboree or
native dance, beyond mere exercise and patience, has not as yet
been properly ascertained; but it seems to be mutually
understood and very extensively practised throughout Australia,
and is generally a sign of mutual fellowship and good feeling
on the part of the various tribes."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 100:
"When our blacks visited Sydney, and saw the military paraded,
and heard the bands, they said that was `white fellows'
corrobbory.'"
185. E. Stone Parker, `Aborigines of Australia,' p. 21:
"It is a very great mistake to suppose . . . that there is any
kind of religious ceremony connected with the ordinary
corrobory. . . . I may also remark that the term corrobory is
not a native word."
[It is quite certain that it is native, though not known to
Mr. E. Stone Parker.]
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 49:
[In Tasmania] "the assembling of the tribes was always
celebrated by a grand corroboree, a species of bestial
bal masque. On such occasions they presented a most
grotesque and demon-like appearance, their heads, faces, and
bodies, liberally greased were besmeared alternately with clay
and red ochre; large tufts of bushy twigs were entwined around
their ankles, wrists, and waists; and these completed their
toilet."
1879. J. D. Woods, `Native Tribes of South Australia,'
Introduction, pp. xxxii. and xxxiii.:
"The principal dance is common all over the continent, and
`corrobboree' is the name by which it is commonly known. It is
not quite clear what a corrobboree is intended to signify.
Some think it a war-dance--others that it is a representation
of their hunting expeditions--others again, that it is a
religious, or pagan, observance; but on this even the blacks
themselves give no information."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 41:
"The good fortune to witness a korroboree, that is a
festive dance by the natives in the neighbourhood."
1892. J. Fraser, `The Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 21:
"`Karabari' is an aboriginal name for those dances which our
natives often have in the forests at night. Hitherto the name
has been written corrobboree, but etymologically it should be
karabari, for it comes from the same root as `karaji,' a wizard
or medicine-man, and `bari' is a common formative in the native
languages. The karabari has been usually regarded as a form of
amusement . . . these dances partake of a semi-religious
character."
[Mr. Fraser's etymology is regarded as far-fetched.]
(2) The song that accompanied the dance.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 323:
"I feared he might imagine we were afraid of his incantations,
for he sang most lamentable corroborris."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 68:
". . . listen to the new corroborree. Great numbers arrive;
the corroborree is danced night after night with the utmost
enthusiasm. . . .These corroborrees travel for many hundreds of
miles from the place where they originated. . . .These
composers [of song and dance] pretend that the Spirit of Evil
originally manufactured their corroborree."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillman, `Australian Life,' p. 132:
"The story was a grand joke among the blacks for many a day.
It became, no doubt, the theme for a `corroberee,' and Tommy
was always after a hero amongst his countrymen."
(3) By transference, any large social gathering or public
meeting.
1892. `Saturday Review,' Feb.' 13, p. 168, col. 2:
"A corrobory of gigantic dimensions is being prepared for
[General Booth's] reception [in Australia]." (`O.E.D.')
1895. Modern:
"There's a big corrobbery on to-night at Government House,
and you can't get a cab for love or money."
(4) By natural transference, a noise, disturbance, fuss
or trouble.
1874. Garnet Walch, `Adamanta,' Act II. sc. ii. p. 27:
"How can I calm this infantile corroboree?"
1885. H. O. Forbes, `Naturalist's Wanderings,' p. 295:
"Kingfishers . . . in large chattering corrobories in the tops
of high trees."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 242:
"The boy raises the most awful corroboree of screams and howls,
enough for a whole gang of bushrangers, if they went in for
that sort of thing."
1897. `The Herald,' Feb. 15, p. i, col. 1:
"Latest about the Cretan corroboree in our cable messages this
evening. The situation at the capital is decidedly
disagreeable. A little while ago the Moslems threw the
Christians out and took charge. Now the last report is that
there is a large force of Christians attacking the city and
quite ready, we doubt not, to cut every Moslem throat that
comes in the way."
Corrobbery, v. (1) To hold a corrobbery.
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 61:
"They began to corrobery or dance.
(p. 206): They `corroberried,' sang, laughed, and screamed."
1885. R. M. Pried, `Australian Life,' p. 22:
"For some time the district where the nut [bunya] abounds
is a scene of feasting and corroboreeing."
(2) By transference to animals, birds, insects, etc.
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 257:
"The mosquitoes from the swamps corroboreed with unmitigated
ardour."
1871. C. Darwin, `Descent of Man' (2nd ed. 1885), p. 406:
"The Menura Alberti [see Lyrebird] scratches for
itself shallow holes, or, as they are called by the natives,
corroborying places, where it is believed both sexes assemble."
(3) To boil; to dance as boiling water does.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 43:
"`Look out there! `he continued; `quart-pot corroborree,'
springing up and removing with one hand from the fire one of
the quart-pots, which was boiling madly, while with the other
he dropped in about as much tea as he could hold between his
fingers and thumb."
Ibid. p. 49:
"They had almost finished their meal before the new quart
corroborreed, as the stockman phrased it."
Corypha-palm, n. an obsolete name for
Livistona inermis, now called Cabbage-tree
(q.v.).
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 49:
"The bottle-tree and the corypha-palm were frequent."
Cottage, n. a house in which all the rooms are
on the ground-floor. An auctioneer's advertisement often
runs--"large weatherboard cottage, twelve rooms, etc.," or
"double-fronted brick cottage." The cheapness of land caused
nearly all suburban houses in Australia to be built without
upper storeys and detached.
Cotton-bush, n. name applied to two trees
called Salt-bush (q.v.). (1) Bassia bicornis,
Lindl. (2) Kochia aphylla, R. Br.,
N.O. Salsolaceae. S. Dixon (apud Maiden, p. 132)
thus describes it--
"All kinds of stock are often largely dependent on it during
protracted droughts, and when neither grass nor hay are
obtainable I have known the whole bush chopped up and mixed
with a little corn, when it proved an excellent fodder for
horses."
1876. W. Harcus, `South Australia,' p. 126:
"This is a fine open, hilly district, watered, well grassed,
and with plenty of herbage and cotton-bush."
Cotton-shrub, n. a name given in Tasmania to the
shrub Pimelea nivea, Lab., N.O. Thymeleae.
Cotton-tree, n. an Australian tree, Hibiscus
teliaceus, Linn., N.O. Malvaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 624:
"The fibre of the bark [cotton-tree] is used for nets and
fishing-lines by the aborigines."
Cotton-wood, n. the timber of an Australian
tree, Bedfordia salicina, De C., N.O. Compositae.
Called Dog-wood (q.v.) in Tasmania.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p.386:
"The `dog-wood' of Tasmania, and the `cotton-wood' of Southern
New South Wales, on account of the abundant down on the leaves.
A hard, pale-brown, well-mottled wood, said by some to be good
for furniture. It emits a foetid smell when cut."
Coucal, n. a bird-name, "mentioned probably for
the first time in Le Vaillant's `Oiseaux d'Afrique,' beginning
about 1796; perhaps native African. An African or Indian
spear-headed cuckoo: a name first definitely applied by Cuvier
in 1817 to the birds of the genus Centropus."
(`Century.') The Australian species is Centropus
phasianellus, Gould, or Centropus phasianus, Lath.
It is called also Swamp-pheasant (q.v.), and
Pheasant-cuckoo.
Count-fish, n. a large Schnapper
(q.v.). See Cock-Schnapper.
1874. `Sydney Mail,' `Fishes and Fishing in New South Wales':
"The ordinary schnapper or count fish implies that all of a
certain size are to count as twelve to the dozen, the shoal or
school-fish eighteen or twenty-four to the dozen, and the
squire, thirty or thirty-six to the dozen--the latter just
according to their size, the redbream at per bushel."
Count-muster, n. a gathering, especially of
sheep or cattle in order to count them.
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 1:
"The old man's having a regular count-muster of his sons and
daughters, and their children and off side relatives-that is,
by marriage."
Cowdie, n. an early variant of Kauri
(q.v.), with other spellings.
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 143:
"The native name `Kauri' is the only common name in general
use. When the timber was first introduced into Britain it was
termed `cowrie' or `kowdie-pine'; but the name speedily fell
into disuse, although it still appears as the common name in
some horticultural works."
Cowshorns, n. a Tasmanian orchid,
Pterostylis nutans, R. Br.
Cow-tree, n. a native tree of New Zealand.
Maori name, Karaka (q.v.).
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 346:
"The karaka-tree of New Zealand (Corynocarpus
laevigata), also called kopi by the natives, and cow-tree
by Europeans (from that animal being partial to its leaves),
grows luxuriantly in Sydney."
Crab, n. Of the various Australian species of
this marine crustacean, Scylla serrata alone is large
enough to be much used as food, and it is seldom caught. In
Tasmania and Victoria, Pseudocarcinus gigas, called the
King-Crab, which reaches a weight of 20 lbs., is occasionally
brought to market. There is only one fresh-water crab known in
Australia--Telphusa transversa.
1896. Spencer and Hall, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Zoology, p. 228:
"In the case of Telphusa transversa, the fresh-water
crab, the banks of certain water holes are riddled with its
burrows."
Crab-hole, n. a hole leading into a pit-like
burrow, made originally by a burrowing crayfish, and often
afterwards increased in size by the draining into it of water.
The burrows are made by crayfish belonging to the genera
Engaeus and Astacopsis, which are popularly known
as land-crabs.
1848. Letter by Mrs. Perry, given in Canon Goodman's `Church
in Victoria, during Episcopate of Bishop Perry,' p. 72:
"Full of crab holes, which are exceedingly dangerous for the
horses. There are holes varying in depth from one to three
feet, and the smallest of them wide enough to admit the foot of
a horse: nothing more likely than that a horse should break its
leg in one. . . . These holes are formed by a small land-crab
and then gradually enlarged by the water draining into them."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 368:
"This brute put his foot in a crabhole, and came down, rolling
on my leg.''
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for the Mail,' p. 49:
"Across the creek we went . . . now tripping over tussocks,
now falling into crab holes."
Crab-tree, n. i.q. Bitter-bark (q.v.).
Cradle, n. common in Australia, but of
Californian origin. "A trough on rockers in which auriferous
earth or sand is shaken in water, in order to separate and
collect the gold." (`O.E.D.')
1849. `Illustrated London News,' Nov. 17, p. 325, col. 1
(`O.E.D.'): [This applies to California, and is before the
Australian diggings began]:
"Two men can keep each other steadily at work, the one digging
and carrying the earth in a bucket, and the other washing and
rocking the cradle."
1851. Letter by Mrs. Perry, quoted in Canon Goodman's `Church
in Victoria during Episcopate of Bishop Perry,' p. 171:
"The streets are full of cradles and drays packed for the
journey."
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria,' c. xv. p. 215:
"Cradles and tin dishes to supply the digging parties."
1865. F. H. Nixon, `Peter Perfume,' p. 56:
"They had cradles by dozens and picks by the score."
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 154:
"The music of the puddling mill, the cradle, and the tub."
Cradle, v. tr. to wash auriferous gravel in a
miner's cradle.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. 21, p. 197:
"The laborious process of washing and `cradling' the ore."
Crake, n. common English bird-name. The
Australian varieties are--
Little Crake--
Porzana palustris, Gould.
Spotless C.--
P. tabuensis, Gmel.
Spotted C.--
P. fluminea, Gould.
White-browed C.--
P. cinereus, Vieill.
See also Swamp-crake.
Cranberry, Native, n. called also
Ground-berry; name given to three Australian shrubs.
(1) Styphelia (formerly Lissanthe) humifusa,
Persoon, N.O. Epacrideae.
1834. J. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 133:
"Astroloma humifusum. The native cranberry has a fruit
of a green, reddish, or whitish colour, about the size of a
black currant, consisting of a viscid apple-flavoured pulp
inclosing a large seed; this fruit grows singly on the trailing
stems of a small shrub resembling juniper, bearing beautiful
scarlet blossoms in autumn."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 8:
"Commonly called `ground-berry.' In Tasmania the fruits are
often called native cranberries. The fruits of these dwarf
shrubs are much appreciated by school-boys and aboriginals.
They have a viscid, sweetish pulp, with a relatively large
stone. The pulp is described by some as being apple-flavoured,
though I have always failed to make out any distinct flavour."
(2) Styphelia sapida, F. v. M., N.O. Epacrideae.
1866. `Treasury of Botany,' p. 688 (`O.E.D.'):
"Lissanthe sapida, a native of South-eastern Australia,
is called the Australian Cranberry, on account of its
resemblance both in size and colour to our European cranberry,
Vaccinium Oxyconos."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 39:
"Native cranberry. The fruit is edible. It is something like
the cranberry of Europe both in size and colour, but its flesh
is thin, and has been likened to that of the Siberian crab.
[Found in] New South Wales."
(3) Pernettya tasmanica, Hook., N.O. Ericeae
(peculiar to Tasmania).
Crane, n. common English bird-name. In
Australia used for (1) the Native-Companion (q.v.), Grus
australianus, Gould; (2) various Herons, especially in New
Zealand, where the varieties are--Blue Crane (Matuku),
Ardea sacra, Gmel.; White Crane (Kotuku), Ardea
egretta, Gmel. See Kotuku and Nankeen Crane.
The Cranes and the Herons are often popularly confused.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 53:
"Ardea Novae-Hollandiae, Lath., White-fronted Heron, Blue
Crane of the colonists. Herodias Jugularis, Blue Reef
Heron, Blue Crane, colonists of Port Essington."
1848. Ibid. pl. 58:
"Herodias Immaculata, Gould [later melanopus], Spotless
Egret, White Crane of the colonists."
1890. `Victorian Consolidated Statutes, Game Act,' 3rd
Schedule:
"[Close Season.] All Birds known as Cranes such as Herons,
Egrets, &c. From First day of August to Twentieth day of
December following in each year."
Craw-fish, n. a variant of Crayfish
(q.v.).
Crawler, n. that which crawls; used specially
in Australia of cattle.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 217:
"Well-bred station crawlers, as the stockmen term them from
their peaceable and orderly habits."
Cray-fish, n. The Australasian Cray-fish
belong to the family Parastacidae, the members of which
are confined to the southern hemisphere, whilst those of the
family Potamobiidae are found in the northern
hemisphere. The two families are distinguished from one
another by, amongst other points of structure, the absence of
appendages on the first abdominal segment in the
Parastacidae. The Australasian cray-fishes are
classified in the following genera--Astacopsis, found in
the fresh waters of Tasmania and the whole of Australia;
Engaeus, a land-burrowing form, found only in Tasmania
and Victoria; Paranephrops, found in the fresh waters of
New Zealand; and Palinurus, found on the coasts of
Australia and New Zealand. The species are as follows :--
(1) The Yabber or Yabbie Crayfish. Name given to the
commonest fresh-water Australian Cray-fish, Astacopsis
bicarinatus, Gray. This is found in waterholes, but not
usually in running streams, over the greater part of the
continent, and often makes burrows in the ground away from
water, and may also do great damage by burrowing holes through
the banks of dams and reservoirs and water-courses, as at
Mildura. It was first described as the Port Essington
Crayfish.
1845. Gray, in E. J. Eyre's `Expeditions into Central
Australia,' vol. i. p. 410:
"The Port Essington Cray fish. Astacus bicarinatus."
1885. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,'
Dec. 2, pl. 29:
"They are commonly known about Melbourne by the native name of
Yabber or Yabbie."
(2) The Murray Lobster or the Spiny Cray-fish. Name
given to the largest Australian fresh-water Cray-fish,
Astacopsis serratus, Shaw, which reaches a length of
over twelve inches, and is found in the rivers of the Murray
system, and in the southern rivers of Victoria such as the
Yarra, the latter being distinguished as a variety of the
former and called locally the Yarra Spiny Cray-fish.
1890. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,'
Dec. 8, pl. 160: "
Our plate 160 illustrates a remarkable variety of the typical
A. serratus of the Murray, common in the Yarra and its
numerous affluents flowing southwards."
(3) The Tasmanian Cray-fish. Name given to the large
fresh-water Cray-fish found in Tasmania, Astacopsis
franklinii; Gray.
(4) The Land-crab. Name applied to the burrowing
Cray-fish of Tasmania and Victoria, Engaeus fossor,
Erich., and other species. This is the smallest of the
Australian Cray-fish, and inhabits burrows on land, which it
excavates for itself and in which a small store of water is
retained. When the burrow, as frequently happens, falls in
there is formed a Crab-hole (q.v.).
1892. G. M. Thomson, `Proceedings of the Royal Society of
Tasmania,' p. 2:
"Only four of the previously described forms are fresh-water
species, namely: Astacopsis franklinii and
A. tasmanicus, Engaeus fossor and
E. cunicularius, all fresh-water cray fishes."
(5) New Zealand Fresh-water Cray-fish. Name applied to
Paranephrops zealandicus, White, which is confined to
the fresh water of New Zealand.
1889. T. J. Parker, `Studies in Biology' (Colonial Museum and
Geological Survey Department, New Zealand), p. 5:
"Paranephrops which is small and has to be specially collected
in rivers, creeks or lakes."
(6) Sydney Cray-fish. Name given to the large
salt-water Cray-fish, rarely called Craw-fish, or Spiny
Lobster, found along the Sydney coast, Palinurus
huegeli, Heller.
1890. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,'
Dec. 16, pl. 159:
"This species, which is the common Sydney Craw-fish, is easily
distinguished from the southern one, the P. Lalandi,
which is the common Melbourne Craw-fish."
(7) Southern Rock-Lobster or Melbourne Crayfish. Name
given to the large salt-water Cray-fish, sometimes called
Craw-fish, found along the southern coast and common in the
Melbourne market, Palinurus lalandi, Lam.
1890. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,'
Dec. 15, pl. 150:
"I suggest the trivial name of Southern Rock Lobster for this
species, which abounds in Victoria, Tasmania and New Zealand,
as well as the Cape of Good Hope . . . does not appear to have
been noticed as far north as Sydney."
The name Craw-fish is merely an ancient variant of
Cray-fish, though it is said by Gasc, in his French
Dictionary, that the term was invented by the London
fishmongers to distinguish the small Spiny Lobster,
which has no claws, from the common Lobster, which has
claws. The term Lobster, in Australia, is often applied
to the Sydney Cray-fish (see 7, above).
Creadion, n. scientific name given by Vieillot
in 1816 to a genus of birds peculiar to New Zealand, from Greek
kreadion, a morsel of flesh, dim. of kreas,
flesh. Buller says, "from the angle of the mouth on each side
there hangs a fleshy wattle, or caruncle, shaped like a
cucumber seed and of a changeable bright yellow colour."
('Birds of New Zealand,' 1886, vol. i. p. 18.) The
Jack-bird (q.v.) and Saddle-back (q.v.) are the
two species.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 404:
"Family Sturnidae--Tieki (Creadion Carunculatus).
This is a beautiful black bird with a chestnut band across the
back and wings; it has also a fleshy lappet on either side of
the head. The tieki is considered a bird of omen: if
one flies on the right side it is a good sign; if on the left,
a bad one."
Cream of Tartar tree, n. i.q. Baobab
(q.v.).
Creek, n. a small river, a brook, a branch of
a river. "An application of the word entirely unknown in Great
Britain." (`O.E.D.') The `Standard Dictionary' gives, as a use
in the United States, "a tidal or valley stream, between a
brook and a river in size." In Australia, the name brook is
not used. Often pronounced crick, as in the United States.
Dr. J. A.H. Murray kindly sends the following note:--"Creek
goes back to the early days of exploration. Men sailing up the
Mississippi or other navigable river saw the mouths of
tributary streams, but could not tell with out investigation
whether they were confluences or mere inlets, creeks. They
called them creeks, but many of them turned out to be running
streams, many miles long--tributary rivers or rivulets. The
name creek stuck to them, however, and thus became
synonymous with tributary stream, brook."
1793. Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 516:
"In the afternoon a creek obliged them to leave the banks of
the river, and go round its head, as it was too deep to cross:
having rounded the head of this creek. . ."
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 228:
"They met with some narrow rivers or creeks."
1809. Aug. 6, `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 327:
"Through Rickerby's grounds upon the riverside and those of the
Rev. Mr. Marsden on the creek."
1826. Goldie, in Bischoff's `Van Diemen's Land' (1832), p. 162:
"There is a very small creek which I understand is never dry."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 17:
"The creeks and rivers of Australia have in general a
transitory existence, now swollen by the casual shower, and
again rapidly subsiding under the general dryness and heat of
the climate."
1854. `Bendigo Advertiser,' quoted in `Melbourne Morning
Herald,' May 29:
"A Londoner reading of the crossing of a creek would naturally
imagine the scene to be in the immediate neighbourhood of the
coast, instead of being perhaps some hundreds of miles in the
interior, and would dream of salt water, perriwinkles and
sea-weed, when he should be thinking of slimy mud-holes, black
snakes and gigantic gum-trees."
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' c. iv. p. 134:
"The little rivulet, called, with that singular pertinacity for
error which I have so often noticed here, `the creek.'"
1865. Lady Barker, `Station Life in, New Zealand,' p. 29:
"The creek, just like a Scotch burn, hurrying and tumbling down
the hillside to join the broader stream in the valley."
1870. P. Wentworth, `Amos Thorne,' i. p. 11:
"A thirsty creek-bed marked a line of green."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 39:
"In the rivers, whether large watercourses, and dignified by
the name of `river,' or small tributaries called by the less
sounding appellation `creeks."
1887. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. i. p. 41:
"Generally where the English language is spoken a creek means a
small inlet of the sea, but in Australia a creek is literally
what it is etymologically, a crack in the ground. In dry
weather there is very little water; perhaps in the height of
summer the stream altogether ceases to run, and the creek
becomes a string of waterholes; but when the heavens are
opened, and the rain falls, it reappears a river."
Creeklet, n. diminutive of Creek.
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 91:
"One small creeklet day by day murmurs."
Creeper, n. The name (sc. Tree-creeper)
is given to several New Zealand birds of the genus
Certhiparus, N.O. Passeres. The Maori names are
Pipipi, Toitoi, and Mohona.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 51:
"Certhiparus Novae Zelandiae, Finsch. New Zealand
Creeper." [A full description.]
Cronk, adj. Derived from the German
krank--sick or ill.
(1) A racing term used of a horse which is out of order and not
"fit" for the contest; hence transferred to a horse whose owner
is shamming its illness and making it "run crooked" for the
purpose of cheating its backers.
(2) Used more generally as slang, but not recognized in Barere
and Leland's `Slang Dictionary.'
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), July 4, p. 2, col. 7:
"He said he would dispose of the cloth at a moderate figure
because it was `cronk.' The word `cronk,' Mr. Finlayson
explained, meant `not honestly come by.'"
Crow, n. common English bird-name. The
Australian species is--White-eyed, Corvus coronoides
V. and H. In New Zealand (Maori name, Kokako) the name
is used for the Blue-wattled Crow, Glaucopis wilsoni and
for the (N. island) Orange-wattled, G. cinerea, Gmel.
(S. island).
Crow-shrike, n. Australian amalgamation of two
common English bird-names. The Crow-shrikes are of
three genera, Strepera, Gymnorrhima, and
Cracticus. The varieties of the genus Strepera are--
Black Crow-shrike--
Strepera fuliginosa, Gould.
Black-winged C.--
S. melanoptera, Gould.
Grey C.--
S. cuneicaudata, Vieill.
Hill C.--
S. arguta, Gould.
Leaden C.--
S. plumbea, Gould.
Pied C.--
S. graculina, White.
Birds of the genus Gymnorrhina are called Magpies
(q.v.). Those of the genus Cracticus are called
Butcher-birds (q.v.).
Crush, n. a part of a stockyard. See
quotations.
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 69:
"A crush, which is an elongated funnel, becoming so narrow
at the end that a beast is wedged in and unable to move."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 87:
"There were some small yards, and a `crush,' as they call it,
for branding cattle."
Cuckoo, n. common English bird-name.
The Australian birds to which it is applied are--
Black-eared Cuckoo--
Mesocalius osculans, Gould.
Bronze C.--
Chalcoccyx plagosus, Lath.
Brush C.--
Cacomantis insperatus.
[Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl.87.]
Chestnut-breasted C.--
C. castanei-ventris, Gould.
Fantailed C.--
C. flabelliformis, Lath.
Little-bronze C.--
Chalcoccyx malayanus, Raffles.
Narrow-billed bronze C.--
C. basalis, Hors.
Oriental C.--
Cuculus intermedius, Vahl.
Pallid C.--
Cacomantis pallidus and C. canorus, Linn.
Square-tailed C.--
C. variolosus, Hors.
Whistling-bronze C.--
Chalcoccyx lucidus, Gmel.
In New Zealand, the name is applied to Eudynamis
taitensis (sc. of Tahiti) Sparm., the Long-tailed Cuckoo;
and to Chrysococcyx lucidus, Gmel., the Shining Cuckoo.
The name Cuckoo has sometimes been applied to the
Mopoke (q.v.) and to the Boobook (q.v.). See
also Pheasant-cuckoo.
1855. G. W. Rusden, `Moyarra,' Notes, p. 30:
"The Australian cuckoo is a nightjar, and is heard only by night."
1868. W. Carleton, `Australian Nights,' p. 19:
"The Austral cuckoo spoke
His melancholy note, `Mopoke.'"
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 118:
"There are two species of the Longtailed Cuckoo (Eudynamis
taitensis), and the beautiful Bronze or Shining Cuckoo
(Chrysococcyx lucidus). They are both migratory birds.
The Long-tailed Cuckoo spends its winter in some of the Pacific
islands, the Shining Cuckoo in Australia."
Cuckoo-shrike, n. This combination of two
common English bird-names is assigned in Australia to the
following--
Barred Cuckoo-shrike
Graucalus lineatus, Swains.
Black-faced C.--
G. melanops, Lath.
Ground C.--
Pteropodocys phasianella, Gould.
Little C.--
Graucalus mentalis, Vig. and Hors.
Small-billed C.--
G. parvirostris, Gould.
White-bellied C.--
G. hyperleucus, Gould.
Cucumber-fish, n. i.q. Grayling (q.v.).
Cucumber-Mullet, n. i.q. Grayling
(q.v.).
Cultivation paddock, n. a field that has been
tilled and not kept for grass.
1853. Chas. St. Julian and Ed. K. Silvester, `The Productions,
Industry, and Resources of New South Wales,' p. 170:
"Few stations of any magnitude are without their `cultivation
paddocks,' where grain and vegetables are raised . . ."
1860. A Lady, `My Experiences in Australia,' p. 173:
"Besides this large horse paddock, there was a space cleared of
trees, some twenty to thirty acres in extent, on the banks of
the creek, known as the `Cultivation Paddock,' where in former
days my husband had grown a sufficient supply of wheat for home
consumption."
1893. `The Argus,' June 17, p. 13, col. 4:
"How any man could have been such an idiot as to attempt to
make a cultivation paddock on a bed of clay passed all my
knowledge.'
Curlew, n. common English bird-name.
The Australian species is Numenius cyanopus, Vieill.
The name, however, is more generally applied to AEdicnemus
grallarius, Lath.
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 43:
"They rend the air like cries of despair,
The screams of the wild curlew."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 18:
"Truly the most depressing cry I ever heard is that of the
curlew, which you take no notice of in course of time; but
which to us, wet, weary, hungry, and strange, sounded most
eerie."
1890. `Victorian Statutes, Game Act, Third Schedule':
"Southern Stone Plover or Curlew."
1894. `The Argus,' June 23, p. 11, col. 4:
"The calling of the stone plover. It might as well be a curlew
at once, for it will always be a curlew to country people. Its
first call, with the pause between, sounds like `Curlew'--that
is, if you really want it to sound so, though the blacks get
much nearer the real note with `Koo-loo,' the first syllable
sharp, the second long drawn out."
1896. Dr. Holden, of Hobart, `Private letter,' Jan.:
"There is a curlew in Australia, closely resembling the English
bird, and it calls as that did over the Locksley Hall
sand-dunes; but Australians are given to calling AEdicnemus
grallarius Latham (our Stone Plover), the `curlew,' which
is a misnomer. This also drearily wails, and after dark."
Currajong or Currijong, i.q. Kurrajong
(q.v.).
Currant, Native, n. The name is given to
various shrubs and trees of the genus Coprosma,
especially Coprosma billardieri, Hook.,
N.O. Rubiare(e; also to Leucopogon richei, Lab.,
N.O. Epacrideae, various species of Leptomeria,
N.O. Santalaceae, and Myoporum serratum, R. Br.,
N.O. Myoporineae. The names used for
M. serratum, chiefly in South Australia, are
Blueberry Tree, Native Juniper, Native
Myrtle, Palberry, and Cockatoo Bush.
See also Native Plum.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 220:
"Our native currants are strongly acidulous, like the
cranberry, and make an excellent preserve when mixed with
the raspberry."
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 133:
"Leucopogon lanceolatum. A large bush with numerous
harsh leaves, growing along the sea shore, with some other
smaller inland shrubs of the same tribe, produces very small
white berries of a sweetish and rather herby flavour. These
are promiscuously called white or native currants in the
colony."
["The insignificant and barely edible berries of this shrub are
said to have saved the life of the French botanist Riche, who
was lost in the bush on the South Australian coast for three
days, at the close of the last century." (Maiden.) The plant
is now called L. Richei.]
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 19:
"Native Currant. . . . This plant bears a small round drupe,
about the size of a small pea. Mr. Backhouse states that (over
half a century ago) when British fruits were scarce, it was
made into puddings by some of the settlers of Tasmania, but the
size and number of the seeds were objectionable."
Currant, Plain, n. See Plain Currant.
Currency, n. (1) Name given especially to early
paper-money in the Colonies, issued by private traders and of
various values, and in general to the various coins of foreign
countries, which were current and in circulation. Barrington,
in his `History of New South Wales `(1802), gives a table of
such specie.
1824. Edward Curr, `Account of the Colony of Van Diemen's Land,'
p.5:
"Much of this paper-money is of the most trifling description.
To this is often added `payable in dollars at 5s. each.' Some
. . . make them payable in Colonial currency."
[p. 69, note]: "25s. currency is about equal to a sovereign."
1826. Act of Geo. IV., No. 3 (Van Diemen's Land):
"All Bills of Exchange, Promissory Notes . . . as also all
Contracts and Agreements whatsoever which shall be drawn and
circulated or issued, or made and entered into, and shall be
therein expressed . . . to be payable in Currency, Current
Money, Spanish Dollars . . . shall be . . . Null and Void."
1862. Geo. Thos. Lloyd, `Thirty-three years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 9:
"Every man in business . . . issued promissory notes, varying
in value from the sum of fourpence to twenty shillings, payable
on demand. These notes received the appellation of paper
currency. . . . The pound sterling represented twenty-five
shillings of the paper-money."
(2) Obsolete name for those colonially-born.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
(Table of Contents):
"Letter XXI.--Currency or Colonial-born
population."
Ibid. p. 33:
"Our colonial-born brethren are best known here by the name of
Currency, in contradistinction to Sterling, or
those born in the mother-country. The name was originally
given by a facetious paymaster of the 73rd Regiment quartered
here--the pound currency being at that time inferior to the
pound sterling."
1833. H. W. Parker, `Rise, Progress, and Present State of Van
Diemen's Land,' p. 18:
"The Currency lads, as the country born colonists in the
facetious nomenclature of the colony are called, in
contradistinction to those born in the mother country."
1840. Martin's `Colonial Magazine,' vol. iii. p. 35:
"Currency lady."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 68:
"Whites born in the colony, who are also called `the currency';
and thus the `Currency Lass' is a favourite name for colonial
vessels." [And, it may be added, also of Hotels.]
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 6:
"A singular disinclination to finish any work completely, is a
striking characteristic of colonial craftsmen, at least of the
`currency' or native-born portion. Many of them who are
clever, ingenious and industrious, will begin a new work,
be it ship, house, or other erection, and labour at it most
assiduously until it be about two-thirds completed, and then
their energy seems spent, or they grow weary of the old
occupation, and some new affair is set about as busily as the
former one."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 35:
"English girls have such lovely complexions and cut out us poor
currency lasses altogether."
Ibid. p. 342:
"You're a regular Currency lass . . . always thinking about
horses."
Cushion-flower, n. i.q. Hakea laurina,
R. Br. See Hakea.
Cut out, v. (1) To separate cattle from the
rest of the herd in the open.
1873. Marcus Clarke, `Holiday Peak, &c.,' p. 70:
"The other two . . . could cut out a refractory bullock with
the best stockman on the plains."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. x. p. 72:
"We . . . camped for the purpose of separating our cattle,
either by drafting through the yard, or by `cutting out' on
horse-back."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 70:
"Drafting on the camp, or `cutting out' as it is generally
called, is a very pretty performance to watch, if it is well
done."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. ii. p. 13:
"Tell him to get `Mustang,' he's the best cutting-out horse."
1893. `The Argus,' April 29, p. 4. col. 4:
"A Queenslander would have thought it was as simple as going on
to a cutting-out camp up North and running out the fats."
(2) To finish shearing.
1890. `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 6:
"When the stations `cut out,' as the term for finishing is,
and the shearers and rouseabout men leave."
Cutting-grass, n. Cladium psittacorum,
Labill., N.O. Cyperaceae. It grows very long narrow
blades whose thin rigid edge will readily cut flesh if
incautiously handled; it is often called Sword-grass.
1858. T. McCombie `History of Victoria,' vol. i. p. 8:
"Long grass, known as cutting-grass between four and five feet
high, the blade an inch and a half broad, the edges exquisitely
sharp."
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 42:
"Travelling would be almost impossible but for the button
rush and cutting grass, which grow in big tussocks out of
the surrounding bog."
1894. `The Age,' Oct. 19, p. 5, col. 8:
"`Cutting grass' is the technical term for a hard, tough grass
about eight or ten inches high, three-edged like a bayonet,
which stock cannot eat because in their efforts to bite it off
it cuts their mouths."
D
Dabchick, n. common English bird-name. The New
Zealand species is Podiceps rufipectus. There is no
species in Australia.
Dacelo, n. Name given by "W. E. Leach, 1816.
An anagram or transposition of Lat. Alcedo, a
Kingfisher." (`Century.') Scientific name for the
Jackass (q.v.).
Dactylopsila, n. the scientific name of the
Australian genus of the Striped Phalanger, called locally the
Striped Opossum; see Opossum. It has a long bare
toe. (Grk. daktulos, a finger, and psilos, bare.)
Daisy, Brisbane, n. a Queensland and New South
Wales plant, Brachycome microcarpa, F. v. M.,
N.O. Compositae.
Daisy, Native, n. a Tasmanian flower,
Brachycome decipiens, Hook., N.O. Compositae.
Daisy Tree, n. two Tasmanian trees, Astur
stellulatus, Lab., and A. glandulosus, Lab.,
N.O. Compositae. The latter is called the
Swamp-Daisy-Tree.
Dam, n. In England, the word means a barrier
to stop water in Australia, it also means the water so stopped,
as `O.E.D.' shows it does in Yorkshire.
1873. Marcus Clarke, `Holiday Peak, &c.,' p. 76:
"The dams were brimming at Quartz-borough, St. Roy reservoir
was running over."
1892. `Scribner's Magazine,' Feb., p. 141:
"Dams as he calls his reservoirs scooped out in the hard soil."
1893. `The Leader,' Jan. 14:
"A boundary rider has been drowned in a dam."
1893. `The Times,' [Reprint] `Letters from Queensland,' p. 68:
"At present few stations are subdivided into paddocks smaller
than 20,000 acres apiece. If in each of these there is but one
waterhole or dam that can be relied upon to hold out in
drought, sheep and cattle will destroy as much grass in
tramping from the far corners of the grazing to the drinking
spot as they will eat. Four paddocks of 5,000 acres each, well
supplied with water, ought to carry almost double the number of
sheep."
1896. `The Argus,' March 30, p. 6, col. 9:
"[The murderer] has not since been heard of. Dams and
waterholes have been dragged . . . but without result."
Dammara, n. an old scientific name of the
genus, including the Kauri Pine (q.v.). It is from the
Hindustani, damar, `resin.' The name was applied to the
Kauri Pine by Lambert in 1832, but it was afterwards
found that Salisbury, in 1805, had previously constituted the
genus Agathis for the reception of the Kauri Pine
and the Dammar Pine of Amboyna. This priority of claim
necessitated the modern restoration of Agathis as the
name of the genus.
Damper, n. a large scone of flour and water
baked in hot ashes; the bread of the bush, which is always
unleavened. [The addition of water to the flour suggests a
more likely origin than that given by Dr. Lang. See quotation,
1847.]
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 190
"The farm-men usually make their flour into flat cakes, which
they call damper, and cook these in the ashes . . ."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,'
vol. ii. c. viii. p. 203:
"I watched the distorted countenances of my humble companions
while drinking their tea and eating their damper."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketches of New South Wales,' p. 103:
"Damper (a coarse dark bread)."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 122:
"I must here enlighten my readers as to what `damper' is. It
is the bread of the bush, made with flour and water kneaded
together and formed into dough, which is baked in the ashes,
and after a few months keeping is a good substitute for bread."
[The last clause contains a most extraordinary statement--
perhaps a joke. Damper is not kept for months, but is
generally made fresh for each meal. See quotation, 1890,
Lumholtz.]
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 122:
"A cake baked in the ashes, which in Australia is usually
styled a damper." [Footnote]: "This appellation is said to
have originated somehow with Dampier, the celebrated
navigator."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 284:
"`Damper' is a dough made from wheat-flour and water without
yeast, which is simply pressed flat, and baked in the ashes;
according to civilized notions, rather hard of digestion, but
quite agreeable to hungry woodmen's stomachs."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 20:
"At first we had rather a horror of eating damper, imagining it
to be somewhat like an uncooked crumpet. Experience, however,
showed it to be really very good. Its construction is simple,
and is as follows. Plain flour and water is mixed on a sheet
of bark, and then kneaded into a disc some two or three inches
thick to about one or two feet in diameter, great care to avoid
cracks being taken in the kneading. This is placed in a hole
scraped to its size in the hot ashes, covered over, and there
left till small cracks caused by the steam appear on the
surface of its covering. This is a sign that it is nearly
done, and in a few minutes the skilful chef will sound it over
with his "Wedges of damper (or bread baked in hot ashes) were
cut from time to time from great circular flat loaves of that
palatable and wholesome but somewhat compressed-looking bread."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 32:
"Damper is the name of a kind of bread made of wheat flour and
water. The dough is shaped into a flat round cake, which is
baked in red-hot ashes. This bread looks very inviting, and
tastes very good as long as it is fresh, but it soon becomes
hard and dry."
Damson, Native, n. called also Native Plum,
an Australian shrub, Nageia spinulosa, F. v. M.,
N.O. Coniferae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 53:
"Native Damson or Native Plum. This shrub possesses edible
fruit, something like a plum, hence its vernacular names. The
Rev. Dr. Woolis tells me that, mixed with jam of the Native
Currant (Leptomeria acida), it makes a very good
pudding."
Dandelion, Native, n. a flowering plant,
Podolepis acuminata, R. Br., N.O. Compositae.
Daphne, Native, n. an Australian timber,
Myoporum viscorum, R. Br., N.O. Myoporineae;
called also Dogwood and Waterbush.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 575:
"Native Daphne. . . . Timber soft and moderately light, yet
tough. It is used for building purposes. It dresses well, and
is straight in the grain."
Darling Pea, n. an Australian plant,
Swainsonia galegifolia, R. Br., N.O. Leguminosae;
i.q. Indigo Plant (q.v.). See also Poison-bush.
The Darling Downs and River were named after General (later Sir
Ralph) Darling, who was Governor of New South Wales from
Dec. 19, 1825 to Oct. 21, 1831. The "pea" is named from one of
these.
Darling Shower, n. a local name in the interior
of Australia, and especially on the River Darling, for a dust
storm, caused by cyclonic winds.
Dart, n. (1) Plan, scheme, idea [slang].
It is an extension of the meaning--"sudden motion."
1887. J. Farrell, `How: he died,' p. 20:
"Whose `dart' for the Looard
Was to appear the justest steward
That ever hiked a plate round."
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 9, p. 4, col. 2:
"When I told them of my `dart,' some were contemptuous,
others incredulous."
1892. Rolf Boldrewood, `Nevermore,' p. 22:
"Your only dart is to buy a staunch horse with a tip-cart."
(2) Particular fancy or personal taste.
1895. Modern:
"`Fresh strawberries eh!--that's my dart,' says the bushman
when he sees the fruit lunch in Collins-street."
Darter, n. common English name for birds of the
genus Plotus. So called from the way it "darts" upon
its prey. The Australian species is Plotus novae-
hollandiae, Gould.
Dasyure, and Dasyurus, n. the
scientific name of the genus of Australian animals called
Native Cats. See under Cat. The first form is
the Anglicized spelling and is scientifically used in
preference to the misleading vernacular name. From the Greek
dasus, thick with hair, hairy, shaggy, and 'oura,
tail. They range over Australia, Tasmania, New Guinea, and the
adjacent islands. Unlike the Thylacine and Tasmanian
Devil (q.v.), which are purely terrestrial, the
Dasyurus are arboreal in their habits, while they are
both carnivorous and insectivorous.
The Thylacine, Tasmanian Devil, Pouched Mice, and Banded
Ant-eater have sometimes been incorrectly classed as
Dasyures, but the name is now strictly allotted to the
genus Dasyurus, or Native Cat.
Date, Native, n. a Queensland fruit,
Capparis canescens, Banks, N.O. Capparideae.
The fruit is shaped like a pear, and about half an inch
in its largest diameter. It is eaten raw by the aborigines.
Deadbeat, n. In Australia, it means a man "down
on his luck," "stone-broke," beaten by fortune. In America,
the word means an impostor, a sponge. Between the two uses the
connection is clear, but the Australian usage is logically the
earlier.
Dead-bird, n. In Australia, a recent slang
term, meaning "a certainty." The metaphor is from
pigeon-shooting, where the bird being let loose in front of a
good shot is as good as dead.
Dead-finish, n. a rough scrubtree.
(1)Albizzia basaltica, Benth., N.O. Leguminosae.
(2) Acacia farnesiana, Willd.,
N.O. Leguminosae. See quotation, 1889.
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia', p. 272:
"On the eastern face of the coast range are pine, red cedar,
and beech, and on the western slopes, rose-wood, myall,
dead-finish, plum-tree, iron-wood and sandal-wood, all woods
with a fine grain suitable for cabinet-making and fancy work."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 355:
"Sometimes called by the absurd name of `Dead Finish.' This
name given to some species of Acacia and Albizzia, is on
account of the trees or shrubs shooting thickly from the
bottom, and forming an impenetrable barrier to the traveller,
who is thus brought to a `dead finish' (stop)"
1893. `The Times,' [Reprint] `Letters from Queensland,' p. 60:
"The hawthorn is admirably represented by a brush commonly
called `dead finish.'" [p. 61]: "Little knolls are crowned
with `dead finish' that sheep are always glad to nibble."
Dead-wood Fence, n. The Australian fence, so
called, is very different from the fence of the same name in
England. It is high and big, built of fallen timber, logs
and branches. Though still used in Australia for fencing runs,
it is now usually superseded by wire fences.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 157:
"A `dead-wood fence,' that is, a mass of timber four or five
feet thick, and five or six high, the lower part being formed
of the enormous trunks of trees, cut into logs six or eight
feet long, laid side by side, and the upper portion consisting
of the smaller branches skilfully laid over, or stuck down and
twisted."
1872. G. Baden-Powell, `New Homes for the Old Country,' p. 207:
"A very common fence is built by felling trees round the space
to be enclosed, and then with their stems as a foundation,
working up with the branches, a fence of a desirable height."
Deal, Native, n. an Australian timber,
Nageia elata, F. v. M., N.O. Coniferae.
For other vernacular names see quotation.
1869. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 589:
"Pine, white pine, called she-pine in Queensland; native deal,
pencil cedar. This tree has an elongated trunk, rarely
cylindrical; wood free from knots, soft, close, easily worked,
good for joiners' and cabinet-work; some trees afford planks of
great beauty. (Macarthur.) Fine specimens of this timber have
a peculiar mottled appearance not easily described, and often
of surpassing beauty."
[See also Pine.]
December, n. a summer month in Australia.
See Christmas.
1885. J. Hood, `Land of the Fern,' p. 34:
"Warm December sweeps with burning breath
Across the bosom of the shrinking earth."
Deepsinker, n. (1) The largest sized tumbler;
(2) the long drink served in it. The idea is taken from
deep-sinking in a mining shaft.
1897. `The Argus,' Jan. 15, p. 6, Col 5:
"As athletes the cocoons can run rings round the beans; they
can jump out of a tumbler--whether medium, small, or deepsinker
is not recorded."
Deep Yellow-Wood, n. Rhus rhodanthema,
F. v. M., N.O. Anacardiaceae. A tree with spreading head;
timber valuable. See Yellow-Wood.
Deferred Payment, n. a legal phrase. "Land on
deferred payment"; "Deferred payment settler"; "Pastoral
deferred payment." These expressions in New Zealand have
reference to the mode of statutory alienation of Crown lands,
known in other colonies as conditional sale, etc., i.e. sale
on time payment, with conditions binding the settler to erect
improvements, ending in his acquiring the fee-simple. The
system is obsolete, but many titles are still incomplete.
Dell-bird, n. another name for the
Bell-bird (q.v.).
Dendrolagus, n. the scientific name of the
genus of Australian marsupials called Tree-Kangaroos
(q.v.). (Grk. dendron, a tree, and lagows, a
hare.) Unlike the other kangaroos, their fore limbs are nearly
as long as the hinder pair, and thus adapted for arboreal life.
There are five species, three belong to New Guinea and two to
Queensland; they are the Queensland Tree-Kangaroo,
Dendrolagus lumholtzi; Bennett's T.-k.,
D. bennettianus; Black T.-k., D. ursinus : Brown
T.-k., D. inustus; Doria's T.-k., D. dorianus.
See Kangaroo.
Derry, n. slang. The phrase "to have a down
on" (see Down) is often varied to "have a derry on."
The connection is probably the comic-song refrain, "Hey derry
down derry."
1896. `The Argus,' March 19, p. 5, col. 9:
"Mr. Croker: Certainly. We will tender it as evidence.
(To the witness.) Have you any particular `derry' upon this
Wendouree?--No; not at all. There are worse vessels knocking
about than the Wendouree."
Dervener, n. See quotation,
and Derwenter.
1896. `The Argus,' Jan. 2, p. 3, col. 4, Letters to the
Editor:
"`Dervener.'--An expression used in continental Australia for a
man from the Derwent in Tasmania. Common up till 1850 at
least.--David Blair."
Ibid. Jan. 3, p. 6, col. 6:
"With respect to `dervener,' the word was in use while the blue
shirt race existed [sc. convicts], and these people did not
become extinct until after 1860.--Cymro-Victoria."
Derwenter, n. a released convict from Hobart
Town, Tasmania, which is on the River Derwent.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xx. p. 140:
"An odd pair of sawyers, generally `Derwenters,' as the
Tasmanian expirees were called."
Desert Lemon, n. called also Native
Kumquat, Atalantia glauca, Hook.,
N.O. Rutacea.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 8:
"The native kumquat or desert lemon. The fruit is globular,
and about half an inch in diameter. It produces an agreeable
beverage from its acid juice."
Desert-Oak, n. an Australian tree, Casuarina
decaisneana, F. v. M. See Casuarina and Oak.
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Narrative, p. 49:
"We had now amongst these sandhills come into the region of the
`Desert Oak' (Casuarina Decaisneana). Some of the trees
reach a height of forty or fifty feet, and growing either
singly or in clumps form a striking feature amongst the thin
sparse scrub. . . . The younger ones resemble nothing so much
as large funeral plumes. Their outlines seen under a blazing
sun are indistinct, and they give to the whole scene a curious
effect of being `out of focus.'"
Devil, Tasmanian, n. an animal, Sarcophilus
ursinus, Harris. Formerly, but erroneously, referred to
the genus Dasyurus (q.v.), which includes the Native
Cat (see under Cat): described in the quotations.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' vol. ii. p. 29:
"The devil, or as naturalists term it, Dasyurus ursinus,
is very properly named."
1853. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 323:
"The devil (Dasyurus ursinus, Geoff.), about the size of
a bull terrier, is an exceedingly fierce and disgusting-looking
animal, of a black colour, usually having one white band across
the chest, and another across the back, near the tail. It is a
perfect glutton, and most indiscriminate in its feeding."
1862. F. J. Jobson, `Australia,' c. vii. p. 186:
"Dasyurus ursinus--a carnivorous marsupial. Colonists
in Tasmania, where only it exists . . . called it the `devil,'
from the havoc it made among their sheep and poultry."
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"In the next division is a pair of Tasmanian devils
(Dasyurus ursinus); these unprepossessing-looking brutes
are hated by every one in Tasmania, their habitat, owing to
their destructiveness amongst poultry, and even sheep. They
are black in colour, having only a white band across the chest,
and possess great strength in proportion to their size."
Devil's Guts, n. The name is given in Australia
to the Dodder-Laurel (see Laurel), Cassytha
filiformis, Linn., N.O. Lauraceae. In Tasmania the
name is applied to Lyonsia straminea, R. Br., N.O.
Apocyneae.
1862. W. Archer, `Products of Tasmania,' p. 41:
"Lyonsia (Lyonsia straminea, Br.). Fibres of the bark
fine and strong. The lyonsia is met with, rather sparingly, in
dense thickets, with its stems hanging like ropes among the
trees."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `useful Native Plants,' p. 14:
"This and other species of Cassythia are called
`dodder-laurel.' The emphatic name of `devil's guts' is
largely used. It frequently connects bushes and trees by
cords, and becomes a nuisance to the traveller." [This plant
is used by the Brahmins of Southern India for seasoning their
buttermilk. (`Treasury of Botany.')]
Ibid. p. 162:
"It is also used medicinally."
Devil-on-the-Coals, n. a Bushman's name for
a small and quickly-baked damper.
1862. Rev. A. Polehampton, `Kangaroo Land,' p. 77:
"Instead of damper we occasionally made what is colonially
known as `devils on the coals.' . . . They are convenient when
there is not time to make damper, as only a minute or so is
required to bake them. They are made about the size of a
captain's biscuit, and as thin as possible, thrown on the
embers and turned quickly with the hand."
Diamond Bird, n. a bird-name. In the time of
Gould this name was only applied to Pardalotus
punctatus, Temm. Since that time it has been extended to
all the species of the genus Pardalotus (q.v.). The
broken colour of the plumage suggested a sparkling jewel.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 238:
"We are informed by Mr. Caley that this species is called
diamond bird by the settlers, from the spots on its body.
By them it is reckoned as valuable on account of its skin."
Diamond Snake, n. In Queensland and New South
Wales, Pythonon spilotes, Lacep.; in Tasmania,
Hoplocephalus superhus, Gray, venomous. See under
Snake.
Digger, n. a gold-miner. The earliest mines
were alluvial. Of course the word is used elsewhere, but in
Australia it has this special meaning.
1852. Title:
"Murray's Guide to the Gold Diggings.--The Australian Gold
Diggings; where they are, and how to get at them; with letters
from Settlers and Diggers telling how to work them. London:
Stewart & Murray) 1852."
1853. Valiant, `Letter to Council,' given in McCombie's
`History of Victoria' (1853), c. xvi. p. 248:
"It caused the diggers, as a body, to pause in their headlong
career."
1855. W. Howitt, `Land, Labour, and Gold,'
vol. ii. p. 148, Letter xxx:
"Buckland River, January 29th, 1854. The diggers here are a
very quiet and civil race, at the same time that they are a
most active and laborious one. . . . The principal part of
the diggers here are from the Ovens."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. ii. p. 31:
"Drink success to the digger's trade,
And break up to the squatter's."
1896. H. Lawson, `While the Billy boils,' p. 148:
"His Father's Mate had always been a general favourite with the
diggers and fossickers, from the days when he used to slip out
first thing in the morning and take a run across the frosty
flat in his shirt."
Digger's Delight, n. a flower, Veronica
perfoliata, R. Br., N.O. Scrophularaneae, described
in quotations.
1878. W. R. Guilfoyle, `First Book of Australian Botany,' p. 64:
"Digger's Delight, Veronica perfoliata,
N.O. Scrophularineae. A pretty, blue-flowering shrub,
with smooth stem-clasping leaves; found in the mountainous
districts of Victoria and New South Wales, and deriving its
common name from a supposition that its presence indicated
auriferous country. It is plentiful in the elevated cold
regions of Australia."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 147:
"Such native flowers as the wild violet, the shepherd's purse,
or the blue-flowered `digger's delight.' This latter has come,
perhaps, with the seeds from some miner's holding amongst the
iron-barks in the gold country, and was once supposed to grow
only on auriferous soils. When no one would think of digging
for gold in this field, the presence of the flower is, perhaps,
as reliable an indication of a golconda underneath as the
reports and information on the strength of which many mining
companies are floated."
Diggerdom, n. collective noun, the diggers.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 43:
"Diggerdom is gloriously in the ascendant here."
Diggeress, n. a digger's wife.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 43:
"The digger marching off, followed by his diggeress, a tall,
slim young woman, who strode on like a trooper. . . . Open
carriages driving about, crowded with diggers and their
diggeresses."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. ii. p. 36:
"I'm tir'd of being a diggeress,
And yearn a farmer's home to grace."
Diggings, n. a place where gold-mining is
carried on. The word is generally regarded as singular.
Though common in Australia, it is very old, even in the sense
of a place where digging for gold is carried on.
1769. De Foe's `Tour of Great Britain,' i. 39 (`O.E.D.'):
"King Henry VIII. was induced to dig for Gold. He was
disappointed, but the Diggings are visible at this Day."
1852. J. Morgan, `Life and Adventures of William Buckley'
(published at Hobart), p. 183 [quoting from the `Victoria
Commercial Review,' published at Melbourne, by
Messrs. Westgarth, Ross, & Co., under date September 1, 1851]:
"The existence of a `goldfield' was not ascertained until May
last. . . . Numbers of persons are daily `prospecting'
throughout this Colony and New South Wales in search of
gold. . . .In Victoria, as well as in New South Wales, regular
`diggings' are now established."
1852. Murray, `The Australian Gold Diggings: where they are
and how to get at them,' p. 1;
"It cannot but be acceptable to the crowds of intending
colonists and gold seekers, to present them with a picture of
the `Progress of the Diggins,' [sic] drawn by the diggers."
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria,' c. xv. p. 234:
"Immigrants who had not means to start to the diggings."
1870. J. O. Tucker, `The Mute,' p. 48:
"Ye glorious diggings `neath a southern clime!
I saw thy dawn."
[`Ye,' `thy.' Is this singular or plural?]
1887. H. H. Hayter, `Christmas Adventure,' p. i:
"Fryer's creek, a diggings more than 90 miles from Melbourne."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. vii. p. 71:
"It was a goldfield and a diggings in far-away Australia."
Dilli, later Dilly-bag, n. an
aboriginal word, coming from Queensland, for a bag made either
of grasses or of fur twisted into cord. Dhilla is the
term for hair in Kabi dialect, Mary River, Queensland.
Dirrang and jirra are corresponding words in the
east of New South Wales. The aboriginal word dilli has
been tautologically increased to dilly-bag, and the word
is used by bushmen for a little bag for odds-and-ends, even
though made of calico or holland.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 90:
"In their `dillis' (small baskets) were several roots or
tubers."
Ibid. p. 195:
"A basket (dilli) which I examined was made of a species of
grass."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 34:
"I learned too at the camp to plait dilly-bags."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvii. p. 210:
"Mayboy came forward dangling a small dilly-bag."
1896. A.J. North, `Report of Australian Museum,' p. 26:
"Dilly-bag (partly wool and partly grass)."
Dingle-bird, n. a poetical name for the
Australian Bell-bird (q.v.).
1870. F. S. Wilson, `Australian Songs,' p. 30:
"The bell-like chimings of the distant dingle-bird."
1883. C. Harpur, `Poems,' p. 78:
"I . . . list the tinkling of the dinglebird."
Dingo, n. the native dog of Australia, Canis
dingo. "The aborigines, before they obtained dogs from
Europeans, kept the dingo for hunting, as is still done by
coast tribes in Queensland. Name probably not used further
south than Shoalhaven, where the wild dog is called Mirigang."
(A. W. Howitt.)
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 280:
[A dingo or dog of New South Wales. Plate. Description by J.
Hunter.] "It is capable of barking, although not so readily as
the European dogs; is very ill-natured and vicious, and snarls,
howls, and moans, like dogs in common. Whether this is the
only dog in New South Wales, and whether they have it in a wild
state, is not mentioned; but I should be inclined to believe
they had no other; in which case it will constitute the wolf of
that country; and that which is domesticated is only the wild
dog tamed, without having yet produced a variety, as in some
parts of America."
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' p. 614 [Vocab.]:
"Jungo---Beasts, common name.
Tein-go---Din-go.
Wor-re-gal---Dog."
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description of New South Wales,' p. 62:
"The native dog also, which is a species of the wolf, was
proved to be fully equal in this respect [sport] to the fox;
but as the pack was not sufficiently numerous to kill these
animals at once, they always suffered so severely from their
bite that at last the members of the hunt were shy in allowing
the dogs to follow them."
1834. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar,' p. 55:
"Tigko---a bitch."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes `(1855), p. 153:
"I have heard that the dingo, warragal or native dog, does not
hunt in packs like the wolf and jackal."
1860. William Story, `Victorian Government Prize Essays,' p. 101:
"The English hart is so greatly superior, as an animal of
chase, to that cunning poultry thief the fox, that I trust
Mister Reynard will never be allowed to become an Australian
immigrant, and that when the last of the dingoes shall have
shared the fate of the last English wolf, Australian Nimrods
will resuscitate, at the antipodes of England, the sterling old
national sport of hart hunting, conjointly with that of African
boks, gazelles, and antelopes, and leave the fox to their
English cousins, who cannot have Australian choice."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 103:
"In the neighbourhood of Brisbane and other large towns where
they have packs, they run the dingoes as you do foxes at home."
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 113:
"The arms of the Wimmera should be rabbit and dingo, `rampant,'
supporting a sun, `or, inflamed.'"
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 71:
"Dingoes, the Australian name for the wild dogs so destructive
to sheep. They were . . . neither more nor less than wolves,
but more cowardly and not so ferocious, seldom going in large
packs. They hunted kangaroos when in numbers, or driven to it
by hunger; but usually preferred smaller and more easily
obtained prey, as rats, bandicoots, and 'possums."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 38:
"On the large stations a man is kept whose sole work it is to
lay out poison for the dingo. The black variety with white
breast generally appears in Western Queensland along with the
red."
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"The dingo of northern Australia can be distinguished from his
brother of the south by his somewhat smaller size and
courageous bearing. He always carries his tail curled over his
back, and is ever ready to attack any one or anything; whilst
the southern dingo carries his tail low, slinks along like a
fox, and is easily frightened. The pure dingo, which is now
exceedingly rare in a wild state, partly through the agency of
poison, but still more from the admixture of foreign breeds, is
unable to bark, and can only express its feelings in long-drawn
weird howls."
1894. `The Argus,' June 23, p. l1, col. 4:
"Why is the first call of a dingo always apparently miles away,
and the answer to it--another quavering note slightly more
shrill--so close at hand? Is it delusion or distance?"
Dinornis, n. the scientific name given by
Professor Owen to the genus of huge struthious birds of the
post-Pliocene period, in New Zealand, which survive in the
traditions of the Maoris under the name of Moa (q.v.).
From the Greek deinos, terrible, and 'ornis,
bird.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. Intro.
p. xviii:
"The specimens [fossil-bones] transmitted . . . were confided
to the learned Professor [Owen] for determination; and these
materials, scanty as they were, enabled him to define the
generic characters of Dinornis, as afforded by the bones
of the hind extremity."
Ibid. p. xxiv:
"Professor Owen had well-nigh exhausted the vocabulary of terms
expressive of largeness by naming his successive discoveries
ingens, giganteus, crassus, robustus, and
elephantopus, when he had to employ the superlative
Dinornis maximus to distinguish a species far exceeding
in stature even the stately Dinornis giganteus. In this
colossal bird . . . some of the cervical vertebrae almost equal
in size the neck-bones of a horse! The skeleton in the British
Museum . . . measures 11 feet in height, and . . . some of these
feathered giants attained to a still greater stature."
Dipper, n. a vessel with a handle at the top of
the side like a big tin mug. That with which one dips. The
word is not Australian, but is of long standing in the United
States, where it is used as a name for the constellation of the
Great Bear.
1893. `Australasian Schoolmaster,' Feb.:
"These answers have not the true colonial ring of the
following, which purports to be the remark of the woman of
Samaria: `Sir, the well is very deep, and you haven't got
a dipper.'"
Dips, n. Explained in quotation.
1859. G. Bunce, `Travels with Leichhardt,' p. 161:
". . . Dr. Leichhardt gave the party a quantity of dough boys,
or as we called them, dips. . ."
[p. 171]: "In this dilemma, Dr. Leichhardt ordered the cook to
mix up a lot of flour, and treated us all to a feed of dips.
These were made as follows:--a quantity of flour was mixed up
with water, and stirred with a spoon to a certain consistency,
and dropped into a pot of boiling water, a spoonful at a time.
Five minutes boiling was sufficient, when they were eaten with
the water in which they were boiled."
Dirt, n. In Australia, any alluvial deposit in
which gold is found; properly Wash-dirt. The word is
used in the United States. See quotation, 187.
1853. Mrs. Chas. Clancy, `Lady's Visit to the Gold Diggings,'
p. 109:
"And after doing this several times, the `dirt,' of course,
gradually diminishing, I was overjoyed to see a few bright
specks."
1857. Borthwick, `California,' [Bartlett, quoted in `O.E.D.']
p. 120:
"In California, `dirt' is the universal word to signify the
substance dug; earth, clay, gravel, or loose slate. The miners
talk of rich dirt and poor dirt, and of stripping off so many
feet of `top dirt' before getting to `pay-dirt,' the latter
meaning dirt with so much gold in it that it will pay to dig it
up and wash it."
1870. J. O. Tucker, `The Mute,'p. 40:
"Others to these the precious dirt convey,
Linger a moment till the panning's through."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xiv. p. 142:
"We were clean worked out . . . before many of our neighbours
at Greenstone Gully, were half done with their dirt."
Ibid. c. xviii. p. 177:
"We must trust in the Oxley `dirt' and a kind Providence."
Dish, n. and adj. a small and rough
vessel in which gold is washed. The word is used in the United
States.
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 17:
"I have obtained good dish prospects after crudely crushing up
the quartz."
Dishwasher, n. an old English bird-name for the
Water-Wagtail; applied in Australia to Seisura inquieta,
Lath., the Restless Fly-catcher (q.v.). Seisura
is from Grk. seiein (to shake), and 'oura (a
tail), being thus equal in meaning to Wagtail. Also called
Dishlick, Grinder, and Razor-grinder (q.v.).
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of the Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 250:
"This bird is called by the colonists Dishwasher. It is very
curious in its actions. In alighting on the stump of a tree it
makes several semi-circular motions, spreading out its tail,
and making a loud noise somewhat like that caused by a
razor-grinder when at work."
Distoechurus, n. the scientific name of the
genus of the New Guinea Pentailed-Phalanger, or so-called
Opossum-mouse (q.v.). It has a tail with the long hairs
arranged in two opposite rows, like the vanes of a
feather.(Grk. distoichos, with two rows, and
'oura, a tail.)
Diver, n. common bird-name used in Australia
for a species of Grebe.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vii. pl. 80:
"Podiceps australis, Gould; Australian Tippet Grebe;
Diver of the Colonists."
Doctor, n. word used in the South Australian
bush for "the cook."
1896. `The Australasian,' June 13, p. 1133, col. 1:
"`The doctor's in the kitchen, and the boss is in the shed;
The overseer's out mustering on the plain;
Sling your bluey down, old boy, for the clouds are overhead,
You are welcome to a shelter from the rain.'"
Dodder Laurel, n. i.q. Devil's Guts
(q.v.).
Dog-fish, n. The name belongs to various
fishes of distinct families, chiefly sharks. In Australia,
it is used for the fish Scyllium lima, family
Scylliidae. In New South Wales it is Scyllium
maculatum, Bl. The Sprite Dog-fish of New Zealand
is Acanthias maculatus, family Spinacidae. The
Spotted Dog-fish of New South Wales is Scyllium
anale. The Dusky Dogfish of New South Wales is
Chiloscyllium modestum, Gunth., and there are others
in Tasmania and Australia.
Dogleg, adj. applied to a primitive kind of
fence made of rough timber. Crossed spars, which are the
doglegs, placed at intervals, keep in place a low rail resting
on short posts, and are themselves fixed by heavy saplings
resting in the forks above.
1875. R. and F. Hill, `What we saw in Australia,' p. 61:
". . . we made acquaintance with the `dog's leg' fence.
This is formed of bare branches of the gum-tree laid obliquely,
several side by side, and the ends overlapping, so that they
have somewhat the appearance that might be presented by the
stretched-out legs of a crowd of dogs running at full speed.
An upright stick at intervals, with a fork at the top, on which
some of the cross-branches rest, adds strength to the
structure."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 13:
"While the primaeval `dog-leg' fence of the Victorian bush,
or the latter-day `chock and log' are no impediments in the path
of our foresters." [sc. kangaroos; see Forester.]
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 71:
"As we rode up we could see a gunyah made out of boughs, and a
longish wing of dog leg fence, made light but well put
together."
Dog's Tongue, n. name given to the plant
Cynoglossum suaveolens, R. Br., N.O. Asperifoliae.
Dogwood, n. various trees and their wood; none
of them the same as those called dogwood in the Northern
Hemisphere, but their woods are used for similar purposes, e.g.
butchers' skewers, fine pegs, and small pointed wooden
instruments. In Australia generally, Jacksonia
scoparia, R. Br., also Myoporum platycarpum, R. Br.
In Tasmania, Bedfordia salicina, De C.,
N.O. Compositae, which is also called Honeywood,
and in New South Wales, Cottonwood (q.v.), and the two
trees Pomaderris elliptica, Lab., and P. apetala,
Lab., N.O. Rhamnaceae, which are called respectively
Yellow and Bastard Dogwood. See also
Coranderrk. In parts of Tasmania, Pomaderris
apetala, Lab., N.O. Rhamn/ac?/eae, is also called
Dogwood, or Bastard Dogwood.
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 16:
"There is a secluded hollow of this kind near Kangaroo Bottom,
near Hobart Town, where the common dogwood of the colony
(pomaderris apetala) has sprung up so thick and tall, that Mr.
Babington and myself having got into it unawares one day, had
the greatest difficulty imaginable to get out after three or
four hours' labour. Not one of the plants was more than six
inches apart from the others, while they rose from 6 to 12
yards in height, with leaves at the top which almost wholly
excluded the light of the sun."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 11:
"Iron-bark ridges here and there, with spotted gum, with
dogwood (Jacksonia) on a sandy soil." (p. 20): "A
second creek, with running water, which from the number of
dogwood shrubs (Jacksonia), in the full glory of their
golden blossoms, I called `Dogwood Creek.'"
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue--Economic Woods,' p. 46:
"Native dogwood, a hard, pale-brown, well-mottled wood; good
for turnery."
Dogwood Poison-bush, n. a New South Wales name;
the same as Ellangowan Poison-bush (q.v.).
Dollar, n. See Holy Dollar.
Dollar-bird, n. name given to the Roller
(q.v.). See quotations.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 202:
"The settlers call it dollar-bird, from the silver-like spot on
the wing."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia;' vol. ii. pl. 17:
"Eurystomus Australis, Swains., Australian Roller.
Dollar Bird of the Colonists. During flight the white spot in
the centre of each wing, then widely expanded, shows very
distinctly, and hence the name of Dollar Bird.'"
1851. I. Henderson, `Excursions in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 183:
"The Dollar-bird derives its name from a round white spot the
size of a dollar, on its wing. It is very handsome, and flies
in rather a peculiar manner. It is the only bird which I have
observed to perform regular migrations; and it is strange that
in such a climate any one should do so. But it appears that
the dollar-bird does not relish even an Australian winter.
It is the harbinger of spring and genial weather."
Dollar-fish n. a name often given formerly to
the John Dory (q.v.), from the mark on its side. See
quotation, 1880. The name Dollar-fish is given on the
American coasts to a different fish.
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 451:
"The fishermen of Roman Catholic countries hold this fish in
special respect, as they recognize in a black round spot on its
side the mark left by the thumb of St. Peter, when he took the
piece of money from its mouth."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 62:
"The dory has been long known, and when the currency of the
colony was in Mexican coin it was called a `dollar-fish.'"
Dorca-Kangaroo, n. See Dorcopsis and
Kangaroo.
Dorcopsis, n. the scientific name of a genus of
little Kangaroos with pretty gazelle-like faces.
(Grk. dorkas, a gazelle, and 'opsis, appearance.)
They are called Dorca-Kangaroos, and are confined to New
Guinea, and form in some respects a connecting link between
Macropus and the Tree-Kangaroo (q.v.). There are
three species--the Brown Dorca Kangaroo, Dorcopsis
muelleri; Grey D., D. luctuosa, Macleay's D.,
D. macleayi. See Kangaroo (e).
Dottrel, n. formerly Dotterel, common
English bird-name, applied in Australia to Charadrius
australis, Gould.
Black-fronted Dottrel--
Charadrius nigrifrons, Temm.
Double-banded D.--
C. bicincta, Jord. and Selb.
Hooded D.--
C. monacha, Geoff.
Large Sand D.--
C. (AEgialitis) geoffroyi, Wag.
Mongolian Sand D.--
C. (AEgialitis) mongolica, Pallas.
Oriental D.--
C. veredus, Gould.
Red-capped Dottrel--
Charadrius ruficapilla, Temm.; called also
Sand-lark.
Red-necked D.--
C. (AEgialitis) mastersi, Ramsay.
Ringed D.--
C. hiaticula, Linn. [See also Red-knee.]
Dove, n. a well-known English bird-name,
applied in Australia to the--
Barred-shouldered Dove--
Geopelia humeralis, Temm.
Ground D.--
G. tranquilla, Gould.
Little D.--
G. cuneata, Lath. [See also Ground-dove.]
Dove-Petrel, n. a well-known English bird-name.
The species in the-Southern Seas are--
Prion turtur, Smith.
Banks D.-P.--
P. banksii, Smith.
Broad-billed D.-P.--
P. vittata, Forst.
Fairy D.-P.--
P. ariel, Gould.
Dover, n. a clasp knife, by a maker of that
name, once much used in the colonies.
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 418:
"In plates and knives scant is the shepherd's store,
`Dover' and pan are all, he wants no more."
1893. April 15, `A Traveller's Note':
"`So much a week and the use of my Dover' men used to say in
making a contract of labour."
1894. `Bush Song' [Extract]:
"Tie up the dog beside the log,
And come and flash your Dover."
Down, n. a prejudice against, hostility to;
a peculiarly Australian noun made out of the adverb.
1856. W. W. Dobie, `Recollections of a Visit to Port Philip,'
p. 84:
". . . the bushranger had been in search of another squatter,
on whom `he said he had a down'. . ."
1884. J. W. Bull, `Early Life in South Australia,' p. 179:
"It was explained that Foley had a private `down' on them,
as having stolen from him a favourite kangaroo dog."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia, vol. iv. p. 180:
"They [diggers] had a `dead down' on all made dishes."
1893. Professor Gosman, `The Argus,' April 24, p. 7, col. 4:
"That old prejudice in the minds of many men to the effect that
those who represented the churches or religious people had a
regular down upon freedom of thought."
1893. `The Age,' June 24, p. 5, col. 1:
"Mr. M. said it was notorious in the department that one of the
commissioners had had `a down' on him."
1893. R. L. Stevenson, `Island Nights' Entertainments,' p. 46:
"`They have a down on you,' says Case. `Taboo a man because
they have a down on him'' I cried. `I never heard the like.'"
Down, adv. "To come, or be down," is the phrase
used in Australian Universities for to be "plucked," or
"ploughed," or "spun," i.e., to fail in an examination. It has
been in use for a few years, certainly not earlier than 1886.
The metaphor is either taken from a fall from a horse, or
perhaps from the prize-ring. The use has no connection with
being "sent down," or "going down," at Oxford or Cambridge.
Draft, v. to separate and sort cattle. An
adaptation of the meaning "to select and draw off for
particular service," especially used of soldiers.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. vi. p. 46:
"I should like to be drafting there again."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Squatter's Dream,' p. 2:
"There were those cattle to be drafted that had been brought
from the Lost Waterhole."
Draft, n. a body of cattle separated from the
rest of the herd.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. ii. p. 22:
"A draft of out-lying cattle rose and galloped off."
Drafter, n. a man engaged in drafting cattle.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xviii. p. 227:
"They behave better, though all the while keeping the drafters
incessantly popping at the fence by truculent charges."
Drafting-gate, n. gate used in separating
cattle and sheep into different classes or herds.
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 16, p. 4, col. 7:
"But the tent-flap seemed to go up and down quick as a
drafting-gate."
Drafting-stick, n. a stick used in drafting
cattle.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. x. p. 72:
"We . . . armed ourselves with drafting-sticks and resolutely
faced it."
Drafting-yard, n. a yard for drafting cattle.
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 16, p. 13, col. 1:
"There were drafting-yards and a tank a hundred yards off,
but no garden."
Dray, n. an ordinary cart for goods. See
quotation, 1872.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. Intro. p. xlix:
"They send their produce to the market . . . receiving supplies
for home consumption on the return of their drays or carts from
thence."
1872. C. H. Eden, "My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 31:
"A horse dray, as known in Australia, is by no means the
enormous thing its name would signify, but simply an ordinary
cart on two wheels without springs." [There are also
spring-drays.]
1886. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 41:
"One told by camp fires when the station drays
Were housed and hidden, forty years ago."
Dromicia, n. the scientific name of the
Australian Dormouse Phalangers, or little
Opossum- or Flying-Mice, as they are locally
called. See Opossum, Opossum-mouse, and
Phalanger. They are not really the "Flying"-Mice or
Flying-phalanger, as they have only an incipient parachute, but
they are nearly related to the Pigmy Petaurists (q.v.)
or small Flying-Phalangers. (Grk. dromikos, good
at running, or swift.)
Drongo, n. This bird-name was "given by Le
Vaillant in the form drongeur to a South African bird
afterwards known as the Musical Drongo, Dicrurus
musicus, then extended to numerous . . . fly-catching,
crow-like birds." (`Century.') The name is applied in
Australia to Chibia bracteata, Gould, which is called
the Spangled Drongo.
1895. W. 0. Legge, `Australasian Association for the
Advancement of Science' (Brisbane), p. 448:
"There being but one member of the interesting Asiatic genus
Drongo in Australia, it was thought best to characterize
it simply as the Drongo without any qualifying term."
Drop, n. (Slang.) To "have the drop on" is to
forestall, gain advantage over, especially by covering with a
revolver.
It is curious that while an American magazine calls this phrase
Australian (see quotation), the `Dictionary of Slang'--one
editor of which is the distinguished American, Godfrey
C. Leland--says it is American. It is in common use in
Australia.
1894. `Atlantic Monthly,' Aug., p. 179.
"His terrible wife, if we may borrow a phrase from Australia,
`had the drop on him' in every particular."
Drooping Acacia, n. See Acacia.
Drove, v. to drive travelling cattle or sheep.
1890. A. J. Vogan, `Black Police,' p. 334:
"I don't know how you'd be able to get on without the `boys' to
muster, track, and drove."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River' [Poem `In the
Droving Days'], p. 95:
"For though lie scarcely a trot can raise,
He can take me back to the droving days."
Drum, n. a bundle; more usually called
a swag (q.v.).
1866. Wm. Starner, `Recollections of a Life of Adventure,'
vol. i. p. 304
". . . and `humping his drum' start off for the diggings to
seek more gold."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 17:
"They all chaffed us about our swags, or donkeys, or drums,
as a bundle of things wrapped in a blanket is indifferently
called."
1886. Frank Cowan, `Australia, Charcoal Sketch,' p. 31:
"The Swagman: bed and board upon his back--or, having humped
his drum and set out on the wallaby . . ."
Drummer, n. a New South Wales name for the fish
Girella elevata, Macl., of the same family as the
Black-fish (q.v.).
Dry-blowing, n. a Western Australian term in
gold-mining.
1894. `The Argus,' March 28, p. 5, col. 5:
"When water is not available, as unfortunately is the case at
Coolgardie, `dry blowing' is resorted to. This is done by
placing the pounded stuff in one dish, and pouring it slowly at
a certain height into the other. If there is any wind blowing
it will carry away the powdered stuff; if there is no wind the
breath will have to be used. It is not a pleasant way of
saving gold, but it is a case of Hobson's choice. The
unhealthiness of the method is apparent."
Duboisine, n. an alkaloid derived from the
plant Duboisia myoposides, N.O. Sofanaceae, a
native of Queensland and New South Wales. It is used in
medicine as an application to the eye for the purpose of
causing the pupil to dilate, in the same way as atropine, an
alkaloid obtained from the belladonna plant in Europe, has long
been employed. Duboisine was discovered and introduced into
therapeutics by a Brisbane physician.
Duck, n. the well-known English name of the
birds of the Anatinae, Fuligulinae, and other series,
of which there are about 125 species comprised in about 40 genera.
The Australian genera and species are---
Blue-billed Duck--
Erismatura australis, Gould.
Freckled D.--
Stictonetta naevosa, Gould.
Mountain D. (the Shel-drake, q.v.).
Musk D. (q.v.)--
Biziura lobata, Shaw.
Pink-eared D., or Widgeon (q.v.)--
Malacorhynchus membranaceus, Lath.
Plumed Whistling D.--
Dendrocygna eytoni, Gould.
Whistling D.--
D. vagans, Eyton. [Each species of the
Dendrocygna called also by sportsmen Tree-duck.]
White-eyed D., or Hard-head (q.v.)--
Nyroca australis, Gould.
Wild D.--
Anas superciliosa, Gmel.
Wood D. (the Maned Goose; see Goose).
The following is a table of the ducks as compiled by Gould nearly
fifty years ago.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vii:
Plate
Anas superciliosa, Gmel.
Australian Wild Duck . . . 9
Anas naevosa, Gould,
Freckled Duck . . . 10
Anas punctata, Cuv.
Chestnut-breasted Duck . . . 11
Spatula Rhyncotis,
Australian Shoveller . . . 12
Malacorhynchus membranaceus, . . . 13
Membranaceous Duck
Dendrocygna arcuata,
Whistling Duck (q.v.) . . . 14
Leptolarsis Eytoni, Gould,
Eyton's Duck . . . 15
Nyroca Australis, Gould,
White-eyed Duck . . . 16
Erismatura Australis,
Blue-billed Duck . . . 17
Biziura lobata,
Musk Duck . . . 18
The following is Professor Parker's statement of the New Zealand
Ducks.
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 117:
"There are eleven species of Native Ducks belonging to nine
genera, all found elsewhere, except two--the little Flightless
Duck of the Auckland Islands (genus Nesonetta) and the
Blue Mountain Duck (Hymenolaemus). Among the most
interesting of the non-endemic forms, are the Paradise Duck or
Sheldrake (Casarca variegata), the Brown Duck (Anas
chlorotis), the Shoveller or Spoonbill Duck (Rhynchaspis
variegata), and the Scaup or Black Teal (Fuligula
Novae-Zealandiae)."
Duckbill, n. See Platypus. Sometimes
also called Duckmole.
Duckmole, n. See Platypus.
1825. Barron Field, `First Fruits of Australian Poetry,'
in `Geographical Memoirs of New South Wales,' p. 496:
"When sooty swans are once more rare,
And duck-moles the museum's care."
[Appendix : "Water or duck-mole."]
1875. Schmidt, `Descent and Darwinism,' p. 237:
"The Ornithorhyncus or duck-mole of Tasmania."
Duck-shoving, and Duckshover, n.
a cabman's phrase.
In Melbourne, before the days of trams, the wagonette-cabs used
to run by a time-table from fixed stations at so much
(generally 3d.) a passenger. A cabman who did not wait
his turn on the station rank, but touted for passengers up and
down the street in the neighbourhood of the rank, was termed a
Duck-shover.
1870. D. Blair, `Notes and Queries,' Aug. 6, p. 111:
"Duck-shoving is the term used by our Melbourne cabmen to
express the unprofessional trick of breaking the rank, in order
to push past the cabman on the stand for the purpose of picking
up a stray passenger or so."
1896. `Otago Daily Times,' Jan. 25, p. 3, col. 6:
"The case was one of a series of cases of what was technically
known as `duck shoving,' a process of getting passengers which
operated unfairly against the cabmen who stayed on the licensed
stand and obeyed the by-law."
Dudu, n. aboriginal name for a pigeon,
fat-breasted, and very good eating.
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (3rd ed. 1855), c. vii.
p. 170:
"In the grassland, a sort of ground pigeon, called the dudu,
a very handsome little bird, got up and went off like a
partridge, strong and swift, re-alighting on the ground, and
returning to cover."
Duff, v. to steal cattle by altering the
brands.
1869. E. Carton Booth, `Another England,' p. 138:
"He said there was a `duffing paddock' somewhere on the Broken
River, into which nobody but the owner had ever found an
entrance, and out of which no cattle had ever found their
way--at any rate, not to come into their owner's
possession. . . . The man who owned the `duffing paddock'
was said to have a knack of altering cattle brands . . ."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. xiv. p. 162:
"I knew Redcap when he'd think more of duffing a red heifer
than all the money in the country."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydneyside Saxon,' p. 95:
"As to the calves I'm a few short myself, as I think that
half-caste chap of yours must have `duffed.'"
Duffer, n. a cattle stealer,
i.q. Cattle-duffer (q.v.).
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xxv. p. 352:
"What's a little money . . . if your children grow up duffers
and planters?"
Duffer2, n. a claim on a mine which turns out
unproductive, called also shicer (q.v.). [This is only
a special application of the slang English, duffer, an
incapable person, or a failure. Old English Daffe, a
fool]
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 193:
"It was a terrible duffer anyhow, every ounce of gold got from
it cost L 20 I'll swear."
1864. J Rogers, `New Rush,' p. 55:
"Tho' duffers are so common
And golden gutters rare,
The mining sons of woman
Can much ill fortune bear."
1873. A.Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 291:
"A shaft sunk without any produce from it is a duffer. . . .
But of these excavations the majority were duffers. It is the
duffering part of the business which makes it all so sad.So
much work is done from which there is positively no return."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 266:
"The place is then declared to be a `duffer,' and abandoned,
except by a few fanatics, who stick there for months and
years."
1891. `The Australasian,' Nov. 21, p. 1014:
"Another duffer! Rank as ever was bottomed! Seventy-five feet
hard delving and not a colour!"
Duffer out, v. A mine is said to duffer out,
when it has ceased to be productive.
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 279:
"He then reported to the shareholders that the lode had
`duffered out,' and that it was useless to continue working."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 73:
"Cloncurry has, to use the mining parlance, duffered out."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. vi. p. 58:
"`So you're duffered out again, Harry,' she said."
Dugong Oil, n. an oil obtained in Australia,
from Halicore dugong, Gmel., by boiling the superficial
fat. A substitute for cod-liver oil. The dugongs are a genus
of marine mammals in the order Sirenia.
H. dugong inhabits the waters of North and North-east
Australia, the southern shores of Asia, and the east coast of
Africa. The word is Malay.
Dug-out, n. a name imported into New Zealand
from America, but the common name for an ordinary Maori canoe.
Duke Willy, n. See Whistling Dick.
Dummy, n. (1) In Australia, when land was
thrown open for selection (q.v.), the squatters who had
previously the use of the land suffered. Each squatter
exercised his own right of selection. Many a one also induced
others to select nominally for themselves, really for the
squatter. Such selector was called a dummy. The law then
required the selector to swear that he was selecting the land
for his own use and benefit. Some of the dummies did not
hesitate to commit perjury. Dictionaries give "dummy,
adj. fictitious or sham." The Australian noun is an
extension of this idea. Webster gives "(drama) one who
plays a merely nominal part in any action, sham character."
This brings us near to the original dumby, from
dumb, which is radically akin to German dumm,
stupid.
1866. D. Rogerson, `Poetical Works, p. 23:
"The good selectors got most of the land,
The dummies being afraid to stand."
1866. H. Simcox, `Rustic Rambles, p. 21:
"See the dummies and the mediums,
Bagmen, swagmen, hastening down."
1872. A. McFarland, `Illawarra and Manaro,' p. 125:
"Since free selection was introduced, a good many of the
squatters (they say, in self-defence) have, in turn, availed
themselves of it, to secure `the eyes' or water-holes of the
country, so far as they could by means of `dummies,' and other
blinds."
1879. R. Niven, `Fraser's Magazine,' April, p. 516:
"This was the, in the colony, well-known `dummy' system. Its
nature may be explained in a moment. It was simply a swindling
transaction between the squatter on the one hand and some
wretched fellow on the other, often a labourer in the
employment of the squatter, in which the former for a
consideration induced the latter to personate the character of
a free selector, to acquire from the State, for the purpose of
transferring to himself, the land he most coveted out of that
thrown open for selection adjoining his own property."
1892. `Scribner's Magazine,' Feb. p. 140:
"By this device the squatter himself, all the members of the
family, his servants, shepherds, boundary-riders, station-hands
and rabbiters, each registered a section, the dummies duly
handing their `selection' over to the original holder for a
slight consideration."
(2) Colloquial name for the grip-car of the Melbourne trams.
Originally the grip-car was not intended to carry passengers:
hence the name.
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), p. 5, col. 5:
"Linked to the car proper is what is termed a dummy."
1897. `The Argus,' Jan. 2, p. 7, col. 5:
"But on the tramcar, matters were much worse. The front seat
of the dummy was occupied by a young Tasmanian lady and her
cousin, and, while one portion of the cart struck her a
terrible blow on the body, the shaft pinned her by the neck
against the front stanchion of the dummy."
Dummy, v. to obtain land in the way above
described.
1873. A.Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. vi. p. 101:
"Each partner in the run has purchased his ten thousand,
and there have been many Mrs. Harrises. The Mrs. Harris system
is generally called dummying--putting up a non-existent
free-selector--and is illegal. But I believe no one will deny
that it has been carried to a great extent."
1896. `The Champion' (Melbourne), Jan. 11:
"The verb `to dummy' and the noun `dummyism' are purely
Australian, quotations to illustrate the use of which can be
obtained from `Hansard,' the daily papers, and such works as
Epps' monograph on the `Land Tenure Systems of Australasia.'"
Dummyism, n. obtaining land by
misrepresentation. See Dummy, n.
1875. `The Spectator' (Melbourne), June 19, p. 8, col. 2:
"`Larrikinism' was used as a synonym for `blackguardism,'
and `dummyism' for perjury."
1876. `The Argus,' Jan. 26, p. 6, col. 6:
"Mr. Bent thought that a stop should be put to all selection
and dummyism till a land law was introduced."
1887. J. F. Hogan, `The Irish in Australia, p. 98:
"This baneful and illegal system of land-grabbing is known
throughout the colonies by the expressive name of `dummyism,'
the persons professing to be genuine selectors, desirous of
establishing themselves on the soil, being actually the agents
or the `dummies of the adjoining squatters."
Dump, n. a small coin formerly used in
Australia and Tasmania. Its history is given in the
quotations. In England the word formerly meant a heavy
leaden counter; hence the expression, "I don't care a dump."
See Holy Dollar.
1822. `Hobart Town Gazette,' December 14:
"Government Public Notice.--The Quarter Dollars, or `Dumps,'
struck from the centre of the Spanish Dollar, and issued by
His Excellency Governor Macquarie, in the year 1813, at One
Shilling and Threepence each, will be exchanged for Treasury
Bills at Par, or Sterling money."
1823. `Sydney Gazette,' Jan. ['Century']:
"The small colonial coin denominated dumps have all been called
in. If the dollar passes current for five shillings the dump
lays claim to fifteen pence value still in silver money."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 44
"He only solicits the loan of a `dump,' on pretence of treating
his sick gin to a cup of tea."
Ibid. p. 225:
"The genuine name of an Australian coin, in value
1s. 3d."
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 141:
"Tattered promissory notes, of small amount and doubtful
parentage, fluttered about the colony; dumps, struck out from
dollars, were imitated by a coin prepared without requiring
much mechanical ingenuity."
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' c. iii. p. 131:
"The Spanish dollar was much used. A circular piece was struck
out of the centre about the size of a shilling, and it was
called a `dump.'"
1879. W. J. Barry, `Up and Down,' p. 5:
"The coin current in those days (1829) consisted of ring-
dollars and dumps, the dump being the centre of the dollar
punched out to represent a smaller currency."
1893. `The Daily News' (London), May 11, p. 4:
"The metallic currency was then [1819-25] chiefly Spanish
dollars, at that time and before and afterwards the most widely
disseminated coin in the world, and they had the current value
of 5s. But there were too few of them, and therefore
the centre of them was cut out and circulated under the name of
`dumps' at 1s. 3d. each, the remainder of the
coin--called by way of a pun, `holy dollars'--still retaining
its currency value of 5s."
Dump, v. to press closely; applied to wool.
Bales are often marked "not to be dumped."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 98:
"The great object of packing so close is to save carriage
through the country, for however well you may do it, it is
always re-pressed, or `dumped,' as it is called, by hydraulic
pressure on its arrival in port, the force being so great as to
crush two bales into one."
1875. R. and F. Hill, `What we saw in Australia,' p. 207:
"From the sorting-tables the fleeces are carried to the
packing-shed; there, by the help of machinery, they are pressed
into sacks, and the sacks are then themselves heavily pressed
and bound with iron bands, till they become hard cubes. This
process is called `dumping.'"
Dumplings, n. i.q. Apple-berry (q.v.).
Dundathee, or Dundathu Pine, n. the
Queensland species (Agathis robusta, Sal.) of the
Kauri Pine (q.v.); and see Pine.
Dungaree-Settler, n. Now obsolete. See
quotation.
1852. Anon, `Settlers and Convicts; or, Recollections of
Sixteen Years' Labour in the Australian Backwoods,' p. 11:
"The poor Australian settler (or, according to colonist
phraseology, the Dungaree-settler; so called from their
frequently clothing themselves, their wives, and children
in that blue Indian manufacture of cotton known as
Dungaree) sells his wheat crop."
Dunite, n. an ore in New Zealand, so called
from Dun mountain, near Nelson.
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 56:
"Chrome ore. This ore, which is a mixture of chromic iron and
alumina, is chiefly associated with magnesian rock, resembling
olivine in composition, named Dunite by Dr. Hochstetter."
Dust, n. slang for flour.
1893. Dec. 12, `A Traveller's Note':
"A bush cook said to me to-day, we gave each sundowner a
pannikin of dust."
Dwarf-box, n. Eucalyptus microtheca,
F. v. M. See Box. This tree has also many other names.
See Maiden's `Useful Native Plants,' p. 495.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. c. i. p. 22:
"Dwarf-box and the acacia pendula prevailed along the plains."
E
Eagle, n. There are nine species of the true
Eagle, all confined to the genus Haliaetus, such as the
Baldheaded Eagle (H. leucocephalus), the national emblem
of the United States. (`Century.') In Australia the name is
assigned to--
Little Eagle--
Aquila morphnoides, Gould.
Wedge-tailed E. (Eagle-hawk)--
A. audax, Lath.
Whistling E.--
Haliaetus sphenurus, Vieill.
White-bellied Sea E.--
H. leucogaster, Gmel.
White-headed Sea E.--
Haliaster girrenera, Vieill.
Eaglehawk, n. an Australian name for the bird
Uroaetus, or Aquila audax, Lath. The name was
applied to the bird by the early colonists of New South Wales,
and has persisted. In `O.E.D.' it is shown that the name was
used in Griffith's translation (1829) of Cuvier's `Regne
Animal' as a translation of the French aigle-autour,
Cuvier's name for a South American bird of prey of the genus
Morphnus, called Spizaetus by Vieillot; but it is
added that the word never came into English use. See
Eagle. There is a town in Victoria called Eaglehawk.
The Bendigo cabmen make the name a monosyllable, "Glawk."
1834. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar, p. 56:
"The large eaglehawk, which devours young kangaroos, lambs,
etc."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. i. pl. 1:
"Aquila Fucosa, Cuv., [now A. audax, Lath.]
Wedge-tailed eagle. Eaglehawk, Colonists of New South Wales."
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,' p. 106:
"We knew it was dying, as two large eaglehawks were hovering
about over it."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 251:
"The hair of a person is tied on the end of the throwing-stick,
together with the feathers of the eagle hawk."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia', p. 106:
"Since the destruction of native dogs and eagle-hawks by the
squatters, who stocked the country with sheep, the kangaroos
have not a single natural enemy left."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 35:
"On the New South Wales side of the river the eagle-hawk is
sometimes so great a pest amongst the lambs that the settlers
periodically burn him out by climbing close enough to the nest
to put a fire-stick in contact with it."
Eagle-hawking, n. bush slang: plucking wool off
dead sheep.
Eagle-Ray, n. name belonging to any large
Ray of the family Myliobatidae; the New Zealand
species is Myliobatis nieuhofii.
Eastralia, n. recent colloquial name, fashioned
on the model of Westralia (q.v.), used in West Australia
for the Eastern Colonies. In Adelaide, its application seems
confined to New South Wales.
Ebony, n. a timber. The name is applied in
Australia to two species of Bauhinia,
B. carronii, F. v. M., and B. hookeri, F. v. M.,
N.O. Leguminosae. Both are called Queensland or Mountain
Ebony.
Echidna, n. a fossorial Monotreme, in general
appearance resembling a Porcupine, and often called Spiny
Ant-eater or Porcupine, or Porcupine
Ant-eater. The body is covered with thick fur from which
stiff spines protrude; the muzzle is in the form of a long
toothless beak; and the tongue is very long and extensile, and
used largely for licking up ants; the feet are short, with
strong claws adapted for burrowing. Like the Marsupials, the
Echidna is provided with a pouch, but the animal is oviparous,
usually laying two eggs at a time, which are carried about in
the pouch until the young ones are hatched, when they are fed
by a secretion from mammary glands, which do not, however, as
in other mammals, open on to a nipple. The five-toed Echidnas
(genus Echidna) are found in New Guinea, Australia, and
Tasmania, while the three-toed Echidnas (genus
Proechidna) are confined to New Guinea. The species
are--Common E., Echidna aculeata, Shaw; Bruijn's E.,
Proechidna bruijni, Peters and Doria; Black-spined E.,
Proechidna nigro-aculeata, Rothschild. The name is from
Grk. 'echidna, an adder or viper, from the shape of the
long tongue.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 29:
"The native porcupine or echidna is not very common."
1843. J.Backhouse, `Narrative of a Visit to the Australian
Colonies,' p. 89:
"The Porcupine of this land, Echidna hystrix, is a squat
species of ant-eater, with short quills among its hair: it
conceals itself in the day time among dead timber in the hilly
forests."
1851. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 178:
"Mr. Milligan mentioned that one of the Aborigines of Tasmania
reports having often discovered the nest of the Echidna
Setosa, porcupine or ant eater, of the colony; that on
several occasions one egg had been found in it, and
never more: this egg has always been found to contain a
foetus or chick, and is said to be round, considerably
less than a tennis ball, and without a shell. The mother is
said to sit continuously (for a period not ascertained) in the
manner of the common fowl over the eggs; she does not leave the
young for a considerable time after having hatched it; at
length, detaching it from the small teat, she moves out
hurriedly and at long intervals in quest of food, the young one
becoming, at each successive return, attached to the
nipple. . . The Platypus (Ornithorhyncus paradoxus) is
said to lay two eggs, having the same external membranous
covering, but of an oblong shape."
1860. G. Bennett,' Gatherings of a Naturalist in Australasia,'
p. 147:
"The Porcupine Ant-eater of Australia (Echidna hystrix)
(the native Porcupine or Hedgehog of the colonists), and the
Ornithorhynchus, to which it is allied in internal
organization, form the only two genera of the order
Monotremata."
1888. Cassell's' Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 230:
"Among the gigantic boulders near the top he may capture the
burrowing ant-eating porcupine, though if perchance he place it
for a moment in the stoniest ground, it will tax all his
strength to drag it from the instantaneous burrow in which it
will defiantly embed itself."
1892. A.Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British Colonies,'
p. 273:
"The echidna is an animal about a foot or 18 inches long,
covered with spines like a hedgehog. It lives chiefly upon
ants. With its bill, which is like a duck's but narrower, it
burrows into an ant's-hill, and then with its long, whip-like,
sticky tongue, draws the ants into its mouth by hundreds."
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia and Monotremata,' p. 247:
"In order to enable them to procure with facility their food
of ants and their larvae, echidnas are provided with very large
glands, discharging into the mouth the viscid secretion which
causes the ants to adhere to the long worm-like tongue when
thrust into a mass of these insects, after being exposed by the
digging powers of the claws of the echidna's limbs. . . .
When attacked they roll themselves into a ball similar to the
hedgehog."
Echu, n. the name of an Australian bird
which has not been identified. The word does not occur
in the ornithological lists.
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems--Evening Hymn,' p. 53:
"The echu's songs are dying with the flute-bird's mellow tone."
1896. `The Australasian,' Jan. 11, p. 73, col. 1:
"`Yeldina' (Rochester) writes--While I was on the Murray, a few
days before Christmas last, some miles below Echuca, my
attention was attracted to the melancholy note, as of a bird
which had lost its mate, calling ee-k-o-o, e-e-koo, which was
repeated several times, after which a pause, then ee-koo,
ee-ko, coolie, coolie, ee-koo. This happened in the scrub at
sunset, and came, I think, from a bird smaller than the
Australian minah, and of a greenish yellowish hue, larger, but
similar to the members of the feathered tribe known to young
city `knights of the catapult' as greenies. It was while
returning to camp from fishing that I noticed this bird, which
appeared of solitary habits."
"`Crossbolt' (Kew) writes--The echu is probably identical with
a handsome little bird whose peculiar cry `e-e-choo' is
familiar to many bush ramblers. It is the size of a small
wood-swallow; black head, back, wings, and tail more or less
blue-black; white throat; neck and breast light to rich
brown. The female is much plainer, and would scarcely be
recognized as the mate of the former. The melodious `e-e-choo'
is usually answered from a distance, whether by the female or a
rival I cannot say, and is followed by a prolonged warbling."
Eel, n. The kinds present in Australia are--
Common Eel--
Anguilla australis, Richards.
Conger E.--
Conger labiatus, Castin., and
Gonorhynchus grayi, Richards.
Green E. (New South Wales)--
Muroena afra, Bl.
Silver E.--
Muroenesox cinereus, Forsk.; also called the Sea-eel
(New South Wales).
Conger wilsoni, Castln. (Melbourne).
The New Zealand Eels are--
Black Eel--
Anguilla australis, Richards.
Conger E.--
Conger vulgaris, Cuv.
Sand E.--
Gonorynchus grayi, Richards.
Serpent E.--
Ophichthys serpens, Linn.
Silver E.--
Congromuroena habenata, Richards.
Tuna E.--
Anguilla aucklandii, Richards.
The Sand Eel does not belong to the Eel family, and is only
called an Eel from its habits.
Eel-fish, n. Plotosus tandanus,
Mitchell. Called also Catfish (q.v.), and Tandan
(q.v.).
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. pl. 5,
p.. 44 and 95 [Note]:
"Plotosus tandanus, tandan or eel-fish. Tandan is the
aboriginal name."
Egret, n. an English bird-name. The following
species are present in Australia, some being European and
others exclusively Australian--
Lesser Egret--
Herodias melanopus, Wagl.
Little E.--
H. garzetta, Linn.
Pied E.--
H. picata, Gould.
Plumed Egret--
H. intermedia, v. Hasselq.
White E.--
H. alba, Linn.
Elder, n. See next word.
Elderberry, Native, n. The two Australian
species of the Elder are Sambucus gaudichaudiana, De C.,
and S. xanthocarpa, F. v. M., N.O. Caprifoliaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 56:
"Native elderberry. The fruit of these two native elders is
fleshy and sweetish, and is used by the aborigines for food."
Elephant-fish, n. a fish of New Zealand, South
Australian, and Tasmanian waters, Callorhynchus
antarcticus, Lacep., family Chimaeridae. "It has
a cartilaginous prominence of the snout, ending in a cutaneous
flap" (Gunth.), suggesting a comparison with an elephant's
trunk. Called also King of the Herrings (q.v.).
1802. G. Barrington, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 388:
"The sea affords a much greater plenty, and at least as great
a variety as the land; of these the elephant fish were very
palatable food."
Ellangowan Poison-bush, n. a Queensland name
for Myoporum deserti, Cunn., N.O. Myoporinae,;
called "Dogwood Poison-bush" in New South Wales. Ellangowan is
on the Darling Downs in Queensland. Poisonous to sheep, but
only when in fruit.
Emancipatist, and Emancipist, n. (the
latter, the commoner), an ex-convict who has served out his
sentence. The words are never used now except historically.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. ii. p. 118:
"Emigrants who have come out free from England, and
emancipists, who have arrived here as convicts, and have
either been pardoned or completed their term of servitude."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 302:
"Men who had formerly been convicts, but who, after their
period of servitude had expired, were called `emancipists.'"
1837. Jas. Mudie, `Felonry of New South Wales,' p. vii:
"The author begs leave to record his protest against the abuse
of language to the misapplication of the terms
emancipists and absentees to two portions of the
colonial felonry. An emancipist could not be understood to
mean the emancipated but the emancipator. Mr. Wilberforce may
be honoured with the title of emancipist; but it is as absurd
to give the same appellation to the emancipated felons of New
South Wales as it would be to bestow it upon the emancipated
negroes of the West Indies."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 69:
"The same emancipist will, however, besides private charity, be
among the first and greatest contributors to a new church."
1852. `Fraser's Magazine,' vol. xlvi. p. 135:
"The convict obtained his ticket-of-leave . . . became an
emancipist . . . and found transportation no punishment."
Emu, n. an Australian bird, Dromaius
novae-hollandiae, Lath. There is a second species, Spotted
Emu, Dromaius irroratus, Bartlett. An earlier, but now
unusual, spelling is Emeu. Emeus is the
scientific name of a New Zealand genus of extinct struthious
birds. The word Emu is not Australian, but from the
Portuguese Ema, the name first of the Crane, afterwards
of the Ostrich. Formerly the word Emu was used in
English for the Cassowary, and even for the American Ostrich.
Since 1885 an Emu has been the design on the twopenny
postage stamp of New South Wales.
1613. `Purchas Pilgrimmage,' pt. I. Vol v. c. xii. p. 430
(`O.E.D.'):
"The bird called Emia or Eme is admirable."
1774. Oliver Goldsmith, `Natural History,' vol. iii. p. 69,
Book III. c. v. [Heading]
"The Emu."
1788. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 53:
"A bird of the ostrich genus, but of a species very different
from any other in the known world, was killed and brought
in. Its length was between seven and eight feet; its flesh was
good and thought to resemble beef. It has obtained the name of
the New South Wales Emu."
1789. Captain W. Tench, `Expedition to Botany Bay,' p. 123:
"The bird which principally claims attention is a species of
ostrich, approaching nearer to the emu of South America than
any other we know of."
1793 Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 69:
"Some were of opinion that it was the emew, which I think is
particularly described by Dr. Goldsmith from Linneus: others
imagined it to be the cassowary, but it far exceeds that bird
in size . . . two distinct feathers grew out from every
quill."
1802. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South Wales,'
vol. ii. p. 307:
"These birds have been pronounced by Sir Joseph Banks, of whose
judgment none can entertain a doubt, to come nearer to what is
known of the American ostrich than to either the emu of India
or the ostrich of Africa."
1804. `Rev. R. Knopwood's Diary' (J. J. Shillinglaw--
`Historical Records of Port Phillip,' 1879), p. 115:
[At the Derwent] 26 March, 1804--"They caught six young emews
[sic], about the size of a turkey, and shot the old mother."
1832. J. Bischof, `Van Diemen's Land,' p. 165:
"We saw an emu track down the side of a hill."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. i. c. ix.
p.276
"The face of the emu bears a most remarkable likeness to that
of the aborigines of New South Wales."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 160:
"They will pick up anything, thimbles, reels of cotton, nails,
bullets indiscriminately: and thus the proverb of `having the
digestion of an emu' has its origin."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. I:
"Dromaius Novae Hollandiae. The Emu. New Holland
Cassowary.--'Governor Phillips' Voyage, 1789.'"
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 42:
"The emu strides with such rapidity over the plains as to
render its capture very difficult even by the swiftest
greyhound."
1872. C. H. Eden, "My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 52:
"A couple of grave-looking emus. These wobble away at an
ungainly but rapid pace directly they sight us, most probably
vainly pursued by the dray dogs which join us farther on, weary
and unsuccessful--indeed the swiftest dog finds an emu as much
as he can manage."
1878. A. Newton, in `Encyclopedia Britannica' (9th edit.),
vol. viii. p. 173:
"Next to the ostrich the largest of existing birds, the common
emeu. . .''
1881. A.C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 210:
". . . points out two emus to John. . . . They resemble
ostriches, but are not so large, and the tail droops more.
. . . John can distinguish every point about them, from their
black cast-iron looking legs, to the bare neck and small head,
with its bright eye and strong flat beak."
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Game Act, Third Schedule':
"Emu. [Close Season.] From the 14th day of June to the 20th
day of December following in each year."
1893. `The Argus,' March 25,p. 4, col. 5:
"The chief in size is the egg of the cassowary, exactly like
that of the emu except that the colour is pale moss green
instead of the dark green of the emu."
Emu-Apple, n. See Apple.
Emu-Bush, n. an Australian shrub, Eremophila
longifolia, F. v. M., N.O. Myoporineae.
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 206:
"Emu-tree. A small Tasmanian tree; found on low marshy ground
used for turners' work."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 317:
"Emu-bush. Owing to emus feeding on the seeds of this and
other species. Heterodendron oleaefolium, Desf."
Ibid. p. 132:
"The seeds, which are dry, are eaten by emus."
Emu-Wren, n. a bird-name. See Malurus.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 31:
"Stipituras Malachurus, Less. Emu Wren. The decomposed
or loose structure of these [tail] feathers, much resembling
those of the emu, has suggested the colonial name of Emu-Wren
for this species, an appellation singularly appropriate,
inasmuch as it at once indicates the kind of plumage with which
the bird is clothed, and the Wren-like nature of its habits."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 213:
"The delicate little emeu wren."
1865. Lady Barker (letter from `Melbourne), `Station Life in
New Zealand,' p. 8:
"Then there is the emu-wren, all sad-coloured, but quaint, with
the tail-feathers sticking up on end, and exactly like those of
an emu, on the very smallest scale, even to the peculiarity of
two feathers growing out of the same little quill."
Eopsaltria, n. scientific name for the genus
of Australian birds called Shrike-Robins (q.v.). (Grk.
'aeows, dawn, and psaltria, a female harper.)
Epacris, n. scientific name of the typical
genus of the order Epacrideae, a heath-like flower
of which there are twenty- five species, mostly Australian.
From Greek 'epi, upon, and 'akron, top (the
flowers grow in spikes at the top of the plant).
In Australia they are frequently confused with and called
Ericas.
Ephthianura, n. scientific name of a genus
of very small Australian birds, anglicized as Ephthianure.
For species see quotation, 1848. A fourth species has been
discovered since Gould's day, E. crocea, Castln. and
Ramsay, which inhabits Northern Australia. The name was first
given by Gould, in the `Proceedings of the Zoological Society
of 1837,' p. 148, as a genus novum. The origin of the
word is not certain, but as the tail is unusually small,
it is suggested that the name is from the Greek 'oura, tail,
and Homeric imperfect 3rd person sing. 'ephthien,
wasted away, from phthiow (= phthinow).
[The word occurs Iliad xviii. 446.]
//phthio is ONLY in Homer!! Iliad AND Odyssey GJC//
1848. J. Gould,' Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 64:
"Ephthianura Albifrons, White-fronted Ephthianura,"
pl. 65. "Aurifrons, Gould, Orange-fronted E.," pl. 66.
"Tricolor, Gould, Tricoloured E.'"
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Game Act, Third Schedule':
"Close season.--Ephthianuras. The whole year."
Escapee, n. one who has escaped. Especially
used of French convicts who escape from New Caledonia. The
word is formed on the model of absentee, refugee, etc.,
and is manifestly influenced by Fr. e/chappe/.
Escaper is the historical English form. (See Bible, 2
Kings ix. 15, margin.) //He means, of course, the so-called
Authorised Version" which reads, ftn. 5: "let no escaper go,
etc." Even though the Revised Version was published in
1885. GJC//
1880. `Melbourne Argus,' July 22, p. 2, col. 3 (`O.E.D.'):
"The ten New Caledonia escapees . . . are to be handed over to
the French consul."
Eucalyn, n. a sugar obtained, together with
laevulose, by fermentation of melitose (q.v.) with
yeast, or by boiling it with dilute acids.
Eucalypt, n. shortened English form of
Eucalyptus used especially in the plural, Eucalypts.
Eucalypti sounds pedantic.
1880. T. W. Nutt, `Palace of Industry,' p. 11:
"Stems of the soaring eucalypts that rise
Four hundred friendly feet to glad the skies."
1887. J. F. Hogan, `The Irish in Australia,' p. 126:
"There is no unmixed good, it is said, on this mundane sphere,
and the evil that has accompanied the extensive settlement of
Gipps Land during recent years is to be found in the widespread
destruction of the forests, resulting in a disturbance of the
atmospheric conditions and the banishment of an ever-active
agent in the preservation of health, for these eucalypts, or
gum-trees, as they are generally called, possess the peculiar
property of arresting fever-germs and poisonous exhalations.
They have been transplanted for this especial purpose to some
of the malaria-infested districts of Europe and America, and
with pronounced success. Australia, to which they are
indigenous, has mercilessly hewn them down in the past, but is
now repenting of its folly in that respect, and is replanting
them at every seasonable opportunity."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 270:
"Throughout the whole of Australia the prevailing trees are
eucalypts, known generally as gum-trees on account of the gum
which they secrete, and which may be seen standing like big
translucent beads on their trunks and branches."
Eucalyptene, n. the name given by Cloez to a
hydrocarbon obtained by subjecting Eucalyptol (q.v.) to
dehydration by phosphorus pentoxide. The same name has also
been given by other chemists to a hydrocarbon believed to occur
in eucalyptus oil.
Eucalyptian, adj. playfully formed; not in
common use.
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads,' p. 8:
"Gnarl'd, knotted trunks Eucalyptian
Seemed carved, like weird columns Egyptian,
With curious device--quaint inscription
And hieroglyph strange."
Eucalyptic, adj. full of gumtrees.
1873. J. Brunton Stephens, `Black Gin, etc.,' p.6:
"This eucalyptic cloisterdom is anything but gay."
Eucalyptol, n. a volatile oil of camphor-like
smell, extracted from the oil of Eucalyptus globulus,
Labill., E. amygdalina, Labill., etc. Chemically
identical with cineol, got from other sources.
Eucalyptus, n. the gum tree. There are 120
species, as set forth in Baron von Mueller's `Eucalyptographia,
a Descriptive Atlas of the Eucalypts of Australia.' The name
was first given in scientific Latin by the French botanist
L'Heritier, in his Sertum Anglicum, published in 1788.
From the Greek 'eu, well, and kaluptein, to cover.
See quotation, 1848. N.O. Myrtaceae. The French now say
Eucalyptus; earlier they called it l'acajou de la
nouvelle Hollande. The Germans call it Schoenmutze.
See Gum.
1823. Sidney Smith, `Essays,' p. 440:
"A London thief, clothed in Kangaroo's skins, lodged under
the bark of the dwarf eucalyptus, and keeping sheep, fourteen
thousand miles from Piccadilly, with a crook bent into the
shape of a picklock, is not an uninteresting picture."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. c. ii. p. 80:
"A large basin in which there are stunted pines and eucalyptus
scrub."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 132:
"The scientific term Eucalyptus has been derived from the
Greek, in allusion to a lid or covering over the blossom,
which falls off when the flower expands, exposing a four-celled
capsule or seed-vessel."
1851. G. W. Rusden, `Moyarra,' canto i. p. 8:
"The eucalyptus on the hill
Was silent challenge to his skill."
1879. `Temple Bar,' Oct., p. 23 ('0. E. D.'):
"The sombre eucalypti . . . interspersed here and there by
their dead companions."
1886. J. A. Froude, `Oceana,' p. 118:
"At intervals the bush remained untouched, but the universal
eucalyptus, which I had expected to find grey and monotonous,
was a Proteus it shape and colour, now branching like an oak
or a cork tree, now feathered like a birch, or glowing like
an arbutus with an endless variety of hue--green, orange,
and brown."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right, c. v. p. 46:
"A lofty eucalyptus . . . lay with its bared roots sheer athwart
a tiny watercourse."
Euro, n. one of the aboriginal names for
a Kangaroo (q.v.); spelt also Yuro.
1885. Mrs. Praed, `Head Station,' p. 192:
"Above and below . . . were beetling cliffs, with ledges
and crannies that afforded foothold only to yuros and
rock-wallabies."
Exclusionist, n. and adj. See
quotation.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. ii. pp. 118-19:
". . . one subdivision of the emigrant class alluded to, is
termed the exclusionist party, from their strict
exclusion of the emancipists from their society."
Exileism, n. a word of same period as
Exiles (q.v.).
1893. A. P. Martin, `Life of Lord Sherbrooke,' vol. i. p. 381:
"A gentleman who was at this time engaged in pastoral pursuits
in New South Wales, and was therefore a supporter of exileism.'"
Exiles, n. euphemistic name for convicts. It
did not last long.
1847, A. P. Martin, `Life of Lord Sherbrooke' (1893),
vol. i. p. 378:
"The cargoes of criminals were no longer to be known as
`convicts,' but (such is the virtue in a name!) as `exiles.'
It was, as Earl Grey explained in his despatch of Sept 3, 1847,
`a scheme of reformatory discipline.'"
1852. G. B. Earp, `Gold Colonies of Australia,' p. 100:
"The convict system ceased in New South Wales in 1839; but
`exiles' as they were termed, i.e. men who had passed their
probation at home, were forwarded till 1843."
Expiree, n. a convict whose term of sentence
had expired.
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (ed. 1885), p. 107:
"A hireling convict - emancipist, expiree, or ticket of leave."
Expiree, adj. See preceding.
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 271:
"Very many of their servants, being old hands or expiree
convicts from New South Wales and Van Diemen's Land, are
thoroughly unprincipled men."
1883. E. M. Curr, `Recollections of Squatting in
Victoria' (1841-1351), p. 40:
"Hiring men in Melbourne in 1841 was not by any means an
agreeable job, as wages were high, and labourers (almost all
old gaol-birds and expiree convicts) exceedingly independent
and rowdy."
F
Fairy Gardens, n. a miner's term, explained
in quotation.
1852. F. Lancelott, `Australia, as it is', vol. ii. p. 221:
"On the south-eastern portion of this county is the world-famed
Burra Burra copper mine. . . . Some of the cuttings are
through solid blocks of ore, which brilliantly glitter as you
pass with a lighted candle, while others are formed in veins
of malachite, and from their rich variegated green appearance
are not inaptly called by the miners `Fairy gardens.'"
Fake-mucker, n. a Tasmanian name for the
Dusky Robin (Petroica vittata). See
Robin.
Falcon, n. English bird-name. The Australian
species are--
Black Falcon--
Falco subniger, Gray.
Black-cheeked F.--
F. melanogenys, Gould.
Grey F.--
F. hypoleucus, Gould.
Little F.--
F. lunulatus, Lath.
See also Nankeen-Hawk.
Fantail, n. bird-name applied in England to a
pigeon; in Australia and New Zealand, to the little birds of
the genus Rhipidura (q.v.). It is a fly-catcher. The
Australian species are--
Rhipidura albiscapa, Gould.
Black-and-White Fantail (called also the Wagtail,
q.v.)--
R. tricolor, Vieill.
Dusky F.--
R. diemenensis, Sharpe.
Northern F.--
R. setosa, Quoy and Gaim.
Pheasant F.--
Rhipidura phasiana, De Vis.
Rufous F.--
R. rufifrons, Lath.
Western F.--
R. preissi, Cab.
White-tailed F.--
R. albicauda, North.
Wood F.--
R. dryas, Gould.
The New Zealand species are--
Black F.--
Rhipidura fuliginosa, Sparrm. (Tiwaiwaka).
Pied F.--
R. flabellifera, Gmel. (Piwakawaka).
In Tasmania, the R. diemenensis is called
the Cranky Fantail, because of its antics.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Journal,' vol. ii. p. 80:
"We also observed the . . . fantailed fly-catcher
(Rhipidura)."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 69:
"The Red Fantail, ever flitting about with broadly expanded
tail, and performing all manner of fantastic evolutions,
in its diligent pursuit of gnats and flies, is one of the most
pleasing and attractive objects in the New Zealand forest. It
is very tame and familiar."
Farinaceous City, or Village, n. a
playful name for Adelaide. The allusion is to wheat being the
leading export of South Australia.
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,'
vol. ii. p. 184:
"[Adelaide] has also been nicknamed the Farinaceous City.
A little gentle ridicule is no doubt intended to be conveyed
by the word."
Fat-cake, n. ridiculous name sometimes
applied to Eucalyptus leucoxylon, F. v. M., according to
Maiden (`Useful Native Plants,' p. 471).
Fat-hen, n. a kind of wild spinach.
In England the name is applied to various plants of thick
foliage.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 40:
"The fat-hen (Atriplex) . . ."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 120:
"Another wild vegetable brew in the sandy beds of the rivers
and creeks, called `fat-hen.' It was exactly like spinach,
and not only most agreeable but also an excellent anti-scorbutic,
a useful property, for scurvy is not an unknown thing in the bush
by any means."
1881. A.C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 156:
"Boiled salt junk, with fat-hen (a kind of indigenous
spinach)."
1889. J. M. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 16:
"Chenopodium murale, Linn., Australian spinach.
Bentham considers this may have been introduced."
Felonry, n. See quotation.
1837. Jas. Mudie, `Felonry of New South Wales,' p. 6:
"The author has ventured to coin the word felonry,
as the appellative of an order or class of persons in New South
Wales--an order which happily exists in no other country in the
world. A legitimate member of the tribe of appellatives . . .
as peasantry, tenantry, yeomanry, gentry."
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria,' c. xv. p. 24:
"The inundation of the Australian colonies with British
Felonry."
1888. Sir C. Gavan Duffy, `Contemporary Review,' vol. liii.
p.14 [`Century']:
"To shut out the felonry of Great Britain and Ireland."
Ferns. The following list of Australian ferns is
taken from `The Fern World of Australia,' by F. M. Bailey of
Brisbane (1881), omitting from his list all ferns of which the
vernacular and scientific names coincide with the names of
ferns elsewhere.
Bat's-wing Fern--
Pteris incisa, Thunb.
Black Tree F. of New Zealand--
Cyathea medullaris, Sw.
Blanket F.--
Grammitis rutaefolia, R. Br.
Braid F.--
Platyzoma microphyllum, R. Br.
Caraway F.--
Athyrium umbrosum, J. Sm.
Curly F.--
Cheilanthes tenuifolia, Sw.
Deer's-tongue F.--
Acrostichum conforme, Sw.
Ear F.--
Pteris falcata, R. Br.
Elk's-horn F.--
Platycerium alcicorne, Desv.
Fan F.--
Gleichenia flabellata, R. Br.
Golden Swamp F.--
Acrostichum aureum, Linn.
Grass-leaved F. (q.v.)--
Vittaria elongata, Sw.
*Hare's-foot F.--
F. Davallia pyxidata, Cav.
Jersey F.--
Grammitis leptophylla, Sw.
*Lady F.--
Aspidium aculeatum, Sw.
*Maiden-hair F.--
Adiantum, spp.
Meadow-rue Water F.--
Ceratoptoris thalictroides, Brong.
Parasol F.--
Gleichenia circinata, Sw.
Pickled-cabbage F.--
Lomaria capensis, Willd.
Potato F. (q.v.)--
Marattia fraxinea, Sm.
Prickly F. (q.v.)--
Alsophila australis, R. Br.
Prickly-tree Fern--
Alsophila leichhardtiana, F. v. M.
Ribbon F.--
Ophioglossum pendulum, Linn.
Shiny F.--
Polypodium aspidoides, Bail.
Snake's-tongue F.--
Lygodium, spp.
The following are not in Baileys List:
Parsley F.--
Cheilanthes tenuifolia, Sw. (Name Parsley applied to a
different Fern elsewhere.)
Sword F.--
Grammitis australis, R. Br.
Umbrella F., Tasmanian name for Fan F. (q.v.).
Other ferns not in this list appear elsewhere. See also
Ferntree.
____
* Elsewhere the name is applied to a different species.
----
Fern-bird, n. a New Zealand bird of
the genus Sphenoecus. Also called Grass-bird,
and New Zealand Pipit. There are three species--
The Fern-bird--
Sphenoecus punctatus, Gray.
Chatham Island F.-b.--
S. rufescens, Buller.
Fulvous F.-b.--
S. fulvus, Gray.
1885. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xviii. p. 125:
"The peculiar chirp of the fern bird is yet
to be heard among the tall fern."
1885. A. Hamilton, `Native Birds of Petane, Hawke's Bay':
"Fern-bird. The peculiar chirp of this lively little bird is
yet to be heard among the tall fern, though it is not so
plentiful as in days gone by."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 59:
"Fern Bird . . . This recluse little species is one of our
commonest birds, but is oftener heard than seen. It frequents
the dense fern of the open country and the beds of Raupo."
Fern-tree, n. Name applied to various
species of ferns which grow to a large size, the stem in the
fully grown plant reaching often a height of many feet before
the leaves are given off. Such Tree-ferns clothe the sides of
deep and shady gullies amongst the hills, and give rise to what
are known as Fern-tree gullies, which form a very
characteristic feature of the moister coastal Ranges of many
parts of Australia. The principal Fern-trees or
Tree-ferns, as they are indiscriminately called, of
Australia and Tasmania are--
Dicksonia antarctica, Lab.;
Alsophila australis, R. Br.;
Todea africana, Willd.;
Cyathea cunninghami, J. Hook.;
Alsophila excelsa, R. Br.;
the last named, however, not occurring in Tasmania or Victoria.
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 164:
"We entered a beautiful fern-tree grove, that also concealed
the heavens from view, spreading like a plantation or cocoa-nut
tree orchard, but with far more elegance and effect."
1839. C. Darwin, `Voyage of Beagle' (ed. 1890), p. 177:
"Tree-ferns thrive luxuriantly in Van Diemen's Land (lat. 45
degrees), and I measured one trunk no less than six feet in
circumference. An arborescent fern was found by Forster in New
Zealand in 46 degrees, where orchideous plants are parasitical
on the trees. In the Auckland Islands, ferns, according to
Dr. Dieffenbach, have trunks so thick and high that they may be
almost called tree-ferns."
1857. F. R. Nixon (Bishop of Tasmania), `Cruise of the Beacon,'
p. 26:
"With these they [i.e. the Tasmanian Aborigines] mingled the
core or pith of the fern trees, Cibotium Bollardieri
and Alsophila Australis (of which the former is rather
astringent and dry for a European palate, and the latter,
though more tolerable, is yet scarcely equal to a Swedish
turnip.)"
1870. S. H. Wintle, `Fragments of Fern Fronds,' p. 39:
"Where the feet of the mountains are bathed by cool fountains,
The green, drooping fern trees are seen."
1878. William Sharp, `Australian Ballads,' `Canterbury Poets'
(Scott, 1888), pp. 180-81:
"The feathery fern-trees make a screen,
Where through the sun-glare cannot pass--
Fern, gum, and lofty sassafras."
"Under a feathery fern-tree bough
A huge iguana lies alow."
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 83:
"There were mossy fern-trees near me,
With their graceful feathered fronds,
Which they slowly waved above me,
Like hoar magicians' wands."
1893. A.R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 53:
"Here are graceful palms rising to 70 or even 100 feet; the
Indian fig with its tortuous branches clothed with a drapery
of curious parasites; while graceful tree ferns, 30 feet high,
flourish in the damp atmosphere of the sheltered dells."
Fern-tree Gully. See Fern-tree and Gully.
Fever-bark, n. another name for Bitter-bark
(q.v.).
Fibrous Grass, n. a Tasmanian grass
(see Grass), Stipa semiibarbata, R. Br.,
N.O. Gramineae.
1862. W. Archer, `Products of Tasmania,' p. 41:
"Fibrous grass (Stipa semibarbata, Br.). After the seed
has ripened the upper part of the stem breaks up into fibre,
which curls loosely and hangs down waving in the wind."
Fiddle-back, n. name given in
Australia to the beetle, Schizorrhina australasiae.
Fiddler, n. a New South Wales and Victorian
name for a species of Ray, Trygonorhina fasciata,
Mull. and Heule, family Rhinobatidae.
Fig-bird, n. a bird-name.
Sphecotheres maxillaris, Lath.; Yellow bellied,
S. flaviventris, Gould. S. maxillaris is also
called Mulberry-bird (q.v.).
Fig-eater, n. a bird, i.q. Grape-eater
(q.v.).
Fig-tree, n. The name is applied in
Australia to the following species:--
Blue Fig--
Elaeocarpus grandis, F. v. M., N.O. Tiliaceae.
Clustered F.--
Ficus glomerata, Willd., N.O. Urticaceae.
Moreton Bay F.--
P. macrophylla, Desf., N.O. Urticaciae //sic. check//.
Prickly F.--
Elaeocarpus holopetalus, F. v. M.,
N.O. Tiliaceae.
Purple F., or White F., or Rough-leaved F., or Flooded F.
[Clarence River]--
Ficus scabra, G. Forst., N.O. Urticaciae.
Ribbed F.--
F. pleurocarpa, F. v. M., N.O. Urticaciae.
Rusty F., or Narrow-leaved F. [or Port Jackson]--
F. rubiginosa, Desf., N.O. Urticaciae;
called also Native Banyan.
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p.119:
"And I forget how lone we sit beneath this old fig-tree."
1870. F. S. Wilson, `Australian Songs,' p. 115:
"The fig-tree casts a pleasant shade
On the straggling ferns below."
1882. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 537:
"Moreton Bay fig. This noble-looking tree has a wood which
is sometimes used, though it is very difficult to season."
[It is a handsome evergreen with dark leaves, larger than
those of a horse-chestnut, much used as an ornament in street
and gardens, especially in Sydney and Adelaide. The fig is
not edible.]
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right, c. 44, p. 380:
"The . . . venerable church with its alleys of araucaria
and Moreton Bay fig-trees."
File-fish, n. name given in New
Zealand to the fish Monacanthus rudis, Richards, family
Sclerodermi; in New South Wales to species of the genus
Balistes. The first of the spines of the dorsal fin is
roughened in front like a file. Balistes maculatus is
the "Spotted File-fish" of Sydney. It is closely allied to the
genus Monacanthus, called Leather-jacket (q.v.),
which is much more numerously represented in Australasia.
Finch, n. a bird-name, first applied in
Australia, in 1848, by Gould, to the genus Poephila
(Grass-lover), and since extended to other genera of birds.
The species are--
Banded Finch--
Stictoptera bichenovii, Vig. and Hors.
Black-ringed F.--
S. annulosa, Gould.
Black-rumped F.--
Poephila atropygialis, Diggles.
Black-throated F.--
P. cincta, Gould.
Chestnut-breasted F.--
Munia castaneothorax, Gould.
Chestnut-eared F.--
Taeniopygia castanotis, Gould.
Crimson F.--
Neochmia phaeton, Homb. and Jacq.
Fire-tailed F.--
Zonaeginthus bellus, Lath.
Gouldian F.--
Poephila gouldiae, Gould.
Long-tailed F.--
P. acuticauda, Gould.
Masked F.--
P. personata, Gould.
Painted F.--
Emblema picta, Gould.
Plum-head F.--
Aidemosyne modesta, Gould.
Red-browed F.--
AEgintha temporalis, Lath.
Red-eared F.--
Zonaeginthus oculatus, Quoy and Gaim.
Red-tailed F.--
Bathilda ruficauda, Gould.
Scarlet-headed F.--
Poephila mirabilis, Homb. and Jacq.
Spotted-sided F.--
Staganopleura guttata, Shaw.
White-Breasted F.--
Munia pectoralis, Gould.
White-eared F.--
Poephila leucotis, Gould.
Yellow-rumped F.--
Munia flaviprymna, Gould.
Fire-stick, n. name given to the
lighted stick which the Australian natives frequently carry
about, when moving from camp to camp, so as to be able to light
a fire always without the necessity of producing it by
friction. The fire-stick may be carried in a smouldering
condition for long distances, and when traversing open grass
country, such as the porcupine-grass covered districts of the
interior, the stick is used for setting fire to the grass,
partly to destroy this and partly to drive out the game which
is hiding amongst it. The fire-stick (see quotations)
is also used as emblematic of the camp-fire in certain
ceremonies.
1847. J. D. Lang,' Cooksland,'p. 126, n.:
"When their fire-stick has been extinguished, as is sometimes
the case, for their jins or vestal virgins, who have charge of
the fire, are not always sufficiently vigilant."
1896. F. J. Gillen, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,'
Anthropology, pt. iv. p. 170:
"Carrying fire-sticks, they place rings, woven of fur and
vegetable down, round the boy's neck and arms and sometimes
over and under the shoulders; the fire-sticks are then handed
to him, the lubras saying: Take care of the fire; keep to your
own camp.'"
Firetail, n. name applied in Victoria to the
bird AEgintha temporalis, Lath.; and in Tasmania to
Zonaeginthus (Estrelda) bellus, Lath. In New South
Wales, AE. temporalis is known as the Red-head.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 78:
"Estrelda Bella, Fire-tailed finch. Fire-tail,
Colonists of Van Diemen's Land."
Fire-tree, n. a tree of New Zealand; another
name for Pohutukawa (q.v.). For Queensland
Fire-tree, see Tulip-tree.
Fireweed, n. a name given to several weeds,
such as Senecio lautus, Sol., N.O. Compositae; so
called because they spring up in great luxuriance where the
forest has been burned off.
Fish-hawk, n. English name applied to
Pandion leucocephalus, Gould; called also the Osprey.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. i. pl. 6:
"Pandion Leucocephalus, Gould, White-headed osprey.
Little fish hawk, Colonists of New South Wales. Fish-hawk,
Colonists of Swan River.''
Fist, v. to use the hands. The word is not
unknown in English in the sense of to grip. (Shakspeare, `Cor.'
IV. v. 124)
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 366:
"`Fist it,' a colonial expression, which may convey to the
uninitiated the idea that knives, forks, plates, etc., are
unknown in the bush; such was formerly the case, but the
march of improvement has banished this peculiar simplicity."
Five-corners, n. name given to the fruit of an
Australian tree and to the tree itself, Syphelia triflora,
Andr., N.O. Epacrideae. There are many species of
Styphelia (q.v.), the fruit of several being edible.
1889. J. H. Maiden,' Useful Native Plants,' p. 61:
"Five-corners. These fruits have a sweetish pulp with a large
stone. They form part of the food of the aboriginals, and are
much appreciated by school boys. When from a robust plant they
are of the size of a large pea, and not at all bad eating."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 158:
"Still I see in my fancy the dark-green and blue
Of the box-covered hills where the five-corners grew."
Flame-tree, n. The name is given in India and
elsewhere to several trees with bright scarlet, or crimson,
flowers. In Australia, two different trees are called
Flame-trees--
(1) A tree of Eastern Australia, with profuse bright
coral-like flowers, Brachychiton acerifolium, F. v. M.,
N.O. Sterculiaceae.
(2) A tree of Western Australia, with brilliant
orange-coloured flowers, Nuytsia floribunda,
N.O. Loranthaceae; which is also called Tree
Mistletoe, and, locally, a Cabbage-tree.
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 96:
"There are flame-trees showing in spring vivid patches
of crimson."
Flannel Flower, n. an Australian
flower, Actinotus helianthi, Labill.,
N.O. Compositae. It ranges from Gippsland to Southern
Queensland, but is particularly abundant in New South Wales.
Sometimes called the Australian Edelweiss. For the
reason of the name see quotation.
1895. J. H. Maiden, `Flowering Plants of New South Wales,'
p. 9:
"We only know one truly local name for this plant, and that is
the `Flannel Flower'--a rather unpoetical designation, but a
really descriptive one, and one universally accepted. It is,
of course, in allusion to the involucre, which looks as if it
were snipped out of white flannel. It is also known to a few
by the name of Australian Edelweiss."
Flathead, n. name given to several Australian
marine fishes, Platycephalus fuscus, Cuv. and Val., and
other species of Platycephalus, family Cottidae.
The Red Flathead is P. bassensis, Cuv.and Val., and the
Rock F. is P. laevigatus, Cuv.and Val. See also
Tupong and Maori-chief.
1793. Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 410 (Aboriginal
Vocabulary):
"Paddewah, a fish called a flathead."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 32:
"The market of Hobart Town is supplied with small rock cod,
flatheads, and a fish called the perch."
Flat Pea, n. a genus of Australian flowering
plants, Platylobium, N.O. Leguminosae.
1793. `Transactions of Linnaean Society,' vol. ii. p. 350:
"Its name I have deduced from platus, broad, and
lobos, a pod."
"P. formosum. Orange flat-pea . . . A figure of this
. . . will soon be given in the work I have undertaken
on the botany of New Holland."
[The figure referred to will be found at p. 17 of the `Specimen
of the Botany of New Holland.']
Flax, Native, n. The European flax is Linum
usitatissimum, N.O. Liniae. There is a species in
Australia, Linum marginale, Cunn., N.O. Linaceae,
called Native Flax. In New Zealand, the Phormium
is called Native Flax. See next word.
1889. J. M. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 626:
"`Native flax.' Although a smaller plant than the true flax,
this plant yields fibre of excellent quality. It is used by
the blacks for making fishing-nets and cordage."
Flax, New Zealand, n. Phormium tenax,
N.O. Liliaceae. A plant yielding a strong fibre.
Called also, in New Zealand, Native Flax, and Flax
Lily.
1807. J. Savage, `Some account of New Zealand,' p. 56:
"Small baskets made of the green native flax."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i,
p. 63:
"The plant is called Phormium tenax by naturalists.
The general native name for the plant, we are told, is `korari,'
but each sort, and there are ten or twelve, has its distinctive
name. Any portion of the leaf, when gathered, becomes here
`kie kie,' or literally, `tying stuff.' The operation of
scraping is called `kayo,' the fibre when prepared, `muka.'"
[Mr. Tregear says that Wakefield's statements are mistaken.]
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 23:
"His robe of glossy flax which loosely flows."
1861. C. C. Bowen, `Poems,' p. 57:
"And flax and fern and tutu grew
In wild luxuriance round."
1870. T. H. Braiui, `New Homes,' c. viii. p. 375:
"The native flax (Phormium tenax) is found in all parts
of New Zealand; it grows to the height of about nine feet."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' v.3, p. 93:
"In flowing vest of silky flax, undyed."
1893. `Murray's Handbook to New Zealand,' p. 29:
"The so-called native flax (phormium tenax)."
Flax-blade, n. the leaf of the New Zealand
Flax (q.v.).
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' i. 5, p. 11:
"With flax-blades binding to a tree
The Maid who strove her limbs to free."
Flax-bush, n. the bush of the New Zealand
Flax.
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' Intro. p. v:
"I had . . . to pass a night . . . under the shade
of a flax-bush."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' x. 4, p. 171:
"And the louder flax-bushes
With their crowding and crossing
Black stems, darkly studded
With blossoms red-blooded."
Flax-flower, n. the flower of the New
Zealand Flax (q.v.).
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' xiv. 3, p. 221:
"little isles
Where still the clinging flax-flower smiles."
Flax-leaf, n. the blade of the New Zealand
Flax (q.v.).
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori' p. 69:
"Zephyrs stirred the flax-leaves into tune.
Flax-lily, n. (1) An Australian fibre plant,
Dianella laevis, var. aspera, R. Br.,
N.O. Liliaceae. (2) Phormium tenax. See
Flax, New Zealand.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 621:
"Flax-lily. The fibre is strong, and of a silky texture.
The aboriginals formerly used it for making baskets, etc.
All the colonies except Western Australia."
Flindosa, and Flindosy, n. two trees
called Beech (q.v.).
Flintwood, n. another name for Blackbutt
(q.v.), Eucalyptus pillularis.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 502:
"From the great hardness of the wood it is often known as
flintwood."
Flounder, n. The Flounders in Australia are--
In Sydney, Pseudorhombus russelli, Gray; in Melbourne,
Rhombosolea victoriae, Castln.; in New Zealand and
Tasmania, R. monopus, Gunth. Maori name, Patiki; family
Pleuronectidae. They are all excellent eating.
1876. P. Thomson, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. ix. art. lxvii., p. 487:
"Patiki (flounder). Flounders are in the market all the year."
Flower-pecker, n. bird-name used elsewhere,
but in Australia assigned to Dicaeum hirundinaceum, Lath.
Flowering Rush, n. name given to the rush or reed,
Xyris operculata, Lab., N.O. Xyrideae.
Flute-bird, n. another name for the bird
Gymnorrhina tibicen, Lath. Called also Magpie
(q.v.).
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 53:
"The flute-bird's mellow tone."
Fly-catcher, n. bird-name used elsewhere.
The Australian species are--
Black-faced Flycatcher--
Monarcha melanopsis, Vieill.
Blue F.--
Myiagra concinna, Gould.
Broad-billed F.--
M. latirostris, Gould.
Brown F. [called also Jacky Winter (q.v.)]
Micraeca fascinans, Lath.
Leaden F.--
Myiagra rubecula, Lath.
Lemon-breasted F.--
Micraeca flavigaster, Gould.
Lesser Brown F.--
M. assimilis, Gould.
Little F.--
Seisura nana, Gould.
Pale F.--
Micraeca pallida.
Pearly F.--
Monarcha canescens, Salvad.
Pied Fly-catcher--
Arses kaupi, Gould.
Restless F.--
Seisura inquieta, Lath. [called also Razor-
grinder, q.v., and Dishwasher, q.v.]
Satin F.--
Myiagra nitida, Gould [called Satin-robin, q.v.,
in Tasmania]
Shining F.--
Piezorhynchus nitidus, Gould.
Spectacled F.--
P. gouldi, Gray.
White-bellied F.--
P. albiventris, Gould.
White-eared F.--
P. leucotis, Gould.
Yellow-breasted F.--
Machaerhynchus flaviventer, Gould.
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 161:
"We this day caught a yellow-eared fly-catcher (see annexed
plate). This bird is a native of New Holland." [Description
follows.]
Fly-eater, n. the new vernacular name for the Australian
birds of the genus Gerygone (q.v.), and see Warbler.
The species are--
Black-throated Fly-eater--
Gerygone personata, Gould.
Brown F.--
G. fusca, Gould.
Buff-breasted F.--
G. laevigaster, Gould.
Green-backed F.--
G. chloronota, Gould.
Large-billed F.--
G. magnirostris, Gould.
Southern F.--
G. culicivora, Gould.
White-throated F.--
G. albogularis, Gould.
Yellow-breasted F.--
G. flavida, Ramsay.
1895. W. O. Legge, `Australasian Association for the
Advancement of Science `(Brisbane), p. 447:
"[The habits and habitats of the genus as] applied to
Gerygone suggested the term Fly-eater, as
distinguished from Fly-catcher, for this aberrant and
peculiarly Australasian form of small Fly-catchers, which not
only capture their food somewhat after the manner of
Fly-catchers, but also seek for it arboreally."
Flyer, n. a swift kangaroo.
1866. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' second series,
p. 172:
"I may here state that the settlers designate the old kangaroos
as `old men' and `old women,' the full-grown animals are named
`flyers,' and are swifter than the British hare."
Flying-Fox, n. a gigantic Australian bat,
Pteropus poliocephalus, Temm. It has a fetid odour and
does great damage to fruits, and is especially abundant in New
South Wales, though often met with in Victoria. Described, not
named, in first extract.
1793. Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 507:
"The head of this bat strongly resembles that of a fox, and
the wings of many of them extend three feet ten inches. . . .
[Description of one domesticated.] . . . They are very fat,
and are reckoned by the natives excellent food. . . . It was
supposed more than twenty thousand of them were seen within the
space of one mile."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 315:
"One flying fox is an immense bat, of such a horrific
appearance, that no wonder one of Cook's honest tars should
take it for the devil when encountering it in the woods."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 310:
". . . a flying fox, which one of them held in his hand. It
was, in fact, a large kind of bat, with the nose resembling in
colour and shape that of a fox, and in scent it was exactly
similar to it. The wing was that of a common English bat, and
as long as that of a crow, to which it was about equal in the
length and circumference of its body."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 97:
"Some of the aborigines feed on a large bat popularly called
`the flying fox.' . . We found the filthy creatures, hanging
by the heels in thousands, from the higher branches of the
trees."
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,' p. 102:
"The shrill twitter of the flying fox, or vampire bat, in the
bush around us."
1871. Gerard Krefft, `Mammals of Australia':
"The food on which the `Foxes' principally live when garden
fruit is not in season, consists of honey-bearing blossoms and
the small native figs abounding in the coast-range scrubs. . . .
These bats are found on the east coast only, but during very
dry seasons they occur as far west as the neighbourhood of
Melbourne."
1881. A.C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 20:
"A little further on they came to a camp of flying foxes.
The huge trees on both sides of the river are actually black
with them. The great bats hang by their hooked wings to every
available branch and twig, squealing and quarrelling.
The smell is dreadful. The camp extends for a length of three
miles. There must be millions upon millions of them."
Flying-Mouse, n. See Opossum-mouse
and Flying-Phalanger.
Flying-Phalanger, n. included in the class
of Phalanger (q.v.). The "flying" Phalangers "have
developed large parachute-like expansions of skin from the
sides of the body, by means of which they are able to take long
flying leaps from bough to bough, and thus from tree to tree.
While the great majority of the members of the family are
purely vegetable feeders, . . . a few feed entirely or partly
on insects, while others have taken to a diet of flesh."
(R. Lydekker.)
They include the so-called Flying-Squirrel,
Flying-Mouse, etc. There are three genera--
Acrobates (q.v.), called the Flying-Mouse,
and Opossum-Mouse (q.v.).
Petauroides commonly called the Taguan, or
Taguan Flying-Squirrel.
Petaurus (q.v.), commonly called the Flying
Squirrel.
The species are--
Lesser F.-Ph.--
Petaurus breviceps.
Papuan Pigmy F.-Ph.--
Acrobates pulchellus (confined to Northern Dutch New
Guinea).
Pigmy F.-Ph.--
A. pygmaeuss.
Squirrel F.-Ph.--
Petaurus sciureus.
Taguan F.-Ph.--
Petauroides volans.
Yellow-bellied F.-Ph.--
P. australis.
Flying-Squirrel, n. popular name for a
Flying-Phalanger, Petaurus sciureus, Shaw, a marsupial
with a parachute-like fold of skin along the sides by which he
skims and floats through the air. The name is applied to
entirely different animals in Europe and America.
1789. Governor Phillip, `Voyage to Botany Bay,' c. xv. p. 151:
"Norfolk Island flying squirrel." [With picture.]
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.:
"The flying squirrels are of a beautiful slate colour, with
a fur so fine that, although a small animal, the hatters here
give a quarter dollar for every skin."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 37:
"The squeal and chirp of the flying squirrel."
1850. R. C. Gunn, `Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 253:
"In the year 1845 I drew the attention of the Tasmanian Society
to the interesting fact that the Petaurus sciureus, or
Flying Squirrel, of Port Phillip, was becoming naturalized in
Van Diemen's Land. . . . No species of Petaurus is
indigenous to Tasmania. . . . It does not appear from all that
I can learn, that any living specimens of the Petaurus
schireus were imported into Van Diemen's Land prior to
1834; but immediately after the settlement of Port Phillip,
in that year, considerable numbers of the flying squirrel were,
from their beauty, brought over as pets by the early visitors."
1851. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 78:
"The flying squirrel, another of the opossum species of the
marsupial order, is a beautiful little creature, and disposed
over the whole of the interior of New South Wales: its fur is
of a finer texture than that of the opossum."
1855. W. Blandowski, `Transactions of Philosophical Society of
Victoria,' vol. i. p. 70:
"The common flying squirrel (Petaurus sciureus) is very
plentiful in the large gum trees near the banks of a creek or
river, and appears to entertain a peculiar aversion to the high
lands."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 90:
"Flying squirrel."
[Footnote]:
"The marsupial flying phalanger is so called by the
Australians."
Fly-Orchis, n. name applied in Tasmania to the
orchid, Prasophyllum patens, R. Br.
Forest, n. See quotation.
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the Interior of
Eastern Australia,' vol i. p. 71 [Footnote]:
"A `forest' means in New South Wales an open wood with grass.
The common `bush' or `scrubb' consists of trees and saplings,
where little grass is to be found."
[It is questionable whether this fine distinction still exists.]
Forester, n. the largest Kangaroo, Macropus
giganteus, Zimm.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' vol. ii. p. 27:
"There are three or four varieties of kangaroos; those most
common are denominated the forester and brush kangaroo."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 423:
"I called this river the `Red Kangaroo River,' for in
approaching it we first saw the red forester of Port
Essington."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 67:
"And the forester snuffing the air
Will bound from his covert so dark."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 15:
"We have never had one of the largest kind--the Forester
Kangaroo (Macropus gigantes)--tame, for they have been
so hunted and destroyed that there are very few left in
Tasmania, and those are in private preserves, or very remote
out-of-the-way places, and rarely seen. . . . The aborigines
called the old father of a flock a Boomer. These were often
very large: about five feet high in their usual position, but
when standing quite up, they were fully six feet . . . and
weighing 150 or 200 pounds."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xix. p. 181:
"The dogs . . . made for them as if they had been a brace of
stray foresters from the adjacent ranges."
Forest-Oak, n. See Oak.
Forget-me-not, n. The species of this familiar flower is
Myosotis australis, R. Br., N.O. Asperifoliae.
Fortescue, or 40-skewer, n. a fish of
New South Wales, Pentaroge marmorata, Cuv. and Val.,
family Scorpaenidae; called also the Scorpion,
and the Cobbler. All its names allude to the thorny
spines of its fins. The name Fortescue is an adaptation
of Forty-skewer by the law of Hobson-Jobson.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 49:
"Of this fish Mr. Hill says: The scorpion or Fortescue, as
these fish are popularly termed by fishermen, have been known
for a long time, and bear that name no doubt in memory of the
pain they have hitherto inflicted; and for its number and array
of prickles it enjoys in this country the alias
`Forty-skewer' or `Fortescure.' "
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 228:
"Fortescue is a terrible pest, lurking among the
debris in the nets and all but invisible, its spines
standing erect in readiness for the unwary finger. And so
intense is the pain inflicted by a stab, that I have seen a
strong man roll on the ground crying out like a madman."
Forty-legs, n. name given to a millipede,
Cermatia smithii.
Forty-spot, n. name for a bird,
a Pardalote (q.v.). Pardalote itself means
spotted "like the pard." See also Diamond-bird.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 37:
"Pardalotus quadragintus, Gould, Forty-spotted
pardalote. Forty-spot, Colonists of Van Diemen's Land."
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 5:
"`Lyre bird' is obvious; so, too, is `forty-spot'; only one
wonders why the number 40 was pitched upon. Was it a guess?
Or did the namer first shoot the bird and count?"
Fossick, v. intrans. to dig, but with special
meanings. Derived, like fosse, a ditch, and
fossil, through French from Lat. fossus, perfect
part. of fodere, to dig. Fossicking as
pres. part., or as verbal noun, is commoner than the other
parts of the verb.
(1) To pick out gold.
1852. W. H. Hall, `Practical Experiences at the Diggings in
Victoria,' p. 16:
"Or fossicking (picking out the nuggets from the interstices
of the slate formation) with knives and trowels."
(2) To dig for gold on abandoned claims or in waste-heaps.
1865. F. H. Nixon, `Peter Perfume,' p. 59:
"They'll find it not quite so `welly good'
As their fossicking freak at the Buckland."
1873. A.Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. xix. p. 286:
"Here we found about a dozen Chinamen `fossicking' after gold
amidst the dirt of the river, which had already been washed by
the first gold-seekers."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 22:
"He commenced working along with several companions at surface
digging and fossicking."
1894. `The Argus,' March 14, p. 4, col. 6:
"The easiest and simplest of all methods is `fossicking.' An
old diggings is the place for this work, because there you will
learn the kind of country, formation, and spots to look for
gold when you want to break new ground. `Fossicking' means
going over old workings, turning up boulders, and taking the
clay from beneath them, exploring fissures in the rock, and
scraping out the stuff with your table knife, using your pick
to help matters. Pulling up of trees, and clearing all soil
from the roots, scraping the bottoms of deserted holes, and
generally keeping your eye about for little bits of ground
left between workings by earlier miners who were in too great
a hurry looking after the big fish to attend much to small fry."
(3) To search for gold generally, even by stealing.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 60:
"A number of idle and disorderly fellows had introduced a
practice which was termed `fossicking.' . . . In the dead
hours of midnight they issued forth, provided with wax tapers,
and, entering upon the ground, stole the auriferous earth."
(4) To search about for anything, to rummage.
1870. S. Lemaitre, `Songs of Goldfields,' p. 14:
"He ran from the flat with an awful shout
Without waiting to fossick the coffin lid out."
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 2, p. 4, col. 3:
"Half the time was spent in fossicking for sticks."
1891. `The Argus,' Dec. 19, p. 4, col. 2:
"I was . . . a boy fossicking for birds' nests in the gullies."
1893. `The Australasian,' Jan. 14:
"The dog was fossicking about."
Fossicker, n. one who fossicks, sc. works
among the tailings of old gold-mines for what may be left.
1853. C. Rudston Read, `What I heard, saw, and did at the
Australian Gold Fields,' p. 150:
"The man was what they called a night fossicker, who
slept, or did nothing during the day, and then went round at
night to where he knew the claims to be rich, and stole the
stuff by candle-light."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 87:
"I can at once recognize the experienced `fossickers,' who
know well how to go to work with every chance in their favour."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. ii. p. 32:
"Steady old fossickers often get more
Than the first who open'd the ground."
1869. R. Brough Smyth, `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 612:
"A fossicker is to the miner as is the gleaner to the reaper;
he picks the crevices and pockets of the rocks."
1891. `The Australasian,' Nov. 21, p. 1015:
"We had heard that, on this same field, years after its total
abandonment, a two hundred ounce nugget had been found by a
solitary fossicker in a pillar left in an old claim."
1891. `The Argus,' Dec. 19, p. 4, col. 2:
"The fossickers sluiced and cradled with wonderful cradles of
their own building."
Four-o'clock, n. another name for the
Friar-bird (q.v.).
Free-select, v. to take up land under the Land
Laws. See Free-selector. This composite verb, derived
from the noun, is very unusual. The word generally used is
to select.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xix. p. 134:
"Everything which he could have needed had he proceeded to
free-select an uninhabited island."
Free-selection, n. (1) The process of selecting
or choosing land under the Land Laws, or the right to choose.
Abbreviated often into Selection. See
Free-selector.
1865. `Ararat Advertiser' [exact date lost]:
"He was told that the areas open for selection were not on the
Geelong side, and one of the obliging officials placed a plan
before him, showing the lands on which he was free to choose a
future home. The selector looked vacantly at the map, but at
length became attracted by a bright green allotment, which at
once won his capricious fancy, indicating as it did such
luxurious herbage; but, much to his disgust, he found that `the
green lot' had already been selected. At length he fixed on a
yellow section, and declared his intention of resting satisfied
with the choice. The description and area of land chosen were
called out, and he was requested t0 move further over and pay
his money. `Pay?' queried the fuddled but startled bona
fide, `I got no money (hic), old `un, thought it was free
selection, you know.'"
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' ii. 87:
"A man can now go and make his free selection before survey of
any quantity of land not less than 40 nor more than 320 acres,
at twenty shillings an acre."
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 743:
"You may go to nine stations out of ten now without hearing
any talk but `bullock and free-selection.'"
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 82:
"His intention . . . was to take up a small piece of land
under the system of `free-selection.'"
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xx. p. 162:
"This was years before the free-selection discovery."
(2) Used for the land itself, but generally in the abbreviated
form, Selection.
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' vol. vi, p. 56:
"I've only seen three females on my selection since I took it
up four years last November."
Free-selector, n. (abbreviated often to
Selector), one who takes up a block of Crown land under
the Land Laws and by annual payments acquires the freehold.
[320 acres to Victoria, 640 in New South Wales.]
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. i. p. 21:
"Free selectors we shall be
When our journey's end we see."
1866. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 9:
"The very law which the free selector puts in force against the
squatter, the squatter puts in force against him; he selected
upon the squatter's run, and the squatter selects upon his
grazing right."
1873. Ibid. p. 33:
"Men who select small portions of the Crown lands by means of
land orders or by gradual purchase, and who become freeholders
and then permanently wedded to the colony."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 33:
"The condition of the free-selector--that of ownership of a
piece of land to be tilled by the owner--is the one which the
best class of immigrants desire."
1875. `Melbourne Spectator,' June 12, p. 70, col. 2:
"A public meeting of non-resident selectors has been held at
Rushworth."
1884. Marcus Clarke, `Memorial Volume,' p. 85:
"A burly free selector pitched his tent in my Home-Station
paddock and turned my dam into a wash."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xii. p. 116:
"No, no; I've kept free-selectors out all these years,
and as long as I live here I'll do so still."
Freezer, n. a sheep bred and raised in order
that its mutton may be frozen and exported.
1893. J. Hotson, Lecture in `Age,' Nov.30, p. 7, col. 2:
"In the breeding of what are in New Zealand known as `freezers'
there lies a ready means of largely increasing the returns from
our land."
Fresh-water Herring, n. In Sydney, the fish is
Clupea richmondia, Macl. Elsewhere in Australia, and in
Tasmania, it is another name for the Grayling (q.v.).
Fresh-water Perch, n. name given in Tasmania to
the fish Microperca tasmaniae.
Friar-bird, n. an Australian bird, of the genus
called Philemon, but originally named
Tropidorhynchus (q.v.). It is a honey-eater, and is
also called Poor Soldier and other names; see quotation,
1848. The species are--
Friar-Bird--
Philemon corniculatus, Lath. [Called also
Leather-head, q.v.]
Helmeted F.--
P. buceroides, Swains.
Little F.--
P. sordidus, Gould.
Silvery-crowned F.--
P. argenticeps, Gould.
Yellow-throated F.-
P. citreogularis, Gould.
Western F.--
P. occidentalis, Ramsay.
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' p. 615 (Vocab.):
"Wirgan,--bird named by us the friar."
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 324:
"Friar,--a very common bird about Paramatta, called by
the natives `coldong:' It repeats the words `poor
soldier' and `four o'clock' very distinctly."
1845. `Voyage to Port Phillip,' p. 53:
"The cheerful sedge-wren and the bald-head friar,
The merry forest-pie with joyous song."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 58:
"Tropidorhynchus Corniculatus, Vig. and Hors.
"From the fancied resemblance of its notes to those words,
it has obtained from the Colonists the various names of `Poor
Soldier,' `Pimlico,' `Four o'clock,' etc. Its bare head and
neck have also suggested the names of `Friar Bird,' `Monk,'
`Leather Head,' etc."
1855. W. Blandowski, `Transactions of the Philosophical Society
of Victoria,' vol. i. p. 64:
"The Tropidorhynchus corniculatus is well known to the
colonists by the names `poor soldier,' `leather-headed
jackass,' `friar-bird,' etc. This curious bird, in common with
several other varieties of honey-eaters, is remarkable on
account of its extreme liveliness and the singular resemblance
of its notes to the human voice."
Frilled-Lizard, n. See quotation.
1875, G. Bennett, `Proceedings of Royal Society of Tasmania,'
p. 56:
"Notes on the Chlamydosaurus or frilled-lizard of
Queensland (C. Kingii.) "
Frogsmouth, n. an Australian bird; genus
Podargus, commonly called Mopoke (q.v.). The
mouth and expression of the face resemble the appearance of a
frog. The species are--
Freckled Frogsmouth--
Podargus phaloenoides, Gould.
Marbled F.--
P. marmoratus, Gould.
Plumed F.--
P. papuensis, Quoy and Gaim.
Tawney F.--
P. strigoides, Lath.
1895. W. O. Legge, `Australasian Association for the
Advancement of Science' (Brisbane), p. 447:
"The term `Frogsmouth' is used in order to get rid of that very
objectionable name Podargus, and as being allied to the
other genera Batrachostomus and Otothrix of the
family Steatorninae in India. It is a name well suited
to the singular structure of the mouth, and presumably better
than the mythical title of `Goatsucker.' `Night-hawk,'
sometimes applied to the Caprimulginae, does not accord
with the mode of flight of the genus Podargus."
Frontage, n. land along a river or creek, of
great importance to a station. A use common in Australia, not
peculiar to it.
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July i8, p. 3, col. 7:
". . . has four miles frontage to the Yarra Yarra."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. iii. p. 29:
"Jack was piloted by Mr. Hawkesbury through the `frontage'
and a considerable portion of the `back' regions of Gondaree."
Frost-fish, n. name given in Australia and New
Zealand to the European Scabbard-fish, Lepidopus
caudatus, White. The name is said to be derived from the
circumstance that the fish is found alive on New Zealand
sea-beaches on frosty nights. It is called the
Scabbard-fish in Europe, because it is like the shining
white metal sheath of a long sword. Lepidopus belongs
to the family Trichiuridae, it reaches a length of five
or six feet, but is so thin that it hardly weighs as many
pounds. It is considered a delicacy in New Zealand.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 51:
"The frost-fish . . . the most delicately flavoured of all New
Zealand fishes, is an inhabitant of deep water, and on frosty
nights, owing probably to its air-bladders becoming choked, it
is cast up by the surf on the ocean-beach."
Fruit-Pigeon, n. The name is given to numerous
pigeons of the genera Ptilinopus and Carpophaga.
In Australia it is assigned to the following birds:--
Allied Fruit-Pigeon--
Ptilinopus assimilis, Gould.
Purple-breasted F.-P.--
P. magnifica, Temm.
Purple-crowned F.-P.--
P. superbus, Temm.
Red-crowned F.-P.--
P. swainsonii, Gould.
Rose-crowned F.-P.--
P. ewingii Gould.
White-headed F.-P.--
Columba leucomela, Temm.
And in New Zealand to Carpophaga novae-zealandiae, Gmel.
(Maori name, Kereru Kuku, or Kukupa.)
Fryingpan-Brand, n. a large brand used by
cattle-stealers to cover the owner's brand. See Duffer
and Cattle-Duffer.
1857. Frederic De Brebant Cooper, `Wild Adventures in
Australia,' p. 104:
". . . This person was an `old hand,' and got into some
trouble on the other side (i.e. the Bathurst side) by using a
`frying-pan brand.' He was stock-keeping in that quarter, and
was rather given to `gulley-raking.' One fine day it appears
he ran in three bullocks belonging to a neighbouring squatter,
and clapt his brand on the top of the other so as to efface
it."
Fuchsia, Native, n. The name is applied to
several native plants.
(1) In Australia and Tasmania, to various species of Correa
(q.v.), especially to Correa speciosa, And., N.O.
Rutaceae.
(2) In Queensland, to Eremophila maculata, F. v. M.,
N.O. Myoporineae.
(3) In New Zealand, to Fuchsia excorticata, Linn.,
N.O. Onagrariae. (Maori name, Kotukutuktu, q.v.).
See also Tooky-took and Konini.
1860. Geo. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist in Australasia,'
pp. 371-2:
"The Correa virens, with its pretty pendulous blossoms (from
which it has been named the `Native Fuchsia'), and the Scarlet
Grevillea (G. coccinea) are gay amidst the bush flowers."
1880. Mrs.Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 23:
"I see some pretty red correa and lilac."
[Footnote]: "Correa speciosa--native fuchsia of Colonies."
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 374:
"E. maculata. A . . . shrub called native fuchsia, and
by some considered poisonous, by others a good fodder bush."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 126:
"E. maculata. . . . Called `Native Fuchsia' in parts
of Queensland."
1892. `Otago Witness,' Nov. 24, `Native Trees':
"A species of native fuchsia that is coming greatly into favour
is called [Fuchsia] Procumbens. It is a lovely pot plant, with
large pink fruit and upright flowers."
Full up of, adj. (slang), sick and tired of.
"Full on," and "full of," are other forms.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xxiii. p. 213:
"She was `full up' of the Oxley, which was a rowdy,
disagreeable goldfield as ever she was on."
Furze, Native, n. a shrub, Hakea ulcina,
R. Br. See Hakea.
Futtah, n. a settlers' corruption of the Maori
word Whata (q.v.).
1895. W.S. Roberts, `Southland in 1856,'p. 28:
"These stores were called by the Europeans futters,--but
the Maori name was Whata."
1896. `Southland Daily News,' Feb. 3:
"`Futtah is familiar as `household words.' There were always
rats in New Zealand--that is, since any traditions of its
fauna existed. The original ones were good to eat.
They were black and smooth in the hair as the mole of the Old
Country, and were esteemed delicacies. They were always
mischievous, but the Norway rat that came with the white man
was worse. He began by killing and eating his aboriginal
congener, and then made it more difficult than ever to keep
anything eatable out of reach of his teeth. Human ingenuity,
however, is superior to that of most of the lower animals, and
so the `futtah' came to be--a storehouse on four posts, each of
them so bevelled as to render it impossible for the cleverest
rat to climb them. The same expedient is to-day in use on
Stewart Island and the West Coast --in fact, wherever properly
constructed buildings are not available for the storage of
things eatable or destructible by the rodents in question."
G
Galah, n. a bird.(The accent is now placed
on the second syllable.) Aboriginal name for the Cacatua
roseicapilla, Vieill., the Rose-breasted
Cockatoo. See Cockatoo. With the first syllable
compare last syllable of Budgerigar (q.v.)
1890. `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 5:
"They can afford to screech and be merry, as also the grey,
pink-crested galahs, which tint with the colours of the evening
sky a spot of grass in the distance."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. xiv. p. 127:
"The galahs, with their delicate grey and rose-pink plumage,
are the prettiest parrots."
1891. Francis Adams, `John Webb's End,' p. 191:
"A shrieking flock of galahs, on their final flight before they
settled to roost, passed over and around him, and lifting up
his head, he saw how all their grey feathers were flushed with
the sunset light, their coloured breasts deepening into darkest
ruby, they seemed like loosed spirits."
Gallows, n. Explained in quotation. Common
at all stations, where of course the butchering is done on
the premises.
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 64:
"The gallows, a high wooden frame from which the carcases of
the butchered sheep dangle."
Gang-gang, or Gan-gan, n. the
aboriginal word for the bird Callocephalon galeatum,
Lath., so called from its note; a kind of cockatoo, grey with a
red head, called also Gang-gang Cockatoo. See
Cockatoo.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. Intro.
p. xxxviii:
"Upon the branches the satin-bird, the gangan, and various
kinds of pigeons were feeding."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pl. 14:
"Callocephalon Galeatum, Gang-gang Cockatoo, Colonists
of New South Wales."
Gannet, n. the English name for the Solan
Goose and its tribe. The Australian species are--
The Gannet--
Sula serrator, Banks.
Brown G. (called also Booby)--
S. leucogastra, Bodd.
Masked G.--
S. cyanops, Sunder.
Red-legged G.--
S. piscator, Linn.
The species in New Zealand is Dysporus serrator, Grey;
Maori name, Takapu.
Garfish, n. In England the name is applied to
any fish of the family Belonidae. The name was
originally used for the common European Belone vulgaris.
In Melbourne the Garfish is a true one, Belone ferox,
Gunth., called in Sydney "Long Tom." In Sydney, Tasmania, and
New Zealand it is Hemirhamphus intermedius, Cantor.; and
in New South Wales, generally, it is the river-fish
H. regularis, Gunth., family Sombresocidae. Some
say that the name was originally "Guard-fish," and it is still
sometimes so spelt. But the word is derived from xGar,
in Anglo-Saxon, which meant spear, dart, javelin, and the
allusion is to the long spear-like projection of the fish's
jaws. Called by the Sydney fishermen Ballahoo, and in
Auckland the Piper (q.v.).
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 288:
"Charley brought me . . . the head bones of a large
guard-fish."
1849. Anon., `New South Wales: its Past, Present, and Future
Condition,' p. 99:
"The best kinds of fish are guard, mullet, and schnapper."
1850. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip,' c. iii. p. 44:
"In the bay are large quantities of guard-fish."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June I9, p. 81, col.1:
"Common fish, such as trout, ruffies, mullet, garfish."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 83:
"Of the garfishes we have four species known to be found on our
coasts. One, Hemirhamphus regularis, is the favourite
breakfast fish of the citizens of Sydney. H. melanochir,
or `river garfish,' is a still better fish, but has become very
scarce. H. argentcus, the common Brisbane species
. . . and H. commersoni."
Gastrolobium, n. scientific name of a genus of
Australian shrubs, N.O. Leguminosae, commonly known as
Poison Bushes (q.v.). The species are--
Gastrolobium bilobum, R. Br.
G. callistachys, Meissn.
G. calycium, Benth.
G. obovatum, Benth.
G. oxylobioides, Benth.
G. spinosum, Benth.
G. trilobum, Benth.
All of which are confined to Western Australia. The species
Gastrolobium grandiflorum, F. v. M. (also called
Wall-flower), is the only species found out of Western
Australia, and extends across Central Australia to Queensland.
All the species have pretty yellow and purple flowers. The
name is from the Greek gastaer, gastros, the belly,
and lobion, dim. of lobos, "the capsule or pod
of leguminous plants." (`L. & S.')
Geebung, or Geebong, n. aboriginal
name for the fruit of various species of the tree
Persoonia, and also for the tree itself,
N.O. Proteaceae.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 221:
"The jibbong is another tasteless fruit, as well as the five
corners, much relished by children."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition, p. 478:
"We gathered and ate a great quantity of gibong (the ripe fruit
of Persoonia falcata)."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' c. vi,. p. 176, 3rd
edition 1855:
"The geebung, a native plum, very woolly and tasteless."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 113:
"We gathered the wild raspberries, and mingling them with
geebongs and scrub berries, set forth a dessert."
1885. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 255:
"You won't turn a five-corner into a quince, or a geebung into
an orange."
1889. J. M. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 584:
"A `geebung' (the name given to the fruits of Persoonias,
and hence to the trees themselves)."
Gerygone, n. scientific and vernacular name of
a genus of small warblers of Australia and New Zealand; the new
name for them is Fly-eater (q.v.). In New Zealand they
are called Bush-warblers, Grey-warblers, etc.,
and they also go there by their Maori name of Riro-riro.
For the species, see Fly-eater and Warbler. The
name is from the Greek gerugonae, "born of sound," a word
used by Theocritus.
1895. W. O. Legge, `Australasian Association for the
Advancement of Science' (Brisbane), p. 447:
"[The habits and habitats of the genus] Gerygone
suggested the term Fly-eater, as distinguished from
Fly-catcher, for this aberrant and peculiarly
Australasian form of small Fly-catchers, which not only capture
their food somewhat after the manner of Fly-catchers, but also
seek for it arboreally."
Ghilgai, n. an aboriginal word used by white
men in the neighbourhood of Bourke, New South Wales, to denote
a saucer-shaped depression in the ground which forms a natural
reservoir for rainwater. Ghilgais vary from 20 to 100
yards in diameter, and are from five to ten feet deep. They
differ from Claypans (q.v.), in being more regular in
outline and deeper towards the centre, whereas Claypans
are generally flat-bottomed. Their formation is probably due
to subsidence.
Giant-Lily, n. See under Lily.
Giant-Nettle, i.q. Nettle-tree (q.v.).
Gibber, n. an aboriginal word for a stone.
Used both of loose stones and of rocks. The G is hard.
1834. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar,' p. x. [In a list
of `barbarisms']:
"Gibber, a stone."
[Pace Mr. Threlkeld, the word is aboriginal, though not
of the dialect of the Hunter District, of which he is speaking.]
1852. `Settlers and Convicts; or Recollections of Sixteen Years'
Labour in the Australian Backwoods,' p. 159:
"Of a rainy night like this he did not object to stow himself
by the fireside of any house he might be near, or under the
`gibbers' (overhanging rocks) of the river. . . ."
1890. A .J. Vogan, `Black Police,' p. 338:
"He struck right on top of them gibbers (stones)."
1894. Baldwin Spencer, in `The Argus,' Sept. 1, p. 4, col. 2:
"At first and for more than a hundred miles [from Oodnadatta
northwards], our track led across what is called the gibber
country, where the plains are covered with a thin layer of
stones--the gibbers--of various sizes, derived from the breaking
down of a hard rock which forms the top of endless low,
table-topped hills belonging to the desert sandstone
formation."
Gibber-gunyah, n. an aboriginal cave-dwelling.
See Gibber and Gunyah, also Rock-shelter.
1852. `Settlers and Convicts; or, Recollections of Sixteen
Years' Labour in the Australian Backwoods,' p. 211:
"I coincided in his opinion that it would be best for us to
camp for the night in one of the ghibber-gunyahs. These are
the hollows under overhanging rocks."
1863. Rev. R. W. Vanderkiste, `Lost, but not for Ever,' p. 210:
"Our home is the gibber-gunyah,
Where hill joins hill on high,
Where the turrama and berrambo
Like sleeping serpents lie."
1891. R. Etheridge, jun., `Records of the Australian Museum,'
vol. i. no. viii. p. 171:
"Notes on Rock Shelters or Gibba-gunyahs at Deewhy Lagoon."
Giddea, Gidya, or Gidgee, adj.
aboriginal word of New South Wales and Queensland for--
(1) a species of Acacia, A. homalophylla, Cunn. The
original meaning is probably small, cf. gidju,
Warrego, Queensland, and kutyo, Adelaide, both meaning
small.
(2) A long spear made, from this wood.
1878. `Catalogue of Objects of Ethno-typical Art in National
Gallery, Melbourne,' p. 46:
"Gid-jee. Hardwood spear, with fragments of quartz set
in gum on two sides and grass-tree stem. Total length, 7 feet 8
inches."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 51:
"Gidya scrubs."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 357:
"A. homalophylla. A `Spearwood.' Called `Myall'
in Victoria. . . . Aboriginal names are . . . Gidya, Gidia,
or Gidgee (with other spellings in New South Wales and
Queensland). This is the commonest colonial name . . . much
sought after for turner's work on account of its solidity and
fragrance. . . . The smell of the tree when in flower is
abominable, and just before rain almost unbearable."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvii. p. 211:
"I sat . . . watching the shadows of the gydya trees lengthen,
ah! so slowly."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 37:
"Kind of scrub, called by the colonists gydya-scrub, which
manifests itself even at a distance by a very characteristic,
but not agreeable odour, being especially pungent after rain."
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Home Expedition in Central Australia,'
Narrative, p. 22:
"We camped beside a water-pool on the Adminga Creek, which is
bordered for the main part by a belt of the stinking acacia, or
giddea (A. homalophylla). When the branches are freshly
cut it well deserves the former name, as they have a most
objectionable smell."
Gill-bird, n. an occasional name for the
Wattle-bird (q.v.).
1896. `Menu' for October 15:
"Gill-bird on Toast."
Gin, n. a native word for an aboriginal woman,
and used, though rarely, even for a female kangaroo. See
quotation 1833. The form gun (see quotation 1865) looks
as if it had been altered to meet gunae, and of course
generate is not derived from gunae, though it may be a
distant relative. In `Collins's Vocabulary' occurs "din, a
woman." If such a phonetic spelling as djin had been
adopted, as it well might have been, to express the native
sound, where would the gunae theory have been?
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' Vocabulary, p. 612:
"Din--a woman."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 152:
"A proposition was made by one of my natives to go and steal a
gin (wife)."
Ibid. p. 153:
"She agrees to become his gin."
1833. Lieut. Breton, R.N., `Excursions in New South Wales,'
p. 254:
"The flying gin (gin is the native word for woman or female) is
a boomall, and will leave behind every description of dog."
1834. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar,' p. x:
"As a barbarism [sc. not used on the Hunter], jin--a wife."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 8:
"A gin (the aboriginal for a married woman)."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 367:
"Gin, the term applied to the native female blacks; not from
any attachment to the spirit of that name, but from some (to
me) unknown derivation."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. I. c. iv.
p. 74:
"Though very anxious to . . . carry off one of their `gins,'
or wives . . . he yet evidently holds these north men in great
dread."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,'p. 126, n.:
"When their fire-stick has been extinguished, as is sometimes
the case, for their jins or vestal virgins, who have charge of
the fire, are not always sufficiently vigilant."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 98:
"Gins--native women--from gune, mulier, evidently!"
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. 2, p. 46:
"The females would be comely looking gins,
Were not their limbs so much like rolling-pins."
1865. S. Bennett, `Australian Discovery,' p. 250:
"Gin or gun, a woman. Greek gunae and derivative words
in English, such as generate, generation, and the like."
1872. C. H. Eden, `MY Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 118:
"The gins are captives of their bow and spear, and are brought
home before the captor on his saddle. This seems the orthodox
way of wooing the coy forest maidens. . . . All blacks are
cruel to their gins."
1880. J. Brunton Stephens, `Poems' [Title]:
"To a black gin."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 23:
"Certain stout young gins or lubras, set apart for the purpose,
were sacrificed."
Ginger, Native, n. an Australian tree,
Alpinia caerulea, Benth., N.O. Scitamineae.
The globular fruit is eaten by the natives.
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 296:
"Fresh green leaves, especially of the so-called native ginger
(Alpinia caerulea)."
Give Best, v. Australian slang, meaning to
acknowledge superiority, or to give up trying at anything.
1883. Keighley, `Who are You?' p. 87:
"But then--the fact had better be confessed, I went to work
and gave the schooling best."
1887. J. Farrell, `How he Died,' p. 80:
"Charley gave life best and died of grief."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xviii. p. 174:
"It's not like an Englishman to jack up and give these fellows
best."
Globe-fish, n. name given to the fish
Tetrodon hamiltoni, Richards., family
Gymnodontes. The Spiny Globe-fish is
Diodon. These are also called Toad-fish (q.v.),
and Porcupine-fish (q.v.). The name is applied to other
fish elsewhere.
Glory Flower, or Glory Pea,
i.q. Clianthus (q.v.).
Glory Pea, i.q. Clianthus (q.v.).
Glucking-bird, n. a bird so named by
Leichhardt, but not identified. Probably the Boobook
(q.v.), and see its quotation 1827; see also under
Mopoke quotation, Owl, 1846.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 23:
"The musical note of an unknown bird, sounding like `gluck
gluck' frequently repeated, and ending in a shake . . . are
heard from the neighbourhood of the scrub."
Ibid. p. 29:
"The glucking bird--by which name, in consequence of its note,
the bird may be distinguished--was heard through the night."
Ibid. p. 47:
"The glucking-bird and the barking owl were heard throughout
the moonlight nights."
Ibid. pp. 398, 399:
"During the night, we heard the well-known note of what we
called the `Glucking bird,' when we first met with it in the
Cypress-pine country at the early part of our expedition. Its
re-appearance with the Cypress-pine corroborated my supposition,
that the bird lived on the seeds of that tree."
Glue-pot, n. part of a road so bad that the
coach or buggy sticks in it.
1892. `Daily News,' London (exact date lost):
"The Bishop of Manchester [Dr. Moorhouse, formerly Bishop of
Melbourne], whose authority on missionary subjects will not be
disputed, assures us that no one can possibly understand the
difficulties and the troubles attendant upon the work of a
Colonial bishop or clergyman until he has driven across almost
pathless wastes or through almost inaccessible forests, has
struggled through what they used to call `glue-pots,' until he
has been shaken to pieces by `corduroy roads,' and has been in
the midst of forests with the branches of trees falling around
on all sides, knowing full well that if one fell upon him he
would be killed."
Goai, n. common name in southern island of New
Zealand for Kowhai (q.v.), of which it is a corruption.
It is especially used of the timber of this tree, which is
valuable for fencing. The change from K to G
also took place in the name Otago, formerly spelt Otakou.
1860. John Blair, `New Zealand for Me,':
"The land of the goai tree, mapu, and pine,
The stately totara, and blooming wild vine."
1863. S. Butler, `First Year in Canterbury Settlement,' p. 104:
"I remember nothing but a rather curiously shaped gowai-tree."
Goanna, Guana, and Guano, n.
popular corruptions for Iguana, the large Lace-lizard
(q.v.), Varanus varius, Shaw. In New Zealand, the word
Guano is applied to the lizard-like reptile Sphenodon
punctatum. See Tuatara. In Tasmania, the name is
given to Taliqua schincoides, White, and throughout
Australia any lizard of a large size is popularly called a
Guana, or in the bush, more commonly, a Goanna.
See also Lace-lizard.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. viii.
p. 285:
"Among other reptiles were found . . . some brown guanoes."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present state of Australia,' p. 118:
"At length an animal called a guana (a very large species of
lizard) jumped out of the grass, and with amazing rapidity ran,
as they always do when disturbed, up a high tree."
1864. J. Ropers, `New Rush,' p. 6:
"The shy guana climbs a tree in fear."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 99:
"A goanna startled him, and he set to and kicked the front of
the buggy in."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 139:
"And the sinister `gohanna,' and the lizard, and the snake."
Go-ashore, n. an iron pot or cauldron, with
three iron feet, and two ears, from which it was suspended by
a wire handle over the fire. It is a corruption of the Maori
word Kohua (q.v.), by the law of Hobson-Jobson.
1849. W. Tyrone Power, `Sketches in New Zealand with Pen and
Pencil,' p. 160:
"Engaged in the superintendence of a Maori oven, or a huge
gipsy-looking cauldron, called a `go-ashore.'"
1877. An Old Colonist, `Colonial Experiences,' p. 124:
"A large go-ashore, or three-legged pot, of the size and shape
of the cauldron usually introduced in the witch scene in
Macbeth."
1879. C. L. Innes, `Canterbury Sketches,' p. 23:
"There was another pot, called by the euphonious name of a
`Go-ashore,' which used to hang by a chain over the fire.
This was used for boiling."
Goborro, n. aboriginal name for Eucalyptus
microtheca, F. v. M. See Dwarf-box, under Box.
Goburra, and Gogobera, n. variants
of Kookaburra (q.v.).
Goditcha. See Kurdaitcha.
Godwit, n. the English name for birds of the
genus Limosa. The Australian species are--
Black-tailed G.,--
Limosa melanuroides, Gould;
Barred-rumped G.,--
L. uropygialis, Gould.
Gogobera, and Goburra, n. variants of
Kookaburra (q.v.).
Gold-. The following words and phrases compounded
with "gold" are Australian in use, though probably some are
used elsewhere.
Gold-bearing, verbal adj. auriferous.
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 13:
"A new line of gold-bearing quartz."
Gold-digging, verbal n. mining or digging for
gold.
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Gold. fields,' p. 36:
"There were over forty miners thus playing at gold-digging
in Hiscock's Gully."
Gold-digger, n.
1852. J. Bonwick [Title]:
"Notes of a Gold-digger."
Gold-fever, n. the desire to obtain gold by
digging. The word is more especially applied to the period
between 1851 and 1857, the early Australian discovery of gold.
The term had been previously applied in a similar way to the
Californian excitement in 1848-49. Called also Yellow
fever.
1888. A. J. Barbour, `Clara,' c. ix. p. 13:
"The gold fever coursed through every vein."
Gold-field, n. district where mining for gold
is carried on.
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria, c. xv. p. 215:
"All were anxious to get away for the gold fields."
1880. G. Sutherland, [Title] `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 19:
"Edward Hargreaves, the discoverer of the Australian goldfields
. . . received L15,000 as his reward."
Gold-founded, part. adj. founded as the result
of the discovery of gold.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. ix. p. 91:
"I rode up the narrow street, serpentine in construction, as in
all gold-founded townships."
Gold-hunter, n. searcher after gold.
1852. G. S. Rutter [Title]:
"Hints to Gold-hunters."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. v. p. 48:
"I was not as one of the reckless gold-hunters with which
the camp was thronged."
Gold-mining, verbal n.
1852. J. A.Phillips [Title]:
"Gold-mining; a Scientific Guide for Australian Emigrants."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 23:
"He had already had quite enough of gold-mining."
Gold-seeking, adj.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xv. p. 150:
"The great gold-seeking multitude had swelled . . . to the
population of a province."
Golden Bell-Frog, n. name applied to a large
gold and green frog, Hyla aurea, Less., which, unlike
the great majority of the family Hylidae to which it
belongs, is terrestrial and not arboreal in its habits, being
found in and about water-holes in many parts of Australia.
1881. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,'
Dec. 6, pl. 53:
"So completely alike was the sound of the Bell-frogs in an
adjoining pond at night to the noise of the men by day."
Golden-chain, n. another name for the
Laburnum
(q.v.).
Golden-eye, n. the bird Certhia
lunulatu, Shaw; now called Melithreptus lunulatus,
Shaw, and classed as White-naped Honey-eater (q.v.).
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 315:
"`This bird,' Mr. Caley says, `is called Golden-eye by the
settlers. I shot it at Iron Cove, seven miles from Sydney,
on the Paramatta road.'"
Golden-Perch, n. a fresh-water fish of
Australia, Ctenolates ambiguus, Richards., family
Percidae, and C. christyi, Castln.; also called
the Yellow-belly. C. ambiguus is common in the
rivers and lagoons of the Murray system.
Golden-Rosemary, n. See Rosemary.
Golden-Wattle, n. See Wattle.
1896. `The Argus,' July 20, p. 5, col. 8:
"Many persons who had been lured into gathering armfuls
of early wattle had cause to regret their devotion to the
Australian national bloom, for the golden wattle blossoms
produced unpleasant associations in the minds of the wearers
of the green, and there were blows and curses in plenty.
In political botany the wattle and blackthorn cannot grow
side by side."
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 53:
"The last two weeks have been alive with signs and tokens,
saying `Spring is coming, Spring is here.' And though this
may not be the `merry month of May,' yet it is the time of
glorious Golden Wattle,--wattle waving by the river's bank,
nodding aloft its soft plumes of yellow and its gleaming golden
oriflamme, or bending low to kiss its own image in the brown
waters which it loves."
Goodenia, n. the scientific and popular name of
a genus of Australian plants, closely resembling the
Gentians; there are many species. The name was given by
Sir James Smith, president of the Linnaean Society, in 1793.
See quotation.
1793. `Transactions of the Linn.can Society,' vol. ii. p. 346:
"I [Smith] have given to this . . . genus the name of Goodenia,
in honour of . . . Rev. Dr. Goodenough, treasurer of
this Society, of whose botanical merits . . . example of
Tournefort, who formed Gundelia from Gundelscheimer."
[Dr. Goodenough became Bishop of Carlisle; he was the
grandfather of Commodore Goodenough.]
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 188:
"A species of Goodenia is supposed to be used by the
native gins to cause their children to sleep on long journeys,
but it is not clear which is used."
Goodletite, n. scientific name for a matrix in
which rubies are found. So named by Professor Black of
Dunedin, in honour of his assistant, William Goodlet, who was
the first to discover the rubies in the matrix, on the west
coast.
1894. `Grey River Argus,' September:
"Several sapphires of good size and colour have been found,
also rubies in the matrix--Goodletite."
Goondie, n. a native hut. Gundai = a
shelter in the Wiradhuri dialect. It is the same word as
Gunyah (q.v.).
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvii. p. 204:
"There were a dozen `goondies' to be visited, and the inmates
started to their work."
Goose, n. English bird-name. The Australian
species are--
Cape Barren Goose--
Cereopsis novae-hollandiae, Lath. [Gould (`Birds of
Australia,' vol. vii. pl. 1) calls it the Cereopsis Goose, or
Cape Barren Goose of the Colonists.]
Maned G. (or Wood-duck, q.v.)--
Branta jubata, Lath.
Pied G.--
Anseranus melanoleuca, Lath.
Called also Magpie-Goose and Swan-Goose.
1843. J. Backhouse, `Narrative of a Visit to the Australian
Colonies,' p. 75:
"Five pelicans and some Cape Barren Geese were upon the beach
of Preservation Island [Bass Strait]."
Goose-teal, n. the English name for a very
small goose of the genus Nettapus. The Australian
species are--
Green,--
Nettapus pulchellus, Gould;
White-quilled,--
N. albipennis, Gould.
Gooseberry-tree, Little, n. name given to the
Australian tree Buchanania mangoides, F. v. M., N.O.
Anacardiaceae.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition, p. 479:
"My companions had, for several days past, gathered the unripe
fruits of Coniogeton arborescens, R. Br., which, when
boiled, imparted an agreeable acidity to the water. . . . When
ripe, they became sweet and pulpy, like gooseberries. . . .
This resemblance induced us to call the tree `the little
gooseberry-tree.' "
Gordon Lily, n. See under Lily.
Gouty-stem, n. the Australian
Baobab-tree (q.v.), Adansonia gregori, F. v. M.
According to Maiden (p. 60), Sterculia rupestris,
Benth., is also called Gouty-stem, on account of the
extraordinary shape of the trunk. Other names of this tree are
the Sour-gourd, and the Cream-of-tartar tree.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. II. c. iii.
p. 115:
"The gouty-stem tree . . . bears a very fragrant white flower, not
unlike the jasmine." [Illustration given at p. 116.]
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery and
Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 2S9 [Note]:
"This tree is distinguished by the extraordinary swollen
appearance of the stem, which looks as though the tree were
diseased or the result of a freak of nature. The youngest as
well as the oldest trees have the same deformed appearance, and
inside the bark is a soft juicy pulp instead of wood, which is
said to be serviceable as an article of food. The stem of the
largest tree at Careening Bay was twenty-nine feet in girth; it
is named the Adansonia digitata. A species is found in
Africa. In Australia it occurs only on the north coast."
Government, n. a not unusual contraction of
"Government service," used by contractors and working men.
Government men, n. an obsolete euphemistic name
for convicts, especially for assigned servants (q.v.).
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 122:
"Three government men or convicts."
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 127:
"Government men, as assigned servants were called."
Government stroke, n. a lazy style of doing
work, explained in quotations. The phrase is not dead.
1856. W. W. Dobie, `Recollections of a Visit to Port Phillip,'
p. 47:
"Government labourers, at ten shillings a-day, were breaking
stones with what is called `the Government stroke,' which is a
slow-going, anti-sweating kind of motion. . . ."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. ix. [near
end] p. 163:
"In colonial parlance the government stroke is that light and
easy mode of labour--perhaps that semblance of labour--which no
other master will endure, though government is forced to put up
with it."
1893. `Otago Witness,' December 2r, p. 9, col. 1:
"The government stroke is good enough for this kind of job."
1897. `The Argus,' Feb. 22, p. 4, col. 9:
"Like the poor the unemployed are always with us, but they have
a penchant for public works in Melbourne, with a good daily pay
and the `Government stroke' combined."
Grab-all, n. a kind of net used for marine
fishing near the shore. It is moored to a piece of floating
wood, and by the Tasmanian Government regulations must have a
mesh of 2 1/4 inches.
1883. Edward O. Cotton, `Evidence before Royal Commission on
the Fisheries of Tasmania,' p. 82:
"Put a graball down where you will in `bell-rope' kelp, more
silver trumpeter will get in than any other fish."
1883. Ibid. p. xvii:
"Between sunrise and sunset, nets, known as `graballs,' may be
used."
Grammatophore, n. scientific name for "an
Australian agamoid lizard, genus Grammatophora."
(`Standard.')
Grape, Gippsland, n. called also Native
Grape. An Australian fruit tree, Vitis hypoglauca,
F. v. M., N.O. Viniferae; called Gippsland Grape in
Victoria.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 66:
"Native grape; Gippsland grape. This evergreen climber yields
black edible fruits of the size of cherries. This grape would
perhaps be greatly improved by culture. (Mueller.)"
Grape, Macquarie Harbour, or Macquarie Harbour
Vine (q.v.), n. name given to the climbing shrub
Muehlenbeckia adpressra, Meissn. N.O. Polygonaceae.
Called Native Ivy in Australia. See under Ivy.
Grape-eater, n. a bird, called formerly
Fig-eater, now known as the Green-backed
White-eye (q.v.), Zosterops gouldi, Bp.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 82:
"Zosterops chloronotus, Gould, Green-backed Z.;
Grape and Fig-eater, Colonists of Swan River."
Grass, n. In Australia, as elsewhere, the name
Grass is sometimes given to plants which are not of the
natural order Gramineae, yet everywhere it is chiefly to
this natural order that the name is applied. A fair proportion
of the true Grasses common to many other countries in
the world, or confined, on the one hand to temperate zones, or
on the other to tropical or sub-tropical regions, are also
indigenous to Australia, or Tasmania, or New Zealand, or
sometimes to all three countries. In most cases such grasses
retain their Old World names, as, for instance,
Barnyard- or Cock-spur Grass (Panicum
crus-galli, Linn.); in others they receive new Australian
names, as Ditch Millet (Paspalum scrobitulatum,
F. v. M.), the `Koda Millet' of India; and still again certain
grasses named in Latin by scientific botanists have been
distinguished by a vernacular English name for the first time
in Australia, as Kangaroo Grass (Anhistiria
ciliata, Linn.), which was "long known before Australia
became colonized, in South Asia and all Africa" (von Muller),
but not by the name of the Kangaroo.
Beyond these considerations, the settlers of Australia, whose
wealth depends chiefly on its pastoral occupation, have
introduced many of the best Old-World pasture grasses (chiefly
of the genera Poa and Festuca), and many
thousands of acres are said to be "laid down with English
grass." Some of these are now so wide-spread in their
acclimatization, that the botanists are at variance as to
whether they are indigenous to Australia or not; the Couch
Grass, for instance (Cynodon dactylon, Pers.), or
Indian Doub Grass, is generally considered to be an
introduced grass, yet Maiden regards it as indigenous.
There remain, "from the vast assemblage of our grasses, even
some hundred indigenous to Australia" (von Muller), and a like
number indigenous to New Zealand, the greater proportion of
which are endemic. Many of these, accurately named in Latin
and described by the botanists, have not yet found their
vernacular equivalents; for the bushman and the settler do not
draw fine botanical distinctions. Maiden has classified and
fully described 158 species as "Forage Plants," of which over
ninety have never been christened in English. Mr. John
Buchanan, the botanist and draughtsman to the Geographical
Survey of New Zealand, has prepared for his Government a
`Manual of the Indigenous Grasses of New Zealand,' which
enumerates eighty species, many of them unnamed in English, and
many of them common also to Australia and Tasmania. These two
descriptive works, with the assistance of Guilfoyle's Botany
and Travellers' notes, have been made the basis of the
following list of all the common Australian names applied to
the true Grasses of the N.O. Gramineae. Some of
them of very special Australian character appear also elsewhere
in the Dictionary in their alphabetical places, while a few
other plants, which are grasses by name and not by nature,
stand in such alphabetical place alone, and not in this list.
For facility of comparison and reference the range and habitat
of each species is indicated in brackets after its name; the
more minute limitation of such ranges is not within the scope
of this work. The species of Grass present in
Australia, Tasmania, and New Zealand are--
1. Alpine Rice Grass--
Ehrharta colensoi, Cook. (N.Z.)
2. Alpine Whorl G.--
Catabrosa antarctica, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
3. Bamboo G.--
Glyceria ramigera, F. v. M. (A.)
Called also Cane Grass.
Stipa verticillata, Nees.(A.)
4. Barcoo G. (of Queensland)--
Anthistiria membranacea, Lindl. (A.)
Called also Landsborough Grass.
5. Barnyard G.--
Panicum crus-galli, Linn. (A., not endemic.)
Called also Cockspur Grass.
6. Bayonet G.--
Aciphylla colensoi.(N.Z.)
Called also Spear-Grass (see 112), and
Spaniard (q.v.).
7. Bent G.--Alpine--
Agrostis muellerii, Benth. (A., N.Z., not endemic.)
Deyeuxia setifolia, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
8. Bent G.--Australian--
Deyeuxia scabra, Benth. (A., T., N.Z.)
9. Bent G.--Billardiere's--
D. billardierii, R. Br. (A., T., N.Z.)
10. Bent G.--Brown--
Agrostis carina, Linn. (N.Z.)
11. Bent G.--Campbell Island--
A. antarctica, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
12. Bent G.--Dwarf Mountain--
A. subululata, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
13. Bent G.--Oat-like--
Deyeuxia avenoides, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
14. Bent G.--Pilose--
D. pilosa, Rich. (N.Z.)
15. Bent G.--Slender--
Agrostis scabra, Willd. (A., T., N.Z.)
16. Bent G.--Spiked--
Deyeuxia quadriseta, R. Br. (A., T., N.Z.)
Called also Reed Grass.
17. Bent G.--Toothea--
D. forsteri, Kunth. (A., T., N.Z.)
18. Bent G.--Young's--
D. youngii, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
19. Blady G.--
Ipperata arundinacea, Cyr. (A.)
20. Blue G.--
Andropogon annulatus, Forst. (A.)
A. pertusus, Willd. (A.)
A. sericeus, R. Br. (A.)
21. Brome G.--Seaside.--
8romus arenarius, Labill. (A., N.Z.)
Called also Wild Oats.
22. Canary G.--
Phalaris canariensis. (A.)
23. Cane G.--
(i.q. Bamboo Grass. See 3.)
24. Chilian G.--
(i.q. Rat--tailed Grass. See 97.)
25. Cockspur G.--
(i.q. Barnyard Grass. See 5.)
26. Couch G.--
Cynodon dactylon, Pers. (A., not endemic.)
Called also Indian Doub Grass.
27. Couch G.--Native--
Distichlys maritima, Raffinesque. (A.)
28. Couch G.--Water--
(i.q. Seaside Millet. See 50.)
29. Feather G.--
(Several species of Stipa. See 101.)
30. Fescue G.--Hard--
Festuca duriuscula, Linn. (Australasia, not endemic.)
31. Fescue G.--Poa-like--
F. scoparia, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
32. Fescue G.--Sandhill--
F. littoralis, R. Br., var. triticoides,
Benth. (A., T., N.Z.)
33. Fescue G.--Sheeps'--
F. ovina, Linn. (A., T.)
34. Finger G.--Cocksfoot--
Panicum sanguinale, Linn. (A., not endemic.)
Called also Hairy Finger Grass, and Reddish Panic
Grass.
35. Finger G.--Egyptian--
Eleusine aegyptica, Pers. (A., not endemic.)
36. Finger G.--Hairy--
(i.q .Cocksfoot Finger Grass. See 33.)
37. Foxtail G.--
(i.q. Knee jointed Foxtazl Grass. See 42.)
38. Hair G.--Crested--
Koeleria cristata, Pers. (A., T., N.Z.)
39. Hair G.--Turfy--
Deschampia caespitosa, Beavo. (N.Z., not endemic.)
40. Holy G.--
Hierochloe alpina, Roem. & Schult. (Australasia, not
endemic.)
41. Indian Doub G.--
(i.q. Couch Grass. See 26.)
42. Kangaroo G. (A., T., not endemic)--
Andropogon refractus, R. Br.
Anthistiria avenacea, F. v. M. (Called also Oat
Grass.)
A. ciliata, Linn. (Common K.G.)
A. frondosa, R. Br. (Broad-leaved K.G.)
43. Knee-jointed Fox-tail G.--
Alopecurus geniculatus, Linn. (Australasia, not
endemic.)
44. Landsborough G.--
(i.q. Barcoo Grass. See 4.)
45. Love G.--Australian--
Eragrostis brownii, Nees. (A.)
46. Manna G.--
Glyceria fluitans, R. Br. (A.,T.)
47. Millet--Australian--
Panicum decompositum, R. Br. (A., not endemic.)
Called also Umbrella Grass.
48. Millet--Ditch--
Paspalum scrobitulatum, F. v. M. (A., N.Z., not endemic.)
The Koda Millet of India.
49. Millet--Equal-glumed--
Isachne australis, R. Br. (A., N.Z., not endemic.)
50. Millet-Seaside--
Paspalum distichum, Burmann. (A., N.Z., not endemic.)
Called also Silt Grass, and Water Couch Grass.
51. Mitchell G.--
Astrebla elymoides, F. v. M. (A., True Mitchell
Grass.)
A. pectinata, F. v. M. (A.)
A. tritzcoides, F. v. M. (A.)
52. Mouse G.--
(i.q.) Longhaired Plume Grass. See 72.)
53. Mulga G.--
Danthonia racemosa, R. Br. (A.)
Neurachnea Mitchelliana, Nees. (A.)
54. New Zealand Wind G.--
Apera arundinacea, Palisot. (N.Z., not endemic.)
55. Oat G.--
Anthistiria avenacea, F. v. M. (Called also Kangaroo
Grass. See 41.)
56. Oat G.--Alpine--
Danthonia semi-annularis, R. Br., var. alpina.
(N.Z.)
57. Oat G.--Buchanan's--
D. buchanii; Hook. f. (N.Z.)
58. Oat G.--Few-flowered--
D. pauciflora, R. Br. (A., T., N.Z.)
59. Oat G.--Hard--
D. pilosa, R. Br., var. stricta. (N.Z.)
60. Oat G.--Naked--
D. nuda, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
61. Oat G.--New Zealand--
D. semi-annularis, R. Br. (A., T., N.Z.)
62. Oat G.--Purple-awned--
D. pilosa, R. Br. (A., T., N.Z.)
63. Oat G.--Racemed--
D. pilosa, R. Br., var. racemosa. (N.Z.)
64. Oat G.--Shining--
Trisetum antarcticum, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
65. Oat G.--Sheep--
Danthonia semi-annularis, R. Br., var. gracilis.(N.Z.)
66. Oat G.--Spiked--
Trisetum subspicatum, Beauv. (Australasia, not
endemic.)
67. Oat G.--Thompson's Naked--
Danthonia thomsonii (new species).
68. Oat G.--Wiry-leaved--
D. raoulii, Steud, var. Australis, Buchanan. (N.Z.)
69. Oat G.--Young's--
Trisetum youngii, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
70. Panic G.--Reddish--
(i.q. Cocksfoot Finger-Grass. See 34.)
71. Panic G.--Slender--
Oplismenus salarius, var. Roem. and Schult. (A., N.Z.,
not endemic.)
72. Paper G.--Native--
Poa caespitosa, Forst. (A., T., N.Z.)
Called also Wiry Grass, Weeping Polly,
and Tussock Poa Grass; and, in New Zealand,
Snow Grass.
73. Plume G.--Long-haired--
Dichelachne crinita, Hook. f. (A., T., N.Z.)
74. Plume G.--Short-haired--
D. sciurea, Hook. f. (A., T., N.Z.)
75. Poa G.--Auckland Island--
Poa foliosa, Hook. f., var. a. (N.Z.)
76. Poa G.--Brown-flowered--
P. lindsayi, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
77. Poa G.--Brown Mountain
P. mackayi (new species). (N.Z.)
78. Poa G.--Colenso's--
P. colensoi, Hook. f.(N.Z.) 79.
79. Poa G.--Common Field--
P. anceps, Forst., var. b, foliosa, Hook. f.
(N.Z.)
80. Pea G.--Dense-flowered
P. anceps, Forst., var. d, densiflora,
Hook. f. (N.Z.)
81. Poa G.--Dwarf--
P. pigmaea (new species). (N.Z.)
82. Pea G.--Hard short-stemmed--
P. anceps, Forst., var. c, brevicalmis,
Hook. f. (N.Z.)
83. Poa G.--Kirk's--
P. kirkii (new species). (N.Z.)
84. Poa G.--Large-flowered--
P. foliosa, Hook. f., var. B. (N.Z.)
85. Poa G.--Little--
P. exigua, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
86. Poa G.--Minute--
P, foliosa, Hook. f., var. C. (N.Z.)
87. Poa G.--Minute Creeping--
P. pusilla, Berggren. (N.Z.)
88. Pea G.--Nodding Plumed--
P. anceps, Forst., var. A, elata,
Hook. f. (N.Z.)
89. Poa G.--One-flowered--
P. unifora (new species). (N.Z.)
90. Poa G.--Short-glumed--
P. breviglumus, Hook. f.(N.Z.)
91. Poa G.--Slender--
P. anceps, Forst., var. E, debilis, Kirk,
Ms. (N.Z.)
92. Poa G.--Small Tussock--
P. intemedia (new species). (N.Z.)
93. Poa G.--Tussock--
P. caespitosa, Forst. (A., T., N.Z. See 71.)
94. Poa G.--Weak-stemmed--
Eragrostis imbebecilla, Benth. (A., N.Z.)
95. Poa G.--White-flowered--
Poa sclerophylla, Berggren. (N.Z.)
96. Porcupine G. (q.v.)--
Triodia (various species).
97. Rat-tailed G.--
Sporobulus indicus, R. Br. (A., N.Z., not endemic.)
Called also Chilian Grass.
Ischaeum laxum, R. Br. (A.)
98. Reed G.--
Pragmites communis, Trin. (N.Z. See 16.)
99. Rice G.--
Leersia hexandria, Swartz. (A.)
100. Rice G.--Bush--
Microtaena avenacea, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
101. Rice G.--Knot-jointed--
M. polynoda, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
102. Rice G.--Meadow--
M. stipoides, R. Br. (A.,T., N.Z.)
Called also Weeping Grass.
103. Roly-Poly G.--
Panicum macractinum, Benth. (A.)
104. Rough-bearded G.--
Echinopogon ovatus, Palisot. (A., T., N.Z.)
105. Sacred G.--
Hierochloe redolens, R. Br. (Australasia, not endemic.)
Called also Scented Grass, and Sweet-scented
Grass.
106. Scented G.--
Chrysopogon parviforus, Benth. (A.) See also 105.
107. Seaside Brome G.--
(i.q. Brome Grass. See 21.)
108. Silt G.--
(i.q. Seaside Millet. See 50.)
109. Seaside Glumeless G.--
Gymnostychum gracile, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
110. Snow G. (q.v.)--
(i.q. Paper Grass. See 72.) (N.Z.)
111. Spear G. (q.v.)--
Aciphylla colensoi. (N.Z.)
Called also Spaniard (q.v.).
Heteropogon contortus, Roem. and Shult. (N.Z.),
and all species of Stipa (A., T.).
112. Spider G.--
Panicum divaricatissimum, R. Br. (A.)
113. Spinifex G. (q.v.)--
Spinifex hirsutus, Labill. (A., T., N.Z., not endemic.)
Called also Spiny Rolling Grass.
114. Star G.--Blue--
Chloris ventricosa, R. Br. (A.)
115. Star G.--Dog's Tooth--
C. divaricata, R. Br. (A.)
116. Star G.--Lesser--
C. acicularis, Lindl. (A.)
117. Sugar G.--
Pollinia fulva, Benth.(A.)
118. Summer G.--
(i.q. Hairy-Finger Grass. See 36.)
119. Sweet G.--
Glyceria stricta, Hook. f. (A., T., N.Z.)
120. Sweet-scented G.--
(i.q. Sacred Grass. See 105.)
121. Traveller's G. (N.O. Aroideae).--
(i.q. Settlers' Twine, q.v.)
122. Tussock G.--
(See 93 and 72.)
123. Tussock G.-- Broad-leaved Oat--
Danthonia flavescens, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
124. Tussock G.--Erect Plumed--
Arundo fulvida, Buchanan. (N.Z.) Maori name,
Tot-toi (q.v.).
125. Tussock G.--Narrow-leaved Oat--
Danthonia raoulii, Steud. (N.Z.)
126. Tussock G.--Plumed--
Arundo conspicua, A. Cunn. (N.Z.) Maori name,
Toi-toi (q.v.).
127. Tussock G.--Small-flowered Oat--
Danthonia cunninghamii, Hook. f. (N.Z.)
128. Petrie's Stipa G.--
Stipa petriei (new species). See 101. /?111?/ (N.Z.)
129. Umbrella G.--
(i.q. Australian Millet. See 47.)
130. Wallaby G.--
Danthonia penicileata, F. v. M. (A., N.Z.)
131. Weeping G.--
(i.q. Meadow Rice Grass. See 102.)
132. Weeping Polly G.--
(i.q. Paper Grass. See 72.)
133. Wheat G.--Blue--
Agropyrum scabrum, Beauv. (A., T., N.Z.)
134. Wheat G.--Short-awned--
Triticum multiflorum, Banks and Sol. (N.Z.)
135. White-topped G.--
Danthonia longifolia, R. Br. (A.)
136. Windmill G.--
Chloris truncata, R. Br. (A.)
137. Wire G.--
Ehrharta juncea, Sprengel; a rush-like grass of hilly
country. (A., T., N.Z.)
Cynodon dactylum, Pers.; so called from its knotted,
creeping, wiry roots, so difficult to eradicate in gardens
and other cultivated land. (Not endemic.) See 26.
138. Wiry G.--.
(i.q. Paper Grass. See 72.)
139. Wiry Dichelachne G.--
Stipa teretefolia, Steud. (A., T., N.Z.)
140. Woolly-headed G.--
Andropogon bombycinus, R. Br. (A.)
141. Vandyke G.--
Panicum flavidum, Retz. (A.)
Grass-bird, n. In New Zealand, Sphenoeacus
//sic. otherwhere Sphenaeacus GJC// punctatus, Gray, the
same as Fern-bird (q.v.); in Australia, Megalurus
(Sphenaeacus) gramineus, Gould.
Grass-leaved Fern, n. Vittaria elongata,
Swartz, N.O. Filices.
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 693:
"Grass-leaved fern. . . . Frond varying in length from a few
inches to several feet, and with a breadth of from one to five
lines. . . . This curious grass-like fern may be frequently
seen fringing the stems of the trees in the scrubs of tropical
Queensland, in which situation the fronds are usually very
long."
Grass-Parrakeet, n. a bird of the genus
Euphema. The Australian species are--
Blue-winged Parrakeet
Euphema aurantia, Gould.
Bourke's P.--
E. bourkii, Gould.
Grass-P.--
E. elegans, Gould.
Orange-bellied P.--
E. chrysogastra, Lath.
Orange-throated P.--
E. splendida, Gould.
Red-shouldered P.--
E. pulchella, Shaw.
Warbling Grass-P.--
Gould's name for Budgerigar (q.v.).
See also Rock-Parrakeet (Euphema petrophila, Gould),
which is sometimes classed as a Grass-Parrakeet.
Grass-tree, n. (2) The name applied to trees
of the genus Xanthorrhoea, N.O. Liliaceae, of which
thirteen species are known in Australia. See also
Richea.
(2) In New Zealand Pseudopanax crassifolium, Seemann,
N.O. Araleaceae. When young, this is the same as
Umbrella-tree, so called from its appearance like the
ribs of an umbrella. When older, it grows more straight and
is called Lancewood (q.v.).
(3) In Tasmania, besides two species of Xanthorrhoea
the Grass-tree of the mainland, the Richea
dracophylla, R. Br., N.O. Epacrideae, found on Mount
Wellington, near Hobart, is also known by that name, whilst
the Richea pandanifolia, Hook., found in the South-west
forests, is called the Giant Grass-tree. Both these are
peculiar to the island.
(4) An obsolete name for Cordyline australis, Hook.,
N.O. Liliaceae, now more usually called Cabbage-
tree (q.v.).
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,'
vol. ii. p. 153:
"A grass tree grows here, similar in every respect to that
about Port Jackson."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 347:
"Yielding frequently a very weak and sour kind of grass,
interspersed with a species of bulrush called grass-trees,
which are universal signs of poverty.":
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' Vol II. c. iii. p. 54:
"The grass-tree is not found westward of the mountains."
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. ii. p. 303:
"We approached a range of barren hills of clay slate, on which
grew the grass-tree (Xanthorhoea) and stunted eucalypti."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 74:
"The shimmering sunlight fell and kissed
The grass-tree's golden sheaves."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 132:
"Here and there, in moist places, arises isolated the
`grass-tree' or `cabbage-tree' (Ti of the natives; Cordyline
Australis)."
1874. Garnet Walch, `Head over Heels,' p. 80:
"The grass-trees in front, blame my eyes,
Seemed like plumes on the top of a hearse."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 119:
"How strikingly different the external features of plants may
be, though floral structure may draw them into congruity, is
well demonstrated by our so-called grass-trees, which pertain
truly to the liliaceous order. These scientifically defined
as Xanthorhoeas from the exudation of yellowish sap, which
indurates into resinous masses, have all the essential notes
of the order, so far as structure of flowers and fruits is
concerned, but their palm-like habit, together with cylindric
spikes on long and simple stalks, is quite peculiar, and
impresses on landscapes, when these plants in masses are
occuring, a singular feature."
1879. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia' (ed. 1893), p. 52:
"The grass trees (Xanthorrhoea) are a peculiar feature
to the Australian landscape. From a rugged stem, varying from
two to ten or twelve feet in height, springs a tuft of drooping
wiry foliage, from the centre of which rises a spike not unlike
a huge bulrush. When it flowers in winter, this spike becomes
covered with white stars, and a heath covered with grass trees
then has an appearance at once singular and beautiful."
1882. A. Tolmer, `Reminiscences,' vol, ii. p. 102:
"The root of the grass-tree is pleasant enough to eat, and
tastes something like the meat of the almond-tree; but being
unaccustomed to the kind of fare, and probably owing to the
empty state of our stomachs, we suffered severely from
diarrhoea."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 43:
"Grass-trees are most comical-looking objects. They have a
black bare stem, from one to eight feet high, surmounted by a
tuft of half rushes and half grass, out of which, again, grows
a long thing exactly like a huge bullrush. A lot of them
always grow together, and a little way off they are not unlike
the illustrations of Red-Indian chiefs in Fenimore Cooper's
novels."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 59:
"It [Pseudopanax crassifolium, the Horoeka] is
commonly called lance-wood by the settlers in the North Island,
and grass-tree by those in the South. This species was
discovered during Cook's first voyage, and it need cause no
surprise to learn that the remarkable difference between the
young and mature states led so able a botanist as Dr. Solander
to consider them distinct plants."
1896. Baldwin Spencer. `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Narrative, p. 98:
"As soon as the came upon the Plains we found ourselves in a
belt of grass trees belonging to a species not hitherto
described (X. Thorntoni). . . . The larger specimens
have a stem some five or six feet high, with a crown of long
wiry leaves and a flowering stalk, the top of which is fully
twelve feet above the ground."
[Compare Blackboy and Maori-head.
Grayling, n. The Australian fish of that name
is Prototroctes maroena, Gunth. It is called also the
Fresh-water Herring, Yarra Herring (in
Melbourne), Cucumber-Fish, and Cucumber-Mullet.
The last two names are given to it from its smell. It closely
resembles the English Grayling.
1880. W. Senior, `Travel and Trout,' p. 93:
"These must be the long-looked-for cucumber mullet, or fresh-
water herring. . . . `The cucumber mullet,' I explain,
`I have long suspected to be a grayling.'"
1882. Rev._I. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 109:
"Though not a fish of New South Wales, it may be as well
to mention here the Australian grayling, which in character,
habits, and the manner of its capture is almost identical with
the English fish of that name. In shape there is some
difference between the two fish. . . . A newly caught fish
smells exactly like a dish of fresh-sliced cucumber. It is
widely distributed in Victoria, and very abundant in all the
fresh-water streams of Tasmania. . . . In Melbourne it goes by
the name of the Yarra herring. There is another species in New
Zealand."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 206:
"The river abounds in delicious grayling or cucumber fish,
rather absurdly designated the `herring' in this [Deloraine]
and some other parts of the colony [Tasmania]."
Grebe, n. common English bird-name, of the
genus Podiceps. The species known in Australia are--
Black-throated Grebe--
Podiceps novae-hollandiae, Gould.
Hoary-headed G.--
P. nestor, Gould.
Tippet G.--
P. cristataes, Linn.
But Buller sees no reason for separating P. cristatus
from the well-known P. cristatus of Europe. Some of
the Grebes are sometimes called Dabchicks (q.v.).
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 285:
"The Crested Grebe is generally-speaking a rare bird in both
islands."
Greenhide, n. See quotation. Greenhide
is an English tannery term for the hide with the hair on before
scouring.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 27:
"Drivers, who walked beside their teams carrying over their
shoulders a long-handled whip with thong of raw salted hide,
called in the colony `greenhide.'"
Greenie, n. a school-boys' name for Ptilotis
penicillata, Gould, the White-plumed Honey-eater.
1896. `The Australasian,' Jan. 11, p. 73, col. 1:
"A bird smaller than the Australian minah, and of a greenish
yellowish hue, larger, but similar to the members of the
feathered tribe known to young city `knights of the catapult'
as greenies."
1897. A. J. Campbell (in `The Australasian,'Jan. 23), p. 180,
col. 5:
"Every schoolboy about Melbourne knows what the `greenie'
is--the white-plumed honey-eater (P. penicillata). The
upper-surface is yellowish-grey, and the under-surface brownish
in tone. The white-plumed honey-eater is common in Victoria,
where it appears to be one of the few native birds that is not
driven back by civilisation. In fact, its numbers have
increased in the parks and gardens in the vicinity of
Melbourne."
Green-leek, n. an Australian Parrakeet. See
quotation.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pl. 15:
"Polytelis Barrabandi, Wagl., Barraband's Parrakeet;
Green-leek of the colonists of New South Wales."
1855. R. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 123:
"We observed m the hollow trees several nests of the little
green paroquet,--here, from its colour, called the leek."
Green Lizard, n. sometimes called the
Spotted Green Lizard, a New Zealand reptile,
Naultinus elegans, Gray.
Green Oyster, n. name given in Queensland to
the sea-weed Ulva lactuca, Linn., N.O. Algae.
From being frequently found attached to oysters, this is
sometimes called "Green Oyster." (Bailey.) See Oyster.
Greenstone, n. popular name of Nephrite
(q.v.). Maori name, Pounamu (q.v.).
1859. A.S. Thomson, `Story of New Zealand,' p. 140:
"The greenstone composing these implements of war is called
nephrite by mineralogists, and is found in the Middle Island of
New Zealand, in the Hartz, Corsica, China and Egypt. The most
valuable kind is clear as glass with a slight green tinge."
1889. Dr. Hocken, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 181:
"This valued stone--pounamu of the natives--nephrite, is found
on the west coast of the South Island. Indeed, on Captain
Cook's chart this island is called `T'Avai Poenammoo'--Te wai
pounamu, the water of the greenstone."
1892. F. R. Chapman, `The Working of Greenstone by the Maoris'
(New Zealand Institute), p. 4:
"In the title of this paper the word `greenstone' occurs, and
this word is used throughout the text. I am quite conscious
that the term is not geologically or mineralogically correct;
but the stone of which I am writing is known by that name
throughout New Zealand, and, though here as elsewhere the
scientific man employs that word to describe a totally
different class of rock, I should run the risk of being
misunderstood were I to use any other word for what is under
that name an article of commerce and manufacture in New
Zealand. It is called `pounamu' or `poenamu' by the Maoris,
and `jade,' `jadeite,' or `nephrite' by various writers,
while old books refer to the `green talc' of the Maoris."
Green-tops, n. Tasmanian name for the Orchid,
Pterostylis pedunculata, R. Br.
Green-tree Ant, n. common Queensland Ant.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 294:
"It was at the lower part of the Lynd that we first saw the
green-tree ant; which seemed to live in small societies in rude
nests between the green leaves of shady trees."
Green Tree-snake, n. See under Snake.
Grevillea, n. a large genus of trees of
Australia and Tasmania, N.O. Proteaceae, named in honour
of the Right Hon. Charles Francis Greville, Vice-President
of the Royal Society of London. The name was given by Robert
Brown in 1809. The `Century' Dictionary gives Professor
Greville as the origin of the name but "Professor Robert
K. Greville of Edinburgh was born on the 14th Dec., 1794,
he was therefore only just fourteen years old when the genus
Grevillea was established." (`Private letter from Baron
F. von Mueller.')
1851. `Quarterly Review,' Dec., p. 40:
"Whether Dryandra, Grevillea, Hakea, or the other
Proteaceae, all may take part in the same glee--
"It was a shrub of orders grey
Stretched forth to show his leaves."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia, vol. iii. p. 138:
"Graceful grevilleas, which in the spring are gorgeous with
orange-coloured blossoms."
Grey-jumper, n. name given to an Australian
genus of sparrow-like birds, of which the only species is
Struthidea cinerea, Gould; also called
Brachystoma and Brachyporus.
Grey Nurse, n. a New South Wales name for a
species of Shark, Odontaspis americanus, Mitchell,
family Lamnidae, which is not confined to Australasia.
Gridironing, vGrinder, n. See Razor-grinder and
Dishwasher.
Groper, n. a fish. In Queensland, Oligorus
terrae-reginae, Ramsay; in New Zealand, O. gigas,
"called by the Maoris and colonists `Hapuku,'"
(Guenther)--a large marine species. Oligorus is a genus
of the family Percidae, and the Murray-Cod (q.v.)
and Murray Perch (q.v.) belong to it. There is a fish
called the Grouper or Groper of warm seas quite distinct
from this one. See Cod, Perch, Blue-Groper and
Hapuku.
Ground-berry, i.q. Cranberry (q.v.).:
Ground-bird, n. name given in Australia to any
bird of the genus Cinclosoma. The species are--
Chestnut-backed Ground-bird--
Cinclosoma castaneonotum, Gould.
Chestnut-breasted G.-b.--
C. castaneothorax, Gould.
Cinnamon G.-b.--
C. cinnamomeum, Gould.
Northern, or Black-vented G.-b.--
C. marginatum, Sharpe.
Spotted G.-b.--
C. punctatum, Lath., called by Gould Ground-Dove
(q.v.).
Ground-Dove, n. (1) Tasmanian name
for the Spotted Ground-bird (q.v.).
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 4:
"Cinclosoma punctatum, Vig. and Horsf., Spotted
Ground-thrush. In Hobart Town it is frequently exposed for
sale in the markets with bronze-wing pigeons and wattle-birds,
where it is known by the name of ground-dove . . . very
delicate eating."
(2) The name is given by Gould to three species of Geopelia.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pls. 72, 73, 74:
"Geopelia humeralis, Barred-shouldered Ground-dove"
(pl. 72);
"G. tranquilla" (pl. 73);
"G. cuneata, Graceful Ground-dove" (pl. 74).
Ground-Lark, n. (1) In New Zealand, a bird also
called by the Maori names, Pihoihoi and Hioi.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 63:
"Anthus Novae Zelandiae, Gray, New Zealand Pipit;
Ground-Lark of the Colonists."
(2) In Australia, the Australian Pipit (Anthus
australis) is also called a Ground-lark.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 73:
"Anthus Australis, Vig. and Horsf., Australian Pipit.
The Pipits, like many other of the Australian birds, are
exceedingly perplexing."
Ground-Parrakeet, n. See Parrakeet and
Pezoporus.
Ground-Parrot, n. (1) The bird Psittacus
pulchellus, Shaw. For the Ground Parrot of New Zealand,
see Kakapo.
1793. G. Shaw, `Zoology [and Botany] of New Holland,' p. 10:
"Long-tailed green Parrot, spotted with black and yellow,. . .
the Ground Parrot."
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 278:
"The settlers call it ground-parrot. It feeds upon the ground."
Ibid. p. 286:
"What is called the ground-parrot at Sydney inhabits the scrub
in that neighbourhood."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 298:
"The ground-parrot, green, with mottlings of gold and black,
rose like a partridge from the heather, and flew low."
(2) Slang name for a small farmer. See Cockatoo,
n. (2).
Ground-Thrush, n. name of birds found all over
the world. The Australian species are--
Geocincla lunulata, Lath.
Broadbent Ground-Thrush--
G. cuneata.
Large-billed G.--
G. macrorhyncha, Gould.
Russet-tailed G.--
G. heinii, Cab.
Grub, v. to clear (ground) of the roots. To
grub has long been English for to dig up by the roots. It is
Australian to apply the word not to the tree but to the land.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 185:
"Employed with others in `grubbing' a piece of new land which
was heavily timbered."
1868. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Memory of 1834,' p. 10:
"A bit of land all grubbed and clear'd too."
Guana, or Guano, n. i.q. Goanna
(q.v.).
Guard-fish, n. Erroneous spelling of
Garfish (q.v.).
Gudgeon, n. The name is given in New South
Wales to the fish Eleotris coxii, Krefft, of the family
of the Gobies.
Guitar Plant, a Tasmanian shrub, Lomatia
tinctoria, R. Br., N.O. Proteaceae.
Gull, n. common English name for a sea-bird.
The Australian species are--
Long-billed Gull--
Larus longirostris, Masters.
Pacific G.--
L. pacificus, Lath.
Silver G.--
L. novae-hollandiae, Steph.
Torres-straits G.--
L. gouldi, Bp.
Gully, n. a narrow valley. The word is very
common in Australia, and is frequently used as a place name.
It is not, however, Australian. Dr.Skeat (`Etymological
Dictionary') says, "a channel worn by water." Curiously
enough, his first quotation is from `Capt. Cook's Third
Voyage,' b. iv. c. 4. Skeat adds, "formerly written
gullet: `It meeteth afterward with another gullet,'
i.e. small stream. Holinshed, `Description of Britain,' c. 11:
F. goulet, `a gullet . . . a narrow brook or deep gutter of
water.' (Cotgrave.) Thus the word is the same as gullet."
F. goulet is from Latin gula. Gulch is the word
used in the Pacific States, especially in California.
1773. `Hawkesworth's Voyages,' vol. iii. p. 532--Captain Cook's
First Voyage, May 30, 1770:
"The deep gullies, which were worn by torrents from the hills."
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 214:
"A man, in crossing a gully between Sydney and Parramatta, was,
in attempting to ford it, carried away by the violence of the
torrent, and drowned."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 17:
"The gums in the gully stand gloomy and stark."
1867. A.L. Gordon, `Sea-spray, etc.,' p. 134:
"The gullies are deep and the uplands are steep."
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for the Mail,' p. 16:
"The terrible blasts that rushed down the narrow gully, as if
through a funnel."
Gully-raker, n. a long whip.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 40:
"The driver appealing occasionally to some bullock or other by
name, following up his admonition by a sweeping cut of his
`gully-raker,' and a report like a musket-shot."
Gum, or Gum-tree, n. the popular name
for any tree of the various species of Eucalyptus. The
word Gum is also used in its ordinary English sense of
exuded sap of certain trees and shrubs, as
e.g. Wattle-gum (q.v.) in Australia, and
Kauri-gum (q.v.) in New Zealand. In America, the
gum-tree usually means "the Liquidambar styraciflua,
favourite haunt of the opossum and the racoon, whence the
proverbial possum up a gum-tree." (`Current
Americanisms,' s.v. Gum)
The names of the various Australian Gum-trees are as follows--
Apple Gum, or Apple-scented Gum--
Eucalyptus stuartiana, F. v. M.
Bastard G.--
Eucalyptus gunnii, Hook.
Bastard Blue G.--
E. leucoxylon, F. v. M. (South Australia).
Bastard White G.--
E. gunnii, Hook. (South Australia);
E. radiata (Tasmania).
Black G.--
E. stellulata, Sieb.
Black-butted G.--
E. pillularis, Smith (Victoria);
E. regnans, F. v. M. (New South Wales).
See Blackbutt.
Blue G. [see also Blue-Gum]
E. botryoides, Smith (New South Wales);
E. diversicolor, F. v. M. [Karri];
E. globulus, Labill.;
E. goniocalyx, F. v. M.;
E. leucoxylon, F. v. M. (South Australia) [Ironbark];
E. saligna, Smith;
E. tereticornis, Smith;
E. viminalis, Labill. (West New South Wales).
Botany Bay G,--
E. resinifera, Smith.
Brittle G.--
E. haemastonza, Smith;
E. micrantha, Smith.
Brown G.--
E. robusta, Smith.
Cabbage G.--
E. sieberiana, F. v. M. (Braidwood, New South Wales).
Cider G.--
E. gunnii, Hook. (Tasmania).
Citron-scented G.--
E. maculata, Hook.
Creek G.--
E. rostrata, Schlecht (West New South Wales).
Curly White G.--
E. radiata (Tasmania).
Dark Red G.--
E. rostrata, Schlecht.
Desert G.--
E. eudesmoides, F. v. M. (Central Australia);
E. gracilis, F. v. M.
Drooping G.--
E. pauciflora, Sieb. (Drooping Gum in Tasmania is
E. risdoni, Hook., N.O. Myrtaceae; the tree is
peculiar to Tasmania);
E. viminalis, Labill. (New South Wales).
Flood, or Flooded G.--
E. gunnii, Hook. (Bombala, New South Wales);
E. microtheca, F. v. M. (Carpentaria and Central
Australia);
E. rostrata, Schlecht;
E. saligna, Smith;
E. tereticornis, Smith (New South Wales).
Fluted G.-
E. salubris, F. v. M.
Forest G.--
E. rostrata, Schlecht (South Australia).
Giant G.--
E. amygdalina, Labill.
Gimlet G.--
E. salubris, F. v. M.
Green G.--
E. stellulata, Sieb. (East Gippsland).
Grey G.--
E. crebra, F. v. M.;
E. goniocalyx, F. v. M. (New South Wales, east of
Dividing range);
E. punctata, De C. (South Coast of New South Wales);
E. raveretiana, F.v.M;
E. resinifera, Smith;
E. saligna, Smith (New South Wales);
E. tereticornis, Smith (New South Wales);
E. viminalis, Labill (Sydney);
Honey-scented G.--
E. melliodora, Cunn.
Iron G.--
E. raveretiana, F. v. M.
Lemon-scented, or Lemon G.--
E. citriodora, Hook. f.
Lead G.--
E. stellulata, Cunn.
Mallee G.--
E. dumosa (generally called simply Mallee, q.v.).
Mountain G.--
E. tereticornis, Smith (South New South Wales).
Mountain White G.--
E. pauciflora, Sieb. (Blue Mountains).
Nankeen G.--
E. populifolia, Hook. (Northern Australia).
Olive Green G.--
E. stellulata, Cunn. (Leichhardt's name).
Pale Red G.--
E. rostrata, Schlecht.
Peppermint G.--
E. viminalis, Labill.
Poplar-leaved G.--
E. polyanthema, Schau.
Red G.--
E. amygdalina, Labill. (Victoria);
E. calophylla, R. Br.;
E. gunnii, Hook. (Bombala);
E. melliodora, Cunn. (Victoria);
E. odorata, Behr (South Australia);
E. punctata, De C.;
E. resinifera, Smith;
E. rostrata, Schlecht;
E. stuartiana, F. v. M. (Tasmania);
E. tereticornis, Smith (New South Wales).
Ribbon G.--
E. amygdalina, Labill. Ribbony G.
E. viminalis, Labill.
Risdon G.--
E. amygdalina, Labill.
River G.--
E. rostrata, Schlecht (New South Wales, Queensland,
and Central Australia).
River White G.--
E. radiata.
Rough-barked, or Rough G.--
E. botryoides, Smith (Illawarra).
Rusty G.--
E. eximia, Schau.
Scribbly G.--
E. haemastoma, Smith.
Scribbly Blue G.--
E. leucoxylon, F. v. M. (South Australia).
Scrub G.--
E. cosmophylla, F. v. M.
Slaty G.--
E. saligna, Smith (New South Wales);
E. tereticornis, Smith (New South Wales and
Queensland);
E. largiflorens, F. v. M.
Spotted G.--
E. capitellata, Smith (New England);
E. goniocalyx, F. v. M.;
E. haemastonza, Smith;
E. maculata, Hook.
Sugar G.--
E. corynocalyx, F. v. M.;
E. gunnii, Hook.
Swamp G.--
E. gunnii, Hook.;
E. microtheca, F. v. M.;
E. pauciflora, Sieb.;
E. viminalis, Labill. (Tasmania).
Weeping G.--
E. pauciflora, Sieb. (Tasmania);
E. viminalis, Labill. (New South Wales).
White G.--
E. amygdalina, Labill.;
E. gomphocephala, De C. (Western Australia);
E. goniocalyx, F. v. M. ; E. haemastoma, Smith;
E. hemiphloia, F. v. M. (Sydney);
E. leucoxylon, F. v. M. (South Australia);
E. pauciflora, Sieb.;
E. populifolia, Hook. (Queensland);
E. radiata (New South Wales);
E. redunca, Schau. (Western Australia);
E. robusta, Schlecht. (South Australia);
E. saligna, Smith (New South Wales);
E. stellulata, Cunn.;
E. stuartiana, F. v. M. (Victoria);
E. viminalis, Labill.
White Swamp G.--
E. gunnii, Hook. (South Australia).
Yellow G.--
E. punctata, De C.
York G.--
E. foecunda, Schau. (Western Australia).
This list has been compiled by collating many authorities. But
the following note on Eucalyptus amygdalina (from
Maiden's `Useful Native Plants,' p. 429) will illustrate the
difficulty of assigning the vernacular names with absolute
accuracy to the multitudinous species of Eucalyptus--
"Eucalyptus amygdalina, Labill.,
Syn. E. fissilis, F. v. M.; E. radiata, Sieb.;
E. elata, Dehn.; E. tenuiramis, Miq.;
E. nitida, Hook, f.; E. longifolia, Lindl. ;
E. Lindleyana, DC.; and perhaps E. Risdoni, Hook,
f.; E. dives, Schauer.--This Eucalypt has even more
vernacular names than botanical synonyms. It is one of the
`Peppermint Trees' (and variously `Narrow-leaved Peppermint,'
`Brown Peppermint,' `White Peppermint,' and sometimes
`Dandenong Peppermint'), and `Mountain Ashes' of the Dandenong
Ranges of Victoria, and also of Tasmania and Southern New South
Wales. It is also called `Giant Gum' and `White Gum.' In
Victoria it is one of the `Red Gums.' It is one of the New
South Wales `Stringybarks,' and a `Manna Gum.' Because it is
allied to, or associated with, `Stringybark,' it is also known
by the name of `Messmate.' . . . A variety of this gum
(E. radiata) is called in New South Wales `White Gum' or
`River White Gum.' . . . A variety of E. amygdalina
growing in the south coast district of New South Wales, goes by
the name of `Ribbon Gum,' in allusion to the very thin, easily
detachable, smooth bark. This is also E. radiata probably. A
further New South Wales variety goes by the name of `Cut-tail'
in the Braidwood district. The author has been unable to
ascertain the meaning of this absurd designation. These
varieties are, several of them, quite different in leaves,
bark, and timber, and there is no species better than the
present one to illustrate the danger in attempting to fit
botanical names on Eucalypts when only the vernacular names are
known."
Various other trees not of the genus Eucalyptus are also
sometimes popularly called Gums, such as, for instance--
Broad-leaved Water Gum--
Tristania suavolens, Smith.
Orange G.--
Angophora lanceolata, Cave.
Water G.--
Callistemon lanceolatus, DeC.
Tristania laurina, R. Br.
T. neriifolia, R. Br.
And others.
In addition to this, poets and descriptive writers sometimes
apply epithets, chiefly denoting colour or other outward
appearance, which are not names of distinct species, such as
Cinnamon, Morrell, Salmon, Cable, Silver,
etc. [See quotation under Silver Gum.]
1642. Abel Tasman, `Journal of the Voyage to the Unknown
Southland' (Translation by J. B. Walker in `Abel J. Tasman: His
Life, etc.' 1896)
[Under date Dec. 2, 1642, after describing the trees at Fredrik
Hendrik's Bay (now Blackman's Bay, Forestier's Peninsula,
Tasmania) 2 to 21/2 fathoms thick, 60 to 65 feet to the first
branch, and with steps 5 feet apart cut in them, Tasman says
that they found] "a little gum, fine in appearance, which drops
out of the trees, and has a resemblance to gum lac (gomma
lacca)."
1770. `Captain Cook's Journal' (ed. Wharton, 1893), p. 245:
"May 1st.--We found two sorts of gum, one sort of which is like
gum dragon, and is the same, I suppose, Tasman took for gum
lac; it is extracted from the largest tree in the woods.
"May 6th.--The biggest trees are as large or larger than our
oaks in England, and grow a good deal like them, and yield a
reddish gum; the wood itself is heavy, hard, and black like
Lignum vitae."
1788. Governor Phillip (Despatch, May 15) in `Historical
Records of New South Wales', vol. i. pt. ii. p. 128:
"What seeds could be collected are sent to Sir Joseph Banks, as
likewise the red gum taken from the large gum-tree by tapping,
and the yellow gum which is found on the dwarf palm-tree."
1789. Captain Watkin Tench, `Narrative of the Expedition to
Botany Bay,' p. 119:
"The species of trees are few, and . . . the wood universally
of so bad a grain, as almost to preclude the possibility of
using it. . . . These trees yield a profusion of thick red gum
(not unlike the Sanguis draconis)."
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 231:
"The red gum-tree, Eucalyptus resinifera. This is a
very large and lofty tree, much exceeding the English oak in
size."
1793. Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 69:
"I have likewise seen trees bearing three different kinds of
leaves, and frequently have found others, bearing the leaf of
the gum-tree, with the gum exuding from it, and covered with
bark of a very different kind."
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description of New South Wales,' p. 66:
"Full-sized gums and iron barks, alongside of which the
loftiest trees in this country would appear as pigmies, with
the beefwood tree, or, as it is generally termed, the forest
oak, which is of much humbler growth, are the usual timber."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 200:
"The gum-trees are so designated as a body from producing a
gummy resinous matter, while the peculiarities of the bark
usually fix the particular names of the species--thus the blue,
spotted, black-butted, and woolly gums are so nominated from
the corresponding appearance of their respective barks; the red
and white gums, from their wood; and the flooded gums from
growing in flooded land."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,'
vol. II. c. iii. p. 108:
"The silvery stems of the never-failing gum-trees."
1857. H. Parkes, `Murmurs of Stream,' p. 56:
"Where now the hermit gum-tree stands on the plain's heart."
1864. J. S. Moore, `Spring Life Lyrics,' p. 114:
"Amid grand old gums, dark cedars and pines."
1873. A.Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. xiii. p. 209:
"The eternal gum-tree has become to me an Australian crest,
giving evidence of Australian ugliness. The gum-tree is
ubiquitous, and is not the loveliest, though neither is it by
any means the ugliest, of trees."
1877. F. v. Muller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 7:
"The vernacular name of gum-trees for the eucalypts is as
unaptly given as that of most others of our native plants,
on which popular appellations have been bestowed. Indeed our
wattles might far more appropriately be called gum-trees than
the eucalypts, because the former exude a real gum (in the
chemical meaning of the word); whereas the main exudation from
the stems and branches of all eucalypts hardens to a kino-like
substance, contains a large proportion of a particular tannin
(kino-tannic acid), and is to a great extent or entirely
soluble in alcohol, thus very different from genuine gum."
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 176:
"Golden, 'mid a sunlit forest,
Stood the grand Titanic forms
Of the conquerors of storms;
Stood the gums, as if inspired,
Every branch and leaflet fired
With the glory of the sun,
In golden robes attired,
A grand priesthood of the sun."
1889. P. Beveridge, `Aborigines of Victoria and Riverina,'
p. 61:
"Nearly all the eucalyptus species exude gum, which the natives
utilise in the fabrication of their various weapons as
Europeans do glue. The myall and mimosa also exude gum; these
the natives prefer before all other kinds when obtainable, they
being less brittle and more adhesive than any of the others."
i891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"This is an exact representation of the camps which were
scattered over the country not more than fifty years ago, and
inhabited by the original lords of the soil. The beautiful
she-oak and red-gum forest that used to clothe the slopes of
Royal Park was a very favourite camping-ground of theirs, as
the gum-tree was their most regular source of food supply. The
hollows of this tree contained the sleek and sleepy opossum,
waiting to be dragged forth to the light of day and despatched
by a blow on the head. It was to the honey-laden blossoms of
this tree that the noisy cockatoos and parrots used to flock.
Let the kangaroo be wary and waterfowl shy, but whilst he had
his beloved gum-tree, little cared the light-hearted black."
1892. `The Times,' [Reprint] `Letters from Queensland,' p. 2:
"The immense extent of gum-trees stretches indefinitely,
blotting out the conception of anything but its own
lightly-timbered pasture. It has not even the gloom and
impressiveness which we associate in England with the name
of forest land, for the trees are thinly scattered, their long
leaves hang vertically from the branches, and sunlight filters
through with sufficient force to promote the growth of the
tussocked grass beneath. The whole would be indescribably
commonplace, but that the vastness becomes at last by its own
force impressive."
The following quotations illustrate special uses of the word in
composition.
Apple Gum--
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 283:
"On the small flats the apple-gum grew."
Ibid. c. viii. p. 264:
"Another Eucalyptus with a scaly butt . . . but with smooth
upper trunk and cordate ovate leaves, which was also new to me;
we called it the Apple-gum."
Blue Gum--
1802. D.Collins, `Account of New South Wales,' vol. ii. p. 235:
"The blue gum, she-oak, and cherry-tree of Port Jackson were
common here."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' p. 22:
"The Blue Gum is found in greater abundance; it is a
loose-grained heavy wood."
1851. James Mitchell, `Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' p. 125:
"The name blue gum appears to have been derived from the bluish
gray colour of the whole plant in the earliest stages of its
growth, which is occasioned by a covering of dust or bloom
similar to that upon the sloe or damson."
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 199:
"I love to see the blue gums stand Majestically tall;
The giants of our southern woods,
The loftiest of all."
Black-butted Gum--
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. II. c. viii. p. 236:
"One species . . . resembling strongly the black-butted gum."
Cable Gum--
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. II. c. iv.
p. 132:
"Cable-gum . . . like several stems twisted together, abundant
in interior."
Cider Gum (or Cider Tree)--
1830. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 119:
"That species of eucalyptus called the cider tree, from
its exuding a quantity of saccharine liquid resembling
molasses. Streaks of it were to be seen dripping down the bark
in various parts, which we tasted, and found very palatable.
The natives have a method at the proper season of grinding
holes in the tree, from which the sweet juice flows
plentifully, and is collected in a hole at the root. We saw
some of these covered up with a flat stone, doubtless to
prevent the wild animals from coming to drink it. When allowed
to remain some time, and to ferment, it settles into a coarse
sort of wine or cider, rather intoxicating."
Cinnamon Gum--
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 19, p. 7, col. 1:
"A forest only fit for urban gnomes these twisted trunks. Here
are no straight and lofty trees, but sprawling cinnamon gums,
their skin an unpleasing livid red, pock-marked; saplings in
white and chilly grey, bleeding gum in ruddy stains, and
fire-black boles and stumps to throw the greenery into bright
relief."
Drooping Gum--
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. II. c. xii.
p. 387:
"The trees, which grew only in the valleys, were small kinds
of banksia, wattles and drooping gums."
Flooded Gum--
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 7:
"Large flooded gum-trees (but no casuarinas) at the low banks
of the lagoons."
Lemon-scented Gum--
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 265:
"Among the Eucalypti or gum-trees growing in New South
Wales, a species named the lemon-scented gum-tree,
Eucalyptus citriodora, is peculiar to the Wide Bay
district, in the northern part of the colony."
Mountain Gum--
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. I. c. iii, p. 118:
"The cypresses became mixed with casuarina, box and
mountain-gum."
Red Gum [see also Red-gum]--
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,'
c. xi. p. 461:
"The red gum-tree. This is a very large and lofty tree,
much exceeding the English oak in size."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 33:
"Red gum, a wood which has of late years been exported to
England in great quantities; it has all the properties of
mahogany."
1868. W. Carleton, `Australian Nights,' p. 14:
"While she, the younger, went to fill
Her red-gum pitcher at the rill."
1870. J. O. Tucker, `The Mute,' etc., p. 85:
"Then the dark savage `neath the red gum's shade
Told o'er his deeds."
1890. `The Argus,' June 14, p. 4, col. I
"Those of the leaden hue are red gums."
Rough Gum--
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. I. c. iii. p. 118:
"The rough-gum abounded near the creek."
Rusty Gum--
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 48:
"The range was openly timbered with white gum, spotted gum,
Iron-bark, rusty gum and the cypress pine."
Salmon Gum--
1893. `The Australasian,' Aug. 3, p. 252, col. 4:
"The chief descriptions are salmon, morrel and white gums, and
gimlet-wood. The bark of the salmon gum approaches in colour
to a rich golden brown, but the satin-like sheen on it has the
effect of making it several shades lighter, and in the full
glare of the sun it is sufficiently near a rich salmon tint to
justify its name."
Silver Gum--
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 113:
"When so many of our Australian trees were named `gums,' a
distinguishing prefix for each variety was clearly necessary,
and so the words red, blue, yellow, white and scarlet, as
marking some particular trait in the tree, have come into
everyday use. Had the pioneer bush botanist seen at least one
of those trees at a certain stage in its growth, the term
`silver gum' would have found expression."
Spotted Gum--
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 11:
"Ironbark ridges here and there with spotted gum . . .
diversified the sameness."
Swamp Gum--
1853. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. ii, p. 132 [James Mitchell, On the
Strength of Timber, etc., read Nov.12, 1851]:
"The Swamp Gum grows to the largest size of any of this family
in Van Diemen's Land. Its growth is nearly twice as rapid as
that of the Blue Gum: the annular layers are sometimes very
large; but the bark, and the whole tree indeed, is so like the
Blue Gum, as not to be easily distinguished from it in outward
appearance. It grows best in moist places, which may probably
have given rise to its name. Some extraordinary dimensions
have been recorded of trees of this species. I lately measured
an apparently sound one, and found it 21 feet in circumference
at 8 feet from the ground and 87 feet to the first branches.
Another was 18 1/2 feet in circumference at 10 feet from the
ground, and 213 feet to the highest branch or extreme top.
A third reached the height of 251 feet to the highest branch:
but I am told that these are pigmies compared to the giants of
even the Blue Gum species found in the southern districts."
1880. Garnet Watch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 100:
"Groups of native trees, including the black wattle, silver
box, messmate, stringy bark, and the picturesque but less
useful swamp gum."
Water Gum--
1847. L. Leichhhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 387:
"Long hollows surrounded with drooping tea-trees and the white
watergums."
Weeping Gum--
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 169:
"A kind of Eucalyptus, with long drooping leaves, called
the `Weeping Gum,' is the most elegant of the family."
White Gum--
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p, 278:
"The natives tell me that it [the ground-parrot] chiefly
breeds in a stump of a small White Gum-tree."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 48:
"The range was openly timbered with white gum."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 471:
"E. leucoxylon, F. v. M. The `blue or white gum' of South
Australia and Victoria is a gum-tree with smooth bark and
light-coloured wood (hence the specific name). The flowers and
fruit of E. leucoxylon are very similar to those of
E. sideroxylon, and in this way two trees have been
placed under one name which are really quite distinct. Baron
Mueller points out that there are two well-marked varieties of
E. leucoxylon in Victoria. That known as `white-gum'
has the greater portion of the stem pale and smooth through the
outer layers of the bark falling off. The variety known
chiefly as the `Victorian Ironbark,' retains the whole bark on
the stem, thus becoming deeply fissured and furrowed, and very
hard and dark coloured."
Yellow Gum--
1848. T. L. Mitchell, `Tropical Australia,' p. 107:
"We this day passed a small group of trees of the yellow gum,
a species of eucalyptus growing only on the poor sandy soil
near Botany Bay, and other parts of the sea-coast near Sydney."
York Gum--
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. II. c. iv.
p. 132:
"York gum . . . abundant in York on good soil."
Gum- (In Composition). See Gum.
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 134:
"I said to myself in the gum-shadowed glen."
1868. W. L. Carleton, `Australian Nights,' p. 1:
"To see the gum-log flaming bright
Its welcome beacon through the night."
1890. `The Argus,' August 2, p. 4, col. 3:
"Make a bit of a shelter also. You can always do it with
easily-got gum-boughs."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvii. p. 201:
"The edge of the long, black, gum-shrouded lagoon."
Gummy, n. name given to a shark of Victorian
and Tasmanian waters, Mustelus antarcticus, Gunth., and
called Hound (q.v.) in New South Wales, Victoria, and
New Zealand. The word Gummy is said to come from the
small numerous teeth, arranged like a pavement, so different
from the sharp erect teeth of most other sharks. The word
Hound is the Old World name for all the species of the
genus Mustelus. This fish, says Hutton, is much eaten
by the Maoris.
Gum-sucker, n. slang for Victorian-born, not
now much used; but it is not always limited to Victorians.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. i. p. 201:
"The acacias are the common wattles of this country; from their
trunks and branches clear transparent beads of the purest
Arabian gum are seen suspended in the dry spring weather, which
our young currency bantlings eagerly search after and regale
themselves with."
[The practice of `gum-sucking' is here noticed, though the word does
not occur.]
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 24:
"If he had not been too 'cute to be bitten twice by the
over-'cute `gumsuckers,' as the native Victorians are called."
1890. `Quiz `(Adelaide), Dec. 26:
"Quiz will take good care that the innocent Australians are not
fooled without a warning. Really L. and his accomplices must
look upon gumsuckers as being pretty soft."
Gunyah, n. aboriginal name for a black-fellow's
hut, roughly constructed of boughs and bark; applied also to
other forms of shelter. The spelling varies greatly: in
Col. Mundy's book (1855) there are no fewer than four forms.
See Humpy and Gibber. What Leichhardt saw (see
quotation 1847) was very remarkable.
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' in an aboriginal vocabulary of Port Jackson, p. 610:
"Go-nie--a hut."
1830. R.Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 70:
"One of their gunyers (bark huts)."
Ibid. p. 171:
"A native encampment, consisting of eight or ten `gunyers.'
This is the native term for small huts, which are supported
by three forked sticks (about three feet long) brought together
at the top in a triangular form: the two sides towards the wind
are covered by long sheets of bark, the third is always left
open to the wind."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. I. c. ii. p. 78:
"We observed a fresh-made gunneah (or native hut)."
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the Interior
of Eastern Australia,' c. ii. p. 35:
"Three huts, or gunyahs, consisted of a few green boughs, which
had just been put up for shelter from the rain then falling."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 10:
"Their only habitation . . . is formed by two sheets of bark
stripped from the nearest tree, at the first appearance of a
storm, and joined together at an angle of 45 degrees. This,
which they call a gunnya, is cut up for firewood when the
storm has passed."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 238:
"Behind appears a large piece of wood hooded like a `gunnya'
or `umpee.'"
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 290:
"We saw a very interesting camping place of the natives,
containing several two-storied gunyas."
1852. `Settlers and Convicts; or, Recollections of Sixteen
Years' Labour in the Australian Backwoods,' p. 211:
"I coincided in his opinion that it would be best for us to
camp for the night in one of the ghibber-gunyahs. These are
the hollows under overhanging rocks."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' ed. 1855, p. 164:
"A sloping sheet of bark turned from the wind--in bush lingo,
a break-weather--or in guneeahs of boughs thatched with grass."
[p. 200]: "Guneah." [p. 558]: "Gunneah." [p. 606]: "Gunyah."
1860. G.Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 114
[Footnote]:
"The name given by the natives to the burrow or habitation of
any animals is `guniar,' and the same word is applied to our
houses."
1880. P. J. Holdsworth, `Station, Hunting':
"hunger clung
Beneath the bough-piled gunyah."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 19:
"The sleepy blacks came out of their gunyahs." [p. 52]:
"A gunya of branches."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. ii. p. 16:
"Where this beautiful building now stands, there were only the
gunyahs or homes of the poor savages."
1890. A. J. Vogan, `Black Police,' p. 98:
"One of the gunyahs on the hill. . . . The hut, which is
exactly like all the others in the group,--and for the matter of
that all within two or three hundred miles,--is built of sticks,
which have been stuck into the ground at the radius of a common
centre, and then bent over so as to form an egg-shaped cage,
which is substantially thatched on top and sides with herbage
and mud."
Gunyang, n. the aboriginal word for the
Kangaroo Apple (q.v.), though the name is more
strictly applied not to Solanum aviculare, but to
S. vescum.
1877. F. von Muller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 106:
"The similarity of both [S. vescum and S.
aviculare] to each other forbids to recommend
the fruit of the Gunyang as edible."
1878. W. R. Guilfoyle, `Australian Botany,' p. 73:
"Kangaroo Apple, Solanum aviculare. . . . The Gunyang
(Solanum vescum) is another variety found in Victoria."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 222:
"A couple of tiny streams trickle across the plains to the sea,
a dwarfed ti-tree, clinging low about the ground, like the
gunyang or kangaroo apple, borders the banks."
Gurnard, n. i.q. Gurnet (q.v.).
Gurnet, n. The species of Trigla found
in British waters, called Gurnards are of the family of
Cottidae. The word Gurnet is an obsolete or
provincial form of Gurnard, revived in Australia, and applied
to the fish Centropogon scorpoenoides, Guich., family
Scorpoenidae. The original word Gurnard is
retained in New Zealand, and applied to the new species
Trigla kumu (kumu being the Maori name), family
Cottidae. The Flying Gurnet is Trigla
polyommata, Richards., found on all the Australian coasts
from New South Wales to Western Australia, family
Cottidae. It is a distinct species, not included in the
British species. They have large pectoral fins, but are not
known to possess the power of supporting themselves in the air
like the "flying fish" which belong to other genera. Sir
Fredk. McCoy says that Sebastes Percoides, Richards., is
called Gurnet, or Garnet-perch, by the fishermen and dealers,
as well as the more common Neosebastes scorpoenoides,
Guich., and Scorpoena panda, Richards.
Gutter, n. in Australian goldmining, "the lower
and auriferous part of the channel of an old river of the
Tertiary period " (`Century'). "The lowest portion of a lead.
A gutter is filled with auriferous drift or washdirt,
which rests on the palaeozoic bed-rock." (Brough
Smyth, `Glossary of Mining Terms.')
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' p. 55:
"Duffers are so common And golden gutters rare."
1871. J. J. Simpson, `Recitations,' p. 23:
"Privations and hardships you all have to suffer
Ere you can expect to get on to the gutter."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. viii. p. 81:
"If we happened to drop right down on the `gutter' or main
course of the lead, we were all right."
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p.23:
"The Company . . . are putting in a drive to strike the old
Shakspeare gutter."
1891. `The Australasian,' Nov. 21, p. 1015:
"Evidently both claims had been driving for a `gutter.' One
of them had got to the end of its tether before reaching it."
Gutter-flags, n. Flags fixed on the surface to
denote where the course of a gutter or lead underground has
been discovered." (Brough Smyth, `Glossary of Mining Terms.')
Gweeon, n. a stone tomahawk of the aborigines.
Gweh-un, in Mukthang language, Gippsland. Apparently a
remnant of a term occurring along the east side of Australia;
Burgoin, New South Wales; bulgoon and
balgon, Burdekin River, Queensland; related to
balgoungo, to chop.
Gymnobelideus, n. the scientific name of the
genus confined to Australia of Squirrel Phalangers, or
Squirrel Opossums, as they have been called. See
Opossum. The name was given by Sir Frederick McCoy in
1867. Only two specimens have been found, and they are in the
Melbourne Museum of Natural History. There is only one
species, G. leadbeateri, M'Coy. In general form they
resemble the so-called Australian Flying Squirrel
(q.v.), save for the absence of the parachute. They have large
naked ears. (Grk. gymnos, naked, and Latin,
belideus, the Flying-Phalanger or Squirrel.)
Gymnorrhina, n. the scientific name of the
Australian genus of Piping Crow-Shrikes, called locally
by the vernacular name of Magpies (q.v.). They have the
nostrils and beak unfeathered. (Grk. gymnos, naked, and
rhis, nose.) For the species see under Magpie.
H
Haddock, n. The New Zealand Haddock is
Gadus australis, Hutton, Pseudophycis barbatus,
Gunth., and Merlucius gayi, Guich., or australis,
Hutton, all belonging to the family Gadidae or
Cod-fishes. The European species of Merlucius is known
as the "Hake."
Haeremai, interj. Maori term of welcome,
lit. come hither; haere is the verb. It has been
colloquially adopted.
1769. J. Hawkesworth, `Voyages,' vol. iii. p. 229 (ed. 1785):
"When they came near enough to be heard, they waved their
hands, and called out `Horomai.' These ceremonies we were
told were certain signs of their friendly disposition."
1832. `Henry Williams' Journal,' in H. Carleton's `Life of
Henry Williams,' p. 112:
"After breakfast we went to them all; they were very glad to
see us, and gave us the usual welcome, `Haeremai! Haeremai!'"
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' p. 249:
"As I ascended the steep hill with my train, scarcely any
greeting was addressed to me, no shouts of haeremai, so
universal a welcome to the stranger, were to be heard."
1863. F. E. Maning (The Pakeha-Maori ), `Old New
Zealand,' p. 14:
"The boat nears the shore, and now arises from a hundred voices
the call of welcome, `Haere mai! haere mai! hoe mai!' Mats,
hands, and certain ragged petticoats all waving in the air in
sign of welcome. Then a pause. Then, as the boat came nearer,
another burst of haere mai! But unaccustomed as I was then to
the Maori salute, I disliked the sound. There was a wailing,
melancholy cadence that did not strike me as being the
appropriate note of welcome."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' (English edition) p. 438:
"Rev. Mr. Chapman received me at his garden gate with a hearty
welcome, the natives shouted their friendly `haeremai,' and ere
long we were all in comfortable shelter beneath the missionary's
roof."
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 34:
"Haire mai ho! 'tis the welcome song
Rings far on the summer air."
Hair-trigger, n. a Tasmanian name for any plant
of genus Stylidium. Called also Trigger-plant,
and Jack in a Box (q.v.).
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 71:
"The Stylidium, or as we named it, the `Hair-trigger,'
is common all over the colony."
Haka, n. Maori word for a dance.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' p. 198:
"A haka was now performed by about one hundred and fifty men
and women. They seated themselves in ranks in one of the
courtyards of the pa, stripped to the waist. An old
chieftainess, who moved along the ranks with regular steps,
brandishing an ornamental spear in time to her movements, now
recited the first verse of a song in a monotonous, dirge-like
measure. This was joined in by the others, who also kept time
by quivering their hands and arms, nodding their heads and
bending their bodies in accordance with each emphasis and
pause."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' c. xvi. p. 409 (3rd ed.
1855):
"I witnessed a national spectacle which was new to me--a sort
of incantation performed by women alone--the haka, I think it
is called."
1872. A.Domett, `Ranolf,' XV. c. vi. p. 242:
"The haka-dances, where she shone supreme."
1873. `Appendix to Journal of House of Representatives,' G. I,
B., p. 8:
"Thursday was passed by them [the natives] in feasting and
hakas."
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 34:
"A rushing throng in the furious haka share."
1896. `Otago Witness,' Jan. 23, p. 50, col. 5:
"He also received a visit from three or four hostile natives,
who, with blood-curdling yells, duly performed the indispensable
haka."
Hakea, n. the scientific name given, in honour
of Baron Hake of Hanover, to "a large Australian genus of
plants belonging to the follicular section of the
Proteaceae, tribe Grevilleae, and distinguished
from Grevillea by its axillary inflorescence and samaroid
seeds. The species, nearly 100 in number [Maiden's index to
`Useful Native Plants' gives sixteen], are all evergreen
shrubs, or small trees, with alternate coriaceous, variously
lobed, often spiny leaves. They are ornamental in cultivation,
and several have acquired special names--H. ulicina,
Native Furze; H. laurina, Cushion-flower;
H. acicularis (Lissosperma), Native Pear;
H. flexilis, Twine-bush." (`Century.')
1877. F. v. Muller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 50:
"Proteaceae are more extensively still represented in
Victoria by the well known genera Grevillea and Hakea, the
former dedicated to the Right Hon. C. F. Greville, of
Paddington, the latter genus named in honour of Baron Hake, of
Hanover, both having been alike patrons of horticulture at the
end of the last century."
1897. `The Australasian,' Jan. 30, p. 226, col. 3:
"Recently, according to `Nature,' Mr. G. M. Thomson, an eminent
authority on New Zealand botany, has shown that one of the
genera, namely Hakea, though absent at present from the islands
[of New Zealand], formerly existed there. Plant remains were
found at St. Bathans, in a bed of clay, which have been
identified by him as Hakea. The question of the identification
of fossil plants is always a difficult one, but as Mr. Thomson
announces that he has obtained fruit capsules and leaves there
can be but little doubt as to the correctness of his
determinations. Hitherto the genus has been regarded as
Australian only, and about 100 species are known, of which no
less than 65 are West Australian. It would seem then that the
Hakeas had obtained a footing in Eastern Australia before the
connection with New Zealand had disappeared, and that probably
the genus is a far older one than had been anticipated. Why,
after finding its way to New Zealand, it should have died out
there is a question to which no answer can as yet be supplied."
Hand-fish, n. a Tasmanian fish,
Brachionichthys hirsutus, Lacep., family
Pediculati. The name is used in the northern hemisphere
for a different fish, which is also called there the
Frog-fish and Toad-fish. The name arises from a
fancied resemblance of the profile of the fish to a human hand.
It is also called Frog-fish and Tortoise-shell
fish. Mrs. Meredith calls it Tortoise-shell Fish
from its colour, when figuring it in `Tasmanian Friends and
Foes' under its former scientific name of Cheironectes
Politus. The surface of its skin is hirsute with minute
spines, and the lobe at the end of the detached filament of the
dorsal fin--called the fintacle--hangs loose. The scientific
names of the genus are derived from Grk. brachiown,
"the arm," and cheir, "the hand." The armlike
pectoral fins are used for holding on to stones or seaweed.
1850. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' Jan. 9, vol. i. p. 268:
"A little spotted fish belonging to the genus Chironectes
. . . Mr. Champ writes thus respecting the frog fish:--
`It was found in the sea at Port Arthur by a person
who was with me, and when caught had all the appearance of
having four legs, from the position and shape of the fins; the
two longest of which, from the sort of elbow in them, and the
division into (rays) what resemble fingers, seem to form a
connecting link between fins and legs or arms.'"
1880. Mrs.'Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 249:
"It has fins like feet; one small pair where pectoral fins
usually are, and a larger pair, with absolute elbows to them,
and apparently shoulder-blades too, only those do not belong to
the fore pair of feet! A very antipodean arrangement truly!
The markings on the body and on the delicate pellucid fins
are like tortoise-shell."
Hand, Old, n. one who has been a convict.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 141:
"The men who have been convicts are termed `old hands';
they are mostly rude, rough men, with no moral principle or
religious feeling, and who have little sympathy for humanity."
1865. J. O. Tucker, `Australian Story,' c. i. p. 85:
"Reformed convicts, or, in the language of their proverbial
cant, `old hands.'"
1865. F. H. Nixon, `Peter Perfume,' p. 102:
"`Boshman' in the old-hand vernacular signifies a fiddler."
["Bosh in gypsy means music and also violin." -Barrere and
Leland.]
1885. J. Rae, `Chirps by an Australian Sparrow,' p. 99:
"The old hands were quite tidy too
With hats of cabbage-tree."
Hang up, v. to tie up a horse.
1860. W. Kelly, `Life in Victoria,' p. 49 [Footnote]:
"In Melbourne there are posts sunk in the ground almost
opposite every door. . . . Fastening your horse to one
of these posts is called `hanging him up.'"
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 32:
"We got off, hung our horses up to a tree."
1890. E. W. Hornung, `Bride from the Bush,' p. 296:
"The mail-boy is waiting impatiently in the verandah,
with his horse `hung up' to one of the posts."
Hapalote, n. Anglicized form of Hapalotis
(Grk. hapalos, soft, and 'ous, 'owtis) ear),
a peculiar Australian genus of rodents of the mouse family.
They are called Jumping Mice, and have soft ears,
and enlarged hind limbs like the jerboa, but are not
marsupial like the kangaroo. There are many species.
Hapu, n. Maori word for sub-tribe; sometimes
even, family.
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand, the Britain of the South,'
vol. i. p. 162:
"The 70,000 semi-civilised natives now in New Zealand are
divided into some dozen chief tribes, and into numerous
sub-tribes and `harpu.'"
1873. `Appendix to Journals of House of Representatives,'
vol. iii. G. 7, p. 87:
"Were not all your hapu present when the money was paid? My
hapu, through whom the land Nvas claimed, were present: we
filled the room."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 171:
"An important structure that engaged the united labours of the
hapu."
1887. J. White, `Ancient History of the Maori,' vol. i. p. 290:
"Each of which is subdivided again into Hapu, or smaller
communities."
1891. Rev. J. Stacks, `Report of Australasian Association
for the Advancement of Science,' vol. iii. sect. G. p. 378:
"On arriving in New Zealand, or Ao-tea-roa, the crews of the
colonizing fleet dispersed themselves over the length and
breadth of these islands, and formed independent tribes or
nations, each of which was divided into hapus and the hapus
into families."
Hapuku, n. Maori name for a fish, Oligorus
gigas, Gunth., called later Polyprion prognathus
(see quotation, 1895), pronounced hapuka, frequently
corrupted into habuka, the Groper (q.v.). It is
variously called a Cod, a Perch and a
Sea-Perch. See quotations.
1845 (about). `New Plymouth's National Song,' Hursthouse's
`New Zealand,' p 217:
"Lowing herds on every side,
Hapuka in every tide."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui, p. 411:
"Hapuku, or whapuku, commonly called the cod, but a much richer
fish in flavour: externally it more resembles the salmon, and
is known in New Holland as the dew or Jew-fish. It attains
a large size and is considered the best fish of New Zealand."
1862. Anon., `From the Black Rocks on Friday,' `All the Year
Round,' May 17, 1862, No. 160:
"A kind of codfish called by the natives whapuku or hahpuka."
1878. P. Thomson, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. XI. art. lii. p. 383:
"The hapuka, or groper, was in pretty regular supply."
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 392:
"The second (Oligorus gigas) is found in the sea, on the coast
of New Zealand, and called by the Maoris and colonists `Hapuku'
. . . Dr. Hector, who has had opportunities of examining it in
a fresh state, has pointed out anatomical differences from the
Murray Cod."
1880. W. Colenso, `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,'
vol. XIII. art. ii. p. 46:
"A feast of good things prepared--eels, and hapuku (codfish),
and taro."
1884. W. D. Hay, in the `Field,' May 10, p. 637, col. 1:
"The pakirikiri(Percis colias) is the fish to which
settlers in the north of New Zealand generally give the name of
whapuka."
1895. `Oxford English Dictionary' (s.v.Cod):
"In New Zealand, a serranoid fish Polyprion prognathus,
called by the Maories hapuku."
Hardhead, n, the English sportsman's name for the
ruddy duck (Erismatura rubida). Applied by sportsmen in
Australia to the White-eyed Duck, Nyroca australis,
Gould. See Duck.
Hardwood, n. The name is applied to many
Australian timbers something like teak, but especially to
Backhousia bancroftii, F. v. M. and Bailey,
N.O. Myrtaceae. In Tasmania, it means any gum-timber
(Eucalyptus). It is in constant and universal use for
building and fencing in Australia.
1888. Candish, `Whispering Voices,' p. 108:
"Sitting on a block of hardwood . . . is the gray-haired
forest feller."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. iii. p. 24:
"It was a hammer-like piece of hardwood above a plate of tin."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 93:
"A hardwood slab-door weighs a goodish deal, as any one may
find out that has to hump it a hundred yards."
Hardyhead, n. name given in Sydney to the fish
Atherina pinguis, Lacep., family Atherinidae.
Hare-Kangaroo, n. a small Kangaroo, resembling
the British hare. Called also Hare-Wallaby. The
scientific name is Lagorchestes (q.v.).
1871. G. Krefft, `Mammals of Australia':
"The Hare-kangaroos, so called from their resemblance to that
well known rodent, are the fleetest of the whole tribe, and
though they do not exceed a common hare in bulk, they can make
clear jumps of eight and ten feet high."
Hare-Wallaby, n. See Hare-Kangaroo,
Wallaby, and Lagorchestes.
Harlequin-Pigeon, n. formerly referred to
the genus Peristera, but now to the genus Phaps.
It is commonly called in the interior the "flock" pigeon.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 296:
"Large flocks of Peristera histrionica (the harlequin-
pigeon) were lying on the patches of burnt grass on the plains."
Harmonic Thrush, n. See Port Jackson
Thrush.
Harpagornis, n. a scientific name for a partly
fossilised, huge raptorial bird of New Zealand. From Greek
HARPA? harpax robbing, and 'ornis, a bird.
1878. A. Newton, `Encyclopaedia Britannica,' vol. iii. p. 731:
"There is a harpagornis, a bird of prey of stature sufficient
to have made the largest dinornis its quarry."
Harrier, n. English bird-name (that which
harries), assigned in New Zealand to Circus gouldii,
Bonap. (also called Swamp-hawk), and in Australia to
C. assimilis, Jard. and Selb., or C. approximans,
Bonap., called Spotted Harrier.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 206:
"Circus Gouldi, Bonap., New Zealand harrier, or Gould's
harrier."
Hat, Black, n. slang for a new immigrant.
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. xxviii. p. 277:
"Lord! if I were Mr. Dyson Maddox, I'd never let it be said
that a black hat had cut me out sweetheartin'."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. iii. p. 21:
"A `black hat' in Australian parlance means a new arrival."
Hat, Old. See Old-hat.
Hatter. (1) A solitary miner--miner who works without
a mate partner: sc. one who has everything under his own hat.
1869. Brough Smyth, `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 613
(`Glossary of Mining Terms'):
"One who works alone. He differs from the fossicker who rifles
old workings, or spends his time in trying abandoned washdirt.
The hatter leads an independent life, and nearly always holds a
claim under the bye-laws."
1884. R. L. A.Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 267:
"Oh, a regular rum old stick; . . . he mostly works a `hatter.'
He has worked with mates at times, and leaves them when the
claim is done, and comes up a `hatter' again. He's a regular
old miser."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' p. 37:
"Instead of having to take to fossicking like so many `hatters'
--solitary miners."
(2) By extension to other professions.
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), Aug. 28, p. i. col. 7:
"He had been a burglar of the kind known among the criminal
classes as `a hatter.' That is to say, he burgled `on his own
hook,' never in a gang. He had never, he told me, burgled with
a companion."
Hatteria, n. scientific name for a genus of
reptiles containing a Lizard peculiar to New Zealand, the only
living representative of the order Rhynchocephalinae.
See Tuatara.
Hatting, quasi pres. partic., solitary mining.
See Hatter.
1891. `The Age,' Nov. 25, p. 6, col. 7:
"Two old miners have been hatting for gold amongst the old
alluvial gullies."
Hat-tree, n. name given to a species of
Sterculia, the Bottle-trees (q.v.).
Hau-hau, n. a Maori superstition. This
superstition arose in Taranaki in 1864, through the crazy
fancies of the chief Te Ua, who communed with angels and
interpreted the Bible. The meaning of the word is obscure, but
it probably referred to the wind which wafted the angels to the
worshippers whilst dancing round an erect pole. Pai Marire was
another name for the superstition, and signifies "good and
peaceful." (See Gudgeon's `War in New Zealand,' p. 23 sq.;
also Colenso's pamphlet on `Kereopa,' p. 4.)
Hawk, n. This common English bird-name is
applied in Australia to many species--
Brown-Hawk--
Hieracadiea orientalis, Sehl.
Crested-H.--
Baza subcristata, Gould.
Eagle-H.--
Another name for Wedge-tailed Eagle. (See Eagle
and Eagle-hawk.)
Fish-H.--
Another name for Osprey. (See Fish-hawk.)
Gos-H.--
Astur approximans, V. and H.
Grey Gos-H.--
A. cinereus, Vieill.
Lesser Gos-H.--
A. cruentus, Gould.
Lesser White Gos-H.--
A. leucosomus, Sharpe.
Red Gos-H.--
A. radiatus, Lath.
Sparrow-H.--
Accipiter cirrhocephalus, Vieill.
Striped Brown-H.--
Hieracidea berigora, V. and H. [See Berigora.]
Swamp-H. [See Harrier.]
White Gos-H.--
Astur novae-hollandiae, Gm.
See also Nankeen-Hawk, and Night-Hawk.
In New Zealand, the varieties appear in the quotation,
1889.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 206:
[A complete description.]
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 117:
"Of the three species recognized, two, the quail-hawk (Harpa
Novae Zealandiae) and the bush-hawk (H. ferox) [or
sparrow-hawk], belong to a genus peculiar to New Zealand."
[The third is the New Zealand harrier, Circus Gouldi,
also found in Australia.]
Hazel, n. name applied in Victoria to the tree
Pomaderris apetala, Labill., N.O. Rhamnaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden. `Useful Native Plants,' p. 590:
"Called `hazel' in `Victoria. A tall shrub, or small tree.
The wood is excellent, of a beautiful satiny texture, and
adapted for carvers' and turners' work. [Grows in] all the
colonies except Western Australia and Queensland."
Head, n. the rammer for crushing quartz in
gold-mining.
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p.7:
"Forty additional heads will be shortly added to the crushing
power, bringing the battery up to sixty heads."
Head-Station, n. the principal buildings,
including the owner's or manager's house, the hut, store, etc.,
of a sheep or cattle run.
1885. Mrs. Campbell Praed [Title]:
"The Head Station."
Heart-Pea, n. i.q. Balloon-Vine (q.v.).
Heartsease, n. i.q. Brooklime, (q.v.).
Heartseed, n. i.q. Balloon-Vine (q.v.)
Heartwood. n. See Ironwood.
Heath, n. In Tasmania, where the Epacris is of
very beautiful colour, this name is popularly used for
Epacris impressa, Labill., N.O. Epacrideae. See
Epacris.
Hedgehog-Fruit, n. Popular name applied to the
fruit of Echinocarpus australis, Benth.,
N.O. Tiliaceae. The tree is also called Maiden's
Blush (q.v.).
Hedge-Laurel, n. a name given to the tree
Mapau (q.v.), an evergreen shrub of New Zealand, of the
genus Pittosporum (q.v.). It has dark glossy foliage
and handsome flowers, and is planted and cultivated in the form
of tall garden hedges. See also Laurel.
Hei-tiki, n. Maori name for a neck ornament
made of greenstone (q.v.).
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 151:
"The latter idea [that they are representatives of gods] was
conceived from the hei-tiki being taken off the neck, laid down
. . . and then wept and sung over."
1889. Dr. Hocken, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 81:
"Hei means ornament for the neck. Tiki was the creator of man,
and these are the representations of him. By a sort of
license, they are occasionally taken to represent some renowned
ancestor of the possessor; but wooden Tikis, some of immense
size, usually represented the ancestors, and were supposed to
be visited by their spirits. These might be erected in various
parts of a pa, or to mark boundaries, etc. The Maories cling to
them as sacred heirlooms of past generations, and with some
superstitious reverence."
Helmet-Orchis, n. This English name is applied
in Australia to the orchid Pterostylis cucullata, R. Br.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 168:
"I also found three varieties of a singular green orchis,
of a helmet shape, growing singly, on rather tall slender
footstalks."
Hemp, Queensland, n. name given to the common
tropical weed Sida rhombifolia, Linn.,
N.O. Malvaceae. Called also Paddy Lucerne, and
in other colonies Native Lucerne, and Jelly Leaf.
It is not endemic in Australia.
Hemp-bush, n. the plant Plagianthus
pulchellus, A. Gray, N.O. Halvaceae, native of Australia
and New Zealand. Though not true hemp (cannabis), it
yields a fibre commercially resembling it.
He-Oak, n. See Oak and She-Oak.
Heron, n. common English bird-name. The species present
in Australia are--
Ashy Reef H.--
Demiegretta asha, Sykes.
Great-billed H.--
Ardea sumatrana, Rafll.
Grey H.--
A. cinerea, Linn.
Night H.--
Nycticorax caledonicus, Lath.
Reef H.--
Demiegretta sacra, Gmel.
White-fronted H.--
Ardea novae-hollandiae, Lath.
White-necked H.--
A. pacifica, Lath.
The Cranes and the Herons are often popularly confused.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' p. 11:
"There did I shoot . . . a blue crane--the Australian heron."
Herring, n. Various species of
Clupeidae, to which the European Herring belongs, are
known by this name in Australasia, and the word is also applied
to an entirely different fish, Prototroctes maraena,
Gunth., the Yarra Herring, Freshwater Herring,
Grayling (q.v.), or Cucumber-Mullet, found in the
rivers of Victoria or Tasmania. The Clupeidae are
Clupea sagax (called also Maray, q.v., and
Pilchard), C. sundaica, C. hypselosoma
Bleek., C. novae-hollandiae, Cuv, and Val.,
C. vittata, Castln, (called the Smelt, q.v.), and
others. In Western Australia Chatoessus erebi,
Richards., is called the Perth Herring. See also
Picton Herring, Aua, and Sardine.
Herring-cale, n. name given in New South Wales
to the fish Olistherops brunneus, Macl., family Labridae, or
Wrasses.
Hickory, n. The name Hickory is
originally American, and is derived from the North-American
Indian; its earliest form was Pohickery. The tree
belongs to the genus Carya. The wood is excellent for
gig-shafts, carriage-poles, fishing-rods, etc. The name is
applied in Australia to various trees whose wood is suitable
for similar purposes. In Tasmania, the name Hickory is
given to Eriostemon squameus, Labill.,
N.O. Rutacea. Native Hickory, or Hickory-Acacia,
is Acacia leprosa, Sieb., N.O. Leguminosae, and
in the southern part of New South Wales, Acacia
melanoxylon. (Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 358.)
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. v. p. 35:
"The beautiful umbrageous blackwood, or native hickory, one of
the handsomest trees in Australia."
Hickory-Eucalypt, n. one of the names for the
tree Eucalyptus punctata, DeC., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Called also Leather-jacket (q.v.).
Hickory-Wattle, n. a Queensland name for
Acacia aulacocarpa, Cunn., N.O. Leguminosae;
called Hickory about Brisbane.
Hielaman, n. a word of Sydney and
neighbourhood. The initial h, now frequently used by
the natives, is not found in the earliest forms. The
termination man is also English. Elimang (Hunter),
e-lee-mong (Collins), hilaman (Ridley). A narrow shield of an
aboriginal, made of bark or wood. Notice Mr. Grant's
remarkable plural (1881 quotation).
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' p. 612:
"E-lee-mong-shield made of bark."
1834. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar,' p. 5:
"As an initial, h occurs in only a few words,
such as hilaman, a `shield.'"
Ibid. p. 10:
"As a barbarism, `hillimung-a shield.'"
[A barbarism means with Mr. Threlkeld little more than "not
belonging to the Hunter district."]
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the Interior
of Eastern Australia,' vol. ii. p. 349:
"There is much originality in the shield or hieleman of these
people. It is merely a piece of wood, of little thickness, and
two feet, eight inches long, tapering to each end, cut to an
edge outwards, and having a handle or hole in the middle,
behind the thickest part."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1355), p. 102:
"The hieleman or shield is a piece of wood, about two and a
half feet long, tapering to the ends, with a bevelled face not
more than four inches wide at the broadest part, behind which
the left hand passing through a hole is perfectly guarded."
1865. S. Bennett, `Australian Discovery,' p. 251:
"Hieleman, a shield. Saxon, heilan; English, helm or helmet
(a little shield for the head)."
[This is a remarkable contribution to philological lore. In no
dictionary is the Saxon "heilan" to be found, and a misprint
may charitably be suspected. There is no doubt that the
h is an English Cockney addition to the aboriginal word.
It would need an ingenious fancy to connect "e-leemong" with
"helm."]
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin, etc.,' p. 26:
"No faint far hearing of the waddies banging
Of club and heelaman together clanging,
War shouts and universal boomeranging."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 66:
"Nullah-nullahs, paddy-melon sticks, boomerangs, tomahawks,
and heelimen or shields lay about in every direction."
Hielaman-tree, n. another name for the
Bats-wing Coral (q.v.), Erythrina vespertilio,
Benth., N.O. Leguminosae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 426:
"`Heilaman [sic] tree.' The wood is soft, and used by
the aborigines for making their `heilamans' or shields."
Hinau, n. Maori name for the New Zealand tree,
Elaeocarpus dentatus, Vahl., N.O. Tiliaceae.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,'
vol. ii. p. 317:
"Another export was much talked of. This was the bark of the
hinau, a large forest tree which abounds all over the country
near Cook's Strait. The natives extract from this bark the
black dye for their mats."
1873. `Catalogue of Vienna Exhibition':
"Hinau--a white wood used for turner's work."
Ibid.:
"The natives produce the black dye for their flax-work, for
which purpose the bark is first bruised and boiled for a short
time. When cold the flax is put into the mixture . . . it is
then steeped thoroughly for two days in red swamp mud, rich in
peroxide of iron."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 130:
"Hinau, a small tree about fifty feet high and eighteen inches
thick in stem, with brown bark which yields a permanent
blue-black dye, used for tanning . . . used by Maoris for
colouring mats and baskets. Wood a yellowish brown colour and
close-grained; very durable for fencing and piles."
Hoki, n. a New Zealand fish, Coryphaenoides
novae-zelandiae. Coryphaenoides belongs to the
family Macruridae, which are deep-sea Gadoids. See
Tasmanian Whip-tail.
Holly, Native, n. name given in Australia to
the tree Lomatia ilicifolia, R. Br., N.O. Proteaceae,
and in Tasmania to Coprosma hirtella, Labill., N.O.
Rubiaceae; called also Coffee Plant.
Holly, Smooth, n. name given to the tree
Hedycarya angustifolia, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Monimiaceae; called also Native Mulberry.
Hollyhock-tree, n. name given to Hibiscus
splendens, Fraser, N.O. Malvaceae.
Holy City, n. a nickname for Adelaide. See
Farinaceous City.
1875. R. and F. Hill, `What we Saw in Australia,' p. 264:
". . . including so many churches that we are at a loss to
understand why Adelaide should, in virtue of her supposed
superabundance, be nicknamed by her neighbours the Holy City."
Holy-cross Toad, n. See Catholic Frog.
Holy-Dollar, n. punning name for a dollar out
of which a Dump (q.v.) had been punched.
1822. `Hobart Town Gazette,' Aug. 10 [Proclamation by Sir
Thomas Brisbane, Governor-in-Chief of New South Wales
and its dependencies, then including Van Diemen's Land]
"Whereas in the Year of our Lord 1813, it was deemed expedient
to send a Quantity of Spanish Dollars to the Colony. . . . And
whereas His Excellency, the then Governor, thought proper to
direct, that every such Dollar, with a small circular Piece of
Silver, struck out of its Centre, should be current within this
Territory, and every part thereof, for the Sum of Five
Shillings."
[These were called holy (holey) dollars, or ring
dollars, though the name does not occur in the above
quotation.]
1857. D. Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 59:
"We were more particularly struck with the character and
various kinds of currency [in Tasmania in 1833]. Our first
change for a pound consisted of two dumps, two holy dollars,
one Spanish dollar, one French coin, one half-crown, one
shilling, and one sixpence."
Honey-Ant, n. name given to various species of Ants,
in which the body of certain individuals becomes enormously
distended by sweet food with which they are fed by the worker
ants, for whom this store of honey serves as a food supply.
When the side of the distended abdomen is tapped, the ant
passes the `honey' out of its mouth, and it is then eaten.
Three species are known in Australia, Camponotus
inflatus, Lubbock; C. cowlei, Froggatt; and C.
midas, Froggatt. The aboriginal name of the first is
`Yarumpa.'
1896. W. W. Froggatt, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,'
pt. ii. p. 386:
"Our Australian honey ants belong to the genus Camponotus,
members of which are found to all parts of the world, and are
known as `sugar-ants,' from their fondness for all kinds of
sweets."
Honey-bird, n. See next word.
Honey-eater, n. an Australian bird, with a
tongue specially adapted for being formed into a tube for the
absorption of honey from flowers. The name is applied to the
following species--
Banded Honey-eater--
Myzomela pectoralis, Gould.
Black H.--
M. nigra, Gould.
Black-chinned H.--
Melithreptus gularis, Gould.
Black-headed H.--
M. melanocephalus, Gould.
Blue-faced H.--
Entomyza cyanotis, Swain. [See Blue-eye.]
Bridled H.--
Ptilotis frenata, Ramsay.
Broadbent H.--
Stigmatops alboauricularis, Ramsay.
Brown H.--
S. ocularis, Gould.
Brown-backed H.--
Glyciphila modesta, Gray.
Brown-headed H.--
Melithreptus brevirostrus.
Cockerill H.-
Ptilotis cockerelli, Gould.
Crescent H.--
Meliornis australasiana, Shaw.
Dusky H.--
Myzomela obscura, Gould.
Fasciated H.--
Ptilotis fasciogularis, Gould.
Fuscous H.--
P. fusca, Gould.
Gay H.--
Melithreptus vinitinatus, Gould.
Golden-backed H.--
M. latior, Gould.
Helmeted H.--
Ptilotis cassidix, Jard.
Least H.--
Stigmatops subocularis,
Long-billed H.--
Meliornis longirostris, Gould.
Moustached H.--
M. mystacalis, Gould.
New Holland H.--
M. novae-hollandiae, Lath.
Painted H.--
Entomophila picta, Gould.
Pied H.--
Certhionyx leucomelas, Cuv.
Red-headed Honey-eater--
Myzomela erythrocephala, Gould.
Red-throated H.--
Entomophila rufigularis,
Rufous-breasted H.--
E. albigularis, Gould.
Sanguineous H.--
Myzomela sanguineolenta, Lath. [See Blood-bird.]
Singing H.--
Ptilotis vittata, Cuv.
Spiny-cheeked H.--
Acanthochaea rufigularis, Gould.
Streak-naped H.--
Ptilotis filigera, Gould.
Striped H.--
Plectorhyncha lanceolata, Gould.
Strong-billed H.--
Melithreptus validirostris, Gould. [See also Cherry
picker.]
Tawny-crowned H.--
Glyciphila fulvifrons, Lewin.
Varied H.--
Ptilotis versicolor, Gould.
Warty-faced H.--
Meliphaga phrygia, Lath. (Called also the Mock
Regent-bird, q.v.)
Wattle-cheeked H.--
Ptilotis cratitia, Gould.
White-breasted H.--
Glyciphila fasciata, Gould.
White-cheeked H.--
Meliornis sericea, Gould.
White-eared H.--
Ptilotis leucotis, Lath.
White-fronted H.--
Glyciphila albifrons, Gould.
White-gaped H.--
Stomiopora unicolor, Gould.
White-naped H.--
Melithreptus lunulatus, Shaw. [See also Golden-Eye.]
White-plumed H.--
Ptilotis penicillata, Gould.
White-quilled H.--
Entomyza albipennis, Gould.
White-throated H.--
Melithreptus albogularis, Gould.
Yellow H.--
Ptilotis flavescens, Gould.
Yellow-eared H.--
P. lewini, Swains.
Yellow-faced H.--
P. chrysops, Lath.
Yellow-fronted H.--
P. plumula, Gould.
Yellow-plumed H.--
P. ornata, Gould.
Yellow-spotted H.--
P. gracilis, Gould.
Yellow-streaked H.--
P. macleayana, Ramsay.
Yellow-throated H.--
P. flavicollis, Vieill.
Yellow-tinted H.--
P. flava, Gould.
Yellow-tufted H.--
P. auricomis, Lath.
Gould enumerated the species, nearly fifty years ago, in his
`Birds of Australia' (vol. iv.) as follows:--
Plate
Meliphaga Novae-Hollandiae, Vig. and Horsf,
New Holland Honey-eater ... ... ... ... 23
M. longirostris, Gould, Long-billed H. ... 24
M. sericea, Gould, White-cheeked H. ... ... 25
M. mystacalis, Gould, Moustached H. ... ... 26
M. Australasiana, Vig. and Horsf, Tasmanian H. 27
Glyciphila fulvifrons, Swains., Fulvous-fronted H.
... ... 28
G. albifrons, Gould, White-fronted H. ... 29
G. fasciata, Gould, Fasciated H. ... ... 30
G. ocularis, Gould, Brown H. ... ... 31
Ptilotis chrysotis, Yellow-eared H.... ... 32
P. sonorus, Gould, Singing H. ... ... 33
P. versicolor, Gould, Varied H. ... ... 34
P. flavigula, Gould, Yellow-throated H. ... 35
P. leucotis, White-eared H. ... ... 36
P. auricomis, Yellow-tufted H. ... ... 37
P. cratilius, Gould, Wattle-cheeked H. ... 38
P. ornatus, Gould, Graceful Ptilotis ... 39
P. plumulus, Gould, Plumed P. ... ... 40
P. flavescens, Gould, Yellow-tinted H. ... 41
P. flava, Gould, Yellow H. ... ... 42
P. penicillatus, Gould, White-plumed H. ... 43
P. fuscus, Gould, Fuscous H. ... ... 44
P. chrysops, Yellow-faced H. ... ... 45
P. unicolor, Gould, Uniform H. ... ... 46
Plectorhyncha lanceolata, Gould, Lanceolate H. 47
Zanthomyza Phrygia, Swains., Warty-faced H. .. 48
Melicophila picata, Gould, Pied H. ... ... 49
Entomophila pitta, Gould, Painted H. ... 50
E. albogularis, Gould, White-throated H. ... 51
E. rufogularis, Gould, Red-throated H. ... 52
Acanthogenys rufogularis, Gould, Spiny-cheeked H.
... 53
Anthochaera inauris, Wattled H. ... ... 54
A. Carunculata, Wattled H. ... ... 55
[Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 106.]
Myzomela sanguinolenta, Sanguineous H. ... 63
M. erythrocephala, Gould, Red-headed H. ... 64
M. pectoralis, Gould, Banded H. ... ... 65
M. nigra, Gould, Black H. ... ... 66
M. obscura, Gould, Obscure H. ... ... 67
Entomyza cyanotis, Swains., Blue-faced Entomyza 68
E. albipennis, Gould, White-pinioned H. ... 69
Melithreptus validirostris, Gould, Strong-billed H.
... ... 70
M. gularis, Gould, Black-throated H. ... 71
M. lunulatus, Lunulated H. ... ... 72
M. brevirostris, Gould,
M. chloropsis, Gould, Swan River H. ... 73
M. albogularis, Gould, White-throated H.
(as well as pl. 51) ... ... 74
M. melanocephalus, Gould, Black-headed H. ... 75
Myzantha garrula, Vig. and Horsf, Garrulous H. 76
M. obscura, Gould, Sombre H. ... ... 77
M. lutea, Gould, Luteous H. ... ... 78
In the Supplement of 1869 Gould adds--
Plate
Ptilotis cassidix, Jard., Helmeted H. ... 39
P. fasciogularis, Gould, Fasciated H. ... 40
P. notata, Gould, Yellow-spotted H. ... 41
P. filigera, Gould, Streaked H. ... 42
P. Cockerelli, Gould, Cockerell's H. ... 43
Tropidorhynchus buceroides, Helmeted H. ... 44
[Note.--The Brush Wattle-birds, Friar-birds, Spine-bills,
and the Yellow-throated Minah, are known as Honey-eaters,
and the whole series are sometimes called Honey-birds.]
1897. A. J. Campbell (in `The Australasian,' Jan. 23),
p. 180, col. i:
"The honey-eaters or meliphagous birds are a peculiar and
striking feature in Australian ornithology. As Gould points
out, they are to the fauna what the eucalypts, banksias, and
melaleucas are to the flora of Australia. They are closely
adapted to feeding on these trees. That great author asks:--
`What can be more plain than that the brushlike tongue is
especially formed for gathering the honey from the flower-cups
of the eucalypti, or that their diminutive stomachs are
especially formed for this kind of food, and the peculiar
insects which constitute a portion of it?'"
Honey-Eucalypt, n. See Box-tree, Yellow.
Honey-flower, n. Lambertia formosa, Smith,
N.O. Proteaceae.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. iv.
p. 101:
"They . . . returned . . . dreadfully exhausted, having
existed chiefly by sucking the wild honey-flower and shrubs."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 37:
"`Honey-flower' or `honeysuckle,' a plant as well known to
small boys about Sydney as to birds and insects. It obtains
its vernacular name on account of the large quantity of a clear
honey-like liquid the flowers contain. After sucking some
quantity the liquid generally produces nausea and headache."
Honey-plant, n. name given in Tasmania to
Richea scoparia Hook., N.O. Epacris.
Honeysuckle, n. name given to the Banksias
(q.v.); also called Bottle-brush (q.v.).
The species are--
Coast Honeysuckle--
Banksia integrifolia, Linn.
Common H.--
B. marginata, Cav.
Heath H.--
B. serrata, Linn.
New Zealand H.--
Knightia excelsa, R.Br.
Silvery H.--
Grevillea striata, R.Br.
Tasmanian H.--
Banksia margirata, Cav. /sic. Probably marginata/
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 125:
"Some scattered honeysuckles, as they, are called, but which,
being specimens of a ligneous evergreen shrub (Banksia
Australis), my English reader will please not to assimilate
in his mind's eye in any respect with the woodbine."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 84:
"The honeysuckle (Banksia integrifolia) will greatly
disappoint those who, from its name, expect to see anything
similar to the sweet-scented climbers of English hedges and
gardens--this being a tree attaining to thirty or forty feet in
height, with spiral yellow flowers. The blossoms at the proper
seasons yield a great quantity of honey, which on a dewy
morning may be observed dropping from the flowers."
1848. Letter by Mrs. Perry, given in Goodman's `Church
in Victoria during Episcopate of Bishop Perry,' p. 83:
"In the course of our journey today we passed through a thin
wood of honeysuckle trees, for, I should think, about three
miles. They take their name from the quantity of honey
contained in the yellow cone-shaped flower, which is much
prized and sucked by the natives--the aborigines, I mean."
1852. Mrs. Meredith, 'My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 164:
"The honeysuckle-tree (Banksia latifolia) is so
unreasonably named . . . so very unlike any sort or species of
the sweet old flower whose name it so unfittingly bears. . . .
The blossoms form cones, which when in full bloom, are much the
size and shape of a large English teazel, and are of a greenish
yellow. . . . The honeysuckle trees grow to about thirty feet
in height."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 10:
"Banksia, spp., N.O. Proteaceae. The name
`honeysuckle' was applied to this genus by the early settlers,
from the fact that the flowers, when in full bloom, contain, in
a greater or lesser quantity, a sweet, honey-like liquid, which
is secreted in considerable quantities, especially after a dewy
night, and is eagerly sucked out by the aborigines."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 271:
"It [banksia] is called the `honeysuckle' by the people of
Australia, though it has no resemblance to an English
honeysuckle. Many of the banksias grow into stately trees."
Honeywood, n. name given in Tasmania to the tree
Bedfordia salicina, DeC., N.O. Compositae; also
there called Dogwood (q.v.).
Hoop-Pine, n. another name for the tree
Araucaria cunninghami or Moreton-Bay Pine.
See Pine.
Hoot, n. slang term for compensation, payment,
money; characteristic corruption of Maori Utu (q.v.)
1896. `Truth' (Sydney), Jan. 12:
"There are several specimens of bush slang transplanted from
the Maori language. `Hoot' is a very frequent synonym for
money or wage. I have heard a shearer at the Pastoralist Union
office in Sydney when he sought to ascertain the scale of
remuneration, enquire of the gilt-edged clerk behind the
barrier, `What's the hoot, mate?' The Maori equivalent for
money is utu, pronounced by the Ngapuhi and other
northern tribes with the last syllable clipped, and the word is
very largely used by the kauri-gum diggers and station hands in
the North Island. The original meaning of utu in Maori
is `revenge.' When the missionaries first settled in New
Zealand, they found that the savage inhabitants had no
conception of any recompense except the grim recompense of
blood. Under Christianizing influences the natives were
induced to forego the blood-revenge for injuries, on receiving
a solatium in goods or land, and so utu came to have the
double meaning of revenge and recompense, and eventually became
recognized as the Maori word for money."
Hop-bush, n. "the name for all species of
Dodonaea" (Maiden, p. 417), N.O. Sapindaceae.
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Queensland Flora,' Synopsis, p. 82:
"The capsules of many Dodonaeas are used for hops,
and thus the shrubs are known as hop-bushes in Queensland."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 621:
"`Hop-bush,' called `switch-sorrel' in Jamaica, and according
to Dr. Bennett, `apiri' in Tahiti. Found in all the colonies."
Hopping-fish, or Climbing-fish, n.
a fish of the north of New South Wales and of Queensland,
Periophthalmus australis, Castln., family
Gobiidae. Called also Skipper.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 27:
"On the confines of the northern boundaries of New South Wales
may be seen a very remarkable Goby called the `Hopping-fish.'
The pectoral fins are developed into regular legs, with which
the fish hops or leaps along the mud flats . . . The eyes are
on the top of the head, and very prominent, and moreover they
can be thrust very far out of their sockets, and moved
independently of one another, thus the fish can see long
distances around, and overtake the small crabs in spite of the
long stalks to their optics. It is a tropical form, yet it is
said to be found on the mud-flats of the Richmond River."
Hops, Native, or Wild, n. In
Australia, the fruit of the Hop-bush (see above),
Dodonaea spp. In Tasmania, Daviesia latifolia,
R.Br., N.O. Leguminosae, and called also there
Bitter-Leaf.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 23:
"`Native hops,' on account of the capsules bearing some
resemblance to hops, both in appearance and taste. In the
early days of settlement the fruits of these trees were
extensively used, yeast and beer of excellent quality being
prepared from them. They are still so used to a small extent.
D. attenuata, A. Cunn., for instance, was largely used
in the Western District. In times of drought cattle and sheep
eat them."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 7:
"The wild-hop scrub grew thickly, and the hidden ground was full
Of wombat-holes, and any slip was death."
Horizontal, n. a Tasmanian shrub, Anodopetalum
biglandulosum, Cunn., N.O. Saxifrageae. Horizontal
Scrub, peculiar to the island, occurs in the western forests;
it derives its name from the direction of the growth of its
lower stems, and constitutes a tedious obstacle to the progress
of the traveller.
1888. R. M. Johnston, `Geology of Tasmania' [Introd. p. vii:
"The Horizontal is a tall shrub or tree. . . . Its peculiar
habit--to which it owes its name and fame--is for the main stem
to assume a horizontal and drooping position after attaining a
considerable height, from which ascend secondary branches which
in turn assume the same horizontal habit. From these spring
tertiary branchlets, all of which interlock, and form . . .
an almost impenetrable mass of vegetation."
1891. `The Australasian,' April 4: "That stuff as they calls
horizontal, a mess of branches and root."
Hornerah, n. aboriginal name for a throwing-stick;
a dialectic variation of Woomera (q.v.). a nonce-use.
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 20:
"I observed, too, that they used a stick, shaped thus __,
\
called the hornerah (which assists them in throwing the
spear)."
Horn-Ray, n. a New Zealand and Australian
Ray, the fish Rhinobatus banksii, Mull and Heule.
In this genus of Rays the cranial cartilage is produced into a
long rostral process (Guenther): hence the name.
Horopito, n. Maori name for the New Zealand
shrub, Drimys axillaris, Forst., N.O. Magnoliaceae;
called also Pepper-tree (q.v.).
1847. G. F. Angas, `Savage Life and Scenes in Australia and
New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 17:
A delicious fragrance, like that of hyacinth and jessamine
mingled, filled the warm still air with its perfume. It arose
from the petals of a straggling shrub, with bright green
shining leaves resembling those of the nutmeg-tree; and a
profusion of rich and delicate blossoms, looking like waxwork,
and hanging in clusters of trumpet-shaped bells: I observed
every shade of colour amongst them, from pinkish white to the
deepest crimson, and the edges of the petals were irregularly
jagged all round. The natives call this plant horopito."
Ibid. p. 75:
"The fuchsia and the horopito were also abundant."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 129:
"Horopito, pepper-tree, winter's bark. A small slender evergreen
tree, very handsome. Whole plant aromatic and stimulant; used
by the Maoris for various diseases. Wood very ornamental in
cabinet-work."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 1:
"The Horopito, or pepper-tree of the settlers, is an
ornamental shrub or small tree occurring in woods, on the
margin of which it is sometimes found in great abundance."
Horse-Mackerel, n. The name is applied in
Sydney to the fish Auxis ramsayi, Castln., family
Scombridae. In New Zealand it is Caranx (or
Trachurus) trachurus, Cuv. and Val., which is the same
fish as the Horse-Mackerel of England. This is called
Yellow-tail on the Australian coasts. See Trevally.
Horseradish-tree, n. name given to Codonocarpus
cotinifolius, F. v. M., N.O. Phytolaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 164:
"`Quinine-tree,' `medicine-tree' of the interior. Called also
`horse-radish tree' owing to the taste of the leaves. The bark
contains a peculiar bitter, and no doubt possesses medicinal
properties. The taste is, however, quite distinct from
quinine."
Horseshoe-Fern, n. name given in New Zealand to
the fern Marattia fraxinia, Sm., called in Australia the
Potato-Fern. See under Fern.
Hot Wind, n. an Australian meteorological
phenomenon. See quotations, especially 1879, A. R. Wallace.
The phrase is of course used elsewhere, but its Australian use
is peculiar. The hot wind blows from the North.
Mr. H. C. Russell, the Government Astronomer of New South
Wales, writes--"The hot wind of Australia is a circulation of
wind about the anticyclone in the rear of which, as it moves to
the east, there is a strong force of wind from north to north-
west, which blowing over the heated plains of the interior
gathers up its excessive temperature and carries it to the
southern colonies. They seldom last more than two or three
days in Sydney, and the great heat by which they are remembered
never lasts more than a few hours of one day, and is always a
sign of the end, which is an inrush of southerly wind, the
circulation forming the front of the new incoming anticyclone."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' Vol. II. c. iii.
p. 66:
"This was the only occasion upon which we felt the hot winds
in the interior."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' Vol. II.
c. vi. p. 243:
"These squalls generally succeed the hot winds that prevail
at this season in South Australia, coming from the interior."
Footnote--"During the hot winds we observed the thermometer,
in the direct rays of the sun, to be 135 degrees."
1846. Ibid. c. xii. p. 403:
"A hot wind set in; . . . at one time the thermometer at the
public offices [Adelaide] was 158 degrees."
1849. C. Sturt, `Expedition into Central Australia,' vol.
ii. p. 90:
"I sought shelter behind a large gum tree, but the blasts of
heat were so terrific that I wondered the very grass did not
take fire. . . . Everything, both animate and inanimate, gave
way before it: the horses stood with their backs to the wind,
and their noses to the ground, without the muscular strength to
raise their heads; the birds were mute, and the leaves of the
trees, under which we were sitting, fell like a snow shower
around us. At noon I took a thermometer, graduated to 127
degrees, out of my box, and observed that the mercury was up to
125 degrees. Thinking that it had been unduly influenced, I
put it in the fork of a tree close to me, sheltered alike from
the wind and the sun. In this position I went to examine it
about an hour afterwards, when I found that the mercury had
risen to the top of the instrument, and that its further
expansion had burst the bulb. . . . We had reached our
destination, however, before the worst of the hot wind set in."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 25:
"The immediate cause of the hot winds has given rise to much
speculation. . . . The favourite theory is that they are
generated in the sandy plains of the interior, which becoming
powerfully heated, pour their glowing breath upon the fertile
regions of the south."
1871. Dingo, `Australian Rhymes,' p. 7:
"A hot wind swift envelopes me
In dust from foot to head."
1879. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' (1893) vol. i. p. 39:
"They are evidently produced by the sinking down to the surface
of that north-westerly current of heated air which . . . is
always passing overhead. The exact causes which bring it down
cannot be determined, though it evidently depends on the
comparative pressure of the atmosphere on the coast and in the
interior. Where from any causes the north-west wind becomes
more extensive and more powerful, or the sea breezes diminish,
the former will displace the latter and produce a hot wind till
an equilibrium is restored. It is the same wind passing
constantly overhead which prevents the condensation of vapour,
and is the cause of the almost uninterrupted sunny skies of the
Australian summer."
1879. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' p. 40:
"Scientific men, however, tell us that those hot winds are just
what make Australia so healthy a climate--that they act as
scavengers, and without them the death-rate of the colonies
would be alarmingly great."
Hot-windy, adj. See above.
1871. Dingo, `Australian Rhymes,' p. 18:
"A spell that still makes me forget
The dust and the hot-windy weather."
Houhere, or Hohere, n. Maori name for
a New Zealand tree, Hoheria populnea, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Malvaceae; called also Lacebark (q.v.) and
xeRibbonwood (q.v.).
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 130:
"Houhere, ribbonwood of Dunedin. [The name is now more
general.] An ornamental shrub-tree ten to thirty feet high.
Bark fibrous and used for cordage, and affords a demulcent
drink. Wood splits freely for shingles, but is not durable.
. . . Bark used for making a tapa cloth by the Maoris in olden
times."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 87:
"In one or other of its varied forms the `houhere' is found in
nearly every district in N.Z. It is everywhere admired for its
handsome foliage, and the beauty of its pure white flowers,
which are produced in vast profusion during the early winter
months. . . . The bark is capable of division into a number of
layers. . . . By settlers all forms are termed `ribbonwood,'
or less frequently `lace-bark'--names which are applied to
other plants; they are also termed `thousand-jacket.'"
1895. `Longman's Geography Reader for New Zealand,' p. 231:
"The houhere is a small tree with beautiful white flowers,
and the bark splits up into thin layers which look like delicate
lace; hence the plant is called lace-bark or ribbon-wood by
the colonists."
Houi, n. Maori name for New Zealand tree,
Ribbonwood (q.v.), N.O. Malvaceae, kindred to
Hoheria, Plagianthus Betulinus, sometimes called
Howi. In Maori, the verb houwere means to tie,
to bind: the outer bark was used for tying.
Hound, n. (sometimes Smooth Hound),
the Old World name for all the sharks of the genus
Mustelus ("the Hell-hound of the Deep"); applied
specially in New South Wales and New Zealand to the species
Mustelus antarcticus, Guenth., also called Gummy
(q.v.).
Hovea, n. scientific name for a genus of
shrubs. "After Anthony Pantaleon Hove, a Polish botanist.
A small genus of highly ornamental leguminous shrubs, from
Australia, having blue or purple flowers in axillary clusters,
or very short racemes, alternate simple leaves, and short
turgid pods." (`Century.')
Huia, n. Maori name for a New Zealand bird,
like a starling, Heteralocha acutirostris, Gould, of
limited occurrence, chiefly found in North Island; having beak
straight and short in the male, long and curved in female. The
tail feathers are highly prized for ornament by the Maoris.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 91:
"The huia is a black bird about as large as a thrush, with long
thin legs and a slender semi-circular beak, which he uses in
seeking in holes of trees for the insects on which he feeds.
In the tail are four long black feathers tipt with white.
These feathers are much valued by the natives as ornaments for
the hair on great occasions. . . . The natives attracted the
birds by imitating the peculiar whistle, from which it takes
the name of huia."
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 36:
"One snow-tipped hui feather graced his hair."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 7:
[A full description.]
Hump, to, v. to shoulder, carry on the back;
especially, to hump the swag, or bluey, or
drum. See Swag, Bluey, Drum.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 226:
"He `humped his swag,' in digger's phrase, that is, shouldered
his pack and disappeared in the woods."
1857. `Geelong Advertiser,' quoted in `Argus,' Oct. 23,
p. 5, col. 3:
"The despised old chum bought his swag, `humped it,' grumbled
of course."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 93:
"A hardwood slab-door weighs a goodish deal, as any one may
find out that has to hump it a hundred yards."
1893. Haddon Chambers, `Thumbnail Sketches of Australian
Life,' p. 224:
"I `humped my swag'--i.e. tied my worldly possessions,
consisting of a blanket, a pannikin, and an odd pair of boots,
upon my back-and `footed it' for the capital."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 134:
"But Bill preferred to hump his drum
A-paddin' of the hoof."
Hump, n. a long walk with a swag on one's back.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. 3, p. 46:
"We get a fair share of exercise without a twenty-mile hump on
Sundays."
Humpy, n. (1) a native hut. The aboriginal
word is Oompi; the initial h is a Cockney addition, and the
word has been given an English look, the appearance of the huts
suggesting the English word hump. [The forms
himbing and yamba occur along the East coast of
Australia. Probably it is kindred with koombar, bark,
in Kabi dialect, Mary River, Queensland.] The old convict
settlement in Moreton Bay, now broken up, was called Humpy Bong
(see Bung), sc. Oompi Bong, a dead or deserted
settlement. The aboriginal names for hut may be thus tabulated
Gunyah )
. . . New South Wales.
Goondie )
Humpy (Oompi) . . . Queensland.
Mia-mia . . . Victoria and Western Australia.
Wurley (Oorla) . . . South Australia.
Whare . . . New Zealand.
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 228:
"A `gunyia' or `umpee.'"
1873. J. Brunton Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 16:
"Lo, by the `humpy' door, a smockless Venus."
(2) Applied to a settler's house, very small and primitive.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 133:
"To dwell in the familiar old bark `humpy,' so full of happy
memories. The roof was covered with sheets of bark held down
by large wooden riders pegged in the form of a square to one
another."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 57:
"A lonely hut . . . and a kitchen--a smaller humpey--at the
back."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' p. 247:
"He's to bed in the humpy."
1893. Gilbert Parker, `Pierre and his People,' p. 135:
"Shon McGann was lying on a pile of buffalo robes in a mountain
hut,--an Australian would call it a humpey."
Hungry Quartz, n. a miner's term for
unpromising Quartz (q.v.)
Huon-Pine, n. a large Tasmanian evergreen tree,
Dacrydium franklinii, Hook, N.O. Coniferae. The
timber is prized in cabinet-work, being repellent to insects,
durable, and fairly easy to work; certain pieces are
beautifully marked, and resemble bird's-eye maple. The Huon is
a river in the south of Tasmania, called after a French
officer. See Pine.
1800. J. J. Labillardiere, `Voyage a la Recherche de la
Perouse,' tom. i., Introd. p. xi:
"Ces deux flutes recurent des noms analogues au but de
l'entreprise. Celle que montoit le general, Dentrecasteaux,
fut nommee la Recherche, et l'autre, commandee par le major de
vaisseau, Huon Kermadec, recut le nom de l'Esperance. . . .
Bruny Dentrecasteaux [fut le] commandant de l'expedition, [et]
Labillardiere [fut le] naturaliste."
[Of these gentlemen of France and their voyage the names Bruni
Island, D'Entrecasteaux Channel, Recherche Bay, Port Esperance,
Kermandie [sic] River, Huon Island, Huon River, perpetuate the
memory in Southern Tasmania, and the Kermadec Islands in the
Southern Ocean.]
1820. C. Jeffreys, R.N., `Geographical and Descriptive
Delineations of the Island of Van Diemen's Land,' p. 28:
"On the banks of these newly discovered rivers, and the
harbour, grows the Huon Pine (so called from the river
of that name, where it was first found)."
1829. `The Tasmanian Almanack,' p. 87:
"1816. Huon pine and coal discovered at Port Davey and
Macquarie Harbour."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' Vol. ii. p. 23:
"Huon-pine is by far the most beautiful wood found in the
island."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' (edition 1855) p. 515:
"Knots of the beautiful Huon pine, finer than bird's-eye maple
for ornamental furniture."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 71:
"The river was named the Huon, and has since become celebrated
for the production which yields the pretty cabinet-wood known
as Huon pine."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. xii. p. 102:
"The huon-pine is of immense height and girth."
Hut, n. the cottage of a shepherd or a miner.
The word is English but is especially common in Australia, and
does not there connote squalor or meanness. The "Men's Hut" on
a station is the building occupied by the male employees.
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 11, pt. 1, c. 3:
"At the head station are a three-roomed hut, large kitchen,
wool-shed, etc."
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania,' p. 21:
"If a slab or log hut was required to be erected . . . a
cart-load of wool was pitchforked from the wasting heap,
wherewith to caulk the crevices of the rough-hewn timber
walls."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. vi. p. 42:
"`The hut,' a substantial and commodious structure, arose in
all its grandeur."
1890. Id. `Miner's Right,' c. vi. p. 62:
"Entering such a hut, as it is uniformly, but in no sense of
contempt, termed--a hut being simply lower in the scale than
a cottage--you will find there nothing to shock the eye or
displease the taste."
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 29:
"Bark and weatherboard huts alternating with imposing hotels
and stores."
Hut-keep, v. to act as hut-keeper.
1865. S. Sidney, `Three Colonies of Australia,' p. 380
"At this, as well as at every other station I have called at,
a woman `hutkeeps,' while the husband is minding the sheep."
1890. `Melbourne Argus,' June 14th, p. 4, col. 2:
"`Did you go hut-keeping then?' `Wrong again. Did I go
hut-keeping? Did you ever know a hut-keeper cook for sixty
shearers?'"
Hut-keeper, n. Explained in quotations.
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,' vol. ii. p. 285:
"Old men, unfit for anything but to be hut-keepers who were to
remain at home to prevent robbery, while the other inhabitants
of the hut were at labour."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. II. c.
iii. p. 458
"My object was to obtain these heads, which the
. . . hut-keeper instantly gave."
1853. G. Butler Earp, `What we Did in Australia,' p. 17:
"The lowest industrial occupation in Australia, viz. a
hut-keeper in the bush . . . a station from which many of
the wealthiest flockmasters in Australia have risen."
1883. E. M. Curr, `Recollections of Squatting in Victoria'
(1841-1851), p. 21:
"A bush hut-keeper, who baked our damper, fried our chops."
Hyacinth, Native, n. a Tasmanian flower,
Thelymitra longifolia, R. and G. Forst.,
N.O. Orchideae.
Hyaena, n. See Thylacine,
and Tasmanian Tiger.
Hypsiprymnodon, n. the scientific name of the
genus of the Australian animal called Musk Kangaroo.
(Grk. hupsiprumnos, with a high stern.) A very small,
rat-like, arboreal kangaroo, about ten inches long. The strong
musky odour from which it takes its vernacular name is
perceptible in both sexes.
1874. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 73:
"The third and last subfamily (Hypsiprymnodontidae) of the
Macropodidae is represented solely by the remarkable creature
known, from its strong scent, as the Musk-kangaroo."
I
Ibis, n. There are twenty-four species of this
bird distributed over all the warmer parts of the globe. Those
present in Australasia are--
Glossy (Black, or Bay) Ibis--
Ibis falcinellus, Linn.
Straw-necked I.--
Geronticus spinnicollis, Jameson.
White I.--
Threskiornis strictipennis, Gould.
Of these the last two are confined to Australia, the first is
cosmopolitan.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 155:
"All they had for supper and breakfast were a straw-coloured
ibis, a duck and a crow."
Ibid. p. 300:
"Crows were feasting on the remains of a black Ibis."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi.:
"Geronticus spinicollis, straw-necked ibis (pl. 45).
This beautiful ibis has never yet been discovered out of
Australia, over the whole of which immense country it is
probably distributed."
"Threskiornis strictipennis, white ibis" (pl. 46).
"Ibis falcinellus, Linn., glossy ibis" (pl. 47).
1892. `The Australasian,' April 9, p. 707, col. 4:
"When the hoarse-voiced jackass mocked us, and the white-winged
ibis flew
Past lagoons and through the rushes, far away into the blue."
Ice-Plant, n. Tasmanian name for Tetragonia
implexicoma, Hook., N.O. Ficoideae, B. Fl. Various
species of Tetragonia are cultivated as Spinach
(q.v.).
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 63:
"Called `ice-plant' in Tasmania. Baron Mueller suggests that
this plant be cultivated for spinach. [Found in] all the
colonies except Queensland."
Identity, Old, n. phrase denoting a person well
known in a place. a term invented in Dunedin, New Zealand, in
1862, in a popular topical song, by Mr. R. Thatcher, an
improvisator. In the song the "Old Identity," the former
resident of Dunedin, was distinguished from the "New Iniquity,"
as the people were termed who came from Australia.
1879. W. J. Barry, `Up and Down,' p. 197:
"The old identities were beginning to be alive to the
situation."
1894. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Oct.:
"It is permissible to wonder about the origin of the phrase `an
old identity.' Surely no man, however old, can be an identity?
An entity he is, or a nonentity; an individual, a centenarian,
or an oldest inhabitant; but identity is a condition of
sameness, of being identical with something. One can establish
one's identity with that of some one who is being sought or
sued, but once established it escapes us."
Inaka, n. a fish. See Inanga.
Inanga or Inaka, n. (the ng
as in the word singer, not as in finger),
a New Zealand fish, Galaxias attenuatus, or
Retropinna richardsoni. It is often called the
Whitebait and Minnow, and in Tasmania the
larger variety is called Jolly-tail. The change
from Inanga to Inaka is a dialectal Maori
variation, answering exactly to the change from North
Island Kainga to South Island Kaik (q.v.).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol.
ii. p. 100:
"This fish is called hinanga [sic.], and resembles Blackwall
white-bait in size and flavour. Its colour is a pinkish white,
spotted with black."
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 3:
"About the same size as this fish [the cockabully] is the
`inaka' much used for bait. Indeed, it is called the New
Zealand whitebait. A friend from Victoria having used this
bait, I asked him to spell the name of the fish, and he wanted
to make it like the patriarch who `walked with God'
--Enoch-a. The more correct shape of the Maori word is inanga;
but in the South Island `k' often takes the place of that
distinctive Maori letter `ng,' as `kainga' becomes kaik;
ngaio, kaio."
Inchman, n. a Tasmanian name for the
Bull-dog Ant (q.v.), from its length, which is
sometimes nearly an inch.
Indians, pl. n. early and now obsolete name
for the Aboriginals in Australia and even for the Maoris.
1769. J. Banks, `Journal,' Oct. 21 (Sir J. D. Hooker
edition), p. 191:
"We applied to our friends the Indians for a passage
in one of their canoes."
[These were Maoris.]
1770. Ibid. April 28:
"During this time, a few of the Indians who had not followed
the boat remained on the rock opposite the ship, threatening
and menacing with their pikes and swords."
[These were Australian Aboriginals.]
1825. Barron Field, `Geographical Memoirs of New South Wales,'
p. 437:
"Some of the Indians have also seriously applied to be allowed
convict labourers, as the settlers are, although they have not
patience to remain in the huts which our Government has built
for them, till the maize and cabbage that have been planted to
their hands are fit to gather."
1830. `The Friend of Australia,' p. 244:
"It is the observation of some writers, that the system pursued
in Australia for educating the children of the Indians is not
attended with success. The black children will never do any
good there, until some other plan is commenced . . ."
Indigo, Native, n. all the species of
Swainsonia, N.O. Leguminosae, are called "Native
Indigos." See Indigo-plant. In Tasmania, the Native
Indigo is Indigofera australis, Willd., N.O.
Leguminosae. The plants are also called
Indigo-plant and Darling-pea (q.v.).
Swainsonia belongs to the same N.O. as Indigofera
tinctoria, which furnishes the Indigo of commerce.
1826. J. Atkinson, `Agriculture and Grazing in New South
Wales,' p. 24:
"Indigo brushes are not very common; the timber in these is
generally white or blackbutted gum; the ground beneath is
covered with the native indigo, a very beautiful plant,
with a light purple flower."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 140:
"The `darling-pea' or `indigo-plant' is a dreaded plant from
the great amount of loss it has inflicted on stockowners. Its
effect on sheep is well known; they separate from the flock,
wander about listlessly, and are known to the shepherds as `
pea-eaters,' or `indigo-eaters.' When once a sheep takes to
eating this plant it seldom or never fattens, and may be said
to be lost to its owner. The late Mr. Charles Thorn, of
Queensland, placed a lamb which had become an `indigo-eater' in
a small paddock, where it refused to eat grass. It, however,
ate the indigo plant greedily, and followed Mr. Thorn all over
the paddock for some indigo he held in his hand."
Indented Servants, n. same as Assigned
(q.v.) Servants.
1810. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 352:
"Public Notice. Secretary's Office, Sydney, July 21, 1810.
A ship being daily expected to arrive here from England with
female convicts, whom it is His Excellency the Governor's
intention to distribute among the settlers, as indented
servants. . . ."
Ink-plant, n. another name for the "toot,"
a New Zealand shrub, Coriaria thymifolia, N.O.
Coriarieae. Called Ink-plant on account of its juice,
which soon turns to black. There is also an European
Ink-plant, Coriaria myrtifolia, so that this is
only a different species.
Ironbark, n. Early settlers gave this name
to several large Eucalypts, from the hardness of their bark,
especially to E. leucoxylon, F. v. M., and
E. resinifera, Smith. In Queensland it is applied to
E. siderophloia, Benth. See also Leguminous Ironbark,
and Lemon-scented Ironbark.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. viii.
p. 263:
"A species of gum-tree, the bark of which on the trunk is that
of the ironbark of Port Jackson."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 183:
"It was made out of a piece of bark from a tree called
ironbark (nearly as hard when dry as an English elm-board)."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. ii. p. 45:
"But this gradually changed to an ironbark (Eucalyptus
resinifera) and cypress-pine forest."
187. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees', p. 199:
"The Ironbark-tree (Eucalyptus resinifera) is . . .
widely spread over a large part of Australia. . . . A lofty
forest tree of moderate circumference. . . . It is believed to
have been named as above by some of the earliest Australian
settlers on account of the extreme hardness of its bark; but it
might with equal reason have been called ironwood. The wood is
of a deep red colour, very hard, heavy, strong, extremely
rigid, and rather difficult to work . . . used extensively in
shipbuilding and engineering works in Australia; and in this
country (England) it is employed in the mercantile navy for
beams, keelsons, and . . . below the line of flotation."
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 77:
"The ironbark (Eucalyptus sideroxylon) became from its
durability a synonym for toughness."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xxvii. p. 248:
"The corrugated stems of the great ironbark trees stood black
and columnar."
1893. `The Age,' May 11, p. 7, col. 3, (advt.):
"Monday, 15th May.--Supply in one or more contracts of not less
than 20 beams of 400 ironbark or box beams for cattle pits,
delivered at any station. Particulars at the office of the
Engineer for Existing Lines."
With qualifications. Silver-leaved--
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 65:
"The silver-leaved ironbark (Eucalyptus pulverulentus)
was here coming into blossom."
Narrow-leaved--
1847. Ibid. p. 154:
"The narrow-leaved ironbark [grew] on a lighter sandy soil."
Iron hand, a term of Victorian politics. It was a new
Standing Order introducing what has since been called the
Closure, and was first moved in the Victorian Legislative
Assembly on Jan. 27, 1876.
1876. `Victorian Hansard,' Jan. 20, vol. xxiii. p. 2002:
"They [the Government] have dealt with the Opposition with
a velvet glove; but the iron hand is beneath, and they shall
feel it."
1884. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. iii.
p. 406:
"The cloture, or the `iron hand,' as McCulloch's
resolution was called, was adopted in Victoria, for one
session."
Ironheart, n. a New Zealand tree,
Metrosideros tomentosa, N.O. Myrtaceae; native
name, Pohutukawa.
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 311:
"It was the `downy ironheart'
That from the cliffs o'erhanging grew,
And o'er the alcove, every part,
Such beauteous leaves and blossoms threw."
"Note.--This most lovely tree is common about the
northern coasts and cliffs of the North Island and the banks of
Lake Tarawera."
Ironwood, n. The name is used of many
hard-wooded trees in various parts of the world. The
Australian varieties are--
Ironwood (Queensland)--
Acacia excelsa, Benth., N.O. Leguminosae;
Melaleuca genistifolia, Smith, N.O. Myrtaceae.
Ironwood (North Queensland)--
Myrtus gonoclada, F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Ironwood (North New South Wales)--
Olea paniculata, R.Br., N.O. Jasmineae.
Ironwood (Tasmania)--
Notelaea ligustrina, Vent., N.O. Jasmineae.
Scrub Ironwood--
Myrtus hillii, Benth., N.O. Myrtaceae.
For Ironwood of New Zealand, see Puriri.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. xii.
p. 479:
"A club of iron-wood, which the cannibals had left in the
boat."
1823. W. B. Cramp, `Narrative of a Voyage to India,' p. 17:
". . . they have a short club made of iron wood, called a
waday, and a scimeter made of the same wood."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 579:
"`Ironwood' and `Heartwood' of Tasmania; `Spurious Olive,'
`White Plum' of Gippsland. An exceedingly hard, close-grained
wood, used for mallets, sheaves of blocks, turnery, etc. The
heartwood yields a very peculiar figure ; it is a very fair
substitute for lignum-vitae."
Irriakura, n. an aboriginal name for the tubers
of Cyperus rotundus, Linn., N.O. Cyperaceae,
adopted by white men in Central Australia.
1896. E. C. Stirling, `Home Expedition in Central
Australia,' Anthropology, p. 60:
"Cyperus rotundus. In almost every camp we saw large
quantities of the tunicated tubes of this plant, which are
generally called `Erriakura' or `Irriakura' by the Arunta
natives. . . Even raw they are pleasant to the taste, having
an agreeable nutty flavour, which is much improved by the
slight roasting."
Ivory-wood, n. an Australian timber,
Siphonodon australe, Benth., N.O. Celastrinae.
Ivy, n. a child's name for the ivy-leaf
geraniums, especially the double pink-flowered one called
Madame Kruse. In Australia the warm climate makes these all
evergreens, and they are trained over fences and walls,
sometimes to the height of twenty or thirty feet, supplanting
the English ivy in this use, and covered with masses of
flowers.
Ivy, Native, an Australian plant, Muehlenbeckia
adpressa, Meissn., N.O. Polygonaceae; called also
Macquarie Harbour Vine, or Grape. The name is
widely applied also to the acclimatised Cape Ivy, or German
Ivy (Senecio scandens).
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 46:
"`Native Ivy,' Macquarie Harbour Vine or Grape of Tasmania.
The currant-like fruits are sub-acid, and were, and perhaps
still are, used for tarts, puddings, and preserves; the leaves
taste like sorrel."
Ivy, Wild, n. an Australian creeper,
Platylobium triangulare, R. Br.,
N.O. Leguminosae.
Ivy-tree, n. New Zealand tree, genus
Panax, N.O. Araliacae; Maori name,
Horoeka. It is also called Lancewood (q.v.).
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New' Zealand,' p. 127:
"Horoeka, ivy-tree. an ornamental, slender, and
sparingly-branched tree. Wood close-grained and tough."
J
Jabiru, n. The word comes from Brazil, and was
first given there to the large stork Mycteria (Xenorhynchus)
Americana. The Australian species is M. australis,
Lath. It has the back and neck dark grey, changing on the neck
to scarlet. There is a black-necked stork in Australia
(Xenorhynchus asiaticus), which is also called the
Jabiru.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 194:
"We saw a Tabiroo [sic] (Mycteria)."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 195:
"In October, 1858, I succeeded in purchasing a fine living
specimen of the New Holland Jabiru, or Gigantic Crane of the
colonists (Mycteria Australis)"
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 323:
"The splendid Australian jabiru (Mycteria Australis),
and I had the good fortune to shoot on the wing a specimen of
this beautiful variety of the stork family."
Jacana, n. a Brazilian word for a bird of the
genus Parra (q.v.). The Australian species is the
Comb-crested Jacana, Parra gallinacea, Temm. It is also
called the Lotus-bird (q.v.).
Jack in a Box, i.q. Hair-trigger (q.v.).
1854. `The Home Companion,' p. 554:
"When previously mentioning the elegant Stylidium
graminifolium (grass-leaved Jack-in-a-box), which may be
easily known by its numerous grassy-like radical leaves, and
pretty pink flowers, on a long naked stem, we omitted to
mention a peculiarity in it, which is said to afford much
amusement to the aborigines, who are, generally speaking, fond
of, and have a name for, many of the plants common in their own
territories. The stigma lies at the apex of a long column,
surrounded and concealed by the anthers. This column is
exceedingly irritable, and hangs down on one side of the
flower, until it is touched, when it suddenly springs up and
shifts to the opposite side of the blossom or calyx."
1859. D. Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 26:
"Stylidium (native Jack in a box). This genus is
remarkable for the singular elasticity of the column stylis,
which support the anthers, and which being irritable, will
spring up if pricked with a pin, or other little substance,
below the joint, before the pollen, a small powder, is shed,
throwing itself suddenly over, like a reflex arm, to the
opposite side of the flower. Hence the colonial designation of
Jack in a box."
Jack the Painter, n. very strong bush-tea, so
called from the mark it leaves round the drinker's mouth.
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 163:
"Another notorious ration tea of the bush is called Jack the
Painter--a very green tea indeed, its viridity evidently
produced by a discreet use of the copper drying-pans in its
manufacture."
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 418:
"The billy wins, and `Jack the Painter' tea
Steams on the hob, from aught like fragrance free."
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 113
"Special huts had to be provided for them [the sundowners],
where they enjoyed eleemosynary rations of mutton, damper,
and `Jack the Painter.'"
Jackaroo, n. a name for a Colonial Experience
(q.v.), a young man fresh from England, learning squatting;
called in New Zealand a Cadet (q.v.). Compare the American
"tenderfoot." A verse definition runs:
"To do all sorts and kinds of jobs,
Help all the men Jacks, Bills or Bobs,
As well as he is able.
To be neither boss, overseer, nor man,
But a little of all as well as he can,
And eat at the master's table."
The word is generally supposed to be a corruption (in imitation
of the word Kangaroo) of the words "Johnny Raw." Mr. Meston,
in the `Sydney Bulletin,' April 18, 1896, says it comes from
the old Brisbane blacks, who called the pied crow shrike
(Strepera graculina) "tchaceroo," a gabbling and
garrulous bird. They called the German missionaries of 1838
"jackeroo," a gabbler, because they were always talking.
Afterwards they applied it to all white men.
1880. W. Senior, `Travel and Trout,' p. 19:
"Jackaroos--the name given to young gentlemen newly arrived
from home to gather colonial experiences."
1881. A. C. Grant `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i.
p. 53:
"The young jackaroo woke early next morning."
[Footnote]: "The name by which young men who go to the
Australian colonies to pick up colonial experience are
designated."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 85:
"Of course before starting on their own account to work a
station they go into the bush to gain colonial experience,
during which process they are known in the colony as
`jackaroos.'"
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydneyside Saxon,' p. 74:
"We went most of the way by rail and coach, and then a
jackaroo met us with a fine pair of horses in a waggonette.
I expected to see a first cousin to a kangaroo, when the
coachdriver told us, instead of a young gentleman learning
squatting."
1894. `Sydney Morning Herald' (date lost):
"`Jack-a-roo' is of the same class of slang; but the unlucky
fellow--often gentle and soft-handed--who does the oddwork of a
sheep or cattle station, if he finds time and heart for letters
to any who love him, probably writes his rue with a
difference."
Jackaroo, v. to lead the life of a Jackaroo.
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 152:
"I've seen such a lot of those new chums, one way and another.
They knock down all their money at the first go-off, and then
there's nothing for them to do but to go and jackaroo up in
Queensland."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. xix. p. 239:
"A year or two more Jackerooing would only mean the consumption
of so many more figs of negro-head, in my case."
Jackass-fish, n. another Sydney name for the
Morwong (q.v.).
Jackass, Laughing, n. (1) The popular name of
an Australian bird, Dacelo gigas, Bodd, the Great Brown
Kingfisher of Australia; see Dacelo. To an Australian
who has heard the ludicrous note of the bird and seen its
comical, half-stupid appearance, the origin of the name seems
obvious. It utters a prolonged rollicking laugh, often
preceded by an introductory stave resembling the opening
passage of a donkey's bray.
But the name has been erroneously derived from the French
jacasse, as to which Littre gives "terme populaire.
Femme, fille qui parle beaucoup." He adds, that the word
jacasse appears to come from jacquot, a name
popularly given to parrots and magpies, our "Poll." The verb
jacasser means to chatter, said of a magpie. The
quotation from Collins (1798) seems to dispose of this
suggested French origin, by proving the early use of the name
Laughing Jackass. As a matter of fact, the French name
had already in 1776 been assigned to the bird, viz. Grand
Martin-pecheur de la Nouvelle Guinee. [See Pierre
Sonnerat, `Voyage a la Nouvelle Guinee' (Paris, 1776),
p. 171.] The only possibility of French origin would be from
the sailors of La Perouse. But La Perouse arrived in Botany
Bay on January 26, 1788, and found Captain Phillip's ships
leaving for Sydney Cove. The intercourse between them was very
slight. The French formed a most unfavourable idea of the
country, and sailed away on March 10. If from their short
intercourse, the English had accepted the word Jackass,
would not mention of the fact have been made by Governor
Phillip, or Surgeon White, who mention the bird but by a
different name (see quotations 1789, 1790), or by Captain
Watkin Tench, or Judge Advocate Collins, who both mention the
incident of the French ships?
The epithet "laughing" is now often omitted; the bird is
generally called only a Jackass, and this is becoming
contracted into the simple abbreviation of Jack. A common
popular name for it is the Settlers'-Clock. (See
quotations--1827, Cunningham; 1846, Haydon; and 1847,
Leichhardt.) The aboriginal name of the bird is
Kookaburra (q.v.), and by this name it is generally
called in Sydney; another spelling is Gogobera.
There is another bird called a Laughing Jackass in New
Zealand which is not a Kingfisher, but an Owl, Sceloglaux
albifacies, Kaup. (Maori name, Whekau). The New
Zealand bird is rare, the Australian bird very common. The
so-called Derwent Jackass of Tasmania is a Shrike
(Cracticus cinereus, Gould), and is more properly called
the Grey Butcher-bird. See Butcher-bird.
1789. Governor Phillip, `Voyage,' p. 287:
Description given with picture, but under name "Great Brown
Kingsfisher" [sic].
Ibid. p. 156:
Similar bird, with description and picture, under name "Sacred
King's Fisher."
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 137:
"We not long after discovered the Great Brown King's Fisher,
of which a plate is annexed. This bird has been described by
Mr. Latham in his `General Synopsis of Birds,' vol. ii. p. 603.
Ibid. p. 193:
"We this day shot the Sacred King's-Fisher (see plate annexed)."
1798. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South Wales,'
p. 615, (Vocabulary):
"Gi-gan-ne-gine. Bird named by us the Laughing Jackass.
Go-con-de--inland name for it."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 232:
"The loud and discordant noise of the laughing jackass (or
settler's-clock, as he is called), as he takes up his roost on
the withered bough of one of our tallest trees, acquaints us
that the sun has just dipped behind the hills."
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 204:
"The settlers call this bird the Laughing Jackass. I have also
heard it called the Hawkesbury-Clock (clocks being at the
period of my residence scarce articles in the colony, there not
being one perhaps in the whole Hawkesbury settlement), for it
is among the first of the feathered tribes which announce the
approach of day."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,'
p. 71:
"The laughing jackass, or settler's-clock is an uncouth looking
creature of an ashen brown colour . . . This bird is the
first to indicate by its note the approach of day, and thus it
has received its other name, the settler's clock."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 234:
"I usually rise when I hear the merry laugh of the laughing-
jackass (Dacelo gigantea), which, from its regularity,
has not been unaptly named the settlers'-clock."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 18:
"Dacelo Gigantea, Leach, Great Brown King Fisher;
Laughing Jackass of the Colonists."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 58:
"You are startled by a loud, sudden cackling, like flocks of
geese, followed by an obstreperous hoo! hoo! ha! ha! of the
laughing jackass (Dacelo gigantea) a species of jay."
[Howitt's comparison with the jay is evidently due to the azure
iridescent markings on the upper part of the wings, in colour
like the blue feathers on the jay.]
1862. F. J. Jobson, `Australia,' c. vi. p. 145:
"The odd medley of cackling, bray, and chuckle notes from
the `Laughing Jackass.'"
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 18:
"At daylight came a hideous chorus of fiendish laughter, as if
the infernal regions had been broken loose--this was the song of
another feathered innocent, the laughing jackass--not half a bad
sort of fellow when you come to know him, for he kills snakes,
and is an infallible sign of the vicinity of fresh-water."
1880. T. W. Nutt, `Palace of Industry,' p. 15:
"Where clock-bird laughed and sweet wildflowers throve."
[Footnote] "The familiar laughing jackass."
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 13:
"Dense forests, where the prolonged cacchinations of that cynic
of the woods, as A. P. Martin calls the laughing jackass,
seemed to mock us for our pains."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 37:
"The harsh-voiced, big-headed, laughing jackass."
1881. D. Blair, `Cyclopaedia of Australasia,' p. 202:
"The name it vulgarly bears is a corruption of the French word
Jacasser, `to chatter,' and the correct form is the `Laughing
Jacasse.'"
[No. See above.]
1885. `Australasian Printers' Keepsake,' p. 76:
"Magpies chatter, and the jackass
Laughs Good-morrow like a Bacchus."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' [telling an
old story] p. 155:
"The Archbishop inquired the name of a curious bird which had
attracted his attention. `Your grace, we call that the
laughing jackass in this country, but I don't know the
botanical [sic] name of the bird."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals, p. 27:
"Few of the birds of Australia have pleased me as much as this
curious laughing jackass, though it is both clumsy and
unattractive in colour. Far from deserving its name jackass,
it is on the contrary very wise and also very courageous. It
boldly attacks venomous snakes and large lizards, and is
consequently the friend of the colonist."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 265:
"`There's a jackass--a real laughing jackass on that dead
branch. They have such a queer note; like this,, you know--'
and upon her companion's startled ears there rang forth, all of
a sudden, the most curious, inimitable, guttural, diabolical
tremolo it had ever befallen them to hear."
1890. `Victorian Statutes-Game Act, Third Schedule':
"[Close season.] Great Kingfisher or Laughing Jackass.
The whole year. all Kingfishers other than the Laughing Jackass.
From the 1st day of August to the 20th day of December next
following in each year."
(2) The next quotations refer to the New Zealand bird.
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 122:
"Athene Albifacies, wekau of the Maoris, is known by
some up-country settlers as the big owl or laughing
jackass."
"The cry of the laughing jackass . . . Why it should share
with one of our petrels and the great Dacelo of
Australia the trivial name of laughing jackass, we know not;
if its cry resembles laughter at all, it is the uncontrollable
outburst, the convulsive shout of insanity; we have never been
able to trace the faintest approach to mirthful sound in the
unearthly yells of this once mysterious night-bird."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 198:
"Sceloglaux albifacies, Kaup., Laughing Owl; Laughing
Jackass of the Colonists."
[The following quotation refers to the Derwent Jackass.]
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 110:
"You have heard of . . . the laughing jackass. We, too, have
a `jackass,' a smaller bird, and not in any way remarkable,
except for its merry gabbling sort of song, which when several
pipe up together, always gives one the idea of a party of very
talkative people all chattering against time, and all at once."
Jack-bird, n. a bird of the South Island of New
Zealand, Creadion cinereus, Buller. See also
Saddle-back and Creadion.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 23:
"It has become the habit to speak of this bird as the Brown
Saddle-back; but this is a misnomer, inasmuch as the absence of
the `saddle' is its distinguishing feature. I have accordingly
adopted the name of Jack-bird, by which it is known among the
settlers in the South Island. Why it should be so called I
cannot say, unless this is an adaptation of the native name
Tieke, the same word being the equivalent, in the Maori
vernacular, of our Jack."
Jack Shay, or Jackshea, n. a tin quart-pot.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 209:
"Hobbles and Jack Shays hang from the saddle dees."
[Footnote]: "A tin quart-pot, used for boiling water for tea,
and contrived so as to hold within it a tin pint-pot."
1890. `The Argus,' June14, p. 4, col. 1:
"Some of his clothes, with his saddle, serve for a pillow; his
ration bags are beside his head, and his jackshea (quart-pot)
stands by the fire."
Jacky Winter, n. the vernacular name in New
South Wales of the Brown Flycatcher, Microeca fascinans,
a common little bird about Sydney. The name has been ascribed
to the fact that it is a resident species, very common, and
that it sings all through the winter, when nearly every other
species is silent. See Flycatcher.
Jade, n. See Greenstone.
Jarrah, n. anglicised form of Jerryhl,
the native name of a certain species of Eucalyptus, which grows
in the south of Western Australia, east and south-east of
Perth. In Sir George Grey's Glossary (1840), Djar-rail;
Mr. G. F. Moore's (1884), Djarryl. (Eucalyptus
marginata, Donn.) The name Bastard-Jarrah is given
to E. botryoides, Smith, which bears many other names.
It is the Blue-Gum of New South Wales coast-districts,
the Bastard-Mahogany of Gippsland and New South Wales,
and also Swamp Mahogany in Victoria and New South Wales,
and occasionally Woolly-Butt.
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,'
vol. ii. p. 102:
"It may be that after all the hopes of the West-Australian
Micawbers will be realised in jarrah-wood."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 189:
"The Jarrah or Mahogany-tree is also found in Western
Australia. The wood is red in colour, hard, heavy, close in
texture, slightly wavy in the grain, and with occasionally
enough figure to give it value for ornamental purposes; it
works up quite smoothly and takes a good polish."
188. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia, vol. i. p. 77:
"The jarrah of Western Australia (Eucalyptus marginata)
has a peculiar reputation for its power to defy decay when
submerged and exposed to the attacks of the dreaded teredo, and
has been largely exported to India."
1888. R. Kipling, `Plain Tales from the Hills,' p. 163
". . . the awful butchery . . . of the Maribyrnong Plate. The
walls were colonial ramparts--logs of jarrah spiked into
masonry--with wings as strong as Church buttresses."
[Jarrah is not a Victorian, but a West-Australian timber, and
imported logs are not used by the V.R.C., but white or red gum.
For making "jumps," no logs are "spiked into masonry," and the
Maribyrnong Plate is not a "jump-race."]
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,'
p. 415:
"Mr. W. H. Knight, twenty years ago, gave evidence as to the
value of the jarrah. . . . It is found that piles driven down
in the Swan River were, after being exposed to the action of
wind, water, and weather for forty years, as sound and firm as
when put into the water. . . . It completely resists the
attacks of the white ants, where stringy-bark, blue-gum,
white-gum, and black-wood are eaten through, or rendered
useless, in from six to twelve years."
1896. `The Times' (weekly edition), Dec. 4, p. 822, col. 1:
"The jarrah, Eucalyptus marginata, stands pre-eminent as
the leading timber tree of the Western Australian forests. For
constructive work necessitating contact with soil and water
jarrahwood has no native equal. A jarrah forest is dull,
sombre, and uninteresting to the eye. In first-class forests
the trees attain a height of from 90 ft. to 120 ft., with good
stems 3 ft. to 5 ft. in diameter. The tree is practically
confined to the south-western division of the colony, where the
heaviest rains of the season fall. As a rule, jarrah is found
either intermixed with the karri tree or in close proximity to
it."
Jasmine, Native, n. an Australian plant,
Ricinocarpus pinifolius, Desf.,
N.O. Euphorbiaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 286:
"Native Jasmine. This plant yields abundance of seeds,
like small castor oil seeds. They yield an oil."
Jelly-leaf, n. i.q. Queensland Hemp
(q.v.).
Jelly-plant, a sea-weed, Eucheuma speciosum,
J. Agardh, N.O. Algae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 28:
"Jelly-plant of Western Australia. This is a remarkable
sea-weed of a very gelatinous character [used by] the people of
Western Australia for making jelly, blanc-mange, etc. Size and
cement can also be made from it. It is cast ashore from deep
water."
Jemmy Donnelly, n. a ridiculous name given to
three trees, Euroschinus falcatus, Hook,
N.O. Anacardiaceae; Myrsine variabilis, R. Br.,
N.O. Myrsinaceae; and Eucalyptus resinifera, Sm.,
N.O. Myrtaceae. They are large timber trees, highly
valued in Queensland.
Jerrawicke, n. obsolete name for Colonial beer.
1857. J. Askew, `A Voyage to Australia and New Zealand,'
p. 272:
"There were always a number of natives roaming about. There
might be about 150 in all, of the Newcastle tribe. They were
more wretched and filthy, and if possible, uglier than those of
Adelaide. . . . All the earnings of the tribe were spent in
tobacco and jerrawicke (colonist-made ale)."
1857. Ibid. p. 273:
"A more hideous looking spectacle can hardly be imagined than
that presented by these savages around the blazing fire,
carousing among jerrawicke and the offal of slaughtered
animals.'"
Jew-fish, n. a name applied in New South Wales
to two or more different species, Sciaena antarctica,
Castln., and Glaucosoma hebraicum, Richards. Sciaena
antarctica, Castln., is the King-fish of the Melbourne
market. Sciaena is called Dew-fish in Brisbane. It
belongs to the family Sciaenidae. The Australian
species is distinct from S. aquila, the European
"Maigre" or "Meagre," but closely resembles it.
Glaucosoma belongs to the Percidae. The Silver
Jew-fish of New South Wales is thought to be the same as the
Teraglin (q.v.), Otolithus atelodus, Guenth.,
also of the family Sciaeidae. Tenison Woods (in `Fish
and Fisheries of New South Wales,' 1882, p. 34) says the
Jew-fish of New South Wales is sometimes Glaucosoma
scapulare, Ramsay; and Glaucosoma hebraicum,
Richards., is the Jew-fish of Western Australia (a marine
fish). Fishes on the American coasts, different from these,
are there called Jew-fishes.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 40:
"The water-holes abounded with jew-fish and eels."
Jew-Lizard, n. a large Australian lizard,
Amiphibolurus barbatus, Cuv.; called also Bearded
Lizard.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 89:
"A small Chlamydophorus (Jew-lizard of the Hunter) was
also seen." [The Hunter is a river of New South Wales.]
1890. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Natural History of
Victoria,' Decade xiii. pl. 121:
"This is commonly called the Jew Lizard by colonists, and is
easily distinguished by the beard-like growth of long slender
spires round the throat . . . when irritated, it inflates the
body to a considerably increased size, and hisses like a snake
exciting alarm; but rarely biting."
1893. `The Argus,' July 22, p. 4, col. 5:
"The great Jew-lizards that lay and laughed horribly to
themselves in the pungent dust on the untrodden floors."
Jil-crow-a-berry, n. the Anglicised
pronunciation and spelling of the aboriginal name for the
indigenous Rat-tail Grass, Sporobolus indicus,
R. Br.
Jimmy, n. obsolete name for an immigrant, a
word which was jocularly changed into Jimmy Grant. The word
`immigrant' is as familiar in Australia as `emigrant' in
England.
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 211:
"`What are these men that we are going to see?' `Why one,'
said Lee, is a young Jimmy--I beg your pardon, sir, an
emigrant, the other two are old prisoners.'"
1867. `Cassell's Magazine,' p. 440:
"`I never wanted to leave England,' I have heard an old
Vandemonian observe boastfully. `I wasn't like one of these
`Jemmy Grants' (cant term for `emigrants'); I could always earn
a good living; it was the Government as took and sent me out."
[The writers probably used the word immigrant, which,
not being familiar to the English compositor, was misprinted
emigrant. The "old Vandemonian" must certainly have
said immigrant.]
Jimmy Low, n. one of the many names of a
Timber-tree, Eucalyptus resinifera, Smith,
N.O. Myrtaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 208:
"The `Red,' or `Forest Mahogany,' of the neighbourhood of
Sydney. These are bad names, as the wood bears no real
resemblance to the true mahogany. Because the product of this
tree first brought Australian kino into medical notice, it is
often in old books called `Botany Bay Gum-tree.' Other names
for it are Red gum, Grey gum, Hickory, and it perpetuates the
memory of an individual by being called `Jimmy Low.'"
Jingle, n. a two-wheeled vehicle, like an Irish
car, once common in Melbourne, still used in Brisbane and some
other towns: so called from the rattle made by it when in
motion. The word is not Australian, as is generally supposed;
the `Century' gives "a covered two-wheeled car used in the
south of Ireland."
1862. Clara Aspinall, `Three Years in Melbourne,' p. 122:
"An omnibus may be chartered at much less cost (gentlemen who
have lived in India will persist in calling this vehicle
a jingle, which perhaps sounds better); it is a kind of
dos-a-dos conveyance, holding three in front and three behind:
it has a waterproof top to it supported by four iron rods, and
oilskin curtains to draw all round as a protection from the
rain and dust."
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,'
p. 44:
"During my stay in Melbourne I took a jingle, or car, and drove
to St. Kilda."
1865. Lady Barker, writing from Melbourne, `Station Life in
New Zealand,' p. 12:
"A vehicle which was quite new to me--a sort of light car with a
canopy and curtains, holding four, two on each seat, dos-a-dos,
and called a jingle--of American parentage, I fancy. One drive
in this carriage was quite enough, however."
1869. Marcus Clarke, `Peripatetic Philosopher,' p. 14:
"Some folks prefer to travel
Over stones and rocks and gravel;
And smile at dust and jolting fit to dislocate each bone.
To see 'em driving in a jingle,
It would make your senses tingle,
For you couldn't put a sixpence 'twixt the wheel and the
kerb-stone."
1887. Cassell's 'Picturesque Australasia,' vol. i. p. 64:
"In former days the Melbourne cab was a kind of Irish car,
popularly known as a jingle. . . . The jingle has been ousted
by the one-horse waggonette."
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. iv. p. 30:
"The Premier hailed a passing jingle."
[This was in Brisbane.]
Jinkers, n. a contrivance much used in the bush
for moving heavy logs and trunks of trees. It consists of two
pairs of wheels, with their axle-trees joined by a long beam,
under which the trunks are suspended by chains. Its structure
is varied in town for moving wooden houses. Called in England
a "whim."
1894. `The Argus,' July 7, p. 8, col. 4:
"A rather novel spectacle was to be seen to-day on the Ballan
road in the shape of a five-roomed cottage on jinkers. . . .
Mr. Scottney, carrier of Fitzroy, on whose jinkers the removal
is being made . . ."
Jirrand, adj. an aboriginal word in the dialect of
Botany Bay, signifying "afraid." Ridley, in his vocabulary,
spells it jerron, and there are other spellings.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol.
ii. p. 59:
"The native word jirrand (afraid) has become in some
measure an adopted child, and may probably puzzle our future
Johnsons with its unde derivatur."
1889. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 316:
"When I saw the mob there was I didn't see so much to be jerran
about, as it was fifty to one in favour of any one that was
wanted."
Jo-Jo, n. name used by Melbourne larrikins for
a man with a good deal of hair on his face. So called from a
hairy-faced Russian "dog man" exhibited in Melbourne
about 1880, who was advertised by that name.
Job's Tears. The seeds of Coix lachryma, which
are used for necklace-making by the native tribes on the Cape
York peninsula, are there called Job's tears.
Joe, Joe-Joe, Joey, interjection, then a verb,
now obsolete. Explained in quotations.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 400:
"The well-known cry of `Joe! Joe!'--a cry which means one of
the myrmidons of Charley Joe, as they familiarly style Mr.
[Charles Joseph] La Trobe,--a cry which on all the diggings
resounds on all sides on the appearance of any of the hated
officials."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 135:
"The cry of `Joey' would rise everywhere against them."
[Footnote]: "To `Joey' or `Joe' a person on the diggings, or
anywhere else in Australia, is to grossly insult and ridicule
him."
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,'
p. 165:
"In the early days of the Australian diggings `Joe' was the
warning word shouted out when the police or gold commissioners
were seen approaching, but is now the chaff for new chums."
1865. F. H. Nixon, `Peter Perfume,' p. 58:
"And Joe joed them out, Tom toed them out."
1891. `The Argus,' Dec. 5, p. 13, col. 4:
"`The diggers,' he says, `were up in arms against the
Government officials, and whenever a policeman or any other
Government servant was seen they raised the cry of "Joe-Joe."'
The term was familiar to every man in the fifties. In the
earliest days of the diggings proclamations were issued on
diverse subjects, but mostly in the direction of curtailing the
privileges of the miners. These were signed, `C. Joseph La
Trobe,' and became known by the irreverent--not to say flippant
--description of `Joes.' By an easy transition, the corruption
of the second name of the Governor was applied to his officers,
between whom and the spirited diggers no love was lost, and
accordingly the appearance of a policeman on a lead was
signalled to every tent and hole by the cry of `Joe-Joe.'"
Joey, n. (1) A young kangaroo.
1839. W. H. Leigh, `Reconnoitring Voyages in South Australia'
pp. 93-4:
"Here [in Kangaroo Island] is also the wallaba . . . The
young of the animal is called by the islanders a joe."
1861. T. McCombie, I`Australian Sketches,' p. 172:
"The young kangaroos are termed joeys. The female carries the
latter in her pouch, but when hard pressed by dogs, and likely
to be sacrificed, she throws them down, which usually distracts
the attention of the pack and affords the mother sufficient
time to escape."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 10:
"Sometimes when the flying doe throws her `joey' from her
pouch the dogs turn upon the little one."
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 29:
"At length the actual fact of the Kangaroo's birth, which is
much as that of other mammals, was carefully observed at the
London Zoo, and the budding fiction joined the myths that were.
It was there proved that the little `joey' is brought into the
world in the usual way, and forthwith conveyed to the
comfortable receptacle and affixed to the teat by the dam,
which held the lifeless-looking little thing tenderly in her
cloven lips."
(2) Also slang used for a baby or little child, or even a young
animal, such as a little guinea-pig. Compare "kid."
(3) A hewer of wood and drawer of water.
1845. J. A. Moore, `Tasmanian Rhymings,' p. 15:
"He was a `joey,' which, in truth,
Means nothing more than that youth
Who claims a kangaroo descent
Is by that nomenclature meant."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 198:
"I'm not going to be wood-and-water Joey, I can tell ye."
John Dory, or Dorey, n. a fish. This
name is applied in New South Wales and Tasmania to Cyttus
(Zeus) australis, Richards., family Cyttidae, which
is nearly the same as Zeus faber, the "John Dory" of
Europe. Others call C. australis the Bastard
Dorey (q.v.), and it is also called the Boar-fish
(q.v.) and Dollar-fish (q.v.).
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 451:
"`John Dorys' are found in the Mediterranean, on the eastern
temperate shores of the Atlantic, on the coasts of Japan and
Australia. Six species are known, all of which are highly
esteemed for the table. The English name given to one of the
European species (Zeus Faber) seems to be partly a
corruption of the Gascon `Jau,' which signifies cock, `Dory'
being derived from the French Doree, so that the entire
name means Gilt-cock. Indeed, in some other localities of
southern Europe it bears the name of Gallo. The same
species occurs also on the coasts of South Australia and New
Zealand."
Johnny-cake. n. The name is of American
origin, originally given by the negroes to a cake made of
Indian corn (maize). In Australia it is a cake baked on the
ashes or cooked in a frying-pan. (See quotations.) The name
is used in the United States for a slightly different cake,
viz. made with Indian meal and toasted before a fire.
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' p. 154:
"The dough-cakes fried in fat, called `Johnny-cakes.'"
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 20:
"Johnny-cakes, though they are smaller and very thin, and made
in a similar way [sc. to dampers: see Damper]; when
eaten hot they are excellent, but if allowed to get cold they
become leathery."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance of Australia,' p. 3:
"Johnny-cakes are made with nothing but flour, but there is a
great art in mixing them. If it is done properly they are
about the lightest and nicest sort of bread that can be made;
but the efforts of an amateur generally result in a wet heavy
pulp that sticks round one's teeth like bird-lime."
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 16, p. 13, col. 1:
"Here I, a new chum, could, with flour and water and a pinch
of baking-powder, make a sweet and wholesome johnny cake."
1892. Mrs. Russell, `Too Easily Jealous,' p. 273 :
"Bread was not, and existed only in the shape of johnny-cakes
--flat scones of flour and water, baked in the hot ashes."
1894. `The Argus,' March 10, p. 4, col. 6:
"It is also useful to make your damper or `Johnny-cake,' which
serves you in place of yeast bread. A Johnny-cake is made
thus:--Put a couple of handfuls of flour into your dish, with a
good pinch of salt and baking soda. Add water till it works to
a stiff paste. Divide it into three parts and flatten out into
cakes about half an inch thick. Dust a little flour into your
frying-pan and put the cake in. Cook it slowly over the fire,
taking care it does not burn, and tossing it over again and
again. When nearly done stand it against a stick in front of
the fire, and let it finish baking while you cook the other
two. These, with a piece of wallaby and a billy of tea, are a
sweet meal enough after a hard day's work."
Jolly-tail, n. a Tasmanian name for the larger
variety of the fish Galaxias attenuatus, Jenyns, and
other species of Galaxias called Inanga (q.v.) in
New Zealand. Galaxias weedoni is called the Mersey
Jolly-tail, and Galaxias atkinsoni, the Pieman
Jolly-tail. Pieman and Mersey are two Tasmanian rivers.
See Mountain-Trout.
July, n. a winter month in Australia. See
Christmas.
1888. Mrs. M'Cann, `Poetical Works,' p. 235:
"Scarce has July with frigid visage flown."
Jumbuck, n. aboriginal pigeon-English for
sheep. Often used in the bush. The origin of this word was
long unknown. It is thus explained by Mr. Meston, in the
`Sydney Bulletin,' April 18, 1896: "The word `jumbuck' for
sheep appears originally as jimba, jombock, dombock, and
dumbog. In each case it meant the white mist preceding
a shower, to which a flock of sheep bore a strong resemblance.
It seemed the only thing the aboriginal mind could compare it
to."
1845. C. Griffith, `Present State and Prospects of the Port
Phillip District of New South Wales,' p. 162:
"The following is a specimen of such eloquence: `You
pilmillally jumbuck plenty sulky me, plenty boom, borack
gammon,' which being interpreted means, `If you shoot my sheep
I shall be very angry, and will shoot you and no mistake.'"
1855. W. Ridley, `Transactions of Philological Society,'
p. 77:
"When they adopt English words ending in mutes, the blacks drop
the mute or add a vowel: thus, jimbugg, a slang name for
sheep, they sound jimbu." [It was not English slang but
an aboriginal word.]
1893. `The Argus,' April 8, p. 4, col. 1:
"Mister Charlie, jumbuck go along of grass, blood all there,
big dog catch him there, big jumbuck, m'me word, neck torn."
1896. `The Australasian,' June 6, p. 1085, col. 1:
"Jumbuck (a sheep) has been in use from the earliest days,
but its origin is not known."
Jump, to, v. to take possession of a claim
(mining) on land, on the ground that a former possessor has
abandoned it, or has not fulfilled the conditions of the grant.
The word is also used in the United States, but it is very
common in Australia. Instead of "you have taken my seat," you
have jumped it. So even with a pew. a man in England,
to whom was said, "you have jumped my pew," would look
astonished, as did that other who was informed, "Excuse me,
sir, but you are occupewing my py."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 31:
". . . on condition that he occupies it within twenty-four
hours: should this rule not be observed, the right of the
original holder is lost, and it may be occupied (or `jumped'
as it is termed) by any other person as a deserted claim."
1861. `Victorian Hansard,' vol. vii. p. 942 (May 21):
"Mr. Wood: Some of the evils spoken of seemed indeed
only to exist in the imagination of the hon. and learned
gentleman, as, for instance, that of `jumping,' for which a
remedy was already given by the 77th section of the present
Act.
"Mr. Ireland: Yes; after the claim is `jumped.'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' p. 37:
"If such work were not commenced within three days, any other
miners might summarily take possession of or jump the claim."
ibid. p. 52:
"Let us have the melancholy satisfaction of seeing Gus's pegs,
and noting whether they are all en regle. If not, we'll
`jump' him."
Ibid. p. 76:
"In default of such advertisement, for the general benefit,
they were liable, according to custom and practice, to have
their claim `jumped,' or taken forcible possession of by any
party of miners who could prove that they were concealing the
golden reality."
1875. `Melbourne Spectator,' August 21, p. 189, col. 3:
"Jumping selections . . . is said to be very common now in
the Winmera district."
Jumpable, adj. open to another to take. See
Jump.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, Melbourne Memories,' c. xvi. p. 114:
"The heifer station was what would be called in mining
parlance `an abandoned claim' and possibly `jumpable.'"
Jumper, n. one who jumps a claim. See
Jump.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xii. p. 127:
"Come along, my noble jumper, you've served your injunction."
Jumping-mouse, n. See Hapalote.
June, n. a winter month in Australia. See
Christmas.
1886. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 132:
"Twenty white-haired Junes have left us
Grey with frost and bleak with gale."
Jungle-hen, n. name given to a mound-building
bird, Megapodius tumulus, Gould. See also
Megapode. The Indian Jungle-fowl is a different bird.
1890. Carl Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 97:
"But what especially gives life and character to these woods
are the jungle-hens (mound-builders) . . . The bird is of a
brownish hue, with yellow legs and immensely large feet; hence
its name Megapodius."
Juniper, Native, n. i.q. Native Currant
(q.v.).
K
Kahawai, n. Maori name for the fish Arripis
salar, Richards.; called in Australia and New Zealand
Salmon (q.v.).
Kahikatea, n. Maori name for a New Zealand
tree, Podocarpus dacrydioides, A. Rich.,
N.O. Coniferae. Also called White-Pine.
See Pine. The settlers' pronunciation is often
Kackatea. There is a Maori word Kahika, meaning
ancient.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor. `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 439:
"White-pine, Podocarpus dacrydioides--Kahikatea, kahika,
korol. This tree is generally called the white-pine, from the
colour of its wood. The kahikatea may be considered as nearly
the loftiest tree in the New Zealand forest; it often attains a
height of little less than two hundred feet, and in that
respect rivals the noble kauri, but the general appearance is
not very pleasing."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Trees,' p. 304:
"The kahikatea or kakaterra-tree (Dacrydium excelsum or
taxifolium). This majestic and noble-looking tree
belongs to the natural order of Taxaceae, more commonly
known by the name of Joint Firs. Height 150 to 180 feet,
rising sixty feet and upward without a branch."
1876: W. Blair, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. ix. art. 10, p. 160:
"This timber is known in all the provinces, except Otago, by
the native name of `kahikatea'. I think we should adopt it
also, not only on account of being more euphonious, but for
the reason that so many timbers in other parts of the world
are called white-pine."
1873. `Appendix to Journal of House of Representatives,'
vol. iii. G. 7, p. 11:
"On the purchased land stands, or lately stood, a small
kahikatea bush. . . . The wood appears to have been of no
great money value, but the natives living in Tareha's pa
depended upon it for their supply of fire-wood."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 124:
[It is Sir James Hector who assigns the tree to
Coniferae, not Taxaceae.]
1888. Cassell's' Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii. p. 210:
"The White Pine or kahikatea is a very beautiful tree, and
droops its dark feathery foliage in a way which recalls the
graceful branches of the English elm-tree."
Kahikatoa, n. Maori name for /a/ New Zealand
shrub, but no longer used by the settlers.
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 126:
"Kahikatoa, tea-tree of Cook. Leptospermum
scoparium, Forst., N.O. Myrtaceae."
Kahikomako, n. Maori name [shortened into
kaikomako] for a New Zealand timber, Pennantia
corymbosa, N.O. Olacineae; called also
Ribbonwood (q.v.).
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 130:
"Kahikomako, a small, very graceful tree, with white
sweet-smelling flowers; height twenty to thirty feet.
Wood used by the Maoris for kindling fires by friction."
Kai, n. Maori word for food; used also
in the South Sea islands. Kai-kai is an English
adaptation for feasting.
1807. J. Savage, `Some Account of New Zealand,' Vocab.
p. 75:
"Kiki . . . food." [The i has the English not the
Italian sound.]
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 157:
"Kai, s. victuals, support, etc.; a. eatable."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 29:
"He explained to us that every one would cry very much, and
then there would be very much kai-kai or feasting."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 95:
"Kai, the general word for food, is not used at Rotorua,
because it was the name of a great chief, and the word tami
has been substituted for it."
1895. Louis Becke and J. D. Fitzgerald, `The Maori in
Politics,' `Review of Reviews,' June 20, p. 621:
"We saw some thirty men and women coming towards us, singing
in chorus and keeping step to the music. In their hands they
carried small baskets woven of raupo reeds, containing kai,
or food. This was the `kai' dance."
Kainga, and Kaika, n. now generally
kaik, and pronounced kike, a Maori settlement,
village. Kainga is used in the North, and is the
original form; Kaika is the South Island use. It is the
village for dwelling; the pa is for fighting in.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 157:
"Kainga. A place of residence, a home," etc.
1873. Lt.-Colonel St. John, `Pakeha Rambles through Maori
Lands,' p. 164 [Heading of Chapter x.]:
"How we live in our kainga."
1896. `Otago Witness,' Jan. 23, p. 50, col. 5:
"A cosy-looking kainga located on the bank of a picturesque
bend of the river."
Ibid. p. 52, col. 1:
"We steamed on slowly towards Tawhitinui, a small kainga
or kaik, as it is called in the South island."
1884. `Maoriland,' p. 84:
"The drive may be continued from Portobello to the Maori kaik."
Kaio, n. popular corruption in the South Island
of New Zealand of Ngaio (q.v.).
Kaitaka, n. Maori word for the best kind of
native mat.
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 157:
"Requiring from three to four months' close sitting to complete
one of their kaitakas--the finest sort of mat which they
make. This garment has a very silky appearance."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 244:
"Pukaro ended by flinging over my shoulders a very handsome
kaitaka mat, which he had been wearing while he spoke."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 205:
"Highly prized and beautiful kaitaka mats."
Kaiwhiria, n. Maori name for New Zealand tree,
Hedycarya dentata, Forst., N.O. Monimiaceae.
Porokaiwhiri is the fuller name of the tree.
1883. /J./ Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 129
"Kaiwhiria, a small evergreen tree, twenty to thirty feet high;
the wood is finely marked and suitable for veneering."
Kaka, n. the Maori name for a parrot. The word
is imitative of a parrot's cry. It is now always used to
denote the Brown Parrot of New Zealand, Nestor
meridionalis, Gmel.
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 54:
"Kaka--a bird of the parrot kind; much larger than any other
New Zealand parrot."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 259:
"The kaka, a large russet parrot, of excellent flavour, and
very abundant in many places."
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 40:
"The bright red feathers from under the wing of the kaka or
large parrot."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' [Notes] p. 79:
"The kaka is a kind of parrot of a reddish grey colour,
and is easily tamed when taken young."
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 93:
"The hoarse croak of the ka-ka, as it alighted almost at our
feet, and prepared, quite careless of our vicinity, to tear up
the loose soil at the root of a tall tree, in search of grubs."
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' (Supplement):
"Nestor hypopolius, ka-ka parrot."
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 38:
"I heard mocking kakas wail and cry above thy corse."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 150:
"Nestor meridionalis, kaka parrot."
Ibid. p. 158:
"Sprightly in its actions, eminently social, and more noisy
than any other inhabitant of the woods, the kaka holds a
prominent place among our native birds."
Kaka-bill, n. a New Zealand plant, the
Clianthus (q.v.), so called from the supposed
resemblance of the flower to the bill of the Kaka
(q.v.). Called also Parrot-bill, Glory-Pea, and
Kowhai (q.v.).
1842. W. R. Wade, `Journey in New Zealand,' [Hobart Town].
p. 196:
"Kowai ngutukaka [parrot-bill kowai]; the most elegant
flowering shrub of the country."
1892. `Otago Witness,' Nov. 24, `Native Trees':
"A plantation of a shrub which is in great demand in England
and on the Continent, and is greatly neglected here--the
Clianthus puniceus, or scarlet glory pea of New Zealand,
locally known as kaka beak."
Kakapo, n. Maori name for the Night-parrot,
Stringops habroptilus, Gray. Called also
Owl-parrot. See Kaka. The syllable po
is Maori for night. Compare Katipo (q.v.).
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia' (Supplement):
"Strigops habroptilus, G. R. Gray, Kakapo, native name."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 149:
"Stringops, owl-parrot--ground-parrot of the colonists."
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 117:
"Although possessing large wings, it is flightless, its
breast-muscles being so small as to be practically useless.
Its habits are nocturnal, and it has a ring of feathers
arranged round the eye, giving it a curious resemblance to
an owl, whence the name owl-parrot is often applied to it."
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 445:
"Another remarkable bird is the owl parrot (Stringops
habroptilus) of a greenish colour, and with a circle of
feathers round the eye as in the owl. It is nocturnal in its
habits, lives in holes in the ground under tree-roots or
rocks."
1896. `Otago Witness,' June 11, p. 53:
"The Kakapo is one of our most unique birds."
Kakariki, n. Maori name for a green Parrakeet.
There are two species, Platycercus novae zelandiae,
Sparrm., and P. auriceps, Kuhl. See Parrakeet.
The word kakariki means literally little parrot,
kaka (q.v.) and iki (little), the r is
intrusive. It is applied also to a green lizard. In Maori it
becomes later an adjective, meaning `green.'
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 404:
"The Kakariki . . . (platycercus novae zeal.) is a
pretty light green parrot with a band of red or yellow over the
upper beak and under the throat. This elegant little bird is
about the size of a small thrush."
1894. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,' vol. xxvii.
p. 95 [Note]:
"The name Kakarika (indicative of colour) is applied
alike to the green lizard and to the green Parrakeet of our
woods."
Kamin, n. aboriginal word, explained in
quotation. It is probably local.
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 89:
"If he [the Australian black] has to climb a high tree, he
first goes into the scrub to fetch a piece of the Australian
calamus (Calamus australis), which he partly bites,
partly breaks off; he first bites on one side and breaks it
down, then on the other side and breaks it upwards--one, two,
three, and this tough whip is severed. At one end of it he
makes a knot, the other he leaves it as it is. This implement,
which is usually from sixteen to eighteen feet long, is called
a kamin."
Kanae, n. (trisyll.) Maori name for a fish
of New Zealand, the Silver-Mullet, Mugil perusii or
argenteus.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(C.M.S.), p. 158:
"Kanae, s. The mullet fish."
1888. Order in Council, New Zealand, Jan. 10, `Regulations
under the Fisheries Conservation Act':
"The months of December, January, and February in each year
are here prescribed a close season for the fish of the species
of the mugil known as mullet or kanae."
Kanaka, n. and adj. a labourer from the
South Sea Islands, working in Queensland sugar-plantations.
The word is Hawaiian (Sandwich Islands). The kindred words are
given in the following extract from
Fornander's Polynesian Race' (1885), vol. iii. p. 154:
"Kanaka, s. Hawaiian, man, human, mankind, a
common man in distinction from chiefs. Samoan, New Zealand
[sc. Maori], Tongan, tangata, man. Tahitian,
taata, man."
In the original word the accent is on the first syllable, which
accent Mr. Rudyard Kipling preserves (see quotation, 1893),
though he has changed the word in his reprint of the poem in
`The Seven Seas'; but the usual pronunciation in Australia is
to accent the second syllable.
1794. J. J. Jarves, `History of Hawaiian Islands,' printed at
Honolulu (1872), p. 82:
"[On 21st Feb. 1794.] A salute was then fired, and the natives
shouted, `Kanaka no Beritane'--we are men of Britain."
1852. A. Miller, `Narrative of United States Exploring
Expedition,' c. ii. p. 142:
"On Monday (Nov. 16, 1840) our gentlemen formed themselves into
two parties, and started on horseback for their journey. One
party consisted of Messrs. Reade, Rich, and Wall, with eight
kanakas and two guides."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. viii.
p. 133:
"Queensland at present is supplying itself with labour from
the South Sea Islands, and the men employed are called
Polynesians, or canakers, or islanders."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia, p. 162:
"The word `kanaka' is really a Maori word, signifying a man,
but in Australia it has come to be applied exclusively to the
inhabitants of the South Sea Islands."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Head Station,' p. 9:
"The kanaka reverences women and adores children. He is loyal
in heart, affectionate of disposition, and domestic in his
habits."
1888. H. S. Cooper, `The Islands of the Pacific,' p. 5:
"The kanakas, who at present populate Hawaii, are, as a rule,
well made and intelligent. That there is a cross of the Malay
and Indian blood in them few can doubt."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 64:
"Natives of the South Sea Islands, who in Australia are called
kanakas--a capable and intelligent race, especially to this
kind of work [on plantations], for they are strong, and endure
the tropical heat far better than the whites."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,'
p. 298:
"Thus, it is maintained by the planters, the kanaka, necessary
as he is to the conditions of North Queensland, opens up
avenues of skilled labour for the European, and makes
population and commerce possible where otherwise there would
be complete stagnation."
2892. `The Times,' Dec. 28:
"The principal open-air labour of the sugar plantations is
furnished by kanakas, who are the native inhabitants of certain
groups of South Sea Islands not at present under the protection
of any European flag."
1893. R. L. Stevenson, `Island Night's Entertainments,'
p. 41:
"What we want is a man-of-war--a German, if we could--they know
how to manage kanakas."
1893. Rudyard Kipling, `Banjo Song':
"We've shouted on seven-ounce nuggets,
We've starved on a kanaka's pay."
1893. C. H. Pearson, `National Life and Character,' p.32:
"In Australasia . . . the Maori, the Kanaka, and the Papuan
are dying out. We cannot close our eyes to the fact that
certain weak races--even when, like the kanaka, they possess
some very high qualities--seem to wither away at mere contact
with the European. . . . The kanakas (among whom we may include
the Maories)."
Kangaroo, n. (1) an aboriginal word.
See Marsupial.
(a) The Origin of the Name. The name was first obtained in
1770, while H.M.S. Endeavour lay beached at the
Endeavour River, where Cooktown, Queensland, now is. The name
first appears in print in 1773, in the book brought out by the
relatives of Mr. Parkinson, who was draughtsman to Banks the
naturalist, and who had died on the voyage. The object of this
book was to anticipate the official account of Cook's Voyage by
Hawkesworth, which appeared later in the same year. It is now
known that Hawkesworth's book was like a rope twisted of four
strands, viz. Cook's journal, the diaries of the two
naturalists, Banks and Solander, and quartum quid, the
Johnsonian pomposity of Dr. Hawkesworth. Cook's journal was
published in 1893, edited by Captain Wharton, hydrographer to
the Admiralty; Banks's journal, in 1896, edited by Sir J. D.
Hooker. Solander's journal has never been printed.
When Englishmen next came to Australia in 1788, it was found
that the word Kangaroo was not known to the natives
round Port Jackson, distant 1500 miles to the South of
Cooktown. In fact, it was thought by them to be an English
word. (See quotation, Tench, 1789.) It is a question whether
the word has belonged to any aboriginal vocabulary since.
"Capt. Philip P. King, the explorer, who visited that locality
[sc. Endeavour River] forty-nine years after Cook, relates in
his `Narrative of the Survey of the Intertropical and Western
Coasts of Australia,' that he found the word kangaroo unknown
to the tribe he met there, though in other particulars the
vocabulary he compiled agrees very well with Captain Cook's."
(Curr's `Australian Race,' vol. i. p. 27.) In the fourth
volume of Curr's book a conspectus is given of the words used
in different parts of Australia for various objects. In the
list of names for this animal there are a few that are not far
from Kangaroo, but some inquirers suspect the accuracy
of the list, or fancy that the natives obtained the words
sounding like Kangaroo from English. It may be assumed
that the word is not now in use as an aboriginal word. Has it,
then, disappeared? or was it an original mistake on the part of
Banks or Cook ?
The theory of a mistake has obtained widely. It has figured in
print, and finds a place in at least one dictionary. Several
correspondents have written that the word Kangaroo meant
"I don't understand," and that Banks mistook this for a name.
This is quite possible, but at least some proof is needed, as
for instance the actual words in the aboriginal language that
could be twisted into this meaning. To find these words, and
to hear their true sound, would test how near the explanation
hits the mark. Banks was a very careful observer, and he
specially notes the precautions he took to avoid any mistake in
accepting native words. Moreover, according to Surgeon
Anderson, the aborigines of Van Diemen's Land described the
animal by the name of Kangaroo. (See quotation, 1787.)
On the other hand, it must be remembered that it is an
ascertained fact that the aborigines taboo a word on the death
of any one bearing that word as a proper name. (See quotation
under Nobbler, 1880.) If, therefore, after Cook's visit,
some man called Kangaroo died, the whole tribe would
expunge Kangaroo from its vocabulary. There is,
however, some evidence that the word was much later in use
in Western Australia. (See quotation, 1835.)
It is now asserted that the word is in use again at the very
part of Queensland where the Endeavour was beached.
Lumholtz, in his `Amongst Cannibals' (p. 311), gives it in his
aboriginal vocabulary. Mr. De Vis, of the Brisbane Museum, in
his paper before the Geographical Society at Brisbane (1894),
says that "in point of fact the word `kangaroo' is the normal
equivalent for kangaroo at the Endeavour River; and not only
so, it is almost the type-form of a group of variations in use
over a large part of Australia." It is curiously hard to
procure satisfactory evidence as to the fact. Mr. De Vis says
that his first statement was "made on the authority of a
private correspondent; "but another correspondent writes from
Cooktown, that the blacks there have taken Kangaroo from
English. Inquiries inserted in each of the Cooktown newspapers
have produced no result. Mr. De Vis' second argument as to the
type-form seems much stronger. A spoken language, unwritten,
unprinted, must inevitably change, and change rapidly. A word
current in 1770 would change rather than disappear, and the
root consonants would remain. The letters ng together,
followed by r, occur in the proportion of one in
thirteen, of the names for the animal tabulated by Curr.
It is a difficult matter on which to speak decidedly, but
probably no great mistake was made, and the word received was
a genuine name of the animal.
See further the quotations, 1896.
(b) The Plural of the Word.
There seems to be considerable doubt as to the plural of the
word, whether it should take s like most English words,
or remain unchanged like sheep, deer. In two
consecutive pages of one book the two plurals are used. The
general use is the plural in s. See 1793 Hunter, 1845
Balfour, and 1880 Senior; sportsmen frequently use the form
Kangaroo.
[Since 1888 a kangaroo has been the design on the one-shilling
postage stamp of New South Wales.]
1815. `History of New South Wales,' (1818) PP. 460-461:
"Throughout the general course of the journey, kangaroos, emus,
ducks, etc. were seen in numbers." "Mr. Evans saw the
kangaroo in immense flocks."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 49:
"The kangaroos are too subtle and shy for us to get near."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 125:
"In the afternoon we saw some kangaroos and wallaby, but did
not succeed in killing any."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. iii. p. 23:
"Though kangaroo were plentiful, they were not overwhelming to
number."
(c) Kangaroo in French.
1777. Buffon, `Supplement a l'Histoire Naturelle,' tom. iv.
`Table des Matieres':
"Kanguros, espece de grosse Gerboise qui se trouve dans les
terres australes de la Nouvelle Hollande."
1800. J. J. Labillardiere, `Voyage a la recherche de La
Perouse,' tom. i. p. 134: [Under date April 24, 1792.]
"Un de nos chasseurs trouva un jeune kangourou sur les bords de
la mer."
1880. H. de Charency, `Recherches sur les Dialectes
Tasmaniens,' p. 21:
"Kangourou. Ce mot semble d'origine non Australienne, comme on
l'a soutenu, mais bien Tasmanienne."
1882. Littre, `Dictionnaire de la Langue Francaise' (s.v.):
"Kanguroo ou kangarou. On ecrit aussi kangarou et kangourou."
1882. A. Daudet, `Jack,' p. 131:
Il regardait les kangaroos dresses sur leurs pattes, si
longues qu'elles ont l'agilite et l'elan d'une paire d'ailes."
1890. Oscar Comettant [Title]:
"Au Pays des Kangourous."
(d) Kangaroo in German--Kaenguruh:
1892. R. V. Lendenfeld, `Australische Reise,' p. 46:
"Die Kaenguruh hoben in dem Augenblick, als sie das Geheul
hoerten, die Koepfe hoch and witterten, blickten and loosten
in alle Richtungen."
Notice that both in French and German the u sound of the
middle syllable is preserved and not changed as in English to
a.
(e) The species.
The name Kangaroo is applied to the following larger
species of the genus Macropus, the remaining species
being called Wallabies--
Antilopine Kangaroo--
Macropus antilopinus, Gould.
Great Grey K., or Forester--
M. giganteus, Zimm.
Great Red K.--
M. rufus, Desm.
Isabelline K.--
M. isabellinus, Gould.
Owen's K.--
M. magnus, Owen.
Wallaroo, or Euro--
M. robustus, Gould.
The name Kangaroo is also applied to certain other
species of Marsupials belonging to the genus Macropus,
but with a qualifying adjective, such as Dorca-,
Tree-, Rat-, Musk-, etc.; and it is
applied to species of the genera Dorcopsis,
Dendrolagus, Bettongia, and Hypsiprymnodon. The
Brush-Kangaroo (q.v.) is another name for the
Wallaby (q.v.), and the Rat-Kangaroo is the
stricter scientific appellation of Kangaroo-Rat (q.v.).
The Banded-Kangaroo is a Banded-Wallaby (see
Lagostrophus). See also Dorca-Kangaroo,
Tree-Kangaroo, Musk-Kangaroo, Dorcopsis,
Dendrolagus, Bettongia, Hypsiprymnodon,
Rock-Wallaby, Paddy-melon, Forester,
Old Man,, Joey, and Boomah.
(f) The Use of the Word.
1770. `Capt. Cook's Journal' (edition Wharton, 1893), p. 244:
May 1st. An animal which must feed upon grass, and which,
we judge, could not be less than a deer."
[p. 280]: "June 23rd. One of the men saw an animal something
less than a greyhound; it was of a mouse colour, very slender
made, and swift of foot."
[p. 294]: August 4th. "The animals which I have before
mentioned, called by the Natives Kangooroo or Kanguru."
[At Endeavour River, Queensland.]
1770. Joseph Banks, `Journal' (edition Hooker, 1896), p. 287:
"July 14.--Our second Lieutenant had the good fortune to
kill the animal that had so long been the subject of our
speculations. To compare it to any European animal would be
impossible, as it has not the least resemblance to any one that
I have seen. Its forelegs are extremely short, and of no use
to 1t in walking; its hind again as disproportionally long;
with these it hops seven or eight feet at a time, in the same
manner as the jerboa, to which animal indeed it bears much
resemblance, except in size, this being in weight 38 lbs., and
the jerboa no larger than a common rat."
Ibid. p. 301:
"August 26.--Quadrupeds we saw but few, and were able to
catch but few of those we did see. The largest was called by
the natives kangooroo; it is different from any
European, and, indeed, any animal I have heard or read of,
except the jerboa of Egypt, which is not larger than a rat,
while this is as large as a middling lamb. The largest we shot
weighed 84 lbs. It may, however, be easily known from all
other animals by the singular property of running, or rather
hopping, upon only its hinder legs, carrying its fore-feet
close to its breast. In this manner it hops so fast that in
the rocky bad ground where it is commonly found, it easily beat
my greyhound, who though he was fairly started at several,
killed only one, and that quite a young one."
1773. Sydney Parkinson, `Journal of a Voyage,' p. 149:
"Kangooroo, the leaping quadruped."
[A description given at p. 145.]
1773. J. Hawkesworth, `Voyages,' vol. iii. p. 577:
"July 14, 1770. Mr. Gore, who went out this day with his gun,
had the good fortune to kill one of the animals which had been
so much the subject of our speculation. An idea of it will
best be conceived by the cut, plate xx., without which the most
accurate verbal description would answer very little purpose,
as it has not similitude enough to any animal already known to
admit of illustration by reference. In form it is most like
the gerbua, which it also resembles in its motion, as has been
observed already, for it greatly differs in size, the gerbua
not being larger than a common rat, and this animal, when full
grown, being as big as a sheep: this individual was a young
one, much under its full growth, weighing only thirty-eight
pounds. The head, neck, and shoulders are very small in
proportion to the other parts of the body; the tail is nearly
as long as the body, thick near the rump, and tapering towards
the end: the fore-legs of this individual were only eight
inches long, and the hind-legs two-and-twenty: its progress is
by successive leaps or hops, of a great length, in an erect
posture; the fore-legs are kept bent close to the breast, and
seemed to be of use only for digging: the skin is covered with
a short fur, of a dark mouse or grey colour, excepting the head
and ears, which bear a slight resemblance to those of a hare.
In form it is most like the gerbua. This animal is called by the
natives `kangaroo.'" [This account, it will be seen, is based
on the notes of Banks.]
1774. Oliver Goldsmith, `Animated Nature,' Book VII. c. xvi.,
The Gerbua,' [in four-vol. ed., vol. iii. p. 30]:
"But of all animals of this kind, that which was first
discovered and described by Mr. Banks is the most
extraordinary. He calls it the kanguroo; and though from its
general outline and the most striking peculiarities of its
figure it greatly resembles the gerbua, yet it entirely
differs, if we consider its size, or those minute distinctions
which direct the makers of systems in assorting the general
ranks of nature. The largest of the gerbua kind which are to
be found in the ancient continent do not exceed the size of a
rabbit. The kanguroo of New Holland, where it is only to be
found, is often known to weigh above sixty pounds, and must
consequently be as large as a sheep. Although the skin of that
which was stuffed and brought home by Mr. Banks was not much
above the size of a hare, yet it was greatly superior to any of
the gerbua kind that have been hitherto known, and very
different in many particulars. The snout of the gerbua, as has
been said, is short and round, that of the discovered animal
long and slender; the teeth also entirely differ, for as the
gerbua has but two cutting teeth in each jaw, making four in
all, this animal, besides its cutting teeth, has four canial
teeth also; but what makes a more striking peculiarity, is the
formation of its lower jaw, which, as the ingenious discoverer
supposes, is divided into two parts which open and shut like a
pair of scissors, and cut grass, probably this animal's
principal food. The head, neck, and shoulders are very small
in proportion to the other parts of the body; the tail is
nearly as long as the body; thick near the rump and tapering
towards the head and ears, which bear a slight resemblance to
those of the hare. We are not told, however, from the
formation of its stomach to what class of quadrupeds it
belongs: from its eating grass, which it has been seen to do,
one would be apt to rank it among the ruminating animals; but
from the canial teeth which it is found to have, we may on the
other hand suppose it to bear some relation to the carnivorous.
Upon the whole, however, it can be classed with none more
properly than with the animals of the gerbua kind, as its
hind-legs are so much longer than the fore; it moves also
precisely in the same manner, taking great bounds of ten or
twelve feet at a time, and thus sometimes escaping the fleetest
greyhound, with which Mr. Banks pursued it. One of them that
was killed proved to be good food; but a second, which weighed
eighty-four pounds, and was not yet come to its full growth,
was found to be much inferior."
1787, Surgeon Anderson, quoted by W. Eden, in `History of New
Holland' (second edition), p. 71:
"However, we must have a far more intimate acquaintance with
the languages spoken here [Van Diemen's Land] and in the more
northern parts of New Holland, before we can pronounce that
they are totally different; nay, we have good grounds for the
opposite opinion; for we found that the animal called kangaroo
at Endeavour River was known under the same name here."
1781. T. Pennant, `History of Quadrupeds,' vol. i. p. 306:
No. 184. [A Scientific Description of the Kangaroo.]
1789. Governor Phillip, `Voyage':
[p. 106]: "The kangaroo."
[p. 168]: "Skeleton of the head of the kangaroo."
[At each of these places there is a description and a picture.
Under each picture the name is spelt "Kangooroo." At p. 289
there is a further note on the kanguroo. In the text at p. 149
the spelling " Kangooroo " is adopted.]
Ibid. p. 104:
"The kanguroo, though it resembles the jerboa in the
peculiarity of using only the hinder legs in progression,
does not belong to that genus."
Ibid, p. 168:
"Since stating the dimensions of the kanguroo, in page 106,
Lord Sydney has received from Governor Phillip a male of a much
larger size. . . . Lieutenant Shortland describes them as
feeding in herds of about thirty or forty, and assures us that
one is always observed to be apparently upon the watch at a
distance from the rest."
1789. Watkin Tench, `Account of the Settlement of Port
Jackson,' p. 171:
"Kangaroo was a name unknown to them [the aborigines of Port
Jackson] for any animal, until we introduced it. When I showed
Colbee [an aboriginal] the cows brought out in the Gorgon he
asked me if they were kangaroos."
1793. Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 66:
"The animal described in the voyage of the Endeavour,
called the kangaroo (but by the natives patagorang), we found
in great numbers."
Ibid. p. 568:
"I had a kanguroo on board, which I had directions to carry to
Lord Grenville, as a present for his Majesty.--Nov. 26, 1791."
[There is no statement whether the animal reached England.]
Ibid. p. 402:
"In rowing up this branch, we saw a flock of about thirty
kangaroos or paderong, but they were only visible during their
leaps, as the very long grass hid them from our view."
1809. G. Shaw, `Zoological Lectures,' vol. i. p. 94:
"The genus Macropus or kangaroo . . . one of the most
elegant as well as curious animals discovered in modern times."
[Under the picture and in list of contents: Kanguroo.]
1814. M. Flinders, `Voyage to Terra Australis,' Introd.
p. lxiii:
"An animal found upon one of the islands is described [by
Dampier, `Voyage to New Holland,' vol. iii. p. 123] as `a
sort of raccoon, different from that of the West Indies,
chiefly as to the legs; for these have very short fore legs;
but go jumping upon them' [not upon the short fore, but the
long hind legs, it is to be presumed] `as the others do; and
like them are very good meat.' This appears to have been the
small kangaroo, since found upon the islands which form the
road; and if so, this description is probably the first ever
made of that singular animal" [though without the name].
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description of New South Wales,'
p. 57:
"Coursing the kangaroo and emu forms the principal amusement
of the sporting part of the colonists.
(p. 68): The colonists generally pursue this animal [kangaroo]
at full speed on horseback, and frequently manage,
notwithstanding its extraordinary swiftness, to be up at the
death."
1833. Charles Lamb, `Essays of Elia' [edition 1895], p. 151,
`Distant Correspondents':
"The kangaroos--your Aborigines--do they keep their primitive
simplicity un-Europe-tainted, with those little short fore
puds, looking like a lesson framed by nature to the
pick-pocket! Marry, for diving into fobs they are rather
lamely provided a priori; but if the hue and cry were
once up, they would show as fair a pair of hind-shifters as the
expertest loco motor in the colony."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. I. c. iii. p. 106:
"Those that were noticed were made of the red kangaroo-skin."
1834. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar of the Language
spoken by the Aborigines, at Hunter's River,' p. 87:
"Kong-go-rong, The Emu, from the noise it makes, and likely
the origin of the barbarism, kangaroo, used by the English, as
the name of an animal, called Mo-a-ne."
1835. T. B. Wilson, `Narrative of a Voyage round the World,
etc.' p. 212:
"They [natives of the Darling Range, W.A.] distinctly
pronounced `kangaroo' without having heard any of us utter that
sound: they also called it waroo, but whether they
distinguished `kangaroo' (so called by us, and also by them)
from the smaller kind, named `wallabi,' and by them
`waroo,' we could not form any just conclusion."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 23:
"Kangaroos are of six different species, viz. the forester,
the flyer, the wallaby, the wallaroo, the kangaroo-rat,
and the kangaroo-mouse."
[This is of course merely a popular classification.]
1845. J. A. Moore, `Tasmanian Rhymings,' p. 15:
"A kangaroo, like all his race,
Of agile form and placid face."
1861. W. M. Thackeray, `Roundabout Papers', p.83:
"The fox has brought his brush, and the cock has brought his
comb, and the elephant has brought his trunk and the kangaroo
has brought his bag, and the condor his old white wig and black
satin hood."
1880. W. Senior, `Travel and Trout,' p. 8:
"To return to the marsupials. I have been assured that
the kangaroos come first and eat off the grass; that the
wallabies, following, grub up the roots."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 114:
"Sometimes a kangaroo would come down with measured thud,
thud, and drink, and then return without noticing the human
beings."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 118:
"According to the traditions of the bush--not always
reliable--the name of kangaroo was given under a misconception.
An aborigine being asked by one of the early discoverers the
name of the animal, replied, `Kangaroo' (`I don't know'), and
in this confession of ignorance or misapprehension the name
originated. It seems absurd to suppose that any black hunter
was really ignorant of the name of an animal which once
represented the national wealth of Australians as the merino
does to-day."
[The tradition is not quite so ridiculous, if the answer
meant--"I don't know what you mean,--I don't understand you."
See above.]
1891. `Guide Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"In this enclosure is a wooden model of a kangaroo of ancient
times. This is copied from a restoration by Professor McCoy,
who was enabled to represent it from fossil remains which have
been unearthed at various places in Australia."
1896. E. Meston, `Sydney Bulletin,' April 18:
"The origin of the word `kangaroo' was published by me six
years ago. Captain Cook got it from the Endeavor River blacks,
who pronounce it to-day exactly as it is spelled in the great
navigator's journal, but they use it now only for the big toe.
Either the blacks in Cook's time called the kangaroo `big toe'
for a nick-name, as the American Indians speak of the `big
horn,' or the man who asked the name of the animal was holding
it by the hind foot, and got the name of the long toe, the
black believing that was the part to which the question
referred."
1896. Rev. J. Mathew, Private Letter, Aug. 31:
"Most names of animals in the Australian dialects refer to their
appearance, and the usual synthesis is noun + adjective; the
word may be worn down at either end, and the meaning lost to
the native mind.
"A number of the distinct names for kangaroo show a
relation to words meaning respectively nose, leg, big,
long, either with noun and adjective to combination or
one or other omitted.
"The word kangaroo is probably analysable into ka
or kang, nose (or head), and goora,
long, both words or local equivalents being widely
current."
(2) Wild young cattle (a special use)--
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 290:
"A stockyard under six feet high will be leaped by some of
these kangaroos (as we term them) with the most perfect ease,
and it requires to be as stout as it is high to resist their
rushes against it."
(3) Used playfully, and as a nickname for persons and things
Australian. An Australian boy at an English school is
frequently called "Kangaroo." It is a Stock Exchange nickname
for shares in Western Australian gold-mining companies.
1896. `Nineteenth Century' (Nov.), p. 711:
"To the 80,000,000 Westralian mining shares now in existence
the Stock Exchange has long since conceded a special `market';
and it has even conferred upon these stocks a nickname--the
surest indication of importance and popularity. And that
`Kangaroos,' as they were fondly called, could boast of
importance and popularity nobody would dare to gainsay."
(4) A kind of chair, apparently from the shape.
1834. Miss Edgeworth, `Helen,' c. xvi. (`Century'):
"It was neither a lounger nor a dormeuse, nor a Cooper, nor a
Nelson, nor a Kangaroo: a chair without a name would never do;
in all things fashionable a name is more than half. Such a
happy name as Kangaroo Lady Cecilia despaired of finding."
Kangarooade, n. a Kangaroo hunt; nonce word.
See quotation.
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings among the Gum Trees,'
p. 86:
"The Kangarooade--in three Spirts."
[Title of a poem.]
Kangaroo-Apple, n. an Australian and Tasmanian
fruit, Solanum aviculare, Forst., N.O.
Solanaceae. The name is also applied to S. vescum,
called the Gunyang (q.v.). In New Zealand, the fruit is
called Poroporo (q.v.).
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual, p. 133:
`Solanum laciniatum, the kangaroo-apple, resembling the
apple of a potato; when so ripe as to split, it has a mealy
sub-acid taste."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 85:
"The kangaroo-apple (Solanum laciniatum) is a fine shrub
found in many parts of the country, bearing a pretty blue
flower and a fruit rather unpleasant to the taste, although
frequently eaten by the natives, and also by Europeans."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 132:
"The kangaroo-apple comes from a bush or small tree bearing
blue blossoms, which are succeeded by apples like those of the
potato. They have a sweetish flavour, and when ripe may be
boiled and eaten, but are not greatly prized."
1857. F. R. Nixon (Bishop), `Cruise of Beacon,' p. 28:
"Of berries and fruits of which they partook, the principal
were those of Solanum laciniatum, or kangaroo-apple,
when dead ripe."
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 105:
"Solanum aviculare, on which our colonists have very
inappropriately bestowed the name Kangaroo-apple, while
in literal scientific translation it ought to be called Bird's
Nightshade, because Captain Cook's companions observed in New
Zealand that birds were feeding on the berries of this bush."
Kangaroo-Dog, n. a large dog, lurcher,
deerhound, or greyhound, used for hunting the Kangaroo.
1806. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 265:
"Shortly before the Estramina left the River Derwent,
two men unfortunately perished by a whale-boat upsetting, in
which they were transporting four valuable kangaroo-dogs to the
opposite side, none of which ever reached the shore."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 141:
"The kind of dog used for coursing the kangaroo is generally a
cross between the greyhound and the mastiff or sheep-dog; but
in a climate like New South Wales they have, to use the common
phrase, too much lumber about them. The true bred greyhound is
the most useful dog: he has more wind; he ascends the hills
with more ease; and will run double the number of courses in a
day. He has more bottom in running, and if he has less
ferocity when he comes up with an `old man,' so much the
better, as he exposes himself the less, and lives to afford
sport another day."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 31:
"They . . . are sometimes caught by the kangaroo-dogs."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 126:
"A fine kangaroo-dog was pointed out to us, so fond of
kangarooing that it goes out alone, kills the game, and then
fetches its master to the dead animals."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 422:
"With the gun over his shoulder, and the kangaroo-dog in a
leash by his side."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' c. iii.
p. 35:
"On every station, also, a large kind of greyhound, a cross
of the Scotch greyhound and English bulldog, called the
kangaroo-dog, which runs by sight, is kept for the purpose
of their destruction."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 91:
"Kangaroo-dogs are a special breed, a kind of strong
greyhound."
1893. `The Argus,' April 8, p. 4, col. 1:
"That big, powerful, black kangaroo-dog Marmarah was well worth
looking at, with his broad, deep chest, intelligent, determined
eyes, sinews of a gymnast, and ribs like Damascus steel. On
his black skin he bore marks of many honourable fights; the
near side showed a long, whitish line where the big emu he had
run down, tackled single-handed, and finally killed, had laid
him open. His chest and legs showed numerous grey scars, each
with a history of its own of which he might well be proud."
Kangaroo-Fly, n. a small Australian fly,
Cabarus. See quotations.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. I. c. ii. p. 71:
"Our camp was infested by the kangaroo-fly, which settled upon
us in thousands."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 313 [Note]:
"Rather smaller than the house-fly, it acts with such celerity
that it has no sooner settled on the face or hands than it
inflicts instantaneously a painful wound, which often bleeds
subsequently. It is called by the colonists the kangaroo-fly;
and though not very common, the author can testify that it is
one of the most annoying pests of Australia."
Kangaroo-Grass, n. a name given to several
species of grasses of the genera Anthistiria and
Andropogon, chiefly from their height, but also because,
when they are young and green in spring, the Kangaroo
feeds on them. Andropogon is more like a rush or sedge,
and is sometimes so high as to completely conceal horses. See
Grass.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 209:
"Of native grasses we possess the oat-grass, rye-grass,
fiorin, kangaroo-grass, and timothy,--blady grass growing in wet,
flooded, alluvial spots, and wire-grass upon cold, wet, washed
clays."
1838. `Report of Van Diemen's Land Company,' in J. Bischoff's
`Van Diemen's Land' (1832), c. v. p. 119:
"The grasses were principally timothy, foxtail, and single
kangaroo."
1845. T. L. Mitchell, `Tropical Australia, p. 88:
"A new species of Anthistiria occurred here, perfectly
distinct from the kangaroo grass of the colony."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 131:
"The most conspicuous of the native Gramineae that so
widely cover the surface of Australia Felix."
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 36:
"Where are the genial morning dews of former days that used to
glisten upon and bespangle the vernal-leaved kangaroo grass?"
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania,' p. 393:
"Between the Lake River and Launceston . . . I was most
agreeably surprised in beholding the novel sight of a spacious
enclosure of waving kangaroo grass, high and thick-standing as
a good crop of oats, and evidently preserved for seed."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 8:
"Not even a withered wisp of kangaroo-grass."
(p. 193):
"The long brown kangaroo-grass."
1891. `The Argus,' Dec. 19, p. 4, col. 2:
"Had they but pulled a tuft of the kangaroo-grass beneath their
feet, they would have found gold at its roots."
Kangaroo-hop, n. a peculiar affected gait. See
quotation.
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), May 22, p. 27, col. 2:
"The young lady that affects waterfalls, the Grecian-bend,
or the kangaroo hop."
Kangaroo-Hound, n. i.q. Kangaroo-Dog
(q.v.).
1865. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 28:
"A large dog, a kangaroo-hound (not unlike a lurcher in
appearance)."
Kangarooing, vb. n. hunting the kangaroo.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' p. 257:
"In chasing kangaroos, or, as it is technically termed,
`kangarooing,' large powerful dogs are used . . ."
1870. E. B. Kennedy, `Four Years in Queensland,' p. 194:
"You may be out Kangarooing; the dogs take after one
[a kangaroo], and it promises to be a good course."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 15:
"We were sick of kangarooing, like the dogs themselves,
that as they grew old would run a little way and then pull
up if a mob came jump, jump, past them."
Kangaroo-Mouse, n. more strictly called the
Pouched-Mouse (q.v.).
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 256:
"It is a long chain from the big forester, down through the
different varieties of wallaby to the kangaroo-rat, and finally,
to the tiny interesting little creature known on the plains as
the `kangaroo-mouse'; but all have the same characteristics."
Kangaroo-net, n. net made by the natives to
catch the kangaroo.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 45:
"I found . . . four fine kangaroo-nets, made of the bark of
sterculia."
Kangaroo-Rat, or Rat-Kangaroo, n.
the name applied to species of Marsupials belonging to the
following genera, viz.--
(1) Potorous, (2) Caloprymnus, (3)
Bettongia, (4) AEpyprymnus.
(1) The first genus (Potorous, q.v.) includes animals
about the size of a large rat; according to Gould, although
they stand much on their hind-legs they run in a totally
different way to the kangaroo, using fore and hind-legs in a
kind of gallop and never attempting to kick with the hind-feet.
The aboriginal name was Potoroo. The species are
three--the Broad-faced Kangaroo-Rat, Potorous platyops,
Gould; Gilbert's, P. gilberti, Gould; Common,
P. tridactylus, Kerr. They are confined to Australia
and Tasmania, and one Tasmanian variety of the last species is
bigger than the mainland form. There is also a dwarf Tasmanian
variety of the same species.
(2) A second genus (Caloprymnus, q.v.) includes the
Plain Kangaroo-Rat; it has only one species,
C. campestris, Gould, confined to South Australia.
The epithet plain refers to its inhabiting plains.
(3) A third genus (Bettongia, q.v.) includes the
Prehensile-tailed Rat-Kangaroos and has four species,
distributed in Australia and Tasmania--
Brush-tailed Kangaroo-Rat--
Bettongia penicillata, Gray.
Gaimard's K.-R.--
B. gaimardi, Desm.
Lesueur's K.-R.--
B. lesueuri, Quoy and Gaim.
Tasmanian K.-R.--
B. cuniculus, Ogilby.
(4) A fourth genus (AEpyprymnus, q.v.) includes the
Rufous Kangaroo-Rat. It has one species, AE. rufescens,
Grey. It is the largest of the Kangaroo-Rats and is
distinguished by its ruddy colour, black-backed ears,
and hairy nose.
[Mr. Lydekker proposes to call the animal the Rat-
Kangaroo (see quotation, 1894), but the name Kangaroo-
Rat is now so well-established that it does not seem
possible to supersede it by the, perhaps, more correct name of
Rat-Kangaroo. The introduction of the word
Kangaroo prevents any possibility of confusion between
this animal and the true rodent, and it would seem to be a
matter of indifference as to which word precedes or follows the
other.]
1788. Governor Phillip (Despatch, May 15), in `Historical
Records of New South Wales,' vol. I. pt. ii. p. 135:
"Many trees were seen with holes that had been enlarged by the
natives to get at the animal, either the squirrel, kangaroo
rat, or opossum, for the going in of which perhaps they wait
under their temporary huts, and as the enlarging these holes
could only be done with the shell they used to separate the
oysters from the rocks, must require great patience."
1793 Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 61:
"As most of the large trees are hollow by being rotten in the
heart, the opossum, kangaroo-rat, squirrel, and various other
animals which inhabit the woods, when they are pursued,
commonly run into the hollow of a tree."
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. xi.
p. 430:
"The poto roo, or kangaroo-rat. . . . This curious animal
which is indeed a miniature of the Kangaroo."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 28:
"The kangaroo-rat is a small inoffensive animal and perfectly
distinct from the ordinary species of rat."
1836. C. Darwin, `Naturalist's Voyage,' c. xix. p. 321:
"The greyhounds pursued a kangaroo-rat into a hollow tree,
out of which we dragged it; it is an animal as large as a
rabbit, but with the figure of a kangaroo."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 37:
"The kangaroo-rat is twice the size of a large English
water-rat, and of the same colour, measuring nearly two feet
in length."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1853), p. 157:
"Two or three of the smallest kind, called the kangaroo-rat--
about the size of a hare, and affording pretty good coursing."
1860. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 195:
"One of the skin aprons . . . made from the skin of a
kangaroo-rat."
1879. C. W. Schurmann, `Native Tribes of Australia--Port
Lincoln Tribe,' p. 214:
"The natives use this weapon [the Waddy] principally
for throwing at kangaroo-rats or other small animals."
1890. A. H. S. Lucas, `Handbook of the Australasian
Association for the Advancement of Science,' Melbourne, p. 63:
"The Victorian Kangaroo rat is Bettongia cuniculus."
1894. R.Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 63:
"The rat-kangaroos, often incorrectly spoken of as
kangaroo-rats."
Kangaroo-skin, n. either the leather for the
tanned hide, or the complete fur for rugs and wraps.
1806. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 258:
"The fitness of the kangaroo-skin for upper leathers will no
doubt obtain preference over most of the imported leather, as
it is in general lighter and equally durable."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 106:
"I used always to strip and preserve the pelt, for it makes
good and pretty door-mats, and is most useful for pouches,
leggings, light-whips, or any purpose where you require
something strong and yet neater than green hide. I have seen
saddles covered with it, and kangaroo-skin boots are very
lasting and good."
Kangaroo-tail Soup, n. soup made from the
kangaroo-tail.
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description of New South Wales,'
p. 58:
"The tail of the forest kangaroo in particular makes a soup
which, both in richness and flavour, is far superior to any
ox-tail soup ever tasted."
1865. Lady Barker, writing from Melbourne, `Station Life in
New Zealand,' p. 14:
"The soups comprised kangaroo-tail--a clear soup not unlike
ox-tail, but with a flavour of game."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xxxv. p. 312:
"Kangaroo-tail and ox-tail soup disputed pre-eminence."
Kangaroo-Thorn, n. an indigenous hedge-plant,
Acacia armata, R. Br., N.O. Leguminosae; called
also Kangaroo Acacia.
Kapai, adj. Maori word for good, used
by the English in the North Island of New Zealand; e.g. "That is
a kapai pipe." "I have a kapai gun."
1896. `New Zealand Herald,' Feb. 14 (Leading Article):
"The Maori word which passed most familiarly into the speech
of Europeans was `kapai,' `this is good.'"
Kapu, n. Maori word for a stone adze. The
Maori word means the hollow of the hand. The adze is so called
from its curved shape. (Williams, `Maori Dict.')
1889. `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,' p. 140:
"Kapu,, or adze."
Karaka, n. Maori name for a tree,
Corynocarpus laevigata, Forst. N.O. anacardiaceae;
also called Cow-tree (q.v.), forty feet high, with orange-
coloured berries, two to three inches long.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 226:
"Two or three canoes were hauled up under some karaka trees,
which formed a pleasant grove in a sort of recess from the
beach."
Ibid. vol. i. p. 233:
"The karaka-tree much resembles the laurel in its growth and
foliage. It bears bright orange-coloured berries about the
size and shape of damsons, growing in bunches. The fruit is
sickly and dry; but the kernel forms an important article of
native food."
1859. A. S. Thomson, `Story of New Zealand,' p. 157:
"The karaka fruit is about the size of an acorn. The pulp is
eaten raw; the kernel is cooked in the oven for ten days, and
then steeped for several weeks in a running stream before it is
fit for use. Karaka berries for winter use are dried in the
sun. The kernel is poisonous uncooked."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 108:
"The thick karakas' varnished green."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 102:
"The karaka with its brilliantly polished green leaves
and golden yellow fruit."
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 35:
"Bring the heavy karaka leaf,
Gather flowers of richest hue."
1892. `Otago Witness,' Nov. 10. (Native Trees):
"Corynocarpus laevigata (generally known by the name of
karaka). The fruit is poisonous, and many deaths of children
occur through eating it. Mr. Anderson, a surgeon who
accompanied Captain Cook, mentions this tree and its fruit, and
says the sailors ate it, but does not say anything about it
being poisonous. The poison is in the hard inner part, and it
may be that they only ate the outer pulp."
Karamu, n. Maori name for several species of
the New Zealand trees of the genus Coprosma,
N.O. Rubiaceae. Some of the species are called
Tree-karamu, and others Bush-karamu; to the
latter (C. lucida, Kirk) the name Coffee-plant,
or Coffee-bush, is also applied.
1874. J. White, `Te Rou, or the Maori at Home,' p. 221:
"Then they tied a few Karamu branches in front of them and went
towards the settlement."
1876. J. C. Crawford, `Transactions of the New Zealand
Institute,' vol. IX. art. lxxx. p. 545:
"I have seen it stated that coffee of fine flavour has been
produced from the karamu, coprosma lucida."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 132:
"Karamu. an ornamental shrub-tree; wood close-grained and
yellow; might be used for turnery."
1887. T. F. Cheeseman, `Transactions of the New Zealand
Institute,' vol. XX. art. xxii. p. 143:
"The first plant of interest noted was a new species of
coprosma, with the habit of the common karamu."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 275:
"`Karamu' is applied by the Maoris to several species of
Coprosma, amongst which, I believe, this
[C. arborea] is included, but it is commonly termed
`tree-karamu' by bushmen and settlers in the North."
1891. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' `New Zealand Country
Journal,' vol. xv. p. 105:
"Of these fruits that of the karamu, (Coprosma lucida),
seemed to be amongst the first to be selected."
Kareau or Kareao, n. Maori name for
Supplejack (q.v.).
Karmai, n. used by settlers in South Island of
New Zealand for Towhai (q.v.), a New Zealand tree,
Weinmannia racemosa, Forst. N.O. Saxifrageae.
Kamahi is the Maori, and Karmai, or Kamai, the
corruption.
1876. W. N. Blair, `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,'
vol. ix. p. 148:
"As will be seen by the tables of names, kamai is called black
birch in the Catlin River District and Southland, which name is
given on account of a supposed resemblance to the `birches,'
or more correctly `beeches,' a number of which occur in that
locality. I cannot understand how such an idea could have
originated, for except in the case of the bark of one there
is not the slightest resemblance between the birches and kamai.
Whatever be the reason, the misapplication of names is
complete, for the birches are still commonly called kamai in
Southland."
Karoro, n. Maori name for a Black-backed Gull,
Larus dominicanus.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 47:
[Description.]
Karri or Kari, n. aboriginal name
(Western Australia) for Eucalyptus diversicolor.
F. v. M.
1870. W. H. Knight, `Western Australia: Its History,
Progress, Condition, etc.,' p. 38:
"The Karri (eucalyptus colossea) is another wood very
similar in many respects to the tuart, and grows to an enormous
size."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 196:
"The kari-tree is found in Western Australia, and is said to be
very abundant . . . of straight growth and can be obtained
of extraordinary size and length. . . . The wood is red in
colour, hard, heavy, strong, tough, and slightly wavy or curled
in the grain."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 444:
"Commonly known as `karri,' but in its native habitat as
blue-gum. . . . The durability of this timber for lengthened
periods under ground yet remains to be proved."
1896. `The Inquirer and Commercial News,' [Perth] July 3,
p. 4, col. 5:
"Mr. J. Ednie Brown, conservator of forests . . . expresses
astonishment at the vastness of the karri forests there. They
will be in a position to export one thousand loads of karri
timber for street-blocking purposes every week."
1896. `The Times' (Weekly Edition), Dec. 4, p. 822, col. 1:
"Karri, Eucalyptus diversicolor, is the giant tree of
Western Australia. an average tree has a height of about
200ft., and a diameter of 4 ft. at 3 ft. or 4 ft. above the
ground. The tree is a rapid grower, and becomes marketable in
30 or 40 years, against 50 years for jarrah. Karri timber is
being largely exported for London street-paving, as its surface
is not easily rendered slippery."
Katipo, n. a small venomous spider of New
Zealand and Australia. The name is Maori. The scientific name
is Latrodectus scelio, Thorel.In New Zealand, it is
generally found on the beach under old driftwood; but in
Australia it is found widely scattered over the Continent, and
always frequents dark sheltered spots. The derivation may be
from Kakati, verb, to sting, and po, night.
Compare Kakapo. It is a dark-coloured spider, with a
bright red or yellowish stripe.
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 440:
"A small black spider with a red stripe on its back, which they
[the natives of New Zealand] call katipo or katepo."
1870. Sir W. Buller, before Wellington Philosophical Society,
quoted in `The Katipo,' Jan. 1, 1892, p. 2:
"I have satisfied myself that in common with many other
venomous creatures it (the katipo) only asserts its dreaded
power as a means of defence, or when greatly irritated,
for I have observed that on being touched with the finger it
instantly folds its legs, rolls over on its back, and simulates
death, remaining perfectly motionless till further molested,
when it attempts to escape, only using its fangs as the dernier
ressort."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals, p. 39:
"Another spider (Lathrodectus scelio), which is very
common here and everywhere in Queensland, is very dangerous
even to men. It is a small black animal, of the size of our
house-spider, with a brilliant scarlet mark on its back."
1891. C. Frost, `Victorian Naturalist,' p. 140:
"I also determined, should opportunity occur, to make some
further experiments with the black and red spider
Latrodectus scelio . . . I found suspended in the web
of one of this species a small lizard . . . which doubtless had
been killed by its bite."
1892. Jan. 1, `The Katipo,' a Journal of Events in connection
with the New Zealand Post Office and Telegraph Services. On
p. 2 of the first number the Editor says:
"If hard words could break bones, the present lot of the
proprietors of `The Katipo' would be a sorry one. From certain
quarters invectives of the most virulent type have been hurled
upon them in connection with the title now bestowed upon the
publication--the main objections expressed cover contentions
that the journal's prototype is a `repulsive,' `vindictive,'
and `death-dealing reptile,' `inimical to man,' etc. ; and so
on, ad infinitum."
[The pictorial heading of each number is a katipo's web,
suggestive of the reticulation of telegraph wires, concerning
which page 3 of the first number says: "The Katipo spider and
web extends its threads as a groundwork for unity of the
services."]
1895. H. R. Hogq, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,
Zoology, p. 322:
"This spider, popularly known as the red streaked spider, is
found all over Victoria and New South Wales, and is recorded
from Rockhampton and Bowen on the Queensland Coast, and from
the North Island of New Zealand, where it is known by the
Maoris as the Katipo."
Kauri, or Cowry, or Kauri-Pine,
n. Maori name for the tree Agathis australis,
Sal. (formerly Dammara A.), N.O. Coniferae.
Variously spelt, and earlier often called Cowdie. In
`Lee's New Zealand Vocabulary,' 1820, the spelling Kaudi
appears. Although this tree is usually called by the generic
name of Dammara (see quotation, 1832), it is properly
referred to the genus Agathis, an earlier name already
given to it by Salisbury. There is a Queensland Kauri
(Dammara robusta, F. v. M.). See Pine.
1823. R. A. Cruise, `Ten Months in New Zealand,' p. 145:
"The banks of the river were found to abound with cowry; and
. . . the carpenter was of opinion that there could be no great
difficulty in loading the ship. The timber purveyor of the
Coromandel having given cowry a decided preference to
kaikaterre, . . . it was determined to abandon all further
operations."
1835. W. Yate, `True Account of New Zealand,' p. 37:
"As a shrub, and during its youthful days, the kauri is not
very graceful . . . but when it comes to years of maturity,
it stands unrivalled for majesty and beauty."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 285:
"The kauri (Dammera [sic] Australis) is
coniferous, resinous, and has an elongated box-like leaf."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 349:
"When Captain Cook visited New Zealand (nearly a century after
the discovery of the Dammara of Amboyna), he saw, upon
the east coast of the Northern Island, a tree, called by the
natives Kowrie; it was found to be a second species of
Dammara, and was named D. australis."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 140:
"The Kauri-pine is justly styled the Queen of the New Zealand
forest . . . the celebrated and beautiful Kauri."
1874. W. M. B., `Narrative of Edward Crewe,' p. 169:
"The kauri is the only cone-bearing pine in New Zealand. The
wood is of a yellow colour, wonderfully free from knots, and
harder than the red-pine of the Baltic. Beautifully mottled
logs are sometimes met with, and are frequently made up into
furniture."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 295:
"The Kaurie or Cowdie-Pine (Dammara Australis) is a
native of and is found only in New Zealand. . . . A tall and
very handsome tree with a slightly tapering stem. . . . For
masts, yards, etc., is unrivalled in excellence, as it not only
possesses the requisite dimensions, lightness, elasticity, and
strength, but is much more durable than any other Pine." [The
whole of chap. 37 is devoted to this tree.]
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 47:
"As some tall kauri soars in lonely pride,
So proudly Hira stood."
1886. J. A. Froude, `Oceans,' p. 318:
"Only the majestic Kauri tolerated no approaches to his
dignity. Under his branches all was bare and brown."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 143:
"The Native name `Kauri' is the only common name in general
use. When the timber was first introduced into Britain it was
termed `cowrie' or `kowdie-pine'; but the name speedily fell
into disuse, although it still appears as the common name in
some horticultural works."
1890. Brett, `Early History of New Zealand,' p. 115:
"`The Hunter' and `Fancy' loaded spars for Bengal at the Thames
in 1798." . . . "These two Indian vessels in the Thames were
probably the earliest European ships that loaded with New
Zealand Timber, and probably mark the commencement of the
export Kauri trade."
Kauri-gum, n. the resin which exudes from the
Kauri (q.v.), used in making varnish.
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 140:
"In the year 1859 the amount of timber exportation from the
Province of Auckland was L 34,376; that of kauri-gum exported
L 20,776."
1874. G. Walch, `Head over Heels,' p. 15:
"He paid his passage with kauri-gum."
1893. `Murray's Handbook to New Zealand,' p. 62:
"The industry which will most interest the tourist is the
Kauri-gum. . . . The resin or gum which they [the Kauri-trees]
contained fell into the ground as the trees died, and (not
being soluble in water) has remained there ever since. Men go
about with spears which they drive into the ground, and if they
find small pieces of gum sticking to the end of the spear, they
commence digging, and are often rewarded by coming on large
lumps of gum."
Kava, n. The word is Tongan for--
(1) An ornamental shrub, Piper methysticum, Miq.; also
Macropiper latifolium, Miq. See Kawa-kawa.
(2) A narcotic and stimulant beverage, prepared from the root
of this plant, which used to be chewed by the natives of Fiji,
who ejected the saliva into a Kava bowl, added water and
awaited fermentation. The final stage of the manufacture was
accompanied by a religious ceremonial of chanting. The
manufacture is now conducted in a cleaner way. Kava produces
an intoxication, specially affecting the legs.
1858. Rev. T. Williams, `Fiji and the Fijians,' vol. i.
p. 141:
"Like the inhabitants of the groups eastward, the Fijians drink
an infusion of the Piper methysticum, generally called
Ava or Kava--its name in the Tongan and other
languages. Some old men assert that the true Fijian mode of
preparing the root is by grating, as is still the practice in
two or three places; but in this degenerate age the Tongan
custom of chewing is almost universal, the operation nearly
always being performed by young men. More form attends the use
of this narcotic on Somosomo than elsewhere. Early in the
morning the king's herald stands in front of the royal abode,
and shouts at the top of his voice, `Yagona!' Hereupon
all within hearing respond in a sort of scream,
`Mama!'--`Chew it!' At this signal the chiefs, priests,
and leading men gather round the well-known bowl, and talk over
public affairs, or state the work assigned for the day, while
their favourite draught is being prepared. When the young men
have finished the chewing, each deposits his portion in the
form of a round dry ball in the bowl, the inside of which thus
becomes studded over with a large number of these separate
little masses. The man who has to make the grog takes the bowl
by the edge and tilts it towards the king, or, in his absence,
to the chief appointed to preside. A herald calls the king's
attention to the slanting bowl, saying, `Sir, with respects,
the yagona is collected.' If the king thinks it enough,
he replies, in a low tone, `Loba'--`Wring it--an order
which the herald communicates to the man at the bowl in a
louder voice. The water is then called for and gradually
poured in, a little at first, and then more, until the bowl is
full or the master of the ceremonies says, `Stop!' the operator
in the meantime gathering up and compressing the chewed root."
1888. H. S. Cooper, `The Islands of the Pacific,' p. 102:
"Kava is the name given to a liquor produced by chewing the
root of a shrub called angona, and the ceremonious part of the
preparation consists in chewing the root."
Kawa-kawa, n. Maori name for an ornamental
shrub of New Zealand, Macropiper excelsum. In Maori,
Kawa = "unpleasant to the taste, bitter, sour." (Williams.)
The missionaries used to make small beer out of the
Kawa-kawa.
1850. Major Greenwood, `Journey from Taupo to Auckland,'
p. 30:
"The good missionary . . . thrust upon us . . . some
bottles of a most refreshing light beverage made from the
leaves of the kawa-kawa tree, which in taste much resembled
ginger-beer."
1877. Anon., `Colonial Experiences, or Incidents of
Thirty-four Years in New Zealand,' p. 104:
"Our tea was made from the dried leaves of a native shrub,
of a very spicy flavour, and known as the kawakawa, too pungent
if used fresh and green."
1896. `Otago Witness,' June 4, p. 49:
"The tints of kawa, of birch and broadleaf, of
rimu and matai are blended together into one dark
indivisible green."
Kawau, n. Maori name for a Shag,
Phalacrocorax novae-hollandiae, Steph.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 145:
[Description given.]
Kea, n. a parrot of New Zealand, Nester
notabilis, Gould. For its habits see quotations.
1862. J. Von Haast, `Exploration of Head Waters of Waitaki,
1862,'-in `Geology of Westland' (published 1879), p. 36:
"What gave still greater interest to the spot was the presence
of a number of large green alpine parrots (Nestor
notabilis), the kea of the natives, which visited
continually the small grove of beech-trees near our camp."
1880. `Zoologist' for February, p. 57:
"On the 4th of November last the distinguished surgeon,
Mr. John Wood, F.R.S., exhibited before the Pathological
Society of London the colon of a sheep, in which the operation
known as Colotomy had been performed by a Parrot . . . the
species known as the `Kea' by the Maoris, the `Mountain Parrot'
of the colonists, Nestor notabilis of Gould. Only five
species . . . are known, one of which (Nestor productus)
has lately become extinct; they only occur in New Zealand and
Norfolk Island. They were formerly classed among the
Trichoglossinae or brush-tongued parrots . . . more
nearly allied to true Psittaci . . . Its ordinary food
consists of berries and insects; but since its Alpine haunts
have been reached by the tide of civilization, it has acquired
a taste for raw flesh, to obtain which it even attacks living
animals."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 176:
"We have the hoary-headed nestors, amongst which are found the
noisy honey-loving kaka, the hardy kea, that famous sheep-
killer and flesh-eater, the dread of many an Alpine sheep
farmer."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 166:
"Nestor notabilis, Gould, Kea-parrot, Mountain-parrot of
the Colonists."
1888. `Antipodean Notes,' p. 74:
"The Kea picks the fat which surrounds the kidneys. . . .
Various theories have been started to explain how this parrot
has become carnivorous."
[Two pages are devoted to the question.]
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 19:
"The kea-parrot. . . . The kea is pretty to look at, having
rich red and green plumage, but it is a cruel bird. It is said
that it will fasten on the back of a living sheep and peck its
way down to the kidney-fat, for which this parrot has a special
fancy. No tourist need feel compunction about shooting a kea."
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 445:
"Another very interesting group of birds are the large dull
colonial parrots of the genus Nestor, called kea or kaka by the
natives from their peculiar cries. Their natural food is
berries . . . but of late years the kea (Nestor
notabilis), a mountain species found only in the South
Island, has developed a curious liking for meat, and now
attacks living sheep, settling on their backs and tearing away
the skin and flesh to get at the kidney fat."
1895. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 26, p. 3, col. 1:
"There is in the Alpine regions of the South Island a plant
popularly called the `vegetable sheep,' botanically named
Raoulia. From the distance of even a few yards it looks
like a sheep. It grows in great masses, and consists of a
woolly vegetation. A large specimen of this singular plant was
exhibited in the Colonial and Indian Exhibition. It is said
that the kea was in the habit of tearing it up to get at the
grubs which harbour within the mass, and that mistaking dead
sheep for vegetable sheep it learned the taste of mutton. A
more enterprising generation preferred its mutton rather
fresher."
Kelp-fish, n. In New Zealand, also called
Butter-fish (q.v.), Coridodax pullus, Forst.
In Tasmania, Odax baleatus, Cuv. and Val.; called
also Ground Mullet by the fishermen. In Victoria,
Chironemus marmoratus, Gunth. Coridodax and
Odax belong to the family Labridae or Wrasses,
which comprises the Rock-Whitings; Chironemus
to the family Cirrhitidae. The name is also given
in New Zealand to another fish, the Spotty (q.v.).
These fishes are all different from the Californian food-
fishes of the same name.
1841. J. Richardson, `Description of Australian Fishes,'
p. 148:
"This fish is known at Port Arthur by the appellation of
`Kelp-fish,' I suppose from its frequenting the thickets of
the larger fuci."
Kennedya, n. the scientific name of a genus of
perennial leguminous herbs of the bean family-named, in 1804,
after Mr. Kennedy, a gardener at Hammersmith, near London.
There are seventeen species, all natives of Australia and
Tasmania, many of them cultivated for the sake of their showy
flowers and berries. Others lie near the ground like a vetch;
K. prostrata is called the Coral Pea (q.v.),
or Bleeding Heart, or Native Scarlet Runner,
or Running Postman. Another species is called
Australian Sarsaparilla. See Sarsaparilla.
1885. R. M. Praed, `The Head Station,' p. 294:
"Taking off his felt hat, he twisted round it a withe of
crimson Kennedia, then put it on again."
Kestrel, n. the common English name for a
falcon. According to Gould the Australian species is identical
with Cerchneis tinnunculus, a European species, but
Vigors and Horsfield differentiate it as Tinnunculus
cenchroides.
1893. `The Argus,' March 25, p. 4, col. 5:
"The kestrel's nest we always found in the fluted gums that
overhung the creek, the red eggs resting on the red mould of
the decaying trunk being almost invisible."
Kia ora, interj. Maori phrase used by English in
the North Island of New Zealand, and meaning "Health to you!"
A private letter (1896) says--"You will hear any day at a
Melbourne bar the first man say Keora ta-u, while the
other says Keora tatu, so replacing "Here's to you!"
These expressions are corruptions of the Maori, Kia ora
taua, "Health to us too!" and Kia ora tatou,
"Health to all of us!"
Kie-kie, n. Maori name for a climbing plant,
Freycinetia banksii, N.O. Pandanaceae; frequently
pronounced ghi-ghi in the North Island of New Zealand,
and gay-gie in the South Island.
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' p. 77:
"The trees were . . . covered with a kind of parasite plant,
called a keekee, having a thick cabbage-like stock."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf' (Notes), p. 505:
"Kie-kie (parasite). . . . A lofty climber; the bracts and
young spikes make a very sweet preserve."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 20:
"The unused food . . . of our little camp, together with
the empty kie-kie baskets."
[sc. baskets made of kie-kie leaves.]
Kiley, n. aboriginal word in Western Australia
for a flat weapon, curved for throwing, made plane on one side
and slightly convex on the other. A kind of boomerang.
1839. Nathaniel Ogle, `The Colony of Western Australia,'
p. 57:
"In every part of this great continent they have the koilee,
or boomerang . . ."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. 1.
c. iv. p. 72:
"One of them had a kiley or bomerang."
1872. Mrs. E. Millett, `An Australian Parsonage; or, The
Settler and the Savage in Western Australia,' p. 222:
"The flat curved wooden weapon, called a kylie, which
the natives have invented for the purpose of killing several
birds out of a flock at one throw, looks not unlike a bird
itself as it whizzes (or walks as natives say) through
the air in its circular and ascending flight. . ."
1885 Lady Barker, `Letters to Guy,' p. 177:
"More wonderful and interesting, however, is it to see them
throw the kylie (what is called the boomerang in other parts of
Australia), a curiously curved and flat stick, about a foot
long and two or three inches wide. . . . There are heavier
`ground kylies,' which skim along the ground, describing
marvellous turns and twists, and they would certainly break
the leg of any bird or beast they hit; but their gyrations
are nothing compared to those of a good air-kylie in skilful
hands."
Kinaki, n. a Maori word for food eaten with
another kind to give it a relish. Compare Grk. 'opson.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 164:
"Kinaki. Victuals, added for variety's sake."
1873. `Appendix to Journal of House of Representatives,'
vol. iii. G. 1, p. 5:
"If it be a Maori who is taken by me, he will also be
made into a kinaki for my cabbage."
1878. R. C. Barstow, `Transactions of New Zealand
Institute,' vol. XI. art. iv. p. 71:
"Fifty years ago it would have been a poor hapu that could
not afford a slave or two as a kinaki, or relish, on such an
occasion."
King-fish, n. In New Zealand a sea-fish,
Seriola lalandii (Maori, Haku), sometimes called the
Yellow-tail; in Victoria, Sciaena antarctica,
Castln. Called Jew-fish (q.v.) in New South Wales.
Tenison Woods says the King-fish of Port Jackson must not be
confounded with the King-fish of Victoria or the King-fish of
Tasmania (Thyrsites micropus, McCoy). The Port Jackson
King-fish belongs to a genus called "Yellow-tails" in Europe.
This is Seriola lalandii, Cuv. and Val. Seriola
belongs to the family Carangidae, or Horse-
Mackerels. Thyrsites belongs to the family
Trichiuridae. The "Barracouta" of Australasia is
another species of Thyrsites, and the "Frost-fish"
belongs to the same family. The Kingfish of America is
a different fish; the name is also applied to other fishes in
Europe.
1876. P. Thomson, `Transactions of New Zealand
Institute,' vol. XI. art. lii. p. 381:
"The king-fish, Seriola Lalandii, put in no appearance
this year."
1883. `Royal Commission on Fisheries of Tasmania,' p. 11:
"Thyrsites Lalandii, the king-fish of Tasmania:
migratory. Appear in immense numbers at certain seasons
(December to June) in pursuit of the horse-mackerel. Caught
with a swivelled barbless hook at night. Voracious in the
extreme--individuals frequently attacking each other, and also
the allied species, the barracouta."
Kingfisher, n. common English bird-name. Gould
mentions thirteen species in Australia. The Australian species
are--
Blue Kingfisher--
Halcyon azurea, Lath.
Fawn-breasted K.--
Dacelo cervina, Gould.
Forest K.--
Halcyon macleayi, Jard. and Selb.
Laughing jackass (q.v.)--
Dacelo gigas, Bodd.
Leach's K.--
D. leachii, Vig. and Hors.
Little K.--
Halcyon pusilla, Temm.
Mangrove K.--
H. sordidus, Gould.
Purple K.--
H. pulchra, Gould.
Red-backed K.--
H. pyrropygius, Gould.
Sacred K.--
H. sanctus, Vig. and Hors.
White-tailed K.--
Tanysiptera sylvia, Gould.
Yellow-billed K.--
Syma flavirostris, Gould.
There is a Kingfisher in New Zealand (Halcyon vagans,
Less.) considered identical by many with H. sanctus
of Australia, but concluded by Butler to be a distinct species.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 121:
[A full description.]
King of the Herrings, n. another name for the
Elephant-fish (q.v.).
1890. A. H. S. Lucas, `Handbook of the Australasian
Association' (Melbourne), p. 72:
"The King of the Herrings, Callorhynchus antarcticus,
is fairly common with us."
King-Parrot. See Parrot.
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 317:
This creek [King Parrot Creek] was named after a beautiful
parrot which was then seen for the first time. It is a bird
of magnificent plumage, with crimson feathers on the body,
and blue wings, both of gorgeous hue, and no other colour except
a little black. The name, King Parrot, is variously applied to
several birds in different arts of Australia; the one
described is common."
King William Pine, n. a Tasmanian tree.
See Cedar.
Kino, n. a drug; the dried juice, of astringent
character, obtained from incisions in the bark of various
trees. In Australia it is got from certain Eucalypts,
e.g. E. resinifera, Smith, and E. corymbosa,
Smith. "It is used in England under the name of Red-gum
in astringent lozenges for sore throat." (`Century.') See
Red Gum. The drug is Australian, but the word,
according to Littre, is "Mot des Indes orientales."
Kipper, n. a youth who has been initiated,
i.e. been through the Bora (q.v.). It is a Queensland
word. In Kabi, Queensland, the form is kivar: on the
Brisbane River, it is kippa, whereas in the Kamilaroi of
New South Wales the word is kubura.
1853. H. Berkeley Jones, `Adventures in Australia in 1852 and
1853,' p. 126:
"Around us sat `Kippers,' i.e. `hobbledehoy blacks.'"
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 24:
"The young men receive the rank of warriors,
and are henceforth called kippers."
Kit, n. a flexible Maori basket; not the English
kit used by soldiers, but the Maori word kete, a basket.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 199:
"Kete (Maori), pa-kete (Anglo-Maori), basket, kit
(Eng.)."
1856. E. B. Fitton, `New Zealand,' p. 68:
"The natives generally bring their produce to market in neatly
made baskets, plaited from flax and known by the name of `Maori
kits.'"
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand, the Britain of the South,'
vol. i. p. 180:
"The kit is a large plaited green-flax basket."
1877. An Old Colonist, `Colonial Experiences,' p. 31:
"Potatoes were procurable from the Maoris in flax kits,
at from one to five shillings the kit."
1884. Lady Martin, `Our Maoris,' p. 44:
"They might have said, as an old Maori woman long afterwards
said to me, `Mother, my heart is like an old kete (i.e. a
coarsely-woven basket). The words go in, but they fall
through.'"
Kite, n. common English bird-name. The species
in Australia are--
Allied Kite--
Milvus affanis, Gould.
Black-shouldered K.--
Elanus axillaris, Lath.
Letter-winged K.--
E. scriptus, Gould.
Square-tailed K.--
Lophoictinia isura, Gould.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 321:
"We had to guard it by turns, whip in hand, from a host of
square-tailed kites (Milvus isiurus)."
1895. G. A. Keartland, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Zoology, p. 55:
"At any stockyard or station passed Kites were seen . . . at
Henbury one female bird was bold enough to come right into camp
and pick up the flesh thrown to it from birds I was skinning."
Kiwi, n. Maori name for a wingless struthious
bird of New Zealand, the Apteryx (q.v.), so called from
the note of the bird. The species are--
Large Grey Kiwi (Roa roa, generally shortened to Roa,
q.v.)--
Apteryx haastii, Potts.
Little Grey K.--
A. oweni, Gould.
North Island K.--
A. bulleri, Sharpe.
South Island K. (Tokoeka)--
A. australis, Shaw and Nodder.
See Buller, `Birds of New Zealand' (1888), vol. ii. p. 308.
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 58:
"Kiwi--the most remarkable and curious bird in New Zealand."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 2:
"Apteryx Australis, Shaw, Kiwi kiwi."
[Australis here equals Southern, not Australian.]
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 181:
"The Kiwi, however, is only the last and rather insignificant
representative of the family of wingless birds that inhabited
New Zealand in bygone ages."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 232:
"'Twas nothing but that wing-less, tail-less bird,
The kiwi."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 35:
"The fact that one collector alone had killed and disposed
of above 2000 specimens of the harmless kiwi."
1889. Professor Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 116:
"The Kiwi, although flightless, has a small but well-formed
wing, provided with wing quills."
Knockabout, adj. a species of labourer employed
on a station; applied to a man of all work on a station. Like
Rouseabout (q.v.).
1876. W. Harcus, `Southern Australia,' p. 275:
"Knockabout hands, 17s. to 20S. per week."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 80:
"They were composed chiefly of what is called in the bush
`knockabout men'--that is, men who are willing to undertake
any work, sometimes shepherding, sometimes making yards or
driving."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' xvi. p. 118:
"I watched his development through various stages of colonial
experience--into dairyman, knockabout man, bullock-driver,
and finally stock-rider."
Knock-down, v. generally of a cheque. To spend
riotously, usually in drink.
1869. Marcus Clarke, `Peripatetic Philosopher' (reprint),
p. 80:
"Last night! went knocking round with Swizzleford and
Rattlebrain. C'sino, and V'ri'tes. Such a lark! Stole two
Red Boots and a Brass Hat. Knocked down thirteen notes, and
went to bed as tight as a fly!"
1871. J. J. Simpson, `Recitations,' p. 9:
"Hundreds of diggers daily then were walking Melbourne town,
With their pockets fill'd with gold, which they very soon
knock'd down."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 6:
"Cashed by the nearest publican, who of course never handed
over a cent. A man was compelled to stay there and knock his
cheque down `like a man'"
1885. H. Finch-Hatton,' Advance Australia,' p. 222:
"A system known as `knocking down one's cheque' prevails all
over the unsettled parts of Australia. That is to say, a man
with a cheque, or a sum of money in his possession, hands it
over to the publican, and calls for drinks for himself and his
friends, until the publican tells him he has drunk out his
cheque."
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. xviii. p. 182:
"The illiterate shearer who knocks down his cheque in a spree."
Koala, Coola, or Kool-la,
n. aboriginal name for Native Bear (q.v.); genus,
Phascolarctus (q.v.). A variant of an aboriginal word
meaning a big animal. In parts of South Australia koola means
a kangaroo.
1813. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 432:
"The koolah or sloth is likewise an animal of the opossum
species, with a false belly. This creature is from a foot and
a half to two feet in length, and takes refuge in a tree, where
he discovers his haunt by devouring all the leaves before he
quits it."
1849. J. Gould, `Proceedings of the Zoological Society of
London,' November:
"The light-coloured mark on the rump, somewhat resembling that
on the same part of the Koala . . . the fur is remarkable for
its extreme density and for its resemblance to that of the
Koala."
Kohekohe, n. Maori name for a New Zealand
tree, sometimes called Cedar, Dysoxylum spectabile,
Hook (N.O. Meliaceae).
1883. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 127:
"Kohekohe. A large forest tree, forty to fifty feet high. Its
leaves are bitter, and used to make a stomachic infusion: wood
tough, but splits freely."
Kohua, n. Maori word, for (1) a Maori oven;
(2) a boiler. There is a Maori verb Kohu, to cook or
steam in a native oven (from a noun Kohu, steam, mist),
and an adj. Kohu, concave. The word is used by
the English in New Zealand, and is said to be the origin of
Goashore (q.v.).
Kokako, n. Maori name for the Blue-wattled
Crow. See under Crow and Wattle-bird.
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 194:
"The Orange-wattled Crow, or wattled bird, kokako of the
Maoris, Glaucopis cinerea, Gml., still seems to be an almost
unknown bird as to its nesting habits. . . . The kokako loving
a moist temperature will probably soon forsake its ancient
places of resort."
Kokopu, n. Maori name for a New Zealand fish;
any species of Galaxias, especially G. fasciatus;
corrupted into Cock-a-bully (q.v.). See Mountain
Trout.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 106:
"Kokopu. Name of a certain fish."
1886. R. A. Sherrin, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 138:
"`Kokopu,' Dr.Hector says, `is the general Maori name for
several very common fishes in the New Zealand streams and
lakes, belonging to the family of Galaxidae.'"
Kokowai, n. Maori name for Red Ochre, an oxide
of iron deposited in certain rivers, used by the Maoris for
painting. It was usually mixed with shark oil, but for very
fine work with oil from the berries of the titoki
(q.v.).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 124:
"His head, with the hair neatly arranged and copiously
ornamented with feathers, reclined against a carved post,
which was painted with kokowai, or red ochre."
1878. R. C. Barstow, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. XI. art. iv. p. 75:
"Kokowai is a kind of pigment, burnt, dried, and mixed with
shark-liver oil."
Konini, n. Maori name for (1) the fruit of the
New Zealand fuchsia, Fuchsia excorticata, Linn.
(2) A settlers' name for the tree itself.
See Kotukutuku.
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 114:
"The berries of the konini . . . ripening early furnish some
part of its (bell-bird's) food supply."
(p. 146): "Rather late in August, when the brown-skinned konini
begins to deck its bare sprays with pendulous flowers."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 53:
"Mr. Colenso informs me that it [Fuchsia excorticata]
is the Kohutuhutu and the Kotukutuku of the Maoris, the fruit
being known as Konini, especially in the South Island and the
southern part of the North Island. The settlers sometimes term
it Kotukutuku or Konini, but more generally fuchsia."
Kooberry, n. aboriginal name for the Bidyan
Ruffe (q.v.).
Kookaburra, n. (also Gogobera and
Goburra), the aboriginal name for the bird called
the Laughing Jackass (q.v.). The first spelling is
that under which the aboriginal name now survives in English,
and is the name by which the bird is generally called in Sydney.
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 123:
"And wild goburras laughed aloud
Their merry morning songs."
1870. F. S. Wilson, `Australian Songs,' p. 167:
"The rude rough rhymes of the wild goburra's song."
1886. E. M. Curr, `Australian Race,' p. 29:
"The notes of this bird are chiefly composed of the sounds
ka and koo, and from them it takes its name
in most of the languages . . . It is noticeable in some
localities that burra is the common equivalent of
people or tribe, and that the Pegulloburra . . .
the Owanburra, and many other tribes, called the laughing-
jackass--kakooburra, kakaburra, kakoburra, and so on; literally
the Kakoo people." [Mr. Curr's etymology is not
generally accepted.]
1890. `The Argus,' Oct. 25, p. 4, col 5:
"You might hear the last hoot of the kookaburra then."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 26, p. 5, col. 4:
"But what board will intervene to protect the disappearing
marsupials, and native flora, the lyre-bird, the kookaburra,
and other types which are rapidly disappearing despite the laws
which have been framed in some instances for their protection?"
1894. E. P. Ramsay, `Catalogue of Australian Birds in the
Australian Museum at Sydney,' p. 2, s.v. Dacelo:
"Gogobera, aborigines of New South Wales."
Koradji, or Coradgee, n. aboriginal
name for a wise man, sorcerer, or doctor. In the south-east of
New South Wales, it means one of the tribal wizards, usually
called "blackfellow- doctors."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 14:
"The coradgees, who are their wise men, have, they suppose,
the power of healing and foretelling. Each tribe possesses one
of these learned pundits, and if their wisdom were in proportion
to their age, they would indeed be Solons."
1865. S. Bennett, `Australian Discovery,' p. 250:
"Kiradjee, a doctor; Grk. cheirourgos. Persian,
khoajih. English, surgeon. Old English (obsolete),
chirurgeon."
[Curious and impossible etymology.]
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia, vol. i. p. 287:
"One who seemed a coradge, or priest, went through a strange
ceremony of singing, and touching his eyebrows, nose, and
breast, crossing himself, and pointing to the sky like an old
Druid."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 23:
"The korradgees, or medicine men, are the chief repositories
(of the secrets of their religion)."
1892. J. Fraser, `Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 63:
"For some diseases, the kar'aji, or native doctor when he is
called in, makes passes with his hand over the sick man, much
in the same way as a mesmerist will do . . . Our Australian
karaji is highly esteemed, but not paid."
Korari, n. often pronounced Koladdy
and Koladdy, and spelt variously; the Maori word for
the flowering stem of Phormium tenax, J. and G. Forst.
(q.v.), generally used for making a mokihi (q.v.).
There is a Maori noun, kora, a small fragment;
and a verb korari, to pluck a twig, or tear it off.
1879. `Old Identity' [Title]:
"The Old Identities of the Province of Otago."
[p. 53]: "A kolladie (the flower stalk of the flax,
about seven feet long) carried by each, as a balancing pole or
staff."
1893. Daniel Frobisher, `Sketches of Gossipton,' p. 75:
"But now the faithful brute is gone;
Through bush and fern and flax koladdy,
Where oft he bunny pounced upon,
No more will follow me, poor Paddy."
Korero, n. Maori for a conference,
a conversation. The verb means "to tell, to say, to address,
to speak, to talk." (`Williams' Maori Dictionary,' 4th. ed.)
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 168:
"Korero, s. a speaking; v. n. speaking."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. i.
p. 78:
"There were about sixty men assembled, and they proceeded to
hold a `korero,' or talk on the all-important subject."
Ibid. p. 81:
"With the exception of an occasional exclamation of `korero,
korero,' `speak, speak,' which was used like our `hear, hear,'
in either an encouraging or an ironical sense, or an earnest
but low expression of approval or dissent, no interruption of
the orators ever took place."
1863. T. Moser, `Mahoe Leaves,' p. 30:
"As he had to pass several pahs on the road, at all of which
there would be `koreros.'"
(p. 31): "Had been joined by a score or more of their
acquaintances, and what between `koreros' and `ko-mitis,'
had not made any further progress on their journey."
1896. `Otago Witness,' Jan. 23, p. 42, col. 3:
"All this after a very excited `korero' on the empty dray,
with the surging and exciting crowd around."
Korimako, n. Maori name for the
Bell-Bird (q.v.).
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 402:
"The korimako, or kokorimako (Anthornis melanura).
This bird is the sweetest songster of New Zealand, but is not
distinguished by its plumage, which is a yellowish olive with
a dark bluish shade on each side of the head."
Ibid. p. 75:
"In the first oven [at the Maori child's naming feast] a
korimako was cooked; this is the sweetest singing bird of New
Zealand; it was eaten that the child might have a sweet voice
and be an admired orator."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 202:
"The korimako, sweetest bird
Of all that are in forest heard."
1888. W. W. Smith, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. XXI. art. xxi. p. 213:
"Anthornis melanura, korimako or bell-bird. In fine
weather the bush along the south shores of Lake Brunner
re-echoes with the rich notes of the tui and korimako, although
both species have disappeared from former haunts east of the
Alps."
Koromiko, n. a white flowering arborescent
Veronica of New Zealand, Veronica salicifolia, Forst.,
N.O. Scrophularineae.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' P. 454:
"Koromiko, a very ornamental plant, but disappearing before the
horse. It bears a tapering-shaped flower of a purplish white."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 2:
"Just a ditch,
With flowering koromiko rich."
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 21:
"The early breeze
That played among the koromiko's leaves."
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby,' p. 16:
"Fostered by the cool waters of a mountain rivulet, the
koromiko grows by the side of the poisonous tutu bushes."
Korora, n. Maori name for a Blue Penguin,
Spheniscus minor, Gmel. See Penguin.
Korrumburra, n. aboriginal name for the common
blow-fly, which in Australia is a yellow-bottle, not a
blue-bottle.
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 54:
"Odd `Korrumburras' dodge quickly about with cheerful hum.
Where they go, these busy buzzy flies, when the cold calls them
away for their winter vac. is a mystery. Can they hibernate?
for they show themselves again at the first glint of the spring
sun."
Kotuku, n. Maori name for the White
Crane of the Colonists, which is really a White
Heron (Ardea egretta). See Crane.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 124:
[A full description.]
Kotukutuku, n. Maori name for the New Zealand
tree, Fuchsia excorticata, Linn.,
N.O. Onagrariea; written also Kohutuhutu. This
name is not much used, but is corrupted into Tookytook
(q.v.). See Konini and Fuchsia.
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 127:
"Kotukutuku. The fruit is called konini. A small and
ornamental tree, ten to thirty feet high . . . a durable
timber. . . . The wood might be used as dye-stuff . . . Its
fruit is pleasant and forms principal food of the wood-pigeon."
Kowhai, n. Maori name given to--
(1) Locust-tree, Yellow Kowhai (Sophora
tetraptera, Aiton, N.O. Leguminosae).
(2) Parrot-bill, Scarlet Kowhai (Clianthus
puniceus, N.O. Leguminosae), or Kaka-bill
(q.v.).
Variously spelt Kowai and Kohai, and corrupted
into Goai (q.v.) by the settlers.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 58:
"The kohai too, a species of mimosa covered with bright
yellow blossoms, abounds in such situations where the stunted
growth is an almost unvarying sign of constant inundation."
[Mr. Wakefield was mistaken. The Kohai is not a mimosa.]
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 261:
"`Tis the Kowhai, that spendthrift so golden
But its kinsman to Nature beholden,
For raiment its beauty to fold in,
Deep-dyed as of trogon or lory,
How with parrot-bill fringes 'tis burning,
One blood-red mound of glory!"
1873. `New Zealand Parliamentary Debates,' No. 16, p. 863:
"Kowai timber, thoroughly seasoned, used for fencing posts,
would stand for twelve or fourteen years; while posts cut out
of the same bush and used green would not last half the time."
1882. T. H. Potts, 'Out in the Open,' p. 146:
"The head of the straight-stemmed kowhai is already crowned
with racemes of golden blossoms."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 131:
"Kowhai--a small or middling-sized tree. . . . Wood red,
valuable for fencing, being highly durable . . . used for
piles in bridges, wharves, etc."
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 21:
"The dazzling points of morning's lances
Waked the red kowhai's drops from sleep."
Kuku, or Kukupa, n. Maori name
for the New Zealand Fruit-pigeon (q.v.), Carpophaga
novae-zelandiae, Gmel. Called also Kereru.
The name is the bird's note.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 170:
"Kuku, s. the cry of a pigeon."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 406:
"Family Columbidae--kereru, kukupa (kuku, Carpophaga
Novae Zealandiae), the wood-pigeon. This is a very fine
large bird, the size of a duck; the upper part of the breast
green and gold, the lower a pure white, legs and bill red. It
is a heavy flying bird, and very stupid, which makes it an easy
prey to its enemies. The natives preserve large quantities in
calabashes, taking out the bones; these are called kuku."
Ibid. p. 183:
"The pigeon bears two names--the kuku and kukupa, which are
common to the isles."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 115:
"The kukupa . . . was just the bird created expressly for the
true cockney sportsman--the one after his heart . . . for if not
brought down by the first shot, why he only shakes his feathers
and calmly waits to be shot at again!"
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 45:
"The kuku, plaintive, wakes to mourn her mate."
Kumara, or Kumera, n. (pronounced
Koomera), a Maori word for an edible root, the yam or sweet
potato, Ipomaea batatas, N.O. Convolvulaceae.
There are numerous varieties. It should be added that it is
doubtful whether it grows wild in New Zealand.
1773. Sydney Parkinson, `Journal of a Voyage to the South
Seas' (see extract in `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
`Manibus Parkinsonibus Sacrum,' W. Colenso, vol. x. art. ix.
p. 124):
"Several canoes came alongside of the ship, of whom we got some
fish, kumeras or sweet potatoes, and several other things."
1828. `Henry William Diarys' (in Life by Carleton), p. 69:
"Kumara had been planted over the whole plain."
1830. Ibid. p. 79:
"We passed over the hill, and found the assailants feasting on
the kumara, or sweet potato, which they just pulled up from
the garden at which they had landed."
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 49:
"He saw some fine peaches and kumaras or sweet potatoes."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' c. xi. p. 273 (3rd
edition, 1855)
"The kumara or sweet potato is a most useful root."
1863. F. E. Maning (Pakeha Maori), `Old New Zealand,' p. 51:
"Behind the pigs was placed by the active exertion of two or
three hundred people, a heap of potatoes and kumera, in
quantity about ten tons, so there was no lack of the raw
material for a feast."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 430:
"Now the autumn's fruits
Karaka,--taro,--kumera,--berries, roots
Had all been harvested with merry lays
And rites of solemn gladness."
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 18:
"Some more dainty toothsome dish
Than the kumera and fish."
Kumquat, Native, n. an Australian tree,
Atalantia glauca, Hook., N.O. Rutaceae,
i.q. Desert Lemon (q.v.).
Kurdaitcha, Coordaitcha, or Goditcha,
n. a native term applied by white men to a particular
kind of shoe worn by the aborigines of certain parts of Central
Australia, and made of emu feathers matted together. The two
ends are of the same shape, so that the direction in which the
wearer has travelled cannot be detected. The wearer is
supposed to be intent upon murder, and the blacks really apply
the name to the wearer himself. The name seems to have been
transferred by white men to the shoes, the native name for
which is interlin~a, or urtathurta.
1886. E. M. Curr, `Australian Race,' vol. i. p. 148:
"It was discovered in 1882 . . . that the Blacks . . . wear a
sort of shoe when they attack their enemies by stealth at
night. Some of the tribes call these shoes Kooditcha,
their name for an invisible spirit. I have seen a pair of
them. The soles were made of the feathers of the emu, stuck
together with a little human blood, which the maker is said to
take from his arm. They were about an inch and a half thick,
soft, and of even breadth. The uppers were nets made of human
hair. The object of these shoes is to prevent those who wear
them from being tracked and pursued after a night attack."
1896. P. M. Byrne, `Proceedings of the Royal Society of
Victoria,' p. 66:
"The wearing of the Urtathurta and going Kurdaitcha luma
appears to have been the medium for a form of vendetta."
Kurrajong, n. or Currajong (spelt
variously), the aboriginal name for various Australian and
Tasmanian fibrous plants; see quotations, 1825 and 1884.
They are the--
Black Kurrajong--
Sterculia diversifolia, G. Don., and Sterculia
quadrifida, R. Br., N.O. Sterculiaceae.
Brown K.--
Commersonia echinata, R. and G. Forst.; also,
Brachychiton gregorii; both belonging to
N.O. Sterculiaceae.
Green K.--
Hibiscus heterophyllus, Vent., N.O. Malvaceae.
Tasmanian K.--
Plagianthus sidoides, Hook., N.O. Malvaceae.
Others are Trema aspera, Blume, N.O. Urticeae;
and Sterculia rupestris, Benth., N.O. Urticeae.
Some of the varieties are also called Bottle-trees, and,
in Tasmania, Cordage-trees (q.v.).
1823. `Uniacke's Narrative of Oxley's Expedition,' quoted by
J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 408:
"The nets used for fishing [by the natives] are made by the men
from the bark of the kurrajong (Hibiscus heterophyllus),
a shrub which is very common to the swamps."
1825. Barron Field, Glossary, in `Geographical Memoirs of New
South Wales,' p. 502:
"Currijong or Natives' cordage tree (Hibiscus heterophyllus)."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' vol. ii. p. 25:
"The curragong is sometimes found; its inner bark may be
manufactured into ropes."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 149:
"The currajong (Sterculia)is used for cordage, and makes
strong, close, but not very durable ropes."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' vol. iii. p. 91:
"Dillis neatly worked of koorajong bark."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 214:
"In such a valley in which stands a spreading corrijong
(Sterculia diversifolia), which has a strong resemblance
to the English oak, I constantly found a flock of sheep."
1862. W. Archer, `Products of Tasmania,' p. 41:
"Currajong (Plagianthus sidoides, Hook). The fibres
of the bark are very strong. It is a large shrub, found
chiefly on the southern side of the Island, in various and
shady places, and grows rapidly."
1878. Rev. W. W. Spicer, `Handbook of the Plants of
Tasmania,' p. 104:
"Plagianthus sidoides, Hooker. Currijong,
N.O. Malvaceae. Peculiar to Tasmania."
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 77:
"The currejong of the forest, and the casuarina which lines the
rivers, stand with brighter green in cheering contrast to the
dulness of surrounding leaves."
1881,. W. R. Guilfoyle, `Australian Botany' (second
edition), p. 162:
"The aborigines apply the name Kurrajong, or Currijong, to some
[Pimeleas]; but it would appear that this native name is
indiscriminately given to any plant possessing a tough bark."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii. p. 138:
"Quaint currajongs . . . very like in form to the stiff
wooden trees we have all played with in childish days."
L
Laburnum, Native, n. the Tasmanian
Clover-tree, Goodenia lotifolia, Sal.,
N.O. Leguminosae.
Laburnum, Sea-coast, n. also called Golden
Chain, Sophora tomentosa, Linn., N.O.
Leguminosae; a tall, hoary shrub.
Lace-bark, Lacey-bark, or Lacewood,
n. names for Ribbonwood (q.v.). The inner bark of the
tree is like fine lace.
1876. W. N. Blair, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. IX. art. x. p. 175:
"Ribbonwood, Plagianthus betulinus, botanical name,
Hooker; Whauwhi, Maori name, according to Hector; lace-bark
tree, settlers' name, according to Buchanan."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open':
"The soft, bright-foliaged ribbonwood (lace-bark,
Plagianthus) contrasts with the dusky hue
of the dark-leaved fagus."
Lace-Lizard, n. Hydrosaurus (Varanus)
varius. See Goanna.
1881. F. McCoy, `Prodomus of the Natural History of Victoria,'
Dec. 4:
"Although the present Lace Lizard is generally arboreal,
climbing the forest trees with ease, and running well on the
ground, it can swim nearly as well as a Crocodile."
Lagorchestes, n. the scientific name for a
genus of Australian marsupial mammals, called the Hare-
Wallabies or Hare-Kangaroos (q.v.). (Grk.
lagows, a hare, and 'orchestaes, a dancer.)
They live on plains, and make a "form" in the herbage like
the hare, which they resemble.
Lagostrophus, n. the scientific name of the
genus containing the animal called the Banded-Wallaby.
(Grk. lagows, a hare, and strophos, a band or
zone.) Its colour is a greyish-brown, with black and white
bands, its distinguishing characteristic. It is sometimes
called the Banded-Kangaroo, and is found at Dirk
Hartog's Island, and on one or two islands in Shark's Bay,
and in West Australia. For its interesting habits see
R. Lyddeker's `Marsupialia.'
Lake-Trout, n. a Tasmanian fish, Galaxias
auratus, family Galaxidae. See Mountain-
Trout.
Lamb down, v. tr.
(1) To knock down a cheque or a sum of money in a spree.
There is an old English verb, of Scandinavian origin, and
properly spelt lamm, which means to thrash, beat.
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 51:
"It is the Bushman come to town--
Come to spend his cheque in town,
Come to do his lambing down."
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 4, col. 2:
"The lambing down of cheques."
1890. Ibid. Aug. 9, p. 4, col. 5:
"The old woman thought that we were on gold, and would lamb
down at the finish in her shanty."
(2) To make a man get rid of his money to you; to clean him
out."
1873. Marcus Clarke, `Holiday Peak, etc.,' p. 21:
"The result was always the same--a shilling a nobbler. True,
that Trowbridge's did not `lamb down' so well as the Three
Posts, but then the Three Posts put fig tobacco in its brandy
casks, and Trowbridge's did not do that."
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p.30:
"The operation--combining equal parts of hocussing,
overcharging, and direct robbery--and facetiously christened
by bush landlords `lambing down.'"
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 16, p. 4, col. 7:
"One used to serve drinks in the bar, the other kept the
billiard-table. Between them they lambed down more shearers
and drovers than all the rest on the river."
Lamprey, n. The Australian Lampreys are
species of the genera Mordacia and Geotria,
of the same family as the "Lampreys" of the Northern Hemisphere.
Lancelet, n. The fishes of this name present in
Australasia are--
In Queensland, Epigonichthys cultellus, Peters, family
Amplingae; in Victoria and New South Wales, species of
Heteropleuron.
Lancewood, n. There are many lancewoods in
various parts of the world. The name, in Australia, is given
to Backhousia myrtifolia, Hook. and Harv., N.O.
Myrtaceae; and in New Zealand, to Panax crassifolium,
Dec. and Plan., N.O. Araliaceae, known as Ivy-
tree, and by the Maori name of Horoeka (q.v.).
Landsborough Grass, n. a valuable Queensland
fodder grass of a reddish colour, Anthistiria
membranacea, Lindl., N.O. Gramineae.
See Grass.
Lantern, Ballarat, n. a local term.
See quotation.
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for the Mail,' p. 21:
"I may explain that a `Ballarat Lantern' is formed by knocking
off the bottom of a bottle, and putting a candle in the neck."
Lark, n. common English bird name.
The Australian species are--
Brown Song Lark--
Cincloramphus cruralis, Vig. and Hors.
Bush L.--
Mirafra horsfieldii, Gould.
Field L.--
Calamanthus campestris, Gould.
Ground L.--
Anthus australis, Vig. and Hors. (Australian Pipit),
A. novae-zelandae, Gray (New Zealand Pipit).
Lesser Bush L.--
Mirafra secunda, Sharpe.
Little Field L.--
Cathonicola sagittata, Lath.
Magpie L.--
Grallina picata, Lath.; see Magpie-Lark.
Rufous Song L.--
Cincloramphus rufescens, Vig. and Hors.
Striated Field L.--
Calamanthus fuliginosus, Vig. and Hors.
See Ground-Lark, Sand-Lark, Pipit, and
Magpie-Lark.
Larrikin, n. The word has various shades of
meaning between a playful youngster and a blackguardly rough.
Little streetboys are often in a kindly way called little
larrikins. (See quotations, 1870 and 1885.) Archibald
Forbes described the larrikin as "a cross between the Street
Arab and the Hoodlum, with a dash of the Rough thrown in to
improve the mixture." (`Century.) The most exalted position
yet reached in literature by this word is in Sir Richard
Burton's `Translation of the Arabian Nights' (1886-7),
vol. i. p. 4, Story of the Larrikin and the Cook;
vol. iv. p. 281, Tale of First Larrikin. The previous
translator, Jonathan Scott, had rendered the Arabic word,
Sharper.
There are three views as to the origin of the word, viz.--
(1) That it is a phonetic spelling of the broad Irish
pronunciation, with a trilled r of the word
larking. The story goes that a certain Sergeant Dalton,
about the year 1869, charged a youthful prisoner at the
Melbourne Police Court with being "a-larrr-akin' about
the streets." The Police Magistrate, Mr. Sturt, did not quite
catch the word--"A what, Sergeant?"--"A larrikin', your
Worchup." The police court reporter used the word the next day
in the paper, and it stuck. (See quotation, `Argus,' 1896.)
This story is believed by 99 persons out of 100; unfortunately
it lacks confirmation; for the record of the incident cannot
be discovered, after long search in files by many people. Mr.
Skeat's warning must be remembered--"As a rule, derivations which
require a story to be told turn out to be false."
(2) That the word is thieves' English, promoted like
swag, plant, lift, etc., into ordinary
Australian English. Warders testify that for a number of years
before the word appeared in print, it was used among criminals
in gaol as two separate words, viz.--leary ('cute, fly,
knowing), and kinchen (youngster),--`leary kinchen
,'--shortened commonly into `leary kin' and
`leary kid.' Australian warders and constables are
Irish, almost to a man. Their pronunciation of `leary
kin' would be very nearly `lairy kin,' which becomes
the single word larrikin. (See quotation, 1871.) It is
possible that Sergeant Dalton used this expression and was
misunderstood by the reporter.
(3) The word has been derived from the French larron
(a thief), which is from the Latin latronem (a robber).
This became in English larry, to which the English
diminutive, kin, was added; although this etymology is
always derided in Melbourne.
1870. `The Daily Telegraph' (Melbourne), Feb. 7, p. 2, col. 3:
"We shall perhaps begin to think of it in earnest, when we
have insisted upon having wholesome and properly baked bread,
or a better supply of fish, and when we have put down the
`roughs' and `larrikins.'"
1870. `The Age,' Feb. 8, p. 3, col. 1:
"In sentencing a gang of `larrikins' who had been the terror
of Little Bourke-street and its neighbourhood for several hours
on Saturday night, Mr. Call remarked. . ."
1870. `The Herald,' April 4, p.3, col. 2:
". . . three larikins who had behaved in a very disorderly manner
in Little Latrobe-street, having broken the door of a house and
threatened to knock out the eye of one of the inmates."
1870. Marcus Clarke, `Goody Two Shoes,' p. 26:
"He's a lively little larrikin lad, and his name is
Little Boy Blue."
1871. `The Argus,' Sept. 19, p.5, col. 4:
"In San Francisco, the vagabond juveniles who steal, smash
windows, and make themselves generally obnoxious to the
respectable inhabitants, instead of being termed `larrikins,'
as in Victoria, are denominated `hoodleums.' The name is more
musical than the one in vogue here, and probably equally as
descriptive, as its origin appears to be just as obscure as
that of the word `larrikin.' This word, before it got into
print, was confined to the Irish policemen, who generally
pronounced it `lerrikan,' and it has been suggested that the
term is of Hibernian origin, and should be spelt lerrichaun.'"
1871. Sir George Stephen, Q.C., `Larrikinism,' a Lecture
reported in `Prahran Telegraph,' Sept. 23, p. 3, col. 1:
What is Larrikinism? It is a modern word of which I can only
guess the derivation, . . . nor can I find any among the
erudite professors of slang who adorn our modern literature who
can assist me. Some give our police the credit of coining it
from the `larking' of our school boys, but I am inclined to
think that the word is of Greek origin--Laros, a
cormorant--though immediately derived from the French
`larron' which signifies a thief or rogue. If I am
right, then larrikin is the natural diminutive form in English
phraseology for a small or juvenile thief. . . . This however
is, I must acknowledge, too severe a construction of the term,
even if the derivation is correct; for I was myself, I frankly
confess it, an unquestionable larrikin between 60 and 70 years
ago. . . . Larrikinism is not thieving, though a road that
often leads to it. . . . Is it a love of mischief for
mischief's sake? This is the theory of the papers, and is
certainly a nearer approach to the true solution."
1871. `Figaro,' in `Prahran Telegraph,' Sept. 30, p. 7,
col. 3:
"A local contemporary has . . . done his `level best' to help
me out of my `difficulty' with respect to the word Larrikin.
He suggests that lerrichan should read leprichaun
, a mischievous sprite, according to Irish tradition. . . .
We think we may with more safety and less difficulty trace the
word to the stereotype [sic] reply of the police to the
magisterial question--`What was he doing when you apprehended
him?' `Oh! larriking (larking) about, yer Wurtchip.'"
1872. J. S. Elkington, `Tenth Report of Education,
Victoria,' dated Feb. 14:
"My inquiries into the origin and habits of that troublesome
parasite the larrikin (if I may adopt Constable Dalton's term)
do not make me sanguine that compulsory primary instruction can
do much for him, unless indirectly."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), May 15, p. 21, col. 3:
"On Sunday night an unfortunate Chinaman was so severely
injured by the Richmond larrikins that his life was
endangered."
1875. David Blair, in `Notes and Queries,' July 24, p. 66:
"Bedouins, Street Arabs, Juvenile Roughs in London; Gamins
in Paris; Bowery Boys in New York; Hoodlums to San
Francisco; Larrikins in Melbourne. This last phrase is an
Irish constable's broad pronunciation of `larking' applied to
the nightly street performances of these young scamps, here as
elsewhere, a real social pestilence."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 338:
"There is not a spare piece of ground fit for a pitch anywhere
round Melbourne that is not covered with `larrikins' from six
years old upwards."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' p. 159:
"It has become the name for that class of roving vicious young
men who prowl about public-houses and make night hideous in
some of the low parts of our cities. There is now the bush
`larrikin' as well as the town `larrikin,' and it would be
difficult sometimes to say which is the worse. Bush
`larrikins' have gone on to be bushrangers."
1890. `The Argus,' May 26, p. 6, col. 7:
"He was set upon by a gang of larrikins, who tried to rescue
the prisoner."
1891. `Harper s Magazine,' July, p. 215, col. 2:
"The Melbourne `larrikin' has differentiated himself from the
London `rough,' and in due season a term had to be developed to
denote the differentiation."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 12, p. 13, col. 2:
"Robert Louis Stevenson, in a recent novel, `The Wrecker,'
makes the unaccountable mistake of confounding the unemployed
Domain loafer with the larrikin. This only shows that Mr.
Stevenson during his brief visits to Sydney acquired but a
superficial knowledge of the underlying currents of our social
life."
1896. J. St. V. Welch, in `Australasian Insurance and Banking
Record,' May 19, p. 376:
"Whence comes the larrikin? that pest of these so-called
over-educated colonies; the young loafer of from sixteen to
eight-and-twenty. Who does not know him, with his weedy,
contracted figure; his dissipated pimply face; his greasy
forelock brushed flat and low over his forehead; his too small
jacket; his tight-cut trousers; his high-heeled boots; his
arms--with out-turned elbows--swinging across his stomach as he
hurries along to join his `push,' as he calls the pack in which
he hunts the solitary citizen---a pack more to be dreaded on a
dark night than any pack of wolves--and his name in Sydney is
legion, and in many cases he is a full-fledged voter."
1896. W. H. Whelan, in `The Argus,' Jan. 7, p. 6, col. 3:
"Being clerk of the City Court, I know that the word originated
in the very Irish and amusing way in which the then well-known
Sergeant Dalton pronounced the word larking in respect to the
conduct of `Tommy the Nut,' a rowdy of the period, and others
of both sexes in Stephen (now Exhibition) street.
"Your representative at the Court, the witty and clever `Billy'
O'Hea, who, alas! died too early, took advantage of the
appropriate sound of the word to apply it to rowdyism in
general, and, next time Dalton repeated the phrase, changed the
word from verb to noun, where it still remains, anything to the
contrary notwithstanding. I speak of what I do know, for O'Hea
drew my attention to the matter at the time, and, if I mistake
not, a reference to your files would show that it was first in
the `Argus' the word appeared in print."
("We can fully confirm Mr. Whelan's account of the origin of
the word `larrikin.'"--Ed. `Argus.')
[But see quotation from `Argus,' 1871.]
Larrikin, adj.
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 522:
"Marks the young criminals as heroes in the eyes not only of
the ostensible larrikin element . . ."
Larrikinalian, adj. (Not common.)
1893. `Evening Standard,' July 5, p. 4, col. 4 (Leading
Article):
"In the larrikinalian din which prevailed from start to finish
. . ."
Larrikiness, n. a female larrikin.
1871. `Collingwood Advertiser and Observer,' June 22, p. 3,
col. 5:
"Evidence was tendered as to the manner of life led by these
larikinesses . . . The juvenile larrikin element being
strongly represented in court, all the boys were ordered out."
1871. Sir George Stephen, Q.C., `Larrikinism,' a Lecture
reported in `Prahran Telegraph,' Sept. 23, p. 3, col. 1:
"I know many a larrikiness to whose voice I could listen by
the hour with all my heart, without the least fear of her
stealing it, even if it were worth the trouble."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,'
p. 224:
"I have not found the larrikin [in Brisbane]. . . . The
slouch-hat, the rakish jib, the drawn features are not to be
seen; nor does the young larrikiness--that hideous outgrowth
of Sydney and Melbourne civilization--exist as a class."
Larrikinism, n. the conduct of larrikins
(q.v.).
1870. `The Australian' (Richmond, Victoria), Sept. 10, p. 3,
col. 3:
"A slight attempt at `larrikinism' was manifested. . . . "
1871. J. J. Simpson, `Recitations and Rhymes,' p. 17:
"Melbourne larrikinism is still very bad,
By the papers each day we are told."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June 19, p. 80, col. 2:
"He took as his theme the `Dialect of Victoria,' which was
coarse and vulgar to a degree. `Larrikinism' was used as a
synonym for `blackguardism.'"
1876. A. P. Martin, `Sweet Girl-Graduate,' p. 20:
"There is no doubt that its rising generation afforded material
for letters in the newspapers, under the headings `Larrikinism,'
or, `What shall we do with our boys?'"
1893. `The Argus,' Feb. 23:
"Outbreaks of larrikinism are not always harmless ebullitions
of animal spirits. Sometimes they have very serious results."
Laughing Jackass, n. See Jackass.
Launce, n. The Australian species of this fish
is Congrogradus subducens, Richards., found in North-
West Australia. The Launces or Sand-eels of the
Northern Hemisphere belong to a different group.
Laurel, n. The English tree name is applied in
Australia to various trees, viz.--
Alexandrian Laurel--
Calophyllum inophyllum, Linn:, N.O. Guttiferae;
not endemic in Australia.
Diamond-leaf L.--
Pittosporum rhombifolium, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Pittosporeae.
Dodder L.--
Cassytha filiformis, Linn., N.O. Lauraceae;
called also Devil's Guts, not endemic in Australia.
Hedge L. (q.v.)--
Pittosporum eugenioides, Cunn.
Moreton Bay L.--
Cryptocarya australis, Benth., N.O. Lauraceae;
called also Grey Sassafras.
Native L.--
Pittosporum undulatum, Andr., N.O. Pittosporeae;
called also Mock Orange (q.v.).
Panax elegans, C. Moore and F. v. M.,
N.O. Araliaceae; which is also called Light or White Sycamore.
White L.--
Cryptocarya glaucescens, R. Br., N.O. Lauraceae;
for other names see Beech.
In Tasmania, the name Native Laurel is applied to Anopterus
glandulosus, Lab., N.O. Saxifrageae. Peculiar to
Tasmania.
The New Zealand Laurel is Laurelia novae-zelandiae;
called also Sassafras.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 292:
"Native Laurel, [also called] `Mock Orange.' This tree is well
worth cultivating on a commercial scale for the sake of the
sweet perfume of its flowers."
Lavender, Native, n. a Tasmanian tree,
Styphelia australis, R. Br., N.O. Epacrideae.
Lawyer, n. One of the English provincial uses
of this word is for a thorny stem of a briar or bramble. In
New Zealand, the name is used in this sense for the Rubus
australis, N.O. Rosaceae, or Wild Raspberry-Vine
(Maori, Tataramoa). The words Bush-Lawyer,
Lawyer-Vine, and Lawyer-Palm, are used with the
same signification, and are also applied in some colonies to
the Calamus australis, Mart. (called also Lawyer-
Cane), and to Flagellaria indua, Linn,, similar
trailing plants.
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. ii. p. 157:
"Calamus Australis, a plant which Kennedy now saw for
the first time. . . It is a strong climbing palm. From the
roots as many as ninety shoots will spring, and they lengthen
out as they climb for hundreds of feet, never thicker than a
man's finger. The long leaves are covered with sharp spines;
but what makes the plant the terror of the explorers, is the
tendrils, which grow out alternately with the leaves. Many of
these are twenty feet long, and they are covered with strong
spines, curved slightly downwards."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 135:
"Rubus Australis, the thorny strings of which scratch
the hands and face, and which the colonists, therefore, very
wittily call the `bush-lawyer.'"
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 71:
"Torn by the recurved prickles of the bush-lawyer."
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby,' p. 16:
"Trailing `bush-lawyers,' intermingled with coarse bracken,
cling lovingly to the rude stones."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 103:
"In the mountain scrubs there grows a very luxuriant kind of
palm (Calamus Australis), whose stem of a finger's
thickness, like the East Indian Rotang-palm, creeps through the
woods for hundreds of feet, twining round trees in its path,
and at times forming so dense a wattle that it is impossible to
get through it. The stem and leaves are studded with the
sharpest thorns, which continually cling to you and draw blood,
hence its not very polite name of lawyer-palm."
1891. A. J. North, `Records of Australian Museum,' vol. i.
p. 118:
"Who, in the brushes of the Tweed River, found a nest placed on
a mass of `lawyer-vines' (Calamus Australis)."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,'
p. 256:
"`Look out,' said my companion, `don't touch that lawyer-vine;
it will tear you properly, and then not let you go.' Too late;
my fingers touched it, and the vine had the best of it. The
thorns upon the vine are like barbed spears, and they would,
in the language of the Yankee, tear the hide off a crocodile."
1892. `The Times,' [Reprint] `Letters from Queensland,' p. 7:
"But no obstacle is worse for the clearer to encounter than the
lawyer-vines where they are not burnt off. These are a form of
palm which grows in feathery tufts along a pliant stalk, and
fastens itself as a creeper upon other trees. From beneath its
tufts of leaves it throws down trailing suckers of the
thickness of stout cord, armed with sets of sharp red barbs.
These suckers sometimes throw themselves from tree to tree
across a road which has not been lately used, and render it as
impassable to horses as so many strains of barbed wire. When
they merely escape from the undergrowth of wild ginger and
tree-fern and stinging-bush, which fringes the scrub, and coil
themselves in loose loops upon the ground, they are dangerous
enough as traps for either man or horse. In the jungle, where
they weave themselves in and out of the upright growths, they
form a web which at times defies every engine of destruction
but fire."
Lawyer-Cane, Lawyer-Palm, and
Lawyer-Vine. See Lawyer.
Lead, n. (pronounced leed), a mining
term. In the Western United States and elsewhere, the term
lead in mining is used as equivalent for lode. In Australia,
the word lead is only used in reference to alluvial
mining, and signifies the old river-bed in which gold is found.
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June 19, p. 75, col. 2:
"There was every facility for abstracting the gold in the rich
lead of a neighbour."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 272 [Note]:
"The expression `deep lead' refers to those ancient
river-courses which are now only disclosed by deep-mining
operations."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. v. p. 55:
"Taking the general matter of `leads' or dead rivers, it
chiefly obtained that if gold were found on one portion of
them, it extended to all the claims within a considerable
distance."
Lead, to strike the. See above. Used figuratively
for to succeed.
1874. Garnet Walch, `Head over Heels,' p. 74:
"We could shy up our caps for a feller,
As soon as he struck the lead."
Leadbeater, n. applied to a Cockatoo,
Cacatua leadbeateri, Vig., called Leadbeaters
Cockatoo by Major Mitchell (q.v.).
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. xiv. p. 127:
"The birds are very beautiful--the Blue Mountain and Lowrie
parrots . . . leadbeater, and snow-white cockatoos."
Leaf-insect, n. See Phasmid.
Lease, n. a piece of land leased for mining
purposes. In England, the word is used for the document or
legal right concerning the land. In Australia, it is used for
the land itself. Compare Right-of-way.
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 15:
"A nice block of stone was crushed from Johnson's lease."
Lease in perpetuity, a statutory expression in the
most recent land legislation of New Zealand, indicating a
specific mode of alienating Crown lands,. It is a lease for
999 years at a permanent rental equal to 4% on the capital
value, which is not subject to revision.
Leather-head, n. another name for the
Friar-bird (q.v.), Philemon corniculatus, Lath.
See Tropidorhynchus.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 461:
"The Leatherhead with its constantly changing call and
whistling."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 58:
"The leather-heads utter their settled phrase `Off we go! off
we go!' in the woods, or they come to suck honey from the
Melianthus major, which stands up like a huge artichoke
plant, tipped with dark red plumes of flowers."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 233:
"Among the Honey-suckers is that singular-looking bird, the
Leatherhead, or Bald-headed Friar (Tropidorhynchus
corniculatus); it is commonly seen upon the topmost
branches of lofty trees, calling `Poor Soldier,' `Pimlico,'
`Four o'clock,' and uttering screaming sounds. It feeds upon
insects, wild fruits, and any sweets it can procure from the
flowers of the Banksia and Gum-trees."
Leather-Jacket, n.
(1) A name applied popularly and somewhat confusedly to various
trees, on account of the toughness of their bark--
(a) Eucalyptus punctata, De C., Hickory Eucalypt (q.v.);
(b) Alphitonia excelsa, Reiss., or Cooperswood;
(c) Ceratopetalum, or Coachwood;
(d) Cryptocarya meissnerii, F. v. M.;
(e) Weinmannia benthami, F. v. M.
(2) A fish of the family Sclerodermi, Monacanthus
ayraudi, Quoy. and Gaim., and numerous other species of
Monocanthus. Leather-Jackets are wide-spread in
Australian seas. The name is given elsewhere to other fishes.
See File-fish and Pig-fish.
1770. `Capt. Cook's Journal,' edition Wharton, 1893, p. 246:
"They had caught a great number of small fish, which the
sailors call leather jackets, on account of their having
a very thick skin; they are known in the West Indies."
1773. `Hawkesworth's Voyages,' vol. iii. p. 503--'Cook's
First Voyage,' May 4, 1770 (at Botany Bay):
"Small fish, which are well known in the West Indies, and
which our sailors call Leather jackets, because their skin
is remarkably thick."
1789. W. Tench, `Expedition to Botany Bay, p. 129:
"To this may be added bass, mullets, skaits, soles,
leather-jackets, and many other species."
(3) A kind of pancake.
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 151:
"A plentiful supply of `leatherjackets' (dough fried in a
pan)."
1853. Mossman and Banister, `Australia Visited and Revisited,'
p. 126:
"Our party, upon this occasion, indulged themselves, in
addition to the usual bush fare, with what are called `Leather
jackets,' an Australian bush term for a thin cake made of
dough, and put into a pan to bake with some fat. . . The
Americans indulge in this kind of bread, giving them the name
of `Puff ballooners,' the only difference being that they place
the cake upon the bare coals . . ."
1855. R. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 117:
"The leather-jacket is a cake of mere flour and water, raised
with tartaric acid and carbonate of soda instead of yeast, and
baked in the frying-pan; and is equal to any muffin you can
buy in the London shops."
Leather-wood, n. i.q. Pinkwood (q.v.).
Leawill, or Leeangle (with other spellings),
n. aboriginal names for a native weapon, a wooden club
bent at the striking end. The name is Victorian, especially of
the West; probably derived from lea or leang, or
leanyook, a tooth. The aboriginal forms are
langeel, or leanguel, and lea-wil,
or le-ow-el. The curve evidently helped the English
termination, angle.
1845. Charles Griffith, `Present State and Prospects of the
Port Phillip District of New South Wales,' p. 155:
"The liangle is, I think, described by Sir Thomas Mitchell.
It is of the shape of a pickaxe, with only one pick. Its name
is derived from another native word, leang, signifying a tooth.
It is a very formidable weapon, and used only in war."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. II.
c. xiii. p. 479:
"A weapon used by the natives called a Liangle, resembling a
miner's pick."
1863. M. K. Beveridge,' Gatherings among the Gum-trees,'
p. 56:
"Let us hand to hand attack him
With our Leeawells of Buloite."
Ibid. (In Glossary) p. 83:
"Leeawell, a kind of war club."
1867. G. Gordon McCrae, `Mimba,' p. 9:
"The long liangle's nascent form
Fore-spoke the distant battle-storm."
1886. R. Henty, `Australiana,' p. 21:
"His war-club or leeangle."
1889. P. Beveridge, `Aborigines of Victoria and Riverina,
p. 67:
"Of those [waddies] possessing--we might almost say---a
national character, the shapes of which seem to have come down
generation after generation, from the remotest period, the
Leawill is the most deadly-looking weapon. It is usually three
feet long, and two and a half inches thick, having a pointed
head, very similar both in shape and size to a miner's driving
pick; in most cases the oak (Casuarina) is used in the
manufacture of this weapon; it is used in close quarters only,
and is a most deadly instrument in the hands of a ruthless foe,
or in a general melee such as a midnight onslaught."
Leeangle, n. i.q. Leawill (q.v.).
Leek, n. a small parrot. See Greenleek.
Leek, Native, n. a poisonous Australian plant,
Bulbine bulbosa, Haw., N.O. Liliaceae. Called
also Native Onion. Its racemes of bright yellow flowers
make the paddocks gay in spring.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 121:
"`Native Onion,' `Native Leek.' Mr. W. n. Hutchinson, Sheep
Inspector, Warrego, Queensland, reports of this plant: `Its
effects on cattle are . . . continually lying down, rolling,
terribly scoured, mucous discharge from the nose.'"
Leg, n. mining term. a peculiar form of
quartz-reef, forming a nearly vertical prolongation of the
saddle.
1890. `The Argus,' June x6th, p. 6, col. 1:
"It may also be observed that in payable saddle formations a
slide intersects the reef above the saddle coming from the
west, and turning east with a wall of the east leg, where the
leg of reef is observed to go down deeper, and to carry a
greater amount of gold than in ordinary cases."
Legitimacy, n. See quotation.
[Old and now unused slang.]
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 16:
"Legitimacy--a colonial term for designating the cause of the
emigration of a certain portion of our population; i.e.
having legal reasons for making the voyage."
[So also at p. 116, "Legitimates"]
Leguminous Ironbark, n. a name given by
Leichhardt to the Queensland tree Erythrophaeum
laboucherii, F. v. M., N.O. Leguminosae.
See Ironbark.
Leichhardt, or Leichhardt-Tree, n.
an Australian timber-tree, Morinda citrifolia, Linn.,
N.O. Rubiaceae; called also Canary-wood and Indian
Mulberry. In Queensland, the name is applied to
Sarcocephalus cordatus, Miq., N.O. Rubiaceae,
a large timber-tree of North Queensland, much used
in building.
1874. M. K. Beveridge, `Lost Life,' p. 40:
"Groaning beneath the friendly shade
That by a Leichhardt-tree was made."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia, p. 258:
"The Leichhardt is a very symmetrical tree, that grows to a
height of about sixty feet, and has leaves rather like a big
laurel."
Leichhardt-Bean, n. See Bean.
Leichhardt's Clustered-Fig,
n. i.q. Clustered Fig. See Fig.
Lemon, Desert, n. See Desert Lemon.
Lemon-scented Gum, n. See Gum.
Lemon-scented Ironbark, n. a name given to the
Queensland tree Eucalyptus staigeriana, F. v. M.,
N.O. Myrtaceae. See Ironbark. The foliage of
this tree yields a large quantity of oil, equal in fragrance to
that of lemons.
Lemon-Sole, n. In England, the name is applied
to an inferior species of Sole. In New South Wales,
it is given to Plagusia unicolor, Mad., of the family
Pleuronectidae or Flat-fishes. In New Zealand,
it is another name for the New Zealand Turbot (q.v.).
Lemon, Wild, n. a timber tree, Canthium
latifolium, F. v. M., N.O. Rubiaceae; called also
Wild Orange.
Lemon-Wood, n. one of the names given by
settlers to the New Zealand tree called by Maoris Tarata
(q.v.), or Mapau (q.v.). It is Pittosporum
eugenoides, A. Cunn., N.O. Pittosporeae.
Leopard-Tree, n. an Australian tree,
Flindersia maculosa (or Strezleckiana), F. v. M.,
N.O. Meliaceae; called also Spotted-Tree (q.v.),
and sometimes, in Queensland, Prickly Pine.
Lerp, n. an aboriginal word belonging to the
Mallee District of Victoria (see Mallee). Sometimes
spelt leurp, or laap. The aboriginal word means
`sweet.' It is a kind of manna secreted by an insect, Psylla
eucalypti, and found on the leaves of the Mallee, Eucalyptus
dumosa. Attention was first drawn to it by Mr. Thomas
Dobson (see quotations). A chemical substance called
Lerpamyllum is derived from it; see Watts' `Dictionary
of Chemistry,' Second Supplement, 1875, s.v.
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 73:
"The natives of the Wimmera prepare a luscious drink from the
laap, a sweet exudation from the leaf of the mallee
(Eucalyptus dumosa)."
1850. T. Dobson, `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society
of Van Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 235:
"The white saccharine substance called `lerp,' by the
Aborigines in the north-western parts of Australia Felix, and
which has attracted the attention of chemists, under the
impression that it is a new species of manna, originates with
an insect of the tribe of Psyllidae, and order
Hemiptera."
1850. Ibid. p. 292::
"Insects which, in the larva state, have the faculty of
elaborating from the juices of the gum-leaves on which they
live a glutinous and saccharine fluid, whereof they construct
for themselves little conical domiciles."
1878. R. Brough Smyth, `The Aborigines of Victoria,' vol. i.
p. 211:
"Another variety of manna is the secretion of the pupa of an
insect of the Psylla family and obtains the name of
lerp among the aborigines. At certain seasons of the
year it is very abundant on the leaves of E. dumosa,
or mallee scrub . . ."
Lift, v. tr. to drive to market from the run.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. iv. p. 45:
"I haven't lifted a finer mob this season."
1890. `The Argus,' June 14, p. 4, col. 2:
"We lifted 7000 sheep."
Light-horseman, n. obsolete name for a fish;
probably the fish now called a Sweep (q.v.).
1789. W. Tench, `Expedition to Botany Bay,' p. 129:
"The French once caught [in Botany Bay] near two thousand fish
in one day, of a species of grouper, to which, from the form of
a bone in the head resembling a helmet, we have given the name
of light horseman."
1793. J. Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 410 [Aboriginal Vocabulary]:
"Woolamie, a fish called a light-horseman."
[But see Wollomai.]
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. iv.
p. 78:
"A boat belonging to the Sirius caught near fifty large fish,
which were called light-horsemen from a bone that grew out of
the head like a helmet."
Lightwood, n. a name given to various trees.
See Blackwood. It is chiefly applied to Acacia
melanoxylon, R. Br., N.O. Leguminosae. See
quotations, 1843 and 1889.
1843. I. Backhouse. `Narrative of a Visit to the Australian
Colonies,' p. 48:
"Lightwood--Acacia Melanoxylon . . . It derives its
name from swimming in water, while the other woods of
V. D. Land, except the pines, generally sink. In some parts of
the Colony it is called Blackwood, on account of its dark
colour."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 515:
"Some immense logs of `light wood,' a non lucendo,
darker than mahogany."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' p. 17:
"Arms so brown and bare, to look at them
Recalls to mind the lightwood's rugged stem."
1866. H. Simcox, `Rustic Rambles,' p. 54:
"The numerous lightwood trees with sombre shade
Tend to enhance the richness of the glade."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xv. p. 111:
"The ex-owner of Lyne wished himself back among the old
lightwood trees."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 359:
"Called `Blackwood' on account of the very dark colour of the
mature wood. It is sometimes called `Lightwood' (chiefly in
South Tasmania, while the other name is given in North Tasmania
and other places), but this is an inappropriate name. It is in
allusion to its weight as compared with Eucalyptus timbers. It
is the `Black Sally' of Western New South Wales, the `Hickory'
of the southern portion of that colony, and is sometimes
called `Silver Wattle.' This is considered by some people
to be the most valuable of all Australian timbers.
It is hard and close-grained; much valued for furniture,
picture-frames, cabinet-work, fencing, bridges, etc., railway,
and other carriages, boat-building, for tool-handles,
gun-stocks, naves of wheels, crutches, parts of organs,
pianofortes (sound-boards and actions), etc."
Light Yellow-wood, i.q. Long-Jack (q.v.).
Lignum (1), or Lignum-Vitae, n.
The name is applied to several trees, as Myrtus
acmenioides, F. v. M., called also White Myrtle;
Acacia falcata, Willd., N.O. Leguminosae,
called also Hickory and Sally; but chiefly to
Eucalyptus polyanthema, Schau., N.O. Myrtaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 505:
"[E. polyanthema.] The `Red Box' of South-eastern
Australia. Called also `Brown Box,' `Grey Box,' and `Bastard
Box.' `Poplar-leaved Gum' is another name, but it is most
commonly known as `Lignum Vitae' because of its tough and hard
wood. Great durability is attributed to this wood, though the
stems often become hollow in age, and thus timber of large
dimensions is not readily afforded. It is much sought after
for cogs, naves and felloes; it is also much in demand for
slabs in mines, while for fuel it is unsurpassed. (Mueller.)
Its great hardness is against its general use."
(2) A bushman's contraction for any species of the wiry plants
called polygonum.
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' [writing
of the Lachlan district, New South Wales] p. 180:
"The poor emus had got down into the creek amongst the lignum
bushes for a little shade . . . I do not know what a
botanist would call them; they are something like cane, but
with large leaves, which all animals are fond of, and they grow
about eight feet high in the creeks and gullies."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 135:
"By mulga scrub and lignum plain."
Lilac, n. name given in Australia to the tree
Melia composita, Willd., N.O. Meliaceae, called
Cape Lilac. It is not endemic in Australia, and is
called "Persian Lilac "in India. In Tasmania the name of
Native Lilac is given to Prostanthera
rotundifolia, R. Br., N.O. Labiatae, and by
Mrs. Meredith to Tetratheca juncea, Smith, of the
Linnean Order, Octandria.
1793. J. E. Smith, `Specimen of Botany of New Holland,' p. 5:
"Tetratheca juncea, Rushy Tetratheca [with plate]."
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 69:
"A little purple flower, which is equally common, so vividly
recalls to my mind, both by its scent and colour, an Old-World
favorite, that I always know it as the native Lilac
(Tetratheca juncea)."
Lily, Darling, n. a bulbous plant, Crinum
flaccidum, Herb., N.O. Amaryllideae; called also the
Murray Lily. (See Lily, Murray.)
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 20:
"The `Darling Lily.' This exceedingly handsome white-flowered
plant, which grows back from the Darling, has bulbs which yield
a fair arrowroot. On one occasion, near the town of Wilcannia,
a man earned a handsome sum by making this substance when flour
was all but unattainable."
Lily, Flax, n. See Flax-Lily, and
Flax, New Zealand.
Lily, Giant-, or Spear-, n.
a fibre plant, Doryanthes excelsa, Corr.,
N.O. Amaryllideae.
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 339:
"The Doryanthes excelsa, a gigantic Lily of Australia, is a
magnificent plant, with a lofty flowering spike. The bunches
or clusters of crimson flowers are situated in the summit of
the flowering spike . . . The diameter of a cluster of
blossoms is about 14 inches . . . The flower-buds are of a
brilliant crimson, and the anthers of the stamens are, in the
recently expanded flower, of a dark-green colour."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 621:
"`Spear Lily.' `Giant Lily.' The leaves are a mass of fibre,
of great strength, which admits of preparation either by
boiling or maceration, no perceptible difference as to quality
or colour being apparent after heckling. Suitable for brush
making, matting, etc."
Lily, Gordon, n. a Tasmanian plant
and its flower, Blandfordia marginata, Herb.,
N.O. Liliaceae, and other species of
Blandfordia (q.v.).
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 72:
"Blandfordia nobilis. This splendid plant is common on the
west coast and on the shores of the Mersey. It bears a head of
pendulous scarlet blossoms tipped with yellow, one inch long,
rising out of a stalk of from 1 1/2 to 3 feet long, from between
two opposite series of strapshaped leaves. It is named after
George [Gordon] Marquis of Blandford, son of the second Duke of
Marlborough."
Lily, Murray, n. i.q. Darling Lily.
See above.
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 119:
"This showy genus Crinum furnishes also Victoria with a
beautiful species, the Murray Lily (Crinum flaccidum),
not however to be found away from the Murray-River southward."
Lilly-Pilly, n. name given to a large timber
tree, Eugenia smithii, Poir., N.O. Myrtaceae.
The bark is rich in tanning. Sometimes called Native
Banana.
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 327:
"The Lillypilly-trees, as they are named by the colonists,
consist of several species of Acmena, and are all of
elegant growth and dense and handsome foliage."
1879. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Proceedings of the Linnaean
Society of New South Wales,' p. 134:
"Eugenia Smithii, or Lilli pilli, and Melodorum
Leichhardtii are also fair eating. The latter goes by the
name of the native banana though it is very different from a
banana, and in reality allied to the custard apple."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 29:
"`Lilly Pilly.' The fruits are eaten by aboriginals, small
boys, and birds. They are formed in profusion, are acidulous
and wholesome. They are white with a purplish tint, and up to
one inch in diameter."
Lily, Rock, n. an orchid, Dendrobium
speciosum, Smith, N.O. Orchideae. although not a
Lily, it is always so called, especially in Sydney, where it is
common.
1879. H. n. Moseley, `Notes by Naturalist on Challenger,'
p. 270:
"A luxuriant vegetation, with huge masses of Stagshorn Fern
(Platycerium) and `rock-lilies' (orchids), and a variety
of timbers, whilst there are Tree-ferns and small palms in the
lateral shady gullies."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 22:
"`Rock Lily.' The large pseudobulbs have been eaten by the
aboriginals; they contain little nutritive matter."
Lily, Water, n. There are several indigenous
native varieties of the N.O. Nymphaeceae--Cabombia
peltata, Pursh; Nymphaea gigantea, Hook. (Blue
Water-lily).
Lily, Yellow, n. a Tasmanian name for
Bulbine bulbosa, Haw., N.O. Liliaceae.
See Leek, Native.
Lime, Native, n. an Australian tree, Citrus
australasica, F. v. M., N.O. Rutaceae; called also
Finger Lime and Orange. But the appellation of
Native Lime is more generally given to Citrus
australis, Planch., N.O. Rutaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 16:
"`Native Lime. Orange.' The fruit, which is an inch and
a half in diameter, and almost globular, yields an agreeable
beverage from its acid juice."
Ling, n. a fish. The name is given in England
to various fishes, from their length. In New Zealand and
Tasmania, it is applied to Genypterus blacodes, Forst.;
also called Cloudy Bay Cod. Lotella marginata,
Macl., is called Ling, in New South Wales, and
Beardie. Genypterus belongs to the
Ophidiidae and Lotella to the next family,
the Gadidae.
Lobster, n. The name is often carelessly used
in Australia for the Crayfish (q.v.).
Lobster's-Claw, n. another name for Sturt's
Desert Pea (q.v.).
Locust, n. name popularly but quite erroneously
applied to insects belonging to two distinct orders.
(1) Insects belonging to the order Hemiptera. The great
black Cicada, Cicada moerens, Germ., and the great green
Cicada, Cyclochila australasiae, Donov.
(2) Insects belonging to the order Orthoptera,
such as the great green gum-tree grasshopper, Locusta
vigentissima, Serv., or the Australian yellow-winged
locust, Oedipoda musica, Fab.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. I. c.
ix. p. 285:
"The trees swarmed with large locusts (the Cicada),
quite deafening us with their shrill buzzing noise."
1862. F. J. Jobson, `Australia,' c. iv. p. 104:
"We heard everywhere on the gumtrees the cricket-like
insects--usually called locusts by the colonists--hissing
their reed-like monotonous noise."
1869. J. Townend, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 155:
"The perpetual song of unnumbered locusts."
1885. H. H. Hayter, `Carboona,' p. 5:
"The deaf'ning hum of the locusts."
1885. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Natural History of
Victoria,' Dec. 5, pl. 50:
"Our Cicada moerens . . . produces an almost deafening
sound from the numbers of the individuals in the hottest days
and the loudness of their noise." "This species (Cyclochila
Australasiae) is much less abundant than the
C. moerens, and seems more confined to moist places,
such as river banks and deep ravines and gullies."
1889. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Natural History of
Victoria,' Dec. 11, pl. 110:
"The great size of the muscular thighs of the posterior pair of
feet enables the Locusts to jump much higher, further, and more
readily than Grasshoppers, giving an example of muscular power
almost unparalleled in the animal kingdom."
1896. F. A. Skuse, `Records of Australian Museum,' vol. ii.
No. 7, p. 107:
"What are commonly styled `locusts' in this country are really
Cicadae, belonging to a totally distinct and widely
separated order of insects. And moreover the same kind of
Cicada is known by different names in different
localities, such as `Miller,' `Mealyback,' etc. The true
locusts belong to the grasshoppers, while the Homopterous
Cicadidae have been known as Cicadas from times
of remote antiquity."
Locust-tree, of New Zealand. See Kowhai.
Logan-Apple, n. a small Queensland tree,
with an acid fruit, Acronychia acidia, F. v. M.,
N.O. Rutaceae.
Log-hut, n. Log-cabin is American.
Log-hut is Australian.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 178:
"Not more than ten settlers had been able to erect dwellings
better than log-huts."
[This was in Sydney, 1796.]
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. I.
c. ix. p. 287:
"Captain Fyans was living in a log-hut on the banks of the
Marabool river."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. vi. p. 61:
"Log-huts, with the walls built American fashion, of horizontal
tree-trunks."
Log-Runner, n. an Australian bird, called also
a Spinetail. The species are--
Black-headed--
Orthonyx spaldingi, Ramsay;
Spinetailed--
O. spinicauda, Temm., called also Pheasant's
Mother. See Orthonyx.
Logs, n. pl. the Lock-up. Originally, in the
early days, a log-hut, and often keeping the name when it was
made a more secure place. Sometimes, when there was no
lock-up, the prisoners were chained to heavy logs of trees.
1802. G.Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 184:
"The governor resolved on building a large log prison both at
Sydney and Paramatta, and `as the affair cried haste,' a
quantity of logs were ordered to be sent in by the various
settlers, officers and others."
[p. 196]: "The inhabitants of Sydney were assessed to supply
thatch for the new gaol, and the building was enclosed with
a strong high fence. It was 80 feet long, the sides and ends
were of strong logs, a double row of which formed each
partition. The prison was divided into 22 cells. The floor
and the roof were logs, over which was a coat eight inches
deep of clay."
1851. Letter from Mrs. Perry, given in Canon Goodman's
`Church of Victoria during Episcopate of Bishop Perry,' p. 164:
"One [sentry] at the lock-up, a regular American log-hut."
[sic. But in America it would have been called a log-cabin.]
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 193:
"Let's put him in the Logs . . . The lock-up, like most
bush ones, was built of heavy logs, just roughly squared,
with the ceiling the same sort."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydneyside Saxon,' p. 111:
"`He'll land himself in the logs about that same calf racket
if he doesn't lookout, some day.' `Logs!' I says. `There
don't seem to be many about this part. The trees are all
too small.'"
Log up, v. to make a log-support for the
windlass.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. v. p. 54:
"We . . . had logged up and made a start with another shaft."
Lolly, n., pl. Lollies. The English
word lollipop is always shortened in Australia, and is the
common word to the exclusion of others, e.g. sweets.
Manufacturers of sweetmeats are termed Lolly-makers.
1871. J. J. Simpson, `Recitations,' p. 24:
"Lollies that the children like."
1874. Garnet Walch, `Head over Heels,' p. 18:
"Common children fancy lollies,
Eat them 'gainst their parents' wills."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 16:
"I thankfully expended the one in bile-producing cakes
and lollies."
1893. `Evening Standard' (Melbourne), Oct. 18, p. 6, col. 2:
"Mr. Patterson (musing over last Saturday's experiences):
You're going to raise the price of lollies. I'm a great buyer
of them myself. (Laughter.) If you pay the full duty it will,
doubtless, be patriotic for me to buy more when I go amongst
the juveniles."
Long-fin, n. name given to the fish Caprodon
schlegelii, Gunth., and in New South Wales to Anthias
longimanus, Gunth.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 33:
"The long-fin, Anthias Iongimanus, Gunth., is a good
fish that finds its way to the market occasionally . . . may be
known by its uniform red colour, and the great length of the
pectoral fins."
Long-Jack, name given to the tree Flindersia
oxleyana, F. v. M., N.O. Meliaceae; called also
Light Yellow-Wood.
Long-sleever, n. name for a big drink and also
for the glass in which it is contained. Perhaps in allusion to
its tall, tapering, long shape.
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii. p. 83:
"Their drivers had completed their regulation half-score of
`long-sleevers' of `she-oak.'"
Long-Tom, n. name given in Sydney to Belone
ferox, Gunth., a species of Garfish which has both
jaws prolonged to form a slender beak. See Garfish.
Long-Yam. See Yam.
Look, v. tr. to examine.
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. vi. p. 105:
"Plains are scoured and every piece of timber looked."
[sc. looked-over.]
Lope, n. a slow and steady gallop. From Dutch
verb loopen, to leap, to run. The word is American
rather than Australian.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 35:
"Every body gallops here, or at least goes at a canter--which
they call the Australian lope."
Loquat, a Chinese word meaning "Rush-orange,"
Photinia japonica. Being highly ornamental and bearing
a pleasant stony juicy fruit of the colour and size of a small
orange, it has been introduced into nearly all Australian
gardens. The name Native Loquat has been given to an
indigenous shrub, Rhodomyrtus macrocarpa, Benth.,
N.O. Myrtaceae.
Lorikeet, n. a bird-name, little Lory
(q.v.). The species in Australia are--
Blue-bellied Lorikeet--
Trichoglossus novae-hollandiae, Gmel.
Blue-faced L.--
Cyclopsitta macleayana, Ramsay.
Little L.--
Trichoglossus pusillus, Shaw.
Musk L.--
T. concinnus, Shaw.
Purple-crowned L.--
T. porphyrocephalus, Dietr.
Red-collared L.--
T. rubritorqus, Vig. and Hors.
Red-faced L.--
Cyclopsitta coxenii, Gould.
Scaly-breasted L.--
Trichoglossus chlorolepidotus, Kuhl.
Swift L.--
Lathamus discolor, Shaw.
Varied L.--
Trichoglossus versicolor, Vig.
The following table gives Gould's classification in 1848:--
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v.
Plate
Lathamus discolor, Swift Lorikeet ... ... 47
Trichoglossus Novae-Hollandiae, Jard. and Selb.,
Swainson's L. ... ... ... ... ... ... 48
T. rubritorquis, Vig. and Horsf., Red-collared L. 49
T. chlorolepidotus, Scaly-breasted L. ... 50
T. versicolor, Vig., Varied L. ... ... 51
T. concinnus, Musky L. ... ... ... ... 52
T. porphyrocephalus, Dict., Porphyry-crowned L. 53
T. pusillus, Little L. ... ... ... ... 54
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 13, col. 4:
"On the hill-sides the converse of the lorikeets as they drain
the honeycups and swing and chatter in low undertones the whole
day long."
Lory, n. a bird-name. The word is Malay. (See
`Encyclopaedia Britannica,' vol. xv.) It is often spelt
Lowrie in Australia. The species in Australia are--
Crimson-winged Lory--
Aprosmictus coccineopterus, Gould.
King L.--
A. scapulatus, Bechst.
Red-winged Lory--
A. erythropterus, Gmel.
1848. Gould's `Birds of Australia,' vol. v.:
"Aprosmictus scapulatus, king lory;
erythropturus, red-winged lory."
Lotus-bird, n. Parra gallinacea, Temm.;
called also the Jacana (q.v.), and the Parra
(q.v.).
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 22:
"The most striking bird on the lagoon is doubtless the
beautiful Parra gallinacea, which in Australia is called
the lotus-bird. It sits on the leaves that float on the water,
particularly those of the water-lily."
Lowan, n. aboriginal birdname for Leipoa
ocellata, Gould. The name is used for the bird in Victoria
and in the south-east district of South Australia. In the
Mallee district, it is called Mallee-bird, Mallee
fowl, Mallee-hen (q.v.); in South Australia,
Native Pheasant (q.v.); and in various parts of
Australia, the Scrub-Turkey. The county called Lowan,
after the bird, is in the Mallee country in the west of
Victoria. See Turkey.
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 171:
"The Lowan (Mallee-hen, they're mostly called). The Lowan
eggs--beautiful pink thin-shelled ones they are, first-rate
to eat, and one of 'em a man's breakfast."
1890. A. H. S. Lucas, `Handbook of the Australasian
Association for the Advancement of Science,' Melbourne, p. 68:
"To the dry, arid Mallee Scrub of the Western District is a
radical change of scene. There the so-called Mallee hen, or
Native name, Lowan (Leipoa ocellata), loves to dwell."
1896. `The Argus,' Aug. 4, p. 5, col. 2:
"The postmaster at Nhill had drawn the attention of the Deputy
Postmaster-General to the large number of letters which are
received there addressed to `Lowan.' It should be understood
that this is the name of a county containing several postal
districts, and correspondents should be more specific in their
addresses."
Lowrie, n. a bird-name. An Australian variant
of Lory (q.v.).
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 40:
"A great many species of the parrot are found; and of these
the King Parrot is the most beautiful, and that called the
Lowrie is perhaps the most docile."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' p. 127:
"The birds are very beautiful--the Blue Mountain and Lowrie
parrots . . .'
Lubra, n. aboriginal name for a black woman.
The name comes from Tasmania, appearing first in the form
loubra, in a vocabulary given in the `Voyage de
Decouvertes de l'Astrolabe' (Paris, 1834), vol. vii. p. 9,
and was obtained from a Tasmanian woman, belonging to Port
Dalrymple on the Tamar River. It is probably a compound
of the Tasmanian words loa or lowa, a woman,
and proi (with variants), big. In Victoria, the use
of the word began at the Hopkins River and the vicinity,
having been introduced by settlers from Tasmania, but it was
generally adopted south of the Murray. North of the Murray
the native women were called Gins (q.v.). Both words
are now used indiscriminately.
1855. W. Blandowski, `Transactions of Philosophical Society
of Victoria,' vol. i. p. 73 :
"The young man who wishes to marry has first to look out for a
wife amongst the girls or leubras of some neighbouring
tribe."
1864. H. Simcox, `Outward Bound," p. 87:
"Many lubras so black with their load on their back."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life," p. 23:
"Certain stout young gins or lubras, set apart for that
purpose, were sacrificed."
1891. `The Argus,' Nov. 7, p. 13, col. 4:
"A few old lubras sufficiently dirty and unprepossessing."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 28:
"Naked, and not ashamed, the old men grey-bearded and eyes
bright, watched the cooking of the fish, and the younger, with
the lubras, did the honours of reception."
Lucerne, Native, or Paddy, n. i.q.
Queensland Hemp. See Hemp.
1895. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 95:
"And now lies wandering fat and sleek,
On the Lucerne flats by the Homestead Creek."
Luderick, or Ludrick, n. an aboriginal
Gippsland name for a local variety of the fish Girella
simplex, Richards., the Black-fish (q.v.).
Lugg, n. a fish not identified.
"Lug, a kind of fish." (`Walker,' 1827)
1802. Flemming, `Journal of the Exploration of C. Grimes'
(at Port Phillip), ed. by J. J. Shillinglaw, Melbourne, 1897,
p. 27:
"Many swans, ducks and luggs."
Lyonsia, n. a Tasmanian plant. See Devil's
guts.
Lyre-bird, n. an Australian bird, originally
called the Bird of Paradise of New South Wales; then
called a Native Pheasant, or Mountain Pheasant,
and still generally called a Pheasant by the Gippsland
bushmen. The name Lyre-bird apparently began between 1828 and
1834. It is not used by Cunningham, `Two Years in New South
Wales' (1828), vol. i. p. 303. See Menura.
The species are--
The Lyre-bird--
Menura superba, Davies.
Albert L.-b.--
M. alberti, Gould.
Victoria L.-b.--
M. victoriae, Gould.
Since 1888 the Lyre-bird has been the design on the
eight-penny postage-stamp of New South Wales.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 435:
"The Bird of Paradise of New South Wales [with picture]. This
elegant bird, which by some is called the Bird of Paradise, and
by others the Maenura Superba, has a straight bill, with the
nostrils in the centre of the beak."
1802. D. Collins, `History of English Colony of New South
Wales,' vol. ii. p. 335:
"Menura superba." [But not the name lyre-bird].
1834. Geo. Bennett, `Wanderings in New South Wales, etc.,'
/vol./ i. p. 277:
"The `Native or Wood-pheasant,' or `Lyre bird' of the
colonists, the `Menura superba' of naturalists, and the
`Beleck, beleck,' and `Balaugara' of the aboriginal tribes,
is abundant about the mountain ranges, in all parts of the
colony."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,'
p. 132:
"Numerous pheasants (Menura superba). These birds are
the mocking-birds of Australia, imitating all the sounds that
are heard in the bush in great perfection. They are about the
size of a barn-door fowl, and are not remarkable for any beauty
either in the shape or colour, being of a dirty brown,
approaching to black in some parts; their greatest attraction
consists in the graceful tail of the cock bird, which assumes
something the appearance of a lyre, for which reason some
naturalists have called them lyre-birds."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 14:
"Menura superba, Davies, Lyre-bird; Pheasant of the
Colonists. Were I requested to suggest an emblem for Australia
amongst its birds, I should without the slightest hesitation
select the Menura as the most appropriate, being
strictly peculiar to Australia."
1864. J. S. Moore, `Spring-Life Lyrics;' p. 92:
"Shy as the lyre-bird, hidden away,
A glittering waif in the wild."
1867. G. G. McCrae, `Balladeadro,' p. 30:
"There the proud lyre-bird spreads his tail,
And mocks the notes of hill and dale
Whether the wild dog's plaintive howl
Or cry of piping water-fowl."
1872. A. McFarland, `Illawarra Manaro,' p. 54:
"The Lyre-bird may yet be seen--more frequently heard--amongst
the gullies and ravines. It has the power of imitating every
other bird, and nearly every sound it hears in the bush-even
that of a cross-cut saw."
1886. J. A. Fronde, `Oceana,' p. 146:
"Here, too, for the first time, we saw a lyre-bird, which some
one had just shot, the body being like a coot's, and about the
same size, the tail long as the tail of a bird of paradise,
beautifully marked in bright brown, with the two chief feathers
curved into the shape of a Greek lyre, from which it takes its
name."
1890. `Victorian Statutes'--Game Act, Third Schedule:
[Close Season.] "Lyre Birds. The whole year."
1893. `The Age,' Aug. 7, p. vi, col. 9:
"There are more reasons than one why the lyre-bird should be
preserved. From a purely utilitarian point of view it is of
value, for it is insectivorous and preys upon insects which are
apt to prefer orchard fruit to their natural bush food. But
the bird has as well a national and sentimental value. Next to
the emu it is the most typical Australian bird. It is peculiar
to Australia, for in no other country is it to be seen.
Comparatively speaking it is a rara avis even in
Australia itself, for it is only to be found in the most
secluded parts of two colonies--Victoria and New South Wales.
It is the native pheasant. The aborigines call it
`Beleck-Beleck,' and whites call it the `lyre-bird' from the
shape of its tail; the ornithologists have named it
Menura. There are three species--the Victoriae
of this colony, and the Alberta and superba of
New South Wales. The general plumage is glossy brown, shaded
with black and silver grey, and the ornate tail of the male
bird is brown with black bars. They live in the densest
recesses of the fern gullies of the Dividing Range with the
yellow-breasted robin, the satin-bird, and the bell-bird as
their neighbours. They are the most shy of birds, and are
oftener heard than seen. Their notes, too, are heard more
frequently than they are recognized, for they are consummate
mimics and ventriloquists. They imitate to perfection the
notes of all other birds, the united voicing of a flock of
paraquetts [sic], the barking of dogs, the sawing of timber,
and the clink of the woodman's axe. Thus it is that the
menura has earned for itself the title of the Australian
mocking-bird. Parrots and magpies are taught to speak; as a
mimic the lyre-bird requires no teacher."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 9. p. 9, col. 1:
"If the creature was lovely its beauty was marketable and
fatal--and the lyre-bird was pursued to its last retreats and
inveigled to death, so that its feathers might be peddled in
our streets."
M
Mackerel, n. In Australia, Scomber
antarcticus, Castln., said to be identical with Scomber
pneumatophorus, De la Roche, the European mackerel; but
rare. In New Zealand, Scomber australasicus, Cuv. and
Val.
Macquarie Harbour Grape, or Macquarie Harbour
Vine, n. the Tasmanian name for Muhlenbeckia
adpressa, Meissn. N.O. Polygonaceae; called
Native Ivy in Australia. See Ivy and
Grape.
1831. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 265:
"That valuable plant called the Macquarie harbour grape.
It was so named by Mr. Lempriere, late of the Commissariat at
that station, who first brought it into notice as a desirable
acquisition in our gardens."
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 133:
"Polygonum adpressum. The Macquarie harbour vine,
either as an insignificant trailing plant, or as a magnificent
climber, according to the soil and situation, is found on the
coast of various parts of Van Diemen's Land, and also as far
inland as within about four miles of New Norfolk. This plant
has a small but sweet fruit, formed of the thickened divisions
of the calyx of the flower, inclosing a triangular seed of
unpleasant flavour."
Macquarie Pine, n. See Pine.
Macropus, n. the scientific name for the
typical genus of Macropodidae, established by Shaw in
1800. From the Greek makropous, long-footed. It
includes the Kangaroo (q.v.) and Wallaby (q.v.).
M. giganteus, Zimm., is the Giant Kangaroo, or
Forester (q.v.).
Mado, n. a Sydney fish, Therapon
cuvieri, Bleek; called also Trumpeter-Perch.
Atypus strigatus, Gunth., is also called Mado
by the Sydney fishermen, who confound it with the first species.
The name is probably aboriginal.
Magpie, n. a black-and-white Crow-Shrike,
present all over Australia. He resembles the English Magpie in
general appearance, but has not the long tail of that bird,
though he shares with him his kleptomania. He is often called
the Bush-magpie (q.v.) by townsfolk, to distinguish him
from the tamed specimens kept in many gardens, or in cages,
which are easily taught to talk. The species are--
Black-backed Magpie--
Gymnorhina tibicen, Lath.; called also
Flute-Bird (q.v.).
Long-billed M.--
G. dorsalis, Campbell.
White, or Organ M.--
G. organicum, Gould; called also Organ-bird
(q.v.).
White-backed M.--
G. leuconota, Gould.
In Tasmania, the name is also applied to the--
Black Magpie--
Strepera fuliginosa, Gould; and
S. arguta, Gould.
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffr/e/y Hamlyn,' vol. ii. p. 314
[Footnote]:
"Magpie, a large, pied crow.Of all the birds I have ever seen,
the cleverest, the most grotesque, and the most musical. The
splendid melody of his morning and evening song is as
unequalled as it is indescribable."
1869. B. Hoare, `Figures of Fancy,' p. 97:
"Gay magpies chant the livelong day."
1886. T. Heney, `Fortunate Days,' p. 47:
"The magpie swells from knoll or silent brake
His loud sweet tune."
1887. `Melbourne Punch,' March 31:
"The magpie maketh mute
His mellow fluent flute,
Nor chaunteth now his leuconotic hymn."
Magpie-Goose, n. a common name for the
Australian Goose, Anseranus melanoleuca, Lath.; called
also Swan-goose, and Pied goose.
See Goose.
Magpie-Lark, n. an Australian black-and-white
bird (Grallina picata, Lath.), resembling the Magpie in
appearance, but smaller; called also Pee-wee, and
Mudlark, from its building its nest of mud.
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 235:
"The little magpie-lark. . . . His more elegant and graceful
figure remains in modest silence by the hedgerow in the
outskirts."
Magpie-Perch, n. a West Australian, Victorian,
and Tasmanian fish, Chilodactylus gibbosus, Richards.;
not a true Perch, but of family Cirrhitidae.
Magra, n. aboriginal name for the sling or
pouch in which the gins carry their children on their backs.
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 185:
"Other lesser brats were in magras, gipsy-like, at their
mothers' backs."
On p. 191, Mr. Howitt uses the form "mogra."
Mahoe, n. Maori name for the New Zealand
Whitewood-tree, Melicytus ramiflorus, Forst.,
N.O. Violarieae.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 447:
"Mahoe (Melicytus ramiflorus) grows to the height
of about fifty feet, and has a fine thin spiral leaf."
1863. Thomas Moser, `Mahoe Leaves':
[Title of a volume of articles about the Maoris.]
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 130:
"Mahoe, hinahina. A small tree twenty to thirty feet high;
trunk often angular and seven feet in girth. The word is soft
and not in use. . . . Leaves greedily eaten by cattle."
Mahogany, n. The name, with varying epithets,
is applied to several Australian trees, chiefly
Eucalypts, on account of the redness or hardness of
their timber, and its applicability to purposes similar to that
of the true Mahogany. The following enumeration is compiled
from Maiden's `Useful Native Plants'
Mahogany, Tristania conferta, R. Br., N.O.
Myrtaceae; called also White Box, Red Box, Brush
Box, Bastard Box, Brisbane Box. This bark is occasionally used
for tanning.
Bastard Mahogany, or Gippsland Mahogany, or Swamp Mahogany,
Eucalyptus botryoides, Smith, N.O. Myrtaceae.
The Blue Gum of New South Wales coast districts. Bastard
Mahogany of Gippsland and New South Wales; called also Swamp
Mahogany in Victoria and New South Wales. It also bears the
names of Bastard Jarrah, and occasionally Woolly Butt. Sydney
workmen often give it the name Bangalay, by which it was
formerly known by the aboriginals of Port Jackson. It is one
of four colonial timbers recommended by the Victorian Carriage
Timber Board for use in the construction of railway carriages.
Specimens from Gippsland (Gippsland Mahogany) are spoken of as
"a timber of good colour, as strong as Blue Gum."
Mahogany, or Bastard Mahogany, Eucalyptus marginata,
Smith, N.O. Myrtaceae. Universally known as
Jarrah. In Western Australia it also bears the name
of Mahogany, or Bastard Mahogany.
Forest or Red Mahogany, Eucalyptus resinifera, Smith,
N.O. Myrtaceae; called also Jimmy Low (q.v.).
Forest Mahogany, Eucalyptus microcorys, F. v. M.,
N.O. Myrtaceae. In Queensland it is known as
Peppermint, the foliage being remarkably rich in volatile oil.
But its almost universal name is Tallow Wood (q.v.).
North of Port Jackson it bears the name of Turpentine
Tree (q.v.), and Forest Mahogany.
Tom Russell's Mahogany, Lysicarpus ternifolius,
F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Swamp Mahogany, or White Mahogany, Eucalyptus robusta,
Smith, N.O. Myrtaceae, B. Fl. This tree is known as
White, or Swamp Mahogany, from the fact that it generally grows
in swampy ground. It is also called Brown Gum. This timber is
much valued for shingles, wheelwrights'work, ship-building, and
building purposes generally. As a timber for fuel, and where
no great strength is required, it is excellent, especially when
we consider its adaptability to stagnant, swampy, or marshy
places.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. iv. p. 132:
"Mahogany, Jarrail, Eucalyptus, grows on white sandy land."
Ibid. vol. ii. c. iv. p. 231:
"Part of our road lay through a thick mahogany scrub."
Mai, or Matai, n. a New Zealand tree,
now called Podocarpus spicata.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 440:
"Matai, mai (Dacrydium mai), a tree with a fine thick
top, and leaf much resembling that of the yew. The wood is of
a slightly reddish colour, close-grained, but brittle, and
peculiarly fragrant when burnt. . . . Highly prized for fuel,
and also much used for furniture, as it works up easily and
comes next to the totara for durability."
1876. W. n. Blair, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. ix. art. x. p. 157:
"I have in this paper adhered to the popular name of black-pine
for this timber, but the native name matai is always used in
the north."
Maiden's Blush, n. name given to the Australian
tree Echinocarpus australis, Benth., N.O.
Tiliaceae; and sometimes applied to Euroschinus
falcatus, Hook., N.O. Anacardiaceae. The timber is
of a delicate rosy colour when cut. The fruit is called
Hedgehog-fruit (q.v.). In Tasmania, the name is applied
to Convolvulus erubescens, Sims., order
Convolvulaceae.
Maire, n. a Maori name applied to three kinds
of trees; viz.--
(1) Santalum cunninghamii, Hook., a sandal-wood;
2) Olea of various species (formerly Fusanus);
(3) Eugenia maire, A. Cunn., native box-wood, but now
usually confined to N.O. Santalaceae.
1835. W. Yate, `Some Account of New Zealand,' p. 41:
"Mairi--a tree of the Podocarpus species."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, pp. 132-33:
"Maire--a small tree ten to fifteen feet high, six to eight
inches in diameter; wood hard, close-grained, heavy, used by
Maoris in the manufacture of war implements. Has been used as
a substitute for box by wood-engravers. Black maire,
N.O. Jasmineae;also Maire-rau-nui, Olea
Cunninghamii. Hook., fil., Black M., forty to fifty feet
high, three to four feet in diameter, timber close-grained,
heavy, and very durable."
Major Buller, n. name given to one of the
fruits of the Geebong tribe. See Geebong.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 82:
"The Sergeant Baker in all probability got its local
appellation to the early history of the colony (New South
Wales), as it was called after a sergeant of that name in one
of the first detachments of a regiment; so were also two fruits
of the Geebong tribe (Persoonia); one was called Major
Buller, and the other Major Groce, and this latter again
further corrupted into Major Grocer."
Major Groce, or Major Grocer, name given to
one of the fruits of the Geebung tribe. See Geebung,
/or Geebong/ and quotation under Major Buller.
Major Mitchell, n. vernacular name of a species
of Cockatoo, Cacatua leadbeateri, Vig. It was called
after the explorer, Major (afterwards Sir Thomas) Mitchell, who
was Surveyor- General of New South Wales. The cry of the bird
was fancifully supposed to resemble his name.
See Leadbeater.
Make a light, expressive pigeon-English. An aboriginal's
phrase for to look for, to find. "You been make a light
yarraman this morning?" i.e. Have you found or seen the
horses this morning?
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' vol. ii. p. 185
[Footnote]:
"`Make a light,' in blackfellow's gibberish, means simply
`See.'"
Mako, n. originally Makomako. Maori
name for a New Zealand tree, Aristotelia racemosa,
Hook., N.O. Tiliaceae, often but incorrectly called
Mokomoko.
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 130:
"Mako, a small handsome tree, six to twenty feet high,
quick-growing, with large racemes of reddish nodding flowers.
Wood very light and white in colour."
Mako/2/, n. Maori name for the Tiger-
Shark. See Shark. The teeth of the Mako are used
for ornaments by the Maoris.
Mallee, n. and adj. an aboriginal word.
Any one of several scrubby species of Eucalyptus in the desert
parts of South Australia and Victoria, especially Eucalyptus
dumosa, Cunn., and E. oleosa, F. v. M., N.O.
Myrtaceae. They are also called Mallee Gums.
Accent on the first syllable. The word is much used as an
adjective to denote the district in which the shrub grows, the
"Mallee District," and this in late times is generally
shortened into The Mallee. Compare "The Lakes" for the
Lake-district of Cumberland. It then becomes used as an
epithet of Railways, Boards, Farmers, or any matters connected
with that district.
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 73:
"The natives of the Wimmera prepare a luscious drink from the
laap, a sweet exudation from the leaf of the mallee
(Eucalyptus dumosa"
1854. E. Stone Parker, `Aborigines of Australia,' p. 25:
"The immense thickets of Eucalyptus dumosa, commonly
designated the `Malle' scrub."
1857. W. Howitt,' Tallangetta,' vol. ii. p. 2:
"This mallee scrub, as it is called, consists of a dense wood
of a dwarf species of gum-tree, Eucalyptus dumosa.
This tree, not more than a dozen feet in height, stretches its
horizontal and rigid branches around it so as to form with its
congeners a close, compact mass."
186. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia, vol. i. p. 214
(Oxley's Expedition in 1817):
"The country, in dead flats, was overspread with what is now
called mallee scrub, that is, the dwarf spreading eucalyptus,
to which Mr. Cunningham gave the specific name of
dumosa, a most pestilent scrub to travel through,
the openings betwixt the trees being equally infested with
the detestable malle-grass."
1883. `The Mallee Pastoral Leases Act, 1883,' 47 Vict.
No. 766, p. 3:
"The lands not alienated from the Crown and situated in the
North-Western district of Victoria within the boundaries set
forth in the First Schedule hereto, comprising in all some ten
millions of acres wholly or partially covered with the mallee
plant, and known as the Mallee Country, shall be divided into
blocks as hereinafter provided."
1890. `The Argus,' June 13, p. 6, col. 2:
"Mallee Selections at Horsham. A special Mallee Board,
consisting of Mr. Hayes, head of the Mallee branch of
the Lands Department, and Mr. Porter."
1893. `The Argus,' April 24, p. 7, col. 5:
"In the Mallee country there is abundance of work, cutting down
mallee, picking up dead wood, rabbit destruction, etc.
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 46:
"One of the most common terms used by explorers is `Mallee'
scrub, so called from its being composed of dwarf species of
Eucalyptus, called `Mallee' by the natives. The species that
forms the `mallee' scrub of South Australia is the
Eucalyptus dumosa, and it is probable that allied
species receive the same name in other parts of the country."
1897. `The Argus,' March 2, p. 7, col. 1:
"The late Baron von Mueller was firmly convinced that it would
pay well in this colony, and especially in the mallee, to
manufacture potash."
Mallee-bird, n. an Australian bird, Leipoa
ocellata, Gould. Aboriginal name, the Lowan (q.v.);
see Turkey.
Mallee-fowl, n. Same as Mallee-bird
(q.v.).
Mallee-hen, n. Same as Mallee-bird
(q.v.).
1890. `Victorian Statutes-Game Act, Third Schedule':
[Close Season.] "Mallee-hen, from 1st day of August
to the 20th day of December next following in each year."
1895. `The Australasian,' Oct.5, p. 652, col. 1:
". . . the economy of the lowan or mallee-hen. . . . It
does not incubate its eggs after the manner of other birds, but
deposits them in a large mound of sand . . . Shy and timid.
Inhabits dry and scrubs. In shape and size resembles a greyish
mottled domestic turkey, but is smaller, more compact and
stouter in the legs."
Mallee-scrub, n. the "scrub," or thicket,
formed by the Mallee (q.v.).
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 22:
"The flat and, rarely, hilly plains . . . are covered
chiefly with thickets and `scrub' of social plants, generally
with hard and prickly leaves. This `scrub,' which is quite a
feature of the Australian interior, is chiefly formed of a
bushy Eucalyptus, which grows somewhat like our osiers to a
height of 8 or 10 feet, and often so densely covers the ground
as to be quite impenetrable. This is the `Mallee scrub' of
the explorers; while the still more dreaded `Mulga scrub'
consists of species of prickly acacia, which tear the clothes
and wound the flesh of the traveller."
Malurus, n. the scientific name for a genus of
Australian warblers. Name reduced from Malacurus, from
the Grk. malakos, soft, and 'oura, a tail. The
type-species is Malurus cyaneus of Australia, the
Superb Warbler or Blue-Wren. See Superb
Warbler, Wren, and Emu-Wren. All the
Maluri, of which there are fifteen or sixteen species,
are popularly known as Superb Warblers, but are more correctly
called Wrens.
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 136:
"The Wrens and Warblers--chiefly Maluri,
with the allied Amytis and Stipiturus--are purely
Australian. They are feeble on the wing but swift of foot."
Mana, n. a Maori word for power, influence,
right, authority, prestige. See chapter on Mana,
in `Old New Zealand' (1863), by Judge Maning.
1843. E. Dieffenbach, `Travels in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 371:
"Mana--command, authority, power."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 279:
"The natives feel that with the land their `mana,' or power,
has gone likewise; few therefore can now be induced to part
with land."
1863. F. E. Maning (Pakeha Maori), `Old New Zealand,' Intro.
p. iii:
"The Maoris of my tribe used to come and ask me which had the
greatest `mana' (i.e. fortune, prestige, power, strength),
the Protestant God or the Romanist one."
1873. `Appendix to Journal of House of Representatives,'
G. i, B. p. 8:
"The Government should be asked to recognize his mana
over that territory."
1881. J. L.Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 166:
"We should be glad to shelter ourselves under the mana--
the protection--of good old Kanini."
1892. `Otago Witness,' Dec 22, p. 7, col. 1:
"A man of great lineage whose personal mana was undisputed."
1896. `New Zealand Herald,' Feb. 14 [Leading Article]:
"The word `mana,' power, or influence, may be said to be
classical, as there were learned discussions about its precise
meaning in the early dispatches and State papers. It may be
said that misunderstanding about what mana meant caused
the war at Taranaki."
Mangaroo, n. aboriginal name for a small flying
phalanger with exquisitely fine fur.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii.
p. 217:
"Descending from the branches of an ironbark tree beside him,
a beautiful little mangaroo floated downwards on out-stretched
wings to the foot of a sapling at a little distance away, and
nimbly ascending it was followed by his mate."
Mangi, or Mangeao, n. Maori name for
a New Zealand tree, Litsea calicaris, Benth. and Hook. f.
1873. `Catalogue of Vienna Exhibition':
"Mangi--remarkably tough and compact, used for ship-blocks
and similar purposes."
Mango, n. Maori name for the Dog-fish
(q.v.), a species of shark.
Mangrove, n. The name is applied to trees
belonging to different natural orders, common in all tropical
regions and chiefly littoral. Species of these, Rhizophorea
mucronata, Lamb, and Avicennia officinalis, Linn.,
are common in Australia; the latter is also found in New
Zealand.
Bruguiera rheedii, of the N.O. Rhizophoreae,
is called in Australia Red Mangrove, and the same
vernacular name is applied to Heritiera littoralis,
Dryand., N.O. Sterculiaceae, the Sundri of India
and the Looking-glass Tree of English gardeners.
The name Milky Mangrove is given, in Australia, to
Excaecaria agallocha, Linn., N.O. Euphorbiaceae,
which further goes by the names of River Poisonous Tree
and Blind-your-Eyes--names alluding to the poisonous
juice of the stem.
The name River Mangrove is applied to AEgiceras
majus, Gaertn., N.O. Myrsineae, which is not endemic
in Australia.
In Tasmania, Native Mangrove is another name for the
Boobialla (q.v.)
Mangrove-Myrtle, n. name applied by Leichhardt
to the Indian tree Barringtonia acutangula, Gaertn.
(Stravadium rubrum De C.), N.O. Myrtaceae.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 289:
"As its foliage and the manner of the growth resemble
the mangrove, we called it the mangrove-myrtle."
Manna, n. the dried juice, of sweet taste,
obtained from incisions in the bark of various trees. The
Australian manna is obtained from certain Eucalypts, especially
E. viminalis, Labill. It differs chemically from the
better known product of the Manna-Ash (Fraxinus ornus).
See Lerp.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 99:
"Several of the species yield an exudation in the spring and
summer months, which coagulates and drops from the leaves to
the ground in small irregular shaped snow white particles,
often as large as an almond [?]. They are sweet and very
pleasant to the taste, and are greedily devoured by the birds,
ants, and other animals, and used to be carefully picked up and
eaten by the aborigines. This is a sort of Manna."
1878. R. Brough Smyth, `The Aborigines of Victoria,' vol. i.
p. 211:
"Two varieties of a substance called manna are among the
natural products . . . one kind . . . being secreted by the
leaves and slender twigs of the E. viminalis from
punctures or injuries done to these parts of the tree. . . .
It consists principally of a kind of grape sugar and about 5 %.
of the substance called mannite. Another variety of manna is
the secretion of the pupa of an insect of the Psylla
family and obtains the name of lerp among the
aborigines. At certain seasons of the year it is very abundant
on the leaves of E. dumosa, or mallee scrub . . ."
1878. W. W. Spicer, `Handbook of Plants of Tasmania, p. viii:
"The Hemipters, of which the aphids, or plant-lice, are a
familiar example, are furnished with stiff beaks, with which
they pierce the bark and leaves of various plants for the
purpose of extracting the juices. It is to the punctures of
this and some other insects of the same Order, that the sweet
white manna is due, which occurs in large quantities during the
summer months on many of the gum-trees."
Manna-Grass. See Grass.
Manna-Gum. See Manna and Gum.
Manoao, n. Maori name for a New Zealand tree,
Yellow-pine, Dacrydium colensoi, Hook.,
N.O. Coniferae.
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 192:
"The wood of the manoao is of a light-brown colour."
Manucode, n. The word is in English use for
the bird-of- paradise. It is Malay (manuk-dewata = bird
of the gods). The species in Australia is Manucodia
gouldii, Grey. See also Rifle-bird.
Manuka, n. the Maori name for Tea-tree
(q.v.). Properly, the accent is on the first syllable with
broad a. Vulgarly, the accent is placed on the second
syllable. There are two species in New Zealand, white
and red; the first, a low bush called Scrub-Manuka,
L. scoparium, R. and G. Forst., the Tea-tree used
by Captain Cook's sailors; the second, a tree Leptospermum
ericoides, A. Richard.
1840. J. S. Polack, `Manners and Customs of the New
Zealanders,' p. 258:
"This wood, called by the southern tribes manuka, is
remarkably hard and durable, and throughout the country is an
especial favourite with the natives, who make their spears,
paddles, fishing rods, etc., of this useful timber."
1842. W. R. Wade, `Journey in Northern Island of New
Zealand,' p. 75:
"The Manuka, or, as it is called in the northern part of the
island, Kahikatoa (leptospermum scoparium), is a
mysterious plant, known in Van Diemen's Land as the tea tree."
1843. E. Dieffenbach, `Travels in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 28:
"The manuka supplies the place of the tea-shrub."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 270:
"[The house] was protected from the weather by a wooden railing
filled in with branches of the manuka. This is a shrub very
abundant in some parts. The plant resembles the teaplant in
leaves and flower, and is often used green by the whalers and
traders for the same purpose."
1851. Mrs.Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 46:
"It is generally made of manuka a very hard, dark,
close-grained and heavy wood."
1867. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 121:
"The manuka, a sort of scrub, has a pretty blossom like a
diminutive Michaelmas daisy, white petals and a brown centre,
with a very aromatic odour; and this little flower is
succeeded by a berry with the same strong smell and taste of
spice. The shepherds sometimes make an infusion of these when
they are very hard up for tea; but it must be like drinking a
decoction of cloves."
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking about in New Zealand,' p. 70:
"Chiefly covered with fern and tea-tree (manuka) scrub."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 149:
"Then to a copse of manuka retreat,
Where they could safely, secretly commune."
[Domett has the following note--"`A large shrub or small tree;
leaves used as tea in Tasmania and Australia, where the plant
is equally abundant' (Hooker). In the poem it is called
indiscriminately manuka, broom, broom-like myrtle, or
leptosperm. The settlers often call it `tea-broom.'"]
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for the Mail,' p. 23:
"A tremendous fire of broadleaf and manuka roared in the
chimney."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 123:
"Manuka is a shrub which is rampant throughout New Zealand.
If it were less common it would be thought more beautiful.
In summer it is covered with white blossom: and there are
few more charming sights than a plain of flourishing manuka."
Maomao, n. Maori name for a New Zealand
sea-fish, Ditrema violacea.
1886. R. A. Sherrin, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 67:
"The delicious little maomao may be caught at the Riverina
Rocks in immense quantities."
Maori, n. (pronounced so as to rhyme with
Dowry). (1) The name used to designate themselves by
the Polynesian race occupying New Zealand when it was
discovered by the white man, and which still survives. They
are not aboriginal as is commonly supposed, but migrated into
New Zealand about 500 years ago from Hawaii, the tradition
still surviving of the two great canoes (Arawa and
Tainui) in which the pioneers arrived. They are
commonly spoken of as the Natives of New Zealand.
(2) The language of the Maori race.
(3) adj. applied to anything pertaining to the Maoris or
their language. See Pakeha.
There is a discussion on the word in the `Journal of Polynesian
Society,' vol. i. no. 3, vol. ii. no. 1, and vol. iii. no. i.
Bishop Williams (4th ed.) says that the word means, "of the
normal or usual kind." The Pakehas were not men to whom the
natives were accustomed. So Maori was used as opposed to the
Europeans, the white-skins. Kuri Maori was a name used
for a dog after the arrival of other quadrupeds called also
kuri. Wai maori was freshwater, ordinary as
opposed to sea-water. Another explanation is that the word
meant "indigenous," and that there are kindred words with that
meaning in other Polynesian languages. First, "indigenous," or
"of the native race," and then with a secondary meaning,
"ours." (See Tregear's Maori Comparative Dictionary,' s.v.)
The form of the plural varies. The form Maoris
is considered the more correct, but the form Maories
is frequently used by good writers.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 194:
"The Maori language is essentially a poor one, and possesses
in particular but few words which express abstract ideas."
1859. A. S. Thomson, `Story of New Zealand,' vol. i. c. iii.
p. 51:
"No light is thrown on the origin of the New Zealanders from
the name Maori which they call themselves. This word, rendered
by linguists `native,' is used in contradistinction to pakeha,
or stranger."
1864. Crosbie Ward, `Canterbury Rhymes,' `The Runaways' (2nd
edition), p. 79:
"One morn they fought, the fight was hot,
Although the day was show'ry;
And many a gallant soldier then
Was bid Memento Maori."
1891. Jessie Mackay, `The Sitter on the Rail, and other
Poems,' p. 61:
"Like the night, the fated Maori
Fights the coming day;
Fights and falls as doth the kauri
Hewn by axe away."
(4) Name given in New South Wales to the fish, Cosis
lineolatus, one of the Labridae, or Wrasses.
Maori-Cabbage, n. the wild cabbage of New
Zealand, Brassica spp., N.O. Cruciferae, said to
be descended from the cabbages planted by Captain Cook.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 206.:
"Every recollection of Cook is interesting. . . . But the chief
record of his having been on the island is the cabbage and
turnip which he sowed in various places: these have spread and
become quite naturalized, growing everywhere in the greatest
abundance, and affording an inexhaustible supply of excellent
vegetables."
1863. S. Butler, `First Year in Canterbury Settlement,'
p. 131:
"The only plant good to eat is Maori cabbage, and that is swede
turnip gone wild, from seed left by Captain Cook."
1880. W. Colenso, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xiii. art. i. p. 31 [`On the Vegetable Food of the
Ancient New Zealanders']:
"The leaves of several smaller plants were also used as
vegetables; but the use of these in modern times, or during the
last forty or fifty years, was commonly superseded by that of
the extremely useful and favourite plant--the Maori cabbage,
Brassica oleracea, introduced by Cook (nani of the
Maoris at the north, and rearea at the south), of which they
carefully sowed the seeds."
Maori-chief, n. name given to a New Zealand
Flathead-fish, Notothenia maoriensis, or
coriiceps. The name arises from marks on the fish
like tattooing. It is a very dark, almost black fish.
1877. P. Thomson, `Transactions of the New Zealand
Institute,' vol. x. art. xliv. p. 330:
"Some odd fishes now and then turn up in the market, such as
the Maori-chief, cat-fish, etc."
1878. Ibid. vol. xi. art. lii. p. 381:
"That very dark-skinned fish, the Maori-chief, Notothenia
Maoriensis of Dr. Haast, is not uncommon, but is rarely
seen more than one at a time."
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 5:
"Resemblances are strange things. At first it would seem
improbable that a fish could be like a man, but in Dunedin a
fish was shown to me called Maori Chief, and with the exercise
of a little imagination it was not difficult to perceive the
likeness. Nay, some years ago, at a fishmonger's in Melbourne,
a fish used to be labelled with the name of a prominent
Victorian politician now no more. There is reason, however,
to believe that art was called in to complete the likeness."
Maori-head, n. a swamp tussock, so called from
a fancied resemblance to the head of a Maori. (Compare
Black-boy.) It is not a grass, but a sedge
(carex).
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 169:
"A boggy creek that oozed sluggishly through rich black soil,
amongst tall raupo, maori-heads, and huge flax-bushes."
1892. W. McHutcheson, `Camp Life in Fiordland,' p. 34:
"Amid the ooze and slime rose a rank growth of `Maori heads.'"
Maori-hen, n. Same as Weka (q.v.).
Maoriland, n. a modern name for New Zealand.
It is hardly earlier than 1884. If the word, or anything like
it, such as Maoria, was used earlier, it meant "the
Maori parts of New Zealand." It is now used for the whole.
1873. J. H. St. John [Title]:
"Pakeha Rambles through Maori Lands."
1874. J. C. Johnstone [Title]:
"Maoria: a sketch of the Manners and Customs of the
Aboriginal Inhabitants of New Zealand."
1884. Kerry Nicholls [Title]:
"The King Country, or Explorations in New Zealand.
A Narrative of 600 Miles of Travel through Maoriland."
1884. [Title]:
"Maoriland: an Illustrated Handbook to New Zealand."
1886. Annie R. Butler [Title]
"Glimpses of Maori Land."
1890. T. Bracken [Title]:
"Musings in Maori Land."
1896. `The Argus,' July 22, p. 4, col. 8:
"Always something new from Maoriland! Our New Zealand friends
are kindly obliging us with vivid illustrations of how far
demagogues in office will actually go."
Maorilander, n. modern name for a white man
born in New Zealand.
1896. `Melbourne Punch,' April 9, p. 233, col. 2:
"Norman is a pushing young Maorilander who apparently has the
Britisher by the right ear."
Maori, White, New Zealand miners' name for a stone.
See quotation.
1883. `A Citizen,' `Illustrated Guide to Dunedin,' p. 169:
"Tungstate of lime occurs plentifully in the Wakatipu district,
where from its weight and colour it is called White
Maori by the miners."
Mapau, n. a Maori name for several New Zealand
trees; called also Mapou, and frequently corrupted by
settlers into Maple, by the law of Hobson-Jobson. The
name is applied to the following--
The Mapau--
Myrsine urvillei, De C., N.O. Myrsineae;
sometimes called Red Mapau.
Black M.--
Pittosporum tenuifolium, Banks and Sol.,
N.O. Pittosporeae; Maori name, Tawhiri.
White M.--
Carpodetus serratus, Forst., N.O. Saxifrageae;
Pittosporum eugenoides, A. Cunn.; Maori name,
Tarata (q.v.); called also the Hedge-laurel
(q.v.), Lemon-wood, and New Zealand Oak. See
Oak.
The first of these trees (Myrsine urvillei) is,
according to Colenso, the only tree to which the Maoris
themselves give the name Mapau. The others are
only so called by the settlers.
1868. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,' vol. i.,
`Essay on Botany of Otago,' p. 37:
"White Mapau, or Piripiri-whata (Carpodetus serratus),
an ornamental shrub-tree, with mottled-green leaves, and large
cymose panicles of white flowers. . . . Red Mapau (Myrsine
Urvillei), a small tree common at Dunedin. Wood dark red, very
astringent, used as fence stuff."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 132:
"Tawiri, white-mapou, white-birch (of Auckland). A small tree,
ten to thirty feet high; trunk unusually slender; branches
spreading in a fan-shaped manner, which makes it of very
ornamental appearance; flower white, profusely produced.
The wood is soft and tough."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 75:
"By the settlers it is frequently called `black mapou' on
account of the colour of the bark. . . . With still less
excuse it is sometimes called `black maple,' an obvious
corruption of the preceding."
Maple, n. In New Zealand, a common settlers'
corruption for any tree called Mapau (q.v.); in
Australia, applied to Villaresia moorei, F. v. M.,
N.O. Olacineae, called also the Scrub Silky Oak.
See Oak.
Maray, n. New South Wales name for the fish
Clupea sagax, Jenyns, family Clupeidae or
Herrings, almost identical with the English pilchard.
The word Maray is thought to be an aboriginal name.
Bloaters are made of this fish at Picton in New Zealand,
according to the Report of the Royal Commission on Fisheries of
New South Wales, 1880. But Agonostoma forsteri, a
Sea-Mullet, is also when dried called the Picton Herring
(q.v). See Herring and Aua.
Marble-fish, n. name given to the Tupong
(q.v.) in Geelong.
Marble-wood, n. name applied to a
whitish-coloured mottled timber, Olea paniculata,
R. Br., N.O. Jasmineae; called also Native Olive
and Ironwood.
Mark, a good, Australian slang.
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 233:
"I wondered often what was the meaning of this, amongst many
other peculiar colonial phrases, `Is the man a good mark?'
I heard it casually from the lips of apparently respectable
settlers, as they rode on the highway, `Such and such a one is
a good mark,"--simply a person who pays his men their wages,
without delays or drawbacks; a man to whom you may sell
anything safely; for there are in the colony people who are
regularly summoned before the magistrates by every servant they
employ for wages. They seem to like to do everything publicly,
legally, and so become notoriously not `good marks.'"
[So also "bad mark," in the opposite sense.]
Mariner, n. name given in Tasmania to
a marine univalve mollusc, either Elenchus badius,
or E. bellulus, Wood.
The Mariner is called by the Tasmanian Fishery
Commissioners the "Pearly Necklace Shell"; when deprived of its
epidermis by acid or other means, it has a blue or green pearly
lustre.
The shells are made into necklaces, of which the aboriginal
name is given as Merrina, and the name of the shell
is a corruption of this word, by the law of Hobson-Jobson.
Compare Warrener.
1878. `Catalogue of the Objects of Ethnotypical Art in the
National Gallery' (Melbourne), p. 52:
"Necklace, consisting of 565 shells (Elenchus Bellulus)
strung on thin, well-made twine. The native name of a cluster
of these shells was, according to one writer, Merrina."
Marsh, n. a Tasmanian name for a meadow.
See quotation.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 163:
"Perhaps my use of the common colonial term `marsh' may be
misunderstood at home, as I remember that I myself associated
it at first with the idea of a swamp; but a `marsh' here is
what would in England be called a meadow, with this difference,
that in our marshes, until partially drained, a growth of
tea-trees (Leptospermum) and rushes in some measure
encumbers them; but, after a short time, these die off, and are
trampled down, and a thick sward of verdant grass covers the
whole extent: such is our `marsh.'"
Marsupial, adj. See the Noun.
Marsupial, n. an animal in which the female has
an abdominal pouch in which the young, born in a very immature
state, are carried. (Lat. Marsupium = a pouch.) At the
present day Marsupials are only found in America and the
Australian region, the greater number being confined to the
latter. See quotation 1894, Lydekker.
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 129:
"The marsupial type exhibits the economy of nature under novel
and very interesting arrangements. . . . Australia is the
great head-quarters of the marsupial tribe."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 5:
"I believe it was Charles Lamb who said, the peculiarity of the
small fore-feet of the Kangaroo seemed to be for picking
pockets; but he forgot to mention the singularity
characterizing the animal kingdom of Australia, that they have
pockets to be picked, being mostly marsupial. We have often
amused ourselves by throwing sugar or bread into the pouch of
the Kangaroo, and seen with what delight the animal has picked
its own pocket, and devoured the contents, searching its bag,
like a Highlander his sporran, for more."
[See Kangaroo, quotation 1833.]
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 106:
"An Act known as the Marsupial Act was accordingly passed to
encourage their destruction, a reward of so much a scalp being
offered by the Government. . . . Some of the squatters have
gone to a vast expense in fencing-in their runs with marsupial
fencing, but it never pays."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 29:
"One of the sheep-owners told me that in the course of eighteen
months he had killed 64,000 of these animals (marsupials),
especially wallabies (Macropus dorsalis) and kangaroo-
rats (Lagorchestes conspicillatus), and also many
thousands of the larger kangaroo (Macropus giganteus)."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 5, p. 9, col. 1:
"In South Australia the Legislature has had to appoint a close
season for kangaroos, else would extinction of the larger
marsupials be at hand. We should have been forced to such
action also, if the American market for kangaroo-hides had
continued as brisk as formerly."
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 1:
"The great island-continent of Australia, together with the
South-eastern Austro-Malayan islands, is especially
characterized by being the home of the great majority of that
group of lowly mammals commonly designated marsupials, or
pouched-mammals. Indeed, with the exception of the still more
remarkable monotremes [q.v.], or egg-laying mammals, nearly the
whole of the mammalian fauna of Australia consists of these
marsupials, the only other indigenous mammals being certain
rodents and bats, together with the native dog, or dingo,
which may or may not have been introduced by man."
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 30:
"The presence of a predominating marsupial order in Australia
has, besides practically establishing the long isolation of
that continent from the rest of the globe, also given rise to
a number of ingenious theories professing to account for its
survival to this last stronghold."
Marsupial Mole, n. the only species of the
genus Notoryctes (q.v.), N. typhlops [from the
Greek notos, `south' (literally `south wind'), and
rhunchos, a `snout']; first described by Dr. Stirling of
Adelaide (in the `Transactions of the Royal Society of South
Australia,' 1891, p. 154). Aboriginal name, Urquamata.
It burrows with such extraordinary rapidity in the desert-sands
of Central Australia, to which it is confined, that, according
to Mr. Lydekker, it may be said to swim in the sand as a
porpoise does in the water.
Marsupial Wolf, n. See Thylacine and
Tasmanian Tiger.
Martin, >n. a bird common in England.
The species in Australia are--
Tree,
Petrochelidon nigricans, Vieill.;
Fairy,
Lagenoplastes ariel, Gould;
called also Bottle-Swallow (q.v.).
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 128:
". . . the elegant little Fairy Martins (Lagenoplastes
ariel), which construct a remarkable mud nest in shape not
unlike a retort."
Mary, n. used in Queensland of the aborigines,
as equivalent to girl or woman. "A black Mary." Compare
"Benjamin," used for husband.
Matagory, n. a prickly shrub of New Zealand,
Discaria toumatou, Raoul.; also called Wild
Irishman (q.v.). The Maori name is Tumatahuru,
of which Matagory, with various spellings, is a corruption,
much used by rabbiters and swagmen. The termination gory
evidently arises by the law of Hobson-Jobson from the fact
that the spikes draw blood.
1859. J. T. Thomson, in `Otago Gazette,' Sept. 22, p. 264:
"Much over-run with the scrub called `tomata-guru.'"
Alex. Garvie, ibid. p. 280:
"Much of it is encumbered with matakura scrub."
1892. W. McHutcheson, `Camp Life in Fiordland,' p. 8:
"Trudging moodily along in Indian file through
the matagouri scrub and tussock."
1896. `Otago Witness,' 7th May, p. 48:
"The tea generally tastes of birch or Matagouri."
Matai, often abridged to Mai, n.
Maori name for a New Zealand tree, Podocarpus spicata,
R. Br., N.O. Coniferae. Black-pine of Otago.
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 124:
"Mr. Buchanan has described a log of matai that he found had
been exposed for at least 200 years in a dense damp bush in
North-East Valley, Dunedin, as proved by its being enfolded by
the roots of three large trees of Griselinia littoralis."
Match-box Bean, n. another name for the ripe
hard seed of the Queensland Bean, Entada
scandens, Benth., N.O. Leguminosae. A tall climbing
plant. The seeds are used for match-boxes. See under
Bean.
Matipo, n. another Maori name for the New
Zealand trees called Mapau (q.v.).
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand' (ed. 1886),
p. 94:
"The varieties of matapo, a beautiful shrub, each leaf a study,
with its delicate tracery of black veins on a yellow-green
ground."
1879. J. B. Armstrong, `Transactions of the New Zealand
Institute,' vol. xxi. art. xlix. p. 329:
"The tipau, or matipo (pittosporum tenuifolium), makes the best
ornamental hedge I know of."
1879. `Tourist,' `New Zealand Country Journal,' vol. iii.
p. 93:
"An undergrowth of beautiful shrubs, conspicuous amongst these
were the Pittosporum or Matipo, which are, however, local in
their distribution, unlike the veronicas, which abound
everywhere."
Meadow Rice-grass, n. See Grass.
Mealy-back, n. a local name for the
Locust (q.v.).
Medicine-tree, i.q. Horse-radish Tree (q.v.).
Megapode, n. scientific name for a genus of
Australian birds with large feet--the Mound-birds
(q.v.). From Greek megas, large, and pous,
podos, a foot. They are also called Scrub fowls.
Melitose, n. the name given by Berthelot to the
sugar obtained from the manna of Eucalyptus mannifera.
Chemically identical with the raffinose extracted from molasses
and the gossypose extracted from cotton-seeds.
1894. `The Australasian,' April 28, p. 732, col. 1:
[Statement as to origin of melitose by the Baron von Mueller.]
"Sir Frederick M'Coy has traced the production of mellitose
also to a smaller cicade."
Melon, n. Besides its botanical use,
the word is applied in Australia to a small kangaroo,
the Paddy-melon (q.v.).
Melon-hole, n. a kind of honey-combing of the
surface in the interior plains, dangerous to horsemen, ascribed
to the work of the Paddy-melon. See preceding word, and
compare the English Rabbit-hole. The name is often
given to any similar series of holes, such as are sometimes
produced by the growing of certain plants.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 9:
"The soil of the Bricklow scrub is a stiff clay, washed out by
the rains into shallow holes, well known by the squatters under
the name of melon-holes."
Ibid. p: 77:
"A stiff, wiry, leafless, polyganaceous plant grows in the
shallow depressions of the surface of the ground, which are
significantly termed by the squatters `Melon-holes,' and
abound in the open Box-tree flats."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' p. 220:
"The plain is full of deep melon-holes, and the ground is rotten
and undermined with rats."
Menindie Clover, n. See Clover.
Menura, n. the scientific name of the genus of
the Lyre-bird (q.v.), so called from the crescent-shaped
form of the spots on the tail; the tail itself is shaped like a
lyre. (Grk. maen, moon, crescent, and 'oura,
tail.) The name was given by General Davies in 1800.
1800. T. Davies, `Description of Menura superba,' in
`Transactions of the Linnaean Society' (1802), vol. vi. p. 208:
"The general colour of the under sides of these two [tail]
feathers is of a pearly hue, elegantly marked on the inner web
with bright rufous-coloured crescent-shaped spots, which, from
the extraordinary construction of the parts, appear wonderfully
transparent."
Mere, or Meri, n. (pronounced
merry), a Maori war-club; a casse-te^te, or a
war-axe, from a foot to eighteen inches in length, and made of
any suitable hard material--stone, hard wood, whalebone. To
many people out of New Zealand the word is only known as the
name of a little trinket of greenstone (q.v.) made in
imitation of the New Zealand weapon in miniature, mounted in
gold or silver, and used as a brooch, locket, ear-ring, or
other article of jewelry.
1830. J. D. Lang, `Poems' (edition 1873), p. 116:
"Beneath his shaggy flaxen mat
The dreadful marree hangs concealed."
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 48:
"The old man has broken my head with his meri."
1859. A. S. Thomson, `Story of New Zealand,' p. 140:
"Of these the greenstone meri was the most esteemed. It weighs
six pounds, is thirteen inches long, and in shape resembles a
soda-water bottle flattened. In its handle is a hole for a
loop of flax, which is twisted round the wrist. Meris are
carried occasionally in the girdle, like Malay knives. In
conflicts the left hand grasped the enemy's hair, and one blow
from the meri on the head produced death."
188]. J. Bonwick, `Romance of Wool Trade,' p. 229:
"A land of musket and meri-armed warriors, unprovided with
a meat supply, even of kangaroo."
1889. Jessie Mackay, `The Spirit of the Rangatira,' p. 16:
"He brandished his greenstone mere high,
And shouted a Maori battle-cry."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. iii. p. 33:
"`No, no, my peg; I thrust it in with this meri,'
yells Maori Jack, brandishing his war-club."
Merinoes, Pure, n. a term often used,
especially in New South Wales, for the `very first families,'
as the pure merino is the most valuable sheep.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 116:
"Next we have the legitimates . . . such as have
legal reasons for visiting this colony; and the
illegitimates, or such as are free from that stigma.
The pure merinos are a variety of the latter species,
who pride themselves on being of the purest blood in the
colony."
Mersey Jolly-tail, n. See Jolly-tail.
Message-stick, n. The aboriginals sometimes
carve little blocks of wood with various marks to convey
messages. These are called by the whites,
message-sticks.
Messmate, n. name given to one of the
Gum-trees, Eucalyptus amygdalina, Labill., and often to
other species of Eucalypts, especially E. obliqua,
L'Herit. For origin of this curious name, see quotation, 1889.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 429:
"It is also known by the name of `Messmate,' because it is
allied to, or associated with, Stringy-bark. This is
probably the tallest tree on the globe, individuals having been
measured up to 400 ft., 410 ft., and in one case 420 ft., with
the length of the stem up to the first branch 295 ft. The
height of a tree at Mt. Baw Baw (Victoria) is quoted at 471
ft."
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 13, col1. 4:
"Away to the north-east a wooded range of mountains rolls along
the skyline, ragged rents showing here and there where the dead
messmates and white gums rise like gaunt skeletons from the
dusky brown-green mass into which distance tones the bracken
and the underwood."
Mia-mia, n. an aboriginal hut. The word is
aboriginal, and has been spelt variously. Mia-mia is
the most approved spelling, mi-mi the most approved
pronunciation. See Humpy.
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 103:
"There she stood in a perfect state of nudity, a little way
from the road, by her miam, smiling, or rather grimacing."
1852. Letter from Mrs. Perry, given in Canon Goodman's Church
in Victoria during Episcopate of Bishop Perry,' p. 167:
"We came upon the largest (deserted) native encampment we had
ever seen. One of the mia-mias (you know what that is by this
time--the a is not sounded) was as large as an ordinary
sized circular summer-house, and actually had rude seats all
round, which is quite unusual. It had no roof, they never
have, being mere break-weathers, not so high as a man's
shoulder."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 366:
"They constructed a mimi, or bower of boughs on the other,
leaving portholes amongst the boughs towards the road."
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria,' c. vii. p. 96:
"Their thoughts wandered to their hunting-grounds and mia-mias
on the Murray."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 15:
[Notice varied spelling in the same author.]
"Many of the diggers resided under branches of trees made into
small `miams' or `wigwams.'"
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 42:
"The next day I began building a little `mi-mi,' to serve
as a resting-place for the night in going back at any time
for supplies."
1883. E. M. Curr, `Recollections of Squatting in Victoria'
(1841-1851), p. 148:
"Of the mia-mias, some were standing; others had, wholly
or in part, been thrown down by their late occupants."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 32:
"A few branches thrown up against the prevailing wind,
in rude imitation of the native mia-mia."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' p. 111:
"[The blacks] would compel [the missionaries] to carry their
burdens while travelling, or build their mia-mias when halting
to camp for the night; in fact, all sorts of menial offices had
to be discharged by the missionaries for these noble black men
while away on the wilds!"
[Footnote]: "Small huts, made of bark and leafy boughs, built
so as to protect them against the side from which the wind
blew."
Micky, n. young wild bull. "Said to have
originated in Gippsland, Victoria. Probably from the
association of bulls with Mickeys, or Irishmen." (Barere and
Leland.)
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xviii.
p. 217:
"The wary and still more dangerously sudden `Micky,'
a two-year-old bull."
Micky/2/, n. In New Zealand, a corruption of
Mingi (q.v.).
Midwinter, n. The seasons being reversed in
Australia, Christmas occurs in the middle of summer. The
English word Midsummer has thus dropped out of use,
and "Christmas," or Christmas-time, is its Australian
substitute, whilst Midwinter is the word used to denote
the Australian winter-time of late June and early July. See
Christmas.
Mignonette, Native, n. a Tasmanian flower,
Stackhousia linariaefolia, Cunn., N.O.
Stackhouseae.
Mihanere, n. a convert to Christianity; a Maori
variant of the English word Missionary.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
pp. 11, 12:
"The mihanere natives, as a body, were distinctly inferior in
point of moral character to the natives, who remained with
their ancient customs unchanged. . . . A very common answer
from a converted native, accused of theft, was, `How can that
be? I am a mihanere.' . . . They were all mihanere, or
converts."
Milk-bush, n. a tall Queensland shrub,
Wrightia saligna, F. v. M., N.O. Apocyneae;
it is said to be most valuable as a fodder-bush.
Milk-fish, n. The name, in Australia,
is given to a marine animal belonging to the class
Holothurioidea. The Holothurians are called
Sea-cucumbers, or Sea-slugs. The Trepang,
or be^che-de-mer, eaten by the Chinese, belongs to them.
Called also Tit-fish (q.v.).
1880. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Proceedings of the
Linnaean Society of New South Wales,' vol. v. pt. ii.
p. 128:
"Another species [of Trepang] is the `milk fish' or `cotton
fish,' so called from its power of emitting a white viscid
fluid from its skin, which clings to an object like shreds of
cotton."
Milk-plant, n. i.q. Caustic Creeper
(q.v.).
Milk-tree, n. a New Zealand tree,
Epicarpurus microphyllus, Raoul.
1873. `Catalogue of Vienna Exhibition':
"Milk-tree . . . a tall slender tree exuding a milky sap:
wood white and very brittle."
Milk-wood, n. a Northern Territory name
for Melaleuca leucadendron, Linn.; called also
Paperbark-tree (q.v.).
Miller, n. a local name for the
Cicada. See Locust (quotation, 1896).
Millet, n. The name is given to several
Australian grasses. The Koda Millet of India, Paspalum
scrobiculatum, Linn., is called in Australia Ditch
Millet; Seaside Millet is the name given to
Paspalum distichum, Linn., both of the N.O.
Gramineae. But the principal species is called
Australian Millet, Native Millet, and Umbrella
Grass; it is Panicum decompositum, R. Br.,
N.O. Gramineae; it is not endemic in Australia.
1896. `The Australasian,' March 14, p. 488, col. 5:
"One of the very best of the grasses found in the hot regions
of Central Australia is the Australian millet, Panicum
decompositum. It is extremely hardy and stands the hot dry
summers of the north very well; it is nutritious, and cattle
and sheep are fond of it. It seeds freely, was used by the
aborigines for making a sort of cake, and was the only grain
stored by them. This grass thrives in poor soil, and starts
into rapid growth with the first autumn rains."
Mimosa, n. a scientific name applied to upwards
of two hundred trees of various genera in the Old World. The
genus Mimosa, under which the Australian trees called
Wattles were originally classed, formerly included the
Acacias. These now constitute a separate genus. Acacia
is the scientific name for the Wattle; though even now
an old colonist will call the Wattles "Mimosa."
1793. J. E. Smith, `Specimen of Botany of New Holland,'
p. 52:
"This shrub is now not uncommon in our greenhouses, having been
raised in plenty from seeds brought from Port Jackson. It
generally bears its fragrant flowers late in the autumn, and
might then at first sight be sooner taken for a Myrtus
than a Mimosa."
1802. Jas. Flemming, `Journal of Explorations of Charles
Grimes,' in `Historical Records of Port Phillip' (ed. 1879,
J. J. Shillinglaw), p. 25:
"Timber; gum, Banksia, oak, and mimosa of sorts, but not large
except the gum."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 202:
"Gum-arabic, which exudes from the mimosa shrubs."
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 18, p. 4, col. 2:
"`Cashmere' shawls do not grow on the mimosa trees."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 38:
"The mimosa is a very graceful tree; the foliage is of a light
green colour. . . . The yellow flowers with which the mimosa is
decked throw out a perfume sweeter than the laburnum; and the
gum . . . is said not to be dissimilar to gum-arabic."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 175:
"But, Yarra, thou art lovelier now,
With clouds of bloom on every bough;
A gladsome sight it is to see,
In blossom thy mimosa tree.
Like golden-moonlight doth it seem,
The moonlight of a heavenly dream;
A sunset lustre, chaste and cold,
A pearly splendour blent with gold."
"To the River Yarra."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 255:
"The other exports of Australia Felix consist chiefly of
tallow, cured beef and mutton, wheat, mimosa-bark, and
gumwood."
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 34:
"The mimosa--although it sadly chokes the country--when in
flower, fills the air with fragrance. Its bark is much used
for tanning purposes; and the gum that exudes from the stem is
of some value as an export, and is used by the blacks as food."
1870. F. S. Wilson, `Australian Songs,' p. 29:
"I have sat, and watched the landscape, latticed by the golden
curls,
Showering, like mimosa-blooms, in scented streams about my
breast."
Minah, n. (also Myna, Mina,
and Minah-bird, and the characteristic Australian
change of Miner). From Hindustani maina,
a starling. The word is originally applied in India to
various birds of the Starling kind, especially to Graculus
religiosa, a talking starling or grackle. One of these
Indian grackles, Acridotheres tristis, was acclimatised
in Melbourne, and is now common to the house-tops of most
Australian towns. He is not Australian, but is the bird
generally referred to as the Minah, or Minah-
bird. There are Minahs native to Australia,
of which the species are--
Bell-Mina--
Manorhina melanophrys, Lath.
Bush-M.--
Myzantha garrula, Lath.
Dusky-M.--
M. obscura, Gould.
Yellow-M.--
M. lutea, Gould.
Yellow-throated M.--
M. flavigula, Gould.
1803. Lord Valentia, `Voyages,' vol. i. p. 227 [Stanford]:
"During the whole of our stay two minahs were talking most
incessantly."
1813. J. Forbes, `Oriental Memoirs,' vol. i. p. 47 [Yule]:
"The mynah is a very entertaining bird, hopping about the
house, and articulating several words in the manner of the
starling."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 40:
"While at other times, like the miners (genus,
Myzantha), it soars from tree to tree with the most
graceful and easy movement."
Ibid. vol. iv. pl. 76:
"Myzantha garrula, Vig. and Horsf, Garrulous
Honey-eater; miner, Colonists of Van Diemen's Land,
M. flavigula, Gould, Yellow-Throated miner."
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' vol. i. p. 33:
"His common name . . . is said to be given from his
resemblance to some Indian bird called mina or miner."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 72:
"The Indian minah is as much at home, and almost as
presumptuous, as the sparrow."
(p. 146): "Yellow-legged minahs, tamest of all Australian
birds."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 265:
"The plaintive chirp of the mina."
Miner's Right, n. the licence to dig for gold.
See quotation.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' p. 1:
"A miner's right, a wonderful document, printed and written on
parchment, precisely as follows."
[A reduced facsimile is given.]
Ibid. p. 106:
"You produce your Miner's Right . . . The important piece of
parchment, about the size of a bank-cheque, was handed to the
Court."
Mingi, n. originally mingi mingi, Maori
name for a New Zealand shrub or small tree, Cyathodes
acerosa, R. Br., N.O. Epacrideae. In south New
Zealand it is often called Micky.
Minnow, n. name sometimes given to a very small
fish of New Zealand, Galaxias attenuatus, Jenyns, family
Galaxidae; called also Whitebait (q.v.). The
Maori name is Inanga (q.v.).
Mint, Australian or Native, n. a
plant, Mentha australis, R. Br., N.O. Labiatea.
This herb was largely used by the early colonists of South
Australia for tea. Many of the plants of the genus
Mentha in Australia yield oil of good flavour, among
them the common Pennyroyal.
Mint-tree, n. In Australia, the tree is
Prostanthera lasiantha, Labill., N.O. Labiateae.
Mirnyong, n. aboriginal name for a shell-mound,
generally supposed to be Victorian, but, by some, Tasmanian.
1888. R. M. Johnston, `Geology of Tasmania,' p. 337:
"With the exception of their rude inconspicuous flints, and the
accumulated remains of their feasts in the `mirnyongs,' or
native shell-mounds, along our coasts, which only have
significance to the careful observer, we have no other visible
evidence of their former existence."
1893. R. Etheridge, jun., `Transactions of the Royal Society
of South Australia,' p. 21 [Title of Paper]:
"The Mirrn-yong heaps at the North-West bank of the River
Murray."
Miro, n. (1) Maori name for a Robin
(q.v.), and adopted as the scientific name of a genus of New
Zealand Robins. The word is shortened form of
Miro-miro.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 403:
"Miro-miro (Miro albifrons). A little black-and-white
bird with a large head; it is very tame, and has a short
melancholy song. The miro toi-toi (muscicapa toi-toi)
is a bird not larger than the tom-tit. Its plumage is black
and white, having a white breast and some of the near feathers
of each wing tinged with white."
1879. W. Colenso, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xii. art. vii. p. 119:
"Proverb 28: Ma to kanohi miro-miro, [signifying] `To be
found by the sharp-eyed little bird.' Lit. `For the miro-miro's
eye.' Used as a stimulus to a person searching for anything
lost. The miro-miro is the little petroica toi-toi, which runs
up and down trees peering for minute insects in the bark."
1882. W. L. Buller, `Manual of the Birds of New Zealand,'
p. 23:
"The Petroeca Iongipes is confined to the North Island, where
it is very common in all the wooded parts of the country; but
it is represented in the South Island by a closely allied and
equally common species, the miro albifrons."
(2) Maori name for a New Zealand tree, Podocarpus
ferruginea, Don., N.O. Coniferae; the Black-pine
of Otago.
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 308:
"The miro-tree (Podocarpus ferruginea) is found in
slightly elevated situations in many of the forests in New
Zealand. Height about sixty feet. The wood varies from light
to dark-brown in colour, is close in grain, moderately hard and
heavy, planes up well, and takes a good polish."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 163:
"The Miro is a valuable tree, common in all parts of the
colony. . . . It is usually distinguished by its ordinary
native name."
Mistletoe, n. The name is given to various
species of trees of several genera--
(1) In Australia, generally, to various species of
Loranthus, N.O. Loranthaceae. There are a great
number, they are very common on the Eucalypts, and they have
the same viscous qualities as the European Mistletoes.
(2) In Western Australia, to Nuytsia floribunda, R. Br.,
N.O. Loranthaceae, a terrestrial species attaining the
dimensions of a tree--the Flame-tree (q.v.) of Western
Australia--and also curiously called there a Cabbage-
tree.
(3) In Tasmania, to Cassytha pubescens, R. Br.,
N.O. Lauraceae.
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings, p. 43:
"The English mistletoe is the well-known Viscum album,
whereas all the Victorian kinds belong to the genus
Loranthus, of which the Mediterranean
L. Europaeus is the prototype. The generic name arose
in allusion to the strap-like narrowness of the petals."
[Greek lowron, from Lat. lorum, a thong,
and 'anthos, a flower.]
Mitchell-Grass, n. an Australian grass,
Astrebla elymoides, A. triticoides, F. v. M.,
N.O. Gramineae. Two other species of Astrebla
are also called "Mitchell-grasses." See Grass.
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 660:
"Used for food by the natives. The most valuable fodder-grass
of the colony. True Mitchell-grass."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 78:
"Mitchell-grass. The flowering spikes resemble ears of wheat.
. . . It is by no means plentiful."
Moa, n. The word is Maori, and is used by that
race as the name of the gigantic struthious bird of New
Zealand, scientifically called Dinornis (q.v.). It has
passed into popular Australasian and English use for all
species of that bird. A full history of the discovery of the
Moa, of its nature and habits, and of the progress of the
classification of the species by Professor Owen, from the sole
evidence of the fossil remains of its bones, is given in the
Introduction to W. L. Buller's `Birds of New Zealand,' Vol. i.
(pp. xviii-xxxv).
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of New Zealand Language' (Church
Missionary Society), p. 181:
"Moe [sic], a bird so called."
1839. `Proceedings of Zoological Society,' Nov. 12:
[Description by Owen of Dinornis without the name
of Moa. It contained the words--
"So far as my skill in interpreting an osseous fragment may be
credited, I am willing to risk the reputation for it, on the
statement that there has existed, if there does not now exist,
in New Zealand a Struthious bird, nearly, if not quite equal in
size to the Ostrich."]
1844. Ibid. vol. iii. pt. iii. p. 237:
[Description of Dinornis by Owen, in which he names
the Moa, and quotes letter from Rev. W. (afterwards Bishop)
Williams, dated Feb. 28, 1842, "to which they gave the name
of Moa."]
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 137:
"The new genus Dinornis, which includes also the celebrated
moa, or gigantic bird of New Zealand, and bears some
resemblance to the present Apteryx, or wingless bird of that
country . . . The New Zealanders assert that this
extraordinary bird was in existence in the days of their
ancestors, and was finally destroyed by their grandfathers."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand' (English translation),
p. 214:
"First among them were the gigantic wingless Moas,
Dinornis and Palapteryx, which seem to have
been exterminated already about the middle of the seventeenth
century."
[Query, eighteenth century?]
1867. Ibid. p. 181:
"By the term `Moa' the natives signify a family of birds,
that we know merely from bones and skeletons, a family
of real giant-birds compared with the little Apterygides."
[Footnote]: "Moa or Toa, throughout Polynesia, is the word
applied to domestic fowls, originating perhaps from the Malay
word mua, a kind of peasants [sic]. The Maoris have no special
term for the domestic fowl."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' Introduction,
p. lvi. [Footnote]:
"I have remarked the following similarity between the names
employed in the Fijian and Maori languages for the same or
corresponding birds: Toa (any fowl-like kind of bird) = Moa
(Dinornis)."
Mob, n. a large number, the Australian noun of
multitude, and not implying anything low or noisy. It was
not used very early, as the first few of the following
quotations show.
1811. G. Paterson, `History of New South Wales,' p. 530:
"Besides herds of kangaroos, four large wolves were seen
at Western Port."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia':
[p. 110]: "Herds of kangaroos."
[p. 139]: "An immense herd of kangaroos."
[p. 196]: "Flocks of kangaroos of every size."
1835. T. B. Wilson, `Voyage round the World,' p. 243:
"We started several flocks of kangaroos."
1836. Dec. 26, Letter in `Three Years' Practical Experience
of a Settler in New South Wales,' p.44:
"A man buying a flock of sheep, or a herd of cattle . . .
While I watched the mop I had collected." [This, thus spelt,
seems the earliest instance.]
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 6:
"Droves of kangaroos."
Of Men--
[But with the Australian and not the ordinary English
signification.]
1874. W. M. B., `Narrative of Edward Crewe,' p. 223:
"A contractor in a large way having a mob of men in his
employ."
1890. `The Argus,' Aug.16, p.13, Col. 2:
"It doesn't seem possible to get a mob of steady men for work
of that sort now."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. ix. p. 69:
"He, tho' living fifty miles away, was one of the `Dunmore
mob,' and aided generally in the symposia which were there
enjoyed."
Of Blackfellows--
1822. J. West, `History of Tasmania' (1852), vol. ii.
p. 12:
"The settlers of 1822 remember a number of natives, who roamed
about the district, and were known as the `tame mob'; they
were absconders from different tribes."
1830. Newspaper (Tasmanian), March, (cited J. West, `History
of Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 42):
"A mob of natives appeared at Captain Smith's hut, at his run."
1835. H. Melville, `History of Van Diemen's Land,' p. 75:
"A mob of some score or so of natives, men, women, and
children, had been discovered by their fires."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia', p. 107:
"A whole crowd of men on horseback get together, with a mob
of blacks to assist them."
1892. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 134:
"At the side of the crowd was a small mob of blacks with their
dogs, spears, possum rugs, and all complete."
Of Cattle--
1860. R. Donaldson, `Bush Lays,' p. 14:
"Now to the stockyard crowds the mob;
'Twill soon be milking time."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 70:
"A number of cattle collected together is colonially termed
a mob."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii.
p. 105:
"A mixed mob of cattle--cows, steers, and heifers--
had to be collected."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 120:
"`Mobs' or small sub-divisions of the main herd."
Of Sheep--
1860. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 169:
"It was more horrible to see the drowning, or just drowned,
huddled-up `mob' (as sheep en masse are technically called)
which had made the dusky patch we noticed from the hill."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), May 22, p. 34, col. 2:
"A mob of sheep has been sold at Belfast at 1s. 10d. per
head."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 83
"The army of sheep--about thirty thousand in fifteen flocks--
at length reached the valley before dark, and the overseer,
pointing to a flock of two thousand, more or less, said,
`There's your mob.'"
Of Horses--
1865. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 27:
"All the animals to make friends with, mobs of horses to look
at."
1879. W. J. Barry, `Up and Down,' p. 197:
"I purchased a mob of horses for the Dunstan market."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 111:
"The stockman came suddenly on a mob of nearly thirty horses,
feeding up a pleasant valley."
Of Kangaroos--
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 59:
"The `old men' are always the largest and strongest in the
flock, or in colonial language `mob.'"
1864. `Once a Week,' Dec. 31, p. 45, `The Bulla Bulla
Bunyip':
"About a mile outside the town a four-rail fence skirted the
rough track we followed. It enclosed a lucerne paddock.
Over the grey rails, as we approached, came bounding a mob
of kangaroos, headed by a gigantic perfectly white `old man,'
which glimmered ghostly in the moonlight."
Of Ducks--
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia, p. 99:
"They [the ducks] all came in twos and threes, and small mobs."
Of Clothes--
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 22, p. 2, col. 6:
"They buttoned up in front; the only suit to the mob which
did so."
Of Books--
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 72:
"If it was in your mob of books, give this copy to somebody
that would appreciate it."
More generally--
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 20:
"A number of cattle together is here usually termed a `mob,'
and truly their riotous and unruly demeanour renders the
designation far from inapt; but I was very much amused at
first, to hear people gravely talking of `a mob of sheep,'
or `a mob of lambs,' and it was some time ere I became
accustomed to the novel use of the word. Now, the common
announcements that `the cuckoo hen has brought out a rare mob
of chickens,' or that `there's a great mob of quail in the big
paddock,' are to me fraught with no alarming anticipations."
1853. H. Berkeley Jones, `Adventures in Australia,' p. 114:
"`There will be a great mob of things going down to-day,' said
one to another, which meant that there would be a heavy cargo
in number; we must remember that the Australians have a patois
of their own."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xiii. p. 135:
"What a mob of houses, people, cabs, teams, men, women and
children!"
Mocking-bird, n. The name is given in
Australia to the Lyre-bird (q.v.), and in New Zealand
to the Tui (q.v.).
Mock-Olive, n. a tree. Called also
Axe-breaker (q.v.).
Mock-Orange, n. an Australian tree,
i.q. Native Laurel. See Laurel.
Mogo, n. the stone hatchet of the aborigines
of New South Wales.
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 204:
"I heard from the summit the mogo of a native at work on some
tree close by."
1868. W. Carleton, `Australian Nights,' p. 20:
"One mute memorial by his bier,
His mogo, boomerang, and spear."
Moguey, n. English corruption of Mokihi
(q.v.).
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 52:
"Moguey, a Maori name for a raupo or flax-stick raft."
Moki, n. the Maori name for the Bastard
Trumpeter (q.v.) of New Zealand, Latris ciliaris,
Forst., family Cirrhitidae.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 182:
"Moki, s. A fish so called."
Mokihi, or Moki, n. Maori name
for a raft; sometimes anglicised as Moguey.
1840. J. S. Polack, `Manners and Customs of New Zealanders,'
vol. ii. p. 226:
"In the absence of canoes, a quantity of dried bulrushes are
fastened together, on which the native is enabled to cross a
stream by sitting astride and paddling with his hands; these
humble conveyances are called moki, and resemble those made use
of by the Egyptians in crossing among the islands of the Nile.
They are extremely buoyant, and resist saturation for a longer
period."
1858. `Appendix to Journal of House of Representatives,'
c. iii. p. 18:
"We crossed the river on mokis. By means of large mokis,
carrying upwards of a ton. . . . Moki navigation."
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby,' p. 82:
"For the benefit of the unlearned in such matters, let me here
explain that a `Mokihi' is constructed of Koradies,
Anglice, the flowering stalks of the flax,--three
faggots of which lashed firmly in a point at the small ends,
and expanded by a piece of wood at the stern, constitute the
sides and bottom of the frail craft, which, propelled by a
paddle, furnishes sufficient means of transport for a single
individual."
Moko, n. the system of tattooing practised by
the Maoris. See Tattoo. It is not a fact--as popularly
supposed--that the "moko" was distinctive in different
families; serving, as is sometimes said, the purpose of a
coat-of-arms. The "moko" was in fact all made on the same
pattern--that of all Maori carvings. Some were more elaborate
than others. The sole difference was that some were in outline
only, some were half filled in, and others were finished in
elaborate detail.
1769. J. Banks, `Journal,' Nov. 22 (Sir J. D. Hooker's edition,
1896), p. 203:
"They had a much larger quantity of amoca [sic] or
black stains upon their bodies and faces. They had almost
universally a broad spiral on each buttock, and many had their
thighs almost entirely black, small lines only being left
untouched, so that they looked like striped breeches. In this
particular, I mean the use of amoca, almost every tribe
seems to have a different custom."
1896. `The Times' (Weekly Edition), July 17, p. 498 col. 3:
"In this handsome volume, `Moko or Maori Tattooing,'
Major-General Robley treats of an interesting subject with a
touch of the horrible about it which, to some readers, will
make the book almost fascinating. Nowhere was the system of
puncturing the flesh into patterns and devices carried out in
such perfection or to such an extent as in New Zealand. Both
men and women were operated upon among the Maoris."
Moko-moko, n. (1) Maori name for the Bell-bird
(q.v.), Anthornis melanura, Sparrm.
1888. A. W. Bathgate, `Sladen's Australian Ballads,' p. 22:
[Title]: "To the Moko-moko, or Bell-bird."
[Footnote]: "Now rapidly dying out of our land," sc. New
Zealand.
(2) Maori name for the lizard, Lygosoma ornatum, Gray,
or Lygosoma moko, Durn. and Bib.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 182:
"Moko-moko, a small lizard."
Mole, Marsupial. See Marsupial Mole.
Moloch, n. an Australian lizard, Moloch
horridus, Gray; called also Mountain Devil (q.v.).
There is no other species in the genus, and the adjective
(Lat. horridus, bristling) seems to have suggested the
noun, the name probably recalling Milton's line (`Paradise
Lost,' i. 392)
"First Moloch, horrid king, besmeared with blood."
Moloch was the national god of the Ammonites (1 Kings xi. 7),
and was the personification of fire as a destructive element.
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Narrative, p. 41:
"Numerous lizards such as the strange Moloch horridus,
the bright yellow, orange, red and black of which render it in
life very different in appearance from the bleached specimens
of museum cases."
Mongan, n. aboriginal name for the animal named
in the quotation.
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 173:
"Jimmy, however, had, to my great delight, found mongan
(Pseudochirus herbertensis), a new and very pretty
mammal, whose habitat is exclusively the highest tops of the
scrubs in the Coast Mountains."
Monk, n. another name for the Friar Bird
(q.v.).
Monkey-Bear, or Monkey, n. i.q.
Native Bear. See Bear.
1853. C. St. Julian and E. K. Silvester, `The
Productions, Industry, and Resources of New South Wales,'
p. 30:
"The Kola, so called by the aborigines, but more
commonly known among the settlers as the native bear or monkey,
is found in brush and forest lands . . ."
1891. Mrs. Cross (Ada Cambridge), `The Three Miss Kings,'
p. 9:
"A little monkey-bear came cautiously down from the only
gum-tree that grew on the premises, grunting and whimpering."
Monkey-shaft, n. "A shaft rising from a lower
to a higher level (as a rule perpendicularly), and differing
from a blind-shaft only in that the latter is sunk from a
higher to a lower level." (Brough Smyth's `Glossary.')
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 69:
"They began to think they might be already too deep for it,
and a small `monkey'-shaft was therefore driven upwards
from the end of the tunnel."
Monkeys, n. bush slang for sheep.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i.
p. 88:
"No one felt better pleased than he did to see the last lot of
`monkeys,' as the shearers usually denominated sheep, leave the
head-station."
Monotreme, n. the scientific name of an order
of Australian mammals (Monotremata). "The Monotremes
derive their name from the circumstance that there is, as in
birds and reptiles, but a single aperture at the hinder
extremity of the body from which are discharged the whole of
the waste-products, together with the reproductive elements;
the oviducts opening separately into the end of this passage,
which is termed the cloaca. [Grk. monos, sole, and
traema, a passage or hole.] Reproduction is effected by
means of eggs, which are laid and hatched by the female parent;
after [being hatched] the young are nourished by milk secreted
by special glands situated within a temporary pouch, into which
the head of the young animal is inserted and retained. . . .
It was not until 1884 that it was conclusively proved that the
Monotremes did actually lay eggs similar in structure to those
of birds and reptiles." (R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia and
Monotremata,' 1894, p. 227.)
The Monotremes are strictly confined to Australia, Tasmania,
and New Guinea. They are the Platypus (q.v.), and the
Echidna (q.v.), or Ant-eating Porcupine.
Mooley-Apple, n. i.q. Emu-Apple (q.v.)
Moor-hen, n. common English bird-name
(Gallinula). The Australian species are--
the Black, Gallinula tenebrosa, Gould;
Rufous-tailed, G. ruficrissa, Gould.
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 169:
"The Rail-like bird, the Black-tailed Tribonyx, or Moor-Hen of
the colonists, which, when strutting along the bank of a river,
has a grotesque appearance, with the tail quite erect like that
of a domestic fowl, and rarely resorts to flight." [The
Tribonyx is called Native Hen, not Moorhen.]
Moon, v. tr. a process in opossum-shooting,
explained in quotations.
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 182:
"`Mooning' opossums is a speciality with country boys. The
juvenile hunter utilises the moon as a cavalry patrol would his
field-glass for every suspected point."
1890. E. Davenport Cleland, `The White Kangaroo,' p. 66:
"They had to go through the process known as `mooning.'
Walking backwards from the tree, each one tried to get the
various limbs and branches between him and the moon, and then
follow them out to the uttermost bunch of leaves where the
'possum might be feeding."
Mopoke, n. aboriginal name for an Australian
bird, from its note "Mopoke." There is emphasis on the first
syllable, but much more on the second. Settlers very early
attempted to give an English shape and sense to this name.
The attempt took two forms, "More pork," and
"Mopehawk"; both forms are more than fifty years old.
The r sound, however, is not present in the note of
the bird, although the form More-pork is perhaps even
more popular than the true form Mopoke. The form
Mope-hawk seems to have been adopted through dislike
of the perhaps coarser idea attaching to "pork." The quaint
spelling Mawpawk seems to have been adopted for a
similar reason.
The bird is heard far more often than seen, hence confusion
has arisen as to what is the bird that utters the note.
The earlier view was that the bird was Podargus cuvieri,
Vig. and Hors., which still popularly retains the name;
whereas it is really the owl, Ninox boobook, that
calls "morepork" or "mopoke" so loudly at night. Curiously,
Gould, having already assigned the name Morepork to
Podargus, in describing the Owlet Night-jar
varies the spelling and writes, "little Mawepawk,
Colonists of Van Diemen's Land." The New Zealand Morepork
is assuredly an owl. The Podargus has received the
name of Frogmouth and the Mopoke has sometimes
been called a Cuckoo (q.v.). See also Boobook,
Frogsmouth.
The earliest ascertained use of the word is--
1827. Hellyer (in 1832), `Bischoff, Van Diemen's Land,'
p. 177:
"One of the men shot a `more pork.'"
The Bird's note--
1868. Carleton, `Australian Nights,' p. 19:
"The Austral cuckoo spoke
His melancholy note--`Mo-poke.'"
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs and Wattle Bloom,' p. 236:
"Many a still night in the bush I have listened to the weird
metallic call of this strange bird, the mopoke of the natives,
without hearing it give expression to the pork-shop
sentiments."
Podargus--
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 4:
"Podargus Cuvieri, Vig. and Horsf, More-pork
of the Colonists."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 33:
"We are lulled to sleep by the melancholy, sleep-inspiring, and
not disagreeable voices of the night bird Podargus--
`More-pork! more-pork!'"
1890. `Victorian Statutes-Game Act, Third Schedule.':
"Podargus or Mopoke. [Close Season.] The whole year."
Vague name of Cuckoo--
1854. G. H. Haydon, `The Australian Emigrant,' p. 110:
"The note of the More-pork, not unlike that of a cuckoo with a
cold."
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. i. p. 98:
"The distant monotone of the more-pork--the nocturnal cuckoo
of the Australian wilds."
Incorrect--
1858. W. H. Hall, `Practical Experiences at the Diggings in
Victoria,' p. 22:
"The low, melancholy, but pleasing cry of the Mope-hawk."
1877. William Sharp, `Earth's Voices':
"On yonder gum a mopoke's throat
Out-gurgles laughter grim,
And far within the fern-tree scrub
A lyre-bird sings his hymn."
[This is confusion worse confounded. It would seem as if the
poet confused the Laughing Jackass with the
Mopoke, q.v.]
1878. Mrs. H. Jones, `Long Years in Australia,' p. 145:
"How the mope-hawk is screeching."
Owl--
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 71:
"A bird of the owl species, called by the colonists morepork,
and by the natives whuck-whuck, derives both its names from the
peculiarity of its note. At some distance it reminds one of
the song of the cuckoo; when nearer it sounds hoarse and
discordant."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 1:
"AEgotheles Novae-Hollandiae, Vig. and Horsf, Owlet
Nightjar; Little Mawepawk, Colonists of Van Diemen's Land."
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii.
p. 253:
"The Mawpawk, More Pork, or Mope Hawk, is common in most parts
of the colony, and utters its peculiar two-syllable cry at
night very constantly. Its habits are those of the owl, and
its rather hawkish appearance partakes also of the
peculiarities of the goat-sucker tribe. . . . The sound
does not really resemble the words `more pork,' any more than
`cuckoo,' and it is more like the `tu-whoo' of the owl than
either."
1859. D. Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 14:
"Just as our sportsman, fresh from the legal precincts of
Gray's Inn Square, was taking a probably deadly aim, the
solitary and melancholy note of `More-pork! more-pork!' from
the Cyclopean, or Australian owl, interfered most opportunely
in warding off the shot."
1864. `Once a Week,' Dec. 31, p. 45. `The Bulla Bulla
Bunyip':
"The locusts were silent, but now and then might be heard
the greedy cry of the `morepork,' chasing the huge night-moths
through the dim dewy air."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 274:
"Owls are also numerous, the Mopoke's note being a familiar
sound in the midnight darkness of the forest."
By transference to a man.--
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 233:
"`A more-pork kind of a fellow' is a man of cut-and-dry
phrases, a person remarkable for nothing new in common
conversation. This by some is thought very expressive,
the more-pork being a kind of Australian owl, notorious
for its wearying nightly iteration, `More pork, more pork'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xiii. p. 125:
"What a regular more-pork I was to be sure to go and run my
neck agin' a roping-pole."
Morepork, n. (1) The Australian bird, or
birds, described under Mopoke (q.v.).
(2) The New Zealand Owl, formerly Athene
novae-zelandiae, Gray; now Spiloglaux
novae-zelandiae, Kaup.
1849. W. T. Power, `Sketches in New Zealand,' p. 74:
"This bird gave rise to a rather amusing incident in the Hutt
Valley during the time of the fighting. . . . A strong
piquet was turned out regularly about an hour before daybreak.
On one occasion the men had been standing silently under arms
for some time, and shivering in the cold morning air, when they
were startled by a solemn request for `more pork.' The officer
in command of the piquet, who had only very recently arrived in
the country, ordered no talking in the ranks, which was
immediately replied to by another demand, distinctly
enunciated, for `more pork.' So malaprop a remark produced a
titter along the ranks, which roused the irate officer to the
necessity of having his commands obeyed, and he accordingly
threatened to put the next person under arrest who dared make
any allusion to the unclean beast. As if in defiance of the
threat, and in contempt of the constituted authorities, `more
pork' was distinctly demanded in two places at once, and was
succeeded by an irresistible giggle from one end of the line to
the other. There was no putting up with such a breach of
discipline as this, and the officer, in a fury of indignation,
went along the line in search of the mutinous offender, when
suddenly a small chorus of `more pork' was heard on all sides,
and it was explained who the real culprits were."
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 100:
"The last cry of a very pretty little owl, called from its
distinctly uttered words the `more-pork.'"
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 84:
"Sleeping alone where the more-pork's call
At night is heard."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 192:
"Spiloglaux Novae-Zelandiae, Kaup., More-pork of the
colonists. Every New Zealand colonist is familiar with this
little owl, under the name of `morepork.'"
Moreton-Bay, n. the name formerly given to the
district of New South Wales which is now the colony of
Queensland. The Brisbane river (on which is situated Brisbane,
the capital of Queensland) enters it. See below.
Moreton-Bay Ash, n. See Ash.
Moreton-Bay Chestnut, n. See Bean-tree.
Moreton-Bay Fig, n. See Fig.
Moreton-Bay Laurel, n. See Laurel.
Moreton-Bay Pine, n. See Pine.
Moriori, n. a people akin to, but not identical
with, the Maoris. They occupied the Chatham Islands, and were
conquered in 1832 by the Maoris. In 1873, M. Quatrefages
published a monograph, `Moriori et Maori.'
Morwong, n. the New South Wales name for the
fish Chilodactylus macropterus, Richards.; also called
the Carp (q.v.) and Jackass-fish, and in New
Zealand by the Maori name of Tarakihi. The Melbourne
fishermen, according to Count Castelnau, call this fish the
Bastard Trumpeter (q.v.), but this name is also applied
to Latris forsteri, Castln. See also Trumpeter
and Paper-fish. The Red Morwong is
Chilodactylus fuscus, Castln., also called Carp
(q.v.). The Banded Morwong is Chilodactylus
vittatus, Garrett.
Moses, Prickly, n. a bushman's name for
Mimosa (q.v.).
1887. `The Australian,' April:
"I cannot recommend . . . [for fishing rods] . . . that awful
thing which our philosopher called `prickly moses.'"
Moulmein Cedar, n. See Cedar.
Mound-bird, n. the jungle-hen of Australia.
The birds scratch up heaps of soil and vegetable matter, in
which they bury their eggs and leave them to be hatched by the
heat of decomposition. Scientifically called Megapodes
(q.v.).
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 76:
"Next to these, as a special Australian type. . . . come
the bush-turkeys or mound-makers . . . all these birds have
the curious reptilian character of never sitting on their eggs,
which they bury under mounds of earth or decaying vegetable
matter, allowing them to be hatched by the heat of the sun,
or that produced by fermentation."
Mountain- (as epithet):
Mountain-Apple-tree--
Angophora lanceolata, Cav., N.O. Myrtaceae.
M.-Ash--
A name applied to various Eucalypts, and to the tree Alphitonia
excelsa, Reiss.
M.-Beech--
The tree Lomatia longifolia, R. Br.,
N.0. Proteaceae.
M.-Bloodwood--
The tree Eucalyptus eximia, Schau.
M.-Cypress-pine--
The tree Frenela parlatori, F. v. M.,
N.0. Coniferae.
M.-Ebony--
See Ebony.
M.-Gentian--
The name is applied to the Tasmanian species, Gentiana
saxosa, Forst., N.O. Gentianeae.
M.-Gums--
See Gum.
M.- Oak--
See Oak.
M.-Parrot--
Another name for the Kea (q.v.).
M.-Rocket--
The name is applied to the Tasmanian species Bellendena
montana, R. Br., N.O. Proteaceae.
M.-Tea-tree--
See Tea-tree.
Mountain-Devil, n. name given to the
strange-looking Australian lizard, Moloch horridus,
Gray. See Moloch. Also called Spiny Lizard.
1853. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. ii. p. 515 [November 9]:
"A spirit preparation of the Spiny Lizard (Moloch
horridus) of Western Australia."
Mountain Thrush, n. an Australian thrush,
Oreocincla lunulata, Gould. See Thrush.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 7:
"Oreocincla lunulatus, Mountain Thrush, Colonists of Van
Diemen's Land. In all localities suitable to its habits and
mode of life, this species is tolerably abundant, both in Van
Diemen's Land and in New South Wales; it has also been observed
in South Australia, where however it is rare."
Mountain-Trout, n. species of Galaxias,
small cylindrical fishes inhabiting the colder rivers of
Australasia, Southern Chili, Magellan Straits, and the Falkland
Islands. On account of the distribution of these fish and of
other forms of animals, it has been suggested that in a remote
geological period the area of land above the level of the sea
in the antarctic regions must have been sufficiently extended
to admit of some kind of continuity across the whole width of
the Pacific between the southern extremities of South America
and Australia.
Mud-fat, adj. fat as mud, very fat.
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 142:
"There's half this fine body of veal, mud-fat and tender
as a chicken, worth a shilling a pound there."
Mud-fish, n. a fish of Westland, New Zealand,
Neochanna apoda, Gunth. Guenther says Neochanna
is a "degraded form of Galaxias [see
Mountain-Trout], from which it differs by the absence
of ventral fins. This fish has hitherto been found only in
burrows, which it excavates 1n clay or consolidated mud, at
a distance from water."
Mud-lark, n. another name for the Magpie-lark,
Grallina picata (q.v.).
Mulberry-bird, n. name given to the Australian
bird Sphecotheres maxillaris, Lath.; called also
Fig-bird (q.v.).
1891. A. J. North, `Records of the Australian Museum,' vol.
i. no. 6, p. 113:
"Southern Sphecotheres. Mr. Grime informs me it is fairly
common on the Tweed River, where it is locally known as the
`Mulberry-bird,' from the decided preference it evinces for
that species of fruit amongst many others attacked by this
bird."
Mulberry, Native, n. name given to three Australian trees,
viz.--
Hedycarya cunninghami, Tull., N.O. Monimiaceae.
Called also Smooth Holly.
Piturus propinquus, Wedd., N.O. Urticeae. Called
also Queensland Grasscloth Plant.
Litsaea ferruginea, Mart., N.O. Laurineae.
Called also Pigeonberry-tree.
The common English garden fruit-tree is also acclimatised, and
the Victorian Silk Culture Association, assisted by the
Government, are planting many thousands of the White
Mulberry for silk culture.
Mulga, n. an aboriginal word. (1) Name given
to various species of Acacia, but especially A. aneura,
F. v. M., N.0. Leguminosae. See also Red Mulga.
1864. J. McDouall Stuart, `Explorations in Australia,'
p. 154:
"We arrived at the foot nearly naked, and got into open sandy
rises and valleys, with mulga and plenty of grass, amongst
which there is some spinifex growing."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. ii. p. 126, Note:
"Mulga is an Acacia. It grows in thick bushes, with thin twigs
and small leaves. Probably it is the most extensively
distributed tree in all Australia. It extends right across
the continent."
1888. Baron F. von Mueller, `Select Extra-tropical Plants'
[7th ed.], p. 1:
"Acacia aneura, F. v. M. Arid desert interior of extra-tropic
Australia. A tree never more than 25 feet high. The principal
`Mulga' tree. . . . Cattle and sheep browse on the twigs of
this and some allied species, even in the presence of plentiful
grass, and are much sustained by such acacias in seasons of
protracted drought."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,'
p. 43:
"Not a drop of rain! And for many and many a day the jackaroo
will still chop down the limbs of the mulga-tree, that of its
tonic leaves the sheep may eat and live."
1894. `The Argus,' Sept. 1, p. 4, col. 2:
"The dull green of the mulga-scrub at their base."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 85:
"Flax and tussock and fern,
Gum and mulga and sand,
Reef and palm--but my fancies turn
Ever away from land."
(2) A weapon, made of mulgawood.
(a) A shield.
1878. `Catalogue of Ethnotypical Art in the National Gallery'
(Melbourne), p. 19:
"Mulga. Victoria. Thirty-six inches in length. This
specimen is 37 inches in length and 5 inches in breadth at the
broadest part. The form of a section through the middle is
nearly triangular. The aperture for the hand (cut in the solid
wood) is less than 4 inches in length. Ornamentation
:Herring-bone, the incised lines being filled in with white
clay. Some figures of an irregular form are probably the
distinguishing marks of the owner's tribe. This shield was
obtained from Larne-Gherin in the Western District."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 349:
"Mulga is the name of a long narrow shield of wood,
made by the aboriginals out of acacia-wood."
(b) In one place Sir Thomas Mitchell speaks of it as a club.
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. ii. p. 267:
"The malga [sic] . . . with which these natives were
provided, somewhat resembled a pick-axe with one half broken
off."
Mulga-Apple, n. a gall formed on the
Mulga-tree, Acacia aneura, F. v. M. (q.v.). See also
Apple.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 3:
"In Western New South Wales two kinds of galls are found on
these trees. One kind is very astringent, and not used; but
the other is less abundant, larger, succulent and edible.
These latter galls are called `mulga-apples,' and are said to
be very welcome to the thirsty traveller."
1889. E. Giles, `Australia Twice Traversed,' p. 71:
"The mulga bears a small woody fruit called the mulga apple.
It somewhat resembles the taste of apples and is sweet."
Mulga-down, n. hills covered with Mulga.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvii. p. 201:
"Fascinating territories of limitless mulga-downs."
Mulga-grass, n. an Australian grass,
Danthonia penicillata, F. v. M.; also Neurachne
mitchelliana, Nees. See also Grass.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 82:
"Mulga Grass. . . . Peculiar to the back country. It derives
its vernacular name from being only found where the mulga-tree
(Acacia aneura and other species) grows; it is a very
nutritious and much esteemed grass."
Mulga-scrub, n. thickets of Mulga-trees.
1864. J. McDouall Stuart, `Explorations in Australia,'
p. 190:
"For the first three miles our course was through a very thick
mulga scrub, with plenty of grass, and occasionally a little
spinifex."
1875. John Forrest, `Explorations in Australia,' p. 220:
"Travelled till after dark through and over spinifex plains,
wooded with acacia and mulga scrub, and camped without water
and only a little scrub for the horses, having travelled
nearly forty miles."
1876. W. Harcus, `South Australia,' p. 127:
"The road for the next thirty miles, to Charlotte Waters
Telegraph Station, is characterized by mulga-scrub, open
plains, sand-hills, and stony rises poorly grassed."
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 47:
"Still more dreaded by the explorer is the `Mulga' scrub,
consisting chiefly of dwarf acacias. These grow in spreading
irregular bushes armed with strong spines, and where matted
with other shrubs form a mass of vegetation through which it
is impossible to penetrate."
Mulga-studded, adj. with Mulga growing here
and there.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvii. p. 201:
"The frown on the face of the mulga-studded lowlands deepened."
Mullet, n. Various species of this fish are
present in Australasia, all belonging to the family
Mugilidae, or Grey-Mullets. They are the--
Flat-tail Mullet--
Mugil peronii, Cuv. and Val.
Hard-gut M.--
M. dobula, Gunth.
Sand-M., or Talleygalanu--
Myxus elongatus, Gunth. (called also Poddy
in Victoria).
Sea-M.--
M. grandis, Castln.
In New Zealand, the Mullet is Mugil perusii, called
the Silver-Mullet (Maori name, Kanae); and the Sea-Mullet,
Agonostoma forsteri (Maori name, Aua, q.v.);
abundant also in Tasmanian estuaries.
The Sand-Mullet in Tasmania is Mugil cephalotus,
Cuv. and Val. See also Red-Mullet.
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Fisheries Act, Second Schedule':
[Close Season.] "Sand-mullet or poddies."
Mullock, n. In English, the word is obsolete;
it was used by Chaucer in the sense of refuse, dirt. In
Australia, it is confined to" `rubbish, dirt, stuff taken out
of a mine--the refuse after the vein-stuff is taken away'
(Brough Smyth's `Glossary')."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. ii. p. 26:
"A man each windlass-handle working slow,
Raises the mullock from his mate below."
1874. Garnet Walch, `Head over Heels, p. 77:
"But still we worked on--same old tune
For nothin' but mullock come up."
Mullock over, v. Shearing slang.
See quotation.
1893. `The Age,' Sept. 23, p. 14, col. 4:
"I affirm as a practical shearer, that no man could shear 321
sheep in eight hours, although I will admit he might do what we
shearers call `mullock over' that number; and what is more, no
manager or overseer who knows his work would allow a shearer to
do that number of sheep or lambs in one day."
Munyeru, n. name given to the small black seeds
of Claytonia balonnensis, F. v. M.,
N.O. Portulaceae, which are ground up and mixed with
water so as to form a paste. It forms a staple article of diet
amongst the Arunta and other tribes of Central Australia.
1896. E. C. Stirling, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Anthropology, p. 56:
"In these districts `Munyeru' takes the place of the spore
cases of `Nardoo' (Marsilea quadrifolia), which is so
much used in the Barcoo and other districts to the south and
east, these being treated in a similar way."
Murray-Carp, n. See Carp.
Murray-Cod, n. an important fresh-water
food-fish, Oligorus macquariensis, Cuv. and Val., called
Kookoobal by the aborigines of the Murrumbidgee, and
Pundy by those of the Lower Murray. A closely allied
species is called the Murray-Perch. Has been known to
reach a weight of 120 lbs.
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the Interior
of Eastern Australia,' vol. i. p. 95:
"We soon found that this river contained . . . the fish we
first found in the Peel, commonly called by the colonists `the
cod,' although most erroneously, since it has nothing whatever
to do with malacopterygious fishes."
1880. Guenther, `Introduction to Study of Fishes,' p. 392
(`O.E.D.'):
"The first (Oligorus macquariensis) is called by the
colonists `Murray-cod,' being plentiful in the Murray River and
other rivers of South Australia. It attains to a length of
more than 3 feet and to a weight of nearly 100 lbs."
Murray-Lily, n. See Lily.
Murray-Perch, n. a freshwater fish, Oligorus
mitchelli, Castln., closely allied to Oligorus
macquariensis, the Murray-Cod, belonging to the family
Percidae.
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 124:
"Our noble old 1400-mile river, the Murray, well christened
the Nile of Australia, . . . produces `snags,' and that finny
monster, the Murray cod, together with his less bulky, equally
flavourless congener, the Murray perch."
Murr-nong, n. a plant. The name used by the
natives in Southern Australia for Microseris forsteri,
Hook., N.O. Compositae.
1878. R. Brough Smyth, `Aborigines of Victoria,' p. 209:
"Murr-nong, or `Mirr-n'yong', a kind of yam (Microseris
Forsteri) was usually very plentiful, and easily found in
the spring and early summer, and was dug out of the earth by
the women and children."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 45:
"Murr-nong, or `Mirr n'yong' of the aboriginals of New South
Wales and Victoria. The tubers were largely used as food by
the aboriginals. They are sweet and milky, and in flavour
resemble the cocoa-nut."
Murrumbidgee Pine, n. See Pine.
Mushroom, n. The common English mushroom,
Agaricus campestris, Linn., N.O. Fungi, abounds
in Australia, and there are many other indigenous edible
species.
Musk-Duck, n. the Australian bird, Biziura
lobata, Shaw. See Duck.
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 30:
"The ungainly musk-duck paddles clumsily away from the passing
steamer, but hardly out of gunshot, for he seems to know that
his fishy flesh is not esteemed by man."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 159:
"That's a musk duck: the plumage is very sombre and loose
looking--not so thick as most other ducks; the tail, too, is
singular, little more than a small fan of short quills. The
head of the male has a kind of black leathery excrescence under
the bill that gives it an odd expression, and the whole bird
has a strange odour of musk, rendering it quite uneatable."
Musk-Kangaroo, n. See Hypsiprymnodon
and Kangaroo.
Musk-Parrakeet, n. an Australian parrakeet.
See Parrakeet.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pl. 5:
"Trichoglossus Concinnus, Vig. and Horsf.
(Australis, Wagl.), Musky-Parrakeet;
Musk-Parrakeet, Colonists of New South Wales,
from the peculiar odour of the bird."
Musk-tree, n. The name is applied to Marlea
vitiense, Benth., N.O. Cornaceae, with edible nuts,
which is not endemic in Australia, and to two native trees of
the N.O. Compositae--Aster argophyllus, Labill.,
called also Musk-wood, from the scent of the timber;
and Aster viscosus, Labill., called also the Dwarf
Musk-tree.
1848. Letter by Mrs. Perry, given in Canon Goodman's `Church
in Victoria during the Episcopate of Bishop Perry,' p. 71:
"Also there is some pretty underwood, a good deal of the
musk-tree--which is very different from our musk-plant, growing
quite into a shrub and having a leaf like the laurel in shape."
1888. Mrs. M'Cann, `Poetical Works,' p. 143:
"The musk-tree scents the evening air
Far down the leafy vale."
Musk-wood, n. See Musk-tree.
Mussel, n. Some Australasian species of this
mollusc are--
Mytilus latus, Lamark., Victoria, Tasmania,
and New Zealand;
M. tasmanicus, Tenison Woods, Tasmania;
M. rostratus, Dunker, Tasmania and Victoria;
M. hirsutus, Lamark., Tasmania, South Australia,
Victoria, New Zealand;
M. crassus, Tenison-Woods, Tasmania.
Fresh-water Mussels belong to the genus Unio.
Mutton-bird, n. The word is ordinarily applied
to the Antarctic Petrel, AEstrelata lessoni. In
Australasia it is applied to the Puffin or Short-tailed Petrel,
Puffinus brevicaudus, Brandt. The collection of the
eggs of this Petrel, the preparation of oil from it, the
salting of its flesh for food, form the principal means of
subsistence of the inhabitants, half-caste and other, of the
islands in Bass Straits.
1839. W. Mann, `Six Years' Residence in the Australian
Provinces,' p. 51:
"They are commonly called mutton birds, from their
flavour and fatness; they are migratory,and arrive in Bass's
Straits about the commencement of spring, in such numbers that
they darken the air."
1843. J. Backhouse, `Narrative of a Visit to the Australian
Colonies' (1832), p. 73:
"Mutton birds were in such vast flocks, that, at a distance,
they seemed as thick as bees when swarming."
Ibid. p. 91:
"The Mutton-birds, or Sooty Petrels, are about the size of
the Wood Pigeon of England; they are of a dark colour,
and are called `Yola' by the natives."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i.
p. 264:
"The principal occupation of these people during this month of
the year is taking the Sooty Petrel, called by the Colonists
the Mutton Bird, from a fancied resemblance to the taste of
that meat."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,'
p. 47:
"The mutton-bird, or sooty petrel . . . is about the size of
the wood-pigeon of England, and is of a dark colour. These
birds are migratory, and are to be seen ranging over the
surface of the great southern ocean far from land . . . Many
millions of these birds are destroyed annually for the sake of
their feathers and the oil of the young, which they are made to
disgorge by pressing the craws."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 382:
"The titi, or mutton-bird, is a seabird which goes inland at
night just as the light wanes. The natives light a bright
fire, behind which they sit, each armed with a long stick. The
titis, attracted by the light, fly by in great numbers, and are
knocked down as quickly as possible; thus in one night several
hundreds are often killed, which they preserve in their own fat
for future use."
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand the Britain of the South,'
vol. i. p. 121:
"The young titi (mutton-bird), a species of puffin, is caught
by the natives in great quantities, potted in its own fat, and
sent as a sort of `pa^te de foie gras' to inland friends."
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,' p. 232:
"The natives in the South [of Stewart's Island] trade largely
with their brethren in the North, in supplies of the mutton-
bird, which they boil down, and pack in its own fat in the
large air-bags of sea-weed."
1879. H. n. Moselep `Notes by Naturalist on Challenger,
p. 207:
"Besides the prion, there is the `mutton-bird' of the whalers
(AEstrelata lessoni), a large Procellanid, as big as a
pigeon, white and brown and grey in colour."
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 49:
"The crest of the Cape [Wollomai] is a favourite haunt of those
elegant but prosaically-named sea-fowl, the `mutton-birds.'. .
One of the sports of the neighbourhood is `mutton-birding.'
1888. A. Reischek, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xxi. art. xlix. p. 378:
"Passing through Foveaux Strait, clothed with romantic little
islands, we disturbed numerous flocks of mutton-birds
(Puffinus tristis), which were playing, feeding, or
sleeping on the water."
1891. `The Australasian,' Nov. 14, p. 963, col. 1 (`A Lady in
the Kermadecs'):
"The mutton-birds and burrowers come to the island in millions
in the breeding season, and the nesting-place of the burrowers
is very like a rabbit-warren; while the mutton-bird is content
with a few twigs to do duty for a nest."
1891. Rev. J. Stack, `Report of Australasian Association for
the Advancement of Science,' vol. iii. p. 379:
"Wild pigeons, koko, tui, wekas, and mutton-birds were cooked
and preserved in their own fat."
Mutton-bird Tree, n. a tree, Senecio
rotundifolius, Hook.: so called because the mutton-birds,
especially in Foveaux Straits, New Zealand, are fond of sitting
under it.
Mutton-fish, n. a marine univalve mollusc,
Haliotis naevosa, Martyn: so called from its flavour
when cooked. The empty earshell of Haliotis, especially
in New Zealand, Haliotis iris, Martyn, is known as
Venus' Ear; Maori name, Paua (q.v.). A species
of the same genus is known and eaten at the Cape and in the
Channel Islands. (French name Ormer, sc. Oreille
de mer.)
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish and Fisheries of New
South Wales,' p. 92:
"Then mutton fish were speared. This is the ear-shell fish
(Haliotis naevosa), which was eagerly bought by the
Chinese merchants. Only the large muscular sucking disc on
foot is used. Before being packed it is boiled and dried.
About 9d. per lb. was given."
Myall, n. and adj. aboriginal word with two
different meanings; whether there is any connection between
them is uncertain.
(1) n. An acacia tree, Acacia pendula, A. Cunn.,
and its timber. Various species have special epithets:
Bastard, Dalby, True, Weeping, etc.
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 38:
"The myall-tree (Acacia pendula) is the most picturesque
tree of New South Wales. The leaves have the appearance of
being frosted, and the branches droop like the weeping
willow. . . . Its perfume is as delightful, and nearly as
strong, as sandal-wood."
(p. 10): "They poison the fish by means of a sheet of bark
stripped from the Myall-tree (Acacia pendula)."
1846. T. L. Mitchell, Report quoted by J. D. Lang,
`Cooksland,' p. 495:
"The myall-tree and salt-bush, Acacia pendula and
salsolae [sic], so essential to a good run, are also
there."
1864. J. S. Moore, `Spring Life Lyrics,' p. 170:
"The guerdon's won! What may it be?
A grave beneath a myall-tree."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 193 [Note]:
"This acacia, which has much the habit of the weeping willow,
is found very extensively on the wet, alluvial flats of the
west rivers. It sometimes forms scrubs and thickets, which
give a characteristic appearance to the interior of this part
of Australia, so that, once seen, it can never be again
mistaken for scenery of any other country in the world. The
myall scrubs are nearly all of Acacia pendula."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 280:
"The myall-wood weapons made at Liverpool Plains were
exchanged with the coast natives for others."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 46:
"Lignum-vitae and bastard-myall bushes were very
common."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 115:
"Weeping or true Myall. . . . Stock are very fond of the
leaves of this tree [Acacia pendula], especially in
seasons of drought, and for this reason, and because they eat
down the seedlings, it has almost become exterminated in parts
of the colonies."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' p. 27:
"A strip of the swaying, streaming myall, of a colour more
resembling blue than black."
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 4, col. 2:
"The soft and silvery grace of the myalls."
1890. E. D. Cleland, `The White Kangaroo,' p. 50:
"Miall, a wood having a scent similar to raspberry jam,
and very hard and well-grained."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 130:
"Stock-whips with myall handles (the native wood that smells
like violets)."
(2) adj. and n. wild, wild natives, used
especially in Queensland. The explanation given by Lumholtz
(1890) is not generally accepted. The word mail,
or myall, is the aboriginal term for "men," on the Bogan,
Dumaresque, and Macintyre Rivers in New South Wales. It is the
local equivalent of the more common form murrai.
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 41:
"On my arrival I learnt from the natives that one party was
still at work a considerable distance up the country, at the
source of one of the rivers, called by the natives `Myall,'
meaning, in their language, Stranger, or a place which they
seldom or never frequent."
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 192:
"This tribe gloried in the name of `Myall,' which the natives
nearer to the colony apply in terror and abhorrence to the
`wild blackfellows,' to whom they usually attribute the most
savage propensities."
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' Aug. i, p. 4, col. 4:
"Even the wildest of the Myall black fellows--as cannibals
usually are--learned to appreciate him."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 447:
"Words quite as unintelligible to the natives as the
corresponding words in the vernacular language of the white men
would have been, were learned by the natives, and are now
commonly used by them in conversing with Europeans, as English
words. Thus corrobbory, the Sydney word for a general
assembly of natives, is now commonly used in that sense at
Moreton Bay; but the original word there is yanerwille.
Cabon, great; narang little; boodgeree,
good; myall, wild native, etc. etc., are all words of
this description, supposed by the natives to be English words,
and by the Europeans to be aboriginal words of the language of
that district."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 171:
"A more intimate acquaintance with the ways and customs of the
whites had produced a certain amount of contempt for them among
the myalls."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 209:
"I had many conversations with native police officers
on the subject of the amelioration of the wild myalls."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 150:
"Suddenly he became aware that half-a-dozen of these `myalls,'
as they are called, were creeping towards him through the long
grass. Armed with spears and boomerangs . . ."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 76:
"These so-called civilized blacks look upon their savage
brethren with more or less contempt, and call them myall."
[Footnote]: "A tree (Acacia pendula) which grows
extensively in the less civilized districts is called by the
Europeans myall. This word was soon applied by the
whites as a term for the wild blacks who frequented these large
remote myall woods. Strange to say, the blacks soon
adopted this term themselves, and used it as an epithet of
abuse, and hence it soon came to mean a person of no culture."
1893. M. Gaunt, `English Illustrated,' March, p. 367:
"He himself had no faith in the myall blacks; they were
treacherous, they were cruel."
(3) By transference, wild cattle.
1893. `The Argus,' April 29, p. 4, col. 4, `Getting in the
Scrubbers':
"To secure these myalls we took down sixty or seventy head of
quiet cows, as dead homers as carrier pigeons, some of them
milking cows, with their calves penned up in the stockyard."
Myrmecobius, n. scientific name of the
Australian genus with only one species, called the Banded
Ant-eater (q.v.). (Grk. murmaex, an ant, and
bios life.)
Myrtle, n. The true Myrtle, Myrtus
communis, is a native of Asia, but has long been
naturalised in Europe, especially on the shores of the
Mediterranean. The name is applied to many genera of the
family, N.O. Myrtaceae, and has been transferred to many
other trees not related to that order. In Australia the name,
with various epithets, is applied to the following trees--
Backhousia citriodora, F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae,
called the Scrub Myrtle and Native Myrtle.
Backhousia myrtifolia, Hook. and Herv.,
N.O. Myrtaceae, called Scrub Myrtle, or Native
Myrtle, or Grey Myrtle, and also Lancewood.
Diospyrus pentamera, F. v. M., N.O. Ebenaceae,
the Black Myrtle and Grey Plum of Northern New
South Wales.
Eugenia myrtifolia, Sims, N.O. Myrtaceae,
known as Native Myrtle, Red Myrtle and Brush
Cherry.
Eugenia ventenatii, Benth., N.O. Myrtaceae,
the Drooping Myrtle or Large-leaved Water-gum.
Melaleuca decussata, R. Br., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Melaleuca genistifolia, Smith, N.O. Myrtaceae,
which is called Ridge Myrtle, and in Queensland
Ironwood.
Myoporum serratum, R. Br., N.O. Myoporineae,
which is called Native Myrtle; and also called
Blue-berry Tree, Native Currant, Native
Juniper, Cockatoo-Bush, and by the aborigines
Palberry.
Myrtus acmenioides, F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae,
which is the White Myrtle of the Richmond and Clarence
Rivers (New South Wales), and is also called
Lignum-vitae.
Rhodamnia argentea, Benth., N.O. Myrtaceae,
called White Myrtle, the Muggle-muggle
of the aboriginals of Northern New South Wales.
Syncarpia leptopetala, F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae,
which is called Myrtle and also Brush-Turpentine.
Tristania neriifolia, R. Br., N.O. Myrtaceae,
called Water Myrtle, and also Water Gum.
Trochocarpa laurina, R. Br., N.O. Epacrideae,
called Brush-Myrtle, Beech and Brush
Cherry.
In Tasmania, all the Beeches are called Myrtles,
and there are extensive forests of the Beech Fagus
cunninghamii, Hook., which is invariably called "Myrtle"
by the colonists of Tasmania.
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 206:
Table of Tasmanian Woods.
Hgt. Dia. Where found. Use.
ft. in.
Scented Myrtle 15 6 Low, marshy Seldom used
Red " 40 12 Swampy As pine
White " 20 9 Low, marshy House-carpentry
Yellow " 20 9 " " do.
Brown " 20 30 " " do. and
joiners' planes
N
Nailrod, n. a coarse dark tobacco smoked by
bushmen. The name alludes to the shape of the plug, which
looks like a thin flat stick of liquorice. It is properly
applied to the imported brand of "Two Seas," but is
indiscriminately used by up-country folk for any coarse stick
of tobacco.
1896. H. Lawson, `While the Billy boils,' p. 118:
"`You can give me half-a-pound of nailrod,' he said,
in a quiet tone.'"
Nail-tailed Wallaby, n. See Onychogale.
Namma hole, n. a native well. Namma
is an aboriginal word for a woman's breast.
1893. `The Australasian,' August 5, p. 252, col. 4:
"The route all the way from York to Coolgardie is amply
watered, either `namma holes' native wells) or Government
wells being plentiful on the road."
1896. `The Australasian,' March 28, p. 605, col. 1:
"The blacks about here [far west of N.S.W.] use a word nearly
resembling `namma' in naming waterholes, viz., `numma,'
pronounced by them `ngumma,' which means a woman's breast. It
is used in conjunction with other words in the native names of
some waterholes in this district, e.g., `Tirrangumma' =
Gum-tree breast; and ngumma-tunka' = breast-milk, the water in
such case being always milky in appearance. In almost all
native words beginning with n about here the first
n has the ng sound as above."
Nancy, n. a Tasmanian name for the flower
Anguillaria (q.v.).
Nankeen Crane, or Nankeen Bird, or
Nankeen Night Heron, n. the Australian bird
Nycticorax caledonicus, Gmel. Both the Nankeen Bird and
the Nankeen Hawk are so called from their colour. Nankeen is
"a Chinese fabric, usually buff, from the natural colour of a
cotton grown in the Nanking district" of China. (`Century.')
1838. James, `Six Months in South Australia, p. 202:
"After shooting one or two beautiful nankeen birds."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 121:
"The nankeen crane (Nycticorax caledonicus), a very
handsome bright nankeen-coloured bird with three long white
feathers at the back of the neck, very good eating."
Nankeen Gum. See Gum.
Nankeen Hawk, n. an Australian bird,
Tinnunculus cenchroides, Vig. and Hors., which
is otherwise called Kestrel (q.v.).
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of the Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 184:
"`This bird,' as we are informed by Mr. Caley, `is called
Nankeen Hawk by the settlers. It is a migratory species.'"
Nannygai, n. aboriginal name for an Australian
fish, Beryx affinis, Gunth.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 52:
"Amongst the early colonists it used also to be called `mother
nan a di,' probably a corruption of the native name, mura ngin
a gai."
1884. E. P. Ramsay, `Fisheries Exhibition Literature,' vol. v.
p. 308:
"Known among the fishermen of Port Jackson as the `nannagai,'
or as it is sometimes spelt `nannygy.' It is a most delicious
fish, always brings a high price, but is seldom found in
sufficient numbers."
Nardoo, or Nardu, n. aboriginal word
for the sporocarp of a plant, Marsilea quadrifolia,
Linn., used as food by the aboriginals, and sometimes popularly
called Clover-fern. The explorers Burke and Wills
vainly sought the means of sustaining life by eating flour made
from the spore-cases of nardoo. "Properly Ngardu in the
Cooper's Creek language (Yantruwunta)." (A. W. Howitt.)
Cooper's Creek was the district where Burke and Wills perished.
In South Australia Ardoo is said to be the correct form.
1861. `Diary of H. J. Wills, the Explorer,' quoted in Brough
Smyth's `Aborigines of Victoria,' p. 216:
"I cannot understand this nardoo at all; it certainly will
not agree with me in any form. We are now reduced to it alone,
and we manage to get from four to five pounds a day between us.
. . . It seems to give us no nutriment. . . . Starvation
on nardoo is by no means very unpleasant, but for the weakness
one feels and the utter inability to move oneself, for, as far
as appetite is concerned, it gives me the greatest
satisfaction."
1862. Andrew Jackson, `Burke and the Australian Exploring
Expedition of 1860,' p. 186:
"The [wheaten] flour, fifty pounds of which I gave them, they
at once called `whitefellow nardoo,' and they explained that
they understood that these things were given to them for having
fed King."
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. p. 247:
"They now began to inquire of the blacks after the nardoo seed,
imagining it the produce of a tree; and received from the
natives some of their dried narcotic herbs, which they chew,
called pitchery. They soon found the nardoo seed in abundance,
on a flat, and congratulated themselves in the idea that on
this they could subsist in the wilderness, if all other food
failed, a hope in which they were doomed to a great
disappointment."
1877. F. von Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 130:
"Of Marsiliaceae we have well known examples in the
nardoo (Marsilea quadrifolia, with many varieties),
the foliage resembling that of a clover with four leaflets."
1878. R. Brough Smyth, `Aborigines of Victoria,' p. 209:
"They seem to have been unacquainted generally with the use, as
a food, of the clover-fern, Nardoo, though the natives of the
North Western parts of Victoria must have had intercourse with
the tribes who use it, and could have obtained it, sparingly,
from the lagoons in their own neighbourhood."
1879. J. D. Wood, `Native Tribes of South Australia,' p. 288:
"Ardoo, often described by writers as Nardoo. A very hard
seed, a flat oval of about the size of a pea. It is crushed
for food."
1879 (about). `Queensland Bush Song':
"Hurrah for the Roma Railway!
Hurrah for Cobb and Co.!
Hurrah, hurrah for a good fat horse
To carry me Westward Ho!
To carry me Westward Ho! my boys;
That's where the cattle pay,
On the far Barcoo, where they eat nardoo,
A thousand miles away."
1879. S. Gason, in `The Native Tribes of South Australia,'
p. 288:
"Ardoo. Often described in news papers and by writers
as Nardoo. A very hard seed, a flat oval of about the size of
a split pea; it is crushed or pounded, and the husk winnowed.
In bad seasons this is the mainstay of the native sustenance,
but it is the worst food possible, possessing very little
nourishment, and being difficult to digest."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Proceedings of the of the
Linnaean Society of New South Wales,' p. 82 [Botanical Notes on
Queensland]:
"Sesbania aculeata. The seeds of this plant are eaten
by the natives. It grows in all warm or marshy places in
Queensland. By many it is thought that this was the Nardoo
which Burke and Wills thought came from the spores of a
Marsilea. It is hard to suppose that any nourishment
would be obtained from the spore cases of the latter plant,
or that the natives would use it. Besides this the spore-cases
are so few in number."
1890. E. D. Cleland, `White Kangaroo,' p. 113:
"The great thing with the blacks was nardoo. This is a plant
which sends up slender stems several inches high; at the tip is
a flower-like leaf, divided into four nearly equal parts. It
bears a fruit, or seed, and this is the part used for food. It
is pounded into meal between two stones, and is made up in the
form of cakes, and baked in the ashes. It is said to be
nourishing when eaten with animal food, but taken alone to
afford no support."
Native, n. This word, originally applied, as
elsewhere, to the aboriginal inhabitants of Australia, is now
used exclusively to designate white people born in Australia.
The members of the "Australian Natives' Association" (A.N.A.),
founded April 27, 1871, pride themselves on being
Australian-born and not immigrants. Mr. Rudyard Kipling, in
the `Times' of Nov. 1895, published a poem called " The
Native-Born," sc. born in the British Empire, but outside Great
Britain. As applied to Plants, Animals, Names, etc., the word
Native bears its original sense, as in "Native Cabbage,"
"Native Bear," "Native name for," etc., though in the last case
it is now considered more correct to say in Australia
"Aboriginal name for," and in New Zealand "Maori name for."
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' c. v. p. 161:
"Three Sydney natives (`currency' not aboriginal) were in the
coach, bound for Melbourne."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 43:
"They were long and wiry natives from the rugged mountain
side."
Native, or Rock-Native, n. a name
given to the fish called Schnapper, after it has ceased
to "school." See Schnapper.
Native Arbutus, n. See Wax-cluster.
Native Banana, n. another name for
Lilly-pilly (q.v.).
Native Banyan, n. another name for Ficus
rubiginosa. See Fig.
Native Bear, n. See Bear.
Native Beech, n. See Beech.
Native Blackberry, n. See Blackberry.
Native Borage, n. See Borage.
Native Box, n. See Box.
Native Bread, n. See Bread.
Native Broom, n. See Broom.
Native Burnet, n. See Burnet.
Native Cabbage, n. The Nasturtium
palustre, De C., N.O. Cruciferae, is so called,
but in spite of its name it is not endemic in Australia.
In New Zealand, the name is sometimes applied to the
Maori Cabbage (q.v.).
Native Carrot, n. See Carrot.
Native Cascarilla, n. See Cascarilla.
Native Cat, n. See Cat.
Native Celery, or Australian Celery,
n. See Celery.
Native Centaury, n. See Centaury.
Native Cherry, n. See Cherry.
Native-Companion, n. an Australian bird-name,
Grus australasianus, Gould. See also Crane.
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 125:
"Here we saw the native-companion, a large bird of the crane
genus . . . five feet high, colour of the body grey, the wings
darker, blue or black."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 38:
"With native-companions (Ardea antigone) strutting
round."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 48:
"Grus Australasianus, Gould, Australian Crane;
Native-Companion of the Colonists."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 146:
"A handsome tame `native-companion,' which had been stalking
about picking up insects, drew near. Opening his large
slate-coloured wings, and dancing grotesquely, the interesting
bird approached his young mistress, bowing gracefully from side
to side as he hopped lightly along; then running up, he laid
his heron-like head lovingly against her breast."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 21:
"The most extraordinary of Riverina birds is the
native-companion."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 145:
"A row of native-companions, of course, standing on one leg--
as is their wont--like recruits going to drill."
[Query, did the writer mean going "through" drill.]
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne,' p. 23:
"In this paddock are some specimens of the Native Companion,
whose curious habit of assembling in groups on the plains and
fantastically dancing, has attracted much attention. This
peculiarity is not confined to them alone, however, as some of
the other large cranes (notably the crowned cranes of Africa)
display the same trait."
Native Cranberry, n. See Cranberry.
Native Currant, n. See under Currant.
Native Daisy, n. See Daisy.
Native Damson, n. See Damson.
Native Dandelion, n.
See Dandelion.
Native Daphne, n. See Daphne.
Native Date, n. See Date.
Native Deal, n. See Deal.
Native Dog, n. Another name for the
Dingo (q.v.).
Native Elderberry, n. See Elderberry.
Native Flag, n. See under Flax, Native,
and New Zealand.
Native Fuchsia, n. See Fuchsia.
Native Furze, n. See Hakea.
Native Ginger, n. See Ginger.
Native Grape, n. See Grape, Gippsland.
Native-hen, n. name applied to various species
of the genus Tribonyx (q.v.). The Australian species
are--
Tribonyx mortieri, Du Bus., called by Gould the
Native Hen of the Colonists;
Black-tailed N.-h.,
T. ventralis, Gould;
and in Tasmania,
Tribonyx gouldi, Sclater. See Tribonyx.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 71:
"Tribonyx Mortierii, Du Bus., native-hen of the
colonists."
Native Hickory, n. See Hickory.
Native Holly, n. See Holly.
Native Hops, n. See Hops.
Native Hyacinth, n. See Hyacinth.
Native Indigo. n. See Indigo.
Native Ivy, n. See Ivy, and Grape,
Macquarie Harbour.
Native Jasmine, n. See Jasmine.
Native Juniper, n. Same as Native
Currant. See under Currant.
Native Kumquat, n. Same as Desert Lemon
(q.v.).
Native Laburnum, n. See Laburnum.
Native Laurel, n. See Laurel.
Native Lavender, n. See Lavender.
Native Leek, n. See Leek.
Native Lilac, n. a Tasmanian plant.
See Lilac.
Native Lime, n. See Lime.
Native Lucerne, n. i.q. Queensland Hemp.
See under Hemp.
Native Mangrove, n. Tasmanian name for the
Boobialla (q.v.).
Native Mignonette, n. See Mignonette.
Native Millet, n. See Millet.
Native Mint, n. See Mint.
Native Mistletoe, n. See Mistletoe.
Native Mulberry, n. See Mulberry.
Native Myrtle, n. See Myrtle.
Native Nectarine, n. another name for the
Emu-Apple. See under Apple.
Native Oak, n. See Oak.
Native Olive, n. See under Olive and
Marblewood.
Native Onion, n. Same as Native Leek.
See Leek.
Native Orange, n. See under Orange.
Native Passion-flower, n.
See Passion-flower.
Native Peach, n. i.q. Quandong (q.v.).
Native Pear, n. See Hakea
and Pear.
Native Pennyroyal, n. See Pennyroyal.
Native Pepper, n. See Pepper.
Native Plantain, n. See Plantain.
Native Plum, n. See Plum, Wild.
Native Pomegranate, n. See Orange,
Native.
Native Potato, n. See Potato.
Native Quince, n. Another name for
Emu-Apple. See Apple.
Native Raspberry, n. See Raspberry.
Native Rocket, n. See Rocket.
Native Sandalwood, n. See Sandalwood
and Raspberry-Jam Tree.
Native Sarsaparilla, n.
See Sarsaparilla.
Native Sassafras, n. See Sassafras.
Native Scarlet-runner, n. See Kennedya.
Native Shamrock. n. See Shamrock.
Native Sloth, n. i.q. Native Bear.
See Bear.
Native Speedwell, n. See Speedwell.
Native Tamarind, n. See Tamarind-tree.
Native Tiger, n. See Tasmanian Tiger.
Native Tobacco, n. See Tobacco.
Native Tulip, n. See Waratah.
Native Turkey, n. Same as Wild Turkey.
A vernacular name given to Eupodotis australis, Gray,
which is not a turkey at all, but a true Bustard. See
Turkey.
Native Vetch, n. See Vetch.
Native Willow, n. See Boobialla and
Poison-berry Tree.
Native Yam, n. See Yam.
Necho, and Neko. See Nikau.
Nectarine, Native, n. another name for
Emu-Apple. See Apple.
Needle-bush, n. name applied to two Australian
trees, Hakea leucoptera, R. Br., N.O. Proteaceae;
called also Pin-bush and Water-tree (q.v.)
and Beefwood; Acacia rigens, Cunn., N.O.
Leguminosae (called also Nealie). Both trees have
fine sharp spines.
Negro-head Beech, n. See Beech.
Neinei, n. Maori name for New Zealand shrub,
Dracophyllum longifolium, R. Br., also
D. traversii, N.O. Epacrideae.
1865. J. Von Haast, `A Journey to the West Coast, 1865' (see
`Geology of Westland,' p. 78):
"An undescribed superb tree like Dracophyllum, not
unlike the D. latifolium of the North Island, began to
appear here. The natives call it nene. (Named
afterwards D. traversii by Dr. Hooker.) It has leaves
a foot long running out into a slender point, of a reddish brown
colour at the upper part, between which the elegant flower-
panicle comes forth."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 128:
"Neinei, an ornamental shrub-tree, with long grassy leaves.
Wood white, marked with satin-like specks, and adapted for
cabinet-work."
1888. J. Adams, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,' vol.
xxi. art. ii. p. 40:
"On the flat and rounded top the tallest plants are stunted
neinei."
Nephrite, n. See Greenstone.
Nestor, n. scientific name for a genus of New
Zealand Parrots. See Kaka and Kea.
1863. S. Butler, `First Year in Canterbury Settlement,' p. 58:
"There was a kind of dusky, brownish-green parrot too, which
the scientific call a Nestor. What they mean by this name I
know not. To the unscientific it is a rather dirty-looking
bird, with some bright red feathers under its wings. It is
very tame, sits still to be petted, and screams like a parrot."
Nettle-tree, n. Two species of
Laportea, N.O. Urticaceae, large scrub-trees, are
called by this name--Giant Nettle, L. gigas, Wedd., and
Small-leaved Nettle, L. photiniphylla, Wedd.; they have
rigid stinging hairs. These are both species of such magnitude
as to form timber-trees. A third, L. moroides, Wedd.,
is a small tree, with the stinging hairs extremely virulent.
See also preceding words. /??/
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 34:
"In the scrubs is found a tree, commonly called the nettle-
tree (Urtica gigas). It is often thirty feet in height,
and has a large, broad, green leaf. It is appropriately named;
and the pain caused by touching the leaf is, I think, worse
than that occasioned by the sting of a wasp."
Never, Never Country, or Never, Never Land.
See quotations. Mr. Cooper's explanation (1857 quotation) is
not generally accepted.
1857. F. de Brebant Cooper, `Wild Adventures in Australia,'
p. 68:
"With the aid of three stock-keepers, soon after my arrival at
Illarrawarra, I had the cattle mustered, and the draft destined
for the Nievah vahs ready for for the road."
[Footnote]: "Nievah vahs, sometimes incorrectly pronounced
never nevers, a Comderoi term signifying unoccupied land."
1884. A. W. Stirling, `The Never Never Land: a Ride in
North Queensland,' p. 5:
"The `Never Never Land,' as the colonists call all that portion
of it [Queensland] which lies north or west of Cape Capricorn."
1887. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. i. p. 279:
"In very sparsely populated country, such as the district of
Queensland, known as the Never Never Country--presumably
because a person, who has once been there, invariably
asseverates that he will never, never, on any consideration,
go back."
1890. J. S. O'Halloran, Secretary Royal Colonial Institute,
apud Barrere and Leland:
"The Never, Never Country means in Queensland the occupied
pastoral country which is furthest removed from the more
settled districts."
1890. A. J. Vogan, `The Black Police,' p. 85:
"The weird `Never, Never Land,' so called by the earliest
pioneers from the small chance they anticipated, on reaching
it, of ever being able to return to southern civilization."
Newberyite, n. [Named after J. Cosmo Newbery
of Melbourne.] "A hydrous phosphate of magnesium occurring in
orthorhombic crystals in the bat-guano of the Skipton Caves,
Victoria." (`Century.')
New Chum, n. a new arrival, especially from the
old country: generally used with more or less contempt; what in
the United States is called a `tenderfoot.'
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 99:
"He was also what they termed a `new chum,' or one newly
arrived."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 366:
"`New Chum,' in opposition to `Old Chum.' The former
`cognomen' peculiarizing [sic] the newly-arrived Emigrant;
the latter as a mark of respect attached to the more experienced
Colonist."
1855. `How to Settle in Victoria,' p. 15:
"They appear to suffer from an apprehension of being under-
sold, or in some other way implicated by the inexperience of,
as they call him, the `new chum.'"
1865. `Once a Week,' `The Bulla Bulla Bunyip':
"I was, however, comparatively speaking, a `new chum,'
and therefore my explanation of the mystery met with
scant respect."
1874. W. M. B., `Narrative of Edward Crewe,' p. 17:
"To be a new chum is not agreeable--it is something like being
a new boy at school--you are bored with questions for some time
after your arrival as to how you like the place, and what you
are going to do; and people speak to you in a pitying and
patronizing manner, smiling at your real or inferred simplicity
in colonial life, and altogether `sitting upon' you with much
frequency and persistence."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Head Station,' p. 32:
"A new chum is no longer a new chum when he can plait a
stock-whip."
1886. P. Clarke [Title]:
"The New Chum in Australia."
1887. W. S. S. Tyrwhitt [Title]:
"The New Chum in the Queensland Bush."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 152:
"I've seen such a lot of those new chums, one way and another.
They knock down all their money at the first go-off, and then
there's nothing for them to do but to go and jackaroo up in
Queensland."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 4:
"The buggy horse made a bolt of it when a new-chum Englishman
was driving her."
1892. Mrs. H. E. Russell, `Too Easily jealous,' p. 155:
"One man coolly told me it was because I was a new chum,
just as though it were necessary for a fellow to rusticate for
untold ages in these barbarous solitudes, before he is allowed
to give an opinion on any subject connected with the colonies."
New Chumhood, n. the period and state of being
a New Chum.
1883. W. Jardine Smith, in `Nineteenth Century,' November,
p. 849:
"The `bumptiousness' observable in the early days of `new
chumhood.'"
New Holland, n. the name, now extinct, first
given to Australia by Dutch explorers.
1703. Capt. William Dampier,' Voyages,' vol. iii. [Title]:
"A Voyage to New Holland, &c., in the Year 1699."
1814. M. Flinders, `Voyage to Terra Australis,' Intro. p. ii:
"The vast regions to which this voyage was principally
directed, comprehend, in the western part, the early
discoveries of the Dutch, under the name of New Holland; and in
the east, the coasts explored by British navigators, and named
New South Wales."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 2:
"The Spaniards at the commencement of the seventeenth century
were the discoverers of New Holland; and from them it received
the name of Australia. It subsequently, however, obtained its
present name of New Holland from the Dutch navigators, who
visited it a few years afterwards."
[The Spaniards did not call New Holland Australia
(q.v.). The Spaniard Quiros gave the name of Australia del
Espiritu Santo to one of the New Hebrides (still known as
Espiritu Santo), thinking it to be part of the `Great South
Land.' See Captain Cook's remarks on this subject in
`Hawkesworth's Voyages,' vol. iii. p. 602.]
1850. J. Bonwick, `Geography for Australian Youth,' p. 6:
"Australasia, or Australia, consists of the continent of New
Holland, or Australia, the island of Tasmania, or Van Diemen's
Land, and the islands of New Zealand."
[In the map accompanying the above work `Australia' is
printed across the whole continent, and in smaller type `New
Holland' stretches along the Western half, and `New
South Wales' along the whole of the Eastern.]
New South Wales, n. the name of the oldest and
most important colony in Australia. The name "New Wales" was
first given by Captain Cook in 1770, from the supposed
resemblance of the coast to that of the southern coast of
Wales; but before his arrival in England he changed the name to
"New South Wales." It then applied to all the east of the
continent. Victoria and Queensland have been taken out of the
parent colony. It is sometimes called by the slang name of
Eastralia, as opposed to Westralia (q.v).
New Zealand, n. This name was given to the
colony by Abel Jansz Tasman, the Dutch navigator, who visited
it in 1642. He first called it Staaten-land. It is now
frequently called Maoriland (q.v.).
New Zealand Spinach, n. See Spinach.
Ngaio, >n. Maori name for a New Zealand tree,
Myoporum laetum, Forst.; generally corrupted into
Kaio, in South Island.
1873. `Catalogue of Vienna Exhibition':
"Ngaio: wood light, white and tough, used for gun-stocks."
1876. J. C. Crawford, `Transactions of New Zealand
Institute,' vol. ix. art. xiv. p. 206:
"A common New Zealand shrub, or tree, which may be made
useful for shelter, viz. the Ngaio."
1880. W. Colenso, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xiii. art. i. p. 33:
"The fruits of several species of Rubus, and of the Ngaio
(Myoporum laetum), were also eaten, especially by
children."
1892. `Otago Witness,' Nov. 3, `Native Trees':
"Myoporum Laetum (Ngaio). This is generally called kio
by colonists. It is a very rapid-growing tree for the first
five or six years after it has been planted. They are very
hardy, and like the sea air. I saw these trees growing at
St. Kilda, near Melbourne, thirty years ago."
Nicker Nuts, n. i.q. Bonduc Nuts (q.v.).
Nigger, n. an Australian black or aboriginal.
[Of course an incorrect use. He is not a negro, any more than
the Hindoo is.]
1874. M. C., `Explorers,' p. 25:
"I quite thought the niggers had made an attack."
1891. `The Argus,' Nov. 7, p. 13, col. 5:
"The natives of Queensland are nearly always spoken of as
`niggers' by those who are brought most directly in contact
with them."
Nigger-head, n. (1) Name given in New Zealand
to hard blackstones found at the Blue Spur and other mining
districts. They are prized for their effectiveness in aiding
cement-washing. The name is applied in America to a round
piece of basic igneous rock.
(2) Name used in Queensland for blocks of coral above water.
1876. Capt. J. Moresby, R. N., `Discoveries and Surveys in
New Guinea,' pp. 2-3:
"The gigantic Barrier Reef is submerged in parts, generally to
a shallow depth, and traceable only by the surf that breaks on
it, out of which a crowd of `nigger heads,' black points of
coral rock, peep up in places . . ."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 111:
"Abundantly on the Queensland coast, especially on the coral
reefs, where all the outstanding blocks of coral (nigger-heads)
are covered with them."
Nightjar, n. English bird-name, applied in
Australia to the following species--
Large-tailed Nightjar--
Caprimulgus macrurus, Hors.
Little N.--
AEgotheles novae-hollandiae, Gould.
Spotted N.--
Eurostopodus guttatus, Vig. and Hors.
White-throated N.--
E. albogularis, Vig. and Hors.
Nikau, n. Maori name for a New Zealand
palm-tree, Areca sapida, N.O. Palmeae. Spelt
also Necho and Neko.
1843. `An Ordinance for imposing a tax on Raupo Houses,
Session II. No. xvii. of the former legislative Council of
New Zealand':
[From A. Domett's collection of Ordinances, 1850.]
"Section 2. . . . there shall be levied in respect of every
building constructed wholly or in part of raupo, nikau,
toitoi, wiwi, kakaho, straw or thatch of any
description [ . . . L20]."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. i.
p. 270:
[The house was] "covered with thick coating of the leaves of
the nikau (a kind of palm) and tufts of grass."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' [Note] p. 75:
"The necho or neko is a large tree-like plant
known elsewhere as the mountain cabbage."
1862. `All the Year Round,' `From the Black Rocks on Friday,'
May 17, No. 160:
"I found growing, as I expected, amongst the trees abundance
of the wild palm or nikau. The heart of one or two of these
I cut out with my knife. The heart of this palm is about the
thickness of a man's wrist, is about a foot long, and tastes
not unlike an English hazel-nut, when roasted on the ashes of
a fire. It is very nutritious."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 86:
"The pale green pinnate-leaved nikau."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii.
p. 210:
"With the exception of the kauri and the nekau-palm nearly
every tree which belongs to the colony grows in the
`seventy-mile bush' of Wellington."
Nipper, n. local name in Sydney for Alphaeus
socialis, Heller, a species of prawn.
Nobbler, n. a glass of spirits; lit. that which
nobbles or gets hold of you. Nobble is the frequentative form
of nab. No doubt there is an allusion to the bad spirits
frequently sold at bush public-houses, but if a teetotaler had
invented the word he could not have invented one involving
stronger condemnation.
1852. G. F. P., `Gold Pen and Pencil Sketches,' canto xiv.:
"The summit gained, he pulls up at the Valley,
To drain a farewell `nobbler' to his Sally."
1859. Frank Fowler, `Southern Lights and Shadows,' p. 52:
"To pay for liquor for another is to `stand,' or to `shout,'
or to `sacrifice.' The measure is called a `nobbler,' or a
`break-down.'"
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 201:
"A nobbler is the proper colonial phrase for a drink at a
public-house."
1876. J. Brenchley, `May Bloom,' p. 80:
"And faster yet the torrents flow
Of nobblers bolted rapidly."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 249:
"When cruising about . . . with a crew of Kurnai . . . I
heard two of my men discussing where we could camp, and one, on
mentioning a place, said, speaking his own language, that there
was `le-en (good) nobler.' I said, `there is no nobler there.'
He then said in English, `Oh! I meant water.' On inquiry I
learned that a man named Yan (water) had died shortly, before,
and that not liking to use that word, they had to invent a new
one."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 36:
"Only to pull up again at the nearest public-house, to the
veranda of which his horse's bridle was hung until he had
imbibed a nobbler or two."
Nobblerise, v. to drink frequent nobblers
(q.v.).
1864. J. Rogers, `The New Rush,' p. 51:
"And oft a duffer-dealing digger there
Will nobblerize in jerks of small despair . ."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 268:
"The institution of `nobblerising' is carried out in far
different places."
Noddy, n. common English name for the sea-bird.
The species observed in Australia are--
The Noddy--
Anous stolidus, Linn.
Black-cheeked N.--
A. melanogenys, Gray.
Grey N.--
A. cinereus, Gould.
Lesser N.--
A. tenuirostris, Temm.
White-capped N.--
A. leucocapillus, Gould.
Nonda, n. aboriginal name for a tree,
Parinarium Nonda, F. v. M., N.O. Rosaceae,
of Queensland. It has an edible, mealy fruit, rather
like a plum.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 315:
"We called this tree the `Nonda,' from its resemblance to a
tree so called by the natives in the Moreton Bay district."
Noogoora Bur, n. a Queensland plant,
Xanthium strumarium, Linn., N.O. Compositae.
Noon-flower, n. a rare name for the
Mesembryanthemum. See Pig-face.
1891. `The Argus,' Dec. 19, p. 4, col. 2:
"The thick-leaved noon-flower that swings from chalk cliffs
and creek banks in the auriferous country is a delectable salad."
Norfolk Island Pine, n. See Pine.
Note, n. short for Bank-note, and always used
for a one-pound note, the common currency. A note = L1.
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. ii. p. 28:
"A note's so very trifling, it's no sooner chang'd than gone;
For it is but twenty shillings."
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for Mail,' p. 39:
"And even at half fifty notes a week
You ought to have made a pile."
1884. Marcus Clarke, `Memorial Volume,' p. 92:
"I lent poor Dick Snaffle a trotting pony I had, and he sold
him for forty notes."
Notornis, n. a bird of New Zealand allied to
the Porphyrio (q.v.), first described from a fossil
skull by Professor Owen (1848), and then thought to be extinct,
like the Moa. Professor Owen called the bird Notornis
mantelli, and, curiously enough, Mr. Walter Mantell, in
whose honour the bird was named, two years afterwards captured
a live specimen; a third specimen was captured in 1879. The
word is from the Greek notos, south, and 'ornis,
bird. The Maori names were Moho and Takahe
(q.v.).
Notoryctes, n. the scientific name of the genus
to which belongs the Marsupial Mole (q.v.).
Nugget, n. a lump of gold. The noun nugget is
not Australian, though often so supposed. Skeat (`Etymological
Dictionary,' s.v.) gives a quotation from North's `Plutarch'
with the word in a slightly different shape, viz.,
niggot. "The word nugget was in use in Australia many
years before the goldfields were heard of. A thick-set young
beast was called `a good nugget.' A bit of a fig of tobacco
was called `a nugget of tobacco.'" (G. W. Rusden.)
1852. Sir W. T. Denison, `Proceedings of the Royal Society
of Van Diemen s Land,' vol. ii. p. 203:
`In many instances it is brought to market in lumps, or
`nuggets' as they are called, which contain, besides the gold
alloyed with some metal, portions of quartz or other extraneous
material, forming the matrix in which the gold was originally
deposited, or with which it had become combined accidentally."
1869. Marcus Clarke, `Peripatetic Philosopher' (reprint),
p. 51:
"They lead a peaceful, happy, pastoral life--dig in a hole all
day, and get drunk religiously at night. They are respected,
admired, and esteemed. Suddenly they find a nugget, and lo!
the whole tenor of their life changes."
Nugget, v. Queensland slang. See quotation.
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. iii. p. 25:
"To nugget: in Australian slang, to appropriate your
neighbours' unbranded calves."
Ibid. c. xviii. p. 182:
"If he does steal a calf now and then, I know several squatters
who are given to nuggeting."
Nuggety, adj. applied to a horse or a man.
Short, thick-set and strong. See G. W. Rusden's note under
Nugget.
1896. Private Letter, March 2:
"Nuggety is used in the same sense as Bullocky
(q.v.), but with a slight difference of meaning, what we should
say `compact.' Bullocky has rather a sense of
over-strength inducing an awkwardness of movement.
Nuggety does not include the last suggestion."
Nulla-nulla, n. (spellings various) aboriginal
name. A battle club of the aborigines in Australia.
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the Interior of
Eastern Australia,' vol. i. p. 71:
"He then threw a club, or nulla-nulla, to the foot
of the tree."
1853. C. Harpur, `Creek of the Four Graves':
"Under the crushing stroke
Of huge clubbed nulla-nullas."
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 61:
"Lay aside thy nullah-nullahs
Is there war betwixt us two?"
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 9:
"The blacks . . . battered in his skull with a nulla-nulla."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 11:
"They would find fit weapons for ghastly warriors in the long
white shank-bones gleaming through the grass--appropriate
gnulla-gnullas and boomerangs."
1889. P. Beveridge, `Aborigines of Victoria and Riverina,'
p. 67:
"The nulla-nulla is another bludgeon which bears a distinctive
character . . . merely a round piece of wood, three feet long
and two and a half inches thick, brought to a blunt point at
the end. The mallee is the wood from which it is generally
made."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 72:
"I frequently saw another weapon, the `nolla-nolla' or club,
the warlike weapon of the Australian native most commonly in
use. It is a piece of hard and heavy wood sharpened to a point
at both ends. One end is thick and tapers gradually to the
other end, which is made rough in order to give the hand a more
secure hold; in using he weapon the heavy end is thrown back
before it is hurled."
1892. J. Fraser, `Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 73:
"One of the simplest of Australian clubs, the `nulla-nulla'
resembles the root of a grass-tree in the shape of its head
. . . in shape something like a child's wicker-rattle."
Nut, n. (1) Slang. Explained in quotation.
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 60:
"The peculiar type of the Australian native (I do not mean the
aboriginal blackfellow, but the Australian white), which has
received the significant sobriquet of `The Nut,' may be
met with to all parts of Australia, but more particularly . . .
in far-off inland bush townships. . . . What is a Nut? . . .
Imagine a long, lank, lantern jawed, whiskerless, colonial
youth . . . generally nineteen years of age, with a smooth
face, destitute of all semblance of a crop of `grass,' as he
calls it in his vernacular."
(2) Dare-devil, etc. "Tommy the Nut" was the alias of
the prisoner who, according to the story, was first described
as "a-larrikin," by Sergeant Dalton. See Larrikin.
Nut, Bonduc, n. See Bonduc Nut.
Nut, Burrawang, n. See Burrawang.
Nut, Candle, n. See Candle-nut.
Nut, Nicker, n. See Bonduc Nut.
Nut, Queensland, n. See Queensland Nut.
Nut, Union, n. See Union Nut.
Nut-Grass, n. an Australian plant, Cyperus
rotundus, Linn., N.O. Cyperaceae. The specific and
the vernacular name both refer to the round tubers of the
plant; it is also called Erriakura (q.v.).
Nutmeg, Queensland, n. See Queensland
Nutmeg.
Nut-Palm, n. a tree, Cycas media,
R. Br., N.O. Cycadeae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 21:
"Nut-Palm. Employed by the aborigines as food. An excellent
farina is obtained from it."
O
Oak, n. The Oak of the Northern Hemisphere
(Quercus) is not found among the indigenous trees
of Australia; but the name Oak is applied there to
the trees of the genus Casuarina (q.v.), and usually
in the curious form of She-Oak (q.v.). The species
have various appellations in various parts, such as
Swamp-Oak, River-Oak, Bull-Oak,
Desert-Oak; and even the word He-Oak is applied
sometimes to the more imposing species of She-Oak,
though it is not recognised by Maiden, whilst the word
Native Oak is indiscriminately applied to them all.
The word Oak is further extended to a few trees, not
Casuarinae, given below; and in New Zealand it is also
applied to Matipo (q.v.) and Titoki, or
Alectryon (q.v.).
The following table of the various trees receiving the name of
Oak is compiled from J. H. Maiden's `Useful Native Plants'--
Bull-Oak--
Casuarina equisetifolia, Forst.;
C. glauca, Sieb.
Forest-O.--
Casuarina equisetifolia, Forst.;
C. suberosa; Otto and Diet.;
C. torulosa, Ait.
Mountain-O.--
Queensland name for Casuarina torulosa, Ait.
River Black-O.--
Casuarina suberosa, Otto and Diet.
River-O.--
Callistemon salignus, De C., N.O. Myrtaceae;
Casuarina cunninghamii, Miq.;
C. distyla, Vent.;
C. stricta, Ait.;
C. torulosa, Ait.
Scrub Silky-O.--
Villaresia moorei, F. v. M., N.O. Olacineae.
Called also Maple.
She-Oak:--
Coast S.-O.--
Casuarina stricta,
Desert S.-0.--
C. glauca, Sieb.
Erect S.-O.--
C. suberosa, Otto and Diet.
River S.-O.--
C. glauca, Sieb.
Scrub S.-O.--
C. cunninghamii, Miq.
Stunted S.-O.--
C. distyla, Vent.
Shingle-O.--
Casuarina stricta, Ait.;
C. suberosa, Otto and Diet.
Silky-O.--
Stenocarpus salignus, R. Br., N.O. Proteaceae;
called also Silvery-Oak. See also Grevillea
and Silky-Oak.
Swamp-O.--
Casuarina equisetifolia, Forst.;
C. glauca, Sieb.;
C. suberosa, Otto and Diet.;
C. stricta, Ait.; called also Saltwater Swamp-Oak.
White-O.--
Lagunaria patersoni, G. Don., N.O. Malvaceae.
Botany-Bay Oak, or Botany-Oak, is the name given
in the timber trade to the Casuarina .
The `Melbourne Museum Catalogue of Economic Woods' (1894)
classes the She-Oak in four divisions--
Desert She-Oak--
Casuarina glauca, Sieb.
Drooping S.-O.--
C. quadrivalvis, Labill.
Shrubby S.-O.--
C. distyla, Vent.
Straight S.-O.--
C. suberosa, Otto.
1770. Captain Cook, `Journal,' Sunday, May 6 (edition Wharton,
1893, pp. 247, 248):
"The great quantity of plants Mr. Banks and Dr. Solander
found in this place occasioned my giving it the name of Botany
Bay. . . . Although wood is here in great plenty, yet there
is very little Variety; . . . Another sort that grows tall
and Strait something like Pines--the wood of this is hard and
Ponderous, and something of the Nature of America live Oak."
1770. R. Pickersgill, `Journal on the Endeavour' (in
`Historical Records of New South Wales'), p. 215:
"May 5, 1770.--We saw a wood which has a grain like Oak,
and would be very durable if used for building; the leaves
are like a pine leaf."
1802. Jas. Flemming, `Journal of Explorations of Charles
Grimes,' in `Historical Records of Port Phillip' (edition
1879, J. J. Shillinglaw), p. 22:
"The land is a light, black-sand pasture, thin of timber,
consisting of gum, oak, Banksia, and thorn."
[This combination of timbers occurs several times in the
`Journal.' It is impossible to decide what Mr. Flemming meant
by Oak.]
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 38:
"We found lofty blue-gum trees (Eucalyptus) growing on
the flats near the Peel, whose immediate banks were overhung by
the dense, umbrageous foliage of the casuarina, or `river-oak'
of the colonists."
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 38:
"The river-oak grows on the banks and rivers, and having thick
foliage, forms a pleasant and useful shade for cattle during
the heat of the day; it is very hard and will not split. The
timber resembles in its grain the English oak, and is the only
wood in the colony well adapted for making felloes of wheels,
yokes for oxen, and staves for casks."
1846. C. Holtzapffel, `Turning,' p. 75:
"Botany-Bay Oak, sometimes called Beef-wood, is from New South
Wales. . . . In general colour it resembles a full red mahogany,
with darker red veins."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 323:
"The Casuarina trees, with their leafless, thin,
thread-like, articulated branches, have been compared to the
arborescent horse-tails (Equisetaceae), but have a much
greater resemblance to the Larch-firs; they have the colonial
name of Oaks, which might be changed more appropriately to that
of Australian firs. The dark, mournful appearance of this tree
caused it to be planted in cemeteries. The flowers are
unisexual; the fruit consists of hardened bracts with winged
seeds. The wood of this tree is named Beef-wood by the
colonists."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 56:
"The wail in the native oak."
1878. W. R. Guilfoyle, `First Book of Australian Botany,'
p. 54:
"It may here be remarked that the term `oak' has been very
inaptly--in fact ridiculously--applied by the early Australian
settlers; notably in the case of the various species of
Casuarina, which are commonly called `she-oaks."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 252:
"They chose a tall He-oak, lopped it to a point."
1885. J. Hood, `Land of the Fern,' p. 53:
"The sighing of the native oak,
Which the light wind whispered through."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 27:
"A peculiar class of trees, called by the scientific name of
Casuarina, is popularly known as oaks, `swamp-oaks,'
`forest-oaks,' `she-oaks,' and so forth, although the trees
are not the least like oaks. They are melancholy looking
trees, with no proper leaves, but only green rods, like those
of a pine-tree, except that they are much longer, and hang like
the branches of a weeping-willow."
Oak-Apple, n. the Cone of the Casuarina
or She-Oak tree.
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 32:
"The small apple of this tree (she-oak) is also dark green . . .
both apple and leaf are as acid as the purest vinegar.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 15:
"In cases of severe thirst, great relief may be obtained from
chewing the foliage of this and other species [of
Casuarina], which, being of an acid nature, produces a
flow of saliva--a fact well-known to bushmen who have traversed
waterless portions of the country. This acid is closely allied
to citric acid, and may prove identical with it. Children chew
the young cones, which they call `oak-apples.'"
Oamaru Stone, n. Oamaru is a town on the east
coast of the South Island of New Zealand. It produces a fine
building stone.
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand', p. 64:
"A white, granular limestone, called the Oamaru stone, is
worked in extensive quarries in the Oamaru district. . . .
A considerable quantity has been exported to Melbourne."
Oat-Grass, n. Anthistiria avenacea,
F. v. M., N.O. Gramineae. A species of Kangaroo-
Grass (q.v.). See also Grass.
Oat-shell, n. the shell of various species of
Columbella, a small marine mollusc used for necklaces.
Oats, Wild, an indigenous grass, Bromus
arenarius, Labill, N.O. Gramineae.Called also
Seaside Brome-Grass. "It makes excellent hay." (Maiden,
p. 79.)
Officer Plant, n. another name for
Christmas-Bush (q.v.), so called "because of its bright
red appearance." (Maiden, p. 404.)
Old Chum, n. Not in common use: the opposite
to a new chum.
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 366:
"`New chum,' in opposition to `old chum.' The former
`cognomen' peculiarizing [sic] the newly-arrived emigrant;
the latter as a mark of respect attached to the more
experienced colonist."
Old Hat, a Victorian political catch-word.
1895. `The Argus,' May 11, p. 8, col. 3:
"Mr. Frank Stephen was the author of the well-known epithet
`Old Hats,' which was applied to the rank and file of Sir James
M'Culloch's supporters. The phrase had its origin through
Mr. Stephen's declaration at an election meeting that the
electors ought to vote even for an old hat if it were put
forward in support of the M'Culloch policy."
Old Lady, n. name given to a moth, Erebus
Pluto.
Old Man, n. a full-grown male Kangaroo.
The aboriginal corruption is Wool-man.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. ii. p. 160:
"To your great relief, however, the `old man' turns out to
possess the appendage of a tail, and is in fact no other than
one of our old acquaintances, the kangaroos."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 141:
"If he (greyhound) has less ferocity when he comes up with an
`old man,' so much the better. . . . The strongest and most
courageous dog can seldom conquer a wool-man alone, and not one
in fifty will face him fairly; the dog who has the temerity is
certain to be disabled, if not killed."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 33:
"Mr. Gilbert started a large kangaroo known by the familiar
name of `old man.'"
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 172:
"The settlers designate the old kangaroos as `old men' and
`old women;' the full-grown animals are named `flyers,' and are
swifter than the British hare."
1864. W. Westgarth, `Colony of Victoria,' p. 451:
"The large kangaroo, the `old man,' as he is called, timorous
of every unwonted sound that enters his large, erected ears,
has been chased far from every busy seat of colonial industry."
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 39:
"Where the kangaroo gave hops,
The old man fleetest of the fleet."
1893. `The Times,' [Reprint] `Letters from Queensland,' p. 66:
"The animals, like the timber, too, are strange. Kangaroo and
wallaby are as fond of grass as the sheep, and after a
pelican's yawn there are few things funnier to witness than
the career of an `old man' kangaroo, with his harem after him,
when the approach of a buggy disturbs the family at their
afternoon meal. Away they go, the little ones cantering
briskly, he in a shaggy gallop, with his long tail stuck out
for a balance, and a perpetual see-saw maintained between it
and his short front paws, while the hind legs act as a mighty
spring under the whole construction. The side and the back
view remind you of a big St. Bernard dog, the front view of a
rat. You begin an internal debate as to which he most
resembles, and in the middle of it you find that he is sitting
up on his haunches, which gives him a secure height of from
five to six feet, and is gravely considering you with the air
of the old man he is named from."
Old-Man, adj. large, or bigger than usual. Compare the
next two words.
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 233:
"I stared at a man one day for saying that a certain allotment
of land was `an old-man allotment': he meant a large allotment,
the old-man kangaroo being the largest kangaroo."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 7:
"Who that has ridden across the Old-Man Plain . . ."
Old-Man Fern, a Bush-name in Tasmania for the
Tree-fern (q.v.).
Old-Man Salt-Bush, Atriplex nummularium,
Lindl. See Salt-Bush.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 118:
"One of the tallest and most fattening and wholesome of
Australian pastoral salt-bushes; also highly recommended for
cultivation, as natural plants. By close occupation of the
sheep and cattle runs, have largely disappeared, and as this
useful bush is not found in many parts of Australia, sheep and
cattle depastured on saltbush country are said to remain free
of fluke, and get cured of Distoma-disease, and of other allied
ailments (Mueller)."
Old-Wife, n. a New South Wales fish,
Enoplosus armatus, White, family Percidae.
The local name Old-Wife in England is given to
a quite different fish, one of the Sea-Breams.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 32:
"The `old-wife' (Enoplosus armatus, White) is another
fish which from its small size is not esteemed nearly so highly
as it ought to be. It is a most exquisite fish."
Olive, Mock, i.q. Axe-breaker (q.v.).
Olive, Native, n. one of the many names given
to four trees--
Bursaria spinosa, Cav., N.O. Pittosporeae,;
Elaeocarpus cyaneus, Ait., N.O. Tiliaceae;
Notelaea ovala, R. Br., N.O. Jasmineae,;
and, in Queensland, to Olea paniculata, R. Br.,
N.O. Jasmineae,, a tree of moderate size, with ovoid
fruit resembling a small common Olive.
Olive, Spurious, n. another name for the tree
Notelaea ligustrina, Vent. See Ironwood.
On, prep. Used for In, in many cases,
especially of towns which sprang from Goldfields, and where the
original phrase was, e.g. "on the Ballarat diggings,
or goldfield." Thus, an inhabitant still speaks of living
On Ballarat, On Bendigo; On South
Melbourne (formerly Emerald Hill).
1869. J. F. Blanche, `The Prince's Visit,' p. 21:
"When came Victoria's son on Ballarat."
1896. H. Lawson, `While the Billy boils, etc.' p. 3:
"After tea they would sit on a log of the wood-heap, . .
and yarn about Ballarat and Bendigo--of the days when we spoke
of being `on' a place oftener than `at' it: on Ballarat,
on Gulgong, on Lambing Flat, on Creswick."
Onion, Native, n. i.q. Native Leek. See
Leek.
Onychogale, n. the scientific name of the genus
containing the Nail-tailed Wallabies (q.v.). They
derive their name from the presence of a peculiar horny
appendage to their tails. (Grk. 'onux, 'onuchos,
a claw, and galae, a weasel.) For the species,
see Wallaby.
Opossum, n. The marsupial animal, frequent all
over Australia, which is called an Opossum, is a
Phalanger (q.v.). He is not the animal to which the
name was originally applied, that being an American animal of
the family Didelphyidae. See quotations below from
`Encycl. Brit.' (1883). Skeat (`Etym. Dict.') says the word is
West Indian, but he quotes Webster (presumably an older edition
than that now in use), "Orig. opassom, in the language of the
Indians of Virginia," and he refers to a translation of
Buffon's Natural History' (Lond. 1792), Vol. i. p. 214. By
1792 the name was being applied in Australia. The name opossum
is applied in Australia to all or any of the species belonging
to the following genera, which together form the sub-family
Phalangerinae, viz.--Phalanger, Trichosurus,
Pseudochirus, Petauroides, Dactylopsila,
Petaurus, Gymnobelideus, Dromicia, Acrobates.
The commoner forms are as follows:--
Common Dormouse O.--
Dromicia nana, Desm.
Common Opossum--
Trichosurus vulpecula, Kerr.
Common Ring-tailed-O.--
Pseudochirus peregrinus, Bodd.
Greater Flying-O.--
Petauroides volans, Kerr.
Lesser Dormouse O.--
Dromicia lepida, Thomas.
Lesser Flying-O.--
Petaurus breviceps, Water.
Pigmy Flying-O.-
Acrobates pygmaeus.
Short-eared-O.--
Trichosurus caninus, W. Ogilby.
Squirrel Flying-O., or Flying Squirrel--
Petaurus sciureus, Shaw.
Striped O.--
Dactylopsila trivirgata, Gray.
Tasmanian, or Sooty O.--
Trichosurus vulpecula, var. fuliginosus.
Tasmanian Ring-tailed-O.--
Pseudochirus cooki, Desm.
Yellow-bellied Flying-O.--
Petaurus australis, Shaw.
Of the rare little animal called Leadbeater's Opossum,
only one specimen has been found, and that in Victoria;
it is Gymnobelideus leadbeateri, and is the only
species of this genus.
1608. John Smith, `Travels, Adventures, and Observations in
Europe, Asia, Africke, and America, beginning about 1593, and
continued to 1629;' 2 vols., Richmond, U.S., reprinted 1819;
vol. i. p. 124 [On the American animal; in the part about
Virginia, 1608]:
"An Opassom hath a head like a Swine,--a taile like a Rat, and
is of the bigness of a Cat. Under the belly she hath a bagge,
wherein she lodgeth, carrieth and suckleth her young."
[This is the American opossum. There are only two known genera
of living marsupials outside the Australian region.]
1770. `Capt. Cook's Journal' (edition Wharton, 1893), p. 294
[at Endeavour River, Aug. 4, 1770]:
"Here are Wolves, Possums, an animal like a ratt, and snakes."
1770. J. Banks, `Journal,' July 26, (edition Hooker, 1896,
p. 291):
"While botanising to-day I had the good fortune to take an
animal of the opossum (Didelphis) tribe; it was a
female, and with it I took two young ones. It was not unlike
that remarkable one which De Buffon has described by the name
of Phalanger as an American animal. It was, however,
not the same. M. de Buffon is certainly wrong in asserting
that this tribe is peculiar to America, and in all probability,
as Pallas has said in his Zoologia, the Phalanger
itself is a native of the East Indies, as my animals and that
agree in the extraordinary conformation of their feet, in which
they differ from all others."
1789. Governor Phillip, `Voyage to Botany Bay,' p. 104:
"The pouch of the female, in which the young are nursed,
is thought to connect it rather with the opossum tribe."
[p. 147]: "A small animal of the opossum kind."
[p. 293]: "Black flying-opossum. [Description given.] The fur
of it is so beautiful, and of so rare a texture, that should it
hereafter be found in plenty, it might probably be thought a
very valuable article of commerce."
1793. J. Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 68:
"The opossum is also very numerous here, but it is not exactly
like the American opossum: it partakes a good deal of the
kangaroo in the strength of its tail and make of its fore-legs,
which are very short in proportion to the hind ones; like that
animal it has the pouch, or false belly, for the safety of its
young in time of danger."
1798. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,' fol. i.
p. 562:
"At an early age the females wear round the waist a small line
made of the twisted hair of the opossum, from the centre of
which depend a few small uneven lines from two to five inches
long. This they call bar-rin."
1809. G. Shaw, `Zoological Lectures,' vol. i. p. 93:
"A still more elegant kind of New Holland opossum is the
petaurine opossum . . . has the general appearance of a
flying-squirrel, being furnished with a broad furry membrane
from the fore to the hind feet, by the help of which it springs
from tree to tree. . . . Known in its native regions by the
name of hepoona roo."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 67:
"Their food consists of fish when near the coasts, but when in
the woods, of oppossums [sic], bandicoots, and almost any
animal they can catch."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 143:
"The sharp guttural noises of opossums."
Ibid. p. 174 [`The Native Woman's Lament']:
"The white man wanders in the dark,
We hear his thunder smite the bough;
The opossum's mark upon the bark
We traced, but cannot find it, now."
1853. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 324:
"The opossums usually abound where grass is to be found,
lodging by day in the holes and hollows of trees. The most
common species is the Phalangista vulpina (Shaw), under
which are placed both the black and grey opossums. . . . The
ringtail opossum (Phalangista or Hepoona Cookii,
Desm.) is smaller, less common, and less sought after, for
dogs will not eat the flesh of the ringtail even when roasted."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 200:
"Dogs, immediately on coming into the Australian forest, become
perfectly frantic in the pursuit of opossums."
1883. `Encyclopaedia Britannica' (ed. 9) [On the Australian
animal], vol. xv. p. 382:
"A numerous group, varying in size from that of a mouse to a
large cat, arboreal in their habits and abundantly distributed
throughout the Australian region . . . have the tail more or
less prehensile. . . . These are the typical phalangers or
`opossums,' as they are commonly called in Australia. (Genus
Phalangista.)"
Ibid. p. 380 [On the American animal]:
"The Didelphidae, or true opossums, differ from all
other marsupials in their habitat, being peculiar to the
American continent. They are mostly carnivorous or
insectivorous in their diet, and arboreal in habits."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 11:
"Among the colonists the younger generation are very zealous
opossum hunters. They hunt them for sport, going out by
moonlight and watching the animal as it goes among the trees
to seek its food."
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"We see two fine pairs of the Tasmanian sooty opossum
(Phalangista fuliginosa); this species is unapproached
by any other in regard to size and the beauty of its fur, which
is of a rich, fulvous brown colour. This opossum is becoming
scarce in Tasmania on account of the value of its fur, which
makes it much sought after. In the next compartment are a pair
of short-eared opossums (P. canina), the mountain
opossums of Southern Australia. The next is a pair of vulpine
opossums; these are the common variety, and are found all over
the greater part of Australia, the usual colour of this kind
being grey."
1893. `Melbourne Stock and Station Journal,' May 10
(advertisement):
"Kangaroo, wallaby, opossum, and rabbit skins. . . .
Opossum skins, ordinary firsts to 7s. 6d; seconds to 3s.;
thirds to 1s. 6d; silver greys up to 9s. per doz.; do.
mountain, to 18s. per doz."
Opossum-Mouse, n. the small Australian
marsupial, Acrobates pygmaeus, Shaw; more correctly
called the Pigmy Flying-Phalanger. See Flying-
Phalanger. This is the animal generally so denoted,
and it is also called the Flying-Mouse. But there
is an intermediate genus, Dromicia (q.v.), with no
parachute expansion on the flanks, not "flying," of which
the name of Dormouse-Phalanger is the more proper
appellation. The species are the--
Common Dormouse-Phalanger--
Dromicia nana, Desm.
Lesser D.-Ph.--
D. lepida, Thomas.
Long-tailed D.-Ph.--
D. caudata, M. Edw.
Western D.-Ph.--
D. concinna, Gould.
One genus, with only one species, the
Pentailed-Phalanger, Distaechurus pennatus,
Peters, is confined to New Guinea.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' p. 28:
"The opossum-mouse is about the size of our largest
barn-mouse."
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 118:
"Resembling a common mouse in size, and hence known to the
colonists as the flying-mouse or opossum-mouse, this little
animal is one of the most elegant of the Australian
marsupials."
Opossum-Tree, n. a timber-tree, Quintinia
sieberi, De C., N.O. Saxifrageae.
Orange, n. i.q. Native Lime, Citrus
australis. See Lime.
Orange, Mock, n. i.q. Native Laurel.
See Laurel.
Orange, Native, n. name given to two Australian
trees. (1) Capparis mitchelli, Lindl.,
N.O. Capparideae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 12:
"`Small Native Pomegranate,' `Native Orange.' The fruit is
from one to two inches in diameter, and the pulp, which has
an agreeable perfume, is eaten by the natives."
(2) Citriobatus pauciflorus, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Pittosporeae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 16:
"`Native Orange,' `Orange Thorn.' The fruit is an orange
berry with a leathery skin, about one inch and a half in
diameter. It is eaten by the aboriginals."
Orange, Wild, n. i.q. Wild Lemon.
See under Lemon.
Orange-Gum, n. See Gum.
Orange-spotted Lizard (of New Zealand), Naultinus
elegans, Gray.
Orange-Thorn, n. See Orange, Native(2).
Orange-Tree, n. The New Zealand
Orange-Tree is a name given to the Tarata (q.v.),
from the aromatic odour of its leaves when crushed.
Organ-Bird, or Organ-Magpie, n.
other names for one of the Magpies (q.v.).
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 48:
"Gymnorrhina organicum, Gould, Tasmanian crow-shrike;
Organ-Bird and White-Magpie of the Colonists. Resembling the
sounds of a hand-organ out of tune."
1848. T. L. Mitchell, `Tropical Australia,' p. 176:
"The burita, or Gymnorrhina, the organ-magpie,
was here represented by a much smaller bird."
Ornithorhynchus, n. i.q. Platypus
(q.v.).
Orthonyx, n. a scientific name of a remarkable
Australian genus of passerine birds, the spine-tails. It long
remained of uncertain position . . . and finally it was made
the type of a family, Orthonycidae. In the type
species, O. spinacauda . . . the shafts of the
tail-feathers are prolonged beyond the legs. (`Century.')
Thename is from the Greek 'orthos, straight, and
'onux, a claw. See Log-Runner and
Pheasant's Mother.
Osprey, n. another name for the
Fish-Hawk (q.v.).
Ounce, n. used as adj. Yielding an
ounce of gold to a certain measure of dirt, as a dish-full, a
cradle-full, a tub-full, etc. Also used to signify the number
of ounces per ton that quartz will produce, as "ounce-stuff,"
"three-ounce stuff," etc.
Out-run, n. a sheep-run at a distance from the
Head-station (q.v.).
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. vi. p. 47
(1890):
"They'd come off a very far out-run, where they'd been,
as one might say, neglected."
Out-station, n. a sheep or cattle station
away from the Head-station (q.v.).
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 11, p. 1, col. 3:
"There are four out-stations with huts, hurdles . . .
and every convenience."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i.
c. 8, p. 231:
"The usual fare at that time at the out-stations--fried pork
and kangaroo."
1870. Paul Wentworth, `Amos Thorne,' c. iii. p. 26:
"He . . . at last on an out-station in the Australian bush
worked for his bread."
Overland, v. to take stock across the country.
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. xiii.
p. 232:
"Herds used to be taken from New South Wales to South Australia
across what were once considered the deserts of Riverina. That
used to be called `overlanding.'"
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. ix. p. 74:
"Several gentlemen were away from the two nearest stations,
`overlanding,' i.e. taking sheep, cattle, and flour to
Melbourne."
Overlander, n. (1) In the days before
railways, and when much of the intervening country was not
taken up, to travel between Sydney and Melbourne, or Melbourne
and Adelaide, was difficult if not dangerous. Those who made
either journey were called Overlanders. In this sense
the word is now only used historically, but it retains the
meaning in the general case of a man taking cattle a long
distance, as from one colony to another.
(2) A slang name for a Sundowner (q.v.).
1843. Rev. W. Pridden, `Australia: Its History and Present
Condition,' p. 335:
"Among the beings which, although not natives of the bush,
appear to be peculiar to the wilds of Australia, the class of
men called Overlanders must not be omitted. Their occupation
is to convey stock from market to market, and from one colony
to another."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. c.
vi. p. 237:
"The Eastern extent of the country of South Australia was
determined by the overlanders, as they call the gentlemen
who bring stock from New South Wales."
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 11:
"Overlanders from Sydney and Melbourne to Adelaide were making
great sums of money."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. ix. p. 69:
"He gave us the advice of an experienced overlander."
1880. A. J. Vogan, `Black Police,' p. 262:
"An `overlander,'--for, as you havn't any of the breed in New
Zealand, I'll explain what that is,--is Queensland-English for
a long-distance drover; and a rough, hard life it generally is.
. . . Cattle have to be taken long distances to market
sometimes from these `up-country' runs."
1890. `Melbourne Argus,' June 7, p. 4, col. 1:
"Then came overlanders of another sort--practical men who went
out to develop and not to explore."
Owl, n. an English bird-name. The species in
Australia are--
Boobook Owl--
Ninox boobook, Lath.
Chestnut-faced O.--
Strix castanops, Gould.
Grass O.--
S. candida, Tickell.
Lesser Masked O.--
S. delicatula, Lath.
Masked O.--
S. novae-hollandiae, Steph.
Powerful O.--
Ninox strenua, Gould.
Sooty O.--
Strix tenebricosa, Gould.
Spotted O.--
Ninox maculata, Vig. and Hors.
Winking O.--
N. connivens, Lath.
In New Zealand, the species are--Laughing Jackass, or L. Owl,
Sceloglaux albifacies, Kaup (Maori name, Whekau,
q.v.), and the Morepork, formerly Athene
novae-zelandiae, Gray, now Spiloglaux
novae-zelandiae, Kaup. (See Morepork.)
See also Barking Owl.
Owl-Parrot, n. a bird of New Zealand. See
Kakapo.
Oyster, n. The Australian varieties
are--Mud-Oyster, Ostrea angasi, Sow. (sometimes
considered only a variety of O. edulis, Linn., the
European species): New South Wales, Victoria, Tasmania, South
Australia. O. rutupina, Jeffreys, "the native" of
Colchester, England, is a variety and occurs in Tasmania.
Drift-O., O. subtrigona, Sow., called so because its
beds are thought to be shifted by storms and tides: New South
Wales and Queensland. Rock-O., O. glomerata, Gould,
probably the same species as the preceding, but under different
conditions: all Eastern Australia. And other species more or
less rare. See also Stewart Islander. Australian
oysters, especially the Sydney Rock-Oyster, are very plentiful,
and of excellent body and flavour, considered by many to be
equal if not superior to the Colchester native. They cost
1s. a dozen; unopened in bags, they are 6d. a dozen--a contrast
to English prices.
Oyster-Bay Pine, n. See Pine.
1857. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 155:
"16 August, 1848 . . . A sample of the white resin of the
Oyster Bay Pine (Callitris Australis, Brown) lay on the
table. The Secretary stated that this tree has only been met
with along a comparatively limited and narrow strip of land
bordering the sea on the eastern coast of Tasmania, and upon
Flinders and Cape Barren Islands in Bass's Straits; that about
Swanport and the shores of Oyster Bay it forms a tree, always
handsome and picturesque, and sometimes 120 feet in height,
affording useful but not large timber, fit for all the ordinary
purposes of the house carpenter and joiner in a country
district."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 222:
"Those most picturesque trees, the Oyster Bay pines, which,
vividly green in foliage, tapering to a height of eighty or one
hundred feet, and by turns symmetrical or eccentric in form,
harmonise and combine with rugged mountain scenery as no other
of our trees here seem to do."
Oyster-catcher, n. common English bird-name.
The Australasian species are--Pied, Haematopus
longirostris, Vieill.; Black, H. unicolor, Wagler;
and two other species--H. picatus, Vigors, and
H. australasianus, Gould, with no vernacular name.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. vii. p. 174:
"Our game-bag was thinly lined with small curlews,
oyster-catchers, and sanderlings."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 274:
"Slim oyster-catcher, avocet,
And tripping beach-birds, seldom met
Elsewhere."
P
Pa, or Pah, n. The former is now
considered the more correct spelling. A Maori word to signify
a native settlement, surrounded by a stockade; a fort;
a fighting village. In Maori, the verb pa means,
to touch, to block up. Pa = a collection of houses
to which access is blocked by means of stockades and ditches.
1769. `Captain Cook's Journal' (edition Wharton, 1893),
p. 147:
"I rather think they are places of retreat or stronghold,
where they defend themselves against the attack of an enemy,
as some of them seemed not ill-design'd for that purpose."
Ibid. p. 156:
"Have since learnt that they have strongholds--or hippas,
as they call them--which they retire to in time of danger."
[Hawkesworth spelt it, Heppahs; he = Maori definite
article.]
1794. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 175:
"[On the coast of New Zealand] they passed many huts and a
considerable hippah, or fortified place, on a high round
hill, from the neighbourhood of which six large canoes were
seen coming towards the ship."
1842. W. R. Wade, `Journey in New Zealand' (Hobart Town),
p. 27:
"A native pa, or enclosed village, is usually surrounded by a
high stockade, or irregular wooden fence, the posts of which
are often of great height and thickness, and sometimes headed
by the frightful carving of an uncouth or indecent image."
1858. `Appendix to Journal of House of Representatives,' E-4,
p. 4:
"They seem, generally speaking, at present inveterate in their
adherence to their dirty native habits, and to their residence
in pas."
1859. A. S. Thomson, M.D., `Story of New Zealand,' p. 132:
"The construction of the war pas . . . exhibits the inventive
faculty of the New Zealanders better than any other of their
works. . . . Their shape and size depended much on the
nature of the ground and the strength of the tribe. They had
double rows of fences on all unprotected sides; the inner
fence, twenty to thirty feet high, was formed of poles stuck in
the ground, slightly bound together with supple-jacks, withes,
and torotoro creepers. The outer fence, from six to eight feet
high, was constructed of lighter materials. Between the two
there was a dry ditch. The only openings in the outer fence
were small holes; in the inner fence there were sliding bars.
Stuck in the fences were exaggerated wooden figures of men with
gaping mouths and out-hanging tongues. At every corner were
stages for sentinels, and in the centre scaffolds, twenty feet
high, forty feet long, and six broad, from which men discharged
darts at the enemy. Suspended by cords from an elevated stage
hung a wooden gong twelve feet long, not unlike a canoe in
shape, which, when struck with a wooden mallet, emitted a sound
heard in still weather twenty miles off. Previously to a siege
the women and children were sent away to places of safety."
1863. T. Moser, `Mahoe Leaves,' p. 14:
"A pah is strictly a fortified village, but it has ceased to
be applied to a fortified one only, and a collection of huts
forming a native settlement is generally called a pah
now-a-days."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 22:
"They found the pah well fortified, and were not able to
take it."
1879. Clement Bunbury, `Fraser's Magazine, June, p. 761:
"The celebrated Gate Pah, where English soldiers in a panic ran
away from the Maoris, and left their officers to be killed."
1889. Cassell's' Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 46:
"A sally was made from the pah, but it was easily repulsed.
Within the pah the enemy were secure."
Pachycephala, n. the scientific name for the
typical genus of Pachycephalinae, founded in 1826 by
Vigors and Horsfield. It is an extensive group of thick-headed
shrikes, containing about fifty species, ranging in the Indian
and Australian region, but not in New Zealand. The type is
P. gutturalis, Lath., of Australia. (`Century.') They
are singing-birds, and are called Thickheads (q.v.),
and often Thrushes (q.v.). The name is from the Greek
pachus, thick, and kephalae, the head.
Packer, n. used for a pack-horse.
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for Mail,' p. 59:
"The boys took notice of a horse, some old packer he looked
like."
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 4, col. 1:
"The Darling drover with his saddle-horses and packers."
Paddock. (1) 1n England, a small field; in Australia,
the general word for any field, or for any block of land
enclosed by a fence. The `Home-paddock' is the paddock near
the Homestation, and usually very large.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. vi. p. 148:
"There is one paddock of 100 acres, fenced on four sides."
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 25, p. 3, col. 6:
"A 300-acre grass paddock, enclosed by a two-rail fence."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 42:
"The paddocks are so arranged that hills may afford shelter,
and plains or light-timbered flats an escape from the enormous
flies and other persecuting enemies."
1892. `Scribner's Magazine,' Feb., p. 141:
"`Paddocks,' as the various fields are called (some of these
`paddocks' contain 12,000 acres)."
(2) An excavation made for procuring wash-dirt in shallow
ground. A place built near the mouth of a shaft where quartz
or wash-dirt is stored. (Brough Smyth, `Glossary of Mining
Terms,' 1869.)
1895. `Otago Witness,' Nov. 21, p. 22, col. 5:
"A paddock was opened at the top of the beach, but rock-bottom
was found."
Paddock, v. to divide into paddocks.
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. xx.
p. 302:
"When a run is paddocked shepherds are not required;
but boundary riders are required."
Paddy Lucerne, n. i.q. Queensland Hemp.
See under Hemp.
Paddymelon, n. the name of a small
Wallaby (q.v.), Macropus thetidis, Less. It is
certainly a corruption of an aboriginal name, and is spelt
variously pademelon, padmelon, and melon simply.
(See Melon-holes.) This word is perhaps the best
instance in Australia of the law of Hobson-Jobson, by which a
strange word is fitted into a language, assuming a likeness to
existing words without any regard to the sense. The Sydney
name for kangaroo was patagorang. See early quotations.
This word seems to give the first half of the modern word.
Pata, or pada, was the generic name: mella
an adjective denoting the species. Paddymalla (1827)
marks an intermediate stage, when one-half of the word had been
anglicised. At Jervis Bay, New South Wales, the word
potalemon was used for a kangaroo.
1793. J. Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 547:
"The pattagorang and baggaray frequently supplied our
colonists with fresh meals, and Governor Phillip had three
young ones, which were likely to live: he has not the least
doubt but these animals are formed in the false belly."
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' vol. i. p. 548:
"The pat-ta-go-rang or kangooroo was (bood-yer-re) good, and
they ate it whenever they were fortunate enough to kill one."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 310:
"The wallabee and paddymalla grow to about sixty pounds each."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 212:
"Had hunted down a paddymelon (a very small species of
kangaroo, which is found in the long grass and thick brushes)."
1845. Clement Hodgkinson, `Australia, from Port Macquarie to
Moreton Bay,' p. 45:
"The brush-kangaroos or pademellas were thus gradually
enclosed."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 47:
"A small species of the kangaroo tribe, called by the sealers
paddymelon, is found on Philip Island, while none have been
seen on French Island."
1851. J. Henderson, `Excursions in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 129:
"The small kind of kangaroo, however, called by the natives
`Paddy Melon,' and which inhabits the dense brushes or jungles,
forms a more frequent, and more easily obtained article of
food."
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings,' p. 41:
"An apron made from skin of Paddie-Melon."
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,'
p. 107:
"In the scrub beyond, numbers of a small kind of kangaroo
called `Paddy- Mellans,' resort."
[Footnote] "I cannot guarantee the spelling."
1888. Cassell's' Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 90:
"The kangaroo and his relatives, the wallaby and the
paddymelon."
1890. A. H. S. Lucas, `Handbook of the Australasian
Association for the Advancement of Science,' p. 62:
"Onychogale fraenatus and its ally O. lunatus.
Mr. Le Souef reports that the former are fairly numerous in the
Mallee country to the north-west of the Colony, and are there
known as Pademelon." [This seems to be only a local use.]
1893. J. L. Purves, Q.C., in `The Argus,' Dec. 14, p. 9,
col. 7:
"On either side is a forest, the haunt of wombats and
tree-bears, and a few paddymelons."
Paddymelon-Stick, n. a stick used by the
aborigines for knocking paddymelons (q.v.) on the head.
1851. J. Henderson, `Excursions in New South Wales,' vol.
ii. p. 129:
"These are hunted in the brushes and killed with paddy mellun
sticks with which they are knocked down. These sticks are
about 2 feet long and an inch or less in diameter."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i.
p. 56:
"Nulla-mullahs, paddy-melon sticks, boomerangs, tomahawks,
and heelimen or shields lay about in every direction."
Pah, n. i.q. Pa (q.v.).
Pake, n. Maori name for a coarse mat used
against rain. A sack thrown over the shoulders is called by
the settlers a Pake.
Pakeha, n. Maori word for a white man. The
word is three syllables, with even accent on all. A Pakeha
Maori is an Englishman who lives as a Maori with the Maoris.
Mr. Tregear, in his `Maori Comparative Dictionary,'
s.v. Pakepakeha, says: "Mr. John White [author of
`Ancient History of the Maoris'] considers that pakeha,
a foreigner, an European, originally meant `fairy,' and states
that on the white men first landing sugar was called
`fairy-sand,' etc." Williams' `Maori Dictionary' (4th edit.)
gives, "a foreigner: probably from pakepakeha, imaginary
beings of evil influence, more commonly known as
patupaiarehe, said to be like men with fair skins."
Some express this idea by "fairy." Another explanation is that
the word is a corruption of the coarse English word, said to
have been described by Dr. Johnson (though not in his
dictionary), as "a term of endearment amongst sailors." The
first a in Pakeha had something of the u sound.
The sailors' word would have been introduced to New Zealand by
whalers in the early part of the nineteenth century.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 187:
"Pakeha, s. an European; a white man."
1832. A. Earle, `Narrative of Nine Months' Residence in New
Zealand,' p. 146:
"The white taboo'd day, when the packeahs (or white men) put on
clean clothes and leave off work" [sc. Sunday].
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. i.
p. 73:
"We do not want the missionaries from the Bay of Islands,
they are pakeha maori, or whites who have become natives."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' canto iii. p. 44:
"Aiding some vile pakehas
In deeds subversive of the laws."
1876. F. E. Maning [Title]:
"Old New Zealand, by a Pakeha Maori."
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of the Maori,' p. 15:
"Long ere the pale pakeha came to the shrine."
Palberry, n. a South Australian name for the
Native Currant. See Currant. The word is a
corruption of the aboriginal name Palbri, by the law
of Hobson-Jobson.
Palm, Alexandra, n. a Queensland timber-tree,
Ptychosperma alexandrae, F. v. M., N.O. Palmeae.
Palm, Black, n. a Queensland timber-tree,
Ptychosperma normanbyi, F. v. M., N.O. Palmeae.
Palm, Cabbage, n. i.q. Cabbage-tree (q.v.)
Palm Nut, n. See under Nut.
Palm, Walking-Stick, n. a Queensland plant,
Bacularia monostachya, F. v. M., N.O. Palmeae.
So called because the stem is much used for making
walking-sticks.
Panel, n. the part between two posts in a
post-and-rail fence. See also Slip-panel.
1876. A. L. Gordon, `Sea-spray,' p. 148:
"In the jar of the panel rebounding,
In the crash of the splintering wood,
In the ears to the earth-shock resounding,
In the eyes flashing fire and blood."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xviii.
p. 226:
"A panel of fencing is not quite nine feet in length."
Pan, or Pan-wash, Pan-out,
Pan-off, verbs, to wash the dirt in the pan
for gold. Some of the forms, certainly pan-out,
are used in the United States.
1870. J. O. Tucker, `The Mute,' p. 40:
"Others to these the precious dirt convey,
Linger a moment till the panning's through."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Gold fields,' p. 4:
"On the very day of their arrival they got a lesson
in pan-washing."
Ibid. p. 36:
"All the diggers merely panned out the earth."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. vii. p. 79:
"These returned gnomes having been brought to light, at once
commenced to pan off according to the recognized rule and
practice."
Pannikin, n. a small tin cup for drinking.
The word is not Australian. Webster refers to Marryat and
Thackeray. The `Century' quotes Blackmore. This diminutive
of pan is exceedingly common in Australia, though not
confined to it.
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 200:
"He went to the spring and brought me a pannican full."
(p. 101): "Several tin pannicans."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 87:
"We caught the rain in our pannikins as it dropt from our
extended blankets."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 190:
"There is a well-known story of two bullock-drivers, who, at a
country public-house on their way to the town, called for a
dozen of champagne, which they first emptied from the bottles
into a bucket, and then deliberately drank off from their tin
pannikins."
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 6:
"He was considered sufficiently rewarded in having the
`honour' to drink his `pannikin' of tea at the boss's deal
table."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 44:
"A small pannikin full of gold dust."
Pannikin-boss, or Pannikin-overseer,
n. The term is applied colloquially to a man on a
station, whose position is above that of the ordinary
station-hand, but who has no definite position of authority, or
is only a `boss' or overseer in a small way.
Papa, n. Maori word for a bluish clay found
along the east coast of the North Island.
Paper-bark Tree, or Paper-barked Tea-tree,
n. Called also Milk-wood (q.v.). Name given to
the species Melaleuca leucodendron, Linn. Its bark is
impervious to water.
1842. `Western Australia,' p. 81:
"There is no doubt, from the partial trial which has been made
of it, that the wood of the Melaleuca, or tea-tree,
could be rendered very serviceable. It is sometimes known by
the name of the paper-bark tree from the multitudinous layers
(some hundreds) of which the bark is composed. These layers
are very thin, and are loosely attached to each other, peeling
off like the bark of the English birch. The whole mass of the
bark is readily stripped from the tree. It is used by the
natives as a covering for their huts."
[Compare the New Zealand Thousand-jacket.]
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries of Australia,' vol. i. c. v.
p. 106:
"The face of the country was well but not too closely covered
with specimens of the red and white gum, and paper-bark tree."
1847. E. W. Landor, `The Bushman; or, Life in a New
Country,' p. 212:
"Fish and other things are frequently baked in the bark of the
papertree."
1857. J. Askew, `Voyage to Australia and New Zealand,'
p. 433:
"The dead bodies are burnt or buried, though some in North
Australia place the corpse in the paper bark of the tea-tree,
and deposit it in a hollow tree."
Paper-fish, n. a Tasmanian name. See
Bastard Trumpeter and Morwong.
1883. `Royal Commission on Fisheries of Tasmania,' p. xxxvi:
"The young [of the bastard trumpeter] are always coloured, more
or less, like the red, and are known by some as `paper-fish.'
The mature form of the silver bastard is alone caught. This is
conclusive as favouring the opinion that the silver is simply
the mature form of the red."
Paradise, Bird of, n. English bird-name,
originally applied in Australia to the Lyre-bird (q.v.),
now given to Manucoda gouldii, Gray. Called also the
Manucode (q.v.).
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 300:
"By him [Wilson, a convict] the first bird of paradise ever
seen in this country had been shot."
[This was the Lyre-bird.]
Paradise-Duck, n. bird-name applied to the New
Zealand duck, Casarca variegata, Gmel. See Duck
quotation, 1889, Parker.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. 1.
p. 57:
"These (wild ducks of different sorts) are principally the
black, the grey, the blue-winged, and the paradise-duck, or
`pu tangi tangi,' as it is called by the natives. The last
is nearly as large as a goose, and of beautiful plumage."
Paradoxus, n. a shortened form of the former
scientific name of the Platypus, Paradoxus
ornithorrhynchus. Sometimes further abbreviated to
Paradox. The word is from the Greek paradoxos,
`Contrary to opinion, strange, incredible.' (`L. & S.')
1817. O'Hara, `The History of New South Wales,' p. 452:
"In the reaches or pools of the Campbell River, the very
curious animal called the paradox, or watermole, is seen in
great numbers."
Paramatta/sic/, n. "A fabric like merino, of
worsted and cotton. So named from Paramatta, a town
near Sydney, New South Wales." (Skeat, `Etymological
Dictionary,' s.v.) According to some, the place named
Parramatta means, in the local Aboriginal dialect, "eels
abound," or "plenty of eels." Others rather put it that
para = fish, and matta= water. There is a river
in Queensland called the Paroo, which means "fish-river."
NOTE.--The town Parramatta, though formerly often spelt with
one r, is now always spelt with two.
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 367:
"A peculiar tweed, made in the colony, and chiefly at Paramatta,
hence the name."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 19:
"Paramattas, fine cloths originally made from the Paramatta
wool, with silk warps, though now woollen."
Pardalote, n. anglicised form of the scientific
bird-name Pardalotus (q.v.), generally called Diamond
birds (q.v.); a genus of small short-tailed birds like the
Flycatchers. The species are--
Black-headed Pardalote--
Pardalotus melanocephalus, Gould.
Chestnut-rumped P.--
P. uropygialis, Gould.
Forty-spotted P.--
P. quadragintus, Gould; called also Forty-Spot
(q.v.).
Orange-tipped P.--
P. assimilis, Ramsay.
Red-browed P.--
P. rubricatus, Gould.
Red-tipped P.--
P. ornatus, Temm.
Spotted P.--
P. punctatus, Temm.; the bird originally called
the Diamond Bird (q.v.).
Yellow-rumped P.--
P. xanthopygius, McCoy.
Yellow-tipped P.--
P. affinis, Gould.--
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 35:
"No species of the genus to which this bird belongs is more
widely and generally distributed than the spotted pardalote,
Pardalotus punctatus."
Pardalotus, n. scientific name for a genus of
Australian birds, called Diamond birds (q.v.), and also
Pardalotes (q.v.), from Grk. pardalowtos, spotted
like the pard.
Parera, n. Maori name for the genus
Duck (q.v.).
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 407:
"Family, Anatida--Parera, turuki (Anas
superciliosa), the duck; very similar to the
wild duck of England."
Parra, n. a popular use for the fuller
scientific name Parra gallinacea. Called also
the Jacana (q.v.), and the Lotus-bird (q.v.).
1893. `The Argus,' March 25, p. 4, col. 6:
"The egg of the comb-crested parra shines amongst its
neighbours so vividly that it at once catches the eye, and
suggests a polished agate rather than an egg. The bird itself
is something of a gem, too, when seen skipping with its long
water-walking claws over the floating leaves of pink and blue
water-lilies."
Parrakeet, n. (various spellings). From
French. Originally from Spanish periquito, dim. of
sp. perico, a little parrot. Hence used generally in
English to signify any small parrot. The Australian species
are--
Alexandra Parrakeet--
Spathopterus (Polytelis) alexandra, Gould.
Beautiful P.--
Psephotus pulcherrimus, Gould.
Black-tailed P.--
Polytelis melanura, Vig. and Hors.;
called also Rock-pebbler.
Blue-cheeked P.--
Platycercus amathusiae, Bp.
Cockatoo P.--
Calopsittacus novae-hollandiae Gmel.
Crimson-bellied P.--
Psephotus haematogaster, Gould.
Golden-shouldered P.--
Psephotus chrysopterygius, Gould.
Green P.--
Platycercus flaviventris, Temm.
Ground P.--
Pezoporus formosus, Lath.
Mallee P.--
Platycercus barnardi, Vig. and Hors.
Many-coloured P.--
Psephotus multicolor, Temm.
Night P.--
Pezoporus occidentalis, Gould.
Pale-headed P:--
Platycercus pallidiceps, Vig.
Pheasant P.--
P. adelaidensis, Gould.
Red-backed P.--
Psephotus haematonotus, Gould.
Red-capped P.--
P. spurius, Kuhl.
Rock P.--
Euphema petrophila, Gould.
Smutty P.--
Platycercus browni, Temm.
Yellow P.--
P. flaveolus, Gould.
Yellow-banded P.
P. zonarius, Shaw.
Yellow-cheeked P.
P. icterotis, Temm.
Yellow-collared P.--
P. semitorquatus, Quoy and Gaim.;
called also Twenty-eight (q.v.).
Yellow-mantled P.--
P. splendidus, Gould.
Yellow-vented P.--
Psephotus xanthorrhous, Gould.
See also Grass-Parrakeet, Musk-Parrakeet,
Rosella, and Rosehill. The New Zealand Green
Parrakeet (called also Kakariki, q.v.) has the
following species--
Antipodes Island P.-
Platycercus unicolor, Vig.
Orange-fronted P.--
P. alpinus, Buller.
Red-fronted P.--
P. novae-zelandiae, Sparrm.
Rowley's Parrakeet--
Platycercus rowleyi, Buller.
Yellow-fronted P.--
P. auriceps, Kuhl.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Journal,' p. 80:
"The cockatoo-parrakeet of the Gwyder River (Nymphicus
Novae-Hollandiae, Gould)."
1867. A. G. Middleton, `Earnest,' p. 93:
"The bright parroquet, and the crow, black jet,
For covert, wing far to the shade."
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 118:
"There are three species of parrakeet, the red-fronted
(Platycercus Novae-Zelandiae), the yellow-fronted
(P. auriceps), and the orange-fronted (P. alpinus).
The genus Platycercus is found in New Zealand, New Guinea,
and Polynesia."
Parrot-bill, n. See Kaka-bill.
Parrot-fish, n. name given in Australia to
Pseudoscarus pseudolabrus; called in the Australian
tropics Parrot-perch. In Victoria and Tasmania, there
are also several species of Labricthys. In New Zealand, it is
L. psittacula, Rich.
Parrot-Perch, n. See Parrot-fish.
Parrot's-food, n. name given in Tasmania to the
plant Goodenia ovata, Sm., N.O. Goodeniaceae.
Parsley, Wild, n. Apium leptophyllum,
F. v. M., N.O. Umbelliferae. Parsley grows wild in
many parts of the world, especially on the shores of the
Mediterranean, and this species is not endemic in Australia.
Parsnip, Wild, n. a poisonous weed,
Trachymene australis, Benth., N.O. Umbelliferae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 142:
"Recently (Dec. 1887) the sudden death of numbers of cattle in
the vicinity of Dandenong, Victoria, was attributed to their
having eaten a plant known as the wild parsnip. . . . Its
action is so powerful that no remedial measures seem to be of
any avail."
Parson-bird, n. the New Zealand bird
Prosthemadera novae-zelandiae, Gmel.; Maori name,
Tui (q.v.). See also Poe.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 401:
"Cook named this beautiful and lively bird the parson and
mocking-bird. It acquired the first name from its having two
remarkable white feathers on the neck like a pair of
clergyman's bands."
[Mr. Taylor is not correct. Cook called it the Poe-bird
(q.v.). The name `Parson-bird' is later.]
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand the Britain of the South,'
vol. i. p. 118:
"The most common, and certainly the most facetious, individual
of the ornithology is the tui (parson-bird). Joyous
Punchinello of the bush, he is perpetual fun in motion."
1858. C. W., `Song of the Squatters,' `Canterbury Rhymes'
(2nd edit.), p. 47:
"So the parson-bird, the tui,
The white-banded songster tui,
In the morning wakes the woodlands
With his customary music.
Then the other tuis round him
Clear their throats and sing in concert,
All the parson-birds together."
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 93:
"The tui, or parson-bird, most respectable and clerical-looking
in its glossy black suit, with a singularly trim and dapper
air, and white wattles of very slender feathers--indeed they are
as fine as hair--curled coquettishly at each side of his throat,
exactly like bands."
1888. Dr. Thomson, apud Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol.
i. p. 95:
"Sitting on the branch of a tree, as a pro tempore
pulpit, he shakes his head, bending to one side and then to
another, as if he remarked to this one and to that one; and
once and again, with pent-up vehemence, contracting his muscles
and drawing himself together, his voice waxes loud, in a manner
to awaken sleepers to their senses."
1890. W. Colenso, `Bush Notes,' `Transactions of the New
Zealand Institute,' vol. xxxiii. art. lvii. p. 482:
"It is very pleasing to hear the deep rich notes of the
parson-bird--to see a pair of them together diligently occupied
in extracting honey from the tree-flowers, the sun shining on
their glossy sub-metallic dark plumage."
Partridge-Pigeon, n. an Australian pigeon.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 8:
"The partridge-pigeon (Geophaps scripta) abounded in the
Acacia groves."
Partridge-wood, n. another name for the
Cabbage-Palm (q.v.).
Passion-flower, Native, n. Several species
of the genus Passiflora are so called in Australia;
some are indigenous, some naturalised.
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 398:
"The native passion-flower, scarlet and orange, was tangled up
with the common purple sarsaparilla and the English honeysuckle
and jessamine."
Pastoralist, n. The squatters are dropping
their old name for this new one. A Pastoralist is a sheep or
cattle-farmer, the distinction between him and an Agriculturist
being, that cultivation, if he undertakes it at all, is a minor
consideration with him.
1891. March 15 [Title]:
"The Pastoralists' Review," No. 1.
1892. `Scribner's Magazine,' Feb., p. 147:
"A combination has been formed by the squatters under the name
of the Pastoralists' Union."
Patagorang, n. one of the aboriginal names for
the Kangaroo (q.v.), and see Paddy-melon.
Pataka, n. Maori word for storehouse,
supported on a post to keep off rats. See Whata.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. i.
p. 283:
"We landed at the pataka, or stage."
Patiki, n. the Maori name for the
Flounder (q.v.). The accent is on the first
syllable of the word.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of the Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 190:
"Patiki, s. a fish so called."
1844. F. Tuckett, `Diary,' May 31:
"A fine place for spearing soles or patike
(the best of fish)."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 412:
"Patiki, common name for the sole and flat-fish; the latter
is found in rivers, but decreases in size as it retires from
the sea."
1879. Captain Mair, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xii. art. xlvi. p. 316:
"Large patiki, flat-fish, are occasionally speared up the
river."
Patriot, n. Humorously applied to convicts.
1796. In `History of Australia,' by G. W. Rusden (1894),
p. 49 [Footnote]:
"In 1796 the Prologue (erroneously imputed to a convict
Barrington, but believed to have been written by an officer)
declared:
`True patriots we, for be it understood
We left our country for our country's good.'"
Patter, v. to eat. Aboriginal word, and used
in pigeon- English, given by Collins in his vocabulary of the
Port Jackson dialect. Threlkeld says, ta is the root of
the verb, meaning "to eat."
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. ii. c. vii. p. 223:
"He himself did not patter (eat) any of it."
Patu, n. Maori generic term for all
hand-striking weapons. The mere (q.v.) is one kind.
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 82:
"It (fern-root) was soaked, roasted, and repeatedly beaten
with a small club (patu) on a large smooth stone till it was
supple."
Paua, n. the Maori name for the Mutton-
fish (q.v.). Also used as the name for Maori fishhooks,
made of the paua shell; the same word being adopted
for fish, shell, and hook.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 191:
"Paua, s. a shell-fish so called."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 416:
"Pawa (Haliotis iris), or mutton-fish. This beautiful
shell is found of considerable size; it is used for the
manufacture of fish-hooks."
1855. Ibid. p.397:
"The natives always tie a feather or two to their paua, or
fish-hooks."
1877. W. L. Buller, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. x. art. xix. p. 192:
"Elaborately carved, and illuminated with paua shell."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 162:
"Immense piles of paua shells (Haliotis iris), heaped
up just above the shore, show how largely these substantial
molluscs were consumed."
Payable, adj. In Australia, able to be worked
at a profit: that which is likely to pay; not only, as in
England, due for payment.
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 38:
"We . . . expect to strike a payable lead on a hill near . . .
A shaft is bottomed there, and driving is commenced to find the
bottom of the dip."
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 15:
"Good payable stone has been struck."
1894. `The Argus,' March 28, p. 5, col. 5:
"Good payable reefs have been found and abandoned through
ignorance of the methods necessary to obtain proper results."
Pea, Coral, n. See Coral Pea.
Pea, Darling, n. See Darling Pea.
Pea, Desert, n. See Sturt's Desert Pea.
Pea, Flat, n. See Flat Pea.
Pea, Glory, n. another name
for the Clianthus (q.v.).
Pea, Heart, n. i.q. Balloon-Vine (q.v.).
Pea-plant, n. The term is applied sometimes to
any one of various Australian plants of the
N.O. Leguminosae.
Peach-berry, n. a Tasmanian berry, Lissanthe
strigosa, Smith, N.O. Epacrideae.
Peach, Native, n. another name for the
Quandong (q.v.), and for Emu-Apple (q.v.).
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings, p. 42:
"The so-called native Peach-tree of our desert tracts is a true
Santalum, S. acuminatum."
Peacocking, vb. n. Australian slang. To
peacock apiece of country means to pick out the
eyes of the land by selecting or buying up the choice
pieces and water-frontages, so that the adjoining territory is
practically useless to any one else.
1894. W. Epps, `Land Systems of Australasia,' p. 28:
"When the immediate advent of selectors to a run became
probable, the lessees endeavoured to circumvent them by
dummying all the positions which offered the best means of
blocking the selectors from getting to water. This system,
commonly known as `peacocking' . . ."
Pear, Native, name given to a timber-tree,
Xylomelum pyriforme, Sm., N.O. Proteaceae
(called also Wooden Pear), and to Hakea acicularis.
See Hakea.
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 219:
"The pear-tree is, I believe, an eucalyptus, and bears a pear
of solid wood, hard as heart of oak."
[It is not a eucalypt.]
Pear, Wooden, i.q. Native Pear. See above.
Pearl-Perch, n. a rare marine fish of New South
Wales, excellent for food, Glaucosoma scapulare, Ramsay,
family Percidae.
Pedgery, n. i.q. Pituri (q.v.).
Pee-wee, n. a New South Wales name for the
Magpie-Lark (q.v.).
Peg-out, v. tr. to mark out a gold-claim under
the Mining Act, or a Free-Selection (q.v.) under the
Land Act, by placing pegs at the corners of the land selected.
Used also metaphorically.
1858. W. H. Hall, `Practical Experiences at the Diggings in
Victoria,' p. 23:
"I selected an unoccupied spot between two holes . . . pegged
out eight square feet, paid the licence fee."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 58:
"He was in high hopes that he might be one of the first to peg
out ground on the goldfield."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' c. iii. p. 32:
"The pegging out, that is, the placing of four stout sticks,
one at each corner, was easy enough."
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 8:
"Making their way to Heemskirk, where they were the first to
peg out land for ten."
Ibid. Preface:
"The writer . . . should be called on to defend his conduct
in pegging out an additional section on the outskirts of the
field of literature."
Pelican, n. English bird-name. The pelicans
occur in nearly all temperate or tropical regions. The
Australian species is Pelecanus conspicillatus, Temm.
1885. R. M. Praed, `Head Station,' p. 256 [Title of
chapter 39]:
"Where the pelican builds her nest."
Penguin, n. common English bird-name.
The species in Australia are--
Crested Penguin--
Catarractes chrysocome, Lath.
Fairy P.--
Eudyptula undina, Gould.
Little P.--
E. minor, Forst.
For the New Zealand species, see the quotation,
and also Korora.
1889. Professor Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 119:
"The Penguins are characteristic Southern Hemisphere sea-birds,
being represented in the Northern by the Puffins. They are
flightless, but their wings are modified into powerful fins or
flappers. Among the most interesting forms are the following--
the King Penguin, Aptenodytes longirostris; Rock Hopper
P., Pygoscelis taeniatus; Yellow-Crowned P., Eudyptes
antipodum; Crested P., E. pachyrhynchus; Little Blue
P., E. minor and undina."
Pennyroyal, Native, n. Mentha gracilis,
R. Br., N.O. Labiatae. Much more acrid than the
European species of Mentha; but used widely as a herbal
medicine. Very common in all the colonies. See also
Mint.
Pepper, Climbing, n. Piper
novae-hollandiae, Miq., N.O. Piperaceae. Called
also Native Pepper, and Native Pepper-vine. A tall
plant climbing against trees in dense forests.
Peppermint, or Peppermint-tree, n.
a name given to various Eucalypts, from the aromatic nature
of their leaves or extracted essence. See quotation below
from White, 1790. There are many species, and various
vernacular names, such as Brown Peppermint,
Dandenong P., Narrow-leaved P., White P.,
etc. are given in various parts to the same species.
See Maiden's note on Eucalyptus amygdalina,
under Gum. Other vernacular names of different
species are Bastard-Peppermint, Peppermint-Box,
Peppermint-Gum.
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales' (Appendix by Dr.
Smith or John Hunter), pp. 226-27:
"The Peppermint Tree, Eucalyptus piperita. . . .
The name of peppermint-tree has been given to this plant by
Mr. White on account of the very great resemblance between the
essential oil drawn from its leaves and that obtained from the
Peppermint (Mentha piperita) which grows in England.
This oil was found by Mr. White to be much more efficacious in
removing all cholicky complaints than that of the English
Peppermint, which he attributes to its being less pungent and
more aromatic."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 23:
"The peppermint, so called from the leaves imparting to the
taste that flavour, grows everywhere throughout the island."
1874. Garnet Walch, I Head over Heels,' p. 75:
"Well, mate, it's snug here by the logs
That's peppermint--burns like a match."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 30:
"A woody gully filled with peppermint and stringy-bark trees."
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,'
p. 231:
"The peppermints rose like pillars, with funereal branches
hung,
Where the dirge for the dead is chanted,
And the mourning hymn is sung."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 116:
"Down among the roots of a peppermint bush."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' 439:
"It [Eucalyptus capitella, Smith] is one of the
numerous `peppermints' of New South Wales and Victoria,
and is noteworthy as being the first eucalypt so called,
at any rate in print."
Pepper, Native, i.q. Climbing Pepper
(see above), Piper Novae-Hollandiae, Miq.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 198:
"`Native Pepper.' An excellent tonic to the mucous
membrane. . . . One of the largest native creepers,
the root being at times from six inches to a foot in diameter.
The plant climbs like ivy to the tops of the tallest trees,
and when full-grown weighs many tons, so that a good supply
of the drug is readily obtainable."
Pepper-tree, n. The name is given to two
trees, neither of which are the true pepper of commerce
(Piper). They are--
(1) Schinus molle, which is a native of South America,
of the Cashew family, and is largely cultivated for ornament
and shade in California, and in the suburbs and public parks
and gardens of all Australian towns where it has been
naturalised. It is a very fast growing evergreen, with
feathery leaves like a small palm or fern, drooping like a
weeping willow. It flowers continuously, irrespective of
season, and bears a cluster of red-berries or drupes, strongly
pungent,-whence its name.
(2) The other tree is indigenous in Australia and Tasmania; it
is Drimys aromatica, F. v. M., formerly called
Tasmania aromatica, R. Br., N.O. Magnoliaceae.
In New Zealand the name is applied to Drimys /corr./
axillaris, Forst. (Maori, Horopito; q.v.).
1830. `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 65:
"A thick grove of the pepper-shrub, Tasmania fragrans of
Smith. It grows in a close thicket to the height of from six
to ten feet. When in blossom, in the spring months of November
or December, the farina of the flower is so pungent, especially
if shaken about by the feet of horses or cattle, that it is
necessary to hold a handkerchief to the nose in order to avoid
continual sneezing."
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the Interior
of Eastern Australia,' vol. ii. p. 280:
"We also found the aromatic tree, Tasmania aromatica.
. . . The leaves and bark of this tree have a hot, biting,
cinnamon-like taste, on which account it is vulgarly called
the pepper-tree."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 231:
"The handsome red-stemmed shrub known as native pepper. . . .
Something like cayenne and allspice mixed, . . . the aromatic
flavour is very pleasant. I have known people who, having
first adopted its use for want of other condiments, continue
it from preference."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii.
p. 138:
"Bright green pepper-trees with their coral berries."
Peragale, n. the scientific name of the genus
of Australian marsupial animals called Rabbit-
Bandicoots. See Bandicoot. (Grk. paera,
a bag or wallet, and galae, a weasel.)
Perameles, n. scientific name for the typical
genus of the family of Australian marsupial animals called
Bandicoots (q.v.), or Bandicoot-Rats. The word
is from Latin pera (word borrowed from the Greek), a bag
or wallet, and meles (a word used by Varro and Pliny),
a badger.
Perch, n. This English fish-name is applied
with various epithets to many fishes in Australia, some of the
true family Percidae, others of quite different
families. These fishes have, moreover, other names attached to
them in different localities. See Black Perch,
Fresh-water P., Golden P., Magpie P.,
Murray P., Pearl P., Red P., Red Gurnet
P., Rock P., Sea P., Parrot Fish,
Poddly, Burramundi, Mado, and Bidyan
Ruffe.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 31:
"Lates colonorum, the perch of the colonists . . ,
really a fresh-water fish, but . . . often brought to the
Sydney market from Broken Bay and other salt-water
estuaries. . . . The perch of the Ganges and other East Indian
rivers (L. calcarifer) enters freely into brackish
water, and extends to the rivers of Queensland."
[See Burramundi. L. colonorum is called the
Gippsland Perch, in Victoria.]
1882. Ibid. p. 45:
"The other genus (Chilodactylus) is also largely
represented in Tasmania and Victoria, one species being
commonly imported from Hobart Town in a smoked and dried state
under the name of `perch.'"
Perish, doing a, modern slang from Western Australia.
See quotation.
1894. `The Argus,' March 28, p. 5, col. 4:
"When a man (or party) has nearly died through want of water
he is said to have `done a perish.'"
Perpetual Lease, though a misnomer, is a statutory
expression in New Zealand. Under the former Land Acts, the
grantee of a perpetual lease took a term of thirty years, with
a right of renewal at a revalued rent, subject to conditions as
to improvement and cultivation, with a right to purchase the
freehold after six years' occupation.
Perriwinkle, n. See quotation. The most
popular form in Melbourne is Turbo undulatus, Chemnitz.
T. constricta is also called the Native Whelk.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish and Fisheries of New
South Wales,' p. 122:
"Trochocochlea constricta, Lam., is used as a substitute
for the British perriwinkle, but it is only consumed to a very
small extent."
Perth Herring, i.q. Sardine (q.v.),
and see Herring.
Petaurist, n. the general name for a
Flying-Phalanger (q.v.), Flying-Opossum (q.v.),
Australian Flying-Squirrel (q.v.). (Grk.
petauristaes, a rope-dancer or tumbler).
See Petaurus.
Petauroides, n. a genus closely allied to
Petaurus (q.v.), containing only one species, the
Taguan Flying-Phalanger.
Petaurus, n. the scientific name given by Shaw
in 1793 to the Australian genus of Petaurists (q.v.), or
so-called Flying-Squirrels (q.v.), or
Flying-Phalangers (q.v.), or Flying-Opossums.
The name was invented by zoologists out of Petaurist. In
Greek, petauron was the perch or platform from which a
"rope-dancer" stepped on to his rope. `L. & S.' say probably
from pedauros, Aeolic for meteowros, high in air.
Pething-pole, n. a harpoon-like weapon used for
pething (pithing) cattle; that is, killing them by piercing the
spinal cord (pith, or provincial peth).
1886. P. Clarke, `New Chum in Australia,' p. 184 (`Century'):
"So up jumps Tom on the bar overhead with a long pething-pole,
like an abnormally long and heavy alpenstock, in his hand; he
selects the beast to be killed, stands over it in breathless .
. . silence, adjusts his point over the centre of the vertebra,
and with one plunge sends the cruel point with unerring aim
into the spinal cord."
Petrogale, n. the scientific name for a
Rock-Wallaby (q.v.). The name was given by J. E. Gray,
in the `Magazine of Natural History' (vol. i. p. 583), 1837.
(Grk. petra, rock, and galae, a weasel.)
Pezoporus, n. scientific name of a genus of
Parrakeets peculiar to Australia, of which one species only is
known, P. formosus, the Ground Parrakeet, or Swamp
Parrakeet. From Grk. pezoporos, "going on foot."
It differs from all the other psittaci in having a long
hind toe like that of a lark, and is purely terrestrial in its
habits.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. i. pl. 46:
"Pezoporus Formosus, Ill., Ground-parrakeet;
Swamp-parrakeet, Colonists of Van Diemen's Land;
Ground-parrakeet, New South Wales and Western Australia."
Phalanger, n. the scientific name for the
animal called an Opossum (q.v.) in Australia, and
including also the Flying-squirrel (q.v.), and other
Marsupials. See also Flying-Phalanger. The word is
sometimes used instead of Opossum, where precise
accuracy is desired, but its popular use in Australia is rare.
The Phalangers are chiefly Australian, but range as far as the
Celebes. The word is from the Greek phalanx, one
meaning of which is the bone between the joints of the fingers
or toes. (The toes are more or less highly webbed in the
Phalanger.)
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' p. 249:
"The cry of the night-bird, the rustle of the phalangers and
the smaller marsupials, as they glided through the wiry frozen
grass or climbed the clear stems of the eucalypti."
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"A pair of the Short-headed Phalanger (Belideus
breviceps) occupy the next division."
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 75:
"The second great family of the herbivorous Diprotodont
Marsupials is typically represented by the creatures properly
known as phalangers, which the colonists of Australia persist
in misnaming opossums. It includes however several other
forms, such as the Flying-Phalangers [q.v.] and the Koala
[q.v.]."
Phascolarctus, n. the scientific name of the
genus of the Koala (q.v.) or Native Bear, of
which there is only one species, P. cinereus. It is,
of course, marsupial.(Grk. phaskowlos, a leather apron,
and 'arktos, a bear.) See Bear.
Phascologale, n. contracted often to
Phascogale: the scientific name for the genus of little
marsupials known as the Kangaroo-Mouse or
Pouched-Mouse (q.v.). (Grk. phaskowlos, a leather
apron, and galae, a weasel.) "The pretty little animals
belonging to the genus thus designated, range over the whole of
Australia and New Guinea, together with the adjacent islands
and are completely arboreal and insectivorous in their habits.
The [popular] name of Pouched-Mouse is far from being
free from objection, yet, since the scientific names of neither
this genus nor the genus Sminthopsis lend themselves
readily for conversion into English, we are compelled to use
the colonial designation as the vernacular names of both
genera. . . . The largest of the thirteen known species does
not exceed a Common Rat in size, while the majority are
considerably smaller." (R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 166.)
1853. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 324:
"The phascogales are small insectivorous animals found on the
mountains and in the dense forest-parts of the island, and
little is known of their habits."
Phascolome, and Phascolomys, n. The
first is the anglicised form of the second, which is the
scientific name of the genus called by the aboriginal name of
Wombat (q.v.) (Grk. phaskowlos = leathern bag,
and mus = mouse.)
Phasmid, n. the name for the insects of
the genus Phasma (Grk. phasma = an appearance),
of the family Phasmidae, curious insects not confined
to Australia, but very common there. The various species
are known as Leaf-insects, Walking leaves,
Stick-caterpillars, Walking-sticks,
Spectres, etc., from the extraordinary illusion with
which they counterfeit the appearance of the twigs, branches,
or leaves of the vegetation on which they settle. Some have
legs only, which they can hold crooked in the air to imitate
twigs; others have wings like delicate leaves, or they are
brilliant green and covered with thorns. They imitate not only
the colour and form of the plant, but its action or motion when
swayed slightly by the wind.
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 209:
"A span-long Phasmid then he knew,
Stretching its fore-limbs like a branching twig."
Pheasant, n. This common English bird-name
is applied in Australia to two birds, viz.--
(1) The Lyre-bird (q.v.).
(2) The Lowan (q.v.), and see Turkey.
For Pheasant-fantail, see Fantail.
1877 (before). Australie, `From the Clyde to Braidwood,'
quoted in `Australian Ballads and Rhymes' (edition Sladen,
p. 10):
". . . Echoing notes
Of lyre-tailed pheasants, in their own rich notes,
Mocking the song of every forest-bird."
1885. Wanderer, `Beauteous Terrorist, etc., p. 60:
"And have we no visions pleasant
Of the playful lyre-tail'd pheasant?"
Pheasant-Cuckoo, n. another name for the
Coucal (q.v.), Centropus phasianellus, Gould.
See also Swamp-Pheasant.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i.
c. vi. p. 125:
"I shot over the island and enjoyed some very fair sport,
especially with the pheasant-cuckoo."
Pheasant's Mother, n. an old name of an
Australian bird. See Orthonyx.
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 180:
"That remarkable little bird, the `Pheasant's Mother' of the
colonists, or Spine-tailed Orthonyx (Orthonyx
spinicauda), about which also ornithologists have some
difference of opinion respecting its situation in the natural
system:'
Philander, n. an old scientific name, now
abandoned, for certain species of the Kangaroo family. The
word was taken from the name of the explorer, Philander de
Bruyn. See quotation.
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 36:
"Aru Island Wallaby. Macropus brunnii, Cuvier (1817).
Didelphys brunnii, Schreber (1778). . . Distribution.--
Aru and Kei Islands. This species has an especial interest
as being the first member of the Kangaroo-family known to
Europeans, specimens having been seen in the year 1711 by
[Philander de] Bruyn living in the gardens of the Dutch
Governor of Batavia. They were originally described
under the name of Philander or Filander."
Phormium, n. scientific name of the genus to
which New Zealand Flax (P. tenax) belongs. See
Flax. (Grk. phormion, dim. of phormos,
anything plaited of reeds or rushes.)
Pialler, v. used as pigeon-English, especially in
Queensland and New South Wales, in the sense of yabber,
to speak.
1834. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar,' p. 10:
[As a barbarism] "piyaller, to speak."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Head Station,' p. 314:
"Hester seized the shrinking black and led him forward, wildly
crying that she would `pialla' the Great Spirit, so that no
evil should befall him."
Piccaninny, and Pickaninny, n. a
little child. The word is certainly not Australian. It comes
from the West Indies (Cuban piquinini, little, which is
from the Spanish pequeno, small, and nino,
child). The English who came to Australia, having heard the
word applied to negro children elsewhere, applied it to the
children of the aborigines. After a while English people
thought the word was aboriginal Australian, while the
aborigines thought it was correct English. It is
pigeon-English.
1696. D'Urfey's `Don Quixote,' pt. iii. c. v. p. 41
(Stanford):
"Dear pinkaninny [sic],
If half a guiny
To Love wilt win ye."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 12:
"`I tumble down pickaninny here,' he said, meaning that he was
born there."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 103:
"Two women, one with a piccaninny at her back."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 520:
"Bilge introduced several old warriors . . . adding always the
number of piccaninies that each of them had."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 305:
"We can even trace words which the Europeans have imported from
the natives of other countries--for example picaninny,
a child. This word is said to have come originally from the
negroes of Africa, through white immigrants. In America the
children of negroes are called picaninny. When the white men
came to Australia, they applied this name to the children of
the natives of this continent."
Piccaninny, used as adj. and figuratively,
to mean little.
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 104:
"The hut would be attacked before `piccaninny sun.'"
[Footnote]: "About daylight in the morning."
1884. J. W. Bull, `Early Life in South Australia,' p. 69:
[An Englishman, speaking to blacks] "would produce from his
pocket one of his pistols, and say, `Picaninny gun, plenty
more.'"
Pick-it-up, n. a boys' name for the Diamond
bird (q.v.).
1896. G. A. Keartland, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' part ii. Zoology, Aves, p. 69:
"Pardalotus ornatus and Pardalotus affinis give
forth a treble note which has secured for them the name of
`Pick-it-up' from our country boys."
Picnic, n. Besides the ordinary meaning of
this word, there is a slang Australian use denoting an awkward
adventure, an unpleasant experience, a troublesome job. In
America the slang use is "an easy or agreeable thing."
(`Standard.') The Australasian use is an ironical inversion of
this.
1896. Modern:
"If a man's horse is awkward and gives him trouble, he will
say, `I had a picnic with that horse,' and so of any
misadventure or disagreeable experience in travelling. So also
of a troublesome business or other affair; a nursemaid, for
instance, will say, `I had a nice picnic with Miss Nora's
hair.'"
Picton Herring, n. a name for several fishes
when dried (like "kipper"), especially for the
Sea-Mullet, or Makawhiti or Aua (q.v.)
(Maori names); and for the New South Wales fish called
Maray (q.v.).
Pieman Jolly-tail, n. See Jolly-tail.
Pig-Dog, n. a dog used in hunting wild pigs.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. ii.
p. 6:
"The pig-dogs are of rather a mongrel breed, partaking largely
of the bull-dog, but mixed with the cross of mastiff and
greyhound, which forms the New South Wales kangaroo-dog" [q.v.]
1877. R. Gillies, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. x. art. xliii. p. 321:
"A pig-dog of the bull-terrier breed."
Pigeon, n. The Australian species are--
Bronze-wing Pigeon (q.v.)--
Phaps chalcoptera, Lath.
Brush Bronze-wing P.--
P. elegans, Temm.
Crested P.--
Ocyphaps lophotes, Temm.
Flock or Harlequin Bronze-wing (called also Squatter,
q.v.)--
Phaps histrionica, Gould.
Little-Green P.--
Chalcophaps chrysochlora, Wagl.
Naked-eye Partridge-P.--
Geophaps smithii, Jard. and Selb.
Nutmeg P.--
Carpophaga spilorrhoa, G. R. Gray.
Partridge-P.--
Geophaps scripta, Temm.
Pheasant-tailed P.--
Macropygia phasianella, Temm.
Plumed P.--
Lophophaps plumifera, Gould.
Red-plumed Pigeon--
Lophophaps ferruginea, Gould.
[He gives vernacular "Rust-coloured."]
Rock P.--
Petrophassa albipennis, Gould.
Top-knot P.--
Lopholaimus antarcticus, Shaw.
White-bellied Plumed P.--
Lophophaps leucogaster, Gould.
Wonga-wonga P. (q.v.)--
Leucosarcia picata, Lath.
See also Fruit-Pigeon, Harlequin Pigeon,
Partridge-Pigeon, Torres Straits Pigeon.
For New Zealand Pigeon, see Kuku.
Pigeon-berry Tree, n. i.q. Native
Mulberry. See Mulberry.
Pig-face, Pig-faces, and Pig's-face,
or Pig's-faces. Names given to an indigenous
"iceplant," Mesembryanthemum aequilaterale, Haw.,
N.O. Ficoideae, deriving its generic name from
the habit of expanding its flower about noon.
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 133:
"Mesembryanthemum aequilaterale, pig faces; called by
the aborigines by the more elegant name of canagong. The pulp
of the almost shapeless, but somewhat ob-conical, fleshy seed
vessel of this plant, is sweetish and saline; it is about an
inch and a half long, of a yellowish, reddish, or green
colour."
1844. Mrs. Meredith, `Notes and Sketches of New South Wales,'
p. 45:
"Great green mat-like plants of the pretty Mesembryanthemum
aequilaterale, or fig-marigold, adorned the hot sandy banks
by the road-side. It bears a bright purple flower, and a
five-sided fruit, called by the children `pig-faces.'"
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 132:
"The pig's face is an extremely common production of the
Australian soil, growing like a thick and fleshy grass, with
its three-sided leaf and star-shaped pink or purple flower,
occupying usually a rocky or dry light soil."
1879. C. W. Schuermann, in `The Native Tribes of South
Australia,' p. 217:
"Though this country is almost entirely destitute of indigenous
fruits of any value to an European, yet there are various kinds
which form very valuable and extensive articles of food for the
aborigines; the most abundant and important of these is the
fruit of a species of cactus, very elegantly styled pig's-faces
by the white people, but by the natives called karkalla. The
size of the fruit is rather less than that of a walnut, and it
has a thick skin of a pale reddish colour, by compressing
which, the glutinous sweet substance inside slips into the
mouth."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 44:
"Pig-faces. It was the canajong of the Tasmanian
aboriginal. The fleshy fruit is eaten raw by the aborigines:
the leaves are eaten baked."
Pig-faced Lady, n. an old name in Tasmania for
the Boar-fish (q.v.).
Pig-fish, n. name given to the fish Agriopus
leucopaecilus, Richards., in Dunedin; called also the
Leather-jacket (q.v.). In Sydney it is Cossyphus
unimaculatus, Gunth., a Wrasse, closely related to the
Blue-groper. In Victoria, Heterodontus phillipi,
Lacep., the Port Jackson Shark. See Shark.
Pig-footed Bandicoot, n. name given to
Choeropus castanotis, Gray, an animal about the size
of a rabbit, belonging to the family Peramelidae,
which includes all the bandicoots. It lives in the sandy,
dry interior of the continent, making a small nest for itself
on the surface of the ground out of grass and twigs.
The popular name is derived from the fact that in the fore-feet
the second and third toes are alone well developed, the first
and fifth being absent, and the fourth very rudimentary,
so that the foot has a striking resemblance to that of a pig.
See also Bandicoot.
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Expeditions into Eastern Australia,'
p. 131:
"The feet, and especially the fore feet, were singularly
formed, the latter resembling those of a hog."
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' p. 68:
"Another peculiar form, the Choeropus, or pig-footed
bandicoot."
Pigmeater, n. a beast only fit for pigs to eat:
one that will not fatten.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xiv. p. 105:
"Among them was a large proportion of bullocks, which declined
with fiendish obstinacy to fatten. They were what are known by
the stock-riders as `ragers' [q.v.] or `pig-meaters.'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 218:
"`Pig-meaters!' exclaimed Ernest; `what kind of cattle do
you call those? Do bullocks eat pigs in this country?' `No,
but pigs eat them, and horses too, and a very good way of
getting rid of rubbish.'"
Piharau, n. Maori name for Geotria
chilensis, Gray, a New Zealand Lamprey (q.v.).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol.
ii. p. 15:
"We procured an abundant supply of piarau, a `lamprey,' which
is taken in large numbers in this river, and some others in the
neighbourhood, when the waters are swollen."
Pihoihoi, n. Maori name for a New Zealand
bird, the Ground-lark (q.v.). The word has five syllables.
Pike, n. name applied in Australia and Tasmania
to two species of marine fish--Sphyraena obtusata,
Cuv. and Val.; S. novae-hollandiae; Gunth. See also
Sea-pike.
Pilchard, n. The fish which visits the
Australian shores periodically, in shoals larger than the
Cornish shoals, is Clupea sagax, Jenyns, the same
as the Californian Pilchard, and closely related to the
English Pilchard, which is Clupea pilchardus.
Pilgrims, Canterbury, n. The first settlers
in Canterbury, New Zealand, were so called in allusion to the
pilgrims to the shrine of St. Thomas Becket. Chaucer's
`Canterbury Tales' were told by such pilgrims. The name was
given probably by Mr. William Lyon, who in 1851 wrote the
`Dream.' See quotation, 1877.
1865. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 20:
"The `Pilgrims,' as the first comers are always called.
I like the name; it is so pretty and suggestive."
1877. W. Pratt, `Colonial Experiences or Incidents of
Thirty-four Years in New Zealand,' p. 234:
"In the `Dream of a Shagroon,' which bore the date Ko Matinau,
April 1851, and which first appeared in the `Wellington
Spectator' of May 7, the term `Pilgrim' was first applied to
the settlers; it was also predicted in it that the `Pilgrims'
would be `smashed,' and the Shagroons left in undisputed
possession of the country for their flocks and herds."
Pilot-bird, n. This name is given to
a sea-bird of the Caribbean Islands. In Australia it
is applied to Pycnoptilus floccosus, Gould.
1893. `The Argus,' March 25, p. 4, col. 6:
"Here, close together, are eggs of the lyre-bird and the
pilot-bird--the last very rare, and only found quite lately in
the Dandenong Ranges, where the lyre-bird, too, has its home."
Pimelea, n. scientific name for a large genus
of shrubs or herbs, N.O. Thymeleaceae. There are over
seventy species, all confined to Australia and New Zealand.
They bear terminal or axillary clusters of white, rose, or
yellow flowers, and being very beautiful plants, are frequently
cultivated in conservatories. A gardener's name for some of
the species is Rice-flower. Several of the species,
especially P. axiflora, F. v. M., yield excellent fibre,
and are among the plants called Kurrajong (q.v.);
another name is Toughbark. For etymology, see
quotation, 1793.
1793. J. E. Smith, `Specimen of Botany of New Holland,'
p. 32:
"Gaertner . . . adopted the name of Pimelea from
the manuscripts of Dr. Solander. It is derived from
pimelae, fat, but is rather a pleasantly sounding
than a very apt denomination, unless there may be anything
oily in the recent fruit."
Pimlico, n. another name for the
Friar-bird (q.v.).
Pin-bush, n. i.q. Needle-bush (q.v.)
Pinch-out, v. to thin out and disappear (of
gold-bearing). This use is given in the `Standard,' but
without quotations; it may be American.
18W. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 22:
"Sometimes 100 to 200 tons of payable quartz would be raised
from one of these so-called reefs, when they would pinch out,
and it would be found that they were unconnected with other
leaders or veins."
Pine, n. The Pines are widely distributed
in Australasia, and include some of the noblest species.
The name, with various epithets, is given to a few other
trees besides those of the Natural Order Coniferae,;
the following is a list of the various Pines
in Australasia. They belong to the Natural Order Coniferae,,
unless otherwise indicated--
Black Pine--
Frenela endlicheri, Parlat.
Irenela robusta,A. Cunn.
(Of Otago)--
Podocarpus ferruginea,Don.; Maori name, Miro
(q.v.).;
P. spicata, R. Br.; Maori name, Mai, or
Matai (q.v.).
Celery-topped P. (q.v.)--
(In Australia)--
Phyllocladus rhomboidalis, Rich.
(In New Zealand)--
P. trichomanoides, Don.; Maori name, Tanekaha
(q.v.);
P. glauca, and
P. alpinus; Maori name, Toatoa, and often also
called Tanekaha.
Colonial P.--
Araucaria cunninghamii, Ait.
Common P.--
Frenela robusta, A. Cunn.
Cypress P.--
Frenela endlicheri, Parlat.
F. rhomboidea, Endl.
F. robusta (var. microcarpa), A. Cunn.
F. robusta (var. verrucosa), A. Cunn.
Dark P.--
(In Western New South Wales)--
Frenela robusta, A. Cunn.
Dundathu P.--
Dammara robusta, F. v. M.
Hoop P.--
Araucaria cunninghamii, Ait.
Huon P. (q.v.)--
Dacrydium franklinii, Hook.
Illawarra Mountain P.--
Frenela rhomboidea, Endl.
Kauri P. (q.v.)
Agathis australis, Salis.
Lachlan P.--
Frenela robusta, A. Cunn.
Light P.--
(Of Western New South Wales)--
Frenela rhomboidea, Endl.
Macquarie P.--
Dacrydium franklinii, Hook.
Mahogany Pine--
Podocarpus totara, A. Cunn.; Maori name, Totara,
(q.v.).
Moreton Bay P.--
Araucaria cunninghamii, Ait.
Mountain Cypress P.--
Frenela parlatorii, F. v. M.
Murray P.--
Frenela endlicheri, Parlat.
Murrumbidgee P.--
Frenela robusta, A. Cunn.
New Caledonian P.--
(Of New Caledonia and the New Hebrides)--
Araucaria cookii, Cook.
Norfolk Island P.--
Araucaria excelsa, Hook.
Oyster Bay P. (q.v.)--
(In Tasmania)--
Frenela rhomboidea, Endl.
Port Macquarie P.--
Frenela macleayana, Parlat.
Prickly P.--
(In Queensland)--
Flindersia maculosa, F. v. M., N.O. Meliaceae;
called also Leopard Tree (q.v.).
Queensland Kauri P.--
Dammara robusta, F. v. M.
Red P.--
(In Australia)--
Frenela endlicheri, Parlat.
(In New Zealand)--
Dacrydium cupressinum, Soland; called also Rimu
(q.v.).
Rock P.--
(In Western New South Wales)--
Frenela robusta (var. verrucosa), A. Cunn.
Screw P.--
Pandanus odoratissimus, Linn., N.O. Pandaneae;
not endemic in Australia.
Scrub P.--
Frenela endlicheri, Parlat.
She P.--
(In Queensland)--
Podocarpus elata, R. Br.
Silver P.--
Dacrydium colensoi, Hook.; i.q. Yellow Pine.
Stringy Bark P.--
Frenela parlatorei, F. v. M.
Toatoa P.--
Phyllocladus alpinus, Hook.; Maori name, Toatoa
(q.v.).
White P.--
(In Australia)--
Frenela robusta, A. Cunn.
F. robusta (var. microcarpa), A. Cunn.
Podocarpus elata, R. Br.
(In New Zealand)--
P. dacryoides, A. Rich.; Maori name, Kahikatea
(q.v.).
Yellow P.--
Dacrydium colensoi, Hook.; Maori name, Manoao
(q.v.).
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' p. 180:
"The Green Forest . . . comprises myrtle, sassafras,
celery-top pine, with a little stringy-bark."
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol- i. p. 51.
"On the little hill beside the river hung pines (Callitris
pyramidalis) in great abundance."
Piner, n. In Tasmania, a man employed in
cutting Huon Pine.
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 43:
"The King River is only navigable for small craft . . . Piners'
boats sometimes get in."
Pinkwood, n. a name for a Tasmanian wood of a
pale reddish mahogany colour, Eucryphia billardieri,
Sparrm., N.O. Saxifrageae,, and peculiar to Tasmania;
also called Leatherwood; and for the Wallaby-
bush, Beyera viscosa, Miq., N.O.
Euphorbiaceae, common to all the colonies of Australasia.
Piopio, n. Maori name for a thrush of New
Zealand, Turnagra crassirostris, Gmel. See
Thrush.
Pipe, n. an obsolete word, explained in
quotations.
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 105:
"These were the days of `pipes.' Certain supposed home
truths . . . were indited in clear and legible letters on a
piece of paper which was then rolled up in the form of a pipe,
and being held together by twisting at one end was found at the
door of the person intended to be instructed on its first
opening in the morning."
1852. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 107:
"Malice or humour in the early days expressed itself in what
were called pipes--a ditty either taught by repetition
or circulated on scraps of paper: the offences of official men
were thus hitched into rhyme. These pipes were a substitute
for the newspaper, and the fear of satire checked the
haughtiness of power."
Pipe-fish, n. common fishname. The species
present in Australia and New Zealand is Ichthyocampus
filum, Gunth., family Syngnathidae, or
Pipe-fishes.
Piper, n. an Auckland name for the
Garfish (q.v.). The name is applied to other
fishes in the Northern Hemisphere.
1872. Hutton and Hector, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 118:
"Angling for garfish in Auckland Harbour, where it is known as
the piper, is graphically described in `The Field,' London,
Nov. 25, 1871.
. . . the pipers are `just awfu' cannibals,' and you will be
often informed on Auckland wharf that `pipers is deeth on piper.'"
Pipi, n. Maori name of a shellfish, sometimes
(erroneously) called the cockle, Mezodesma
novae-zelandiae.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 193:
"Pipi, s. a cockle."
1881. J. L.Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 107:
"With most deliciously cooked kumeras, potatoes and peppies"
[sic].
Ibid. p. 204:
"The dernier ressort--fern-root,
flavoured with fish and pippies."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p.25:
"Each female is busily employed in scraping the potatoes
thoroughly with pipi-shells."
Piping-Crow, n. name applied sometimes
to the Magpie (q.v.).
1845. `Voyage to Port Phillip,' etc., p. 53:
"The warbling melops and the piping crow,
The merry forest fill with joyous song."
Pipit, n. another name for Ground-Lark
(q.v.).
Pitau, n. Maori name for the Tree-fern.
In Maori, the word means--(1) Soft, tender, young shoots. The
verb pihi means "begin to grow"; pi means "young
of birds," also "the flow of the tide." (2) Centre-fronds of a
fern. (3) Name of a large fern.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. i.
p. 57:
"The pitau, or tree-ferns, growing like a palm-tree,
form a distinguishing ornament of the New Zealand forest."
Pitchi, n. name given to a wooden receptacle
hollowed out of a solid block of some tree, such as the
Batswing Coral (Erythrina vespertio), or
Mulga (Acacia aneura), and carried by native
women in various parts of Australia for the purpose of
collecting food in, such as grass seed or bulbs, and sometimes
for carrying infants. The shape and size varies much, and the
more concave ones are used for carrying water in. The origin
of the word is obscure; some think it aboriginal, others think
it a corruption of the English word pitcher.
1896. E. C. Stirling, `Home Expedition in Central Australia,
Anthropology, pt. iv. p. 99:
"I do not know the origin of the name `Pitchi,' which is in
general use by the whites of the parts traversed by the
expedition, for the wooden vessels used for carrying food and
water and, occasionally, infants."
Pitta, n. The name is Telugu for the
Indian Ant-thrush; a few species are confined to Australia;
they are--
Blue-breasted Pitta--
Pitta macklotii, Mull. and Schleg.
Noisy P.--
P. strepitans, Temm.
Rainbow P.--
P. iris, Gould.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 1:
"Pitta strepitans, Temm., Noisy Pitta.
There are also Rainbow Pitta, Pitta iris,
and Vigor's Pitta, P. Macklotii.
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia' (Supplement):
"Pitta Macklotii, Mull. and Schleg."
Pittosporum, n. a genus of plants
so called from the viscous pulp which envelops the seeds.
(Grk. pitta, pitch, and sporos, seed.)
There are about fifty species, which are found in Africa and Asia,
but chiefly in Australasia. They are handsome evergreen shrubs,
and some grow to a great height; the white flowers, being very
fragrant, have been sometimes likened to orangeblossoms, and
the rich evergreen leaves obtain for some of them the name of
Laurels. They are widely cultivated in the suburbs of cities
as ornamental hedges. See Mock-Orange,
Hedge-Laurel, Native Laurel, etc.
Pituri, or Pitchery, n. Native name
for Duboisia hopwoodii, F. v. M., a shrub growing in the
sand-hills of certain districts of Queensland, New South Wales,
and Central Australia. The leaves are chewed as a narcotic by
the natives of many parts, and form a valuable commodity of
barter. In some parts of Central Australia the leaf is not
chewed, but is only used for the purpose of making a decoction
which has the power of stupefying emus, which under its
influence are easily captured by the natives. Other spellings
are Pitchiri, Pedgery, and Bedgery.
Perhaps from betcheri, another form of
boodjerrie, good, expressing the excellent qualities
of the plant. Compare Budgerigar.
1863. `Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van Diemen's
Land,' April, p. 1:
"`Pitcherry,' a narcotic plant brought by King, the explorer,
from the interior of Australia, where it is used by the natives
to produce intoxication. . . . In appearance it resembled the
stem and leaves of a small plant partly rubbed into a coarse
powder. . . . On one occasion Mr. King swallowed a small pinch
of the powder, and described its effects as being almost
identical with those produced by a large quantity of spirits."
1883. F. M. Bailey,' Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 350:
"Pitury of the natives. The leaves are used by the natives of
Central Australia to poison emus, and is chewed by the natives
as the white man does the tobacco."
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i.
p. 101:
"In one part of Central Australia the leaves and twigs of a
shrub called pidgery by the natives are dried and preserved in
closely woven bags. . . . A small quantity has an exhilarating
effect, and pidgery was highly prized."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 49:
"The leaves contain a stimulant, which possesses qualities
similar to those of tobacco and opium, and are chewed by
several tribes in the interior of Australia. Pituri is highly
valued as a stimulant, and is taken for barter far and wide."
1890. A. S. Vogan, `Black Police,' p. 94:
"One of the virtues that the native drug Pitchurie is supposed
to possess when used by the old men is the opening up of this
past life, giving them the power and perquisites of seers."
1893. Mr. Purcell, `Lecture before Geographical Society,
Sydney,' Jan.:
"Mr. Purcell had travelled over nearly the whole of Queensland,
and had only seen the plant growing in a very limited area west
of the Mullyan River, 138th meridian of east long., and on the
ranges between the 23rd and 24th parallel of south latitude.
He had often questioned the Darling blacks about it, and they
always replied by pointing towards the north west. The blacks
never, if they could possibly help it, allowed white men to see
the plant. He himself had not been allowed to see it until he
had been initiated into some of the peculiar rites of the
aborigines. Mr. Purcell showed what he called the pitchery
letter, which consisted of a piece of wood covered with
cabalistic marks. This letter was given to a pitchery
ambassador, and was to signify that he was going to the
pitchery country, and must bring back the amount of pitchery
indicated on the stick. The talisman was a sure passport, and
wherever he went no man molested the bearer. This pitchery was
by no means plentiful. It grew in small clumps on the top of
sandy ridges, and would not grow on the richer soil beneath.
This convinced him that it never grew in any other country than
Australia. The plant was cooked by being placed in an
excavation in which a fire had been burning. It then became
light and ready for transport. As to its use in the form of
snuff, it was an excellent remedy for headaches, and chewed it
stopped all craving for food. It had been used with success in
violent cases of neuralgia, and in asthma also it had proved
very successful. With regard to its sustaining properties,
Mr. Purcell mentioned the case of a blackboy who had travelled
120 miles in two days, with no other sustenance than a chew of
pitchery."
Pivot City, The, a nickname for Geelong.
1860. W. Kelly, `Life in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 160
[Footnote]:
"The Pivot City is a sobriquet invented by the citizens to
symbolize it as the point on which the fortunes of the colony
would culminate and revolve. They also invented several other
original terms--a phraseology christened by the Melbourne press
as the Geelongese dialect."
Piwakawaka, n. Maori name for the Pied
Fantail (Rhipidura flabellifera, Gray).
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 57:
"Piwakawaka, or tirakaraka. This restless little bird is
continually on the wing, or hopping from twig to twig."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 403:
"Piwakawaka, tirakaraka, the fantailed fly-catcher, a pretty,
restless, lively bird; very sociable, and fond of displaying
its beautiful little fan-tail. It has a head like the
bullfinch, with one black-and-white streak under the neck
coming to a point in the centre of the throat. Wings very
sharp and pointed. It is very quick and expert in catching
flies, and is a great favourite, as it usually follows the
steps of man. It was sacred to Maui."
1885. A. Reischek, `Transactions of the New Zealand
Institute,' vol. xviii. art. xviii. p. 102:
"Rhipidura--fantail (Piwakawaka). Every one admires the two
species of these fly-catchers, and their graceful evolutions
in catching their prey."
1890. C. Colenso, `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute:
Bush Notes,' vol. xxiii. art. lvii. p. 482:
"During this extended visit of mine to the woods, I have
noticed the piwakawaka, or fly-catcher (Rhipidura
flabellifera). This interesting little flycatcher, with
its monotonous short cry, always seems to prefer making the
acquaintance of man in the forest solitudes."
1895. W. S.Roberts, `Southland in 1856,' p. 53:
"The pied fantail, Piwakawaka (Rhipidura flabellifera) is the
best flycatcher New Zealand possesses, but it will not live in
confinement. It is always flitting about with broadly expanded
tail in pursuit of flies. It frequently enters a house and
soon clears a room of flies, but if shut in all night it frets
itself to death before morning."
Plain, n. In Australian use, the word not only
implies flatness, but treelessness.
1824. Edward Curr, `Account of the Colony of Van Diemen's
Land,' p. 55:
"The district called Macquarie Plains, the greater part of
which rises into hills of moderate height, with open and
fertile valleys interspersed, while the plains bear a strong
resemblance to what are called sheep downs in England."
1848. T. L. Mitchell, `Tropical Australia,' p. 136:
"The country was grassy, and so open as almost to deserve the
colonial name of `plain.'"
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 250:
"Squatters who look after their own runs always live in the
bush, even though their sheep are pastured on plains."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 73:
"One day an egg of a cassowary was brought to me; this bird,
although it is nearly akin to the ostrich and emu, does not,
like the latter, frequent the open plains, but the thick
brushwood. The Australian cassowary is found in Northern
Queensland from Herbert river northwards, in all the large
vine-scrubs on the banks of the rivers, and on the high
mountains of the coasts."
Plain Currant, n. a wild fruit, Grewia
polygama, Roxb., N.O. Tiliaceae.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 295:
"I found a great quantity of ripe Grewia seeds, and on eating
many of them, it struck me that their slightly acidulous taste,
if imparted to water, would make a very good drink; I therefore
. . . boiled them for about an hour; the beverage . . . was
the best we had tasted on our expedition."
Plain Wanderer, n. an Australian bird,
Pedionomus torquatus, Gould.
Plant, v. tr. and n. common in Australia
for to hide, and for the thing hidden away. As remarked
in the quotations, the word is thieves' English.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. ii. p. 59:
"A number of the slang phrases current in St. Giles's
Greek bid fair to become legitimatized in the dictionary
of this colony: plant, swag, pulling up, and
other epithets of the Tom and Jerry school, are established--
the dross passing here as genuine, even among all ranks."
1848. Letter by Mrs. Perry, given in `Canon Goodman's Church
in Victoria during the Episcopate of Bishop Perry,' p. 78:
". . . Shady Creek, where he `planted' some tea and sugar for
his brother on his return. Do you know what `planting' is? It
is hiding the tea, or whatever it may be, in the hollow of a
tree, or branch, or stone, where no one is likely to find it,
but the one for whom it is meant."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 22:
"Some refreshments planted there for us by the Major--for that
is the colonial phrase, borrowed from the slang of London
burglars and thieves, for any article sent forward or left
behind for consumption in spots only indicated to those
concerned--after the manner of the ca^ches of the French
Canadian trappers on the American prairies. To `spring' a
plant is to discover and pillage it."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 36:
"The way he could hide, or, as it is called in the bush,
`plant' himself, was something wonderful."
1889. Cassell's' Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 178:
"The gold had not been handed over to the Commissioner at all,
but was planted somewhere in the tent."
1893. `The Age,' May 9, p. 5, col. 4:
"A panic-smitten lady plants her money."
[Title of short article giving an account of an old lady during
the bank panic concealing her money in the ground and being
unable to find it.]
Plantain, Native, an Australian fodder plant,
Plantago varia, R. Br., N.O. Plantagineae.
Plant-Caterpillar, n. name given in Australasia
to species of caterpillars which are attacked by spores of
certain fungi; when chrysalating in the earth the fungus grows
inside the body of the caterpillar, kills the latter, and then
forces its way out between the head joints, and sends an
upgrowth which projects beyond the surface of the ground and
gives rise to fresh spores. Many examples are known, of which
the more common are--Cordyceps robertsii, Hook., in New
Zealand; Cordyceps gunnii, Berk, in Tasmania;
Cordyceps taylori, Berk, in Australia. See
Aweto.
1892. M. C. Cooke, `Vegetable Wasps and Plant Worms,'
p. 139:
"The New Zealanders' name for this plant-caterpillar is
`Hotete,' `Aweto,' `Weri,' and `Anuhe.'. . The interior of the
insect becomes completely filled by the inner plant, orthallus
(mycelium): after which the growing head of the outer plant or
fungus, passing to a state of maturity, usually forces its way
out through the tissue of the joint between the head and the
first segment of the thorax . . . it is stated that this
caterpillar settles head upward to undergo its change, when the
vegetable developes /sic/ itself."
Planter, n. a cattle-thief, so called from
hiding the stolen cattle.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xxv. p. 352:
"What's a little money . . . if your children grow up
duffers [sc. cattle-duffers, q.v.] and planters?"
Platycercus, n. scientific name of a genus of
Parrakeets, represented by many species. The word is from the
shape of the tail. (Grk. platus, broad, and
kerkos, tail.) The genus is distributed from the Malay
Archipelago to the Islands of the Pacific. The name was first
given by Vigors and Horsfield in 1825.
See Parrakeet and Rosella.
Platypus, n. a remarkable Monotreme
(q.v.), in shape like a Mole, with a bill like a Duck.
Hence its other names of Duck-bill or Duck-Mole.
It has received various names--Platypus anatinus,
Duck-billed Platypus, Ornithorhynchus,
Ornithorhynchus paradoxus, Paradoxus,
Water-mole, etc. (Grk. platus = broad,
pous = foot, 'ornithos = of a bird,
runchos = beak or bill.) The name Platypus
is now the name by which it is always popularly known in
Australia, but see quotation from Lydekker below (1894).
From the British Museum Catalogue of Marsupials and Monotremes
(1888), it will be found that the name Platypus, given
by Shaw in 1799, had been preoccupied as applied to a beetle
by Herbst in 1793. It was therefore replaced, in scientific
nomenclature, by the name Ornithorhynchus, by Blumenbach
in 1800. In view of the various names, vernacular and
scientific, under which it is mentioned by different writers,
all quotations referring to it are placed under this word,
Platypus. The habits and description of the animal
appear in those quotations. From 1882 to 1891 the
Platypus figured on five of the postage stamps of
Tasmania.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. xi.
p. 425:
"This animal, which has obtained the name of Ornithorhynchus
paradoxus, is still very little known."
1802. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' vol. ii. p. 35:
[List of Engravings.]
"Ornithorhynchus paradoxus."
[At p. 63]:
"Ornithorhynchus (an amphibious animal of the mole
kind)."
1809. G. Shaw, `Zoological Lecturer,' vol. i. p. 78:
"This genus, which at present consists but of a single species
and its supposed varieties, is distinguished by the title of
Platypus or Ornithorhynchus. . . Its English
generic name of duckbill is that by which it is commonly
known."
1815. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 447:
"In the reaches or pools of the Campbell River, the very
curious animal called the paradox, or watermole, is seen in
great numbers."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,'
vol. i. p. 325:
"I cannot omit to mention likewise the Ornithorynchus,
that remarkable animal which forms a link between the bird and
beast, having a bill like a duck and paws webbed similar to
that bird, but legs and body like those of a quadruped,
covered with thick coarse hair, with a broad tail to steer by."
1836. C. Darwin, `Naturalist's Voyage,' c. xix. p. 321:
"Had the good fortune to see several of the Ornithorhynchus
paradoxus. . . . Certainly it is a most extraordinary
animal; a stuffed specimen does not at all give a good idea of
the appearance of the head and beak when fresh, the latter
becoming hard and contracted."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 131:
"The specimen which has excited the greatest astonishment is
the Ornithorynchus paradoxus, which, fitted by a series
of contrivances to live equally well in both elements, unites
in itself the habits and appearance of a bird, a quadruped,
and a reptile."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 42:
"Platypus, water-mole or duckbill."
1860. G.Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 96:
"The Ornithorhynchus is known to the colonists by
the nme of the watermole, from some resemblance which it
is supposed to bear to the common European mole (Talpa
Europoea, Linn.)"
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 95:
"When first a preserved skin was sent to England, it excited
great distrust, being considered a fraud upon the
naturalist. . . It was first described and figured by Shaw in
the year 1799, in the `Naturalist's Miscellany,' vol. x., by
the name of Platypus anatinus, or Duck-billed Platypus,
and it was noticed in Collins's `New South Wales' 2nd ed.
[should be vol. ii. not 2nd ed.], 4to. p. 62, 1802,
where it is named Ornithorhyncus paradoxus, Blum. . .
There is a rude figure given of this animal in Collins's work."
1884. Marcus Clarke, `Memorial Volume,' p. 177:
"The Platypus Club is in Camomile Street, and the Platypi are
very haughty persons."
1890. `Victorian Statutes--the Game Act' (Third Schedule):
[Close Season.] "Platypus. The whole year."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 30:
"In the Dee river . . . I observed several times the remarkable
platypus (Ornithorhynchus anatinus) swimming rapidly
about after the small water-insects and vegetable particles
which constitute its food. It shows only a part of its back
above water, and is so quick in its movements that it
frequently dives under water before the shot can reach it."
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"In the next division the platypus and its burrows are shown.
These curious oviparous animals commence their long burrows
under water, and work upwards into dry ground. The nest is
constructed in a little chamber made of dry leaves and grass,
and is very warm and comfortable; there is a second entrance on
dry ground. The young are found in the months of September and
October, but occasionally either a little earlier or later;
generally two or three at a time."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 273:
"The platypus is covered with fur like an otter, and has four
webbed feet, like those of a duck, and a black duck-like bill.
It makes a burrow in a river bank, but with an opening below
the level of the water. It swims and dives in quiet shady
river-bends, and disappears on hearing the least noise."
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 233:
"The duck-bill was originally described under the name of
Platypus anatinus, which was Anglicised into duck-billed
platypus, but since the generic name [Platypus] had been
previously employed for another group of animals, it had,
by the rules of zoological nomenclature, to give place to the
later Ornithorhynchus, although Shaw's specific name
ofanatina still holds good. On these grounds it is
likewise preferable to discard the Anglicised term Duck-billed
Platypus in favour of the simpler Duck-bill or Duck-Mole."
[Mr. Lydekker is a scientific Englishman, who has not lived
in Australia, and although the names of Duck-bill
and Duck-mole are perhaps preferable for more exact
scientific use, yet by long usage the name Platypus has become
the ordinary vernacular name, and is the one by which the
animal will always be known in Australian popular language.]
Plover, n. The bird called the Plover exists
all over the world. The species present in Australia are--
Black-breasted Plover--
Sarciophorus pectoralis, Cuv.
Golden P.--
Charadrius fulvus, Gmel.
Grey P.--
C. helveticus, Linn.
Long-billed Stone P.--
Esacus magnirostris, Geoff.
Masked P.--
Lobivanellus personatus, Gould.
Spur-winged P.--
Lobivanellus lobatus, Lath.
Stone P.--
OEdicnemus grallarius, Lath.
And in New Zealand--Red-breasted Plover, Charadrius
obscurus, Gmel. (Maori name, Tututuriwhata);
Crook-billed, Anarhynchus frontalis, Quoy and Gaim.
The authorities vary in the vernacular names and in the
scientific classification. See also Sand-Plover
and Wry-billed-Plover.
Plum, n. sometimes called Acacia Plum,
a timber tree, Eucryphia moorei, F. v. M.,
N.O. Saxifrageae; called also Acacia
and "White Sally."
Plum, Black, n. the fruit of the tree
Cargillia australis, R. Br., N.O. Ebenaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 14:
"The fruits are of the size of a large plum and of a dark
purple colour. They are eaten by the aboriginals."
Plum, Burdekin, or Sweet Plum, n.
a timber tree, Spondias pleiogyna, F. v. M.,
N.O. Anacardiaceae. Wood like American walnut.
Plum, Grey, n. (1) A timber-tree.
One of the names for Cargillia pentamera, F. v. M.,
N.O. Ebenaceae. Wood used for tool-handles.
(2) Provincial name for the Caper-Tree (q.v.).
Plum, Native, or Wild Plum, n.
another name for the Brush-Apple. See Apple.
The Native Plum, peculiar to Tasmania, and called also
Port-Arthur Plum, is Cenarrhenes nitida, Lab.,
N.O. Proteaceae.
Plum, Queensland, n. i.q. Sweet Plum
(q.v. infra).
Plum, Sour, n. another name for
Emu-Apple (q.v.).
Plum, Sweet, n. a wild fruit, Owenia
venosa, F. v. M., N.O. Meliaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 49:
"Queensland Plum, Sweet Plum. This plant bears a fine juicy
red fruit with a large stone. . . . It is both palatable and
refreshing."
Plum, White, n. local name for Acacia
(q.v.).
Plum, Wild, n. i.q. Native Plum (q.v.).
Plum-tree, n. the tree, Buchanania
mangoides, F. v. M., N.O. Anacardiaceae.
Podargus, n. scientific name of a genus of
Australian birds, called the Frogsmouth (q.v.) and
Mopoke. From Grk. podargos, swift or
white-footed. (Hector's horse in the `Iliad' was named
Podargus.--`Il.' viii. 185.)
1890. `Victorian Statutes-Game Act' (Third Schedule):
[Close Season.] "Podargus or Mopokes, the whole year."
Poddly, n. a New Zealand and Australian fish,
Sebastes percoides, Richards.; called in Victoria
Red-Gurnet Perch. The name is applied in England
to a different fish.
1872. Hutton and Hector, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 108:
"The pohuia-karou is the proper sea-perch of these waters,
that name having been applied by mistake to a small wrasse,
which is generally called the spotty or poddly."
Poddy, n. a Victorian name for the
Sand-Mullet. See Mullet.
Poe, n. same as Tui (q.v.)
and Parson-bird (q.v.). The name, which was
not the Maori name, did not endure.
17]7. Cook's' Voyage towards the South Pole and round the
World' [2nd Voyage], vol. i. pp. 97, 98:
"Amongst the small birds I must not omit to particularise the
wattlebird, poy-bird. . . . The poy-bird is less than the
wattle-bird; the feathers of a fine mazarine blue, except those
of its neck, which are of a most beautiful silver-grey. . . .
Under its throat hang two little tufts of curled snow-white
feathers, called its poies, which being the Otaheitean word for
ear-rings occasioned our giving that name to the bird, which is
not more remarkable for the beauty of its plumage than for the
sweetness of its note."
[In the illustration given it is spelt poe-bird,
and in the list of plates it is spelt poi.]
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. i. p. 111:
"This bird they called the Wattlebird, and also the Poy-bird,
from its having little tufts of curled hair under its throat,
which they called poies, from the Otaheitan word for ear-rings.
The sweetness of this bird's note they described as
extraordinary, and that its flesh was delicious, but that it
was a shame to kill it."
Pohutukawa, n. Maori name for a magnificent
New Zealand tree, Metrosideros tomentosa, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Myrtaceae, called Christmas-tree and Fire-tree by
the settlers. There is a Maori verb, pohutu, to splash.
Kawa (n.) is a sprig of any kind used in religious
ceremonies; the name would thus mean Splashed sprig.
The wood of the tree is very durable, and a concoction of the
inner bark is useful in dysentery.
1835. W. Yate, `Some Account of New Zealand,' p. 46:
"Pohutukawa (Callistemon ellipticus). This is a tree
of remarkably robust habits and diffuse irregular growth."
1855. G. Grey, `Polynesian Mythology,' p. 142:
"On arrival of Arawa canoe, the red flowers of the pohutakawa
were substituted for the red ornaments in the hair."
1862. `All the Year Round,' `From the Black Rocks on Friday,'
May 17, 1862, No. 160:
"In the clefts of the rocks were growing shrubs, with here and
there the larger growth of a pohutukawa, a large crooked-limbed
evergreen tree found in New Zealand, and bearing, about
Christmas, a most beautiful crimson bloom. The boat-builders
in New Zealand use the crooked limbs of this tree for the knees
and elbows of their boats."
1873. `Catalogue of Vienna Exhibition':
"Pohutukawa for knees, ribs, and bent-pieces, invaluable to
ship-builder. It surpasses English oak. Confined to Province
of Auckland."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 310:
"The pohutukawa-tree (Metrosideros tomentosa) requires
an exposed situation . . . is crooked, misshapen. . . .
The natives speak of it (the timber) as very durable."
1886. J. A. Fronde, `Oceana,' p. 308:
"Low down on the shore the graceful native Pokutukawa [sic] was
left undisturbed, the finest of the Rata tribe--at a distance
like an ilex, only larger than any ilex I ever saw, the
branches twisted into the most fantastic shapes, stretching out
till their weight bears them to the ground or to the water.
Pokutukawa, in Maori language, means `dipped in the sea-spray.'
In spring and summer it bears a brilliant crimson flower."
Pointers, n. two of the bullocks in a team.
See quotation.
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 36:
"Twelve bullocks is the usual number in a team, the two polers
and the leaders being steady old stagers; the pair next to the
pole are called the `pointers,' and are also required to be
pretty steady, the remainder being called the `body bullocks,'
and it is not necessary to be so particular about their being
thoroughly broken in."
Poison-berry Tree, n. Pittosporum
phillyroides, De C., N.O. Pittosporeae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 588:
"Butter-Bush of Northern Australia; Willow-Tree of York
Peninsula; Native Willow, Poison-berry Tree (South Australia).
The berries are not poisonous--only bitter."
Poison-Bush, n. name given to a genus of
poisonous Australian shrubs, Gastrolobium (q.v.).
Out of the thirty-three described species of the genus
Gastrolobium, only one is found out of Western
Australia; G. grandiflorum, F. v. M., is the
poison-bush of the Queensland interior and of Central
Australia. The name is also given to Swainsonia Greyana,
Lindl., N.O. Leguminosae.
The Darling-Pea (q.v.), or Indigo-Plant (q.v.),
has similar poisonous effects to the Gastrolobium.
These species of Gastrolobium go under the various names of
Desert Poison-Bush, York-Road Poison-Bush,
Wallflower; and the names of Ellangowan
Poison-Bush (Queensland), and Dogswood Poison-Bush
(New South Wales), are given to Myoporum deserti,
A. Cunn., N.O. Myoporineae, while another plant,
Trema aspera, Blume., N.O. Urticaceae,
is called Peach-leaved Poison-Bush.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 129:
"These plants are dangerous to stock, and are hence called
`Poison Bushes.' Large numbers of cattle are lost annually in
Western Australia through eating them. The finest and strongest
animals are the first victims; a difficulty of breathing is
perceptible for a few minutes, when they stagger, drop down,
and all is over with them. . . . It appears to be that the
poison enters the circulation, and altogether stops the action
of the lungs and heart."
Ibid. p. 141:
"This plant [S. greyana] is reported to cause madness,
if not death itself, to horses. The poison seems to act on the
brain, for animals affected by it refuse to cross even a small
twig lying in their path, probably imagining it to be a great
log. Sometimes the poor creatures attempt to climb trees, or
commit other eccentricities."
Poison-Tree, or Poisonous Tree, n.
another name for the Milky Mangrove. See Mangrove.
The Scrub Poison-Tree is Exsaecaria dallachyana,
Baill., N.O. Euphorbiaceae.
Pomegranate, Native, n. another name for the
Caper-tree(q.v.).
Pomegranate, Small Native, n. another name for
the Native Orange. See Orange.
Pongo, n. aboriginal name for the
Flying-Squirrel (q.v.).
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 149:
"Then an old 'possum would sing out, or a black-furred
flying-squirrel--pongos, the blacks call `em--would come sailing
down from the top of an ironbark tree, with all his stern sails
spread, as the sailors say, and into the branches of another,
looking as big as an eagle-hawk."
Poor-Soldier, or Soldier-Bird (q.v.),
n. another name for the Friar-bird (q.v.),
and so named from its cry.
Poplar, n. In Queensland, a timber-tree,
Carumbium populifolium, Reinw.,
N.O. Euphorbiaceae. In Central Australia,
the Radish-tree (q.v.).
Poplar-Box, n. See Box.
Poplar-leaved Gum, n. See Gum.
Porangi, adj. Maori word for sad,
sorry, or sick; cranky.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,'
vol. i. p. 137:
"The combatants . . . took especial pains to tell us that
it was no fault of ours, but the porangi or `foolishness'
of the Maori."
Ibid. vol. ii. p. 238:
"Watanui said E Abu was porangi, `a fool.'"
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 435:
"`Twas nothing--he was not to mind her--she
Was foolish--was `porangi'--and would be
Better directly--and her tears she dried."
1882. R. C. Barstow, `Transactions of New Zealand
Institute,' vol. xv. art. liii. p. 423:
"A man who told such marvellous stories that he was deemed
to be porangi or insane."
Porcupine, Ant-eating, i.q. Echidna (q.v.).
Porcupine-Bird, n. a bird inhabiting the
Porcupine-Grass (q.v.) of Central Australia; the
Striated Grass Wren, Amytis striata, Gould.
See Wren.
1886. G. A. Keartland, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Part ii. Zoology, Aves, p. 79:
"Amytis Striata, Gould. Striated Wren. . . . They
are found almost throughout Central Australia wherever the
porcupine grass abounds, so much so, that they are generally
known as the `Porcupine bird.'"
Porcupine-Fish, n. name given to several
species of the genus Diodon, family Gymnodontes,
poisonous fishes; also to Dicotylichthys punctulatus,
Kaup., an allied fish 1n which the spines are not erectile as
in Diodon, but are stiff and immovable.
Chilomycterus jaculiferus, Cuv., another species, has
also stiff spines, and Atopomycterus nycthemerus, Cuv.,
has erectile spines. See Toad-fish and
Globe-fish.
Porcupine-Grass, n. the name given to certain
species of Triodia, of which the more important are
T. mitchelli, Benth., T. pungens, R. Br., and
T. irritans, R. Br. This grass forms rounded tussocks,
growing especially on the sand-hills of the desert parts of
Australia, which may reach the size of nine or ten feet in
diameter. The leaves when dry form stiff, sharp-pointed
structures, which radiate in all directions, like
knitting-needles stuck in a huge pincushion. In the writings
of the early Australian explorers it is usually, but
erroneously, called Spinifex (q.v.). The aborigines
collect the resinous material on the leaves of
T. pungens, and use it for various purposes, such as
that of attaching pieces of flint to the ends of their
yam-sticks and spear-throwers.
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 284:
"It [Triodia] grows in tufts like large beehives, or
piles of thrift grass, and the leaves project out rigidly in
all directions, just like Chevaux-de-frise. Merely
brushing by will cause the points to strike into the limbs,
and a very short walk in such country soon covers the legs with
blood. . . . Unfortunately two or three species of it extend
throughout the whole continent, and form a part of the
descriptions in the journal of every explorer."
1880 (before). P. J. Holdsworth, `Station-hunting on the
Warrego,' quoted in `Australian Ballads and Rhymes' (ed.
Sladen), p. 115:
"Throughout that night,
Cool dews came sallying on that rain-starved land,
And drenched the thick rough tufts of bristly grass,
Which, stemmed like quills (and thence termed porcupine),
Thrust hardily their shoots amid the flints
And sharp-edged stones."
1889. E. Giles, `Australia Twice Traversed,' vol. i. p. 76:
"No porcupine, but real green grass made up a really pretty
picture, to the explorer at least."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 148:
"These were covered with spinifex, or porcupine-grass, the
leaves of which are needle-pointed."
1896. R. Tate, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,' Botany,
p. 119:
"In the Larapintine Region . . . a species of Triodia
(`porcupine grass' or, incorrectly, `spinifex' of explorers
and residents) dominates sand ground and the sterile slopes
and tops of the sandstone table-lands."
Porcupine-grass Ant, n. popular name given to
Hypoclinea flavipes, Kirby, an ant making its nest round
the root of the Porcupine grass (Triodia pungens),
and often covering the leaves of the tussock with tunnels of
sandgrains fastened together by resinous material derived from
the surface of the leaves.
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Home Expedition in Central Australia.'
"Watching the Porcupine-grass ants, which are very small and
black bodies with yellowish feet, I saw them constantly running
in and out of these chambers, and on opening the latter found
that they were always built over two or more Coccidae attached
to the leaf of the grass."
Porcupine-Parrot, n. See quotation.
1896. G. A. Keartland, `Report of the Horne Expedition in
Central Australia,' Part ii. Zoology, Aves, p. 107:
"Geopsittacus occidentalis. Western Ground Parrakeet. . . .
As they frequent the dense porcupine grass, in which they
hide during the day, a good dog is necessary to find them.
They are locally known as the `Porcupine Parrot.'"
Poroporo, n. Maori name for the flowering
shrub Solanum aviculare, Forst.; called in Australia,
Kangaroo Apple. Corrupted into Bullybul
(q.v.). /See, rather, Bull-a-bull/
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand, the Britain of the South,
p. 136:
"The poroporo, the nicest or least nasty of the wild fruits, is
a sodden strawberry flavoured with apple-peel; but if rashly
tasted an hour before it is ripe, the poroporo is an alum pill
flavoured with strychnine."
1880. W. Colenso, `Transactions New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xiii. art. i. p. 32:
"The large berry of the poro-poro (Solanum aviculare)
was also eaten; it is about the size of a small plum, and when
ripe it is not unpleasant eating, before it is ripe it is very
acrid. This fruit was commonly used by the early colonists in
the neighbourhood of Wellington in making jam."
Porphyrio, n. the Sultana-bird, or Sultana.
The bird exists elsewhere. In Australia it is generally called
the Swamp-Hen (q.v.).
1875. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 213:
"The crimson-billed porphyrio, that jerking struts
Among the cool thick rushes."
1890. `Victorian Statutes-the Game Act' (Third Schedule):
[Close Season.] ". . . Land-rail, all other members of the
Rail family, Porphyrio, Coots, &c. From the First day of
August to the Twentieth day of December following."
Port-Arthur Plum. See Plum, Native.
Port-Jackson Fig, n. See Fig.
Port-Jackson Shark, Heterodontus phillipii,
Lacep., family Cestraciontidae; called also the
Shell-grinder.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 10:
"The Cestracion or Port Jackson shark
(Heterodontus)."
Ibid. p. 97:
"It was supposed that Port Jackson alone had this shark . . .
It has since been found in many of the coast bays of
Australia."
Port-Jackson Thrush, n. the best known bird
among the Australian Shrike-thrushes (q.v.),
Colluricincla harmonica, Lath.; called also the
Austral Thrush, and Harmonic Thrush by Latham.
It is also the C. cinerea of Vigors and Horsfield and
the Turdus harmonicus of Latham, and it has received
various other scientific and vernacular names; Colonel Legge
has now assigned to it the name of Grey Shrike-Thrush.
Gould called it the "Harmonious Colluricincla."
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 157:
"The Port-Jackson thrush, of which a plate is annexed, inhabits
the neighbourhood of Port Jackson. The top of head
blueish-grey; back is a fine chocolate brown; wings and tail
lead-colour; under part dusky white. . . . The bill, dull
yellow; legs brown."
1822. John Latham, `General History of Birds,' vol. v.
p. 124:
"Austral Thrush. [A full description.] Inhabits New South
Wales."
[Latham describes two other birds, the Port Jackson
Thrush and the Harmonic Thrush, and he uses
different scientific names for them. But Gould, regarding
Latham's specimens as all of the same species, takes all
Latham's scientific and vernacular names as synonyms for the
same bird.]
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 74:
"The Colluricincla harmonica is one of the oldest known of the
Australian birds, having been described in Latham's `Index
Ornithologicus,' figured in White's `Voyage' and included in
the works of all subsequent writers."
Port-Macquarie Pine. See Pine.
Post-and-Rail Tea, slang name for strong bush-tea: so
called because large bits of the tea, or supposed tea, float
about in the billy, which are compared by a strong imagination
to the posts and rails of the wooden fence so frequent in
Australia.
1851. `The Australasian' (a Quarterly), p. 298:
"Hyson-skin and post-and-rail tea have been
superseded by Mocha, claret, and cognac."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 163:
"A hot beverage in a tin pot, which richly deserved the
colonial epithet of `post-and-rail' tea, for it might well have
been a decoction of `split stuff,' or `ironbark shingles,' for
any resemblance it bore to the Chinese plant."
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' c. i. p. 28:
"The shepherd's wife kindly gave us the invariable mutton-chop
and damper and some post-and-rail tea."
1883. Keighley, `Who are you?' p. 36:
"Then took a drink of tea. . . .
Such as the swagmen in our goodly land
Have with some humour named the `post-and-rail.'"
Potato-Fern, n. a fern (Marattia
fraxinea, Smith) with a large part edible, sc. the basal
scales of the frond. Called also the Horseshoe-fern.
Potato, Native, n. a sort of Yam, Gastrodia
sesamoides, R. Br., N.O. Orchideae.
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 131:
"Produces bulb-tubers growing one out of another, of the size,
and nearly the form, of kidney potatoes; the lowermost is
attached by a bundle of thick fleshy fibres to the root of the
tree from which it derives its nourishment. These roots are
roasted and eaten by the aborigines; in taste they resemble
beet-root, and are sometimes called in the colony native
potatoes."
1857. F. R. Nixon, `Cruise of the Beacon,' p. 27:
"And the tubers of several plants of this tribe were largely
consumed by them, particularly those of Gastrodi
sessamoides [sic], the native potato, so called by the
colonists, though never tasted by them, and having not the most
remote relation to the plant of that name, except in a little
resemblance of the tubers, in shape and appearance, to the
kidney potato."
Potoroo, n. aboriginal name for a
Kangaroo-Rat (q.v.). See also Potorous
and Roo.
1790. John White, `Journal of a Voyage to New South Wales,'
p. 286:
"The Poto Roo, or Kangaroo Rat." [Figure and description.]
"It is of a brownish grey colour, something like the brown or
grey rabbit, with a tinge of a greenish yellow. It has a pouch
on the lower part of its belly."
Potorous, n. the scientific name of the genus
of the Kangaroo-Rats (q.v.). The aboriginal name was
Potoroo; see Roo. They are also called
Rat-Kangaroos.
Pouched-lion, or Marsupial Lion, n.
a large extinct Phalanger (q.v.), Thylacoleo
carnifex, Owen. The popular name was given under the idea,
derived from the presence of an enormous cutting-tooth, that
the animal was of fierce carnivorous habits. But it is more
generally regarded as closely allied to the phalangers, who are
almost entirely vegetarians.
Pouched-Mouse, n. the vernacular name adopted
for species of the genera Phascologale (q.v.),
Sminthopsis, Dasyuroides and Antechinomys.
They are often called Kangaroo-mice (q.v.).
The species are--
Brush-tailed Pouched-Mouse--
Phascologale penicillata, Shaw.
Chestnut-necked P.-M.--
P. thorbechiana, Schl.
Crest-tailed P.-M.--
P. cristicauda, Krefft.
Fat-tailed P.-M.--
P. macdonnellensis, Spencer.
Freckled P.-M.---
P. apicalis, Gray.
Lesser-tailed P.-M.--
P. calura, Gould.
Little P.-M.--
P. minima, Geoff.
Long-tailed P.-M.--
P. longicaudata, Schleg.
Orange-bellied P.-M.--
P. doria, Thomas.
Pigmy P.-M.--
P. minutissima, Gould.
Red-tailed P.-M.--
P. wallacii, Grey.
Swainson's P.-M.--
P. swainsoni, Water.
Yellow-footed Pouched-Mouse--
Phascologale flavipes, Water.
The Narrow-footed Pouched-Mice belong to the genus
Sminthopsis, and differ from the Phascologales
in being entirely terrestrial in their habits, whereas the
latter are usually arboreal; the species are--
Common Narrow-footed Pouched-Mouse--
Sminthopsis murina, Water.
Finke N.-f. P.-M.--
S. larapinta, Spencer.
Sandhill N.-f. P.-M.--
S. psammophilus, Spencer.
Stripe-faced N.-f. P.-M.--
S. virginiae, De Tarrag.
Thick-tailed N.-f. P.-M.--
S. crassicaudata, Gould.
White-footed N.-f. P.-M.
S. leucopus, Grey.
The third genus, Dasyuroides, has only one species--
Byrne's Pouched-Mouse, D. byrnei, Spencer.
The fourth genus, Antechinomys, has only one known
species--the Long-legged Jumping Pouched-Mouse,
A. laniger, Gould.
Pounamu, or Poenamu, n.
the Maori name for Nephrite, Jade, or Greenstone
(q.v.). In the second spelling the e is hardly sounded.
1773. Hawkesworth, `Cook's Voyages,' vol. ii. p. 400:
"Two Whennuas or islands [afterwards called New Zealand] which
might be circumnavigated in a few days, and which he called
Tovy Poenammoo; the literal translation of this word is `the
water of green talc,' and probably if we had understood him
better we should have found that Tovy Poenammoo was the name of
some particular place where they got the green talc or stone of
which they make their ornaments and tools, and not a general
name for the whole southern district."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 362:
"A magnificent Mere punamu, a battle-axe, fifteen inches long,
and cut out of the most beautiful, transparent nephrite, an
heirloom of his illustrious ancestors, which he kept as a
sacred relic."
1881. J. L. Campbell [Title of book describing early days of
New Zealand]:
"Poenamo."
Pratincole, n. The bird called a
Pratincole (inhabitant of meadows: Lat. pratum
and incola) exists elsewhere, and more often under the
familiar name of Chat. The Australian species
are--Glareola grallaria, Temm.; Oriental,
G. orientalis, Leach.
Pre-empt, n. a slang abbreviation for
pre-emptive right.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xxiv.
p. 322:
"My friend has the run and the stock and the pre-empts all in
his own hands."
Pretty-Faces, n. a fancy name for a small
kangaroo. Not very common.
1887. W. S. S.Tyrwhitt, `The New Chum in the Queensland
Bush,' p. 145:
"Kangaroos are of several different kinds. First, the large
brown variety, known as kangaroo proper; next the smaller kind,
known as pretty faces or whip tails, which are rather smaller
and of a grey colour, with black and white on the face."
Prickfoot, n. a Tasmanian plant, Eryngium
vesiculosum, Lab., N.O. Umbelliferae.
Prickly Fern, n. Alsophila australis,
R. Br., N.O. Filices.
1862. W. Archer, `Products of Tasmania,' p. 41:
"Prickly fern-tree (Alsophila Australis, Br.). This
very handsome ferntree occasionally attains a height of thirty
feet. It is not, by any means, so common a fern-tree as
Dicksonia antarctica (Lab.)."
Prickly Mimosa, n. See Mimosa
and Prickly Moses, under Moses.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 6:
Acacia verticillata. Whorl leaved Acacia, or Prickly
Mimosa, so called from its sharp pointed leaves standing out in
whorls round the stem like the spokes of a wheel."
Prickly Pine, n. See Pine.
Prickly Wattle, n. See Wattle.
Primage, n. The word is of old commercial use,
for a small sum of money formerly paid to the captain or master
of the ship, as his personal perquisite, over and above the
freight charges paid to the owners or agents, by persons
sending goods in a ship. It was called by the French
pot-de-vin du maitre,--a sort of pourboire,
in fact. Now-a-days the captain has no concern with the
freight arrangements, and the word in this sense has disappeared.
It has re-appeared in Australia under a new form. In 1893
the Victorian Parliament imposed a duty of one per cent.
on the Prime, as the Customs laws call the first entry
of goods. This tax was called Primage, and raised such
an outcry among commercial men that in 1895 it was repealed.
Primrose, Native, n. The name is given in
Tasmania to Goodenia geniculata, R. Br.,
N.O. Goodeniaceae. There are many species of
Goodenia in Australia, and they contain a tonic bitter
which has not been examined.
Prion, n. a sea-bird. See Dove-Petrel.
(Grk. priown, a saw.) The sides of its bill are like
the teeth of a saw.
1885. W. O. Legge, `Australasian Association for the
Advancement of Science' (Brisbane), p. 448:
"The name Prion, as almost universally applied elsewhere to the
Blue Petrels, has been kept [in Australia] as an English name."
Prop, v. of a horse: to stop suddenly.
1870. E. B. Kennedy, `Four Years in Queensland,' p. 194:
"Another man used to teach his horse (which was free from
vice) to gallop full speed up to the verandah of a house, and
when almost against it, the animal would stop in his stride (or
prop), when the rider vaulted lightly over his head on to the
verandah."
1880. W. Senior, `Travel and Trout,' p.52:
"How on a sudden emergency the sensible animal will
instantaneously check his impetuosity, `prop,' and swing round
at a tangent."
1884. Rolf Boldrewood,' Melbourne Memories,' c. xxi. p. 152:
"Traveller's dam had an ineradicable taste for propping."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 153:
"His horse propped short, and sent him flying over its head."
Prop, n. a sudden stop.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xvi. p. 115:
"The `touchy' mare gave so sudden a `prop,' accompanied by a
desperate plunge, that he was thrown."
Prospect, v. to search for gold. In the word, and in
all its derivatives, the accent is thrown back on to the first
syllable. This word, in such frequent use in Australia, is
generally supposed to be of Australian origin, but it is in
equal use in the mining districts of the United States of
America.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 10:
"The forest seemed alive with scouts `prospecting.'"
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. i. p. 18:
"Behold him, along with his partner set out,
To prospect the unexplor'd ranges about."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' p. 46:
"A promising place for prospecting. Yet nowhere did I see the
shafts and heaps of rock or gravel which tell in a gold country
of the hasty search for the precious metal."
1894. `The Argus,' March 10, p. 4, col. 6:
"The uses of the tin dish require explanation. It is for
prospecting. That is to say, to wash the soil in which you
think there is gold."
Prospect, n. the result of the first or
test-dish full of wash-dirt.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' c. v. p. 54:
"The first prospect, the first pan of alluvial gold drift,
was sent up to be tested."
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 17:
"I have obtained good dish prospects after crudely crushing
up the quartz."
Prospecting, verbal n. and adj.
See Prospect, v.
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 16:
"Prospecting in my division is on the increase."
Ibid. p. 13:
"The Egerton Company are doing a large amount of prospecting
work."
Prospecting Claim = the first claim marked in a
gold-lead. See Reward Claim.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' c. v. p. 53:
"This, however, would be but half the size of the premier or
prospecting claim."
Prospector, n. one who searches for gold on a
new field. See Prospect, v.
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 19:
"The Government prospectors have also been very successful."
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 11:
"He incidentally mentioned his gold find to another prospector
. . . The last went out to the grounds and prospected, with
the result that he discovered the first payable gold on the
West Coast, for which he obtained a reward claim."
Pseudochirus, n. the scientific name of the
genus of Ring-tailed Phalangers. (See Opossum.) They
have prehensile tails, by which they hold in climbing, as with
a hand. (Grk. pseudo-, false, and cheir, hand.)
Psophodes, n. scientific name of a genus
of birds peculiar to Australia, and represented there by two
species. See Coach-whip Bird. The name comes from
the bird's peculiar note. (Grk. psophowdaes, noisy.)
Ptilonorhynchinae, n. pl. scientific name
assigned to the Australian group of birds called the
Bower-birds (q.v.). (Grk. ptilon, a feather,
rhunchos, a beak.)
Pudding-ball, n. a fish; corruption of the
aboriginal name of it, puddinba (q.v.), by the law
of Hobson-Jobson.
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 96:
"The species of fish that are commonest in the Bay (Moreton)
are mullet, bream, puddinba (a native word corrupted by the
colonists into pudding-ball) . . . The puddinba is like a
mullet in shape, but larger, and very fat; it is esteemed a
great delicacy."
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407 col. 4:
"`Pudding-ball' is the name of a fish. It has nothing to do
with pudding, nothing with any of the various meanings of ball.
The fish is not specially round. The aboriginal name was
`pudden-ba.' Voila tout."
Pukeko, n. Maori name for the bird
Porphyrio melanonotus, the Swamp-Hen (q.v.).
1896. `Otago Witness,' June 11, p. 51:
"Two pukaki [sic] flew across their path."
Punga, n. the trunk of the tree-fern that is
known as Cyathea medullaris, the "black fern " of the
settlers. It has an edible pith.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 115:
"Some of the trees were so alarmed that they held down
their heads, and have never been able to hold them up since;
amongst these were the ponga (a fern-tree) and the kareao
(supple-jack), whose tender shoots are always bent."
1888. J. White, `Ancient History of Maori,' vol. iv.
p. 191:
"When Tara-ao left his pa and fled from the vengeance of
Karewa, he and his people were hungry and cut down ponga,
and cooked and ate them."
1888. J. Adams, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xxi. art. ii. p. 36:
"The size and beauty of the puriri, nikau, and ponga
(Cyathea medullaris) are worthy of notice."
1892. E. S. Brookes, `Frontier Life,' p. 139:
"The Survey Department graded a zigzag track up the side to the
top, fixing in punga steps, so that horses could climb up."
Punga-punga, n. Maori name for the pollen of
the raupo (q.v.).
1880. W. Colenso, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xiii. art. i. p. 28:
"Another curious article of vegetable food was the punga-punga,
the yellow pollen of the raupo flowers. To use it as food it
is mixed with water into cakes and baked. It is sweetish and
light, and reminds one strongly of London gingerbread."
Puriri, n. Maori name for the New Zealand
tree, Vitex littoralis, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Verbenaceae; called also New Zealand Oak,
New Zealand Teak, and Ironwood. It is very hard.
1842. W. R. Wade, `Journey in New Zealand' (Hobart Town),
p. 200:
"Puriri, misnamed Vitex littoralis, as it is not found
near the sea-coast."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 311:
"The Puriri Tree (Vitex littoralis). The stems
. . . vary from straight to every imaginable form of curved
growth. . . The fruit, which is like a cherry, is a favourite
food of the woodpigeon."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 86:
"A deep ravine, over which grey-stemmed purtris stretched out
afar their gnarled trunks, laden with deep green foliage,
speckled with the warm gleam of ruddy blossoms."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 102:
"The darker, crimped and varnished leaf of the puriri,
with its bright cherry-like berry."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 209:
"The Puriri . . . on account of the strength of its timber
it is sometimes termed by the settlers `New Zealand Oak,' but
it would be far more correct to name it `New Zealand Teak.'"
Purple Berry, n. Tasmanian name for
Billardiera longiflora, Lab., N.O. Pittosporeae.
See Pittosporum.
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 11
[Note]:
"Billardiera longiflora, the well-known beautiful
climber, with pale greenish bell-flowers and purple fruit."
[Also pl. i.]
Purple Broom, n. See Broom.
Purple Coot, n. another name for the
Swamp-Hen (q.v.).
Purple Fig, n. See under Fig-tree.
Push, n. a gang. The word is of late very
common in Australia. It was once a prison term. Barrere and
Leland quote from M. Davitt's `Leaves from a Prison Diary,'
"the upper ten push." In Thieves' English it is--(1) a crowd;
(2) an association for a particular robbery. In Australia, its
use began with the larrikins (q.v.), and spread, until
now it often means clique, set, party, and even jocularly so
far as "the Government House Push."
1890. `The Argus,' July 26, p. 4, col. 3:
"`Doolan's push' were a party of larrikins working . . .
in a potato paddock near by."
1892. A topical song by E. J. Lonnen began:
"I've chucked up my Push for my Donah."
1893. `The Australasian,' June 24, p. 1165, col. 4:
"He [the young clergyman] is actually a member of every `push'
in his neighbourhood, and the effect has been not to degrade
the pastor, but to sweeten and elevate the `push.'"
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' June 26, p. 8, col. 7:
"For a long time past the `push' at Miller's Point, which
consists of young fellows for the most part under twenty-one
years of age, have been a terrible source of annoyance, and,
indeed, of actual danger. A few years ago the police by
resolute dealings with the larrikin pest almost put it down
in the neighbourhood, the part of it which was left being
thoroughly cowed, and consequently afraid to make any
disturbance. Within the past eighteen months or two years the
old `push' has been strengthened by the addition of youths just
entering on manhood, who, gradually increasing in numbers, have
elbowed their predecessors out of the field. Day by day the
new `push' has become more daring. From chaffing drunken men
and insulting defenceless women, the company has taken to
assault, to daylight robbery."
1893. `The Argus,' July 1, p. 10, col. 7:
"The Premier, in consultation with the inspector-general of the
police, has made arrangements to protect life and property
against the misconduct of the lawless larrikin `pushes' now
terrorising Sydney."
1894. `Sydney Morning Herald' (date lost):
"The word larrikin is excellently descriptive of the
irresponsible, mischievous, anti-social creature whose
eccentric action is the outcome of too much mutton. This
immoral will-o'-the-wisp, seized with a desire to jostle, or
thump, or smash, combines for the occasion with others like
himself, and the shouldering, shoving gang is well called a
push."
Pyrrholaemus, n. scientific name of the genus
of the Australian birds called the Red-throats;
from Grk. purros, "flame-coloured," "red," and
laimos, "throat."
Q
Quail, n. a bird which exists under some form
all over the world. The Australian species are--
Black-breasted Quail--
Turnix melanogaster, Gould.
Brown Q.--
Synoicus australis, Lath.
[Called also Swamp-Quail.]
Chestnut-backed Q.--
Turnix castanotus, Gould.
Chestnut-bellied Q.--
Excalfatoria australis, Gould.
Little Q.--
Turnix velox, Gould.
Painted Q.--
T. varies, Lath. [Haemipodius melinatus,
Gould.]
Red-backed Q.--
T. maculosa, Gould.
Red-chested Q.--
T. pyrrhothorax, Gould.
Stubble Q.--
Coturnix pectoralis, Gould.
In New Zealand there is a single species, Coturnix
novae-zelandiae, Quoy and Gaim.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. vii. p. 259:
"It is known to the colonists as the painted quail; and has
been called by Mr. Gould . . . Haemipodius melinatus."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 298:
"The painted quail, and the brush quail, the largest of
Australian gamebirds, I believe, whirred away from beneath
their horses' feet."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 67:
"The swamp fowl and timorous quail . . .
Will start from their nests."
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 117:
"This group also is represented by a single species, the New
Zealand quail (Coturnix Novae-Zelandiae), belonging to a
widely distributed genus. It was formerly very abundant in New
Zealand; but within the last fifteen or twenty years has been
completely exterminated, and is now only known to exist on the
Three Kings Island, north of Cape Maria Van Diemen."
Quail-Hawk, n. name given to the bird
Falco, or Harpa novae-zelandiae.
See Hawk.
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 37:
"In New Zealand the courageous family of the Raptores
is very feebly represented; the honourable post of head of the
family in all fairness must be assigned to the falcon, which
is commonly known by the name of the quail- or sparrow-hawk,
not that it is identical with, or that it even bears much
resemblance to, the bold robber of the woods of Great
Britain--`the hardy sperhauke eke the quales foe,' as Chaucer
has it."
Quandong, n. (various spellings) aboriginal
name for--(1) a tree, Santalum acuminatum, De C.,
S. persicarium, F. v. M., N.O. Santalaceae.
In the Southern Colonies it is often called the Southern
Quandong, and the tree is called the Native
Peach-Tree (q.v.). The name is given to another large
scrub-tree, Elaeocarpus grandis, F. v. M.,
N.O. Tiliaceae. The fruit, which is of a blue colour
and is eaten by children, is also called the Native
Peach.
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' p. 135:
"In all these scrubs on the Murray the Fusanus
acuminatus is common, and produces the quandang
nut (or kernel)."
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. i. p. 41:
"Abundance of fig, and medlar and quince trees, cherries,
loquots, quondongs, gooseberry, strawberry, and raspberry
trees."
1867. G. G. McCrae, `Balladeadro,' p. 10:
"Speed thee, Ganook, with these swift spears--
This firebrand weeping fiery tears,
And take this quandang's double plum,
'Twill speak alliance tho' 'tis dumb."
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. xx. p. 199:
"They came upon a quantong-tree, and pausing beneath it, began
to pick up the fallen fruit. . . . There were so many
berries, each containing a shapely nut, that Honoria might
string a dozen necklaces."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. ix. p. 79:
"I have forgotten to mention the quandong, a shrub bearing
a fruit the size and colour of cherries."
(2) The fruit of this tree, and also its kernel.
1885. J. Hood, `Land of the Fern,' p. 53:
"She had gone to string on a necklet of seeds from the
quongdong tree.'
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. xix.
p. 196:
"Miss Longleat was wild after quandongs."
[Footnote]: "A berry growing in the scrub, the kernels of which
are strung into necklaces."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 9:
"Another fruit of fraudulent type growing on the plains
is the quandong. Something in shape and colour like a
small crab-apple, it is fair enough to the eye, but in
taste thoroughly insipid."
Quart-pot, n. a tin vessel originally imported
as a measure, and containing an exact imperial quart. It had no
lid, but a side handle. Before 1850 the word Quart-pot,
for a kettle, was as universal in the bush as "Billy"
(q.v.) is now. The billy, having a lid and a wire handle by
which to suspend it over the fire, superseded the quart-pot
about 1851. In addition to the Billy, there is a
Quart-pot still in use, especially in South Australia
and the back-blocks. It has two sidehandles working in
sockets, so as to fold down flat when travelling. The lid is
an inverted pannikin fitted into it, and is used as a
drinking-cup.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 43:
"`Look out there!' he continued; `quart-pot corroborree,'
springing up and removing with one hand from the fire one
of the quart-pots, which was boiling madly."
Quart-pot Tea, n. Explained in quotations.
Cf. Billy-tea.
1878. Mrs. H. Jones, `Long Years in Australia,' p. 87:
"Ralph, taking a long draught of the quart-pot tea, pronounced
that nothing was ever like it made in teapots, and Ethel
thought it excellent, excepting that the tea-leaves were
troublesome."
188. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia, p. 111:
"`Quart-pot' tea, as tea made in the bush is always called, is
really the proper way to make it. . . . The tea is really
made with boiling water, which brings out its full flavour, and
it is drunk before it has time to draw too much."
Quartz, n. a mineral; the common form of native
silica. It is abundantly diffused throughout the world, and
forms the common sand of the sea-shore. It occurs as veins or
lodes in metamorphic rocks, and it is this form of its presence
in Australia, associated with gold, that has made the word of
such daily occurrence. In fact, the word Quartz, in
Australian mining parlance, is usually associated with the idea
of Gold-bearing Stone, unless the contrary be stated.
Although some of the following compound words may be used
elsewhere, they are chiefly confined to Australia.
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 21:
"Quartz is the mother of gold, and wherever there is an
abundance of it, gold may reasonably be expected to exist
somewhere in the neighbourhood."
1890. `The Argus,' June 16, p. 6. col. 1:
"Two runaway apprentices from a ship are said to have first
crushed quartz."
1890. R. A. F. Murray, `Reports and Statistics of the
Mining Department [of Victoria] for the Quarter ending 31st
December':
"The quartz here is very white and crystalline, with
ferruginous, clayey joints, and--from a miner's point of
view--of most unpromising or `hungry' appearance."
Quartz-battery, n. a machine for crushing
quartz, and so extracting gold.
1890. `The Argus,' July 26, p. 4, col. 4:
"There was a row [noise] like a quartz-battery."
Quartz-blade, n. blade of a miner's
knife used for picking lumps of gold out of the stone.
1891. `The Argus,' Dec. 19, p. 4, col. 2:
"They had slashed open his loins with a quartz-blade knife."
Quartz-crushing, adj. See Quartz.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xxxix. p. 341:
"The dull reverberating clash of the quartz-crushing
batteries."
Quartz-field, n. a non-alluvial goldfield.
1890. `The Argus,' June 16, p. 6, col. 1:
"Our principal quartz-field."
Quartz-lodes, and Quartz-mining.
See Quartz.
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 32:
"He chose the piece which the New North Clunes now occupy for
quartz-mining; but the quartz-lodes were very difficult to
follow."
Quartz-reefer, n. a miner engaged in
Quartz-reefing, as distinguished from one digging
in alluvial. See above.
Quartz-reefing, n. (1) The operation of
mining. See Reef, verb. (2) A place where there
is gold mixed with quartz.
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' c. iv. p. 133:
"You'd best go to a quartz-reefin'. I've been surfacing this
good while; but quartz-reefin's the payinest game, now."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xxix. p. 263:
"[He] had located himself in a quartz-reefing district."
Queensland, n. a colony named after the Queen,
on the occasion of its separation from New South Wales, in
1859. Dr. J. D. Lang wanted to call it "Cooksland," and
published a book under that title in 1847. Before separation
it was known as "the Moreton Bay District."
Queensland Asthma-Herb, n.
See Asthma-Herb.
Queensland Bean. n. See Bean.
Queensland Beech, n. See Beech.
Queensland Ebony, n. See Ebony.
Queensland Hemp, n. See Hemp.
Queensland Kauri, n. another name for
Dundathu Pine. See Kauri and Pine.
Queensland Nut, n. a wild fruit-tree,
Macadamia ternifolia, F. v. M., N.O. Proteaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 40:
"`Queensland Nut.' This tree bears an edible nut of excellent
flavour, relished both by Aborigines and Europeans. As it forms
a nutritious article of food to the former, timber-getters are
not permitted to fell the trees. It is well worth extensive
cultivation, for the nuts are always eagerly bought."
Queensland Nutmeg, n. a timber-tree,
Myristica insipida, R. Br., N.O. Myristiceae.
Not so strongly aromatic as the true nutmeg.
Queensland Plum, n. See Plum, Sweet.
Queensland Poplar, n. See under Poplar.
Queensland Sorrel, n. a plant, Hibiscus
heterophyllus, Vent., N.O. Malvaceae, chewed
by the aborigines, as boys chew English Sorrel.
Queenwood, n. a timber-tree, Davidsonia
pruriens, F. v. M., N.O. Leguminosae.
Quince, Native, n. i.q. Bitter-bark,
Emu-Apple, and Quinine-tree, all which see.
Quince, Wild, n. another name for the Black
Ash-tree. See Ash.
Quinine-Tree, n. i.q. Horseradish Tree
(q.v.), and used also for the Bitter-bark or
Emu-Apple Tree (q.v.).
Quoll, n. the aboriginal name for the Native
Cat (q.v.), but not now in use.
1770. J. Banks, `Journal,' Aug. 26 (edition Hooker, 1896),
p. 301:
"Another animal was called by the natives je-quoll;
it is about the size of, and something like, a pole-cat,
of a light brown, spotted with white on the back, and white
under the belly. . . . I took only one individual."
Ibid. p. 323:
"They very often use the article ge, which seems to answer to
our English a, as ge gurka--a rope."
[In Glossary]:
"Gurka--a rope." /?/
R
Rabbiter, n. a man who lives by trapping
rabbits, or who is employed to clear stations from them.
1892. E. W. Hornung, `Under Two Skies,' p. 114:
"He would give him a billet. He would take him on as a
rabbiter, and rig him out with a tent, camp fixings, traps,
and perhaps even a dog or two."
Rabbit-rat, n. name sometimes given
to ahapalote (q.v.), in New South Wales.
Radish-Tree, n. an Australian timber-tree,
Codonocarpus cotinifolius, F. v. M.,
N.O. Phytolaceae; called also Poplar
in Central Australia.
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue--Economic Woods,' No. 61:
"Radish-Tree: occurs in the Mallee-scrub very sparingly;
attaining a height of thirty feet. The poplar of the Central
Australian explorers. Whole tree strong-scented."
Rager, n. an old and fierce bullock or cow,
that always begins to rage in the stock-yard.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xiv. p. 105:
"Amongst them was a large proportion of bullocks, which
declined with fiendish obstinacy to fatten. They were what are
known by the stockriders as `ragers,' or `pig-meaters'"
[q.v.].
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvi. p. 196:
"Well, say a hundred off for ragers.'"
Rail, n. common English birdname. There are
many varieties in New Zealand and Australia, especially in the
former colony, and the authorities differ as to whether some
should be classed as distinct species. Some are common to
Australasia, others endemic in New Zealand or Australia; their
distribution in this respect is marked below in parentheses.
Several species receive more than one vernacular name, as the
following list shows--
Banded Rail (N.Z. and A.)--
Rallus philippensis, Linn.
Chestnut-bellied R. (A.)--
Eulabeornis castaneiventris, Gould.
Dieffenbach's R. (see quotation below)--
Rallus dieffenbachii, Gray.
Hutton's R. (N.Z.)--
Cabalus modestus, Hutton.
Land R. (N.Z. and A.)--
Rallus philippensis, Linn.
Marsh R. (Australasia)--
Ortygometra tabuensis, Finsch. and Hard.
Pectoral R. (N.Z. and A.)--
Rallus philippensis, Linn.
Red-necked R. (A.)--
Rallina tricolor, Gray.
Slate-breasted R. (A.)--
Hypotaenidia brachipus, Swains.
Swainson's R. (N.Z. and A.)--
Rallina brachipus, Swains.
Swamp R. (Australasia)--
Ortygometra tabuensis, Finsch. and Hard.
Tabuan R. (Australasia)--
O. tabuensis, Finsch. and Hard.
Weka R. (N.Z. See Weka.)--
See also Takahe and Notornis.
1888. W.L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' p. 121:
"Dieffenbach's Rail. . . . This beautiful Rail was brought
from the Chatham Islands by Dr. Dieffenbach in 1842, and named
by Mr. Gray in compliment to this enterprising naturalist.
The adult specimen in the British Museum, from which my
description was taken, is unique, and seems likely to remain
so."
1893. Prof Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 116:
"Hutton's rail, the third of the endemic rails . . . is
confined to the Chatham Islands."
Rain-bird, n. The name is popularly given in
many parts of the world to various birds. The Rain-bird
of Queensland and the interior is the Great Cuckoo or
Channel-bill (Scythrops novae-hollandiae, Lath., q.v.).
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 283:
"We discovered a nest of full-fledged birds of the Australian
Shrike or Butcher-bird, also called Rain-bird by the colonists
(Vanga destructor). They were regarded by our
companions as a prize, and were taken accordingly to be caged,
and instructed in the art of whistling tunes, in which they are
great adepts."
Rainbow-fish, n. a New Zealand fish,
Heteroscharus castelnaui, Macl.
Rama-rama, n. Maori name for a New Zealand
shrub, Myrtus bullata, Banks and Sol. The name is used
in the North Island. It is often corrupted into Grama.
Rangatira, n. Maori word for a chief,
male or female; a master or mistress (Williams);
therefore an aristocrat, a person of the gentle class,
distinguished from a tau-rikarika, a nobody,
a slave.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 200:
"Ranga tira, a gentleman or lady."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,'
c. i. p. 173:
"I took care to tell them that the rangatira, or `chief'
missionaries, would come out with the settlers."
Ibid. c. ii. p. 461:
"Rangatira is Maori for `chief,' and Rangatira-tango is
therefore truly rendered `chieftainship.'"
1893. `Otago Witness, `Dec. 21, p. 11:
"Te Kooti is at Puketapu with many Rangatiras; he is a great
warrior,--a fighting chief. They say he has beaten the pakehas"
(q.v.).
Ranges, n. the usual word in Australia for
"mountains." Compare the use of "tiers" in Tasmania.
Rangy, adj. mountainous.
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 89:
"He tramps over the most rangy and inaccessible regions of the
colonies."
1883. E. M. Curr, `Recollections of Squatting in Victoria'
(1841-1851), p. 46:
"The country being rangy, somewhat scrubby, and destitute of
prominent features."
Raspberry, Wild, or Native,
n. Rubus gunnianus, Hook., N.O. Rosaceae;
peculiar to Tasmania, and so called there. In Australia,
the species is Rubus rosafolius, Smith. See also
Lawyer and Blackberry.
Raspberry-jam Tree, n. name given to Acacia
acuminata, Benth., especially of Western Australia. Though
Maiden does not give the name, he says (Useful Native Plants,'
p. 349), "the scent of the wood is comparable to that of
raspberries."
1846. L. Leichhardt, quoted by J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,'
p. 328:
"Plains with groves or thickets of the raspberry-jam-tree."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. iv. p. 132:
"Raspberry-jam . . . acacia sweet-scented, grown on good
ground."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery and
Exploration of Australia,' vol. ii. p. 68:
"The other trees besides the palm were known to the men by
colonial appellations, such as the bloodwood and the
raspberry-jam. The origin of the latter name, let me inform my
readers, has no connection whatever with any produce from the
tree."
1896. `The Australasian,' Feb. 15, p. 313:
"The raspberry-jam-tree is so called on account of the strong
aroma of raspberries given out when a portion is broken."
[On the same page is an illustration of these trees growing
near Perth, Western Australia.]
Rasp-pod, n. name given to a large Australian
tree, Flindersia australis, R. Br., N.O.
Meliaceae.
Rat, n. True Rodents are represented in
Australia and Tasmania by six genera; viz., Mus,
Conilurus (= Hapalotis), Xeromys, Hydromys,
Mastacomys, Uromys, of which the five latter
are confined to the Australian Region.
The genus Hydromys contains the Eastern Water
Rat, sometimes called the Beaver Rat (Hydromys
chrysogaster, Geoffroy), and the Western Water Rat
(H. fulvolavatus, Gould).
Conilurus contains the Jerboa Rats (q.v.).
Xeromys contains a single species, confined to
Queensland, and called Thomas' Rat (Xeromys
myoides, Thomas).
Mastacomys contains one species, the Broad-toothed
Rat (M. fuscus, Thomas), found alive only in
Tasmania, and fossil in New South Wales.
Uromys contains two species, the Giant Rat
(U. macropus, Gray), and the Buff-footed Rat
(U. cervinipes, Gould).
Mus contains twenty-seven species, widely distributed
over the Continent and Tasmania.
1851. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 301:
"The Secretary read the following extracts from a letter of the
Rev. W. Colenso to Ronald C. Gunn, Esq., of Launceston, dated
Waitangi, Hawke's Bay, New Zealand, 4th September, 1850:--
`I have procured two specimens of the ancient, and all
but quite extinct, New Zealand Rat, which until just now
(and notwithstanding all my endeavours, backed, too, by large
rewards) I never saw. It is without doubt a true Mus,
smaller than our English black rat (Mus Rattus), and not
unlike it. This little animal once inhabited the plains and
Fagus forests of New Zealand in countless thousands,
and was both the common food and great delicacy of the natives--
and already it is all but quite classed among the things which
were."
1880. A. R. Wallace, `Island Life,' p. 445:
"The Maoris say that before Europeans came to their country a
forest rat abounded, and was largely used for food . . .
Several specimens have been caught . . . which have been
declared by the natives to be the true Kiore Maori--as they
term it; but these have usually proved on examination to be
either the European black rat or some of the native Australian
rats . . . but within the last few years many skulls of a rat
have been obtained from the old Maori cooking-places and from
a cave associated with moa bones, and Captain Hutton, who has
examined them, states that they belong to a true Mus, but
differ from the Mus rattus."
Rata, n. Maori name for two New Zealand erect
or sub-scandent flowering trees, often embracing trunks of
forest trees and strangling them: the Northern Rata,
Metrosideros robusta, A. Cunn., and the Southern Rata,
M. lucida, Menz., both of the N.O. Myrtaceae.
The tree called by the Maoris Aka, which is another
species of Metrosederos (M. florida), is also often
confused with the Rata by bushmen and settlers.
In Maori, the adj. rata means red-hot, and there
may be a reference to the scarlet appearance of the flower in
full bloom. The timber of the Rata is often known as
Ironwood, or Ironbark. The trees rise to sixty
feet in height; they generally begin by trailing downwards from
the seed deposited on the bark of some other tree near its top.
When the trailing branches reach the ground they take root
there and sprout erect. For full account of the habit of the
trees, see quotation 1867 (Hochstetter), 1879 (Moseley), and
1889 (Kirk).
1843. E. Dieffenbach, `Travels in New Zealand,' p. 224:
"The venerable rata, often measuring forty feet in
circumference and covered with scarlet flowers--while its stem
is often girt with a creeper belonging to the same family
(metrosideros hypericifolia?)."
1848. Rev. R. Taylor, `Leaf from the Natural History of New
Zealand,' p. 21:
"Rata, a tree; at first a climber; it throws out aerial roots;
clasps the tree it clings to and finally kills it, becoming a
large tree (metrosideros robusta). A hard but not durable
wood."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' canto 1, p. 14:
"Unlike the neighbouring rata cast,
And tossing high its heels in air."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 135:
"The Rata (Metrosideros robusta), the trunk of which,
frequently measuring forty feet in circumference, is always
covered with all sorts of parasitical plants, and the crown
of which bears bunches of scarlet blossoms."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 264:
"Nay, not the Rata! howsoe'er it bloomed,
Paling the crimson sunset; for you know,
Its twining arms and shoots together grow
Around the trunk it clasps, conjoining slow
Till they become consolidate, and show
An ever-thickening sheath that kills at last
The helpless tree round which it clings so fast."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 310:
"The Rata-Tree (Metrosideros robusta). This magnificent
tree. . . . height 80 to 100 feet . . . a clear stem to 30
and even 40 feet . . . very beautiful crimson polyandrous
flowers . . . wood red, hard, heavy, close-grained, strong,
and not difficult to work."
1879. H. n. Moseley, `Notes of a Naturalist on Challenger,'
p. 278:
One of the most remarkable trees . . . is the Rata. . . .
This, though a Myrtaceous plant, has all the habits of the
Indian figs, reproducing them in the closest manner. It starts
from a seed dropped in the fork of a tree, and grows downward
to reach the ground; then taking root there, and gaining
strength, chokes the supporting tree and entirely destroys it,
forming a large trunk by fusion of its many stems.
Nevertheless, it occasionally grows directly from the soil,
and then forms a trunk more regular in form."
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 39:
"That bark shall speed where crimson ratas gleam."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii.
p. 210:
"The foliage of many of the large trees is quite destroyed by
the crimson flowering rata, the king of parasites, which having
raised itself into the upper air by the aid of some unhappy
pine, insinuates its fatal coils about its patron, until it has
absorbed trunk and branch into itself, and so gathered
sufficient strength to stand unaided like the chief of forest
trees, flaunting in crimson splendour."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 263:
"It is invariably erect, never climbing, although bushmen and
settlers frequently state that it climbs the loftiest trees,
and sooner or later squeezes them to death in its iron clasp.
In proof of this they assert that, when felling huge ratas,
they often find a dead tree in the centre of the rata: this is
a common occurrence, but it by no means follows that this
species is a climber. This error is simply due to imperfect
observation, which has led careless observers to confuse
Metrosideros florida [the Akal which is a true climber,
with M. robusta."
1892. `Otago Witness,' Nov. 10 [`Native Trees']:
"Rata, or Ironwood. It would be supposed that almost every
colonist who has seen the rata in bloom would desire to possess
a plant."
1893. `The Argus,' Feb. 4 [Leading Article]:
"The critic becomes to the original author what the New Zealand
rata is to the kauri. That insidious vine winds itself round
the supporting trunk and thrives on its strength and at its
expense, till finally it buries it wholly from sight and
flaunts itself aloft, a showy and apparently independent tree."
Rat-tail Grass, n. name given to--
(1) Ischaemum laxum, R. Br., N.O. Gramineae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 92:
"Rat-tail Grass. An upright, slender growing grass; found
throughout the colony, rather coarse, but yielding a fair
amount of feed, which is readily eaten by cattle."
(2) Sporobolus indicus, R. Br., N.O. Gramineae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 109:
"Rat-tail Grass. A fine, open, pasture grass, found throughout
the colonies. Its numerous penetrating roots enable it to
resist severe drought. It yields a fair amount of fodder, much
relished by stock, but is too coarse for sheep. The seeds form
the principal food of many small birds. It has been suggested
as a paper-making material."
[See Grass.]
Raupo, n. Maori name for a New Zealand
bulrush, Typha angustifolia, Linn. The leaves are used
for building native houses. The pollen, called
Punga-Punga (q.v.), was collected and made into bread
called pua. The root was also eaten. It is not endemic
in New Zealand, but is known in many parts, and was called by
the aborigines of Australia, Wonga, and in Europe
"Asparagus of the Cossacks." Other names for it are
Bulrush, Cat's Tail, Reed Mace, and
Cooper's Flag.
1827. Augustus Earle, `Narrative of Nine Months' Residence in
New Zealand,' `New Zealand Reader,' p. 67:
"Another party was collecting rushes, which grow plentifully in
the neighbourhood, and are called raupo."
1833. Henry Williams's Diary, `Carleton's Life,' p. 151:
"The Europeans were near us in a raupo whare [rush-house]."
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 205:
"To engage the natives to build raupo, that is, rush-houses."
1842. W. R. Wade, `A Journey in the North Island of New
Zealand,' `New Zealand Reader,' p. 122:
"The raupo, the reed-mace of New Zealand, always grows in
swampy ground. The leaves or blades when full grown are cut
and laid out to dry, forming the common building material with
which most native houses are constructed."
1843. `An Ordinance for imposing a tax on Raupo Houses,
Session II. No. xvii. of the former Legislative Council of
New Zealand':
[From A. Domett's collection of Ordinances, 1850.]
"Section 2. . . . there shall be levied in respect of every
building constructed wholly or in part of raupo, nikau,
toitoi, wiwi, kakaho, straw or thatch of any
description [ . . . L20]."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. i.
p. 380:
"These [the walls], nine feet high and six inches thick, were
composed of neatly packed bunches of raupo, or bulrushes, lined
inside with the glazed reeds of the tohe-tohe, and outside with
the wiwi or fine grass."
1860. R. Donaldson, `Bush Lays,' p. 5:
"Entangled in a foul morass,
A raupo swamp, one name we know."
1864. F. E. Maning (Pakeha Maori), `The War in the North,'
p. 16:
"Before a war or any other important matter, the natives used
to have recourse to divination by means of little miniature
darts made of rushes or reeds, or often of the leaf of the
cooper's flag (raupo)."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 308:
"The favourite material of the Maoris for building purposes
is Raupo (Typha), a kind of flag or bulrush, which
grows in great abundance in swampy places."
1877. Anon., `Colonial Experiences, or Incidents of
Thirty-Four Years in New Zealand,' p. 10:
"It was thatched with raupo or native bulrush, and had sides
and interior partitions of the same material."
Raven, n. English bird-name. The Australian
species is Corvus coronoides, Vig. and Hors.
Razor-grinder, n. a bird-name, Seisura
inquieta, Lath. Called also Dishwasher and
Restless Fly-catcher. See Fly-catcher.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol.ii.
p. 159:
"Neither must you be astonished on hearing the razor-grinder
ply his vocation in the very depths of our solitudes; for here
he is a flying instead of a walking animal."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 87:
"Seisura Inquieta, Restless Flycatcher; the Grinder
of the Colonists of Swan River and New South Wales."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 332:
"The razor-grinder, fitly so called from making a grinding
noise as it wavers in one position a foot or two from the
ground."
Ready up, v. See quotation.
1893. `The Age,' Nov. 25, p. 13, col. 2:
"Mr. Purees: A statement has been made that is very
serious. It has been said that a great deal has been `readied
up' for the jury by the present commissioners. That is a
charge which, if true, amounts to embracery.
"His Honor: I do not know what `readying up' means.
"Mr. Purves: It is a colonial expression, meaning that
something is prepared with an object. If you `ready up' a
racehorse, you are preparing to lose, or if you `ready up'
a pack of cards, you prepare it for dealing certain suits."
Red Bass, n. a fish of Moreton Bay (q.v.),
Mesoprion superbus, Castln., family Percidae.
Redberry, n. name given to Australian plants
of the genus Rhagodia, bearing spikes or panicles of
red berries. Called also Seaberry.
See also Saloop-bush.
Red-bill, n. bird-name given to
Estrelda temporalis, Lath. It is also applied
to the Oyster-catchers (q.v.); and sometimes
to the Swamp-Hen (q.v.).
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 345:
"Lieut. Flinders taking up his gun to fire at two red-bills
. . . the natives, alarmed, ran to the woods."
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of the Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 259:
"`This bird,' says Mr. Caley, `which the settlers call
Red-bill, is gregarious, and appears at times in very large
flocks. I have killed above forty at a shot.'"
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 82:
"Estrelda temporalis. Red-eyebrowed Finch.
Red-Bill of the Colonists."
`Red Bream, n. name given to the
Schnapper when one year old. See Schnapper.
Red Cedar, n. See Cedar.
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery and
Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 434:
"M'Leay river, New South Wales, Lat. 30 degrees 40'. This
forest was found to contain large quantities of red cedar
(Cedrela toona) and white cedar (Melia azederach), which,
though very different from what is known as cedar at home,
is a valuable wood, and in much request by the colonists."
Red Currant, n. another name for the Native
Currant of Tasmania, Coprosma nitida, Hook.,
N.O. Rubiaceae. See Currant, Native.
Red Gum, n. (1) A tree. See Gum. The
two words are frequently made one with the accent on the first
syllable; compare Blue-gum.
(2) A medicinal drug. An exudation from the bark of
Eucalyptus rostrata, Schlecht, and other trees;
see quotation, 1793. Sir Ranald Martin introduced it
into European medical practice.
177 J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 178:
"At the heart they [the trees] are full of veins, through which
an amazing quantity of an astringent red gum issues. This gum
I have found very serviceable in an obstinate dysentery."
Ibid. p. 233:
"A very powerfully astringent gum-resin, of a red colour,
much resembling that known in the shops as Kino, and,
for all medical purposes, fully as efficacious."
1793. J. E. Smith, `Specimen of Botany of New Holland,'
p. 10:
"This, Mr. White informs us, is one of the trees (for there are
several, it seems, besides the Eucalyptus resinifera,
mentioned in his Voyage, p. 231) which produce the red gum."
[The tree is Ceratopetalum gummiferum, Smith, called by
him Three-leaved Red-gum Tree. It is now called
Officer Plant or Christmas-bush (q.v.).]
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 42:
"The usual red gum was observed oozing out from the bark, and
this attracted their notice, as it did that of every explorer
who had landed upon the continent. This gum is a species of
kino, and possesses powerful astringent, and probably staining,
qualities."
Red Gurnet-Perch, n. name given in Victoria to
the fish Sebastes percoides, Richards., family
Scorpaenidae. It is also called Poddly; Red
Gurnard, or Gurnet; and in New Zealand,
Pohuikaroa. See Perch and Gurnet.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 48:
"Sebastes percoides, a fish of a closely allied genus
of the same family [as Scorpaena cruenta, the red
rock-cod]. It is caught at times in Port Jackson, but has no
local name. In Victoria it is called the Red Gurnet-perch."
Redhead, n. See Firetail.
Red-knee, n. sometimes called the Red-kneed
Dottrel, Charadrius ruftveniris, formerly
Erythrogonys cinctus, Gould. A species of a genus
of Australian plovers.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 21:
"Erythrogonys Cinctus, Gould; Banded Red-knee."
Red Mulga, n. name given to a species of
Acacia, A. cyperophylla, F. v. M., owing to the red
colour of the flakes of bark which peel off the stem. See
Mulga.
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Home Expedition in Central Australia,'
Narrative, pt. i. p. 16:
"We crossed a narrow belt of country characterized by the
growth along the creek sides of red mulga. This is an Acacia
(A. cyperophylla) reaching perhaps a height of twenty
feet, the bark of which, alone amongst Acacias, is deciduous
and peels off, forming little deep-red coloured flakes."
Red Mullet, n. New South Wales, Upeneoides
vlamingii, Cuv. and Val., and Upeneus porosus,
Cuv. and Val., family Mullidae. See Mullet.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 38:
"The name of this family is a source of much confusion. It is
derived from the Latin word mullus, which in the form of
`Mullet' we apply to the well-known fishes of quite a different
family, the Mugilidae. Another fish to which the term
`Red-Mullet' is applied is of the family Cottidae or
Gurnards."
Red Perch, n. name given in Tasmania to the
fish Anthias rasor, Richards.; also called the Barber.
In Australia, it is Anthias longimanus, Gunth.
Red Rock-Cod, n. name given in New South Wales
to the fish Scorpaena cardinalis, Richards., family
Scorpaenidae, marine fishes resembling the Sea-perches.
S. cardinalis is of a beautiful scarlet colour.
Red-streaked Spider, or Black-and-red Spider,
an Australasian spider (Latrodectus scelio, Thorel.),
called in New Zealand the Katipo (q.v.).
Red-throat, n. a small brown Australian
singing-bird, with a red throat, Pyrrholaemus brunneus,
Gould.
Reed-mace, n. See Wonga
and Raupo.
Reef, n. term in gold-mining; a vein of
auriferous quartz. Called by the Californian miners a vein, or
lode, or ledge. In Bendigo, the American usage remains, the
words reef, dyke, and vein being used as
synonymous, though reef is the most common. (See quotation,
1866.) In Ballarat, the word has two distinct meanings,
viz. the vein, as above, and the bed-rock or
true-bottom. (See quotations, 1869 and 1874.) Outside
Australia, a reef means "a chain or range of rocks lying
at or near the surface of the water." (`Webster.')
1858. T. McCombie, `History of New South Wales,' c. xiv.
p. 213:
"A party . . . discovered gold in the quartz-reefs of the
Pyrenees [Victoria]."
1860. W. Kelly, `Life in Victoria,' vol. ii. p. 148:
"If experience completely establishes the fact, at least, under
existing systems, that the best-paying reefs are those that are
largely intersected with fissures--more inclined to come out in
pebbles than in blocks--or, if I might coin a designation,
`rubble reefs,' as contradistinguished from `boulder reefs,'
showing at the same time a certain degree of ignigenous
discoloration . . . still, where there are evidences of
excessive volcanic effect . . . the reef may be set down as
poor . . ."
1866. A. R. Selwyn, `Exhibition Essays,' Notes on the
Physical Geography, Geology, and Mineralogy of Victoria:
"Quartz occurs throughout the lower palaeozoic rocks in veins,
`dykes' or `reefs,' from the thickness of a thread to 130
feet."
1869. R. Brough Smyth, `Goldfields Glossary,' p. 619:
"Reef. The term is applied to the tip-turned edges of the
palaeozoic rocks. The reef is composed of slate, sandstone,
or mudstone. The bed-rock anywhere is usually called the reef.
A quartz-vein; a lode."
1874. Reginald A. F. Murray, `Progress Report, Geological
Survey, Victoria,' vol. i. p. 65 [Report on the Mineral
Resources of Ballarat]:
"This formation is the `true bottom,' `bed rock' or `reef,'
of the miners."
1894. `The Argus,' March 28, p. 5, col. 5:
"In looking for reefs the experienced miner commences on the
top of the range and the spurs, for the reason that
storm-waters have carried the soil into the gullies and left
the bed-rock exposed."
Reef, v. to work at a reef.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. iii. p. 30:
"The University graduate . . . was to be seen patiently
sluicing, or reefing, as the case might be."
[See also Quartz-reefing.]
Regent-bird, n. (1) An Australian Bower-bird,
Sericulus melinus, Lath., named out of compliment to the
Prince Regent, afterwards George IV. (therefore named before
1820).
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 161:
"Mr. Gilbert observed the female of the Regent-bird."
(2) Mock Regent-bird, now Meliphaga phrygia,
Lath.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 48:
"Zanthomyza Phrygia, Swains., Warty-faced Honey-eater
[q.v.]; Mock Regent-Bird, Colonists of New South Wales."
Remittance-man, n. one who derives the means
of an inglorious and frequently dissolute existence from the
periodical receipt of money sent out to him from Europe.
1892. R. L. Stevenson, `The Wrecker,' p. 336:
"Remittance men, as we call them here, are not so rare
in my experience; and in such cases I act upon a system."
Rewa-rewa, n. pronounced raywa, Maori
name for the New Zealand tree Knightia excelsa, R. Br.,
N.O. Proteaceae, the Honey-suckle of the New Zealand
settlers. Maori verb, rewa, to float. The seed-vessel
is just like a Maori canoe.
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand, the Britain of the
South,' vol. i. p. 143:
"Rewarewa (honeysuckle), a handsome flowering tree common on
the outskirts of the forests. Wood light and free-working: the
grain handsomely flowered like the Baltic oak."
1878. R. C. Barstow, `On the Maori Canoe,' `Transactions
of the New Zealand Institute,' vol. xi. art. iv. p. 73:
"Dry rewarewa wood was used for the charring."
1880. W. Colenso, `Traditions of the Maoris,' `Transactions
of New Zealand Institute,' vol. xiii. p. 53:
"The boy went into the forest, and brought back with him a
seed-pod of the rewarewa tree (Knightia excelsa). . . .
He made his way to his canoe, which was made like the pod of
the rewarewa tree."
1983. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 129:
"Rewarewa, a lofty, slender tree, 100 feet high. Wood
handsome, mottled red and brown, used for furniture and
shingles, and for fencing, as it splits easily. It is a most
valuable veneering wood."
Reward-Claim, n. the Australian legal term for
the large area granted as a "reward" to the miner who first
discovers valuable gold in a new district, and reports it to
the Warden of the Goldfields. The first great discovery of
gold in Coolgardie was made by Bayley in 1893, and his
reward-claim, sold to a syndicate, was known as "Bayley's
Reward." See also Prospecting Claim, and Claim.
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 11:
"Prospected with the result that he discovered the first
payable gold on the West Coast, for which he obtained
a reward claim."
Rhipidura, n. scientific name for a genus of
Australasian birds, called Fantail (q.v.). They are
Fly-catchers. The word is from Grk. rhipidos, `of a
fan,' and 'oura, `a tail.'
Ribbed Fig, n. See Fig.
Ribbonwood, n. All species of
Plagianthus and Hoheria are to the colonists
Ribbonwood, especially Plagianthus betulinus,
A. Cunn., and Hoheria populnea, A. Cunn., the bark of
which is used for cordage, and was once used for making a
demulcent drink. Alpine Ribbon-wood, Plagianthus
lyalli, Hook. Other popular names are Houhere,
Houi (Maori), Lace-bark (q.v.), and
Thousand-Jacket (q.v.).
Ribgrass, n. a Tasmanian name for the Native
Plantain. See Plantain.
Rice-flower, n. a gardeners' name for the
cultivated species of Pimalea (q.v.). The
Rice-flowers are beautiful evergreens about three feet
high, and bear rose-coloured, white, and yellow blooms.
Rice-shell, n. The name is applied elsewhere
to various shells; in Australia it denotes the shell of various
species of Truncatella, a small marine mollusc, so
called from a supposed resemblance to grains of rice,
and used for necklaces.
Richea, n. a Tasmanian Grasstree (q.v.),
Richea pandanifolia, Hook., N.O. Liliaceae.
1850. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' May 8, vol. i. p. 278:
"A section . . . of the stem of the graceful palm-like Richea
(Richea pandanifolia), found in the dense forests
between Lake St. Clair and Macquarie Harbour, where it attains
the height of 40 to 50 feet in sheltered positions,--the
venation, markings, and rich yellow colouring of which were
much admired."
1878. Rev. W. W. Spicer, `Handbook of the Plants of
Tasmania,' p. 125:
Richea pandanifolia, H. Giant Grass Tree. Peculiar to
Tasmania. Dense forests in the interior and SW."
Ridge-Myrtle, n. See Myrtle.
Rifle-bird, n. sometimes called also
Rifleman (q.v.); a bird of paradise. The male is of a
general velvety black, something like the uniform of the Rifle
Brigade. This peculiarity, no doubt, gave the bird its name,
but, on the other hand, settlers and local naturalists
sometimes ascribe the name to the resemblance they hear in the
bird's cry to the noise of a rifle being fired and its bullet
striking the target. The Rifle-bird is more famed for
beauty of plumage than any other Australian bird. There are
three species, and they are of the genus Ptilorhis,
nearly related to the Birds of Paradise of New Guinea, where
also is found the only other known species of Ptilorhis.
The chief species is Ptilorhis paradisea, Lath., the
other two species were named respectively, after the Queen and
the late Prince Consort, Victoriae and Alberti,
but some naturalists have given them other generic names.
As to the name, see also quotation, 1886. See Manucode.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 194:
"We saw . . . a rifle-bird."
1886. `Encyclopaedia Britannica,' vol. xx. p. 553:
"Rifleman-Bird, or Rifle-Bird, names given . . . probably
because in coloration it resembled the well-known uniform of
the rifle-regiments of the British army, while in its long and
projecting hypochondriac plumes and short tail a further
likeness might be traced to the hanging pelisse and the jacket
formerly worn by the members of those corps."-- [Footnote]:
"Curiously enough its English name seems to be first mentioned
in ornithological literature by Frenchmen--Lesson and
Garnot--in 1828, who say (Voy. `Coquille,' Zoologie,
p. 669) that it was applied `pour rappeler que ce fut un soldat
de la garnison [of New South Wales] qui le tua le premier,'
which seems to be an insufficient reason, though the statement
as to the bird's first murderer may be true."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 171:
"It was an Australian bird of paradise, the celebrated
Rifle-bird (Ptilorhis victoriae), which, according to
Gould, has the most brilliant plumage of all Australian birds."
Rifleman, n. a bird of New Zealand,
Acanthidositta chloris, Buller; Maori name,
Titipounamu. See quotation. The name is sometimes
applied also to the Rifle-bird (q.v.).
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 113:
"Acanthidositta chloris, Buller. The rifleman is the
smallest of our New Zealand birds. It is very generally
distributed."
[Footnote]: "This has hitherto been written
Acanthisitta; but Professor Newton has drawn my
attention to the fact of its being erroneous. I have therefore
adopted the more classic form of Acanthidositta, the
etymology of which is 'akanthid,--crude form of
'akanthis = Carduelis, and sitta = sitta."
1888. W. Smith, `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xxi. art. xxi. p. 214:
"Acanthisitta chloris (Rifleman). The feeble note of
this diminutive bird is oftener heard in the bush than the bird
is seen."
Right-of-Way, n. a lane. In England the word
indicates a legal right to use a particular passage. In
Australia it is used for the passage or lane itself.
1893. `The Argus,' Feb. 3:
"The main body of the men was located in the right-of-way,
which is overlooked by the side windows of the bureau."
Rimu, n. Maori name for a New Zealand tree,
Dacrydium cupressinum, N.O. Coniferae; also
called Red pine. Rimu is generally used
in North Island; Red pine more generally in the South.
See Pine.
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 40:
"Rimu. This elegant tree comes to its greatest perfection in
shaded woods, and in moist, rich soil."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 117:
"He lay
Couched in a rimu-tree one day."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 306:
"The Rimu Tree. Height, eighty to 100 feet, fully forty to
fifty feet clear of branches . . . moderately hard . . .
planes up smoothly, takes a good polish, would be useful to the
cabinetmaker."
1879. Clement Bunbury, `Fraser's Magazine,' June, p. 761:
"Some of the trees, especially the rimu, a species of yew, here
called a pine, were of immense size and age."
Ring, v. tr. (1) To cut the bark of a tree
round the trunk so as to kill it. The word is common in the
same sense in English forestry and horticulture, and only seems
Australasian from its more frequent use, owing to the
widespread practice of clearing the primeval forests and
generally destroying trees. "Ringed" is the correct past
participle, but "rung" is now commonly used.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i.
c. x. p. 315:
"What they call ringing the trees; that is to say, they cut
off a large circular band of bark, which, destroying the trees,
renders them easier to be felled."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 56:
The gum-trees, ringed and ragged, from the mazy margins rise."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. xx. p. 312:
"Trees to be `rung.' The ringing of trees consists of cutting
the bark through all round, so that the tree cease to suck up
the strength of the earth for its nutrition, and shall die."
1883. E. M. Curr, `Recollections of Squatting in Victoria'
(1841-1851), p. 81:
"Altogether, fences and tree-ringing have not improved the
scene."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 58:
"The trees are `rung,' that there may be more pasture for the
sheep and cattle."
(2) To make cattle move in a circle. [Though specifically used
of cattle in Australia, the word has a similar use in England
as in Tennyson's `Geraint and Enid'
. . . "My followers ring him round:
He sits unarmed."--Line 336.]
1874. W. H. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. vi. p. 111:
"They are generally `ringed,' that is, their galop is directed
into a circular course by the men surrounding them."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 126:
"I'll tell you what, you'll have to ring them. Pass the word
round for all hands to follow one another in a circle, at a
little distance apart."
(3) To move round in a circle.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' p. 20:
"The cattle were uneasy and `ringed' all night."
(4) To make the top score at a shearing-shed.
See Ringer.
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 136:
"The man that `rung' the Tubbo shed is not the ringer here."
Ring-bark, v. tr. Same meaning as Ring
(1).
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 204:
"The selector in a timbered country, without troubling himself
about cause and effect, is aware that if he destroys the tree
the grass will grow, and therefore he `ring-barks' his timber."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 9:
"Our way led us through a large but not dense wood of leafless
gumtrees. My companion told me that the forest was dead as a
result of `ring-barking.' To get the grass to grow better, the
settler removes a band of bark near the root of the tree. In a
country where cattle-raising is carried on to so great an
extent, this may be very practical, but it certainly does not
beautify the landscape. The trees die at once after this
treatment, and it is a sad and repulsive sight to see these
withered giants, as if in despair, stretching their white
barkless branches towards the sky."
1893. `Thumbnail Sketches of Australian Life,' p. 232:
"We were going through ring-barked country. You don't know
what that is? Well, those giant gum-trees absorb all the
moisture and keep the grass very poor, so the squatters kill
them by ring-barking--that is, they have a ring described round
the trunk of each tree by cutting off a couple of feet of bark.
Presently the leaves fall off; then the rest of the bark
follows, and eventually the tree becomes nothing but a strange
lofty monument of dry timber."
Ring-dollar, n. See quotation;
and see Dump and Holy Dollar.
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' c. iii. p. 131:
"The Spanish dollar was much used. A circular piece was struck
out of the centre about the size of a shilling . . . and the
rest of the dollar, called from the circular piece taken out a
`ring-dollar,' was valued at four shillings."
Ring-eye, n. one of the many names for the
birds of the genus Zosterops (q.v.).
Ringer, n. a sheep-shearing term. See
quotations. Mr. Hornung's explanation of the origin
(quotation, 1894) is probably right. See Rings.
1890. `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 6:
"A `ringer' being the man who by his superior skill and
expertness `tops the score'--that is, shears the highest number
of sheep per day."
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), Dec. 23, p. 6, col. 1:
"Whence came the term `ringer,' as applied to the quickest
shearer, I don't know. It might possibly have some association
with a man who can get quoits on to the peg, and again, it
might not, as was remarked just now by my mate, who is camped
with me."
1894. E. W. Hornung, `Boss of Taroomba,' p. 101:
"They call him the ringer of the shed. That means the fastest
shearer--the man who runs rings round the rest, eh?"
1894. `Geelong Grammar School Quarterly,' April, p. 26:
"Another favourite [school] phrase is a `regular ringer.'
Great excellence is implied by this expression."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 162:
"The Shearers sat in the firelight, hearty and hale and strong,
After the hard day's shearing, passing the joke along
The `ringer' that shore a hundred, as they never were shorn
before,
And the novice who toiling bravely had tommyhawked half a
score."
Ring-neck, n. the equivalent of Jackaroo
(q.v.). A term used in the back blocks in reference to the
white collar not infrequently worn by a Jackaroo on his
first appearance and when unaccustomed to the life of the bush.
The term is derived from the supposed resemblance of the collar
to the light- coloured band round the neck of the Ring-neck
Parrakeet.
Rings, to run round: to beat out and out. A
picturesque bit of Australian slang. One runner runs straight
to the goal, the other is so much better that he can run round
and round his competitor, and yet reach the goal first.
1891. `The Argus,' Oct.10, p. 13, col. 3:
"Considine could run rings round the lot of them."
1897. `The Argus,' Jan. 15, p. 6, col. 5:
"As athletes the cocoons can run rings round the beans;
they can jump out of a tumbler."
Ring-tail, or Ring-tailed Opossum, n.
See Pseudochirus and Opossum.
Rinka-sporum, n. a mis-spelt name for the
Australian varieties of the tribe of Rhyncosporeae,
N.O. Cyperaceae. This tribe includes twenty-one genera,
of which Rhynchospora (the type), Schaenus,
Cladium, and Remirea are widely distributed,
and the others are chiefly small genera of the Southern
Hemisphere, especially Australia. (`Century.')
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 93:
"Rinka-sporum, a mass of white bloom."
Riro-riro, n. a bird. Maori name for the
Grey-Warbler of New Zealand, Gerygone flaviventris,
Gray. See Gerygone.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 44:
[A full description.]
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 163:
"A little wren managed to squeeze itself through, and it flew
off to Kurangai-tuku, and cried, `Kurangai-tuku, the man is
riro, riro, riro!'--that is, gone, gone, gone. And to this day
the bird is known as the riro-riro."
River-Oak. See Oak.
Roa, n. another Maori name for the largest or
Brown Kiwi (q.v.). In Maori the word roa means
long or big.
Roaring Horsetails, n. a slang name for the
Aurora Australis.
Robin, n. The name, in consequence of their
external resemblance to the familiar English bird, is applied,
in Australia, to species of the various genera as follows:--
Ashy-fronted Fly-Robin--
Heteromyias cinereifrons, Ramsay.
Buff-sided R.--
Poecilodryas cerviniventris, Gould.
Dusky R.--
Amaurodryas vittata, Quoy and Gaim.
Flame-breasted Robin--
Petroica phoenicea, Gould.
Hooded R.--
Melanodryas bicolor, Vig. and Hors.
Pied R.--
M. picata, Gould.
Pink-breasted R.--
Erythrodryas rhodinogaster, Drap.
Red-capped R.--
Petroica goodenovii, Vig. and Hors.
Red-throated R.--
P. ramsayi, Sharp.
Rose-breasted R.--
Erythrodryas rosea, Gould.
Scarlet-breasted R.--
Petroica leggii, Sharp.
Scrub R.--
Drymodes brunneopygia, Gould.
White-browed R.
Poecilodryas superciliosa, Gould.
White-faced Scrub-R.--
Drymodes superciliaris, Gould.
The New Zealand species are--
Chatham Island Robin--
Miro traversi, Buller.
North Island R.--
M. australis, Sparrm.
South Island R.--
M. albifrons, Gmel.
Gould's enumeration of the species is given below. [See
quotations, 1848, 1869.]
See also Shrike-Robin, Scrub-Robin,
and Satin-Robin.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of the Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 242:
"`This bird,' Mr. Caley says, `is called yellow-robin by the
colonists. It is an inhabitant of bushes'"
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii:
Plate
Petroica superciliosa, Gould, White-eyebrowed
Robin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 9
Drymodes brunneopygia, Gould, Scrub Robin. . 10
Eopsaltria leucogaster, Gould,
White-bellied Robin . . . . . . . 13
1864. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 263:
"Very soon comes a robin. . . . In the bush no matter
where you pitch, the robin always comes about, and when any
other of his tribe comes about, he bristles up his feathers,
and fights for his crumbs. . . . He is not at all pretty,
like the Australian or European robin, but a little sober black
and grey bird, with long legs, and a heavy paunch and big head;
like a Quaker, grave, but cheerful and spry withal." [This is
the Robin of New Zealand.]
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 93:
"The New Zealand robin was announced, and I could see only a
fat little ball of a bird, with a yellowish-white breast."
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia' [Supplement]:
Drymodes superciliaris, Gould, Eastern Scrub Robin.
Petroica cerviniventris, Gould, Buff-sided Robin.
Eopsaltria capito, Gould, Large-headed Robin.
E. leucura, Gould, White-tailed Robin.
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 239:
"The large red-breasted robin, kinsman true
Of England's delicate high-bred bird of home."
1880. Mrs.Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 123:
"The Robin is certainly more brilliantly beautiful than his
English namesake. . . . Black, red and white are the
colours of his dress, worn with perfect taste. The black is
shining jet, the red, fire, and the white, snow. There is a
little white spot on his tiny black-velvet cap, a white bar
across his pretty white wings, and his breast is, a living
flame of rosy, vivid scarlet."
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 235:
"Here, too, the `careful robin eyes the delver's toil,' and as
he snatches the worm from the gardener's furrow, he turns to us
a crimson-scarlet breast that gleams in the sun beside the
golden buttercups like a living coal. The hues of his English
cousin would pale beside him ineffectual."
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 54:
"The flame-breasted robin no longer lingers showing us his
brilliant breast while he sings out the cold grey afternoons
in his tiny treble. He has gone with departing winter."
Rock-Cod, n. called also Red-Cod in New
Zealand, Pseudophycis barbatus, Gunth., family
Gadidae. In New Zealand the Blue-Cod(q.v.) is
also called Rock-Cod. Species of the allied genus
Lotella are also called Rock-Cod in New South
Wales. See Beardy and Ling.
1883. `Royal Commission on the Fisheries of Tasmania,' p. 40:
"A variety known to fishermen as the deep-water, or Cape-cod.
. . . It would appear that the latter is simply the mature form
of the `rock-cod,' which enters the upper waters of estuaries
in vast numbers during the month of May. . . The rock-cod
rarely exceeds 2 1/2 lbs. weight."
Rocket, Native, a Tasmanian name for Epacris
lanuginosa, Lab., N.O. Epacrideae. See
Epacris.
Rock Lily, n. See under Lily.
Rock-Ling, n. a marine fish. The Australian
R. is Genypterus australis, Castln., family
Ophidiidae. The European R. belongs to the genera
Onos and Rhinonemus, formerly Motella.
Of the genus Genypterus, Guenther says they have an
excellent flesh, like cod, well adapted for curing. At the
Cape they are known by the name of "Klipvisch," and in New
Zealand as Ling, or Cloudy-Bay Cod.
Rock-Native, or Native, n. a name
given to the fish called a Schnapper when it has
ceased to "school." See Schnapper.
Rock-Parrakeet, n. an Australian
Grass-Parrakeet(q.v.), Euphema petrophila, Gould.
It gets its name from its habitat, the rocks and crags.
Rock-Pebbler, n. another name for the
Black-tailed Parrakeet. See Parrakeet.
Rock-Perch, n. the name given in Melbourne
to the fish Glyphidodon victoriae, Gunth., family
Pomacentridae, or Coral-fishes. It is not
a true Perch.
Rock-shelter, n. a natural cave-dwelling
of the aborigines. See Gibber-Gunyah.
1891. R. Etheridge, jun., in `Records of the Australian
Museum,' vol. i. No. viii. p. 171 (`Notes on Rock
Shelters or Gibba-gunyahs at Deewhy Lagoon'):
". . . The Shelters are of the usual type seen throughout the
Port Jackson district, recesses in the escarpment, overhung by
thick, more or less tabular masses of rock, in some cases dry
and habitable, in others wet and apparently never used by the
Aborigines."
Rock-Wallaby, n. the popular name for any
animal of the genus Petrogale (q.v.). There are six
species--
Brush-tailed Rock-Wallaby--
Petrogale penicillata, Gray.
Little R.-W.--
P. concinna, Gould.
Plain-coloured R.-W.--
P. inornata, Gould.
Rock-W., or West-Australian R.-W.--
P. lateralis, Gould.
Short-eared R.-W.--
P. brachyotis, Gould.
Yellow-footed R.-W.--
P. xanthopus, Gray.
See Wallaby.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. viii. p. 58:
"A light, active chap, spinning over the stones like a rock
wallaby."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 119:
"They rode and rode, but Warrigal was gone like a rock
wallaby."
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 43:
"The Rock-Wallabies are confined to the mainland of Australia,
on which they are generally distributed, but are unknown in
Tasmania. Although closely allied to the true Wallabies, their
habits are markedly distinct, the Rock-Wallabies frequenting
rugged, rocky districts, instead of the open plains."
Roger Gough, n. an absurd name given to the
tree Baloghia lucida, Endl., N.O. Euphorbiaceae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 382:
"Scrub, or brush bloodwood, called also `Roger Gough.'"
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 5:
"Who were Messrs. James Donnelly, James Low, and Roger Gough
that their names should have been bestowed on trees? Were they
growers or buyers of timber? Was the first of the list any
relative of the Minnesota lawyer who holds strange views about
a great cryptogram in Shakespeare's plays? Was the last of the
three any relative of the eminent soldier who won the battles
of Sobraon and Ferozeshah? Or, as is more probable, were the
names mere corruptions of aboriginal words now lost?"
Roll up, v. intr. to gather, to assemble.
1887. J. Farrell, `How he died,' p. 26:
"The miners all rolled up to see the fun."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xx. p. 185:
"At the Warraluen and other gold towns, time after time the
ominous words `roll up' had sounded forth, generally followed
by the gathering of a mighty crowd."
Roll-up, n. a meeting. See preceding verb.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xxxv. p. 308:
"Making as much noise as if you'd hired the bell-man for a
roll-up?"
Roly-poly Grass, or Roley-poley, n.
name given to Panicum macractinium, Benth.,
N.O. Gramineae; and also to Salsola Kali,
Linn., N.O. Salsolaceae. See Grass.
1859. D. Bunce, `Travels with Dr. Leichhardt in Australia,'
pp. 167-8:
"Very common to these plains, was a large-growing
salsolaceous plant, belonging to the
Chenopodeaceae, of Jussieu. These weeds grow in the
form of a large ball. . . . No sooner were a few of these
balls (or, as we were in the habit of calling them,
`rolly-poleys') taken up with the current of air, than the
mules began to kick and buck. . . ."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. ii. p. 468:
"A salsolaceous plant growing in the form of a ball several
feet high. In the dry season it withers, and is easily broken
off and rolled about by the winds, whence it is called
roley-poly by the settlers."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 100:
"Roly-Poly Grass. This species produces immense dry and
spreading panicles; it is perennial, and seeds in November and
December. It is a somewhat straggling species, growing in
detached tufts, on sand-hills and sandy soil, and much relished
by stock."
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Horne Expedition in Central
Australia,' Narrative, p. 13:
"On the loamy flats, and even gibber plains, the most
noticeable plant is Salsola kali, popularly known as the
Rolly-polly. It is, when mature, one of the characteristically
prickly plants of the Lower Steppes, and forms great spherical
masses perhaps a yard or more in diameter."
Roman-Lamp Shell, name given in Tasmania to a
brachiopod mollusc, Waldheimia flavescens, Lamarck.
Roo, a termination, treated earlier as the name of an
animal. It is the termination of potoroo, wallaroo,
kangaroo. See especially the last. It may be added
that it is very rare for aboriginal words to begin with the
letter `r.'
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales' [Observations at
the end, by Mr. John Hunter, the celebrated surgeon]:
Plate p. 272--A kangaroo. Description of teeth.
Plate p. 278--Wha Tapoua Roo, about the size of a Racoon
[probably an opossum].
Plate p. 286--A Poto Roo or Kangaroo-Rat.
Plate p. 288--Hepoona Roo.
Rope, v. tr. to catch a horse or bullock with a noosed
rope. It comes from the Western United States, where it has
superseded the original Spanish word lasso, still used
in California.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. xxi. p. 150:
"You could `rope' . . . any Clifton colt or filly, back them
in three days, and within a week ride a journey."
Ropeable, adj. (1) Of cattle; so wild and
intractable as to be capable of subjection only by being roped.
See preceding word.
(2) By transference: intractable, angry, out of temper.
1891. `The Argus,' Oct. 10, p. 13, col. 4:
"The service has shown itself so `ropeable' heretofore that
one experiences now a kind of chastened satisfaction in seeing
it roped and dragged captive at Sir Frederick's saddle-bow."
1896. Modern. In school-boy slang: "You must not chaff him,
he gets so ropeable."
Roping-pole, n. a long pole used for casting
a rope over an animal's head in the stockyard.
1880. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. iv. p. 44:
"I happened to knock down the superintendent with a
roping-pole."
1895. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 125:
"I'm travelling down the Castlereagh and I'm a station-hand,
I'm handy with the ropin'-pole, I'm handy with the brand,
And I can ride a rowdy colt, or swing the axe all day,
But there's no demand for a station-hand along the Castlereagh."
Rosary-shell, n. In Europe, the name is
applied to any marine gastropod shell of the genus
Monodonta. In Australia, it is applied to the shell
of Nerita atrata, Lamarck, a marine mollusc of small
size and black colour used for necklaces, bracelets, and
in place of the "beads" of a rosary.
Rose, n. name given to the Australian shrub,
Boronia serrulata, Sm., N.O. Rutaceae. It has
bright green leaves and very fragrant rose-coloured flowers.
Rose-Apple, n. another name for the Sweet
Plum. See under Plum.
Rose-bush, a timber-tree, Eupomatia laurina,
R. Br., N.O. Anonaceae.
Rose-hill, n. The name is given by Gould as
applied to two Parrakeets--
(1) Platycercus eximius, Vig. and Hors., called by the
Colonists of New South Wales, and by Gould, the Rose-hill
Parrakeet.
(2) Platycercus icterotis, Wagl., called by the
Colonists of Swan River, Western Australia, the
Rose-hill, and by Gould the Earl of Derby's
Parrakeet.
The modern name for both these birds is Rosella (q.v.),
though it is more specifically confined to the first.
`Rose-hill' was the name of the Governor's residence
at Parramatta, near Sydney, in the early days of the settlement
of New South Wales, and the name Rosella is a settler's
corruption of Rose-hiller, though the erroneous
etymology from the Latin rosella (sc. `a little rose')
is that generally given. The word Rosella, however,
is not a scientific name, and does not appear as the name
of any genus or species; it is vernacular only, and no settler
or bushman is likely to have gone to the Latin to form it.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pl. 27:
"Platycercus eximius, Vig. & Hors. Rose-hill
Parrakeet; Colonists of New South Wales."
Ibid. vol. v. pl. 29:
"Platycercus icterotis, Wagl. The Earl of Derby's
Parrakeet; Rose-hill of the Colonists [of Swan River]."
Rosella, n. (1) A bird, Platycercus
eximius, the Rosehill (q.v.).
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 80:
"The common white cockatoo, and the Moreton Bay Rosella parrot,
were very numerous."
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 99:
"Saw the bright rosellas fly,
With breasts that glowed like sunsets
In the fiery western sky."
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 13, col. 5:
"The solitudes where the lorikeets and rosellas chatter."
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 60:
"As [the race] sweeps past the Stand every year in a close
bright mass the colours, of the different clubs, are as
dazzling and gay in the sun as a brilliant flight of galahs
and rosellas."
(2) In Northern Australia, it is a slang name for a European
who works bared to the waist, which some, by a gradual process
of discarding clothing, acquire the power of doing. The
scorching of the skin by the sun produces a colour which
probably suggested a comparison with the bright scarlet of the
parrakeet so named.
Rosemary, n. name given to the shrub
Westringia dampieri, R. Br., N.0. Labiatae.
1703. W. Dampier, `Voyage to New Holland,' vol. iii. p. 138:
"There grow here 2 or 3 sorts of Shrubs, one just like
Rosemary; and therefore I call'd this Rosemary Island.
It grew in great plenty here, but had no smell."
[This island is in or near Shark's Bay]
Rosemary, Golden, n. name given in Tasmania
to the plant Oxylobium ellipticum, R. Br.,
N.O. Leguminosae.
Rosemary, Wild, a slender Australian timber-tree,
Cassinia laevis, R. Br., N.O. Compositae.
Rose, Native, n. i.q. Bauera (q.v.).
Rosewood, name given to the timber of three trees.
(1) Acacia glaucescens, Willd., N.O. Leguminosae;
called also Brigalow, Mountain Brigalow, and
Myall.
(2) Dysoxylon fraserianum, Benth.,
N.O. Meliaceae; called also Pencil Cedar.
(3) Eremophila mitchelli, Benth. N.O. Myoporinae;
called also Sandalwood.
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 203:
"One or two trees of a warmer green, of what they call
`rosewood,' I believe gave a fine effect, relieving the sober
greyish green of the pendent acacia."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition' p. 4:
"The Rosewood Acacia of Moreton Bay."
Rough, or Roughy, or Ruffy,
or Ruffie, n. a Victorian fish, Arripis
georgianus, Cuv. and Val., family Percidae.
Arripis is the genus of the Australian fish called
Salmon, or Salmon-trout, A. salar, Gunth.
See Salmon.
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June 19, 1881:
"Common fish, such as trout, ruffies mullet . . . and others."
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Fisheries, Second Schedule'
[Close Season]:
"Rough, or Roughy."
Rough Fig, n. See under Fig-tree.
Rough-leaved Fig, n. See under Fig-tree.
Round, v. trans., contraction of the verb to
round-up, to bring a scattered herd together; used in
all grazing districts, and common in the Western United States.
1894. `The Argus,' June 23, p. 11, col. 4:
"A friend of mine who has spent many a night rounding the mob
on lonely Queensland cattle camps where hostile blacks were as
thick as dingoes has a peculiar aversion to one plain covered
with dead gums, because the curlews always made him feel
miserable when crossing it at night."
Round Yam, n. i.q. Burdekin Vine.
See under Vine.
Rouseabout, n. a station-hand put on to any
work, a Jack of all work, an `odd man.' The form `roustabout'
is sometimes used, but the latter is rather an American word
(Western States), in the sense of a labourer on a river boat, a
deck-hand who assists in loading and unloading.
1887. J. Farrell, `How he died,' p. 19:
"It may be the rouseabout swiper who rode for the doctor that
night,
Is in Heaven with the hosts of the Blest, robed and sceptred,
and splendid with light."
18W. `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 6:
"The `rouseabouts' are another class of men engaged in shearing
time, whose work is to draft the sheep, fill the pens for the
shearers, and do the branding. . . . The shearers hold themselves
as the aristocrats of the shed; and never associate with the
rouseabouts."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 58:
"While we sat there, a rouseabout came to the door. `Mountain
Jim's back,' he said. There was no `sir' in the remark of
this lowest of stationhands to his master."
1894. `Sydney Morning Herald' (date lost):
"A rougher person--perhaps a happier--is the rouseabout, who
makes himself useful in the shearing shed. He is clearly a man
of action. He is sometimes with less elegance, and one would
say less correctly, spoken of as a roustabout."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 98 [Title of
poem, `Middleton's Rouseabout']:
"Flourishing beard and sandy,
Tall and robust and stout;
This is the picture of Andy,
Middleton's Rouseabout."
Rowdy, adj. troublesome. Common slang,
but unusual as applied to a bullock or a horse.
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 69:
"Branding or securing a troublesome or, colonially, a `rowdy'
bullock."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River, p. 125:
"And I can ride a rowdy colt, or swing the axe all day."
Rua, n. Maori word (used in North Island)
for a pit, cave or hole. A place for storing roots,
such as potatoes, etc. Formerly some of these rua
had carved entrances.
Ruffy or Ruffie, n. a fish.
See Rough or Roughy.
Run, n. (1) Tract of land over which sheep or
cattle may graze. It is curious that what in England is called
a sheep-walk, in Australia is a sheep-run. In the Western
United States it is a sheep-ranch. Originally the squatter, or
sheep-farmer, did not own the land. It was unfenced, and he
simply had the right of grazing or "running" his sheep or
cattle on it. Subsequently, in many cases, he purchased the
freehold, and the word is now applied to a large station
property, fenced or unfenced. (See quotation, 1883.)
1826. Goldie, in Bischoff's `Van Diemen's Land' (1832),
p. 157:
"It is generally speaking a good sheep-run."
1828. Report of Van Diemen's band Company, in Bischoff's
`Van Diemen's Land' (1832), p. 117:
"A narrow slip of good sheep-run down the west coast."
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 8, p. 4, col. 3:
"The thousand runs stated as the number in Port Phillip under
the new regulations will cost L12,800,000."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 367:
"`Runs,' land claimed by the squatter as sheep-walks, open, as
nature left them, without any improvement from the squatter."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 78:
"The runs of the Narran wide-dotted with sheep,
And loud with the lowing of cattle."
1864. W. Westgarth, `Colony of Victoria,' p. 273:
"Here then is a squatting domain of the old unhedged stamp.
The station or the `run,' as these squatting areas are called,
borders upon the Darling, along which river it possesses a
frontage of thirty-five lineal miles, with a back area of 800
square miles."
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, Founder of Victoria,' p. 34:
"The desire of some to turn Van Diemen's Land into a large
squatter's run, by the passing of the Impounding Act, was the
immediate cause, he told us, of his taking up the project of a
poor man's country elsewhere."
1870. `/Delta/,' `Studies in Rhyme,' p. 26:
"Of squatters' runs we've oft been told,
The People's Lands impairing."
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 73
[Note]:
"A run is the general term for the tract of country on which
Australians keep their stock, or allow them to `run.'"
(2) The bower of the Bowerbird (q.v.).
1840. `Proceedings of the Zoological Society,' p. 94:
"They are used by the birds as a playing-house, or `run,'
as it is termed, and are used by the males to attract
the females."
Run-about, n. and adj.
Run-abouts are cattle left to graze at will,
and the runabout-yard is the enclosure for homing them.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xviii. p. 218:
"`Open that gate, Piambook,' said Ernest gravely, pointing to
the one which led into the `run-about' yard."
Run-hunting, exploring for a new run. See Run.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. xix. p. 238:
"What do you say if I go run-hunting with you?"
Running-Postman, n. a Tasmanian plant,
i.q. Coral-Pea. See Kennedya.
Ruru, n. Maori name for the New Zealand bird,
the More-pork, Athene novae-zelandiae,
Gmel. (q.v.).
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 45:
"The ruru's voice re-echoes, desolate."
Rush, v. (1) Of cattle: to charge a man.
Contraction for to rush-at.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 122:
"When not instigated by terror, wild cattle will seldom attack
the traveller; even of those which run at him, or `rush,' as it
is termed, few will really toss or gore, or even knock him
down."
(2) To attack sheep; i.e. to cause them to rush about
or away.
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 153:
"Sometimes at night this animal [the dingo] will leap into the
fold amongst the timid animals [sheep] and so `rush' them--that
is, cause them to break out and disperse through the bush."
(3) To break through a barrier (of men or materials).
Contraction for to rush past or through;
e.g. to rush a cordon of policemen; to rush a fence
(i.e. to break-down or climb-over it).
(4) To take possession of, or seize upon, either by force or
before the appointed time. Compare Jump.
1896. Modern:
"Those who had no tickets broke through and rushed all the
seats."
"The dancers becoming very hungry did not stand on ceremony,
but rushed the supper."
(5) To flood with gold-seekers.
1887. H. H. Hayter, `Christmas Adventure,' p. 3:
"The Bald Hill had just been rushed, and therefore
I decided to take up a claim."
Rush, n. (1) The hurrying off of diggers
to a new field.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 86:
"We had a long conversation on the `rush,' as it was termed."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' pt. i., p. 19:
"Arouse you, my comrades, for rush is the word,
Advance to the strife with a pick for a sword."
1890. `The Argus,' June 13, p. 6, col. 2:
"Fell Timber Creek, where a new rush had set in."
(2) A place where gold is found, and to which consequently
a crowd of diggers "rush."
1855. William Howitt, `Land, Labour and Gold; or Two Years
in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 172:
"It is a common practice for them to mark out one or more
claims in each new rush, so as to make sure if it turn out
well. But only one claim at a time is legal and tenable.
This practice is called shepherding."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), May 22, p. 34, col. 1:
"The Palmer River rush is a perfect swindle."
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for Mail,' p. 34:
"Off we set to the Dunstan rush, just broken out."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 92:
"Morinish, was a worked-out rush close to Rockhampton, where
the first attempt at gold-digging had been made in Queensland."
(3) A stampede of cattle.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 102:
"A confused whirl of dark forms swept before him, and the camp,
so full of life a minute ago, is desolate. It was `a rush,' a
stampede."
Rush-broom, n. Australian name for the
indigenous shrub Viminaria denudata, Sm.,
N.O. Leguminosae. The flowers are orange-yellow.
In England, it is cultivated in greenhouses.
Rusty Fig, n. See under Fig-tree.
S
Saddle, Colonial, n.
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 53:
"The colonial saddle is a shapeless, cumbersome fabric,
made of rough leather, with a high pommel and cantle, and huge
knee-pads, weighing on an average twenty pounds. The greatest
care is necessary to prevent such a diabolical machine from
giving a horse a sore back."
[Mr. Finch-Hatton's epithet is exaggerated. The saddle is
well adapted to its peculiar local purposes. The projecting
knee-pads, especially, save the rider from fractured knee-caps
when galloping among closely timbered scrub. The ordinary
English saddle is similarly varied by exaggeration of different
parts to suit special requirements, as e.g. in the military
saddle, with its enormous pommel; the diminutive racing saddle,
to meet handicappers' "bottom-weights," etc. The mediaeval
saddle had its turret-like cantle for the armoured spearman.]
Saddle-Back, n. a bird of the North Island of
New Zealand, Creadion carunculatus, Cab. See also
Jack-bird and Creadion.
1868. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,' Essay on
Ornithology, by W. Buller, vol. i. p. 5:
"The Saddle-back (Creadion carunculatus) of the North
is represented in the South by C. cinereus, a closely allied
species."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 64:
"It is the sharp, quick call of the saddle-back."
1886. A. Reischek, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xix. art. xxiii. p. 102:
"The bird derives its popular name from a peculiarity in the
distribution of its two strongly contrasting colours, uniform
black, back and shoulders ferruginous, the shoulders of the
wings forming a saddle. In structure it resembles the starling
(Sturnidae); it has also the wedge bill."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 18:
"Creadion Carunculatus. This bird derives its popular
name from a peculiarity in the distribution of its too strongly
contrasted colours, black and ferruginous, the latter of which
covers the back, forms a sharply-defined margin across the
shoulders, and sweeps over the wings in a manner suggestive of
saddle-flaps."
Sagg, n. the name given in Tasmania to the
plant Xerotes longifolia, R. Br., N.O. Junceae,
and also to the White Iris, Diplarhena morcaea.
Saliferous, adj. salt-bearing. See
Salt-bush. The word is used in geology in ordinary
English, but the botanical application is Australian.
1890. E. W. Hornung, `A Bride from the Bush,' p. 277:
"You have only to cover the desert with pale-green saliferous
bushes, no higher than a man's knee."
Sallee, n. aboriginal name for many varieties
of the Acacia (q.v.).
Sally, Sallow, n. corruptions of the
aboriginal word Sallee (q.v.). There are many
varieties, e.g. Black-Sally, White-Sally, etc.
Salmon, n. The English Salmon is being
acclimatised with difficulty in Tasmania and New Zealand;
the Trout more successfully. But in all Australian,
New Zealand, and Tasmanian waters there is a marine fish
which is called Salmon; it is not the true Salmon of the
Old World, but Arripis salar, Gunth., and called
in New Zealand by the Maori name Kahawai. The fish
is often called also Salmon-Trout. The young is
called Samson-fish (q.v.).
1798. D. Collins, `Account of the English Colony of New South
Wales,' p. 136:
[Sept. 1790.] "Near four thousand of a fish, named by us,
from its shape only, the Salmon, being taken at two hauls
of the seine. Each fish weighed on an average about five
pounds."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 93:
"The kawai has somewhat of the habits of the salmon, entering
during spring and summer into the bays, rivers, and fresh-water
creeks in large shoals."
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 393:
"Arripis salar, South Australia. Three species are
known, from the coasts of Southern Australia and New Zealand.
They are named by the colonists Salmon or Trout, from their
elegant form and lively habits, and from the sport they afford
to the angler."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 35:
"Arripis salar, Gunth., is in the adult state the salmon
of the Australian fishermen, and their salmon trout is the
young. . . . The most common of all Victorian fishes
. . . does not resemble the true salmon in any important
respect . . . It is the A. truttaceus of Cuvier
and Valenciennes."
Salmon-Trout, n. i.q. Salmon (q.v.).
Saloop-bush, n. name given to an erect
soft-stemmed bush, Rhagodia hastata, R. Br.,
N.O. Salsolaceae, one of the Australian Redberries,
two to three feet high. See Redberry and Salt-bush.
Salsolaceous, adj. belongs to the natural order
Salsolaceae. The shrubs of the order are not peculiar
to Australia, but are commoner there than elsewhere.
1837. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 906:
"Passing tufts of samphire and salsolaceous plants."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' c. xlii. (`Century'):
"It is getting hopeless now . . . sand and nothing but sand.
The salsolaceous plants, so long the only vegetation we have
seen, are gone."
Salt-bush, n. and adj. the wild alkaline
herb or shrub, growing on the interior plains of Australia,
on which horses and sheep feed, of the N.O. Salsolaceae.
The genera are Atriplex, Kochia, and Rhagodia.
Of the large growth, A. nummularium, Lindl.,
and of the dwarf species, A. vesicarium, Heward,
and A. halimoides, Lindl., are the commonest.
Some species bear the additional names of Cabbage
Salt-bush, Old-Man Salt-bush, Small Salt-bush,
Blue-bush, Cotton-bush, Saloop-bush, etc.
Some varieties are very rich in salt. Rhagodia
parabolica, R. Br., for instance, according to
Mr. Stephenson, who accompanied Sir T. Mitchell in one of his
expeditions, yields as much as two ounces of salt by boiling
two pounds of leaves.
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' c. ii. p. 89:
"This inland salt-bush country suits the settler's purpose
well."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 144:
"The ground is covered with the sage-coloured salt-bush
all the year round, but in the winter it blooms with flowers."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. xxi. p. 262:
"How glorious it will be to see them pitching into that lovely
salt-bush by the lake."
1892. E. W. Hornung, `Under Two Skies,' p. 11:
"The surrounding miles of salt-bush plains and low monotonous
scrub oppressed her when she wandered abroad. There was not
one picturesque patch on the whole dreary run."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 92:
"Over the miles of the salt-bush plain--
The shining plain that is said to be
The dried-up bed of an inland sea.
. . . . . . . . . . . .
For those that love it and understand,
The salt-bush plain is a wonderland."
Samson-fish, n. name given in Sydney to
Seriola hippos, Gunth., family Carangidae;
and in Melbourne to the young of Arripis salar,
Richards., family Percidae. See Salmon.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 60:
"The samson-fish (Senola hippos, Gunth.) is occasionally
caught. The great strength of these fishes is remarkable, and
which probably is the cause that gave it the name of
Samson-fish, as sailors or shipwrights give to the name of a
strong post resting on the keelson of a ship, and supporting
the upper beam, and bearing all the weight of the deck cargo
near the hold, Samson-post."
Sandalwood, n. The name is given to many
Australian trees from the strong scent of their timber.
They are --
Of the N.O. Santalaceae--
Exocarpos latifolia, R. Br.; called
Scrub-Sandalwood.
Fusanus spicatus, R. Br.; called Fragrant
Sandalwood.
Santalum lanceolatum, R. Br.
S. obtusifodum, R. Br.
Santalum persicarium, F. v. M.; called Native
Sandalwood.
Of the N.O. Myoporinae--
Eremophila mitchelli, Benth.; called also
Rosewood and Bastard-Sandalwood.
E. sturtii, R. Br.; called curiously the Scentless
Sandalwood.
Myoporum platycarpum, R. Br.; called also Dogwood
(q.v.).
Of the N.O. Apocyneae--
Alyxia buxifolia, R. Br.; called Native
Sandalwood in Tasmania.
Sandfly-bush, n. Australian name
for the indigenous tree Zieria smithii, Andr.,
N.O. Rutaceae. Called also Turmeric,
and in Tasmania, Stinkwood.
Sand-Lark, n. name given in Australia to the
Red-capped Dottrel, Charadrius ruficapilla, Temm.
1867. W. Richardson, `Tasmanian Poems,' pref. p. xi:
"The nimble sand-lark learns his pretty note."
Sandpiper, n. About twenty species of this
familiar sea-bird exist. It belongs especially to the Northern
Hemisphere, but it performs such extensive migrations that in
the northern winter it is dispersed all over the world.
(`Century.') The species observed in Australia are--
Bartram's Sandpiper--
Tringa bartrami.
Common S.--
Actitis hypoleucos, Linn.
Great S.--
Tringa crassirostris, Temm. and Schleg.
Grey-rumped S.--
T. brevisses.
Sandplover, n. a bird of New Zealand.
According to Professor Parker, only two genera of this common
bird are to be found in New Zealand. There is no bird bearing
the name in Australia. See Plover and Wry-billed
Plover.
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 116:
"But two genera of the group [Wading Birds] are found only in
New Zealand, the Sandplover and the curious Wry-billed Plover."
Sand-stay, n. a characteristic name for the
Coast Tea-Tree, Leptospermum laevigatum,
F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae. See Tea-Tree.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 642:
"Sandstay. Coast Tea-Tree. This shrub is the most effectual
of all for arresting the progress of driftsand in a warm
climate. It is most easily raised by simply scattering in
autumn the seeds on the sand, and covering them loosely with
boughs, or, better still, by spreading lopped-off branches of
the shrub itself, bearing ripe seed, on the sand. (Mueller.)"
Sandy, n. a Tasmanian fish, Uphritis
urvillii, Cuv. and Val, family Trachinidae; also
called the Fresh-water Flathead. See Flathead.
Sandy-blight, n. a kind of ophthalmia common in
Australia, in which the eye feels as if full of sand. Called
also shortly, Blight.
Shakspeare has sand-blind (M. of V. II. ii. 31);
Launcelot says--
"0 heavens, this is my true-begotten father! who, being
more than sand-blind, high-gravel blind, knows me not."
On this, the American commentator, Mr. Rolfe, notes--
"Sand-blind. Dim of sight; as if there were sand in the
eye, or perhaps floating before it. It means something more
than purblind."
"As if there were sand in the eye,"--an admirable description
of the Australian Sandy-blight.
1869. J. F. Blanche, `The Prince's Visit,' p. 20:
"The Prince was suff'ring from the sandy blight."
1870. E. B. Kennedy, `Four Years in Queensland,' p. 46:
"Sandy-blight occurs generally in sandy districts in the North
Kennedy; it may be avoided by ordinary care, and washing the
eyes after a hot ride through sandy country. It is a species
of mild ophthalmia."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 78:
"He had pretty near lost his eyesight with the sandy blight,
which made him put his head forward when he spoke, as if he
took you for some one else, or was looking for what he couldn't
find."
Sarcophile, and Sarcophilus, n. the
scientific name of the genus of carnivorous marsupial animals
of which the Tasmanian Devil (q.v.) is the only known
living species.(Grk. sarkos, flesh, and philein,
to love.)
Sardine, n. name given in Australia to a
fresh-water fish, Chatoessus erebi, Richards., of the
herring tribe, occurring in West and North-West Australia, and
in Queensland rivers, and which is called in the Brisbane river
the Sardine. It is the Bony Bream of the New
South Wales rivers, and the Perth Herring of Western
Australia.
Sarsaparilla, Australian or Native,
n. (1) An ornamental climbing shrub, Hardenbergia
monophylla, Benth., N.O. Leguminosae. Formerly
called Kennedya (q.v.).
(2) Smilax glycyphylla, Smith, N.0. Liliaceae.
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 114:
"Native Sarsaparilla. The roots of this beautiful purple-
flowered twiner (Hardenbergia monophylla) are used by
bushmen as a substitute for the true sarsaparilla, which is
obtained from a widely different plant."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 189:
"Commonly, but wrongly, called `Native Sarsaparilla.' The
roots are sometimes used by bushmen as a substitute for the
true sarsaparilla (Smilax), but its virtues are purely
imaginary. It is a common thing in the streets of Sydney,
to see persons with large bundles of the leaves on their
shoulders, doubtless under the impression that they have the
leaves of the true Sarsaparilla, Smilax glycyphylla."
1896. `The Argus,' Sept. 8, p. 7, col. 1:
"He will see, too, the purple of the sarsaparilla on the
hill-sides, and the golden bloom of the wattle on the flats,
forming a beautiful contrast in tint. Old diggers consider the
presence of sarsaparilla and the ironbark tree as indicative of
the existence of golden wealth below. Whether these can be
accepted as indicators in the vegetable kingdom of gold below
is questionable, but it is nevertheless a fact that the
sarsaparilla and the ironbark tree are common on most of
Victoria's goldfields."
Sassafras, n. corruption of Saxafas,
which is from Saxifrage. By origin, the word means
"stone-breaking," from its medicinal qualities. The true
Sassafras (S. officinale) is the only species of
the genus. It is a North-American tree, about forty feet high,
but the name has been given to various trees in many parts of
the world, from the similarity, either of their appearance or
of the real or supposed medicinal properties of their bark.
In Australia, the name is given to--
Atherosperma moschatum, Labill.,
N.0. Monimiaceae; called Native Sassafras,
from the odour of its bark, due to an essential oil
closely resembling true Sassafras in odour. (Maiden.)
Beilschmiedia obtusifolia, Benth.,
N.0. Lauraceae; called Queensland Sassafras,
a large and handsome tree.
Cryptocarya glaucescens, R. Br., N.0. Lauraceae;
the Sassafras of the early days of New South Wales, and
now called Black Sassafras.
Daphnandra micrantha, Benth., N.0. Monimiaceae,
called also Satinwood, and Light Yellow-wood.
Doryphora sassafras, Endl., N.0. Monimiaceae.
Grey Sassafras is the Moreton-Bay Laurel.
See Laurel.
The New Zealand Sassafras is Laurelia novae-zelandiae.
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 134:
"The leaves of these have been used as substitutes for tea in
the colony, as have also the leaves and bark of Cryptocarya
glaucescens, the Australian sassafras."
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. ii. p. 166:
"The beautiful Tasmanian sassafras-tree is also a dweller in
some parts of our fern-tree valleys. . . . The flowers are
white and fragrant, the leaves large and bright green, and the
bark has a most aromatic scent, besides being, in a decoction,
an excellent tonic medicine. . . . The sawyers and other
bushmen familiar with the tree call it indiscriminately
`saucifax,' `sarserfrax,' and `satisfaction.'"
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 206:
"A Tasmanian timber. Height, 40 ft.; dia., 14 in. Found on
low, marshy ground. Used for sashes and doorframes."
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue--Economic Woods,' No. 36:
"Atherosperma moschatum, Victorian sassafras-tree,
N.O. Monimiaceae."
Satin-bird, n. another name for the Satin
Bower-bird. See Bower-bird.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean Society,'
vol. xv. p. 264:
The natives call it Cowry, the colonists Satin-Bird."
Satin-Robin, n. a Tasmanian name for the
Satin Fly-catcher, Myiagra nitida, Gould.
Satin-Sparrow, n. Same as Satin-Robin
(q.v.).
Satinwood, n. a name applied to two Australian
trees from the nature of their timber--Xanthoxylum
brachyacanthum, F. v. M., N.O. Rutaceae, called also
Thorny Yellow-wood; Daphnandra micrantha, Benth.,
N.O. Monimiaceae, called also Light Yellow-wood
and Sassafras (q.v.).
Saw-fish, n. a species of Ray, Pristis
zysron, Bleek, the Australasian representative of the
Pristidae family, or Saw-fishes, Rays of a
shark-like form, with long, flat snouts, armed along each
edge with strong teeth.
1851. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 223 [J. E. Bicheno, June 8, 1850,
in epist.]:
"Last week an old fisherman brought me a fine specimen of a
Saw-fish, caught in the Derwent. It turned out to be the
Pristis cirrhatus,--a rare and curious species, confined
to the Australian seas, and first described by Dr. Latham in
the year 1793."
Sawyer, n. (1) Name applied by bushmen in New
Zealand to the insect Weta (q.v.). (2) A trunk embedded
in the mud so as to move with the current--hence the name: a
snag is fixed. (An American use of the word.) See also
Snag.
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 22:
"By Fitzroy's rugged crags,
Its `sawyers' and its snags,
He roamed."
Sceloglaux, n. the scientific name of the genus
containing the New Zealand bird called the Laughing Owl
(see under Jackass). The name was given by Kaup in
1848; the bird had been previously classed as Athene by
Gray in 1844. It is now nearly extinct. Kaup also gave the
name of Spiloglaux to the New Zealand Owl at the same
date. The words are from the Greek glaux, an owl,
spilos, a spot, and skelos, a leg.
Scent-wood, a Tasmanian evergreen shrub, Alyxia
buxifolia, R. Br., N.O. Apocyneae, of the dogbane
family.
Schnapper, n. or Snapper, a fish
abundant in all Australasian waters, Pagrus unicolor,
Cuv. and Val. The latter spelling was the original form of
the word (one that snaps). It was gradually changed by the
fishermen, perhaps of Dutch origin, to Schnapper, the
form now general. The name Snapper is older than the
settlement of Australia, but it is not used for the same fish.
`O.E.D.,' s.v. Cavally, quotes:
1657. R. Ligon, `Barbadoes,' p. 12:
"Fish . . . of various kinds . . . Snappers, grey and red;
Cavallos, Carpians, etc."
The young are called Cock-schnapper (q.v.); at a year
old they are called Red-Bream; at two years old,
Squire; at three, School-Schnapper; when they
cease to "school" and swim solitary they are called
Natives and Rock-Natives. Being the standard by
which the "catch" is measured, the full-grown Schnappers
are also called Count-fish (q.v.). In New Zealand,
the Tamure (q.v.) is also called Schnapper,
and the name Red-Schnapper is given to Anthias
richardsoni, Gunth., or Scorpis hectori, Hutton.
See quotation, 1882.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 68:
"King-fish, mullet, mackarel, rockcod, whiting, snapper, bream,
flatheads, and various other descriptions of fishes, are all
found plentifully about."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i.
p. 261:
"The kangaroos are numerous and large, and the finest snappers
I have ever heard of are caught off this point, weighing
sometimes as much as thirty pounds."
[The point referred to is that now called Schnapper Point, at
Mornington, in Victoria.]
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 39:
"The genus Pagrus, or as we term it in the vernacular,
`schnapper,' a word of Dutch origin . . . The schnapper or
snapper. The schnapper (Pagrus unicolor, Cuv. and Val.)
is the most valuable of Australian fishes, not for its superior
excellence . . . but for the abundant and regular supply . . .
At a still greater age the schnapper seems to cease to school
and becomes what is known as the `native' and `rock-native,'
a solitary and sometimes enormously large fish."
1896 `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 5:
"The fish, snapper, is so called because it snapped. The
spelling with `ch' is a curious after-thought, suggestive of
alcohol. The name cannot come from schnapps."
School-Schnapper, n. a fish.
A name given to the Schnapper when three years old.
See Schnapper.
Scorpion, n. another name for the New South
Wales fish Pentaroge marmorata, Cuv. and Val.; called
also the Fortescue (q.v.), and the Cobbler.
Scotchman, n. a New Zealand name for
a smaller kind of the grass called Spaniard (q.v.).
1895. W. S. Roberts, `Southland in 1856,' p. 39:
"As we neared the hills speargrass of the smaller kind,
known as Scotchmen,' abounded, and although not so strong
and sharp-pointed as the `Spaniard,' would not have made
a comfortable seat."
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 5:
". . . national appellations are not satisfactory. It seems
uncivil to a whole nation--another injustice to Ireland--to
call a bramble a wild Irishman, or a pointed grass, with the
edges very sharp and the point like a bayonet, a Spaniard. One
could not but be amused to find the name Scotchman applied to a
smaller kind of Spaniard.'
Scribbly-Gum, n. also called White-Gum,
Eucalyptus haemastoma, Sm., N.O. Myrtaceae. See
Gum.
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 174:
"Scribbly or White-Gum. As regards timber this is the most
worthless of the Queensland species. A tree, often large, with
a white, smooth, deciduous bark, always marked by an insect in
a scribbly manner."
Scrub, n. country overgrown with thick bushes.
Henry Kingsley's explanation (1859), that the word means
shrubbery, is singularly misleading, the English word conveying
an idea of smallness and order compared with the size and
confusion of the Australian use. Yet he is etymologically
correct, for Scrobb is Old English (Anglo-Saxon) for
shrub; but the use had disappeared in England.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. c. i. p. 21:
"We encamped about noon in some scrub."
1838. T. L. Mitchell,' Three Expeditions,' vol. i. p. 213:
"A number of gins and children remained on the borders of the
scrub, half a mile off."
1844. J A. Moore, `Tasmanian Rhymings' (1860), p. 13:
"Here Nature's gifts, with those of man combined,
Hath [sic] from a scrub a Paradise defined."
1848. W. Westgarth, "Australia Felix,' p. 24:
"The colonial term scrub, of frequent and convenient use in the
description of Australian scenery, is applicable to dense
assemblages of harsh wild shrubbery, tea-tree, and other of the
smaller and crowded timber of the country, and somewhat
analogous to the term jungle."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' vol. ii. p. 155
[Footnote]:
"Scrub. I have used, and shall use, this word so often
that some explanation is due to the English reader. I can give
no better definition of it than by saying that it means
`shrubbery.'"
1864. J. McDouall Stuart, `Exploration in Australia,' p. 153:
"At four miles arrived on the top, through a very thick scrub
of mulga."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. v. p. 78:
"Woods which are open and passable--passable at any rate for men
on horseback--are called bush. When the undergrowth becomes,
thick and matted, so as to be impregnable without an axe, it is
scrub."
[Impregnability is not a necessary point of the definition.
There is "light" scrub, and "heavy" or "thick" scrub.]
1883. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. i. p. 67
[Note]:
"Scrub was a colonial term for dense undergrowth, like that of
the mallee-scrub."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 7:
"Where . . . a belt of scrub lies green, glossy, and
impenetrable as Indian bungle."
(p. 8): "The nearest scrub, in the thickets of which the Blacks
could always find an impenetrable stronghold."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 36:
"A most magnificent forest of trees, called in Australia a
`scrub,' to distinguish it from open timbered country."
1890. J. McCarthy and R. M. Praed, `Ladies' Gallery,' p. 252:
"Why, I've been alone in the scrub--in the desert, I mean; you
will understand that better."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 374:
"One more prominent feature in Australian vegetation are the
large expanses of the so-called `scrub' of the colonists. This
is a dense covering of low bushes varying in composition in
different districts, and named according to the predominating
element."
1893. A. R. Wallace, `Australasia,' vol. i. p. 46:
"Just as Tartary is characterised by its steppes, America by
its prairies, and Africa by its deserts, so Australia has one
feature peculiar to itself, and that is its `scrubs.'. . .
One of the most common terms used by explorers is `Mallee'
scrub, so called from its being composed of dwarf species of
Eucalyptus called the `Mallee' by the Natives. . . . Still
more dreaded by the explorer is the `Mulga' scrub, consisting
chiefly of dwarf acacias."
1894. E. Favenc, `Tales of the Austral Tropics,' p. 3:
"Even more desolate than the usual dreary-looking scrub
of the interior of Australia."
[p. 6]: "The sea of scrub."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Manfrom Snowy River,' p. 25:
"Born and bred on the mountain-side,
He could race through scrub like a kangaroo."
Scrub, adj. and in composition.
The word scrub occurs constantly in composition.
See the following words.
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 113:
"We gathered the wild raspberries, and mingling them with
gee-bongs, and scrub-berries, set forth a dessert."
Scrub-bird, n. name given to two Australian
birds, of the genus Atrichia. (Grk. 'atrichos
= without hair.) They are the Noisy Scrub-bird, Atrichia
clamosa, Gould, and the Rufous S.-b., A. rufescens,
Ramsay.
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' `Supplement,' pl. 26:
"The Scrub-bird creeps mouse-like over the bark, or sits on a
dripping stem and mocks all surrounding notes."
Scrub-cattle, n. escaped cattle that run wild in the
scrub, used as a collective plural of Scrubber
(q.v.).
1860. A. L. Gordon, `The Sick Stockrider' [in `Bush-Ballads,'
1876], p. 8:
"'Twas merry 'mid the blackwoods, when we spied the station
roofs,
To wheel the wild scrub-cattle at the yard,
With a running fire of stock-whips and a fiery run of hoofs,
Oh! the hardest day was never then too hard."
Scrub-Crab, n. a Queensland fruit. The large
dark purple fruit, two inches in diameter, of Sideroxylon
australe, Benth. and Hook., N.O. Saponaceae;
a tall tree.
Scrub-dangler, n. a wild bullock.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvi. p. 193:
"He is one of those infernal scrub-danglers from the Lachlan,
come across to get a feed."
Scrub-fowl, n. name applied to birds of the
genus Megapodius. See Megapode.
Scrub-Gum, n. See Gum.
Scrub-hen, i.q. Scrub fowl.
Scrub-Ironwood, n. See Ironwood.
Scrub-Myrtle, n. See Myrtle.
Scrub-Oak, n. See Oak.
Scrub-Pine, n. See Pine.
Scrub-Poison-tree, n. See Poison-tree.
Scrub-rider, n. a man who rides through the
scrub in search of Scrub-cattle (q.v.).
1881. A. C. Giant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 278:
"A favourite plan among the bold scrub-riders."
Scrub-Robin, n. the modern name for any bird
of the genus Drymodes.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 10:
"Drymodes Brunneopygia, Gould, Scrub-Robin. I
discovered this singular bird in the great Murray Scrub in
South [sc. Southern] Australia, where it was tolerably
abundant. I have never seen it from any other part of the
country, and it is doubtless confined to such portions of
Australia as are clothed with a similar character of
vegetation."
1895. W. O. Legge, `Australasian Association for the
Advancement of Science' (Brisbane), p. 447:
"As regards portions of Gould's English nomenclatures,
such as his general term `Robin' for the genera Petroica,
Paecilodryas, Eopsaltria, it was found that by
retaining the term `Robin' for the best known member of the
group (Petroica), and applying a qualifying noun to
the allied genera, such titles as Tree-robin, Scrub-robin,
and Shrike-robin were easily evolved."
Scrub-Sandalwood, n. See Sandalwood.
Scrub-Tit, n. See Tit.
Scrub-tree, n. any tree that grows in the scrub.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 219:
"Almost all the Scrub-trees of the Condamine and Kent's Lagoon
were still to be seen at the Burdekin."
Scrub-Turkey, n. an Australian bird, Leipoa
ocellata, Gould; aboriginal name, the Lowan (q.v.).
See Turkey.
Scrub-Vine, n. called also Native Rose.
See Bauera (q.v.).
Scrub-Wren, n. any little bird of the
Australian genus Sericornis. The species are--
Brown Scrub-Wren--
Sericornis humilis, Gould.
Buff breasted S.-W.--
S. laevigaster, Gould.
Collared S.-W.--
S. gutturalis, Gould.
Large-billed Scrub-Wren--
Sericornis magnirostris, Gould.
Little S.-W.--
S. minimus, Gould.
Spotted S.-W.--
S. maculatus, Gould.
Spotted-throated S.-W.--
S. osculans, Gould.
White-browed S.-W.--
S. frontalis, Vig. & Hors.
Yellow-throated S.-W.--
S. citreogularis, Gould.
Scrubber, n. (1) a bullock that has taken
to the scrub and so become wild. See Scrub-cattle.
Also formerly used for a wild horse, now called a Brumby
(q.v.).
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' c. xxix:
"The captain was getting in the scrubbers, cattle which had
been left to run wild through in the mountains."
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. vi. p. 110:
"There are few field-sports anywhere . . . equal to `hunting
scrubbers.'"
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 93:
"Out flew the ancient scrubber, instinctively making towards
his own wild domain."
1887. W. S. S. Tyrwhitt, `The New Chum in the Queensland
Bush,' p. 151:
"There are also wild cattle, which are either cattle run wild
or descendants of such. They are commonly called `scrubbers,'
because they live in the larger scrubs."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 405:
"Here I am boxed up, like a scrubber in a pound, year after
year."
1893. `The Argus,' April 29, p. 4, col. 4 (`Getting in the
Scrubbers'):
"The scrubbers, unseen of men, would stay in their fastnesses
all day chewing the cud they had laid up the night before, and
when the sun went down and the strident laugh of the giant
kingfisher had given place to the insidious air-piercing note
of the large-mouthed podargus, the scrub would give up its
inhabitants."
(2) A starved-looking or ill-bred animal.
(3) The word is sometimes applied to mankind in the slang sense
of an "outsider." It is used in University circles as
equivalent to the Oxford "smug," a man who will not join in the
life of the place. See also Bush-scrubber.
1868. `Colonial Monthly,' vol. ii. p. 141 [art. `Peggy's
Christening]:
"`I can answer for it, that they are scrubbers--to use a bush
phrase--have never been brought within the pale of any church.'
"`Never been christened?' asked the priest.
"`Have no notion of it--scrubbers, sir--never been branded.'"
Scrubby, adj. belonging to, or resembling
scrub.
1802. Jas. Flemming, `Journal of the Exploration of C.
Grimes' [at Port Phillip, Australia], ed. by J. J.
Shillinglaw, 1879, Melbourne, p. 17:
"The land appeared barren, a scrubby brush."
[p. 221: "The trees low and scrubby."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 19:
"To-day I . . . passed a scrubby ironbark forest.".
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 216:
"A scrubby country is a stockman's abhorrence, as there he
cannot ride, at least at any pace."
1868. J. A. B., `Meta,' c. i. p. 9:
"'Twere madness to attempt to chase,
In such a wild and scrubby place,
Australia's savage steer."
Scrubdom, n. the land of scrub.
1889. C. A. Sherard, `Daughter of South,' p. 29:
"My forefathers reigned in this scrubdom of old."
Scythrops, n. scientific name for a genus
of birds belonging to the Cuculidae, or Cuckoos (from
Grk. skuthrowpos = angry-looking). The only species
known is peculiar to Australia, where it is called the
Channel-Bill, a name given by Latham (`General History
of Birds,' vol. ii.). White (1790) calls it the Anomalous
Hornbill (`Journal 1790,' pl. at p. 142).
Sea-Berry, n. See Red-berry.
Sea-Dragon, n. any Australian fish of any one
of the three species of the genus Phyllopteryx, family
Syngnathidae. The name of the genus comes from the
Greek phullon = a leaf, and pterux = a wing.
This genus is said by Guenther to be exclusively
Australian. "Protective resemblance attains its highest degree
of development," he says, in this genus. "Not only their
colour closely assimilates that of the particular kind of
sea-weed which they frequent, but the appendages of their
spines seem to be merely part of the fucus to which they are
attached. They attain a length of twelve inches." (`Study of
Fishes,' p. 683.) The name, in England, is given to other and
different fishes. The species P. foliatus is called the
Superb Dragon (q.v.), from the beauty of its colours.
Sea-Perch, n. a name applied to different
fishes--in Sydney, to the Morwong (q.v.) and
Bull's-eye (q.v.); in New Zealand, to Sebastes
percoides, called Pohuiakawa (q.v.); in Melbourne,
to Red-Gurnard (q.v.). See Red Gurnet-Perch.
Sea-Pig, n. a small whale, the Dugong.
See under Dugong-oil.
1853. S. Sidney, `Three Colonies of Australia,' p. 267:
"The aborigines eagerly pursue the dugong, a species of small
whale, generally known to the colonists as the sea-pig."
Sea-Pike, n. a fish of New South Wales,
Lanioperca mordax, Gunth., of the family
Sphyraenidae. The name belongs to the Sydney
fish-market.
Select, v. i.q. Free-select (q.v.).
Selection, n. i.q. Free-selection
(q.v.).
Selector, n. i.q. Free-selector (q.v.).
Sergeant Baker, n. name given to a fish of New
South Wales, Aulopus purpurissatus, Richards., family
Scopelidae.
1882. Rev. J E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 82:
"The Sergeant Baker in all probability got its local
appellation in the early history of the colony (New South
Wales), as it was called after a sergeant of that name in one
of the first detachments of a regiment; so were also two fruits
of the Geebong tribe (Persoonia); one was called Major
Buller, and the other Major Groce, and this latter again
further corrupted into Major Grocer."
Settler's Clock (also Hawkesbury Clock),
n. another name for the bird called the
Laughing-Jackass. See Jackass.
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 114:
"From its habit of starting its discordant paean somewhere near
sunrise and, after keeping comparatively quiet all through the
hotter hours, cackling a `requiem to the day's decline,' the
bird has been called the Settler's clock. It may be
remarked, however, that this by no means takes place with the
methodical precision that romancers write of in their letters
home."
Settlers' Matches, n. name occasionally applied
to the long pendulous strips of bark which hang from the
Eucalypts and other trees, during decortication, and which,
bec oming exceedingly dry, are readily ignited and used as
kindling wood.
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 84:
"In the silence of the darkness and the playing of the breeze,
That we heard the settlers' matches rustle softly in the
trees."
1896. `The Australasian,' June 13, p. 1133, col. 1:
"Re settlers' matches, torches, the blacks in the
South-east of South Australia always used the bark of the
she-oak to carry from one camp to another; it would last and
keep alight for a long time and show a good light to travel by
when they had no fire. A fire could always be lighted with two
grass trees, a small fork, and a bit of dry grass. I have
often started a fire with them myself."
Settler's Twine, n. a fibre plant,
Gymnostachys anceps, R. Br., N.O. Aroideae,
called also Travellers' Grass. Much used by farmers
as cord or string where strength is required.
Shag, n. common English birdname for a
Cormorant (q.v.). Gould, fifty years ago, enumerates
the following as Australian species, in his `Birds of
Australia' (vol. vii.)--
Plate
Phalacrocorax Carboides, Gould, Australian
Cormorant, Black Shag, Colonists of W.A. . . . . . 66
P. Hypoleucus, Pied C., Black and White Shag,
Colonists of W. A. . . . . . . . . . 68
P. Melanoleucus, Vieill., Pied C., Little Shag,
Colonists of W.A. . . . . . . . . . 70
P. Punctatus, Spotted C., Crested Shag (Cook),
Spotted Shag (Lapham) . . . . . . . . . 71
P. Leucogaster, Gould, White-breasted C. . . 69
P. Stictocephalus, Bp., Little Black C. . . 67
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 185:
"Shags started from dead trees lying half immersed."
Shagroon, n. When the province of Canterbury,
in New Zealand, was first settled, the men who came from
England were called Pilgrims, all others
Shagroons, probably a modification of the Irish
word Shaughraun.
1877. W. Pratt, `Colonial Experiences of Incidents of
Thirty-four Years in New Zealand,' p. 234:
"In the `Dream of a Shagroon,' which bore the date Ko Matinau,
April 1851, and which first appeared in the `Wellington
Spectator' of May 7, the term `Pilgrim' was first applied to
the settlers; it was also predicted in it that the `Pilgrims'
would be `smashed' and the Shagroons left in undisputed
possession of the country for their flocks and herds."
Shake, v. tr. to steal. Very common Australian
slang, especially amongst school-boys and bushmen. It was
originally Thieves' English.
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. ii. p. 9:
"The tent of a surgeon was `shook,' as they style it--that is,
robbed, during his absence in the daytime."
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 418:
"Crimean shirts, blankets, and all they `shake,'
Which I'm told's another name for `take.'"
Shamrock, Australian, n. a perennial, fragrant,
clover-like plant, Trigonella suavissima, Lindl.,
N.O. Leguminosae; excellent as forage. Called also
Menindie Clover (aboriginal name, Calomba).
See Clover.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 143:
"It is the `Australian shamrock' of Mitchell."
Shamrock, Native, n. a forage plant, Lotus
australis, Andr., N.O. Leguminosae. Called
Native Shamrock in Tasmania.
Shanghai, n. a catapult. Some say
because used against Chinamen. The reason seems
inadequate.
1863. `The Leader,' Oct. 24, p. 17, col. 1:
"Turn, turn thy shanghay dread aside,
Nor touch that little bird."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), May 15, p. 22, col. 1:
"The lads had with them a couple of pistols, powder, shot,
bullets, and a shanghai."
1875. Ibid. July 17, p. 123, col. 3:
"The shanghai, which, as a secret instrument of mischief, is
only less dangerous than the air-gun."
1884. `Police Offences Act, New Zealand,' sec. 4, subsec. 23:
"Rolls any cask, beats any carpet, flies any kite, uses any
bows and arrows, or catapult, or shanghai, or plays at any game
to the annoyance of any person in any public place."
1893. `The Age,' Sept. 15, p. 6, col. 7:
"The magistrate who presided on the Carlton bench yesterday,
has a decided objection to the use of shanghais, and in dealing
with three little boys, the eldest of whom was but eleven or
twelve years of age, charged with the use of these weapons in
the Prince's Park, denounced their conduct in very strong
terms. He said that he looked upon this crime as one of the
worst that a lad could be guilty of, and if he had his own way
in the matter he would order each of them to be lashed."
1895. C. French, Letter to `Argus,' Nov. 29:
"Wood swallows are somewhat sluggish and slow in their flight,
and thus fall an easy prey to either the gun or the murderous
and detestable `shanghai.'"
Shanghai-shot, n. a short distance,
a stone's-throw.
1874. Garnet Walch, `Head over Heels' [Introduction to
Tottlepot Poems]:
"His parents . . . residing little more than a Shanghai-shot
from Romeo Lane, Melbourne."
Shanty, n. (1) a hastily erected wooden house;
(2) a public-house, especially unlicensed: a sly-grog shop.
The word is by origin Keltic (Irish). In the first sense, its
use is Canadian or American; in the last, Australian. In
Barrere and Leland it is said that circus and showmen always
call a public-house a shanty.
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June 26, p. 91, col. 1:
"These buildings, little better than shanties, are found in
. . . numbers."
1880. Garnet Walch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 9:
"We read of the veriest shanties letting for L2 per week."
1880. W. Senior, `Travel and Trout,' p. 15:
"He becomes a land-owner, and puts up a slab-shanty."
1880. G. n. Oakley, in `Victoria in 1880,' p. 114:
"The left-hand track, past shanties soaked in grog,
Leads to the gaol."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 103:
"The faint glimmering light which indicates the proximity
of the grog shanty is hailed with delight."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 221:
"I have seen a sober man driven perfectly mad for the time
being, by two glasses of so-called rum, supplied to him at one
of these shanties."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. vi. p. 64:
"Any attempt to limit the licensing produced . . . a crop of
shanties, or sly-grog shops."
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 9, p. 4, col. 2:
"The old woman thought that we were on gold, and would lamb
down at the finish in her shanty."
Shanty-Keeper, n. keeper of a sly-grog shop.
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for Mail,' p. 45:
"Mrs. Smith was a shanty-keeper's wife."
1887. J. Farrell, `How he died,' p. 72:
"The shanty-keeper saw the entering strangers."
Shantywards, adv.
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 2, p. 13, col. 4:
"Looking . . . over the fence shantywards."
Shark, n. Some of the Australasian species
are identical with those of Europe. Varieties and names
which differ are--
Blue Shark (New South Wales)--
Carcharias macloti, Mull. and Heule.
Hammer S. (N.S.W.)--
Zygaena malleus, Shaw.
One-finned S. (N.S.W.)--
Notidanus indicus, Cuv.
Port Jackson S. (q.v.)--
Heterodontus phillipii, Lacep.;
called also the Shell-grinder.
Saw-fish S.--
Pristiophorus cirratus, Lath.
School S. (N.S.W.)--
Galeus australis, Macl.; called also Tope
(q.v.).
Shovel-nosed S. (N.S.W.)--
Rhinobatus granulatus, Cuv.; also called the
Blind-Shark, or Sand-Shark.
Tiger S. (N.S.W.)--
Galeocerdo rayneri, Macdon. and Barr.
White S.--
Carcharodon rondeletii, Mull. and Heule; called also
the White-Pointer.
The Sharks of New Zealand are--
Black Shark--
Carcharodon melanopterus (Maori name Keremai).
Brown S.--
Scymnus lichia.
Great S.--
Carcharias maso.
Hammer-head S.--
Zygaena malleus (Maori name, Mangopare).
Port-eagle S.--
Lamna cornutica
Spinous S.--
Echinorhinus spinosus.
Tiger S.--
Scymnus sp. (Maori name, Mako).
See also Blue-Pointer, Whaler,
and Wobbegong.
Shearer's Joy, n. a name given to colonial
beer.
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 22:
"It was the habit afterwards among the seven to say that the
officers of the Eliza Jane had been indulging in
shearer's joy."
She-Beech, n. See Beech.
Shed, n. The word generally signifies the
Woolshed (q.v.). A large, substantial, and often
expensive building.
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 143:
"There's 20 hungry beggars wild for any job this year,
An' 50 might be at the shed while I am lyin' here."
1896. `Melbourne Argus,' April 30, p. 2, col. 5:
"There is a substantial and comfortable homestead, and ample
shed accommodation."
Sheep-pest, n. a common Australian weed,
Acama ovina, Cunn., N.O. Rosaceae, found in all
the colonies; so called because its fruit adheres by hooked
spines to the wool of sheep.
Sheep-run, n. See Run.
Sheep-sick, n. Used of pastures exhausted for
carrying sheep. Compare English screw-sick, paint-sick,
nail-sick, wheat-sick, etc.
1895. `Leader,' August 3, p. 6, col. 1:
"It is the opinion of many practical men that certain country
to which severe losses have occurred in recent years has been
too long carrying sheep, and that the land has become what is
termed `sheep sick,' and from this point of view it certainly
appears that a course of better management is most desirable."
Sheep-wash (used as verb), to wash sheep. The word is
also used as a noun, in its ordinary English senses of (1) a
lotion for washing sheep; (2) the washing of sheep preparatory
to shearing: (3) the place where the sheep are washed, also
called the `sheep-dip.'
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 184:
"He can't dig or sheep-wash or plough there."
Sheldrake, or Shieldrake, n. the
common English name of ducks of the genera Tadorna
and Casarca. The Australian species are--Casarca
tadornoides Jard., commonly called the Mountain
Duck; and the White-headed S., Tadorna radjah, Garnot.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 217:
"Charley shot the sheldrake of Port Essington (Tadorna Rajah)."
Shell-grinder, n. another name for the
Port-Jackson Shark (q.v.).
She-Oak, n. (1) A tree of the genus
Casuarina (q.v.). The timber, which is very hard and
makes good fuel, was thought to resemble oak. See Oak,
and quotation from Captain Cook. The prefix she is used
in Australia to indicate an inferiority of timber in respect
of texture, colour, or other character; e.g. She-beech,
She-pine. The reason for He-oak is given in
quotation 1835. Bull-oak, Marsh-oak,
Swamp-oak, were invented to represent variations
of the Casuarina. Except in its timber, the She-oak is
not in the least like an oak-tree (Quercus). The
spelling in quotation 1792 makes for this simple explanation,
which, like that of Beef-eater in English, and Mopoke
in Austral-English, was too simple; and other spellings,
e.g. Shea-oak, were introduced, to suggest a different
etymology. Shiak (quotation, 1853) seems to claim an
aboriginal origin (more directly claimed, quotation, 1895),
but no such aboriginal word is found in the vocabularies.
In quotations 1835, 1859, a different origin is assigned,
and a private correspondent, whose father was one of the first
to be born of English parents in New South Wales, says that
English officers who had served in Canada had named the tree
after one that they had known there. A higher authority,
Sir Joseph D. Hooker (see quotation, 1860), says, "I believe
adapted from the North-American Sheack." This origin,
if true,is very interesting; but Sir Joseph Hooker, in a letter
dated Jan. 26, 1897, writes that his authority was Mr. Gunn
(see quotation, 1835). That writer, however, it will be seen,
only puts "is said to be." To prove the American origin, we must
find the American tree. It is not in the `Century,' nor in the
large `Webster,' nor in `Funk and Wagnall's Standard,' nor in
either of two dictionaries of Americanisms. Dr. Dawson,
director of the Geological Survey of Canada, who is thoroughly
acquainted with Indian folk-lore and languages, and Mr. Fowler,
Professor of Botany in Queen's University, Kingston, say that
there is no such Indian word.
2792. G. Thompson, in `Historical Records of New South
Wales,' vol. ii. (1893) p. 799:
"There are two kinds of oak, called the he and the she oak,
but not to be compared with English oak, and a kind of pine
and mahogany, so heavy that scarce either of them will swim."
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,'
vol. ii. p. 166 (Bass' diary at Port Dalrymple, Tasmania,
Nov. 1798):
"The She oaks were more inclined to spread than grow tall."
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 134
"Casuarina torulosa, the she-oak. The young fruit and
young shoots afford an agreeable acid by chewing, which allays
thirst."
1835. Ross, `Hobart-town Almanack,' p. 75 [Article said by
Sir Joseph Hooker (Jan. 26, 1897) to be by Mr. Ronald Gunn]:
"Casuarina torulosa? She-oak. C. stricta? He-oak. C.
tenuissima? Marsh-oak. The name of the first of these is said
to be a corruption of Sheac, the name of an American tree,
producing the beef wood, like our Sheoak. The second species
has obtained the name of He-oak in contradistinction of
She-oak, as if they constituted one dioecious plant, the one
male and the other female, whereas they are perfectly distinct
species."
1842. `Western Australia,' p. 80:
"The Shea-oak (a corruption of sheak, the native name for this,
or a similar tree, in Van Diemen's Land) is used chiefly for
shingles."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 91:
"Then to cut down the timber, gum, box, she-oak, and
wattle-trees, was an Herculean task."
1847. J. D. Lang, "Phillipsland,' p. 95:
"They are generally a variety of Casuarinae, commonly
called she-oak by the colonists, and the sighing of the wind
among the sail-needle-like leaves, that constitute their
vegetation, produces a melancholy sound."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 219:
"Most of the trees of this colony owe their names to the
sawyers who first tested their qualities; and who were guided
by the colour and character of the wood, knowing and caring
nothing about botanical relations. Thus the swamp-oak and
she-oak have rather the exterior of the larch than any quercine
aspect."
1853. S. Sidney, `Three Colonies of Australia,' p. 277:
"A dull scene, sprinkled with funereal shiak or `she-oak
trees.'"
Ibid. p. 367:
"Groves of shea-oaks, eucalyptus and mimosa."
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. i. p. 24:
"Trees of a peculiar character--the Casuarinas or Shiacks--
part of which, with their more rigid and outstretched branches,
resemble pine-trees, and others, with theirs drooping gracefully,
resembling large trees of bloom."
1859. D. Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 33:
"The trees forming the most interesting groups were the
Casuarina torulosa, she-oak, and C. stricta,
he-oak. . . . The name of the first is said to have been
derived from `sheeac,' the name of an American tree producing
the beef-wood like our she-oak. C. stricta, or he-oak,
has been named in contradistinction to the sexes, as if they
constituted one dioecious plant, whereas they are two perfectly
distinct species."
1860. J. D. Hooker, `Botany of the Antarctic Voyage,'
part iii. [Flora Tasmaniae], p. 348:
"Casuarina suberosa. This is an erect species, growing
15 feet high. . . It is well known as the `He-oak,' in
contradistinction to the C. quadrivalvis, or `She-oak,'
a name, I believe, adapted from the North American `Sheack'
though more nearly allied botanically to the Northern Oaks than
any Tasmanian genus except Fagus, they have nothing to
do with that genus in habit or appearance, nor with the
Canadian `Sheack.'"
1864. J. McDouall Stuart, `Explorations in Australia,' p. 150:
"Within the last mile or two we have passed a few patches of
Shea-oak, growing large, having a very rough and thick bark,
nearly black. They have a dismal appearance."
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, Founder of Victoria,' p.103:
"Even Batman's hill, the memorial of his ancient encampment,
has been levelled; and the she-oaks upon that grassy mound no
longer sigh in the breeze a dirge for the hero of exploration."
1869. `The Argus,' May 25, p. 5, col. 2:
"The she-oak trees, of which there are large quantities in the
sandy soil of the salt-bush country, proved very serviceable
during the late drought. Some of the settlers caused thousands
of she-oaks to be stripped of their boughs, and it was a sight
to see some of the famishing cattle rushing after the men who
were employed in thus supplying the poor animals with the means
of sustaining life. The cattle ate the boughs and the bark
with the greatest avidity, and the bushman's axe as it felled
the she-oak was music to their ears."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 258:
"She-oaks are scraggy-looking poles of trees, rather like
fir-trees."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 203:
"The rough bark of the she-oak and its soft sappy wood . . ."
1890. `The Argus,' June 14, p. 4, col. 2:
"I came to a little clump of sheoaks, moaning like living
things."
1895. `Notes and Queries,' Aug. 3, p. 87:
"The process followed by the Australian colonists when they
converted a native word for the Casuarina trees into
`she-oak.'"
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 204:
"The creek went down with a broken song,
'Neath the she-oaks high;
The waters carried the song along,
And the oaks a sigh."
(2) Slang name for colonial beer.
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii. p. 83:
"Their drivers had completed their regulation half-score of
`long-sleevers' of `she-oak.'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood,' Miner's Right,' c. vi. p. 59:
"Then have a glass of beer--it's only she-oak, but there's
nothing wrong about it."
She-Oak nets, nets placed on each side of a gangway
from a ship to the pier, to prevent sailors who have been
indulging in she-oak (beer) falling into the water.
Shepherd, v. (1) to guard a mining claim
and do a little work on it, so as to preserve legal rights.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 135:
"Few of their claims however are actually `bottomed,' for the
owners merely watch their more active contemporaries."
(Footnote): "This is termed `shepherding' a claim."
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 11:
"All the ground . . . is held in blocks which are being
merely shepherded."
(2) By transference from (1). To follow or hang about a person
in the hopes of getting something out of him. Compare similar
use of shadow.
1896. Modern:
"The robbers knowing he had so much coin about him, determined
to shepherd him till an opportunity occurred of robbery with
impunity."
Shepherd, n. a miner who holds a claim but does
not work it.
188-. `Argus' (date lost):
"The term `jumper,' being one of reproach, brought quite a yell
from the supporters of the motion. Dr. Quick retorted with a
declaration that the Grand Junction Company were all
`shepherds,' and that `shepherds' are the worse of the two
classes. The `jumpers' sat in one gallery and certain
representatives or deputy `shepherds' in the other. Names are
deceitful. . . . The Maldon jumpers were headed by quite a
venerable gentleman, whom no one could suspect of violent
exercise nor of regrettable designs upon the properties of his
neighbours. And the shepherds in the other gallery, instead of
being light-hearted beings with pipes and crooks--a la
Watteau and Pope--looked unutterable things at the individuals
who had cast sheep's eyes on their holding."
Shicer, n. (1) An unproductive claim
or mine: a duffer. From the German scheissen.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 135:
"A claim without gold is termed a `shicer.'"
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' c. ix. p. 256:
"It's a long sight better nor bottoming a shicer."
1863. `Victorian Hansard,' May 10, vol. ix. p. 571:
"Mr. Howard asked whether the member for Collingwood knew
the meaning of the word `shicer.' Mr. Don replied in the
affirmative. He was not an exquisite, like the hon. member
(laughter), and he had worked on the goldfields, and he had
always understood a shicer to be a hole with no gold."
1870. S. Lemaitre, `Songs of Goldfields,' p. 15:
"Remember when you first came up
Like shicers, innocent of gold."
1894. `The Argus,' March 10, p. 4, col. 7:
"There are plenty of creeks in this country that have only so
far been scratched--a hole sunk here and there and abandoned.
No luck, no perseverance; and so the place has been set down as
a duffer, or, as the old diggers' more expressive term had it,
a `shicer.'"
(2) Slang. By transference from (1). A man who does not pay
his debts of honour.
1896. Modern:
"Don't take his bet, he's a regular shicer."
Shingle-splitting, vb. n. obsolete Tasmanian
slang.
1830. `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 89:
"When a man gets behindhand with his creditors in Hobart Town,
and rusticates in the country in order to avoid the
unseasonable calls of the Sheriff's little gentleman, that
delights to stand at a corner where four streets meet, so as
the better to watch the motions of his prey, he is said to be
shingle-splitting."
Shirallee, n. slang term for a swag or bundle
of blankets.
Shout, v. to stand treat. (1) Of drink. (2) By
transference, of other things. The successful digger used to
call passers-by to drink at his expense. The origin may
also be from noisy bar-rooms, or crowded bar-parlours, where
the man who was to pay for the liquor or refreshment called or
shouted for the waiter or barman. When many men drink
together the waiter of course looks for payment from the man
who first calls or shouts out for him to give him the
order. Or is "pay the shout" a variant of "pay the shot," or
tavern reckoning? In its first sense the word has reached the
United States, and is freely employed there.
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 335:
"And so I shouted for him and he shouted for me."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 80:
"Gentlemen required a great deal of attendance, did not `shout'
(the slang term for ordering grog) every quarter of an hour,
and therefore spent comparatively nothing."
1867. A. L. Gordon, `Sea-Spray' (Credat Judaeus), p. 139:
"You may shout some cheroots, if you like; no champagne
For this child.'
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 268:
"This `shouting,' as `treating' is termed in the colonies,
is the curse of the Northern goldfields. If you buy a horse you
must shout, the vendor must shout, and the bystanders who have
been shouted to [more usual, for] must shout in their turn."
1885. D. Sladen, `In Cornwall, etc.,' p. 156 [Title, `The
Sigh of the Shouter']:
"Give me the wealth I have squandered in `shouting.'"
1887. J. F. Hogan, `The Irish in Australia, p. 149:.
"Drinking is quite a common practice, and what is familiarly
known as `shouting' was at one time almost universal, though of
late years this peculiarly dangerous evil has been considerably
diminished in extent. To `shout' in a public-house means to
insist on everybody present, friends and strangers alike,
drinking at the shouter's expense, and as no member of the
party will allow himself to be outdone in this reckless sort of
hospitality, each one `shouts' in succession, with the result
that before long they are all overcome by intoxication."
1891. W. Tilley, `Wild West of Tasmania,' p. 30:
"Some heavy drinking is indulged in through the `shouting'
system, which is the rule."
1893. E. W. Hornung, `Tiny Luttrell,' vol. ii. c. xv.
p. 98:
"To insist on `shouting' Ruth a penny chair overlooking the
ornamental water in St. James's Park."
(p.99): "You shall not be late, because I'll shout a hansom
too."
Shout, n. a free drink.
1864. H. Simcox, `Outward Bound,' p. 81:
"The arms are left and off they go,
And many a shout they're treated to."
1874. Garnet Walch, Head over Heels,' p. 83:
"I . . . gave the boys round a spread an' a shout."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 78:
"Two lucky diggers laid a wager which of them should treat the
assembled company with the largest shout.'"
Shoveller, n. the English name for the duck
Spatula clypeata, Linn., a species also present in
Australia. The other Australian species is Spatula
rhynchotis, Lath., also called Blue-wing.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vii. pl. 12:
"Spatula Rhynchotis, Australian Shoveller."
Shovel-nose, n. a New South Wales species of
Ray-fish, Rhinobatus bougainvillei, Cuv.; called also
the Blind Shark, and Sand Shark. In the Northern
Hemisphere, the name is given to three different sharks and a
sturgeon.
Shrike, n. a bird-name, generally used in
Australia in composition. See Crow-Shrike,
Cuckoo-Shrike, Shrike-Robin,
Shrike-Thrush, and Shrike-Tit.
Shrike-Robin, n. a genus of Australasian
Shrikes, Eopsaltria (q.v.). The species are--
Grey-breasted Shrike-Robin--
Eopsaltria gularis, Quoy and Gaim.
Large-headed S.-R.--
E. capito, Gould.
Little S.-R.--
E. nana, Mull.
White-breasted S.-R.--
E. georgiana, Quoy and Gaim.
Yellow-breasted S.-R.--
E. australis, Lath.
1895. W. O. Legge, `Australasian Association for the
Advancement of Science' (Brisbane), p. 447:
"As regards portions of Gould's English nomenclatures, such as
his general term `Robin' for the genera Petroica,
Paecilodryas, Eopsaltria, it was found that by
retaining the term `Robin' for the best known member of the
group (Petroica), and applying a qualifying noun to the
allied genera, such titles as Tree-robin, Scrub-robin, and
Shrike-robin were easily evolved."
Shrike-Thrush, n. a genus of Australasian
Shrikes, Collyriocincla (q.v.). The species are--
Bower's Shrike-Thrush--
Collyriocincla boweri, Ramsay.
Brown S.-T.--
C. brunnea, Gould.
Buff-bellied S.-T.--
C. rufiventris, Gould.
Grey S.-T.--
C. harmonica, Lath.; called also Port Jackson
Thrush (q.v.).
Little Shrike-Thrush--
Collyriocincla parvula, Gould.
Pale-bellied S.-T.--
C. pallidirostris, Sharpe.
Rufous-breasted S.-T.--
C. rufigaster, Gould.
Whistling S.-T.--
C. rectirostris, Jard. and Selb.;
see Duke Willy.
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 54:
"With gathering shadows the spotted thrush of England gives
forth from the top-most pine branch his full and varied notes;
notes which no Australian bird can challenge, not even the
shrike-thrush on the hill side, piping hard to rival his song
every bright spring morning."
Shrike-Tit, n. a genus of Australian Shrikes,
Falcunculus (q.v.). The species are--Falcunculus
frontatus, Lath.; White-bellied S.-T.,
F. leucogaster, Gould.
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Game Act' (Third Schedule):
"Shrike-tit. [Close season.] From the 1st day of August
to the 10th day of December next following in each year."
Shrimp, n. The only true shrimp
(Crangon) which Australian waters are known to possess
is found in the Gulf of St. Vincent, South Australia.
(Tenison-Woods.) In Tasmania, the Prawn (Penoeus spp.)
is called a Shrimp.
1883. `Royal Commission, Report on Fisheries of Tasmania,'
p. 9:
"The prawn (Penoeus sp.), locally known among fishermen
as the shrimp, abounds all around our coasts."
Sida-weed, n. i.q. Queensland Hemp.
See Hemp.
Signed Servant, n. obsolete contraction for
Assigned Servant (q.v.).
Silky-Oak, n. a tree, often tall, Grevillea
robusta, Cunn., N.O. Proteaceae, producing a useful
timber in demand for various purposes. See Grevillea,
Maple, and Oak.
Silver, or Silver-fish, n. a Tasmanian
name for Caranx georgianus, Cuv. and Val., family
Carangidae, the White or Silver Trevally.
See Trevally.
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June 19, 1881:
"Common fish such as . . . garfish, strangers, silvers,
and others."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 252
[Footnote]:
"To convey anything like a correct idea of this extremely
beautiful fish, it should be `laid in' with a ground of
burnished silver, and the delicate tints added. The skin is
scaleless, and like satin, embossed all over in little raised
freckles, and with symmetrical dark lines, resembling the
veining of a leaf. In quality they are a good deal like
mullet."
Silver-Belly, n. name given (1) in New South
Wales, to the fish Silver-Bream (q.v.); (2) in Tasmania,
to various species of Atherinidae.
Silver-Bream, or White-Bream, n.
a New South Wales fish, Gerres ovatus, Gunth.,
family Percidae; also called Silver-Belly (q.v.).
For another use, see Trevally.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 43:
"Mr. Hill, in the series of essays already referred to, speaks
of a silver-bream or white-bream. It is probable he refers to
Gerres ovatus, a common fish of very compressed form,
and very protractile mouth. They probably never enter
fresh-water. . . . It is necessary to cook the silver-belly,
as it is often called, perfectly fresh."
Silver-Eye, n. a bird-name. Same as
Wax-eye, White-eye, or Blight-bird (q.v.).
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 77:
"Zosterops caerulescens, Lath. I have myself arrived at
the conclusion that the Silver-eye, although identical with the
Australian bird, is in reality an indigenous species."
1888. James Thomas, `To a Silver Eye:' `Australian Poets
1788-1888' (edition Sladen), p. 550:
"Thou merry little silver-eye,
In yonder trailing vine,
I, passing by this morning, spied
That ivy-built nest of thine."
Silver Jew-fish, n. a New South Wales name for
the young of the fish called Teraglin, or of the true
Jew-fish (q.v.); it is uncertain which.
Silver-leaf Boree, n. i.q. Boree (q.v.).
Silver-Perch, n. a fresh-water fish,
i.q. Bidyan Ruffe (q.v.).
Silver-tail, n. a bush term for a "swell":
a man who goes to the manager's house, not to the men's hut.
See Hut.
1890. A. J. Vogan, `The Black Police,' p. 116:
"A select circle of long-limbed members of those upper circles
who belong to the genus termed in Australian parlance
`silver-tailed,' in distinction to the `copper-tailed'
democratic classes."
Silver-Trevally, n. See Trevally.
Sittella, n. an Australian genus of small
creeping-birds, called also Tree-Runners (q.v.).
Sittella is the Latin diminutive of sitta,
which is from the Greek sittae, a woodpecker,
whose habits the Tree-runners or Sittellae have.
Gould's enumeration of the species is given in quotation.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv.:
"Sittella chrysoptera, Orange-winged Sittella;
S. leucocephala, Gould, White-headed S.;
S. leucoptera,Gould, White-winged S.; S. pileata,
Gould, Black-capped S.; S. tenuirostris, Gould,
Slender-billed S.
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia' (Supplement):
"Sittella Striata, Gould, Striated Sittella."
1875. Gould and Sharpe, `Birds of New Guinea,' vol. iii.
pl. 28:
"Sittella albata, Pied Sittella."
1890 `Victorian Statutes-Game Act' (Third Schedule):
"Sittellas. [Close season.] From the first day of August
to the 10th day of December next following in each year."
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 136:
"Four species of Sitilla [sic] which, except that they
do not lay their eggs in hollow trees, bear some resemblance to
our nuthatch."
Skate, n. The New Zealand fish called
a Skate is Raja nasuta, a different species
of the same genus as the European Skate.
Skipjack, or Skipjack-Pike, n.
This fish, Temnodon saltator, Cuv. and Val., is the
same as the British and American fish of that name. It is
called Tailor (q.v.) in Sydney. The name Skipjack
used also to be given by the whalers to the Australian fish
Trevally (q.v.).
1872. Hutton and Hector, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 111:
"It is quoted by Richardson that this fish [trevally], which he
says is the Skipjack of the sealers, used to be a staple
article of food with the natives."
Skipper, i.q. Hopping fish (q.v.).
Skirr, n. imitative.
1884. Marcus Clarke, `Memorial Volume,' p. 127:
"How many nights have I listened to the skirr of the wild
cats."
Skirting, n. generally used in the plural.
In sheep-shearing, the inferior parts of the wool taken
from the extremities.
1890. `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 7:
"At the `skirting-table' we will stand for a little while, and
watch while the fleece just brought in is opened out by the
`roller,' and the inferior portions removed."
Skullbanker, or Scowbanker, n. a slang
name in Australia for a loafer, a tramp.
1866. A. Michie, `Retrospects and Prospects of the Colony,'
p. 9:
"A skull-banker is a species of the genus loafer--half
highwayman, half beggar. He is a haunter of stations,
and lives on the squatters, amongst whom he makes a circuit,
affecting to seek work and determining not to find it."
Slab, n. In English, the word slab, as applied
to timber, means "an outside piece taken from a log in sawing
it into boards, planks, etc." (`Webster.') In Australia, the
word is very common, and denotes a piece of timber, two or
three inches thick a coarse plank, axe-hewn, not sawn. Used
for the walls of rough houses.
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 25, p. 3 col. 5:
A substantial slab building with verandah."
1845. `Voyage to Port Phillip,' p. 52:
"His slab-built hut, with roof of bark."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i.
c. ix. p. 266:
"The house in which this modern Robinson Crusoe dwelt was what
is called a Slab Hut, formed of rough boards and thatched with
grass."
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' c. iv. p. 130:
"A bare, rough, barn-like edifice built of slabs."
1869. J. Townend, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 155:
"We passed through Studley Park, with here and there a slab
house or tent."
1874. G. Walch, `Head over Heels,' p. 81:
"The moonlight . . . poured on the hut, slabs an' roof."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 8:
"The hut was built of logs and slabs."
[p. 73]: "The usual bush-hut of slabs and bark."
[p.144]:"The neighbours congregated in the rough hut of
unplaned slabs."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `The Miner's Right,' c. vi. p. 61:
"Slab huts of split heavy boards, Australian fashion, placed
vertically."
Slab, v. tr. mining term: to keep up the sides
of a shaft with timber slabs.
1871. J. J. Simpson, `Recitations,' p. 24:
"So dig away, drive away, slab and bail."
Sleepy Lizard, i.q. Blue-tongued Lizard (q.v.).
Slip-panel. Same as Slip-rail (q.v.).
See also Panel.
1893. `The Australasian,' Aug.12, p. 302, col. 1:
"Take him round by the water-hole and wait for me at the
slip-panels."
Slip-rail, n. part of a fence so fitted that it
can be removed so as to serve as a gate. Used also for the
gateway thus formed. Generally in the plural. Same as Slip-
panel.
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads From the Wreck,' p. 24:
"Down with the slip-rails; stand back."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 43:
"He [a horse] would let down the slip-rails when shut into the
stockyard, even if they were pegged, drawing the pegs out with
his teeth."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 79:
"Many men rode through the sliprails and turned out their
horses."
1891. Canon Goodman, `Church in Victoria during Episcopate of
Bishop Perry,' p. 98:
"Some careless person had neglected to replace the slip-rails
of the paddock into which his horses had been turned the
previous evening."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 104:
"Then loudly she screamed: it was only to drown
The treacherous clatter of slip-rails let down."
Sloth, Native, i.q. Native Bear.
See Bear, and Koala.
Slusher, or Slushy, n. cook's
assistant at shearing-time on a station.
1890. `The Argus,' Sept.20, p.13, col. 6:
"`Sundays are the most trying days of all,' say the
cuisiniers, `for then they have nothing to do
but to growl.' This man's assistant is called `the slusher.'
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 162:
"The tarboy, the cook, and the slushy,
the sweeper that swept the board,
The picker-up, and the penner, with the rest of the
shearing horde."
1896. `The Field,' Jan. 18, p. 83, col. 1:
"He employs as many `slushies' as he thinks necessary, paying
them generally L1 per week."
Slush-lamp, n. a lamp made by filling an old
tin with fat and putting a rag in for wick. The word, though
not exclusively Australian, is more common in the Australian
bush than elsewhere. Compare English slush-horn, horn
for holding grease; slush-pot, pot for holding grease,
etc.
1883. J. Keighley, `Who are You?' p. 45:
"The slush-lamp shone with a smoky light."
1890. `The Argus,' Sept.20, p.13, col. 6:
"Occasionally the men will give Christy Minstrel concerts, when
they illuminate the wool-shed with slush-lamps, and invite all
on the station."
Smelt, n. name given, in Melbourne, to the fish
Clupea vittata, Castln., family Clupeidae, or
Herrings (q.v.); in New Zealand and Tasmania, to
Retropinna richardsonii, Gill, family Salmonidae.
Its young are called Whitebait (q.v.). The Derwent
Smelt is a Tasmanian fish, Haplochiton sealii,
family Haplochitonidae, fishes with an adipose fin which
represent the salmonoids in the Southern Hemisphere;
Prototroctes is the only other genus of the family known
(see Grayling). Haplochiton is also found in the cold
latitudes of South America.
Sminthopsis, n. the scientific name for the
genus of Narrow-footed Pouched Mice, which, like the
English field-mice, are entirely terrestrial in their habits.
See Pouched Mouse. In Homer's' Iliad,' Bk. I. ver. 39,
Smintheus is an epithet of Apollo. It is explained as
"mouse-killer," from sminthos, a field-mouse, said to be
a Cretan word.
Smoke, v. (slang). See quotation.
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' June 26, p. 8, col. 8:
"He said to the larrikins, `You have done for him now; you
have killed him.' `What!' said one of them, `do not say we were
here. Let us smoke.' `Smoke,' it may be explained, is the
slang for the `push' to get away as fast as possible."
Smooth Holly, n. See Holly.
Snailey, n. bullock with horn slightly curled.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. ix. p. 68:
"Snaileys and poleys, old and young, coarse and fine, they
were a mixed herd in every sense."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 133:
"There's a snaily Wallanbah bullock I haven't seen this two
years."
Snake, n. The Australian land snakes belong
principally to the four families, Typhlopidae, Boidae,
Colubridae, and Elapidae. The proportion of
venomous to non-venomous species increases from north to south,
the five species known in Tasmania being all venomous. The
smallest forms, such as the "blind" or "worm" snakes, are only
a few inches in length, while the largest Python may reach a
length of perhaps eighteen feet.
Various popular names have been given to different species
in different colonies, the same name being unfortunately not
infrequently applied to quite distinct species. The more
common forms are as follows:--
Black Snake.
Name applied in Australia to Pseudechis porphyriacus,
Shaw, which is more common in the warmer parts, and
comparatively rare in the south of Victoria, and not found
in Tasmania. In the latter the name is sometimes given to
dark-coloured varieties of Hoplocephalus curtus,
and in Victoria to those of H. superbus. The
characteristic colour is black or black-brown above and reddish
beneath, but it can be at once distinguished from specimens of
H. superbus, which not infrequently have this colour, by the
presence of a double series of plates at the hinder end, and
a single series at the anterior end of the tail, whereas in
the other species named there is only a single row along the
whole length of the tail underneath.
1799. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales' (edition
1802), vol. ii. p. 189 [Bass Diary at the Derwent, Tasmania]:
"The most formidable among the reptiles was the black snake
with venomous fangs."
[This refers to some species of Hoplocephalus, and not to the
Australian Black Snake, which does not occur in Tasmania.]
Black and white ringed Snake.
Name applied to Vermicella annulata, Gray, the
characteristic colouration of which consists of a series of
alternating dark and light rings. It is found especially in
the dry, warmer parts of the interior.
Brown Snake.
Name given to three species of the genus Diemenia-- (1)
the Common Brown Snake, D. superciliosa, Fischer; (2)
the small-scaled Brown Snake, D. microlepidota, McCoy;
and (3) the shield-fronted Brown Snake, D. aspidorhyncha,
McCoy. All are venomous, and the commonest is the first, which
is usually known as the Brown Snake.
1890. A. H. S. Lucas, `Handbook of the Australasian
Association for the Advancement of Science,' Melbourne, p. 71:
"The most abundant of these are the tiger snake,
Hoplocephalus curtus, the most widespread, active,
and dangerous of them all: the brown snake, Diemenia
superciliosa, pretty generally distributed."
Carpet Snake.
Name applied in Australia to Python variegata, Gray,
a non-venomous snake reaching a length of ten feet. The name
has reference to the carpet-like pattern on the scales.
The animal crushes its prey to death, and can hang from
branches by means of its prehensile tail. In Tasmania,
the name is unfortunately applied to a venomous snake,
Hoplocephalus curtus, Schlegel.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' c. i. p. 16:
"Brown brought a carpet snake and a brown snake with yellow
belly."
1878. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of
Victoria,' Decade ii. pl. 13:
"The pattern has some resemblance to some of the commoner sorts
of Kidderminster carpets, as suggested by the popular name of
Carpet Snake . . . the name . . . is, unfortunately, applied
to the poisonous Tiger Snake in Tasmania, producing some
confusion."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals, p. 294:
"One of the snakes most common is the Australian python
(Morelia variegata), the largest snake found in
Australia, which here in Northern Queensland may even
attain a length of more than twenty feet."
Copper-head Snake.
Name applied in Australia to Hoplocephalus superbus,
Gunth., a venomous snake which is very common in Tasmania,
where it is often called the Diamond Snake (q.v.).
In Victoria, it is often confused with the Black Snake;
unlike the latter, it is more common in the south than
in the north. It derives its popular name from the colour
of the head.
1885. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Natural History of
Victoria,' Decade i. pl. 2:
"In Tasmania the name Diamond snake is unfortunately given to
this species, for that name properly belongs to a perfectly
harmless snake of New South Wales, so that the numerous
experiments made in Tasmania to test the value of some
pretended antidotes, were supposed in London to have been made
with the true Diamond snake, instead of, as was the case, with
this very poisonous kind. . . . I have adopted the popular
name `copperhead' for this snake from a well-known vendor of a
supposed antidote for snake-bites."
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 54:
"Those heather lands round Caulfield and Oakleigh where the
copperhead snake basks, coiled on the warm silver sand."
Death-adder; also called Deaf-adder.
An Australian snake, Acanthophis antarctica. It is
usually found in hot sandy districts, and is supposed to be the
most venomous of the Australian snakes. Large specimens reach
a length of upwards of three feet, the body having a diameter
of about two inches: at the end of the tail is a short spine
popularly known as the animal's "sting."
1878. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,'
Decade ii. pl. 12:
"The popular name seems to be indifferently Death Adder or Deaf
Adder. The harmless horny spine at the end of the tail is its
most dangerous weapon, in the popular belief."
Diamond-Snake.
Name applied in New South Wales and Queensland to Python
spilotes, Lacep., a non-venomous snake reaching a large
size. In Tasmania the same name is given to Hoplocephalus
superbus, Gray, a venomous snake more properly called the
Copperhead Snake.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 78:
"Charley killed a diamond snake, larger than any he had ever
seen before."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip,' c. iii. p. 43:
"The diamond snake is that most dreaded by the natives."
1869. G. Krefft, `The Snakes of Australia,' p. 29:
"Diamond snakes are found in almost every kind of country that
offers them sufficient shelter."
1895. G. Metcalfe, `Australian Zoology,' p. 27:
"As a rule, diamond snakes have almost every scale of the body
marked with a yellow spot in the centre. . . . The abdominal
plates are yellow, and more or less blotched with black, and
many species . . . have a number of diamond-shaped yellow
spots upon the body, formed by a few of the lighter scales,
and hence their name has probably arisen."
Green Tree-Snake.
Name given, owing to its colour, to the commonest Australian
tree-snake, Dendrophis punctulata, Gray. It is a
non-venomous form, feeding on frogs, young birds, and eggs,
and rarely exceeds the length of six feet.
1869. G. Krefft, `The Snakes of Australia,' p. 24:
"Young and half grown Tree Snakes are olive-green above and
light brown below . . . when angry, the body of this serpent
expands in a vertical direction, whilst all venomous snakes
flatten their necks horizontally. The green Tree snake, in a
state of excitement is strongly suggestive of one of the
popular toys of childhood."
Little Whip-Snake.
Name applied to a small venomous species of snake,
Hoplocephalus flagellum, McCoy. Common in
parts of Victoria, but not exceeding a foot in length.
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' vol. ii. c. xxvii.
p. 190:
"He wished it had been a whip-snake instead of a magpie."
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. xx. p. 199:
"A whip-snake . . . reared itself upon its lithe body, and
made a dart at Barrington's arm."
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c. iii. p. 24:
"I saw a large `whip-snake' lying on the path."
Tiger-Snake.
Name applied in Australia and Tasmania to Hoplocephalus
curtus, Schlegel, but this species is often also known in
the latter as the Carpet Snake (q.v.). The popular name
is derived from the cross-banded colouring along the body, and
also from its activity. It varies much in colour from a dark
olive green to a light yellowish brown, the darker cross bands
being sometimes almost indistinguishable. It may reach a
length of four feet, and is viviparous, producing about thirty
young ones in January or February.
1875. `The Spectator' (Melbourne), Aug. 21, p. 190, col. 1:
"On Tuesday a tiger-snake was seen opposite the door of the
Sandridge police court."
1885. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,' Decade
i. pl. 3:
"This species, which goes under the colonial name in Victoria
of Tiger snake, from its tawny cross banded colouring and
ferocity, is well known to frequently inflict bites rapidly
fatal to men and dogs. . . . In Tasmania this is popularly
called `Carpet snake,' a name which properly belongs to the
harmless snake so called on the mainland."
Two-hooded Furina-Snake.
Name applied to a small, venomous snake, Furina
bicuculata, McCoy.
1879. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,' Decade
iii. pl. 32:
"Furina bicuculata (McCoy). The Two-hooded Furina-snake. . . .
This rare and beautiful little snake is a clear example of the
genus Furina."
White-lipped-Snake.
Name given to a small venomous species of whip-snake,
Hoplocephalus coronoides, Gunth., found in Tasmania and
Victoria, and reaching a length of about eighteen inches.
1890. A. H. S. Lucas, `Handbook of the Australasian
Association for the Advancement of Science,' Melbourne, p. 71:
"Whip snakes, H. flagellum and H. coronoides."
Worm-Snake.
Name given to various species of the genus Typhlops,
comprising small, non-venomous, smooth, round-bodied snakes,
which burrow in warm sandy soil, and feed upon insects such as
ants. The eyes are covered over by translucent plates, and the
tail scarcely tapering at all, and sometimes having two black
spots, gives the animal the appearance of having a head at each
end. The commoner forms are the Blackish Worm-Snake
(Typhlops nigrescens, Gray), and Schlegel's
Worm-Snake (T. polygrammicus, Schlegel).
1881. F. McCoy, `Prodromus of the Zoology of Victoria,'
Decade vi. pl. 103:
"The `Blackish Worm snake' is not uncommon in the northern
warmer parts of the colony. . . . These worm snakes are
perfectly harmless, although, like the Slow-Worms and their
allies in other countries, they are popularly supposed to be
very poisonous."
Sneeze-weed, Myriogyne minuta, Less.,
Cotula or Centipeda cunninghamii, De C.,
and many other botanical synonyms. A valuable specific
for Sandy-Blight (q.v.).
1877. F. v. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 58:
"The Sneeze-weed (Cotula or Centipeda
Cunninghamii). A dwarf, erect, odorous herb . . .
can be converted into snuff."
1886. Dr. Woolls, in `Sydney Morning Herald,' Dec. 25
(quoted by Maiden):
"Dr. Jockel is, I believe, the first medical man in Australia
who has proved the value of Myriogyne in a case of
ophthalmia. This weed, growing as it does on the banks of
rivers and creeks, and in moist places,, is common in all the
Australian colonies and Tasmania, and it may be regarded as
almost co-extensive with the disease it is designed to
relieve."
Snipe, n. The species of Snipe known in
Australia are--Scolopax australis, Lath.; Painted S.,
Rhynchaea australis, Gould. This bird breeds in Japan
and winters in Australia. The name is also used as in the
quotation.
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 210:
"Along the shore are flocks of a species of bird which some
sportsmen and the game-sellers in the city are pleased to call
snipe. They are probably tringa, a branch of the sea-plover
family."
Snook, n. The name is applied in the Old World
to various fishes, including the Garfish (q.v.). At the
Cape of Good Hope, it is applied to Thyrsites atun,
Cuv. and Val., and this name for the same fish has extended to
New Zealand, where (as in all the other colonies) it is more
generally called the Barracouta (q.v.). Under the word
Cavally, `O.E.D.' quotes--
1697. Dampier, `Voyage,' vol. i:
"The chiefest fish are bonetas, snooks, cavallys."
Snook is an old name, but it is doubtful whether it is used in
the Old World for the same fish. Castelnau says it is the
snook of the Cape of Good Hope.
1872. Hutton and Hector, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 14,
under `Thyrsites Atun, Barracoota':
"This is, I believe, the fish called snoek in Cape Colony."
1880. Guenther, `Study of Fishes,' p. 436:
"Th. atun from the Cape of Good Hope, South Australia,
New Zealand, and Chili, is preserved, pickled or smoked. In
New Zealand it is called `barracuda' or `snoek,' and exported
from the colony into Mauritius and Batavia as a regular article
of commerce."
Snowberry, n. a Tasmanian name for the
Wax-cluster (q.v.).
Snow-Grass, n. Poa caespitosa,
G. Forst., another name for Wiry grass (q.v.).
See also Grass.
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for the Mail,' p. 31:
"Tethering my good old horse to a tussock of snow-grass."
Snow-line, n. In pastoralists' language of New
Zealand, "above the snow-line" is land covered by snow in
winter, but free in summer.
Soak, or Soakage, n. a Western
and Central Australian term. See quotation.
1895. `The Australasian,' Sept. 7, p. 461, col. 1:
"`Inquirer.'--The term soak in Western Australia, as used on
maps and plans, signifies a depression holding moisture after
rain. It is also given to damp or swampy spots round the base
of granite rocks. Wells sunk on soaks yield water for some
time after rain. All soaks are of a temporary character."
Soak-hole, n. an enclosed place in a stream
in which sheep are washed.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 82:
"Parallel poles, resting on forks driven into the bed of the
water-hole, were run out on the surface of the stream, forming
square soak-holes, a long, narrow lane leading to the dry
land."
Soldier, or Soldier-Ant, n. "one of
that section of a colony of some kinds of ants which does the
fighting, takes slaves, etc." (`Century Dict.') In Australia,
the large red ants are called Soldier-Ants. Compare
Bulldog-Ant.
1854. G. H. Haydon, `The Australian Emigrant,' p. 59:
"It was a red ant, upwards of an inch in length--`that's a
soldier, and he prods hard too.'"
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. p. 308:
"The pain caused by a wound from this grass-seed is exactly
like that from the bite of a soldier-ant."
Soldier-bird, or Poor Soldier,
or Old-Soldier bird, n. another
name for the Friar-bird (q.v.).
1859. D. Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 62:
"The notes peculiar to the Ornithorhynchus paradoxus,
or platypus, wattle-bird, and leather-head, or old
soldier bird, added in no small degree to the novelties. . . .
The wattle-bird has been not inaptly termed the `what's
o'clock,'--the leather-head the `stop where-you-are.'"
[Mr. Bunce's observations are curiously confused. The
`Soldier-bird' is also called `Four o'clock,' but it is
difficult to say what `wattle bird' is called `what's o'clock';
the `notes' of the platypus must be indeed `peculiar.']
1896. Mrs. Langloh Parker, `Australian Legendary Tales,'
p. 108 [Title of Tale]:
"Deegeenboyah the Soldier-bird."
Sole, n. The name is given to various
Australian fishes. In Sydney, to Synaptura nigra,
Macl.; in Melbourne, to Rhombosolea bassensis, Castln.;
in New Zealand, to Rhombosolea monopus, Gunth.,
and Peltorhamphus novae-zelandiae, Gunth.; in Tasmania,
to Ammotretis rostratus, Gunth., family
Pleuronectidae. Rhombosolea monopus is called
the Flounder, in Tasmania. See also Lemon-Sole.
Solomon's Seal, n. Not the Old World plant,
which is of the genus Polygonatum, but the Tasmanian
name for Drymophila cyanocarpa, R. Br.,
N.O. Liliacea; also called Turquoise Berry.
Sonny, n. a common nominative of address to any
little boy. In Australia, the word is not infrequently
pronounced as in the quotation. The form of the word came from
America.
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 10:
"But maybe you're only a Johnnie,
And don't know a horse from a hoe?
Weel, weel, don't get angry, my Sonny,
But, really, a young `un should know."
Sool, v. Used colloquially--(1) to excite a
dog or set him on; (2) to worry, as of a dog. Common in the
phrase "Sool him, boy!" Shakspeare uses "tarre him on" in the
first sense.
Shakspeare, `King John,' IV. i. 117:
"And like a dog that is compelled to fight,
Snatch at his master that doth tarre him on."
1896. Mrs. Langloh Parker, `Australian Legendary Tales,'
p. 90:
"She went quickly towards her camp, calling softly, `Birree
gougou,' which meant `Sool 'em, sool 'em,' and was the signal
for the dogs to come out."
Sorrel, Queensland. See Queensland Sorrel.
Sour-Gourd, n. Same as Baobab (q.v.).
Sour-Plum, n. the Emu-apple.
See Apple.
South Australia, n. the name of a colony,
established in 1836, with Adelaide as its capital. It is not a
good name, for it is not the most southerly colony, and the
"Northern Territory" forms a part of South Australia. Central
Australia would be a better name, but not wholly satisfactory,
for by Central Australia is now meant the central part of the
colony of South Australia. The name Centralia has been
proposed as a change.
Southern Cross, n. The constellation of the
Southern Cross is of course visible in places farther north
than Australia, but it has come to be regarded as the
astronomical emblem of Australasia; e.g. the phrase "beneath
the Southern Cross " is common for "in Australia or New
Zealand."
1863. S. Butler, `First Year in Canterbury Settlement,' p. 13:
"The southern cross is a very great delusion. It isn't a
cross. It is a kite, a kite upside down, an irregular kite
upside down, with only three respectable stars and one very
poor and very much out of place. Near it, however, is a truly
mysterious and interesting object called the coal sack: it is
a black patch in the sky distinctly darker than all the rest of
the heavens. No star shines through it. The proper name for it
is the black Magellan cloud."
1868. Mrs. Riddell, `Lay of Far South,' p. 4:
"Yet do I not regret the loss,
Thou hast thy gleaming Southern Cross."
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. iv. p. 35:
"The Southern Cross rose gem-like above the horizon."
Spade-press, n. a make-shift wool-press in
which the fleeces are rammed down with a spade.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xvii. p. 202:
"The spade-press--that friendly adjunct of the pioneer
squatter's humble wool-shed."
Spaniard, n. a prickly bushy grass of New
Zealand, Aciphylla colensoi.
1857. `Paul's Letters from Canterbury,' p. 108:
"The country through which I have passed has been most
savage, one mass of Spaniards."
1862. J. Von Haast, `Geology of Westland,' p. 25:
"Groves of large specimens of Discaria toumatoo,
the Wild Irishman of the settlers, formed with the gigantic
Aciphylla Colensoi, the Spaniard or Bayonet-grass,
an often impenetrable thicket."
1863. S. Butler, `First Year of Canterbury Settlement,' p. 67:
"The Spaniard (spear-grass or bayonet-grass) `piked us intil
the bane,' and I assure you we were hard set to make any
headway at all."
1875. Lady Barker, `Station Amusements in New Zealand,' p. 35:
"The least touch of this green bayonet draws blood, and a fall
into a Spaniard is a thing to be remembered all
one's life."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 287:
"Carefully avoiding contact with the long-armed leaves of
Spaniards (Aciphylla), which here attain the larger
dimensions, carrying flower-spikes up to six feet long."
1890. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xxiii. p. 197:
"Here were rats which lived under the dead leaves of the
prickly `Spaniard,' and possibly fed on the roots.
The Spaniard leaves forked into stiff upright fingers
about 1 in. wide, ending in an exceedingly stiff pricking point."
1896. `Otago Witness,' May 7, p. 48 "Prickly as the points
of the Spaniard."
Spear-grass, n. name given to several grasses
whose spear-like seeds spoil the wool of sheep, but which are
yet excellent forage plants. They are--(1) all the species of
Stipa; (2) Heteropogon contortus, Roem. and
Schult., and others (see quotations); (3) and in New Zealand,
one or two plants of the umbelliferous genus Aciphylla;
also called Spaniard (q.v.).
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 44:
"Very disagreeable, however, was the abundance of burr and of a
spear-grass (Aristida)."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. ii. p. 463 [Note]:
"On the south coast there is a grass seed which has similar
properties. The seeds are sharp and covered with fine barbs,
and once they penetrate the skin they will work their way
onwards. They catch in the wool of sheep, and in a short time
reach the intestines. Very often I have been shown the omentum
of a dead sheep where the grass seeds were projecting like a
pavement of pegs. The settlers call it spear-grass, and it is,
I believe, a species of Anthistiria."
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. v. p. 86:
"Sheep in paddocks cannot be so well kept clear of
spear-grass."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 90:
"Heteropogon contortus, Spear Grass. A splendid grass
for a cattle-run, as it produces a great amount of feed, but is
dreaded by the sheep-owner on account of its spear-like seeds."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 23:
"A nocuous kind of grass, namely the dreaded spear-grass
(Andropogon contortus), which grows on the coast,
and which rendered sheep-raising impossible."
Spear-Lily, n. See Lily.
Spearwood, the wood of three trees so called, because
the aborigines made their spears from it--Acacia
doratoxylon, A. Cunn., A. homalophylla, A. Cunn.,
both N.O. Leguminosae; and Eucalyptus
doratoxylon, F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Speedwell, Native, n. The English
Speedwell is a Veronica. There is a Tasmanian
species, Veronica formosa, R. Br.,
N.O. Scrophulariaceae.
Spell, n. In England, a turn at work or duty;
in Australasia, always a period of rest from duty. It is quite
possible that etymologically Spell is connected with
Ger. spielen, in which case the Australasian use is the
more correct. See `Skeat's Etymological Dictionary.'
1865. J. O. Tucker, `Australian Story,' c. i. p. 84:
"The only recompense was . . . to light his pipe and have
a `spell.'"
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 84:
"Having a spell--what we should call a short holiday."
Spell, v. to rest.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
p. 42:
"In order to spell the oars, we landed at a point on the east
side."
1880. G. n. Oakley, in `Victoria in 1880,' p. 114:
"He `spelled' upon the ground; a hollow gum
Bore up his ample back and bade him rest;
And creaked no warning when he sat upon
A war-ant's nest."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xxiv. p. 328:
"There's a hundred and fifty stock-horses there, spelling for
next winter's work."
1896. Baldwin Spencer, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,'
Narrative, p. 48:
"We camped beside a water-pool containing plenty of fish, and
here we spelled for a day to allow some of us to go on and
photograph Chamber's Pillar."
Sphenura, n. scientific name for a genus
of Australian birds called the Bristle-Birds (q.v.).
From Grk. sphaen, "a wedge," and 'oura, "a tail."
The name was given by Sir Frederick McCoy.
Spider, n. See Katipo.
Spider-Orchis, n. name given in Tasmania
to the Orchid Caladenia pulcherrima, F. v. M.
Spiloglaux, n. See Sceloglaux.
Spinach, Australian, n. name applied to species
of Chenopodium, N.O. Salsolaceae; called also
Fat-hen. The name is also applied to various wild pot
herbs.
Spinach, New Zealand, n. Tetragonia
expansa, Murr., N.O. Ficoideae; called also
Iceplant, in Tasmania. It is a trailing
Fig-marigold, and was discovered in New Zealand by
Captain Cook, though it is also found in Japan and South
America. Its top leaves are eaten as spinach, and Cook
introduced it to England, where it is also known as Summer
Spinach.
Spine-bill, n. an Australian "Honey-eater,"
but not now so classed. There are two species--
The Slender Spine-bill--
Acanthorhynchus tenuirostris, Gould; inhabiting
Australia and Tasmania, and called Cobbler's Awl
in the latter colony.
White-eyebrowed S.--
A. superciliosus, Gould; of Western Australia.
Though related to the genus Myzomela, the pattern
of their colouration differs widely.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 61:
"Acanthorhynchus tenuirostris. Slender-billed
Spine-bill. Cobbler's Awl, Colonists of Van Diemen's
Land."
Ibid. pl. 62:
"Acanthorhynchus superciliosus, Gould. White-eyebrowed
Spine-bill."
Spinetail, n. an Australian bird, Orthonyx
spinicauda; called also Pheasant's Mother (q.v.),
Log-runner (q.v.). The name is used elsewhere for
different birds. See Orthonyx.
Spinifex, n. a grass known in India, China, and
the Pacific, but especially common on Australasian shores. The
word means, literally, thorn-making, but it is not
classical Latin. "The aggregated flowers form large clusters,
and their radiating heads, becoming detached at maturity, are
carried by the wind along the sand, propelled by their elastic
spines and dropping their seeds as they roll." (Mueller.)
This peculiarity gains for the Hairy Spinifex
(Spinifex hirsutus, Labill.) the additional name of
Spiny Rolling Grass. See also quotation, 1877. This
chief species (S. hirsutus) is present on the shores of
nearly all Australasia, and has various
synonyms--S. sericeus, Raoul.; S. inermis, Banks
and Sol.; Ixalum inerme, Forst.; S. fragilis,
R.B., etc. It is a "coarse, rambling, much-branched, rigid,
spinous, silky or woolly, perennial grass, with habitats near
the sea on sandhills, or saline soils more inland." (Buchanan.)
The Desert Spinifex of the early explorers, and of many
subsequent writers, is not a true Spinifex, but a
Fescue; it is properly called Porcupine Grass
(q.v.), and is a species of Triodia. The quotations,
1846, 1887, 1890, and 1893, involve this error.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. vi. p. 209:
"In the valley was a little sandy soil, nourishing the
Spinifex."
1877. Baron von Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 125:
"The Desert Spinifex of our colonists is a Fescue, but a true
Spinifex occupies our sand-shores; . . . the heads are
so buoyant as to float lightly on the water, and while their
uppermost spiny rays act as sails, they are carried across
narrow inlets, to continue the process of embarking."
1887. J. Bonwick, `Romance of Wool Trade,' p. 239:
"Though grasses are sadly conspicuous by their absence, saline
plants, so nutritious for stock, occur amidst the real deserts
of Spinifex."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 43:
"On the broad sandy heights . . . the so-called spinifex is
found in great abundance. This grass (Triodia irritans)
is the traveller's torment, and makes the plains, which it
sometimes covers for hundreds of miles, almost impassable. Its
blades, which have points as sharp as needles, often prick the
horses' legs till they bleed."
1893. A. F. Calvert, `English Illustrated Magazine,' Feb.,
p. 325:
"They evidently preferred that kind of watercress to the leaves
of the horrid, prickly Spinifex, so omnipresent in the
north-western district."
1896. R. Tate, `Horne Expedition in Central Australia,'
Botany, p. 119:
"A species of Triodia (`porcupine grass,' or incorrectly
`spinifex' of explorers and residents) dominates sandy ground
and the sterile slopes and tops of the sandstone table-lands."
Spiny-Lizard, n. i.q. Mountain Devil
(q.v.).
Split-stuff, n. timber sawn into lengths and
then split.
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 159:
"`Sawed stuff' and `split stuff,' by which is meant timber
which is sawn into regular forms and thicknesses, as
flooring boards, joints, battens, &c., and that which is
split into `posts and rails,' slabs, or paling. Some of
the species of eucalyptus, or gum-trees, are peculiarly
adapted for splitting. The peppermint-tree (Eucalyptus
piperita) and the `Stringy Bark' are remarkable for the
perfectly straight grain which they often exhibit, and are
split with surprising evenness and regularity into paling and
boards for `weather-boarding' houses and other purposes, in
lengths of six or eight feet by one foot wide, and half or
one-third of an inch thick. . . . Any curve in a tree renders
it unfit for splitting, but the crooked- grained wood is best
for sawing. . . . All houses in the colony, with few
exceptions, are roofed with split shingles."
Splitter, n. a wood-cutter, cutting timber
in the bush, and splitting it into posts and rails, palings
or shingles. See quotation under Split-stuff.
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 105:
"There were two splitters located near us . . . they had a
licence to split timber on the crown lands."
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads--Wolf and Hound,' p. 32:
"At the splitter's tent I had seen the track
Of horse hoofs, fresh on the sward."
Spoonbill, n. a bird-name widely used.
The Australian species are--
Royal Spoonbill--
Platalea regia.
Yellow-billed S.--
P. flavipes.
P. regia has a fine crest in the breeding season;
hence the name.
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings among Gum-trees,' p. 79:
"The sun is sinking in the western sky,
And ibises and spoonbills thither fly.
Spotted-tree. Same as Leopard-tree (q.v.).
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 216:
"Spotted or Leopard Tree. The gum from this tree forms good
adhesive mucilage. It reminds one strongly of East-India
gum-arabic of good quality. During the summer months large
masses, of a clear amber-colour, exude from the stem and
branches. It has a very pleasant taste, is eaten by the
aboriginals, and forms a very common bushman's remedy in
diarrhoea."
Spotted-Orchis, n. Tasmanian name for the
Orchid Dipodium punctatum, R. Br.
Spotting, n. New Zealand equivalent for the
Australian "picking the eyes out," and "peacocking." Under
Free-selection (q.v.), the squatter spotted his run,
purchasing choice spots.
Spotty, n. a New Zealand fish, a Wrass,
Labrichthys bothryocosmus, Richards.; also called
Poddly (q.v.), and Kelp-fish (q.v.).
1878. P. Thomson, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xi. art. lii. p. 384:
"Wrasse, parrot-fish, and spotties are often in the market.
There are two kinds of spotties, a big and a little. The
wrasse and the parrot-fish are mostly caught outside amongst
the kelp, and these, with the spotty, are indiscriminately
called kelp-fish by the fishermen."
Sprag, n. In gold-mining. See quotation.
The word is used in England, applied to coal-mining.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. iii. p. 23:
"A `sprag,' being a stout piece of hard wood, was inserted
between the rope and the iron roller on which the rope ran."
Squat, v. to be a squatter (q.v.) in any of the senses
of that word.
1846. Feb. 11, `Speech by Rev. J. D. Lang,' quoted in
`Phillipsland,' p. 410:
In whatever direction one moves out of Melbourne, whether
north, east, or west, all he sees or hears is merely a
repetition of this colonial note--`I squat, thou squattest, he
squats; we squat, ye or you squat, they squat.'. . .
Exeunt omnes. `They are all gone out a-squatting.'"
1846. T. H. Braim, `History of New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 236:
"The regulations . . . put an end to squatting within the
boundaries of location, and reduced it to a system without
the boundaries."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 136:
"The Speaker squats equally and alternately on the woolsack of
the House and at his wool-stations on the Murrumbidgee. One
may squat on a large or small scale, squat directly or
indirectly, squat in person or by proxy."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' p. 68:
"Some spot,
Found here and there, where cotters squat
With self-permission."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 119:
"Squatting, in its first phase, was confined to the region
round about Sydney; it was not until the pass through the Blue
Mountains was discovered that the flocks and herds of the
colonists began to expand."
Squattage, n. a squatter's station.
The word can hardly be said to have prevailed.
1864. W. Westgarth, `Colony of Victoria,' p. 272:
"The great Riverine district, which is one vast series of
squattages . . . the toil and solitude of a day's journey
between the homesteads of adjacent squattages."
Squatter, n. (1) One who squats; that is,
settles on land without a title or licence. This is an
English use.
1835. T. A. Murray (Evidence before Legislative Council of
New South Wales on Police and Gaols):
"There are several parties of squatters in my neighbourhood.
I detected, not long since, three men at one of their stations
in the act of slaughtering one of my own cattle. I have strong
reason to suspect that these people are, in general, illicit
sellers of spirits."
1835. W. H. Dutton (Evidence before same Committee):
"These persons (squatters) are almost invariably the
instigators and promoters of crime, receivers of stolen
property, illegal vendors of spirits, and harbourers of
runaways, bushrangers, and vagrants."
1843. Rev. W. Pridden, `Australia Its History and Present
Condition,' pp. 332-3:
"The squatters, as they are called, are men who occupy
with their cattle, or their habitations, those spots on the
confines of a colony or estate which have not yet become any
person's private property. By the natural increase of their
flocks and herds, many of these squatters have enriched
themselves; and having been allowed to enjoy the advantages of
as much pasture as they wanted in the bush, without paying any
rent for it to the government, they have removed elsewhere when
the spot was sold, and have not unfrequently gained enough to
purchase that or some other property. Thus . . . the squatter
has been converted into a respectable settler. But this is too
bright a picture to form an average specimen. . . .
Unfortunately, many of these squatters have been persons
originally of depraved and lawless habits, and they have made
their residence at the very outskirts of civilization a means
of carrying on all manner of mischief. Or sometimes they
choose spots of waste land near a high road . . . there the
squatters knock up what is called a `hut.' In such places
stolen goods are easily disposed of, spirits and tobacco are
procured in return."
Ibid. p. 334:
"The rich proprietors have a great aversion to the class of
squatters, and not unreasonably, yet they are thus, many of
them, squatters themselves, only on a much larger scale. . ."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,'
vol. i. c. ix. p. 260:
"This capital of Australia Felix had for a long time been
known to some squatters from Tasmania."
1846. T. H. Braim, `History of New South Wales,'
vol. i. p. 235:
"A set of men who were to be found upon the borders of every
large estate, and who were known by the name of squatters.
These were ticket-of-leave holders, or freedmen who erected a
but on waste land near a great public road, or on the outskirts
of an estate."
1897. Australian Steam Navigation Company, `Guide Book,'
p. 29:
"Nowaday squatters may be interested and possibly shocked on
learning that in March, 1836, a petition was being largely
signed for the prevention of `squatting, through which so much
crime was daily occurring,' inasmuch as `squatting' was but
another term for sly grog selling, receiving stolen property,
and harbouring bushrangers and assigned servants. The term
`squatter,' as applied to the class it now designates--without
which where would Australia now be?--was not in vogue till
1842."
(2) A pastoral tenant of the Crown, often renting from the
Crown vast tracts of land for pasturage at an almost nominal
sum. The term is still frequently, but incorrectly, used for
a man rearing and running stock on freehold land.
Pastoralist is now the more favoured term.
1840. F. P. Labillicre, `Early History of the Colony of
Victoria' (edition 1878), vol. ii. p. 189:
"In a memorandum of December 19th, 1840, `on the disposal of
Lands in the Australian Provinces,' Sir George Gipps informs
the Secretary of State on the subject, and states that,--'A
very large proportion of the land which is to form the new
district of Port Phillip is already in the licensed occupation
of the Squatters of New South Wales, a class of persons whom it
would be wrong to confound with those who bear the same name in
America, and who are generally persons of mean repute and of
small means, who have taken unauthorized possession of patches
of land. Among the Squatters of New South Wales are the
wealthiest of the land, occupying, with the permission of the
Government, thousands and tens of thousands of acres. Young
men of good families and connexions in England, officers of the
army and navy, graduates of Oxford and Cambridge, are also in
no small number amongst them.'"
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' July 8, p. 3, col. 3:
"The petitioner has already consigned the whole country
to the class squatter in perpetuity."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 165:
"The squatters of Australia Felix will meet on horseback, upon
Batman's Hill, on the 1st of June, for the purpose of forming a
Mutual Protection Society. From the Murray to the sea-beach,
from the Snowy Mountains to the Glenelg, let no squatter be
absent."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 366:
"`Squatters.' A word not to be found in `Johnson's Dictionary';
of Canadian extraction, literally to sit on the haunches: in
Australia a term applied to the sheep farmers generally; from
their being obliged frequently to adopt that position."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition' (Introd.), p. 15:
"We were received with the greatest kindness by my friends the
`squatters,' a class principally composed of young men of good
education, gentlemanly habits, and high principles."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 168:
"The Port Phillip squatters, as occupants of the territory of
New South Wales, were afterwards required to take out an annual
depasturing licence in terms of a Colonial Act passed at
Sydney."
(p. 246): "The modern squatters, the aristocratic portion
of the colonial community."
1851. `Australasian,' p. 298:
"In 1840 the migratory flockmaster had become a settled
squatter. A wretched slab but is now his home; for furniture
he has a rough bush-made table, and two or three uncouth
stools."
1861. T. McCombie, Australian Sketches,' p. 128:
"The term squatter was applied in the first instance to
signify, as in America, such as erected huts on unsold land.
It thus came to be applied to all who did not live on their own
land, to whom the original and more expressive name of settler
continued to be applied. When the owners of stock became
influential from their education and wealth, it was thought due
to them to change this term for one more suitable to their
circumstances, as they now included in their order nearly every
man of mark or wealth in Australia. The Government suggested
the term `tenants of the Crown,' the press hinted at `licensed
graziers,' and both terms were in partial use, but such is the
prejudice in favour of what is already established, that both
were soon disused, and the original term finally adopted."
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 478:
"The term `squatter' . . . is thus derived:--A flock-master
settling in Australia could drive his stock to, and occupy,
any tract of country, which, from its extent and pastoral
capabilities, might meet his comprehensive views; always
provided, that such lands had not been already appropriated.
. . . Early flock-masters were always confirmed in their
selection of lands, according to the quantity of stock they
possessed. . . . The Victorian Squatter who can number but
five or six thousand sheep is held to be a man of no account.
. . . Those only, who can command the shearing of from ten
to forty thousand fleeces annually, are estimated as worthy
of any note."
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 47:
"The squatters (as owners of sheepstations are called)."
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, Founder of Victoria,' p. 94:
"In the language of the times, Messrs. Evans, Lancey, and
subsequently J. P. Fawkner, were squatters. That term is
somewhat singular as applied to the latter, who asserts that he
founded the colony to prevent its getting into the hands of the
squatters. The term was then applied to all who placed
themselves upon public lands without licence."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,'
vol. i. p. 265:
"It is not too much to say that all the early success of
Australia was due to the squatters of New South Wales,
who followed the steps of Captain McArthur."
1878. `The Australian,' vol. i. p. 532:
"I have been a super, a small freeholder, and a middling-sized
squatter, at different times."
1889. Rev. J. H. Zillmann, `Australian Life,' p. 165:
"The Squatters are the large leaseholders and landed
proprietors of the colony, whose cry has always been that the
country was unfit for agricultural settlement, and only adapted
for the pastoral pursuits in which they were engaged. . . .
It is true the old squatter has been well-nigh exterminated."
1893. J. F. Hogan, `Robert Lowe,' p. 36:
"The pastoral enterprise of the adventurous squatters.
Originally unrecognized trespassers on Crown lands. . . ."
(3) Applied as a nickname to a kind of Bronze-wing
Pigeon (q.v.).
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 122:
"On the plains you find different kinds of pigeons, the
squatters being most common--plump, dust-coloured little
fellows, crouching down to the ground quite motionless as you
pass. I have frequently killed them with my stock-whip."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 114:
"Gentle little squatter-pigeons cooed lovingly in answer to
their mates on all sides."
Squatterarchy, n. squatters collectively.
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. iii. p. 25:
"The Squatterarchy of the Koorong rose up in a body and named
its hero, martyr."
Squatterdom, n. the state of being a squatter,
or collective word for squatters; the squatter-party.
1866 (circiter). `Political parody':
"The speaker then apologised, the Members cried, Hear, Hear;
And e'en the ranks of squatterdom could scarce forbear to
cheer."
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, Founder of Victoria,' p. 94:
"Writes to another at a distance upon the subject of
squatterdom."
Squatting, adj.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition' (Introd.), p. 13:
"During my recent excursions through the squatting districts,
I had accustomed myself to a comparatively wild life."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Cooksland,' p. 268:
"The large extent of land occupied by each Squatting Station."
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 4, col. 2:
"A gathering of the squatting and bush life of Australia."
Squattocracy, n. squatters collectively.
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 118:
"Throughout the Colony generally, English are the most
numerous, then the Scotch, then the Irish, amongst the
Squattocracy."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 59:
"The howl for the abolition of the squattocracy had not yet
been fostered under the malign influence of shortsighted
politicians."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Head Station,' p. 35 (`Century'):
"The bloated squattocracy represents Australian conservatism."
1890. E. W. Hornung, `A Bride from the Bush,' p. 243:
"The hearty, hospitable manner of the colonial `squatocracy.'"
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. iv. p. 42:
"He trusted to pass into the ranks of the Squatocracy."
Squattocratic, adj. connected with previous
word.
1854. `Melbourne Morning Herald,' Feb. 18, p. 4, col. 5:
"Squattocratic Impudence." [A heading.]
Squeaker, n. a vernacular name applied
to various birds from their cries. See quotations.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 45:
"Strepera Anaphonensis, Grey Crow-shrike; Squeaker
of the Colonists."
1855. W. Blandowski, `Transactions of Philosophical Society,
Victoria,' vol. i. p. 63:
"The Squeaker (Strepera anaphonensis) is a shy and
solitary bird, living entirely on the flats, and is remarkable
on account of its frequenting only the same locality. He is
hence easily distinguished from the Gymnorhina tibicen,
whose shrill and piping voice is so well known on all the high
lands."
1896. A. J. North, `List of Insectivorous Birds of New South
Wales,' part i. p. 1:
"A local name is often more apt to mislead and confuse than to
assist one in recognizing the particular species on which it is
bestowed. This is chiefly due to the same local name being
applied to two or more species.For instance, Corcorax
melanorhamphus, Xerophila leucopsis, and Myzantha
garrula are all locally known in different parts of the
Colony by the name of `Squeaker.'"
Squid, n. a marine animal. The Australian
species is Sepioteuthis australis, Quoy and Gaim.
1883. `Report of the Royal Commission on the Fisheries of
Tasmania,' p. xi:
"None of the Squid family seems to be sought after, although
certain kinds are somewhat abundant in our waters. It is
stated by the New South Wales Fisheries Enquiry Commission,
1880, that `the cephalopods might be made a source of a
considerable profit for exportation to Japan and China.
In both these countries all animal substances of a gelatinous
character are in great request, and none more than those of the
cuttle-fish tribe; the squid (Sepioteuthis australis) is
highly appreciated, and in consequence is highly prized.
The cuttle-fish (sepia) is of rather inferior quality,
and the star-fish of the fishermen (octopus) not used
at all.'"
1892. R L. Stevenson, `The Wrecker,' p. 345:
"You can't fill up all these retainers on tinned salmon for
nothing; but whenever I could get it, I would give 'em squid.
Squid's good for natives, but I don't care for it, do you?--
or shark either."
Squire, n. name given to the fish called
Schnapper at two years old. See Schnapper.
Squirrel, n. See Flying-Squirrel.
Stamper, or Stamphead, n. "A cast-iron
weight, or head, fixed on to a shank or lifter, and used for
stamping or reducing quartz to a fine sand." (Brough Smyth,
`Glossary.') The word is used elsewhere as a term in
machinery. In Australia, it signifies the appliance above
described. The form stamphead is the earlier one.
The shorter word stamper is now the more usual.
1869. J. F. Blanche, `Prince's Visit,' p. 25:
"For steam and stampers now are all the rage."
1880. A. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 76:
"The battery was to have eight stampers."
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 11:
"This, with the old battery, brings the number of stampers up
to sixty."
Ibid. p. 15:
"A battery of twenty-six stamp heads."
Star of Bethlehem. The Old World plant is
Ornithogalum umbellatum; the name is given in Australia
to Chamaescilla corymbosa, and in Tasmania to
Burchardia umbellata, R. Br., both of the
Liliaceae.
Star-fern, n. name given in Victoria to
Gleichenia flabellata, R. Br.; called also
Fan-fern. See Fern.
Starling, n. English bird-name.
The Australian species is the Shining Starling,
Calornis metallica. The common English starling
is also acclimatised.
Start, n. The young Australian has a fine
contempt for the English word to begin, which he never
uses where he can find any substitute. He says commence
or start, and he always uses commence followed
by the infinitive instead of by the verbal noun, as "The dog
commenced to bark."
1896. Modern talk in the train:
"The horse started to stop, and the backers commenced to
hoot."
Station, n. originally the house with the
necessary buildings and home-premises of a sheep-run, and still
used in that sense: but now more generally signifying the run
and all that goes with it. Stations are distinguished
as Sheep-stations and Cattle-stations.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. (Introd.):
"They . . . will only be occupied as distant stock-stations."
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 120:
"Their [squatters'] huts or houses, gardens, paddocks, etc.,
form what is termed a station, while the range of country over
which their flocks and herds roam is termed a run."
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, Founder of Victoria,' p. 35:
"The lecturer assured his audience that he came here to prevent
this country being a squatting station."
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads,' p. 17:
"The sturdy station-children pull the bush flowers on my
grave."
1890. E. D. Cleland, `The White Kangaroo,' p. 4:
"Station--the term applied in the colonies to the homesteads of
the sheep-farmers or squatters."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood,'Miner's Right,' c. xviii. p. 171:
"Men who in their youth had been peaceful stockmen and
station-labourers."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 125:
"I'm travelen' down the Castlereagh and I'm a station-hand,
I'm handy with the ropin' pole, I'm handy with the brand,
And I can ride a rowdy colt, or swing the axe all day,
But there's no demand for a stationhand along the Castlereagh."
Station-jack, n. a form of bush cookery.
1853. `The Emigrant's Guide to Australia.' (Article on
Bush-Cookery, from an unpublished MS. by Mrs. Chisholm],
pp. 111-12:
"The great art of bush-cookery consists in giving a variety out
of salt beef and flour . . . let the Sunday share be soaked on
the Saturday, and beat it well . . . take the . . . flour and
work it into a paste; then put the beef into it, boil it,
and you will have a very nice pudding, known in the bush as
`Station jack.'"
Stavewood, n. another name for the Flindosy
Beech. See Beech.
Stay-a-while, n. a tangled bush; sometimes
called Wait-a-while (q.v.).
Steamer, n. obsolete name for a colonial dish.
See quotation.
1820. Lieut. C. Jeffreys, R.N., `Geographical and
Descriptive Delineations of the Island of Van Dieman's Land,'
p. 69:
"Their meal consisted of the hindquarters of a kangaroo cut
into mincemeat, stewed in its own gravy, with a few rashers
of salt pork; this dish is commonly called a steamer."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 309:
"Our largest animals are the Kangaroos . . . making most
delicious stews and steaks, the favourite dish being what is
called a steamer, composed of steaks and chopped tail,
(with a few slices of salt pork) stewed with a very small
quantity of water for a couple of hours in a close vessel."
Stewart Islander, n. name given to the oyster,
Ostrea chiloensis, Sowerby; so called because it is
specially abundant on Stewart Island off the south coast of New
Zealand. The Stewart Island forms are mud oysters, those of
Sydney Cove growing on rock. See Oyster.
Stick-Caterpillar, n. See Phasmid.
Stick-up, v. tr. (1) The regular word for the
action of bushrangers stopping passers-by on the highway and
robbing them.
(2) In the case of a bank or a station, simply to rob.
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. xiii. p. 502:
"It was only the previous night that he had been `stuck up'
with a pistol at his head."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. ii. p. 187:
"Unless the mail came well armed, a very few men could `stick
it up,' without any trouble or danger."
1857. `Melbourne Punch,' Feb. 19, p. 26, col. 1:
"I have been stuck up, trampled in the mud."
1869. J. Townend, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 140:
"Five or six bushrangers took up a position about a mile from
town, and (to use a colonial phrase) `stuck up' every person
that passed."
1869. Mrs. W. M. Howell, `The Diggings and the Bush,'
p. 93:
"The escort has been `stuck up,' and the robbers have taken
notes to the value of L700, and two thousand ounces of gold."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 253:
"We had a revolver apiece in case of being `stuck up' on the
road."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 168:
"We could make more money in one night by `sticking up' a
coach or a bank than in any other way in a year . . . Any
one who has been stuck up himself knows that there's not much
chance of doing much in the resisting line." [The operation is
then explained fully.]
1890. Lyth, `Golden South,' c.viii. p. 68:
"Accounts of bushrangers `sticking up' stations, travellers,
and banks were very frequent."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 26, p. 4. col. 6:
"The game of sticking up hotels used to be in the old days a
popular one, and from the necessary openness of the premises
the practice was easy to carry out."
(3) Humorously applied to a collector or a beggar. In `Twenty-
five Years of St. Andrews' (vol. ii. p. 87), A. K. H. B.
tells a story of a church dignitary, who was always collecting
money for church building. When a ghost appeared at Glamis
Castle, addressing the ghost, the clergyman began--that "he was
most anxious to raise money for a church he was erecting; that
he had a bad cold and could not well get out of bed; but that
his collecting-book was on the dressing-table, and he would be
`extremely obliged' for a subscription." An Australian would
have said he "stuck up" the ghost for a subscription.
1890. E. W. Hornung, `A Bride from the Bush,' p. 297:
"You never get stuck up for coppers in the streets of the
towns."
(4) Bring a kangaroo to bay.
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. iii. p. 24:
"We knew that she had `stuck up' or brought to bay a large
forester."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 15:
"The fiercest fighter I ever saw `stuck up' against a red
gum-tree."
(5) Simply to stop.
1863. S. Butler, `First Year in Canterbury Settlement,' p. 68:
"This [waterfall] `stuck us up,' as they say here concerning
any difficulty."
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 4, col. 2:
"We are stuck up for an hour or more, and can get a good feed
over there."
(6) To pose, to puzzle.
1896. Modern:
"I was stuck up for an answer."
"That last riddle stuck him up."
1897. `The Australasian,' Jan. 2, p. 33, col. 1:
"The professor seems to have stuck up any number of candidates
with the demand that they should `construct one simple sentence
out of all the following.'"
Sticker-up, n. sc. a bushranger.
1879. W. J. Barry, `Up and Down,' p. 197:
"They had only just been liberated from gaol, and were
the stickers-up, or highwaymen mentioned."
Sticker-up/2, n. a term of early bush cookery,
the method, explained in first quotation, being borrowed from
the aborigines.
1830. `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 112:
"Which he cooked in the mode called in colonial phrase a
sticker up. A straight twig being cut as a spit, the slices
were strung upon it, and laid across two forked sticks leaning
towards the fire."
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 55:
"Here I was first initiated into the bush art of `sticker-up'
cookery . . . the orthodox material here is of course kangaroo,
a piece of which is divided nicely into cutlets two or three
inches broad and a third of an inch thick. The next requisite
is a straight clean stick, about four feet long, sharpened at
both ends. On the narrow part of this, for the space of a foot
or more, the cutlets are spitted at intervals, and on the end
is placed a piece of delicately rosy fat bacon. The strong end
of the stick-spit is now stuck fast and erect in the ground,
close by the fire, to leeward; care being taken that it does
not burn." ". . . to men that are hungry, stuck-up kangaroo
and bacon are very good eating." . . . "our `sticker-up'
consisted only of ham."
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 103:
"Pounds of rosy steaks . . . skilfully rigged after the usual
approved fashion (termed in Bush parlance a sticker-up'),
before the brilliant wood fire, soon sent forth odours most
grateful to the hungered way-worn Bushmen."
Stilt, n. English bird-name. In New Zealand,
the species are--
The Black Stilt--
Himantopus novae-zelandiae, Gould; Maori name,
Kaki.
Pied S., or Whiteheaded S.--
H. leucocephalus, Gould; Maori name, Tutumata.
White-necked S.--
H. albicollis, Buller.
H. leucocephalus (the White-headed Stilt)
is also present in Australia, and the world-wide species,
H. pectoralis, Du Bus. (the Banded Stilt), is found
through all Australasia.
Stingareeing, n. the sport of catching
Stingrays, or Stingarees.
1872. Hutton and Hector, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 121:
"It has been recently discovered by the writer of the animated
article in the `Field' on Fishing in New Zealand [London, Nov.
25, 1871], that `stingareeing' can be made to afford sport of
a most exciting kind."
Stinging-tree, n. a Queensland name
for the Giant Nettle, or Nettle-tree (q.v.)
1890. A. J. Vogan, `The Black Police,' p. 209:
"The stinging-tree, . . . the most terrible of all vegetable
growths. This horrible guardian of the Queensland jungle
stands from five to fifteen feet in height, and has a general
appearance somewhat similar to that of a small mulberry-tree.
Their peculiarly soft and inviting aspect is caused by an
almost invisible coating of microscopic cillia, and it is to
these that the dangerous characteristics of the plant are due.
The unhappy wanderer in these wilds, who allows any part of his
body to come in contact with those beautiful, inviting tongues
of green, soon finds them veritable tongues of fire, and it
will be weeks, perhaps months, ere the scorching agony
occasioned by their sting is entirely eradicated."
Sting-moth, n. an Australian moth,
Doratifera vulnerans. The larva has at each end
of the body four tubercles bearing stinging hairs. (`Standard.')
Stinkwood, n. The name is given to various
woods in different parts of the world, from their unpleasant
smell. In Tasmania, it is applied to the timber of Zieria
smithii, Andr., N.O. Rutaceae.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' p. 175:
"The timber in this district I found to be principally myrtle,
sassafras, and stinkwood."
Stint, n. English bird-name. The Australian
species are--
Curlew Stint--
Tringa subarquata, Gmel.
Little S.--
T. ruficollis.
Sharp-tailed S.--
T. acuminata, Horsf.
Stitch-bird, n. a bird of New Zealand.
See quotation.
1885. Hugh Martin, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xviii. art. xxii. p. 112:
"Pogonornis cincta (Hihi, Matahiore, stitch-bird),
North Island."
[From a list of New Zealand birds that ought to be protected.]
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 101:
"Pogonornis cincta, Gray. [A full description.]"
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 119:
"Stitch-bird (Pogonornis cincta), formerly abundant in
the North Island, but now extinct on the main-land, and found
only in some of the outlying islets. The rarest and one of the
most beautiful of native Passerines."
Stock, n. The word has many meanings. In the
one from which the Australian compounds are made, it denotes
horses, cattle, or sheep, the farmer's stock in trade. Of
course, this use is not peculiar to Australia, but it is
unusually common there.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. ix.
p. 320:
"The cattle suffered much, and some of both the public and
private stock perished."
Stock-agent, n. more usually in the form Stock
and Station-agent. The circumstances of Australian life make
this a common profession.
Stock-holder, n. a grazier; owner of large
herds of cattle, or flocks of sheep.
1820. Lieut. Chas. Jeffreys, `Delineations of Van Dieman's
Land' [sic], p. 25:
"Near this is the residence of D. Rose, Esq., formerly an
officer of the 73rd regiment, and now a large land and
stockholder."
1824. E. Curr, `Account of Van Diemen's Land,' p. 83:
"The most negligent stock-holders now carefully house their
wool, and many take the trouble to wash their sheep."
Stock-horse, n. horse accustomed to go after
cattle used in mustering and cutting-out (q.v.).
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. vi. p. 122:
"The Australian stock-horse is a wonderful animal. . . . He
has a wonderful constitution, splendid feet, great endurance,
and very good temper."
1890. `The Argus,' June 14, p.4, col. 1:
"A twenty-year-old stock-horse."
Stock-hut, n. the hut of a stock-man.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. ii. c. ii. p. 21:
"We crossed the Underaliga creek a little below the stock-hut."
Stock-keep, v. a quaint compound verb.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. x. p. 96
(1890):
"`What can you do, young man?' `Well, most things . . .
fence, split, milk, drive bullocks, stock-keep, plough."
Stock-keeper, n. equivalent to a shepherd,
or herdsman.
1821. Governor Macquarie, `Government Notice,' June 30, 1821,
in E. Curr's `Van Diemen's Land' (1824), p. 154:
"To yard the flocks at night . . . for the purpose of keeping
the stock-keepers in check, and sufficient shepherds should be
kept to ensure constant attention to the flock."
1828. Governor Arthur in J. Bischoff's `Van Diemen's Land,'
1832, p. 185:
"Every kind of injury committed against the defenceless natives
by the stock-keepers."
Stock-man, n. used in Australia for a man
employed to look after stock.
1821. Governor Macquarie, `Government Notice,' June 30, 1821,
in E. Curr's `Van Diemen's Land' (edition 1824), p. 155:
"It is the common practice with owners of flocks to allow
their shepherds to acquire and keep sheep . . . it affords
to the stock-men a cover frequently for disposing dishonestly
of sheep belonging to their master."
1822. G. W. Evans, `Description of Van Diemen's Land,' p. 68:
"At its junction there is a fine space, named by the stockmen
Native Hut Valley."
1833. C. Sturt,' Southern Australia,'vol. i. c. i. p. 6:
"He was good enough to send for the stockman (or chief
herdsman)."
1846. J L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. xii. p. 402:
"An exchange of looks I caught the overseer and stockman
indulging in."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' p. 96:
"Here and there a stockman's cottage stands."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 5:
"Would you still exchange your comfortable home and warm
fireside . . . for a wet blanket, a fireless camp,
and all the other etceteras of the stockman's life?"
1886. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 17:
"One stooped--a stockman from the nearer hills
To loose his wallet strings."
Stock-rider, n. a man employed to look after
cattle, properly on an unfenced station.
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads' [Title]:
"The Sick Stock-rider."
1892. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 33:
"`Thus far into the bowels of the land
Have we marched on without impediment,'
said a lithe-limbed stock-rider, bearded like a pard, as he lit
his pipe--the bushman's only friend. And this was once a fellow
of St. John's, Cambridge."
Stock-riding, n. the occupation
of a Stock-rider (q.v.).
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 260
[Footnote]:
"Like other Australian aborigines, the Kurnai have a natural
aptitude for stock-riding."
Stock-route, n. When land is first let in
surveyed blocks to a Squatter (q.v.), and is, of course,
unfenced, the lessee is required by law to leave passages
through it from two to four chains wide, at certain intervals,
as a right-of-way for travelling sheep and cattle. These are
called Stock-routes. He may fence these routes if he
chooses--which he very rarely does--but if he fences across
the route he must provide gates or slip-rails (q.v.),
or other free passage.
1896. `The Argus,' May 21, p. 5, Col. 1:
"To-day the Land Board dealt with the application for the
re-appraisement of the Yantara pastoral holding. The manager
said that owing to deterioration of the feed through the
rabbits, from 9 to 10 acres were required to carry a sheep. . .
. Thirteen trial wells had been put down on the holding, all
of which had bottomed on a drift of salt water. Four stock
routes passed through the area, one being the main stock route
from South-western Queensland. . . . Wild dogs had been
troublesome since the February rains. . . . There were
Government bores on the run."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 51:
"Now Saltbush Bill was a drover tough, as ever the country
knew,
He had fought his way on the Great Stock Routes from the
sea to the Big Barcoo."
Stock-up, v. complete the number of animals
on a station, so that it may carry its full complement.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. vii. p. 68:
"I shall decide to stock up as soon as the fences are
finished."
Stock-whip, n. whip for driving cattle.
See quotations.
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. i. p. 100:
"The stock-whip, with a handle about half a yard long and a
thong of three yards long, of plaited bullock-hide, is a
terrible instrument in the hands of a practised stockman. Its
sound is the note of terror to the cattle; it is like the
report of a blunderbuss, and the stockman at full gallop will
hit any given spot on the beast that he is within reach of, and
cut the piece away through the thickest hide that bull or bison
ever wore."
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads,' p. 14:
"With a running fire of stock-whips and a fiery run of hoofs."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 76:
"The stock-whip, which bears such a prominent part in all
dealings with cattle, is from twelve to fourteen feet in
length, with a short light handle of about fourteen inches
long, to which it is attached by a leather keeper as on a
hunting crop. . . . The whip is made of a carefully
selected strip of green hide, great attention having been paid
to curing it."
Stocks-man, n. an unusual form for
Stock-man (q.v.).
1862. F. J. Jobson, `Australia,' c. vi. p. 145:
"We saw the stocksman seated upon his bony long-limbed steed."
Stone-lifter, n. a Melbourne name for the fish
Kathetostoma laeve, Bl., family Trachinidae,
one of the genera of the "Stargazers" (Uranoscopina),
which have eyes on the surface of the head.
Stonewall, v. intr. (1) A Parliamentary term:
to make use of the forms of the House so as to delay public
business.
(2) To obstruct business at any meeting, chiefly by long-winded
speeches.
(3) To play a slow game at cricket, blocking balls rather than
making runs.
1876. `Victorian Hansard,' Jan., vol. xxii. p. 1387:
"Mr. G. Paton Smith wished to ask the honourable member for
Geelong West whether the six members sitting beside him (Mr.
Berry) constituted the `stone wall' that had been spoken of?
Did they constitute the stone wall which was to oppose all
progress--to prevent the finances being dealt with and the
business of the country carried on? It was like bully
Bottom's stone wall. It certainly could not be a very high
wall, nor a very long wall, if it only consisted of six."
1884. G. W. Rusden, `History of Australia,' vol. iii. p. 405:
"Abusing the heroic words of Stonewall Jackson, the Opposition
applied to themselves the epithet made famous by the gallant
Confederate General."
1894. `The Argus,' Jan. 26, p. 3, col. 5:
"The Tasmanians [sc. cricketers] do not as a rule stonewall."
Stonewood, n. Callistemon salignus,
De C., N.O. Myrtaceae; called also the River
Tea-tree.
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue--Economic Woods,' No. 48:
"Stonewood."
Store, n. a bullock, cow, or sheep bought to be
fattened for the market.
1874. W. H. L. Ranken, `Dominion of Australia,' c. xiii.
p. 233:
"They then, if `stores,' pass to the rich salt-bush country of
Riverina."
Store-cattle, n. lean cattle bought to be
fattened for the market; often contracted to stores
(q.v.).
1885. R. M. Praed, `Head-Station,' p. 74:
"Oh, we're not fit for anything but store-cattle: we are all
blady grass."
Stranger, n. name given in Victoria and
Tasmania to the Rock-Whiting, Odax richardsoni,
Gunth., family Labridae. The Stranger, which is
a marine fish, is caught occasionally in the fresher water of
the upper estuary of the Derwent; hence its name.
See Whiting.
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June 19, 1881, p. 1:
"Common fish such as . . . garfish, strangers, silvers, and
others.'
Stringy-bark, n. (1) any one of various
Gums, with a tough fibrous bark used for tying,
for cordage, for roofs of huts, etc.
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 37:
"The string bark [sic] tree is also useful, and its bark, which
is of a fibrous texture, often more than an inch in thickness,
parts easily from the wood, and may be obtained ten or twelve
feet in length, and seven or eight in breadth."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 73:
"The natives appear also to like the fruit of the pandanus,
of which large quantities are found in their camps, soaking
in water contained in vessels formed of stringy-bark."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 27:
"In truth, the forests of Australia (consisting principally of
woods of iron-bark, stringy-bark, and other species of the
Eucalyptus) seen at a distance, just before sunset, are noble
objects--perfect pictures."
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Thirty-three Years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 29:
"The stringy bark tree is so named from the ropy nature of its
bark, which is frequently used for tying on the rods and thatch
of sheds, huts, and barns in the country."
1862. W. Archer, `Products of Tasmania,' p. 39:
"Gum-topped String-bark, sometimes called white gum
(Eucalyptus gigantea, var.). A tree resembling the Blue
Gum in foliage, with rough bark similar to Stringy Bark towards
the stem."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 237:
"Stringy-bark trees were also seen--so called, because the
rough bark has a brown tenacious fibre, like that of the
cocoanut, which can be split off in sheets to make the roofs of
houses, or unravelled into a fibre that will tie like string."
1868. Carleton, `Australian Nights,' p. 2:
"The mia-mia that the native dark
Had formed from sheets of stringy bark."
1873. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 204:
"The Stringy-bark tree is of straight growth, and takes its
name from the strip-like character of its bark. . . . The
wood is of a brown colour, hard, heavy, strong and close in the
grain. It works up well . . . in ship-building, for
planking, beams, keels and keelsons, and in civil architecture
for joists, flooring, etc. Upon the farms it is used for
fences and agricultural implements: it is also employed for
furniture and for all ordinary purposes."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 196:
"Down to the waist they are all wound round with frayed
stringy-bark in thick folds."
1894. `The Age,' Oct. 19, p. 5, col. 8:
"Granite and stringy-bark are always associated with `hungry'
country."
(2) Bush slang for bad whisky.
1890. A. J. Vogan, `The Black Police,' p. 217:
"Stringy-bark, a curious combination of fusil oil
and turpentine, labelled `whisky.'"
Stringy-bark, adj. equivalent to "bush."
1833. Oct. `New South Wales Magazine,' vol. 1. p. 173:
". . . the workmanship of which I beg you will not scrutinize,
as I am but, to use a colonial expression, `a stringy-bark
carpenter.'"
1853. C. Rudston Read, `What I Heard, Saw, and Did at the
Australian Gold Fields,' p. 53:
". . . after swimming a small river about 100 yards wide
he'd arrive at old Geordy's, a stringy bark settler . . ."
Sturt's Desert Pea, n. a beautiful creeper,
Clianthus dampieri, Cunn., N.O. Leguminosae,
which will only grow in very dry, sandy soil. It is sometimes
called Lobster's Claw, from its clusters of brilliant
scarlet flowers with black-purple centres, like a lobster's
claw. Called also Glory Pea (q.v.).
See Clianthus.
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 29:
"Amongst which appears the beautiful Clianthus, known to the
colonists as Sturt's desert pea."
[Footnote]: "Woodward in `Dampier's Voyages,' vol. iii. cap. 4,
pl. 2. The plant is there called Colutea
Novae-Hollandiae. Its name now is Clianthus
Dampieri. R. Brown proposed the name of
Eremocharis, from the Greek 'eraemos, desert."
[Dampier's voyage was made in 1699, and the book published
in 1703. Mr. Woodward contributed notes on the plants brought
home by Dampier.]
Stump-jump Plough, n. a farm implement,
invented in Australia, for ploughing the wheat-lands, which are
often left with the stumps of the cleared trees not eradicated.
1896. `Waybrook Implement Company' (Advt.):
"It is only a very few years since it came into use, and no one
ever thought it was going to turn a trackless scrub into a huge
garden. But now from the South Australian border right through
to the Murray, farms and comfortable homesteads have taken the
place of dense scrub. This last harvest, over three hundred
thousand bags of wheat were delivered at Warracknabeal, and
this wonderful result must, in the main, be put down to the
Stump-jump Plough. It has been one of the best inventions this
colony has ever been blessed with."
Stump-tailed Lizard, n. an Australian lizard,
Trachydosaurus rugosus, Gray.
Styphelia, n. scientific name of a genus of
shrubby plants of New Zealand and Australia, of the
N.O. Epacrideae. It contains the Five-Corners
(q.v.).
1793. J. E. Smith, `Specimen of the Botany of New Holland,'
p. 46:
"We adopt Dr. Solander's original name Styphelia,
derived from stuphelos, harsh, hard, or firm, expressive
of the habit of the whole genus and indeed of the whole natural
order."
Sucker, n. name given in New Zealand to the
fish Diplocrepis puniceus, Rich., family
Gobiesocidae. This is a family of small, marine,
littoral fishes provided with a ventral disc, or adhesive
apparatus. Other genera of the family occur in Australasia.
Sugar, n. slang for money. It may be doubted
if it is specially Australian.
1887. J. Bonwick, `Romance of Wool Trade,' p. 273 (quoting
`Victoria, the El Dorado'):
"I hear him sing out `sold again, and got the sugar' (a
colonial slang word for ready money); `half a sheep for a
shilling.'"
Sugar-Ant, n. a small ant, known in many parts
of Australia by this name because of its fondness for sweet
things.
1896. `The Melbournian,' Aug. 28, p. 53:
"The sun reaches a sugar-ant and rouses him from his winter
sleep. Out he scurries, glad to greet the warmth, and tracks
hurriedly around. He feels the sun, but the cold damp ground
tells him the time is not yet come when at evening he will
sally forth in long columns over the soft warm dust in search
of the morrow's meal; so, dazzled by the unaccustomed glare, he
seeks his hiding-place once more."
Sugar-bag, n. nest of honey, and the honey.
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 67:
"The regular sharp chop-chop of the tomahawks could be heard
here and there, where some of them had discovered a sugar-bag
(nest of honey) or a 'possum on a tree."
Ibid. vol. ii. p. 129:
"The tiny bee which manufactures his adored chewgah-bag."
[Footnote: "Sugar-bag--the native pigeon-English word for
honey."]
Sugar-Grass, n. an Australian grass,
Erianthus fulvus, Kunth., N.O. Gramineae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 106:
"The `Sugar Grass' of colonists, so called on account of its
sweetness; it is highly productive, and praised by
stockowners. Cattle eat it close down, and therefore it is in
danger of extermination, but it is readily raised from seed."
Sugar-Gum, n. an Australian Gum, Eucalyptus
corynocalyx of South Australia and North-Western Victoria.
The foliage is sweet, and attractive to cattle.
See Gum.
Sultana-bird, n. a name for the
Swamp-Hen (q.v.), Porphyrio melanonotus, Temm.
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 223:
"Black sultana-birds, blue-breasted as deep ocean."
Summer-bird, n. the Old Colonists' name for the
Wood-swallows. See Swallow. In Tasmania it is
applied to a species of Shrike, Graucalus melanops,
Lath. The name refers to the migratory habits of both birds.
1895. C. French, Government entomologist, letter to `Argus,'
Nov. 29:
"The wood-swallows, known to us old colonists as summer birds,
are migratory, making their appearance about September and
disappearing about the end of January."
Summer Country, n. In New Zealand (South
Island), country which can be used in summer only; mountain
land in Otago and Canterbury, above a certain level.
Sun-bird, n. a common name of various birds.
Applied in Australia to Cinnyris frenata, Mull.
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia' (Supplement), pl. 45:
"`This pretty Sun-bird,' says Mr. MacGillivray, `appears to be
distributed along the whole of the northeast coast of
Australia, the adjacent islands, and the whole of the islands
in Torres Straits.'"
Sundew, n. There are many species of this
flower in Australia and Tasmania, most of them peculiar to
Australasia; Drosera spp., N.O. Droseraceae.
1888. `Cassell's Picturesque Australasia,' vol. ii. p. 236:
"Smooth, marshy meadows, gleaming with the ruby stars of
millions of tiny little sundews."
Sundowner, n. a tramp who takes care to arrive
at a station at sundown, so that he shall be provided with
`tucker' (q.v.) at the squatter's cost: one of those who
go about the country seeking work and devoutly hoping they may
not find it.
1880. G. n. Oakley, in `Victoria in 1880,' p. 114 [Title of
poem of seventeen stanzas]:
"The Sundowner."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 32:
"When the real `sundowner' haunts these banks for a season, he
is content with a black pannikin, a clasp knife, and a platter
whittled out of primaeval bark."
1890. `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 5:
"Sundowners are still the plague of squatocracy, their petition
for `rashons' and a bed amounting to a demand."
1891. F. Adams, `John Webb's End,' p. 34:
"`Swagsmen' too, genuine, or only `sundowners,'--men who loaf
about till sunset, and then come in with the demand for the
unrefusable `rations.'"
1892. `Scribner's Magazine,' Feb., p. 143:
"They swell the noble army of swagmen or sundowners, who are
chiefly the fearful human wrecks which the ebbing tide of
mining industry has left stranded in Australia."
[This writer does not differentiate between Swagman
(q.v.) and Sundowner.]
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 12, p. 8, col. 7:
"Numbers of men who came to be known by the class name of
`sundowners,' from their habit of straggling up at fall of
evening with the stereotyped appeal for work; and work being at
that hour impossible, they were sent to the travellers' hut for
shelter and to the storekeeper or cook for the pannikin of
flour, the bit of mutton, the sufficiency of tea for a brew,
which made up a ration."
1896. `Windsor Magazine,' Dec., p. 132:
"`Here,' he remarked, `is a capital picture of a Queensland
sundowner.' The picture represented a solitary figure standing
in pathetic isolation on a boundless plain. `A sundowner?' I
queried. `Yes; the lowest class of nomad. For days they will
tramp across the plains carrying, you see, their supply of
water. They approach a station only at sunset, hence the name.
At that hour they know they will not be turned away.' `Do they
take a day's work?' `Not they! There is an old bush saying,
that the sundowner's one request is for work, and his one
prayer is that be may not find it.'"
Super, n. short for superintendent,
sc. of a station.
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads,' p. 23:
"What's up with our super to-night? The man's mad."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. ix. p. 83:
"That super's a growlin' ignorant beggar as runs a feller from
daylight to dark for nothing at all."
1890. `The Argus,' June 10, p. 4, col. 1:
"He . . . bragged of how he had bested the super who tried
to `wing him' in the scrub."
Superb-Dragon, n. an Australian marine fish,
Phyllopteryx foliatus, Shaw. See Sea-Dragon.
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' pl. 7:
"`Superb-Dragon--Phyllopteryx Foliatus.' This is one of the
`Pipe fishes,' order Lophobranchii. It has been
compared to the ghost of a seahorse (Hippocampus) with
its winding sheet all in ribbons around it; and the tattered
cerements are like in shape and colour to the seaweed it
frequents, so that it hides and feeds in safety. The long ends
of ribs which seem to poke through the skin to excite our
compassion are really `protective resemblances,' and serve to
allure the prey more effectually within reach of these awful
ghouls. Just as the leaf-insect is imitative of a leaf, and
the staff insect of a twig, so here is a fish like a bunch of
seaweed. (Tenison-Woods.)" [Compare Phasmid.]
Superb-Warbler, n. any Australian bird of
the genus Malurus (q.v.), especially M. cyaneus,
the Blue Wren.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 80:
"We also observed the Superb Warbler, Malurus cyaneus,
of Sydney."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iii. pl. 18:
"Malurus Cyaneus, Vieill., Blue Wren; Superb Warbler
of the Colonists."
1896. F. G. Aflalo, `Natural History of Australia,' p. 136:
"The best known are . . . and the Blue Wren or Superb
Warbler (Malurus cyaneus), both of which I have
repeatedly watched in the Sydney Botanic Gardens. . . .
They dart about the pathways like mice, but rarely seem to fly.
There are a dozen other Superb Warblers."
Supple-jack, n. The word is English in the
sense of a strong cane, and is the name of various climbing
shrubs from which the canes are cut; especially in America.
In Australia, the name is given to similar creeping plants,
viz.--Ventilago viminalis, Hook.,
N.O. Rhamnaceae; Clematis aristata, R. Br.,
N.O. Ranunculaceae. In New Zealand, to
Ripogonum (spp.).
1818. `History of New South Wales,' p. 47:
"The underwood is in general so thick and so bound together by
that kind of creeping shrub called supple-jack, interwoven in
all directions, as to be absolutely impenetrable."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 218:
"After a tedious march . . . along a track constantly
obstructed by webs of the kareau, or supple-jack, we came to
the brow of a descent."
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand, the Britain of the South,'
vol. i. p. 135:
"Supple-jack snares, root-traps, and other parasitical
impediments."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 135:
"Two kinds of creepers extremely molesting and troublesome,
the so-called `supple-jack' of the colonists (Ripogonum
parviflorum), in the ropelike creeping vines of which
the traveller finds himself every moment entangled."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 11:
"The tangles black
Of looped and shining supple jack."
1874. W. M. B., `Narrative of Edward Crewe,' p. 199:
The supple-jack, that stopper to all speedy progression in the
New Zealand forest."
1881. J.L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 154:
"Forty or fifty feet of supple-jack. This creeper is of the
thickness of your finger, and runs along the ground, and goes
up the trees and springs across from one tree to the other,
spanning great gaps in some mysterious manner of its own--a
tough, rascally creeper that won't break, that you can't twist
in two, that you must cut, that trips you by the foot or the
leg, and sometimes catches you by the neck . . . so useful
withal in its proper places."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 71:
"Threading with somewhat painful care intricacies formed by
loops and snares of bewildering supple-jacks, that living study
of Gordian entanglement, nature-woven, for patient exercise of
hand and foot."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 309:
"Laced together by creepers called supple-jacks, which twine
and twist for hundreds of yards, with stems as thick as a man's
wrist, so as to make the forests impassable except with axes
and immense labour."
Surfacing, n. (1) Wash-dirt lying on the
surface of the ground.
(2) verbal n. Gold-digging on the surface of the
ground.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 133:
"What is termed `surfacing' consists of simply washing the soil
on the surface of the ground, which is occasionally
auriferous."
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' c. iv. p. 133:
"I've been surfacing this good while; but quartz-reefin's the
payinest game, now."
1866. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches' [Second Series],
p. 133:
"What is termed `surfacing' consists of simply washing the soil
on the surface of the ground, which is occasionally
auriferous."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Miner's Right,' c. xv. p. 153:
"They have been mopping up some rich surfacing."
1894. `The Argus,' March 28, p. 5. col. 5:
"`Surfacing' or `loaming.' Small canvas bags are carried by
the prospector, and top soil from various likely-looking spots
gathered and put into them, the spots being marked to
correspond with the bags. The contents are then panned off
separately, and if gold is found in any one of the bags the
spot is again visited, and the place thoroughly overhauled,
even to trenching for the reef."
Swag, n. (1) Used in the early days, and still
by the criminal class, in the ordinary sense of Thieves'
English, as booty, plunder.
1837. J. Mudie, `Felonry of New South Wales,' p. 181:
"In short, having brought with her a supply of the `swag,' as
the convicts call their ill-gotten cash, a wife seldom fails of
having her husband assigned to her, in which case the
transported felon finds himself his own master."
1879. R. H. Barham, `Ingoldsby Legends' (Misadventures
at Margate):
"A landsman said, `I twig the drop,--he's been upon
the mill,
And `cause he gammons so the flats, ve calls him
Veepin' Bill.'
He said `he'd done me very brown, and neatly stowed
the swag,'
-That's French, I fancy, for a hat,--or else a carpet-bag."
(2) A special Australian use: a tramp's bundle, wrapt up in a
blanket, called a Bluey (q.v.). Used also for a
passenger's luggage.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 59:
"A number of the slang phrases current in St. Giles's
Greek bid fair to become legitimatized in the
dictionary of this colony: plant, swag,
pulling up, and other epithets of the
Tom and Jerry school, are established--the dross
passing here as genuine, even among all ranks."
1853. S. Sidney, `Three Colonies of Australia,' p. 361:
"His leathern overalls, his fancy stick, and his `swag' done up
in mackintosh."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 384:
"There were others with huge swags suspended from a pole, with
which they went on, like the Children of Israel carrying the
gigantic bunches of the grapes of Canaan."
1865. J. O. Tucker, `Australian Story,' c. i. p. 86:
"The cumbrous weight of blankets that comprised my swag."
1867. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 127:
"A pair of large double blankets to make the tent of,--that was
one swag, and a very unwieldy one it was, strapped knapsack
fashion, with straps of flax leaves."
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, Founder of Victoria,' p. 51:
"Three white men, the Sydney natives, and Batman, who carried
his swag the same as the rest, all armed."
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 9:
"With my rug and blankets on my back (such a bundle being
called a `swag')."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 285:
"Swag, which consists of his personal properties rolled up in
a blanket."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 33:
"His cumbrous attire and the huge swag which lay across the
seat."
1888. A. Reischek, in Buller's `Birds of New Zealand,' vol.
ii. p. 93:
"With the hope that there would now be a few fine days, I at
once packed up my swag with provisions, ammunition, blanket,
&c."
1892. `The Australasian,' May 7, p. 903, col. 1:
"Kenneth, in front, reminded me comically of Alice's White
Knight, what with the billies dancing and jingling on his back,
and the tomahawk in his belt, and his large swag in front."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 95:
"I suppose he's tramping somewhere,
Where the bushmen carry swags,
Cadging round the wretched stations
With his empty tucker-bags."
Swag, v. to tramp the bush, carrying a swag.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 5:
"There was the solitary pedestrian, with the whole of his
supplies, consisting of a blanket and other necessary articles,
strapped across his shoulders--this load is called the `swag,'
and the mode of travelling `swagging it.'"
Swag-like, adv. in the fashion of a swag.
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 2, p. 4, col. 2:
"He strapped the whole lot together, swag-like."
Swagger, n. Same as Swagman (q.v.).
Specially used in New Zealand. The word has also the modern
English slang sense.
1875. Lady Barker, `Station Amusements in New Zealand,' p. 154:
"Describing the real swagger, clad in flannel shirt, moleskin
trowsers, and what were once thick boots."
1890. `The Century,' vol. xli. p. 624 (`Century'):
"Under the name of swagger or sundowner the tramp, as he moves
from station to station in remote districts, in supposed search
for work, is a recognized element of society."
1893. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 21, p. 6, col. 3:
"Once a footsore swagger came along, and having gone to the
house to ask for `tucker,' soon returned. He took his swag
from his shoulders and leant it against the Tree; then he
busied himself gathering the small sticks and dried leaves
lying about on every side."
1896. `The Argus,' March 23, p.5, col. 1:
"The minister's house is the sure mark for every stone-broke
swagger in search of clothes or victuals."
1896. `Southern Standard' (New Zealand), [page not given]:
"An ardent young lady cyclist of Gore, who goes very long
journeys on her machine, was asked by a lady friend if she was
not afraid of swaggers on the road. `Afraid of them?' she
said, `why, I take tea with them!'"
1896. `The Champion,' Jan. 4, p. 3, col. 3:
"He [Professor Morris] says that `swagger' is a variant of
`swagman.' This is equally amusing and wrong."
[Nevertheless, he now says it once again.]
Swaggie, n. a humorous variation on swagman.
1892. E. W. Horning, `Under Two Skies,' p. 109:
"Here's a swaggie stopped to camp, with flour for a damper,
and a handful of tea for the quart-pot, as safe as the bank."
Swagman, n. a man travelling through the bush
carrying a Swag (q.v.), and seeking employment. There
are variants, Swagger (more general in New Zealand),
Swaggie, and Swagsman. The Sundowner,
Traveller, or New Zealand Tussocker, is not
generally a seeker for work.
1890. `The Argus,' June 7, p. 4, col. 2:
"The regular swagman carrying his ration bags, which will
sometimes contain nearly twenty days' provender in flour and
sugar and tea."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 156:
"We pulled up a swagman. He was walking very slow; he was a
bit lame too. His swag wasn't heavy, for he had only a rag of
a blue blanket, a billy of water in his hand, and very little
else."
1893. `The Herald' (Melbourne), Jan. 25:
"Under the electric light in the quadrangle of the Exhibition
they will give tableaux, representing the murder of a swagman
by a native and the shooting of the criminal by a black
tracker."
1897. `The Argus,' Jan. 11, p. 7, col. 2:
"The Yarra has claimed many swagman in the end, but not all
have died in full travelling costume . . . a typical
back-blocks traveller. He was grey and grizzled, but well fed,
and he wore a Cardigan jacket, brown moleskin trousers, blucher
boots, and socks, all of which were mended with rough patches.
His knife and tobacco, his odds and ends, and his purse,
containing 14 1/2d., were still intact, while across his
shoulder was a swag, and the fingers of his right hand had
tightly closed round the handle of his old black billy-can, in
which were some scraps of meat wrapped in a newspaper of the
5th inst. He had taken with him his old companions of the
roads--his billy and his swag."
Swagsman, n. a variant of Swagman
(q.v.).
1879 J. Brunton Stephens, `Drought and Doctrine' (Works,
p. 309):
"Rememberin' the needful, I gets up an' quietly slips
To the porch to see--a swagsman--with our bottle at his lips."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 89:
"One of these prospecting swagsmen was journeying towards
Maryborough."
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 111:
"Idleness being the mainspring of the journeys of the Swagsman
(Anglice, `tramp')."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xix. p. 235:
"The able-bodied swagsmen hasten towards Rainbar."
Swallow, n. common English bird-name.
The species observed in Australia are--
The Swallow--
Hirundo neoxena, Gould.
Black-and-white S.--
Cheramaeca leucosternum, Gould.
Black-faced Wood S.--
Artamus melanops, Gould.
Eastern S.--
Hirundo javanica, Sparrm.
Grey-breasted Wood S.--
Artamus cinereus, Vieill.
Little Wood S.--
A. minor, Vieill.
Masked Wood S.--
Artamus personatus, Gould.
White-bellied Wood S.--
A. hypoleucus.
White-browed Wood S.--
A. superciliosus, Gould.
White-rumped Wood S.--
A. leucogaster, Valenc.
Wood S.--
A. sordidus, Lath.
Artamus is often wrongly spelt Artemus.
The Wood-Swallows are often called Summer-birds
(q.v.).
Swamp-Broom, n. a rush-broom, Viminaria
denudata, Sm., N.O. Leguminosae.
See Swamp-Oak.
Swamp-Daisy-tree, n. See Daisy-tree.
Swamp-Gum, n. See Gum.
Swamp-Hawk, n. another name for the New Zealand
Harrier. See Harrier.
Swamp-Hen, n. an Australasian bird,
Porphyrio melanonotus, Temm. (often incorrectly
shortened to Melanotus). Called sometimes the
Porphyrio (q.v.); Maori name, Pukeko. Called
also the Swamp-Turkey, the Purple Coot, and by
New Zealand colonists, Sultana-bird, Pukaki,
or Bokaka, the last two being corruptions of the Maori
name. For a West-Australian variety of the Porphyrio,
see quotation (1848).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' c. i.
p. 228:
"The pukeko is of a dark-blue colour, and about as large as a
pheasant. The legs, the bill, and a horny continuation of it
over the front of the head, are of a bright crimson colour.
Its long legs adapt it for its swampy life; its flight is slow
and heavy, resembling that of a bittern."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 70:
"Porphyrio Bellus, Gould, Azure breasted
Porphyrio; Swamp-Hen, Colonists of Western Australia."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 79:
[A full description.]
Swamp-Mahogany, n. a timber tree, Eucalyptus
botryoides, Sm. See Gum and Mahogany.
1886. T. Heney, `Fortunate Days,' p. 50:
"Swamp mahogany's floor-flowered arms."
Swamp-Oak, n. (1) A broomlike leguminous shrub
or small tree, Viminaria denudata, Sm. (also called
Swamp-broom). (2) A tree of the genus Casuarina,
especially C. paludosa. See Oak.
1833. C. Sturt, I Southern Australia,'vol. i. c. i. p. 53:
"Light brushes of swamp-oak, cypress, box and acacia pendula."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Phillipsland,' p. 257:
"Its banks (Murrumbidgee) are fringed with the beautiful
swamp-oak, a tree of the Casuarina family, with a form
and character somewhat intermediate between that of the spruce
and that of the Scotch fir, being less formal and Dutch-like
than the former, and more graceful than the latter."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery and
Exploration of Australia,' vol. i. p. 324:
"A stream, whose winding channel could be traced by the
particularly dark verdure of the swamp-oak (Casuarina
paludosa) on its banks."
1866. Miss Parkes, `Poems,' p. 40:
"Your voice came to me, soft and distant seeming,
As comes the murmur of the swamp-oak's tone."
1870. F. S. Wilson, `Australian Songs,' p. 100:
"Softly the swamp-oak
Muttered its sorrows to her and to me."
1883. C. Harpur, `Poems,' p. 47:
"Befringed with upward tapering feathery swamp-oaks."
Swamp-Pheasant, n. called also
Pheasant-cuckoo. Another name for the Coucal
(q.v.).
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 60:
"A Centropus phasianellus (the swamp-pheasant
of Moreton Bay) was shot."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 116:
"Far down the creek, on one of the river-oaks which grow in its
bed, a swamp-pheasant utters its rapid coocoo-coo-coo-coo-
coo-cook."
1887. R. M. Praed, `Longleat of Kooralbyn,' c. xvi. p. 102:
"The gurgling note of the swamp-pheasant."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 94:
"The bird Centropus, which is common in all Queensland,
is found here in great numbers. Although it really is a
cuckoo, the colonists call it the `swamp-pheasant,' because it
has a tail like a pheasant. It is a very remarkable bird with
stiff feathers, and flies with difficulty on account of its
small wings. The swamp-pheasant has not the family weakness of
the cuckoo, for it does not lay its eggs in the nests of other
birds. It has a peculiar clucking voice which reminds one of
the sound produced when water is poured from a bottle."
Swamp-Sparrow, n. a nickname in New Zealand
for the Fern-bird (q.v.).
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 60:
"These beds of rushes which form blind water-courses during the
winter season, are dry in summer and are then a favourite
resort for the Swamp-Sparrow as this bird is sometimes called."
Ibid. vol. ii. p. 255:
"The melancholy cry of the Fern-bird is so general and
persistent that its nick-name of Swamp Sparrow is not
undeserved."
Swan, Black, n. an Australian bird--Cycnus
niger, Juvenal; Cygnus atratus, Gould; Chenopsis
atrata, Wagl., sometimes miscalled Chenopis.
The river upon which Perth, Western Australia, is situated, is
called the Swan River, and the colony was long known as the
Swan River Settlement. It has expanded into Western Australia,
the emblem of which colony is still the Black Swan.
Since 1855 the Black Swan has been the device on the
postage stamps of Western Australia.
82 A.D. (circiter). `Juvenal, Sat.' vi. 164: "Rara avis
in terris nigroque simillima cycno."
1700 (circiter). J. Locke, in `Johnson's Dictionary' (9th
edition, 1805), s.v. Swan:
"The idea which an Englishman signifies by the name Swan,
is a white colour, long neck, black beak, black legs, and whole
feet, and all these of a certain size, with a power of swimming
in the water, and making a certain kind of noise."
1789. Governor Phillip, `Voyage,' p. 98:
"A black swan, which species, though proverbially rare in other
parts of the world, is here by no means uncommon . . . a very
noble bird, larger than the common swan, and equally beautiful
in form . . . its wings were edged with white: the bill was
tinged with red."
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 137:
"We found nine birds, that, whilst swimming, most perfectly
resembled the rara avis of the ancients, a black swan."
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' p. 146:
"Large ponds covered with ducks and black swans."
1847. J. D. Lang, `Phillipsland,' p. 115:
"These extensive sheets of glassy water . . . were
absolutely alive with black swans and other water fowl . . .
There must have been at least five hundred swans in view at one
time on one of the lakes. They were no `rara avis' there."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vii. pl. 6:
"Cygnus Atratus, Black Swan. The first notice on record
respecting the existence of the Black Swan occurs in a letter
written by Mr. Witsen to Dr. M. Lister about the year 1698, in
which he says, `Here is returned a ship, which by our East
India Company was sent to the south land called Hollandea
Nova'; and adds that Black Swans, Parrots and many Sea-Cows
were found there."
1856. J. S. Mill, `Logic' [4th edition], vol. i. bk. iii.
c. iii. p. 344:
"Mankind were wrong, it seems, in concluding that all swans
were white. . . . As there were black swans, though civilized
people had existed for three thousand years on the earth
without meeting with them."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), May 29, p. 45, col. 3:
"The presence of immense flocks of black swans is also regarded
as an indication of approaching cold weather."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 22:
"The musical whoop of the black swan is sometimes heard as the
wedge-shaped flock passes over."
1895. G. Metcalfe, `Australian Zoology,' p. 64:
"Strzelecki states that the black swan was discovered in 1697
by Vlaming. . . . In 1726 two were brought alive to Batavia,
having been procured on the West Coast of Australia, near Dirk
Hartog's Bay. Captain Cook observed it on several parts of the
coast."
Swan-River Daisy, n. a pretty annual plant,
Brachycome iberidifolia, Benth., N.O. Compositae,
of Western Australia. The heads are about an inch broad, and
have bright blue rays, with paler centre. It is cultivated in
flower gardens, and is well suited for massing. (`Century.')
Sweep, n. a marine fish of the Australian
coasts, called by this name in Sydney. It is Scorpis
aequipinnis, Richards., family Squamipinnes.
This family has the soft, and frequently also the spinous,
part of their dorsal and anal fins so thickly covered with scales,
that the boundary between fins and body is entirely obliterated.
S. aequippinnis is possibly the Light-horseman
(q.v.) of early Australian writers.
Sweet Tea. See Tea.
Swift, n. In Australia, the species of this
common bird are--Spine-tailed Swift, Chaetura caudacuta,
Lath.; White-rumped S., Micropus pacificus, Lath.
Swing-gate, n. Used in its ordinary English
sense, but specially applied to a patent gate for drafting
sheep, invented by Mr. Lockhart Morton.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. ix. p. 91:
"Mr. Stangrove . . . has no more idea of a swing-gate than
a shearing-machine."
Sword-grass, n. In New Zealand, Arundo
conspicua; in Australia, Cladium psittacorum,
Labill. It is not the same as the English plant of that name,
and is often called Cutting Grass (q.v.).
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 172:
"The great plumes far and wide of the sword-grass aspire."
Sword-Sedge, a sedge on Australian coasts,
Lepidosperma gladiatum, Labill., N.O. Cyperaceae,
useful for binding sea-sand, and yielding a good material
for paper.
1877. Baron von Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 124:
"Lepidosperma is nearly endemically Australian. Lepidosperma
gladiatum, the great Swords-edge [sic] of our coasts, furnishes
an admirable material for writing paper."
[It is curious that Swords-edge makes most ingenious
sense, but it is evidently a misprint for Sword-sedge.]
Sycamore Tree. See Laurel. In New South
Wales, the name is given to Brachyciton luridus,
C. Moore, N.O. Sterculiaceae.
Sycoceric, adj. belonging to a waxy resin
obtained from the Port-Jackson Fig; see under
Fig. (From Grk. sukon, "fig," and kaeros,
"wax.")
Sycoceryl, n. a supposed element of the
sycoceric compounds. See Sycoceric.
T
Taboo, n. See Tapu.
Tagrag-and-Bobtail, n. a species of sea-weed.
See quotation.
1866. S. Hannaford, `Wild Flowers of Tasmania,' p. 80:
"It is a wiry-stemmed plant, with small mop-like tufts, which
hold water like a sponge. This is Bellotia Eriophorum,
the specific name derived from its resemblance to the
cotton-grass. Harvey mentions its colonial name as `Tagrag
and Bobtail,' and if it will enable collectors the more
easily to recognise it, let it be retained."
Taiaha, n. a Maori word for a chief's
walking-staff, a sign of office, sometimes used in fighting,
like a quarterstaff.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 139:
"The men are placed at equal intervals along either side to
paddle, and they keep excellent stroke to the song of two
leaders, who stand up and recite short alternate sentences,
giving the time with the taiaha, or long wooden spear. The
taiaha is rather a long-handled club than a spear. It is
generally made of manuka, a very hard, dark, close-grained
and heavy wood. The taiaha is about six feet long, etc."
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 46:
"The taiaha is rather a long-handled club than a spear."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 299:
"A taiaha, or chiefs staff."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 80:
"In his right hand he brandished a taiaha, a six-foot Maori
broadsword of hard wood, with its pendulous plume of feathers
hanging from the hilt."
1889. Major Wilson and Edward Tregear, `On the Korotangi,'
`Transactions of New Zealand Institute,' vol. xxii. art. lxii.
p. 505:
"Many famous tribal heirlooms are hidden and lost to posterity.
The Rev. Mr. Buller mentions a famous taiaha, of great mana, as
having been buried and lost in this way, lest it should fall
into the power of opposing tribes, and cause disaster to the
original owner."
Taihoa, Maori phrase, meaning "Wait a bit."
Much used in some circles in New Zealand. The `Standard'
gives it wrongly as "Anglo-Tasmanian," probably because
Mr. Wade's book was published in Hobart.
1842. W. R. Wade, `Journey in New Zealand' (Hobart Town),
p.66:
"`Taihoa.' This word has been translated, By and by;
but in truth, it has all the latitude of directly,--presently,
--by and by,--a long time hence,--and nobody knows when . . .
the deliberate reply is, `Taihoa'. . . this patience-trying
word. . . ."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 87:
"That irritatingly provoking word, `taihoa.'"
[p. 88]: "The drawled-out t-a-i-h-o-a fell upon the ear."
[p. 266] [Title of chapter]: "I learn what Taihoa means."
[p.271]: "Great is the power of taihoa."
[p. 276]: "The imperturbable taihoa, given to us with the
ordinary placid good-humour."
Tail, v. tr. to herd and tend sheep or cattle:
lit. to follow close behind the tail.
1844. `Port Phillip Patriot,' Aug. 5, p. 3, col. 6:
"I know many boys, from the age of nine to sixteen years,
tailing cattle."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 153:
"The stockman, as he who tends cattle and horses is called,
despises the shepherd as a grovelling, inferior creature, and
considers `tailing sheep' as an employment too tardigrade for
a man of action and spirit."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. xix. p. 239:
"`The cattle,' no longer `tailed,' or followed daily,
as a shepherd does sheep."
Tailing, adj. consisting of tailings
(q.v.).
1890. `Goldfields of Victoria,' p. 21:
"From recent assays of the tailing-sand, scarcely one quarter
of the pyrites has been extracted."
Tailings, n. "The detritus carried off by water
from a crushing machine, or any gold-washing apparatus."
(Brough Smyth, `Glossary of Mining Terms.') Not limited to
Australia.
1891. `The Argus,' June 16, p. 6, col. 2:
"A hundred and fifty tons of tailings are treated at the
Sandhurst pyrites works every month."
Tailor, n. name given in New South Wales to the
fish Temnodon saltator, Cuv. and Val. It is called
Skipjack (q.v.) in Melbourne, a name by which it is also
known in America and Britain. Those of large size are called
"Sea-tailors." It belongs to the family Carangidae, or
Horse-Mackerels (q.v.).
Taipo, n. a New Zealand word for devil, often
applied by settlers to a vicious horse or as a name for a dog.
There is a dangerous river, the Taipo, on the west coast.
There is considerable dispute as to whether the word is true
Maori or not. The Rev. T. G. Hammond of Patea says--
"No such Maori word as taipo, meaning devil, exists. It would
mean evening-tide--tai-po. Probably the early sailors
introduced attached meaning of devil from the Maori saying,
`Are you not afraid to travel at night?' referring to the
danger of tidal rivers."
On the other hand, Mr. Tregear says, in his `Maori Comparative
Dictionary,' s.v.--
"Taepo, a goblin, a spectre. Cf. tae, to arrive;
po, night."
The Rev. W. Colenso says, in his pamphlet on `Nomenclature'
(1883), p. 5:
"Taepo means to visit or come by night,--a night visitant,--a
spectral thing seen in dreams,--a fancied and feared thing, or
hobgoblin, of the night or darkness; and this the settlers have
construed to mean the Devil!--and of course their own orthodox
one."
Taipo or taepo is also a slang term for a
surveyor's theodolite among the Maoris, because it is the
"land-stealing devil."
1848. Rev. R. Taylor, `Leaf from the Natural History of New
Zealand,' p. 43:
"Taipo, female dreamer; a prophetess; an evil spirit."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 49:
"There is the Taringa-here, a being with a face like
a cat; and likewise another, called a Taipo, who comes
in the night, sits on the tops of houses, and converses with
the inmates, but if a woman presumes to open her mouth,
it immediately disappears."
1878. B. Wells, `History of Taranaki,' p. 3:
"The similarity in sound and meaning of the Egyptian word
typhon with that of the Maori taipo, both being
the name of the Spirit of Evil, is also not a little
remarkable."
[Ingenious, but worthless.]
1886. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' `New Zealand Country
journal,' vol. x. p. 262:
"His wife became seriously affected, declaring that
Taipo had entered into her. Reasoning was wholly
useless. She declared that Taipo was in the smoke of the wood,
which smoke she had inhaled; soon she became prostrated by
illness and was expected to die."
1887. J. C. Crawford, `Travels in New Zealand and
Australia,' p. 107:
"After dinner Watkins requested the loan of a tomahawk
to defend himself on going up to the Pa on the hill above.
He said he knew that there was a taipo (devil) about;
he felt it in his head."
1888. P. W. Barlow, `Kaipara,' p. 48:
"They were making the noises I heard to drive away the `Taipo,'
a sort of devil who devotes his attention exclusively to
Maoris, over whom, however, he only possesses power at night."
1891. W. H. Roberts, `Southland in 1856,' p. 72:
"They believed it was the principal rendez-vous of the fallen
angel (Taipo) himself."
1896. Modern. Private Letter (May):
"Taipo, for instance, of course one knows its meaning,
though it has been adopted chiefly as a name as common as
`Dash' or `Nero' for New Zealand dogs; all the same the writers
upon Maori superstitions seem to have no knowledge of it.
Polach, Dieffenbach, Nicholas, Yates, call their evil spirits
whiros or atuas. Tepo, the place of darkness, is
the nearest they have come to it. I think myself it is South
Island Maori, often differing a little in spelling and use; and
so very much the larger proportion of New Zealand literature is
the literature of the North."
Tait, n. a Western Australian animal, properly
called the Long-snouted Phalanger, Tarsipes
rostratus, the only species of its genus. See
Phalanger and Opossum. It is about the size of
a mouse, and lives almost entirely on honey, which it extracts
from flowers.
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 120:
"The Long-snouted Phalanger, which derives its scientific name
from a certain resemblance of its hind feet to those of a
Malayan Lemur-like animal known as the Tarsier, is one of the
most interesting of the phalangers. . . . Known to the natives
by the names of Tait and Nulbenger, it is,
writes Gould, `generally found in all situations suited to
its existence, from Swan River to King George's Sound.'"
Takahe, n. Maori name for an extinct New
Zealand Rail, Notornis mantelli, Owen.
See Notornis.
1889. Prof. Parker, 'Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 116:
"The Takahe is the rarest of existing native birds, if indeed
it is not already extinct."
Takapu, n. Maori name for the bird Dysporus
serrator, Banks, a Gannet (q.v.).
Take (a man) down, Australian sporting slang. (1) To
induce a man to bet, knowing that he must lose. (2) To advise
a man to bet, and then to "arrange" with an accomplice (a
jockey, e.g.) for the bet to be lost. (3) To prove superior
to a man in a game of skill.
1895. `The Argus,' Dec. 5, p. 5, col. 2:
"It appeared that [the plaintiff] had a particular fancy for a
[certain] horse, and in an evil hour induced [the defendant] to
lay him a wager about this animal at the long odds of two
shillings to threepence. When the horse had romped
triumphantly home and [the plaintiff] went to collect his two
shillings [the defendant] accused him of having `taken him
down,' stigmatised him as a thief and a robber, and further
remarked that [the plaintiff] had the telegram announcing the
result of the race in his pocket when the wager was made, and
in short refused to give [the plaintiff] anything but a black
eye."
Talegalla, n. aboriginal name for the
Brush-Turkey, and the scientific name for that bird,
viz., Talegalla lathami, Gray. See Turkey.
Tallow-wood, n. another name for one of the
Stringy-barks (q.v.), Eucalyptus microcorys,
F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae. The timber, which is hard,
gives forth an oily substance: hence the name. The tree
reaches a great height. Also called Turpentine-tree
(q.v.). See also Peppermint.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 493:
"In Queensland it is known as `Peppermint,' the foliage being
remarkably rich in volatile oil. But its almost universal name
is Tallow-wood. North of Port Jackson it bears the name of
`Turpentine Tree' and `Forest Mahogany.' The aboriginals of the
Brisbane River, Queensland, call it `tee.'"
Ibid. p. 494:
"Tallow-wood.--Used . . . for flooring, e.g. in ball-rooms;
for this purpose it is selected on account of its greasy
nature. This greasiness is most marked when it is fresh cut.
(General Report, Sydney International Exhibition, 1879.)"
1897. `The Argus,' Feb. 22, p. 5, col. 4 (Cable message
from London):
"Mr. Richards stated that the New South Wales black butt and
tallow wood were the most durable and noiseless woods for
street-paving."
Tallygalone, n. a fish of New South Wales,
Myxus elongatus, Gunth., a genus of the family
Mugilidae, or Grey-Mullet. The word is
also spelled talleygalann, and tallagallan.
Also called Sand-Mullet.
Tamarind-Tree, name given to Diploglottis
cunninghamii, Hook., N.O. Sapindaceae; called also
Native Tamarind. "A tall tree. The flesh of the fruit
is amber and of delightful acid flavour." (Bailey.)
Tambaroora, n. a Queensland game. More
generally known as "A shilling in and the winner shouts."
From a town in Queensland.
1882. A. J. Boyd, `Old Colonials,' p. 63:
"The exciting game of tambaroora . . . Each man of a party
throws a shilling, or whatever sum may be mutually agreed upon,
into a hat. Dice are then produced, and each man takes three
throws. The Nut who throws highest keeps the whole of the
subscribed capital, and out of it pays for the drinks of the
rest."
Tamure, n. the Maori name for the New Zealand
Schnapper fish (q.v.).
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 206:
"Tamure s. Bream fish."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 93:
"There are many other sorts of fish, including the tamure, or
snapper, the manga, or barracouta, the mango, or dog-fish, of
which the natives catch large quantities, and the hapuka. This
last fish is caught in pretty deep water, near reefs and rocks.
It often attains a great size, attaining as much as 112 pounds.
It bears a considerable resemblance to the cod in form, but is,
however, of far finer flavour."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 413:
"Tamure, kouarea (the snapper), is a large fish like the
bream."
1879. W. Colenso, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xii. art. vii. p. 118:
"The tamure is the snapper (Pagrus unicolor), a common fish on
all the coasts."
Tandan, n. the aboriginal name for the
Catfish (q.v.) or Eel-fish (q.v.),
Copidoglanis tandanus, Mitchell (or Plotosus
tandanus). Mitchell, who first discovered and described
the Cat-fish, called it the Tandan, or Eel-fish.
1838. T. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' pp. 44, 45, pl. 5:
"In this piece of water we caught some small fish, two of them
being of a rather singular kind, resembling an eel in the head
and shape of the tail."
[p. 45]: "On my return to the camp in the evening, I made a
drawing of the eel fish which we had caught early in the day
(fig. 2, pl. 5)."
Tanekaha, n. Maori name of a New Zealand tree;
also called Celery-topped Pine, Phyllocladus
trichomanoides, Don., N.O. Coniferae.
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 306:
"The Tanakaha Tree (Podocarpus asplenifolius) is found
scattered over a large portion of the northern island of New
Zealand. . . Height, sixty to eighty feet. . . The wood is
close and straight in the grain. . . It works up well, is
tough and very strong; so much so that the New Zealanders say
it is the `strong man' among their forest trees."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 125:
"Tanakaha. A slender, handsome tree, sixty feet high; trunk
rarely exceeds three feet in diameter; wood pale,
close-grained, and excellent for planks and spars; resists
decay in moist positions in a remarkable manner."
Tangi, n. (pronounced Tang-y)
Maori word for a lamentation, a cry, or dirge.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 207:
"Tangi, s. a cry or lamentation."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 194:
"They wrapped the mutilated corpse in his red blanket, and bore
it, lashed to a tree, to the village, where the usual tangi
took place."
1873. Lieut.-Colonel St. John, `Pakeha Rambles through Maori
Lands,' p. 154:
"Shortly afterwards a `tangi' was held over those of the party
whose remains could be identified."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p.191:
"Perhaps some old woman did a quiet tangi over his grave."
1883. F. S. Renwick, `Betrayed,' p. 41:
"'Tis the tangi floats on the seaborne breeze,
In its echoing notes of wild despair."
Taniwha, n. Maori name for a mythical monster.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 207:
"Taniwa, s. a sea-monster so called."
1842. W. R. Wade, `Journey in New Zealand' (Hobart Town),
p. 34:
"Hearing us use the word tapu, as we looked towards it,
one of our boatmen quickly repeated that the place was tapued
for the tanewa (a water demon). `And I wonder,' was his
irreverent addition, `what this same tanewa may be! An old pot
leg, perhaps!'"
1896. `Otago Witness,' Jan. 23, p. 51, col. 2:
"The river at one time is reported as having been infested with
taniwhas--gigantic fish that used to swallow the natives--and a
Maori pointed out a deep pool under some willows, and told me
his grandfather had been seized by one of these monsters at
that spot, dragged to the bottom and eaten. This taniwha,
which was about forty feet in length and had a long mane, was
in the habit of sometimes standing almost erect in the water,
and frightening the women and children out of their wits. It
had a tremendous-sized head, and its mouth somewhat resembled
the beak of a very large bird. Its neck was about six feet in
circumference and was covered with scales, as likewise its body
down to its tail, which was formed by a series of fin-shaped
projections, and somewhat resembled in form the tail of a grey
duck. It had two short legs which were as big around as the
body of a half-grown pig, and with one kick it could knock a
hole through the stoutest canoe."
Tannergrams, n. very recent New Zealand slang.
On 1st of June, 1896, the New Zealand Government reduced the
price of telegrams to sixpence (slang, a `tanner') for twelve
words.
1896. `Oamaru Mail,' June 13:
"Tannergrams is the somewhat apt designation which the new
sixpenny telegrams have been christened in commercial
vernacular."
Tappa, n. South-sea Island word. A native
cloth made from the bark of the Paper-mulberry, Broussonetia
papyrifera, Benth.
1886. `Art journal: Exhibition Supplement,' p. 24:
"The Tappa, or native cloth [of Fiji], made from the bark of a
tree. . . Has been extensively used in the draping of the
court."
1888. H. S. Cooper, `The Islands of the Pacific,' p. 9:
"Tappa, a native cloth of spotless white, made from the bark
of the mulberry-tree.'
Tapu, adj. a Maori word, but common also to
other Polynesian languages. The origin of the English word
taboo. It properly means `prohibited.' There was a
sacred tapu, and an unclean tapu. What was
consecrated to the gods was forbidden to be touched or used
by the people.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 208:
"Tapu, a. sacred, inviolable."
1835. W. Yate, `Some Account of New Zealand,' p. 84:
"This system of consecration--for that is the most frequent
meaning of the term `tapu'--has prevailed through all the
islands of the South Seas, but nowhere to a greater extent than
in New Zealand."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 194:
"They wrapped the mutilated corpse in his red blanket, and
bore it, lashed to a tree, to the village, where the usual
tangi took place after it had been deposited in the wahi tapu,
or sacred ground.'"
1859. A. S. Thomson, M.D., `Story of New Zealand,' p. 100:
"The primary meaning of the Maori word tapu is `sacred';
tabut is a Malay word, and is rendered `the Ark of the
Covenant of God'; taboot is a Hindoo word signifying
`a bier,' `a coffin,' or `the Ark of the Covenant'; ta
is the Sanscrit word `to mark,' and pu `to purify.'"
[There is no authority in this polyglot mixture.]
1879. Clement Bunbury, `Fraser's Magazine,' June, `A Visit to
the New Zealand Geysers,' p. 767:
"I had not much time to examine them closely, having a proper
fear of the unknown penalties incurred by the violation of
anything `tapu' or sacred."
1893. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 21, p. 10, col. 1:
"He seeks treasures which to us are tapu."
Tapu, n. the state of being consecrated or
forbidden.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 25:
"We found no natives, the cove being under tapu, on account of
its being the burial-place of a daughter of Te Pehi, the late
chief of the Kapiti, or Entry Island, natives."
1847. A. Tennyson, `Princess,' canto iii. l. 261:
". . . Women up till this
Cramp'd under worse than South-Sea-Isle taboo,
Dwarfs of the gynaeceum."
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 24:
"But chiefly thou, mysterious Tapu,
From thy strange rites a hopeful sign we draw."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 281:
"The tapu, which either temporarily or permanently renders
sacred an object animate or inanimate, is the nearest approach
to the Hindoo religious exclusive-ism."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 89:
"His sole `tapu' a far securer guard
Than lock and key of craftiest notch and ward."
Ibid. p. 100:
"Avenge each minor breach of this taboo."
Tapu, v. originally to mark as sacred,
and later to place under a ban. English, taboo.
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 284:
"The tapued resting-place of departed chieftains."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), May 29, p. 40, col. 2:
"I . . . found the telegraph office itself tabooed."
1893. R. L. Stevenson, `Island Nights' Entertainments,' p. 39:
"By Monday night I got it clearly in my head I must be
tabooed."
Tara, n. (1) Maori name for the birds
Sterna caspia, Pallas, and S. frontalis,
Gray, the Sea-Swallow, or Tern (q.v.).
(2) A Tasmanian aboriginal name for the fern Pteris
aquilina, L., N.O. Polypodeae.
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 129:
"The most extensively diffused eatable roots of Van Diemen's
Land are those of the tara fern . . . greatly resembles
Pteris aquilina, the common fern, brake, breckon,
or brackin, of England . . . it is known among the aborigines
by the name of tara . . . the root of the tara fern possesses
much nutritive matter."
Taraire, n. Maori name for a New Zealand tree;
formerly Nesodaphne tarairi, Hook., now Beilschmiedia
tarairi, Benth. and Hook., N.O. Laurineae.
1873. `Catalogue of Vienna Exhibition':
"Tarairi. Used for most of the purposes for which sycamore is
applied in Europe."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 129:
"Tarairi. A lofty forest tree, sixty to eighty feet high,
with stout branches. Wood white, splits freely, but not much
valued."
Tarakihi, n. the Maori name for the fish
Chilodactylus macropterus, Richards.; called in Sydney
the Norwong (q.v.).
Tarata, n. Maori name for the New Zealand
tree Pittosporum eugenioides, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Pittosporeae; called also Mapau,
Maple, etc. See Mapau.
1876. W. n. Blair, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. ix., art. x. p. 143:
"A small tree seldom exceeding thirty feet in height, and
twelve inches in diameter. It has pale green shining leaves
and purple flowers. The wood of a dirty white colour, is tough
and fibrous."
1879. J. B. Armstrong, `Transactions of New Zealand
Institute,' vol. xii. art. xlix. p. 329:
"The tarata or Lemon-wood, a most beautiful tree, also used
for hedges."
1889. E. H. and S. Featon, `New Zealand Flora,' p. 35:
"The Tarata. This elegant tree is found on the east coast of
both islands. It attains a height of from twenty to thirty
feet, and has a stem from twelve to eighteen inches in
diameter. It is known to the settlers in some parts as
`Lemon-wood.' When displaying its profuse masses of pale
golden flowers, it is very pretty."
Tare, Native, n. name applied in Tasmania to
the plant Swainsonia lessertiaefolia, De C.,
N.O. Leguminosae.
Taro, n. a familiar food plant,
Colocasia species, widely cultivated in tropical
regions, especially in Polynesia. The word is Polynesian,
and much used by the Maoris.
1846. J. Lindley, `Vegetable Kingdom,' p. 128 [Stanford]:
"Whole fields of Colocasia macrorhyza are cultivated
in the South Sea Islands under the name tara or kopeh roots."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 374:
"Many a bed,
That late in such luxurious neatness spread,
Of melons, maize and taro--now a wreck."
1878. Lady Brassey, `Voyage in the Sunbeam,' p. 263:
"A good-looking man was busy broiling beef-steaks, stewing
chickens and boiling taro, and we had soon a plentiful
repast set before us."
Tarsipes, n. the scientific generic name
of the Tait (q.v.).
Tarwhine, n. an Australian fish, Chrysophrys
sarba, Forsk. See Black-Bream. It is somewhat
difficult to distinguish the fish from its close relation the
Black-Bream, Chrysophrys australis, Gunth. Both are
excellent food, and frequently abundant in brackish waters.
Tar-wood, n. name given by the Otago bushmen to
the tree Darrydium colensoi, Hook.; Maori name,
Manoao (q.v.). (Kirk, `Forest Flora,' p. 189.)
Tasmania, n. island and colony, formerly called
Van Diemen's Land. The new name, from that of the Dutch
navigator, Abel Jansen Tasman, was officially adopted in 1853,
when the system of transportation ceased. The first quotations
show it was in popular use much earlier.
1820. Lieut. Charles Jeffreys, `Delineation of the Island of
Van Dieman's Land,' p. 1:
"Van Dieman's Land, or Tasmania, is an island of considerable
extent."
1823. `Godwin's Emigrant's Guide to Van Diemen's Land, more
properly called Tasmania':
[Title.]
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 8:
"Over Van Diemen's Land (or Tasmania, as we love to call
it here), New South Wales enjoys also many advantages."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 491:
"Tasmania is a more musical alias adopted by the island.
It has been given in titular distinction to the first bishop,
my excellent and accomplished friend Dr. Nixon, and will
doubtless be its exclusive designation when it shall have
become a free nation."
1892. A. and G. Sutherland, `History of Australia,' p. 41:
"The wild country around the central lakes of Tasmania."
Tasmanian, adj. belonging or native to
Tasmania.
1825. A. Bent, `The Tasmanian Almanack for the Year of our
Lord 1825'
[Title.]
Tasmanian, n. an inhabitant of Tasmania,
a colonist. The word is also used of the aborigines,
the race of whom is now extinct.
Tasmanian Devil, n. the only species of the
genus Sarcophilus (q.v.), S. ursinus.
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 156:
"Like many of its kindred, the Tasmanian Devil is a burrowing
and nocturnal animal. In size it may be compared to a Badger,
and owing to its short limbs, plantigrade feet, and short
muzzle, its gait and general appearance are very Badger or
Bear-like."
Tasmanian Tiger, n. called also Native
Wolf, Marsupial Wolf, Zebra Wolf, and
Hyaena; genus, Thylacinus (q.v.). It is the
largest carnivorous marsupial extant, and is so much like a
wolf in appearance that it well deserves its vernacular name of
Wolf, though now-a-days it is generally called
Tiger. There is only one species, Thylacinus
cynocephalus, and the settlers have nearly exterminated it,
on account of its fierce predatory habits and the damage it
inflicts on their flocks. The Tasmanian Government pays L1 for
every one destroyed. The Van Diemen's Land Company in the
North-West of the Island employs a man on one of its runs who
is called the "tiger-catcher."
1813. `History of New South Wales' (1818), p. 430:
"About Port Dalrymple an animal was discovered which bore some
resemblance to the hyena both in shape and fierceness; with a
wide mouth, strong limbs, sharp claws and a striped skin.
Agreeably to the general nature of New South Wales quadrupeds,
this animal has a false belly. It may be considered as the
most formidable of any which New South Wales has been yet found
to produce, and is very destructive; though there is no
instance of its attacking the human species."
1832. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 85:
"During our stay a native tiger or hyena bounded from its lair
beneath the rocks."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Friends and Foes,' p. 65:
"There is another charming fellow, which all the people here
call the Tiger, but as a tiger is like a great cat, and this
beast is much more like a dog, you will see how foolish this
name is. I believe naturalists call it the dog-faced opossum,
and that is not much better . . . the body is not a bit like
that of an opossum."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 273:
"The `Tasmanian tiger' is of the size of a shepherd's dog, a
gaunt yellow creature, with black stripes round the upper part
of its body, and with an ugly snout. Found nowhere but in
Tasmania, and never numerous even there, it is now slowly
disappearing."
Tasmanian Whiptail, n. a Tasmanian fish,
Coryphaenoides tasmaniae, family Macruridae,
or deep-sea Gadoids, an altogether different fish from
Myliobatis aquila, the Eagle or Whiptail
Ray, which also occurs in Tasmania, but is found all
over the world.
Tasmanite, n. a mineral. "A resinous,
reddish-brown, translucent, hydrocarbon derivative (C40H6202S),
found in certain laminated shales of Tasmania, Resiniferous
shale." (`Standard.')
Tassel-fish, n. a thread-fish of Queensland,
of the genus Polynemus, family Polynemidae.
Polynemoid fish have free filaments at the humeral arch below
the pectoral fins, which Guenther says are organs of touch,
and to be regarded as detached portions of the fin; in some
the filaments or threads are twice as long as the fish.
Tassy, n. a pet name for Tasmania.
1894. `The Argus,' Jan. 26, p. 3, col. 5:
"To-day Tassy--as most Victorian cricketers and footballers
familiarly term our neighbour over the straits--will send a team
into the field."
Tattoo, v. and n. to mark the human
body with indelible pigments. The word is Polynesian; its
first occurrence in English is in Cook's account of Tahiti.
The Tahitian word is Tatau, which means tattoo marks
on the human skin, from Ta, which means a mark or
design. (Littre.) The Maori verb, ta, means to cut,
to tattoo, to strike. See Moko.
1773. `Hawkesworth's Voyages' (Cook's First Voyage; at
Tahiti, 1769), vol. ii. p. 191:
"They have a custom of staining their bodies . . . which they
call Tattowing. They prick the skin, so as just not to
fetch blood, with a small instrument, something in the form of
a hoe. . . . The edge is cut into sharp teeth or points
. . . they dip the teeth into a mixture of a kind of lamp-black
. . . The teeth, thus prepared, are placed upon the skin, and
the handle to which they are fastened being struck by quick
smart blows, they pierce it, and at the same time carry into
the puncture the black composition, which leaves an indelible
stain."
1777. Horace Walpole, `Letters,' vol. vi. p. 448:
"Since we will give ourselves such torrid airs, I wonder we
don't go stark and tattoo ourselves."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 109:
"A very famous artist in tatu came with the party, and was kept
in constant and profitable employment. Everybody, from the
renowned warrior to the girl of twelve years old, crowded to be
ornamented by the skilful chisel. . . . The instruments used
were not of bone, as they used formerly to be; but a graduated
set of iron tools, fitted with handles like adzes, supplied
their place. . . . The staining liquid is made of charcoal."
1847. A. Tennyson, `Princess,' canto ii. l. 105:
". . . Then the monster, then the man;
Tattoo'd or woaded, winter-clad in skins,
Raw from the prime, and crushing down his mate."
1859. A. S. Thomson, `Story of New Zealand,' vol. i. c. iv.
p. 74:
"First among the New Zealand list of disfigurations is
tattooing, a Polynesian word signifying a repetition of taps,
but which term is unknown in the language of the New
Zealanders; moko being the general term for the
tattooing on the face, and whakairo for that on the
body." [But see Moko.]
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 17:
"Lips no stain of tattoo had turned azure."
Ibid. p. 104:
"A stick knobbed with a carved and tattoo'd wooden head."
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 3:
"Thy rugged skin is hideous with tattooing."
Tawa, n. Maori name for a New Zealand tree,
Nesodaphne tawa, Hook., N.O. Laurineae. The
newer name is Beilschmiedia tawa, Benth. and Hook. f.
Allied to Taraire (q.v.). A handsome forest tree with
damson-like fruit.
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 129:
"Tawa. A lofty forest tree, sixty to seventy feet high, with
slender branches. The wood is light and soft, and is much used
for making butter-kegs."
Tawara, n. Maori name for the flower of the
Kie-kie (q.v.), Freycinetia Banksii.
Tawhai, or Tawai, n. Maori name
for several species of New Zealand Beech-trees,
N.O. Cupuliferae. The settlers call them Birches
(q.v.).
1873. `Catalogue of Vienna Exhibition':
"Tawhai. Large and durable timber, used for sleepers."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 125:
"Tawhai, Red-birch (from colour of bark). A handsome tree,
eighty to one hundred feet high. Fagus Menziesii, Hook.
[also called large-leaved birch]. Tawhai, Tawhairaunui,
Black-birch of Auckland and Otago (from colour of bark),
Fagus fusca, Hook."
Tawhiri, or Tawiri, n. Maori name
for the Black Mapau. A name applied to the tree
Pittosporum tenuifolium, N.O. Pittosporeae.
It is profusely covered with a fragrant white blossom.
See Mapau.
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 108:
"Its floor . . . with faint tawhiri leaves besprent "
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 21:
"The early breeze that . . . stole
The rich Tawhiri's sweet perfume."
Tea, n.--
Billy-tea, or Bush-tea. Tea made in a
billy (q.v.). There is a belief that in order to bring
out the full flavour it should be stirred with a gum-stick.
New Zealand tea. Tea made of the leaves
of Manuka (q.v.). See Tea-tree.
Sweet-tea, or Botany-Bay tea, or
Australian tea. (Called also Native Sarsaparilla.
See Sarsaparilla.) A plant, Smilax glycyphylla,
Smith., N.O. Liliaceae.
1788. D. Considen, letter to Sir Joseph Banks, Nov. 18, in
`Historical Records of New South Wales,' vol. i. part ii.
p. 220:
"I have sent you some of the sweet tea of this country, which
I recommend, and is generally used by the marines and convicts.
As such it is a good anti-scorbutic, as well as a substitute
for that which is more costly."
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 195:
"The sweet-tea, a creeping kind of vine . . . the taste is
sweet, exactly like the liquorice-root of the shops. Of this
the convicts and soldiers make an infusion which is tolerably
pleasant, and serves as no bad succedaneum for tea."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 203:
"`Sweet tea' . . . The decoction made from its leaves . . .
is similar in properties, but more pleasant in taste, than that
obtained from the roots of S. officinalis, or Jamaica
sarsaparilla. The herb is a common article of trade among
Sydney herbalists."
Tea-broom, n. a New Zealand name for the
Tea-tree (q.v.).
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' [Notes] p. 505:
"Manuka. . . . The settlers often call it `tea-broom.'"
Teak, n. The original Teak is an East Indian
timber-tree, Tectina grandis, but the name has been
transferred to other trees in different parts of the world,
from a similarity in the hardness of their wood. In Australia,
it is given to Dissiliaria baloghioides, F. v. M.,
N.O. Euphorbiaceae; to Endiandra glauca, R. Br.,
N.O. Leguminosae; and to Flindersia Bennettiana,
F. v. M., N.O. Meliaceae. In New Zealand, it is
Vitex littoralis; Maori name, Puriri (q.v.).
Teal, n. the common English name given to the
small ducks of the genus Querquedula. In Australia, the
name is applied to Anas castanea, Eyton; and to the
Grey Teal, A. gibberifrons, Mull. See also
Goose-teal.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 291:
"Brown returned with . . . four teals (Querquedula
castanea)." [The old name.]
Tea-tree, n. (Very frequently, but
erroneously, spelt Ti-tree, and occasionally,
more ridiculously still, Ti-tri, q.v.) A name given
in Australia, New Zealand, and Tasmania to several species
of trees and shrubs whose leaves were used by Captain Cook's
sailors, by escaped convicts, and by the early settlers as
a ready substitute for the leaves of the Chinese Tea-plant
(Thea chinensis) for making tea. The trees of the
genera Leptospermum and Melaleuca were the
earliest used, in Australia and New Zealand, in this way.
When in blossom, the branches of many species, with their
little white flowers, and the general appearance of their
leaves, bear a strong resemblance to those of the true Tea-plant.
Their leaves, though exceedingly aromatic, have not, however,
the same flavour. Nevertheless, it was probably this superficial
likeness which first suggested the experiment of making an
infusion from them. Some of the species of Leptospermum
and Melaleuca are so closely allied, that their names
are by some botanists interchanged and used as synonyms for the
same plant.
Although not all of the species of these two genera were used
for making tea, yet, as a tree-name, the word Tea-tree
is indifferently and loosely used to denote nearly all of them,
especially in the form Tea-tree scrub, where they grow,
as is their habit, in swamps, flat-land, and coastal districts.
Other trees or plants to which the name of Tea-tree was
occasionally given, are species of the genera Kunzea
and Callistemon.
The spelling Ti-tree is not only erroneous as to the
origin of the name, but exceedingly misleading, as it confuses
the Australian Tea-tree with another Ti (q.v.)
in Polynesia (Cordyline ti). This latter genus is
represented, in Australia and New Zealand, by the two species
Cordyline australis and C. indivisa,
the Cabbage-trees (q.v.), or Cabbage palms (q.v.),
or Ti-palms (q.v.), or Ti (q.v.), which are a
marked feature of the New Zealand landscape, and are of the
lily family (N.O. Liliaceae), while the genera
Leptospermum and Melaleuca are of the myrtle
family (N.O. Myrtaceae).
As to the species of the Australian Tea-tree, that first
used by Cook's sailors was either--Leptospermum
scoparium, R. and G. Forst.,
or
L. lanigerum, Smith.
The species most used for infusions was--
L. fravescens, Smith (syn. L. thea, Willd.,
and Melaleuca thea, Willd.).
The Coast Tea-tree, common on the Victorian shores,
and so useful as a sand-binder, is--
L. laevigatum, F. v. M.
The Common Australian Tea-tree (according to Maiden) is
Melaleuca leucodendron, Linn.; called also White
Tea-tree, Broad-leaved T.-t., Swamp T.-t.,
and Paper-bark T.-t.
The name, however, as noted above, is used for all species
of Melaleuca, the Swamp Tea-tree being
M. ericifolia, Smith, and the Black,
or Prickly-leaved Tea-tree, M. styphelioides,
Smith.
Of the other genera to which the name is sometimes applied,
Kunzea pedunculata, F. v. M., is called Mountain
Tea-tree, and Callistemon salignus, De C., is
called--
Broad-leaved, or River Tea-tree.
In New Zealand, the Maori name Manuka (q.v.) is more
generally used than Tea-tree, and the tree denoted by
it is the original one used by Cook's sailors.
Concerning other plants, used in the early days for making
special kinds of infusions and drinking them as tea,
see under Tea, and Cape-Barren Tea.
1777. Cook's `Voyage towards the South Pole and Round the
World' [2nd Voyage], vol. i. p. 99:
"The beer certainly contributed not a little. As I have already
observed, we at first made it of a decoction of the spruce
leaves; but finding that this alone made the beer
too astringent, we afterwards mixed with it an equal quantity
of the tea plant (a name it obtained in my former voyage from
our using it as tea then, as we also did now), which partly
destroyed the astringency of the other, and made the beer
exceedingly palatable, and esteemed by every one on board."
[On page 100, Cook gives a description of the tea-plant, and
also figures it. He was then at Dusky Bay, New Zealand.]
1790. J. White, `Voyage to New South Wales,' p. 229:
"Tea Tree of New South Wales, Melaleuca (?)
Trinervia. This is a small shrub, very much
branched. . . . It most nearly approaches the Leptospermum
virgatum of Forster, referred by the younger Linnaeus,
perhaps improperly, to Melaleuca."
1820. C. Jeffreys, R.N., `Geographical and Descriptive
Delineations of the Island of Van Dieman's Land,' p. 133:
"Of course they [the Bushrangers] are subject to numerous
privations, particularly in the articles of tea, sugar,
tobacco, and bread; for this latter article, however, they
substitute the wild yam, and for tea they drink a decoction of
the sassafras and other shrubs, particularly one which they
call the tea-tree bush."
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description of New South Wales,'
p. 175:
"On Monday the bushrangers were at a house at Tea-tree Brush."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 200:
"The leaves of the tea-tree furnished the colonists with a
substitute for the genuine plant in the early period of the
colony, and from their containing a saccharine matter required
no sugar."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 78:
"This boy got some bark from a tree called the tea-tree, which
makes excellent torches."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 25:
"The tea-tree grows in wet situations . . . the leaves infused
make a pleasant beverage, and with a little sugar form a most
excellent substitute for tea."
1834. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 134:
"Leptospermum lanigerum, Hoary tea-tree; Acacia
decurrens, Black wattle; Conaea alba, Cape-Barren
tea. The leaves of these have been used as substitutes for tea
in the colony, as have also the leaves and bark of
Cryptocarya glaucescens, the Australian Sasafras"
(sic) [q.v.].
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 39:
"The Australian myrtles, or tea-trees, are to be found in thick
clusters, shading rocky springs. . . . Its leaves I have
seen made into a beverage called tea. It, however, was
loathsome, and had not the slightest resemblance to any known
Chinese tea."
1845. R. Howitt, `Australia,' p. 85:
"Often we had to take the boat down the river several miles,
to cut reeds amongst the tea-tree marshes, to thatch our houses
with."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix;' p. 33:
"A great quantity of the tea-tree (Leptospermum) scrubs,
which formerly lined both banks of the Yarra."
(p. 84): "It is allied to the myrtle family (Melaleuca)
. . . A decoction of the leaves is a fair substitute for tea,
yielding a beverage of a very aromatic flavour."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i. p. 210:
"Dense with tea-trees and wattles shrouding the courses of the
stream."
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 126:
"Half-hidden in a tea-tree scrub,
A flock of dusky sheep were spread."
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads,' p. 14:
"Through the tea-tree scrub we dashed."
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 70:
"Chiefly covered with fern and tea-tree (manuka) scrub."
1871. T. Bracken, `Behind the Tomb,' p. 60:
"Sobbing through the tea-tree bushes,
Low and tender, loud and wild,
Melancholy music gushes."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 2o6:
Table of Tasmanian woods found in low marshy ground.
Hgt. Dia. Used.
Swamp Tea-tree 12 ft. 6 in. Useless.
Tea-tree 30 " 9 " } Turners' and
} Agricultural
Musk Tea-tree 12 " small } Implements.
1877. Baron von Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 18:
"We have among them [the Myrtaceae] . . . the native
tea-trees, inappropriately so called, as these bushes and trees
never yield substitutes for tea, although a New Zealand species
was used in Captain Cook's early expedition, to prepare a
medicinal infusion against scurvy; these so-called tea-trees
comprise within our colony [Victoria], species of Leptospermum,
Kunzea, Melaleuca and Callistemon, the last-mentioned genus
producing flowers with long stamens, on which the appellation
of `Bottle-brushes' has been bestowed."
1880. W. Senior, `Travel and Trout,' p. 78:
"Numerous flowering shrubs, such as the tea-tree, native lilac,
and many another that varies the colour and softly scents the
atmosphere."
1880. Mrs.Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 221:
"Thickets of tea-tree, white with lovely hawthorn-like
flowers."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 19:
"Along the water's edge, noble titrees, whose drooping branches
swept the stream, formed a fringe, the dark green of their
thick foliage being relieved."
1883. C. Harpur, `Poems,' p. 78:
"Why roar the bull-frogs in the tea-tree marsh?"
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 84:
"Shading a brook the tea-trees grew,
Spangled with blossoms of whitish hue,
Which fell from the boughs to the ground below,
As fall from heaven the flakes of snow."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 112:
"The bottle-brush flowers of the ti-trees."
1888. Baron Ferdinand von Mueller, `Select Extra-Tropical
Plants,' p. 221:
"The somewhat aromatic leaves of Liscoparium (Forster)
were already in Captain Cook's Expedition used for an
antiscorbutic Tea, hence the name tea-tree for this and some
allied plants."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 76:
"The intrusive ti-tree. . . . The dark line of ti-tree in the
foreground . . ."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' pp. 235, 236:
"Leptospermum scoparium, Forster, the Manuka.
. . . It is commonly termed `tea-tree' by the settlers, but
must not be confounded with the `ti' or `toi' of the Maories,
which is a handsome palm-lily, Cordyline australis,
often termed `cabbage-tree' by the bushmen."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 38:
"Leptospermum scoparium, Tea Tree. It is said that this
is the shrub the leaves of which were utilized by the crews of
Captain Cook's ships for the purpose of making `tea,' and that
they were also used with spruce leaves in equal quantity for
the purpose of correcting the astringency in brewing a beer
from the latter. It is exceedingly common about Sydney, so
large quantities would therefore be available to the sailors.
Species of this genus are exceedingly abundant not far from the
coast, and the leaves would be very readily available, but the
taste of the infusion made from them is too aromatic for the
European palate."
[In Maiden's admirable book slips are very rare. But he is
mistaken here in the matter of the abundance of the tree at
Sydney having any reference to the question. Captain Cook had
but one ship, the Endeavour; and it never entered Port
Jackson. It is true that L. scoparium was the tree used
by Cook, but he was then at Dusky Bay, New Zealand, and it was
there that he used it. See quotations 1777 and 1877.]
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 24:
"The well-known Melaleuca Leucadendron, called by the
colonists tea-tree, from which is extracted what is known in
medicine as cajeput oil."
1893. `The Australasian,' Jan 14:
"The ti-tree on either side of the road was in bloom, its soft,
fluffy, creamy bushes gathering in great luxuriance on the tops
of the taller trees, almost hiding the green."
1893. `The Argus,' April 29, p. 4, col. 4:
"There was many a shorthorned Hereford hidden in the innermost
recesses of that tick and sand-fly infested ti-tree that knew
not the cunning of a stockman's hand."
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue--Economic Woods':
"No. 133, Coast tea-tree, Leptospermum laevigatum,
F. v. M. No. 142, Swamp tea-tree, Melaleuca ericifolia,
Smith."
Teetee. Same as Ti-Ti (q.v.).
Telopea, n. scientific name of the genus
containing the flower called the Waratah (q.v.),
from the Greek taelowpos, `seen from afar,' in allusion
(as the author of the name, Robert Brown, himself says) to
the conspicuous crimson flowers. The name has been corrupted
popularly into Tulip, and the flower is often called
the Native Tulip.
1835. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 110:
"The beautiful crimson flowering shrub, with dark green
rhododendron-like leaves, which grows in the upper region
of Mount Wellington. . . . The generic name is derived from
telopos, seen at a distance. It has been corrupted
into tulip tree, to which it bears not the least resemblance."
Tena koe, a Maori salutation used in North Island of
New Zealand. Lit. "That is you," and meaning "How do you do?"
Tena and Tera both mean `that'; but
tena implies the idea of nearness, `that near you,'
tera the idea of distance, `that (or there) away
yonder.' Hence, while Tena koe is a welcome, Tera koe
would be an insult.
Tench, n. slang term, used during the days of
transportation, for the Hobart Town Penitentiary, or Prisoners'
Barracks--a corruption of "'tentiary," which is for
Penitentiary. It is now obsolete.
1859. Caroline Leakey, `The Broad Arrow,' vol. ii. p. 32:
"Prisoners' barracks, sir--us calls it Tench."
Teraglin, n. a fish of New South Wales,
Otolithus atelodus, Gunth. The name Teraglin
is stated to be aboriginal. Sometimes called Jew-fish
(q.v.).
Thickhead, n. the name applied to the
Australian birds of the genus Pachycephala (q.v.).
They are often called Thrushes. The species are--
The Banded Thickhead
Pachycephala pectoralis, Vig. and Hors.
Black T.--
P. melanura, Gould.
Gilbert's T.--
P. gilbertii, Gould.
Grey-tailed T.--
P. glaucura, Gould (confined to Tasmania).
Lunated T.--
P. falcata, Gould.
Olivaceous T.--
P. olivacea, Vig. and Hors. (confined to Tasmania).
Pale-breasted T.--
P. pallida, Ramsay.
Plain-coloured T.--
P. simplex, Gould.
Red-throated T.--
P. rufigularis, Gould.
Rufous-breasted T.--
P. rufiventris, Lath.
Shrike-like T.--
Pachycephala lanoides, Gould.
Torres-straits T.--
P. fretorum, De Vis.
Western T.--
P. occidentalis, Ramsay.
White-throated T.--
P. gutturalis, Lath.; called also
the Thunder-bird (q.v.).
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Game Act' (Third Schedule):
"Thick-heads. [Close season.] From the first day of August to
the twentieth day of December next following in each year."
Thornback, n. special name for one of the
Stingrays, Raia lemprieri, Richards., or Raja
rostata, Castln., family Raijdae.
1875. `Melbourne Spectator,' Aug. 28, p. 201, col. 3:
"A thornback skate . . . weighing 109 lbs., has been caught
. . . at North Arm, South Australia."
Thousand-Jacket, n. a North Island name for
Ribbon-wood (q.v.), a New Zealand tree. Layer after
layer of the inner bark can be stripped off.
1888. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iii. p. 210:
"Koninny [sic], raupo, toi-toi, supplejack, thousand-jacket,
and the like, are names of things known well enough to the
inhabitants of Napier and Taranaki, but to the average
stay-at-home Englishman they are nouns which only vexatiously
illustrate the difference between names and things."
1889. T. Kirk, `Flora of New Zealand,' p. 87:
"Hoheria populnea. The Houhere. Order--Malvaceae. . . In the
north of Auckland the typical form is known as `houhere'; but
Mr. Colenso informs me the varieties are termed `houi' and
`whau-whi' in the south . . . By the settlers all the forms
are termed `ribbon-wood,' or less frequently `lace-bark'--
names which are applied to other plants: they are also termed
`thousand-jacket.'"
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 5:
"`Thousand-jacket' is a picturesque name for a many-named New
Zealand tree, the bark of which peels, and peels, and peels
again, though in the number chosen there is certainly a note of
exaggeration."
Throwing-stick, n. native Australian weapon,
by means of which the spear is thrown. See Woomera.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. i.
p. 12:
"The principals who perform it come from, Cammer-ray, armed
with shields, clubs, and throwing-sticks."
Ibid. c. i. p. 26:
"The throwing-stick is used in discharging the spear. The
instrument is from two to three feet in length, with a shell
on one end and a hook on the other."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i.
p. 72:
"Natives . . . seemingly ignorant of the use of the
throwing-stick."
1879. J. D. Woods, `Native Tribes of South Australia,'
Introd. p. xviii:
"The spear is propelled by a wommerah or throwing-stick, having
at one end a kangaroo's tooth, fixed so as to fit into a notch
at the end of the spear. This instrument gives an amount of
leverage far beyond what would be excited by unaided muscular
strength."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 251:
"It is supposed that if the hair of a person is tied on the
end of the throwing-stick. . . and roasted before the fire
with some kangaroo fat, the person to whom it belonged will
pine away and die."
1885. H. H. Hayter, `Carboona,' p. 24:
"Warrk Warrk, having a dart on his throwing-stick ready
adjusted, hurled it."
Thrush, n. This common English bird-name is
applied in Australia and New Zealand to four different genera
of birds, viz.--
(1) Collyriocincla, the Shrike-Thrushes (q.v.); the name
Collyriocincla is a compound of two Greek bird-names,
kolluriown /corr. from kolluriowu in Morris/, `a bird,
probably of the thrush kind, Arist. H. A. 9, 23, 2'
(`L. & S.' /1869 p.864/), and kigalos, `a kind of
wag-tail or water-ousel' (`L. & S.'). The next
two genera are derived in a similar way from gaer,
earth, and 'opos, mountain.
(2) Geocincla, the Ground-Thrushes (q.v.).
(3) Oreocincla, the Mountain-Thrush (q.v.).
(4) Pachycephala (q.v.); called Thrushes,
but more often Thickheads (q.v.).
(5) Turnagra (the New Zealand Thrushes), viz.--
T. hectori, Buller, North Island Thrush.
T. crassirostris, Gmel., South Island Thrush.
The name Thrush was also applied loosely, by the early
writers and travellers, to birds of many other genera which
have since been more accurately differentiated. The common
English thrush has been acclimatised in Australia, Tasmania,
and New Zealand.
Thunder-bird, n. an early name for one
of the Thickheads (q.v.), or Pachycephalae
(q.v.). See also quotation, 1896.
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 239:
"`This species,' Mr. Caley says, `is called
Thunder-bird by the colonists. . . . The natives tell
me, that when it begins to thunder this bird is very noisy.'"
1848. J. Gould,' Birds of Australia,' vol. ii. pl. 64:
"Pachycephala Gutturalis, Thunder Bird,
Colonists of New South Wales."
1896. A. J. North, `List of the Insectivorous Birds of New
South Wales,' part i. p. 3:
"Pachycephala gutturalis, Latham. `Yellow-breasted
Thick-head.' . . . From its habit of starting to sing
immediately after a clap of thunder, the report of a gun,
or any other loud and sudden noise, it is known to many
residents of New South Wales as the Thunder-bird.'
"Pachycephala rufiventris, Latham. `Rufous-breasted
Thickhead.' . . . Also known as the `Thunder-bird.'"
Thunder-dirt, n. In New Zealand, a gelatinous
covering of a fungus (Ileodictyon cibarium) formerly
eaten by the Maoris.
Thylacine, and Thylacinus, n. the
scientific name of the genus of the animal called variously the
Tasmanian Tiger (q.v.), Hyaena, Tasmanian
Wolf, Zebra Wolf, and Marsupial Wolf. The
first spelling is the Anglicised form of the word. (Grk.
thulakos, a pouch, and kuown, a dog.)
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 153:
"The Thylacine appears to be generally found among caverns and
rocks and the deep and almost impenetrable glens in the
neighbourhood of the highest mountains of Tasmania."
Ti, n. the name of various species of trees of
the genus Cordyline, N.O. Liliaceae. It exists
in the Pacific Islands as C. Ti, and in New Zealand the
species are C. australis and C. indivisa. It is
called in New Zealand the Cabbage-tree (q.v.), and the
heart used to be eaten by the settlers. The word is
Polynesian. In Hawaiian, the form is Ki; in Maori,
Ti. Compare Kanaka (q.v.) and Tangata.
By confusion, Tea, in Tea-tree (q.v.), is
frequently spelt Ti, and Tea-tree is sometimes
spelt Ti-tri (q.v.).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 58:
"In these natural shrubberies, too, and especially in wet
situations, a kind of cabbage-tree, called ti by the natives,
flourishes to great abundance."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor,' Te Ika a Maui,' p. 435:
"The ti (Cordyline australis or Dracoena
australis) is found in great abundance. Though so common,
it has a very foreign look . . . the leaf is that of a flag,
the flower forms a large droop and is very fragrant."
1866. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 52:
"Ti-ti palms are dotted here and there, and give a foreign and
tropical appearance to the whole."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 297:
"An abundance of narrow strips of the tough, fibrous leaves of
the ti-palm."
1890. W. Colenso, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xviii. art. lvii. p. 486:
"In these plains stand a number of cabbage-trees (Cordyline
Australis), the ti-trees of the Maori. These often bear
only a single head of long narrow harsh leaves at the top of
their tall slender stems, but sometimes they are slightly
branched, the branches also only bearing a similar tuft."
1892. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 22, p. 7, col. 2:
"A small grove of ti-palms or cabbage-tree."
Tiaki (spelt also Tieke), n. Maori
name for the Saddle-back or Jack-bird (q.v.).
1835. W. Yate, `Account of New Zealand,' p. 56:
"Tiaki or purourou. This elegant bird is about the size of the
sky-lark."
Tieke, n. Same as Tiaki (q.v.).
Tiers, pl. n. used in Tasmania as the usual
word for mountains, in the same way as the word Ranges
(q.v.) in Australia.
1876. W. B. Wildey, `Australasia and Oceanic Region,' p.
320:
"Two chains of mountains, the eastern and western tiers, run
through it nearly north and south."
1891. `The Australasian,' April 4, p. 670, col. 2:
"That stuff as they calls horizontal, a mess of branches and
root,
The three barren tiers; and the Craycroft, that 'ud settle
a bandicoot."
Tiersman, n. Tasmanian word for one who lives
in the Tiers (q.v.).
1852. F. Lancelott, `Australia as it is,' vol. ii. p. 115:
"Splatters, or, as they are commonly called tiersmen, reside in
the forest of stringy bark . . ."
Tiger-Cat, n. special name applied
to the Common and Spotted-tailed Native Cat.
See under Cat.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 52:
"The skins of the . . . opossum, tiger-cat, and platypus
. . . are exported."
1852. Ronald C. Gunn, `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal
Society of Van Diemen's Land,' vol. ii. p. 11:
"Dasyurus maculatus, Shaw. . . . The Spotted
Martin, Phillip's `Voy. to Botany Bay, p. 276. Martin
Cat,' pl. 46. `Tiger Cat' of the Colonists of Tasmania,
to which island it is confined. It is distinguished from
D. viverrinus, the `Native Cat' of the Colonists,
by its superior size and more robust form; also from
the tail being spotted as well as the body."
1891. `Guide to the Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"After the opossums comes a specimen of the tiger-cat
(Dasyurus maculatus); this animal, which is so
destructive to poultry, is well known throughout the
country in Victoria."
Tiger, Tasmanian. See Thylacine
and Tasmanian Tiger.
Tiger-Snake, n. See under Snake.
Tihore, n. Maori name for a species of New
Zealand flax. Name used specially in the North Island for the
best variety of Phormium (q.v.).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 286:
"The species of Phormium tenax thus cultivated is
the tihore, literally the `skinning' flax. This name describes
the ease with which it submits to the scraping process."
Tiki, n. Maori name for the Creator of man, and
thence taken to represent an ancestor. The Maoris made large
wooden images to represent their Tiki, and gave the name
of Tiki to these images. Later they were made in
miniature in greenstone (q.v.), and used as neck ornaments.
See Heitiki.
Tit, n. common English bird name.
Applied in Australia to the following species--
Broad-tailed Tit--
Acanthiza apicalis, Gould.
Brown T.--
A. pusilla, Lath.
Buff T.--
Geobasileus reguloides, V. and H.
Chestnut-rumped T.--
Acanthiza uropygialis, Gould.
Little T.--
A. nana, Vig. and Hors.
Plain T.--
A. inornata, Gould.
Red-rumped T.--
A. pyrrhopygia, Gould.
Scaly-breasted T.--
A. squamata, De Vis.
Scrub T.--
Sericornis magna, Gould.
Striated T.--
Acanthiza lineata, Gould.
Tasmanian T.--
A. diemenensis, Gould; called also Brown-tail.
Yellow-rumped T.--
Geobasileus chrysorrhoea, Quoy and Gaim.
See also Tree-tit.
Tit-fish, n. a name given in North Australia
to the Sea-slug, or Trepang; because the appearance of its
tentacles suggests the teat of a cow.
1880. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Proceedings of the Linnaean
Society of New South Wales,' vol. v. pt. ii. p. 128:
"G. F. Jaeger, in 1833, . . . enumerates four [species of
Trepang), viz. Trepang edulis, T. ananas,
T. impatiens and T. peruviana. The first of
these is certainly found on the reefs, and is called by the
fishermen `redfish.' . . . Next to this is the `tit-fish'
. . . studded with somewhat distant large tentacles, which
project nearly an inch or so."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 22:
"They were engaged in smoking a large haul of `tit' fish, which
they had made on a neighbouring reef."
Ti-ti, n. Maori name for the sea-bird
Pelecanoides urinatrix, Gmel., the Diving-petrel.
Spelt also tee-tee.
1891. `The Australasian,' Nov. 14, p. 963, col. 1 (`A Lady
in the Kermadecs'):
"The petrels--there are nine kinds, and we have names of our
own for them, the black burrower, the mutton-bird, the white
burrower, the short-billed ti-ti, the long-billed ti-ti, the
little storm petrel, and three others that we had no names
for--abound on the island."
Tititpunamu, n. (spelt also
Tititipunamu), n. Maori name for the bird
Acanthidositta chloris, Sparm., the Rifleman
(q.v.). It has many other Maori names.
Titoki, n. Maori name for the New Zealand tree,
Alectryon excelsum, De C., N.O. Sapindaceae.
Also called New Zealand Oak and New Zealand Ash. See
Alectryon.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 317:
"The berry of the titoki tree might be turned to account. The
natives extract a very fine oil from it."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 253:
The youth, with hands beneath his head,
Against a great titoki's base."
1877. Anon., `Colonial Experiences or Incidents of
Thirty-four Years in New Zealand,' p: 16:
"For this purpose, titoki was deemed the most suitable timber,
from its hardness and crooked growth resembling English oak."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 131:
"Titoki, a beautiful tree with large panicles of reddish
flowers . . . Wood has similar properties to ash. Its
toughness makes it valuable for wheels, coachbuilding, etc."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 183:
"It is sometimes termed `the New Zealand ash,' doubtless on
account of its resembling that tree in the shape of its foliage
and in the toughness of its wood, but it is most generally
known as the `titoki.'"
1896. `Otago Witness,' June 23, p. 42, col. 2:
"The saddling-paddock and the scales are surrounded by a fence
made of stout titoki saplings, on which are perched the
knowing."
Ti-tree, n. erroneous spelling of
Tea-tree (q.v.). See also Manuka.
Titri, n. corruption for Tea-tree
(q.v.), from the fancy that it is Maori, or aboriginal
Australian. On the railway line, between Dunedin and
Invercargill, there is a station called "Titri,"
evidently the surveyor's joke.
1895. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 19, p. 23, col. 3:
"Our way lay across two or three cultivations into a grove of
handsome titri. Traversing this we came to a broad, but
shallow and stony creek, and then more titri, merging into
light bush."
Toad-fish, n. In New Zealand, a scarce marine
fish of the family Psychrolutidae, Neophrynichthys
latus. In Australia, the name is applied to Tetrodon
hamiltoni, Richards., and various other species of
Tetrodon, family Gymnodontes, poisonous fishes.
Toad-fishes are very closely allied to Porcupine-fishes.
"Toads" have the upper jaw divided by a median suture, while
the latter have undivided dental plates. See
Porcupine-fish and Globe-fish,
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 89:
"The Poisonous or Toad Fish of Van Diemen's Land.
(Communicated by James Scott, Esq. R.N. Colonial
Surgeon). . . . The melancholy and dreadful effect
produced by eating it was lately instanced in the neighbourhood
of Hobart Town, on the lady of one of the most respectable
merchants, and two children, who died in the course of three
hours . . . The poison is of a powerful sedative nature,
producing stupor, loss of speech, deglutition, vision and
the power of the voluntary muscles, and ultimately an entire
deprivation of nervous power and death."
1844. J. A. Moore, `Tasmanian Rhymings,' p. 24:
"The toad-fish eaten, soon the body dies."
Toatoa, n. Maori name of New Zealand tree,
Phyllocladus glauca, Carr., N.O. Coniferae.
The Mountain Toatoa is P. alpinus, Hook.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 120:
"The toa toa, a small tree which is much prized by the natives
for walking-sticks, and only grows, they say, in the
neighbourhood of Tonga Riro. The stick underneath the bark is
of a bright red colour, which takes a fine polish."
Tobacco, Colonial. See Tobacco, Native.
Tobacco, Native, n. In Australia generally,
a true Tobacco, Nicotiana suaveolens, Lehm.,
N.O. Solanaceae; readily eaten as a forage plant
by stock. In Queensland, the name is also applied to
Pituri (q.v.). In Tasmania, the name is given to
Cassinia billardieri, De C., N.O. Compositae.
Various American tobaccos are also naturalised, and their
growing and manufacture is an industry. Tobacco manufactured
in the colonies, whether from imported American leaf or from
leaf grown in the colonies, is called Colonial Tobacco.
1848. T. L. Mitchell, `Tropical Australia,' p. 64:
"In the rich soil near the river-bed, we saw the yellowish
flowers of the native tobacco, Nicotiana suaveolens."
Toe-ragger, n. In the bush a term of abuse;
though curiously in one or two parts of New South Wales the
word "toey," which is derived from it, is a term of praise, a
"swell." The word has been explained as of convict origin,
that the rags were used to soothe the galling of fetters; but
the explanation is not satisfactory, for the part galled by the
irons would not be the toe, but the ankle. A writer in `Truth'
has cleared up the word (see quotation). It is of Maori
origin. Away from Maoriland "toe-rigger" had no meaning, and a
false meaning and origin were given by the change of vowel.
1896. `Truth' (Sydney), Jan. 12:
"The bushie's favorite term of opprobrium `a toe-ragger' is
also probably from the Maori. Amongst whom the nastiest term
of contempt was that of tau rika rika, or slave. The
old whalers on the Maoriland coast in their anger called each
other toe-riggers, and to-day the word in the form of
toe-ragger has spread throughout the whole of the South Seas."
Toe-toe, and Toi-toi, Maori name of several
species of native grass of the genus Arundo, especially
Arundo conspicua, A. Cunn. Toe-toe is the right
spelling in Maori, given in Williams' `Maori Dictionary.' In
English, however, the word is frequently spelt toi-toi.
It is also called Prince of Wales' feather.
1843. `An Ordinance for imposing a tax on Raupo Houses,
Session II. No. xvii. of the former Legislative Council of
New Zealand':
[From A. Domett's collection of Ordinances, 1850.]
"Section 2. . . . there shall be levied in respect of every
building constructed wholly or in part of raupo, nikau,
toitoi, wiwi kakaho, straw or thatch of any
description [ . . . L20]."
1849. C. Hursthouse, `Settlement of New Plymouth,' p. 13:
"A species of tall grass called `toetoe.'"
1861. C. C. Bowen, `Poems,' p. 57:
"High o'er them all the toi waved,
To grace that savage ground."
1867. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 110:
"Thatching it with tohi, or swamp-grass."
1892. `The Katipo,' Jan. i. [sic] p. 3 [description of the
Title-cut]:
"The toi toi and Phorinium tenax in the corners are
New Zealand emblems."
1895. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 19, p. 6, col. 3:
"Where Christmas lilies wave and blow,
Where the fan-tails tumbling glance,
And plumed toi-toi heads the dance."
Tohora, n. Maori name for a whale.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 136:
"Fable of the Kauri (pine-tree) and Tohora (whale)."
1878. W. Colenso, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xi. art. iv. pt. 2, p. 90:
"Looking at it as it lay extended, it resembled a very large
whale (nui tohora)."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 21:
"In the open sea, and to the south, the most prized whale next
to the sperm is the black whale, or tohora (Eubalaena
Australis), which is like the right whale of the North Sea,
but with baleen of less value."
Tohunga, n. Maori word for a wise man.
"Perhaps from Maori verb tohu, to think." (Tregear's
`Polynesian Dictionary.') Tohu, a sign or omen;
hence Tohunga, a dealer in omens, an augur.
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf and Amohia,' p. 102:
"But he whose grief was most sincere
The news of that unwonted death to hear,
Was Kangapo, the Tohunga--a Priest
And fell Magician famous far and near."
1873. `Appendix to Journals of House of Representatives,'
G. 1, B. p. 9:
"I am a tohunga who can save the country if you will follow my
advice."
1878. F. E. Maning, `Heke's War, told by an Old Chief,'
`New Zealand Reader,' p. 153:
"Amongst these soldiers there was not one tohunga--not a man at
all experienced in omens--or they must have had some warning
that danger and defeat were near."
1893. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 21, p. 10, col. 2:
"She would consult a tohunga. The man she selected--
one of the oldest and most sacred of the Maori priests,
prophet, medicine-man, lawyer and judge."
Tolmer's Grass, n. a fibrous plant,
Lepidosperma gladiatum, Labill., N.O. Cyperaceae,
suitable for manufacture of paper. It is not a true grass, and
is classed by Maiden (`Useful Native Plants,' p. 626) under
fibres.
1882. A. Tolmer, `Reminiscences,' p. 298:
"The plant that has since by courtesy borne my name (Tolmer's
grass)."
Tomahawk, n. a word of North-American Indian
origin, applied in English to the similarly shaped short
one-handed axe or hatchet. The word is not frequent in
England, but in Australia the word hatchet has
practically disappeared, and the word Tomahawk to
describe it is in every-day use. It is also applied to the
stone hatchet of the Aboriginals. A popular corruption of it
is Tommy-axe.
1802. G. Barrington, `History of New South Wales,' c. xii.
p. 466:
"A plentiful assortment of . . . knives, shirts, toma-hawkes
[sic], axes, jackets, scissars [sic], etc., etc., for the
people in general."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 259:
"We . . . observed recent marks of the stone tomahawk
of the natives."
1851. G. W. Rusden, `Moyarra,' canto i. 17, p. 25:
"One hand he wreathed in Mytah's hair,
Whirled then the tomahawk in air."
1870. E. B. Kennedy, `Fours /sic/ Years in Queensland,' p. 721:
"They [the Aboriginals] cut out opossums from a tree or sugar
bag (wild honey) by means of a tomahawk of green stone; the
handle is formed of a vine, and fixed in its place with gum.
It is astonishing what a quantity of work is got through in the
day with these blunt tomahawks."
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 60:
"Lay aside thy spears (I doubt them);
Lay aside thy tomahawk."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 206:
"The aborigines have obtained iron tomahawks."
1880. G. Sutherland, `Tales of Goldfields,' p. 73:
"Men had to cleave out a way for themselves with tomahawks."
1888. A. Reischek, in Buller's `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 94:
"The snow had been blown together, and was frozen so hard that
I had to take my tomahawk to chop it down so as to get softer
snow to refresh myself with a wash."
Tomahawk, v. tr. to cut sheep when shearing
them.
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 147:
"Shearers were very scarce, and the poor sheep got fearfully
`tomahawked' by the new hands."
1872. C. H. Eden, `My Wife and I in Queensland,' p. 96:
"Some men never get the better of this habit, but `tomahawk'
as badly after years of practice as when they first began."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 162:
"The Shearers sat in the firelight, hearty and hale and strong,
After the hard day's shearing, passing the joke along
The `ringer' that shore a hundred, as they never were shorn
before,
And the novice who toiling bravely had tommyhawked half
a score."
Tommy-axe, n. a popular corruption of the word
Tomahawk (q.v.); it is an instance of the law of
Hobson-Jobson.
Tom Russell's Mahogany. See Mahogany.
Tomtit, n. name applied in New Zealand to two
New Zealand birds of the genus Myiomoira, the species
being M. toitoi, Garnot, in North Island;
M. macrocephala, Gmel., in South Island.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 39:
[A full description.]
Tonquin Bean-Tree, n. a Tasmanian variety of
Native Sandalwood; also called Tonga Beanwood.
1862. W. Archer, `Products and Resources of Tasmania,' p. 41:
"`Tonga Bean-wood (Alyxia buxifolia, Br.). The odour
is similar to that of the Tonga Bean (Dipteryx
odorata). A straggling seaside shrub, three to five inches
in diameter."
Tooart, or Tewart, n. a West
Australian name for Eucalyptus gomphocephala,
or White Gum. See Gum.
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' c. iv. p. 181:
`Another valuable tree is the tooart, a kind of white gum."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 187:
"The Tewart Tree (Eucalyptus), a variety of the White
Gum, found principally in the Swan River and King George's
Sound District of Western Australia. . . . Of straight growth
and noble dimensions. The wood is of a yellowish or straw
colour, hard, heavy, tough, strong and rigid. . . . It is used
in ship-building for beams, keelsons, stern-posts,
engine-bearers, and for other works below the line of
flotation."
Tookytook, n. a corruption of Kotukutuku
(q.v.), a Maori name equivalent to Konini, the fruit of
the Fuchsia-tree (q.v.).
Toot, n. the anglicised spelling
of the Maori word Tutu (q.v.).
Tooted, quasi past participle from Toot.
The cattle are tooted, sc. poisoned by the Toot.
1863. G. Butler, `Canterbury Settlement,' p. 98:
"As, then, my bullocks could not get tuted."
1891. T. H. Potts, `New Zealand Country Journal,' p. 201:
"His hearty salutation in its faultiness proved to be about on
a par with `rummy-rum,' `triddy' and `toot.' The last word
reminds me of a man near by who was even judged to be somewhat
vain of his Maori accent and pronunciation. With one word he
was indeed very particular, he could not bring himself to use
that manifest corruption `toot.' With him it was ever `tutu.'
He had to make rather a boggle or dodge of it when he used the
colonial made verb formed on his favourite Maori noun."
Tooth-shell, n. The name is applied, in
Europe, to any species of Dentalium and allied genera
having a tooth-shaped shell. In Australia, it is the shell of
Marinula pellucida, Cooper, a small marine mollusc used
for necklaces.
Tope, n. an Australasian Shark, Galeus
australis, Macl. It differs somewhat from Galeus
canis, the Tope of Britain. Called also the
School-Shark, in Australia.
Top-knot Pigeon, n. an Australian bird,
Lopholaimus antarcticus, Shaw.
1891. Francis Adams, `John Webb's End,' p. 33:
"Flying for a moment beside a lovely, melodious top-knot
pigeon."
Torea, n. Maori name for all the New Zealand
species of the Oyster-catchers (q.v.).
Torpedo, n. a fish, well known elsewhere, and
also called elsewhere, the Numb-fish and Cramp
fish. For the Australian species, see quotation.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 100:
"Our Torpedo or Electric Ray is Hypnos subnigrum,
that of Tasmania is Narcine Tasmaniensis."
Torres-Straits Pigeon, n. See quotation.
1893. Saville Kent, `Great Barrier Reef,' p. 123:
"Making a bag of the famous Torres Straits pigeons
(Myristicivora spilorrhoa), a large white variety,
highly esteemed for the table, which, arriving from the north
[that is New Guinea], is distributed from October until the end
of March throughout the tree-bearing islets and mainland coast,
as far south as Keppel Bay."
Tortoise-shell Fish. See Hand-fish.
Totara, n. Maori name for a lofty-spreading
New Zealand tree, Podocarpus totara, A. Cunn.,
N.O. Coniferae,. In Maori, the accent falls on
the first syllable; but in English use it is often placed
on the second, and from Mr. Polack's spelling it must have
been so as early as 1840. Called also Mahogany-pine.
There are several other species, e.g. P. vivalis, Hook.,
the Mountain Totara; called also Mahogany Pine.
See Mahogany, and Pine.
1832. G. Bennett, in Lambert's `Genus Pinus,' vol. ii. p. 190:
"This is an unpublished species of Podocarpus, called
Totara by the natives. . . . The value placed on this tree by
the natives is sometimes the occasion of quarrels, terminating
in bloodshed, if it is cut down by any except the party by whom
it is claimed. . . It is not unusual for the trees to descend
from father to son."
1840. J. S. Polack, `Manners and Customs of New Zealanders,'
vol. i. p. 227:
"The totarra or red-pine."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 221:
"The totara is one of the finest trees in the forest, and is
the principal wood used by the natives, whether for canoes,
houses, or fencing."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' [Notes] p. 80:
"The place received its name from a number of large totara
trees."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 134:
"Totara (Podocarpus totara) and Matai (Podocarpus
spicata) are large and beautiful trees found in every
forest."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 107:
"One lone totara-tree that grew
Beneath the hill-side."
1875. T. Laslett, `Timber and Timber Trees,' p. 308:
"The Totara Tree (Taxus or Podocarpus totara).
Height, eighty to ninety feet. The wood is red in colour,
close, straight, fine and even in grain . . . a good substitute
for mahogany."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 227:
"With the exception of the kauri, the totara affords the most
valuable timber in New Zealand, but unlike the kauri it is
found almost throughout the colony."
Towai, n. Maori name for New Zealand tree,
Weinmannia racemosa, Forst., N.O. Saxifrageae,
i.q. Kamahai in south of South Island, and
Tawhero in North Island (Wellington).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 95:
"Its banks . . . are covered almost wholly with the towai.
This tree has very small dark leaves.It is used for ship-
building, and is called by Englishmen the `black birch.'"
1851. Mrs. Wilson, `New Zealand,' p. 43:
"The ake . . . and towai (Leiospermum racemosum)
are almost equal, in point of colour, to rosewood."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 132:
"Towhai, Kamahi. A large tree; trunk two to four feet in
diameter, and fifty feet high. Wood close-grained and heavy,
but rather brittle. . . . The bark is largely used for
tanning. The extract of bark is chemically allied to the gum
kino of commerce, their value being about equal."
Township, n. a village, a possible future town.
In the United States, the word has a definite meaning--a
district, subordinate to a county, the inhabitants having power
to regulate their local affairs; in Australia, the word has no
such definite meaning. It may be large or small, and sometimes
consists of little more than the post-office, the public-house,
and the general store or shop.
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,' vol. ii. p. 7:
"The timber of a hundred and twenty acres was cut down . . .
a small township marked out, and a few huts built."
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' vol. ii. p. 40:
"It used to seem to me a strange colonial anomaly to call a
very small village a `township,' and a much larger one a
`town.' But the former is the term applied to the lands
reserved in various places for future towns."
1873. J. B. Stephens, `Black Gin,' p. 79:
"There's a certain township and also a town,--
(For, to ears colonial, I need not state
That the two do not always homologate)."
1888. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,'
p. 439:
[Mr. Parker is a Canadian who lived four years in Australia]
"A few words of comparison here. A pub of Australia is a
tavern or hotel in Canada; a township is a village; a
stock-rider is a cow-boy; a humpy is a shanty; a warrigal or
brombie 1s a broncho or cayuse; a sundowner is a tramp; a
squatter is a rancher; and so on through an abundant list."
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 276:
"Villages, which are always called `townships,' spring up
suddenly round a railway-station or beside some country inn."
1894. `Sydney Morning Herald' (date lost):
"A township--the suffix denotes a state of being--seems to be
a place which is not in the state of being a town. Does its
pride resent the impost of village that it is glad to be called
by a name which is no name, or is the word loosely appropriated
from America, where it signifies a division of a county? It is
never found in England."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 38:
"There stands the town of Dandaloo--
A township where life's total sum
Is sleep, diversified with rum."
Traveller, n. used specifically for a
Swagman, a Sundowner. See quotation.
1868. Marcus Clarke, `Peripatetic Philosopher' (Reprint),
p. 41:
"At the station where I worked for some time (as
`knock-about-man') three cooks were kept during the `wallaby'
season--one for the house, one for the men, and one for the
travellers. Moreover, `travellers' would not unfrequently
spend the afternoon at one of the three hotels (which, with a
church and a pound, constituted the adjoining township), and
having `liquored up' extensively, swagger up to the station,
and insist upon lodging and food--which they got. I have no
desire to take away the character of these gentlemen
travellers, but I may mention as a strange coincidence, that,
was the requested hospitality refused by any chance, a
bush-fire invariably occurred somewhere on the run within
twelve hours."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 12, p. 8, col. 7:
"Throughout the Western pastoral area the strain of feeding the
`travellers,' which is the country euphemism for bush
unemployed, has come to be felt as an unwarranted tax upon the
industry, and as a mischievous stimulus to nomadism."
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 8, p. 249, col. 2:
". . . never refuses to feed travellers; they get a good tea
and breakfast, and often 10 to 20 are fed in a day. These
travellers lead an aimless life, wandering from station to
station, hardly ever asking for and never hoping to get any
work, and yet they expect the land-owners to support them. Most
of them are old and feeble, and the sooner all stations stop
giving them free rations the better it will be for the real
working man. One station-owner kept a record, and he found that
he fed over 2000 men in twelve months. This alone, at 6d. a
meal, would come to L100, but this is not all, as they `bag' as
much as they can if their next stage is not a good feeding
station."
Travellers' Grass, i.q. Settler's Twine (q.v.).
Tree-creeper, n. popular name applied to
members of an old Linnaean genus of birds. The Australian
species are enumerated by Gould in quotation.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv.:
Plate
Climacteris scandens, Temm., Brown Tree-creeper . 93
C. rufa, Gould, Rufous T. . . . . . . . . 94
C. erythrops, Gould, Red-eyebrowed T. . . . . 95
C. melanotus, Gould, Black-backed T. . . . . 96
C. melanura, Gould, Black-tailed T. . . . . . 97
C. picumnus, Temm., Whitethroated T. . . . . 98
Tree-fern, n. See Fern-tree.
Tree-Kangaroo, called Boongary (q.v.)
by the aboriginals. See Dendrolagus and Kangaroo.
Tree-Runner, n. another name for the
Sittella (q.v.). The species are--
Black-capped Tree-Runner--
Sittella pileata, Gould.
Orange-winged T.--
S. chrysoptera, Lath.
Pied T.--
S. albata, Ramsay.
Slender-billed T.--
S. tenuirostris, Gould.
Striated T.--
S. striata, Gould.
White-headed T.--
S. leucocephala, Gould.
White-winged T.--
S. leucoptera, Gould.
But see Gould's earlier (1848), under Sittella.
Tree-Tit, n. The word tit is terminally
applied to many little English birds. In Australia,
this new compound has been adopted for the two species,
Short-billed Tree-tit, Smicrornis brevirostris,
Gould, and Yellow-tinted Tit, S. flavescens, Gould.
Tremandra, n. scientific name of a genus of
Australian plants, the Purple Heath-flower. Name given
by R. Brown in 1814, from the remarkably tremulous anthers.
(Lat. tremere, to tremble, and Grk. 'anaer,
'andros a man, taken as equivalent to "anther.")
Trevally, or Trevalli, or Trevalla,
or Travale, n. an Australian fish.
In various localities the name is applied to several fishes,
which are most of them of the family Carangidae,
or Horse-Mackerels. An Old-World name for the
Horse-Mackerels is Cavalli (Ital. cavallo,
a little horse). Trevalli is sometimes called
Cavalli; this was probably its original name
in Australia, and Trevalli a later corruption.
The different kinds are--
Black Trevally--
Teuthis nebulosa, Quoy, family Teuthididae
(a New South Wales fish).
Mackerel T. (so called in Tasmania)--
Neptonemus dobula, Gunth., family Carangidae.
Silver T.--
Another Tasmanian name for the White Trevally, Caranx
georgianus (see below).
Snotgall T.--
Neptonemus travale, Casteln. (in Victoria);
N. brama, Gunth. in Tasmania); both of the family
of Carangidae.
White T.--
Caranx georgianus, Cuv. and Val., family
Carangidae; (so called in New South Wales, New Zealand,
and Tasmania; in Victoria it is called Silver Bream).
Teuthis javus, Linn., family Tuethididae.
The Maori name for the Trevally is Awara,
and in Auckland it is sometimes called the Yellow-Tail
(q.v.). See also quotation, 1886.
Guenther says, the genus Teuthis is readily recognised
by the peculiar structure of the ventral fins, which have an
outer and an inner spine and three soft rays between.
1769. `Capt. Cook's Journal' (edition Wharton, 1893), p. 164:
"Several canoes came off to the ship, and two or three of them
sold us some fish--cavallys as they are called--which occasioned
my giving the Islands the same name."
1886. R. A. Sherrin, `Fishes of New Zealand,' p. 99:
"Dr. Hector says: `The trevalli is the arara of the Maoris, or
the trevalli or cavalli of the fishermen . . . In Auckland it
is sometimes called the yellow-tail, but this name appears to
be also used for the king-fish. The fish known as trevalli in
the Dunedin market is a different fish, allied to the
warehou.'"
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Fisheries Act' (Second Schedule):
"Travale."
Triantelope, n. a European comic variation of
the scientific name Tarantula. It is applied in
Australia to a spider belonging to a quite different genus,
Voconia, a perfectly harmless spider, though popularly
supposed to be poisonous. It has powerful mandibles, but will
attack nobody unless itself attacked.
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 173:
"The tarantulas, or `triantelopes,' as the men call them, are
large, ugly spiders, very venomous."
1860. A Lady, `My Experiences in Australia,' p. 151:
"There is no lack of spiders either, of all sorts and sizes, up
to the large tarantula, or tri-antelope, as the common
people persist in calling it."
Tribonyx, n. There are several species of this
bird in Australia and Tasmania, where they go by the name of
Native Hen, and sometimes, erroneously, Moor-hen
(q.v.). For the species, see Native Hen. No species of
Tribonyx has been found wild in New Zealand, though
other birds have been mistaken for the genus.
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i.
(Introd.), p. xiv:
"I ought perhaps here to refer to a species mentioned in the
former Introduction as a newly discovered addition to the New
Zealand Avifauna, but now omitted from the list . . ."
Ibid. p. liv:
"Tribonyx has never actually occurred in a wild state
[in New Zealand]."
Ibid. p. 90:
"Tribonyx, a bird incapable of flight, but admirably
adapted for running."
Trichosurus, n. the scientific name of a genus
of the Phalangers (q.v.), or Australian Opossums
(q.v.). (Grk. trichos, of hair, and 'oura,
tail.)
Trickett, n. slang name for a long drink of
beer in New South Wales, after Trickett, the New South Wales
champion sculler.
Trigger-plant, n. i.q. Hairtrigger
(q.v.) plant; called also Jack-in-a-box.
Trigonia, n. a bivalve marine mollusc with a
nacreous interior, much admired in Tasmania and used for
pendants and necklaces, Trigonia margaritacea, Lamarck,
of the order Pectinaceae. It is the largest
trigonia occurring in Australasia, and the only one
found in Tasmania. Numerous extinct species are characteristic
of the Mesozoic rocks. The only living species existing are
confined to Australia.
Trooper, n. a mounted policeman. The use is
transferred from the name for a private soldier in a cavalry
regiment. The Native troopers, or Black police,
in Queensland, are a force of aboriginal police, officered by
white men.
1858. T. McCombie, `History of Victoria,' c. viii. p. 100:
"A violent effort [was] made by the troopers on duty to
disperse an assemblage which occupied the space of ground in
front of the hustings."
1864. J. Rogers, `New Rush,' p. 51:
"A trooper spies him snoring in the street."
1868. J. A. B., `Meta,' canto iii. ver. 20, p. 72:
"The felon crew . . . hard pressed by troopers ten."
Tropic-bird, n. The English name is applied
because the bird is usually seen in the tropics. The species
observed in Australia are--Red-tailed, Phaeton
rubricaudus, Bodd.; White-tailed, P. candidus,
Briss.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,'vol. vii. pl. 73:
"Phaeton Phoenicurus, Gmel., Red-tailed Tropic Bird;
New Holland Tropic Bird, Latham, `General History, vol. x.
p. 448."
Tropidorhynchus, n. scientific name of a genus
of birds peculiar to Australia and New Guinea. The typical
species has a knob on the bill, and the head and neck destitute
of feathers. From Grk. tropis, the keel of a ship,
and rhunchos, "beak." They are called Friar Birds
(q.v.), and the generic name of Tropidorhynchus has been
replaced by Philemon (q.v.).
Trout, n. The English Trout has been
naturalised in Australia. In Tasmania, the name of
Trout, or Mountain-Trout, is also given to
species of the genus Galaxias. See Salmon.
Trumpeter, n. (1) A fish of Tasmanian,
New Zealand, and Australian waters, but chiefly of Hobart--
Latris hecateia, Richards., family Cirrhitidae,
much esteemed as a food-fish, and weighing sometimes 50 or 60
lbs. The name is probably from the noise made by the fish when
taken out of the water. The name was formerly given to a
different fish in Western Australia.
See also Bastard-Trumpeter, Morwong,
and Paper-fish.
1834. M. Doyle, `Letters and Journals of G. F. Moore, Swan
River Settlement,' p. 191:
"Many persons are trying to salt fish, which are very numerous
in the river about and below Perth, as you must have seen by
one of my letters, in which I mentioned our having taken 10,000
at one draught of the seine; these are of the kind called
herrings, but do not look very like them; they make a noise
when out of the water, and on that account are also called
trumpeters."
1870. T. H. Braim, `New Homes,' vol. ii. p. 65:
"The finest kinds are the guard-fish of the mainland and the
trumpeter of the Derwent in Tasmania."
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 45:
"The first of these [Latris] is the genus of the well-known
`Hobart Town trumpeter,' a fish deservedly of high reputation."
(2) An obsolete name in Tasmania for the black
Crow-Shrike (q.v.), Strepera fuliginosa, Gould.
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' p. 177:
"We also occasionally heard the trumpeter or black magpie."
Trumpeter-Perch, n. i.q. Mado (q.v.).
Trumpeter-Whiting, n. See Whiting,
quotation 1882.
Tuan, n. aboriginal name for the
Flying-Squirrel (q.v.). See also Pongo.
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 57:
"The flying-squirrel, or tuan, is much sought after for its
fine fur; of these there are two kinds, a large one of a dark
colour, only found 1n the mountains; and a smaller description
found in all parts of the colony, and better known by the
native name, tuan."
1859. H. Kingsley, `Geoffrey Hamlyn,' p. 274:
"The Touan, the little grey flying-squirrel, only begins to fly
about at night, and slides down from his bough sudden and
sharp."
Tuatara, n. the Maori name of a New Zealand
lizard, or reptile, Hatteria punctata, Gray; called
also Sphenodon puntatum.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 218:
"Tua tira, a species of lizard."
1863. `Mahoe Leaves,' p. 47:
"A small boy of a most precocious nature, who was termed `tua
tara,' from a horrid sort of lizard that the natives abhor."
1890. `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition':
"The Tuatara is the largest existing New Zealand reptile. It
is closely allied to the Lizards; but on account of certain
peculiarities of structure, some of which tend to connect it
with the Crocodiles, is placed by Dr. Guenther in a separate
order (Rhynchocephalina)."
Tucker, n. Australian slang for food.
To tuck in is provincial English for to eat, and
tuck is a school-boy word for food, especially what
is bought at a pastrycook's. To make tucker means
to earn merely enough to pay for food.
1874. Garnet Walch, `Head over Heels,' p. 73:
"For want of more nourishing tucker,
I believe they'd have eaten him."
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for the Mail,' p. 33:
"We heard of big nuggets, but only made tucker."
1890. `The Argus,' June 14, p. 14, col. 1:
"When a travelling man sees a hut ahead, he knows there's water
inside, and tucker and tea."
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 83:
"I took my meal in the hut, but we'd both the same kind of
tucker."
Tui, n. Maori name for the New Zealand bird,
Prosthemadera novae-zelandae, Gray; called the
Parson-bird (q.v.), and earlier the Poe (q.v.).
Another name is the Koko, and the young bird is
distinguished as Pi-tui, or Pikari. It is also
called the Mocking bird.
1835. W. Yate, `Some Account of New Zealand,' p. 52:
"Tui. This remarkable bird, from the versatility of its talents
for imitation, has by some been called `the Mocking-Bird.'"
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 80:
"The little birds were chiefly the tui, or mocking-bird. It
resembles a blackbird in size and plumage, with two graceful
bunches of white feathers under the neck. It abounds in the
woods, and is remarkably noisy and active . . . it imitates
almost every feathered inhabitant of the forest, and, when
domesticated, every noise it hears."
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,' p. 170:
"I saw several birds named the Tooi; they are black, about
the size of a starling, and are sometimes called Parson-birds,
as they have two white feathers like clergymen's bands in front
of them."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 166:
"One of the prettiest creatures is the tui, Parson-Bird of the
colonists (Prosthemadera Novae-Zelandae), which roves
about in the lofty, leafy crowns of the forest-trees."
1881. J. L. Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 102:
"The tui, with his grand, rich note, made the wood musical."
1884. T. Bracken, `Lays of Maori,' p. 21:
"Woo the Bell-bird from his nest, to ring
The Tui up to sing his morning hymns."
Ibid. p. 101:
"I hear the swell
Of Nature's psalms through tree and bush,
From tui, blackbird, finch and thrush."
1889. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. i. facing
p. 94.:
[A plate entitled] "Tui, or parson-bird."
Ibid. pp. 94-100:
[A full description.]
1893. D. Frobisher, `Sketches of Gossipton,' p. 61:
As the forest soft echoes brought back their sweet chorus,
The tuis seemed silent from envy and spleen."
Tulip, Native, i.q. Waratah (q.v.);
and see Telopea.
Tulip-tree, n. The name is given,
in Australia, to Stenocarpus cunninghamii, R. Br.,
N.O. Proteaceae, on account of the brilliancy of its
bright-red flowers; called also Queensland Fire-tree.
Tulip-wood, n. The name is given,
in Australia, to Aphnanthe philipinensis, Planch.,
N.O. Urticaceae, and to the timber of Harpullia
pendula, Planch., N.O. Sapindaceae. It is,
further, a synonym for the Emu-Apple.
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 39:
"The tulip-wood, with its variegated flowers and delightful
perfume, grows in abundance."
Tumata-kuru, n. Maori name for plant better
known as Wild Irishman (q.v.), Discaria toumatou,
Raoul. "A thorny plant, very difficult to handle." (Vincent
Pyke.) Tumatagowry, or Matagory (q.v.), is the
Southern corruption of contractors, labourers, and others.
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby,' p. 16:
"Upon the arid flats, patches of Tumatu-kuru, and of a
purple-flowering broom, struggle to maintain a scraggy
existence."
1889. T. Kirk, `Forest Flora of New Zealand,' p. 283:
"The tumatakuru merits a place in this work rather on account
of its value in the past than of its present usefulness. In
the early days of settlement in the South Island this afforded
the only available timber in many mountain-valleys, and was
frequently converted by hand sawyers for building purposes;
being of great durability, it was found very serviceable,
notwithstanding its small dimensions: the formation of roads
has deprived it of value by facilitating the conveyance of
ordinary building timber."
Tuna, n. See Eel.
Tupakihi, n. i.q. Tutu (q.v.).
Tupara, n. Maori corruption of "two-barrel."
Compare the aboriginal word Whilpra (q.v.).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 109:
"He had previously despatched a messenger to me,
begging me to bring some tupara, or `two-barrel.'"
1881. J. L.Campbell, `Poenamo,' p. 137:
"They were labouring under the `tupera fever' [in 1840]. The
percussion-gun had made its appearance, and the natives were
not slow to see how much more effectual a weapon it was than
the old flint `brown-bess.' And when they saw the tupera,
double-barrelled gun, the rage at once set in to possess it."
Tupong, n. aboriginal name for a Southern
Australian fish, Aphritis bassii, Castln., family
Trachinidae. Mr. J. Bracebridge Wilson says it is
called Marble-fish in the Geelong district.
It is also known as the Freshwater Flathead.
Tupuna, n. Maori word, meaning ancestor,
progenitor, male or female. Often used in the Land Courts
in the question: "Who are your tupuna?"
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 113:
"I asked his permission to ascend Tonga Riro . . . But he
steadily refused, saying, `I would do anything else to show
you my love and friendship, but you must not ascend my tepuna,
or ancestor.'"
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 202:
"Tupuna, to stand, to spring; an ancestor; hence Tu-pu, to
grow."
1863. F. Maning (Pakeha Maori), `Old New Zealand,' p. 196:
"One evening a smart, handsome lad came to tell me his
tupuna was dying . . . The tribe were ke poto or
assembled to the last man about the dying chief."
Turbot, n. The name is given to
a New Zealand fish, called also Lemon-Sole (q.v.)
or Yellow-belly (q.v.), Ammotretis guntheri.
1876. `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,' vol. viii.
p. 215:
"Turbot--a fish not uncommon in the Dunedin market, where it
goes by the name of `lemon-sole.'"
Turkey, n. This common English bird-name is
applied in Australia to three birds, viz.--
(1) To the bird Eupodotis australis, Gray, which
is a true Bustard, but which is variously called the
Native Turkey, Plain Turkey (from its frequenting
the plains), and Wild Turkey.
(2) To the bird Talegalla lathami, Gould, called
the Brush Turkey (from its frequenting the brushes),
Wattled Turkey and Wattled Talegalla (from its
fleshy wattles), and sometimes, simply, Talegalla.
By Latham it was mistaken for a Vulture, and classed by him
as the New Holland Vulture. (`General History of Birds,'
1821, vol. i. p. 32.)
(3) To the bird Leipoa ocellata, Gould, called the
Scrub-Turkey (from its frequenting the Scrubs, the
Lowan (its aboriginal name), the Native Pheasant
(of South Australia); in the Mallee district it is called
Mallee-bird, Mallee-fowl, Mallee-hen.
In the following quotations the number of the bird referred
to is placed in square brackets at the end.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 14:
"We passed several nests of the Brush-Turkey (Talegalla
Lathami, Gould)." [2.]
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 260:
"Several native bustards (Otis Novae Hollandiae,
Gould) were shot." [1.]
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vi. pl. 4:
"Otis Australasianus, Gould, Australian Bustard; Turkey,
Colonists of New South Wales; Native Turkey, Swan River." [1.]
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pl. 77:
"Talegalla Lathami, Wattled Talegalla; Brush-Turkey
of the Colonists." [2.]
1872. C. H. Eden, `My wife and I in Queensland,' p. 122:
"The bird that repaid the sportsman best was the plain turkey
or bustard (Otis Australasianus), a noble fellow, the
male weighing from eighteen to twenty pounds. They differ from
the European birds in being good flyers. . . . The length of
the wings is very great, and they look like monsters in the
air." [1.]
1872. Ibid. p. 124:
"The scrub-turkey (Talegalla Lathami) is a most curious
bird; its habitat is in the thickest scrubs. In appearance it
much resembles the English hen turkey, though but little larger
than a fowl." [2.]
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 214:
"Look at this immense mound. It is a scrub-turkey's nest.
Thirty or forty lay their eggs in it. One could hardly imagine
they could gather such a huge pile of sticks and earth and
leaves. They bury their eggs, and heap up the nest until the
laying time ceases. The moist heap heats and incubates the
eggs. The young turkeys spring out of the shell, covered with
a thick warm coat, and scratch their way into daylight, strong
and able to provide food for themselves." [3.]
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"The bustard (Eupodotis Australis) is known by the
colonists as the native turkey. It is excellent eating and is
much sought after on that account. The hen bird lays only one
egg, depositing it on the bare ground. Formerly they were
numerous in the neighbourhood of Melbourne, but they have now
been driven further inland; they are still abundant on the
western plains and on the open Saltbush country of the Lower
Murray. They are difficult to approach on foot, but it is easy
to get within gunshot of them on horseback or driving. The
natives used formerly to capture them in an ingenious manner by
means of a snare; they approached their intended victim against
the wind under cover of a large bush grasped in the left hand,
while in the right was held a long slender stick, to the end of
which was fastened a large fluttering moth, and immediately
below a running noose. While the bird, unconscious of danger,
was eyeing and pecking at the moth, the noose was dexterously
slipped over its head by the cunning black, and the astonished
bird at once paid the penalty of its curiosity with its life."
[1.]
1891. Ibid.:
"In the first division are several specimens of the
Brush-Turkey (Talegalla Lathami) of Australia. These
birds have excited world-wide interest in scientific circles,
by their ingenious mode of incubating. They construct a large
mound of vegetable mould and sand; mixed in such proportions
that a gentle heat will be maintained, which hatches the buried
eggs. The young chicks can look after themselves shortly after
bursting the egg-shell." [2.]
1892. A. Sutherland, `Elementary Geography of British
Colonies,' p. 274:
"The brush-turkeys, which are not really turkeys but birds of
that size, build big mounds of decaying vegetable matter, lay
their eggs on the top, cover them over with leaves, and leave
the whole to rot, when the heat of the sun above and of the
fermentation below, hatches the eggs, and the young creep out
to forage for themselves without ever knowing their parents."
[2.]
1893. Professor H. A. Strong, in `Liverpool Mercury,' Feb.
13:
"The well-known `wild turkey' of Australian colonists is a
bustard, and he has the good sense to give a wide berth to the
two-legged immigrants indeed the most common method of
endeavouring to secure an approach to him is to drive up to him
in a buggy, and then to let fly. The approach is generally
made by a series of concentric circles, of which the victim is
the centre. His flesh is excellent, the meat being of a rich
dark colour, with a flavour resembling that of no other game
bird with which I am acquainted." [1.]
1893. `The Argus,' March 25, p. 3, col. 5:
"The brush-turkey (Talegalla), another of the
sand-builders, lays a white egg very much like that of a swan,
while the third of that wonderful family, the scrub-hen or
Megapode, has an egg very long in proportion to its
width." [2.]
Turmeric, i.q. Stinkwood (q.v.); also applied
occasionally to Hakea dactyloides, Cav.,
N.O. Proteaceae. See Hakea.
Turnip-wood, n. the timbers of the trees
Akania hillii, J. Hook., N.O. Sapindaceae,
and Dysoxylon Muelleri, Benth., N.O. Meliaceae,
from their white and red colours respectively.
Turpentine, Brush, name given to two trees--
Metrosideros leptopetala, F. v. M., also called
Myrtle; and Rhodamnia trinervia, Blume,
both N.O. Myrtaceae.
Turpentine-Tree, n. The name is applied to many
trees in Australia yielding a resin, but especially to the tree
called Tallow-Wood (q.v.), Eucalyptus microcorys,
F. v. M., N.O. Myrtaceae; to Eucalyptus punctata,
De C., N.O. Myrtaceae, called also Leather-
Jacket, Hickory, Red-, and Yellow-Gun,
and Bastard-Box; and to E. stuartiana, F. v. M.,
N.O. Myrtaceae. In New Zealand, it is also applied to
the Tarata. See Mapau.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 523:
"[E. Stuartiana is] frequently called Turpentine Tree,
or Peppermint Tree. In Victoria it is known as Apple Tree,
Apple-scented Gum, White Gum, and Mountain Ash. It is the
Woolly Butt of the county of Camden (New South Wales).
Occasionally it is known as Stringybark. It is called Box
about Stanthorpe (Queensland), Tea Tree at Frazer's Island
(Queensland), and Red Gum in Tasmania."
Turquoise-Berry, n. i.q. Solomon's Seal
(q.v.).
Tussock-grass, n. Tussock is an English word
for a tuft of grass. From this a plant of the lily family,
Lomandra longifolia, R. Br., N.O. Lilaceae,
is named Tussock-grass; it is "considered the best
native substitute for esparto." (`Century.')
1884. Rolf Boldrewood, `Melbourne Memories,' c. v. p. 38:
"The roof was neatly thatched with the tall, strong
tussock-grass."
Tussocker, n. a New Zealand name
for a Sundowner (q.v.).
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby':
"Now, a `sun-downer,' or `tussocker'--for the terms are
synonymous--is a pastoral loafer; one who loiters about till
dusk, and then makes for the nearest station or hut, to beg for
shelter and food."
Tutu, or Toot, n. Maori name for a
shrub or small tree, Coriaria ruscifolia, Linn., or
C. sarmentosa, Forst., of New Zealand, widely
distributed. It bears greenish flowers, and shiny pulpy black
berries. From these the Maoris make a wine resembling light
claret, taking care to strain out and not to crush the seeds,
which are poisonous, with an action similar to that of
strychnine. It goes also by the name of Wineberry-bush,
and the Maori name is Anglicised into Toot. In Maori,
the final u is swallowed rather than pronounced. In
English names derived from the Maori, a vowel after a mute
letter is not sounded. It is called in the North Island
Tupakihi. In Maori, the verb tutu means to be
hit, wounded, or vehemently wild, and the name of the plant
thus seems to be connected with the effects produced by its
poison. To "eat your toot": used as a slang phrase; to become
acclimatised, to settle down into colonial ways.
1857. R. Wilkin, in a Letter printed by C. Hursthouse,
`New Zealand,' p. 372:
"The plant called `tutu' or `toot' appears to be universal over
New Zealand. If eaten by sheep or cattle with empty stomachs,
it acts in a similar manner to green clover, and sometimes
causes death; but if partaken of sparingly, and with grass, it
is said to possess highly fattening qualities. None of the
graziers, however, except one, with whom I conversed on the
subject, seemed to consider toot worth notice; . . . it is
rapidly disappearing in the older settled districts and will
doubtless soon disappear here."
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand,' p. 395:
"The wild shrub Tutu (Coriaria ruscifolia), greedily
devoured by sheep and cattle, produces a sort of `hoven'
effect, something like that of rich clover pastures when stock
break in and over feed. . . . Bleeding and a dose of spirits
is the common cure. . . Horses and pigs are not affected by
it."
1861. C. C. Bowen, `Poems,' p. 57:
"And flax and fern and tutu grew In wild luxuriance round."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 139:
"The toot-plant, tutu or tupakihi of the Maoris (Coriaria
sarmentosa, Forst. = C. ruscifolia, L.), is a small
bush, one of the most common and widely distributed shrubs of
the islands. [New Zealand.] It produces a sort of `hoven' or
narcotic effect on sheep and cattle, when too greedily eaten.
It bears a fruit, which is produced in clusters, not unlike a
bunch of currants, with the seed external, of a purple colour.
The poisonous portion of the plant to man are the seeds and
seedstalks, while their dark purple pulp is utterly innoxious
and edible. The natives express from the berries an agreeable
violet juice (carefully avoiding the seed), called native
wine."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 103:
"The tutu-tree,
Whose luscious purple clusters hang so free
And tempting, though with hidden seeds replete
That numb with deadly poison all who eat."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand,' p. 131:
"Tupakihi, tree tutu. A perennial shrub ten to eighteen feet
high; trunk six to eight inches in diameter. The so-called
berries (fleshy petals) vary very much in succulence. . . .
The juice is purple, and affords a grateful beverage to the
Maoris; and a wine, like elderberry wine, has been made from
them. The seeds and leaves contain a poisonous alkaloid, and
produce convulsions, delirium and death, and are sometimes
fatal to cattle and sheep."
1884. Alfred Cox, `Recollections,' p. 258:
"When footpaths about Christchurch were fringed with tutu
bushes, little boys were foolish enough to pluck the beautiful
berries and eat them. A little fellow whose name was `Richard'
ate of the fruit, grew sick, but recovered. When the punster
heard of it, he said, `Ah! well, if the little chap had died,
there was an epitaph all ready for him, Decus et
tutamen. Dick has ate toot, amen.'"
1889. G. P. Williams and W. P. Reeves, `Colonial Couplets,'
p. 20:
"You will gather from this that I'm not `broken in,'
And the troublesome process has yet to begin
Which old settlers are wont to call `eating your tutu;'
(This they always pronounce as if rhyming with boot)."
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby, p. 16 [Footnote]:
"The poisonous tutu bushes. A berry-bearing, glossy-leaved
plant, deadly to man and to all animals, except goats."
1891. T. H. Potts, `New Zealand Country Journal,' vol. xv.
p. 103:
"The Cockney new chum soon learnt to `eat his toot,' and he
quickly acquired a good position in the district."
Twenty-eight, n. another name for the
Yellow-collared Parrakeet. Named from its note.
See Parrakeet.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pl. 19:
"Platycercus Semitorquatus, Quoy and Gaim.,
Yellow-collared Parrakeet; Twenty-eight Parrakeet, Colonists of
Swan River. It often utters a note which, from its resemblance
to those words, has procured for it the appellation of
`twenty-eight' Parrakeet from the Colonists; the last word or
note being sometimes repeated five or six times in succession."
Twine Bush, n. i.q. Hakea flexilis.
See Hakea.
Twine, Settler's, n. See Settler's
Twine.
Two-hooded Furina-Snake. See under Snake.
U
Umbrella-bush, Acacia osswaldi, F. v. M.,
N.O. Leguminosae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 363:
"Often called `Umbrella-Bush,' as it is a capital shade tree.
A small bushy tree."
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue--Economic Woods,' No. 17:
"The plant is exquisitely adapted for tall hedges. It is often
called the `umbrella tree,' as it gives a capital shade. The
heart-wood is dark, hard, heavy and close-grained."
Umbrella-grass, i.q. Native Millet, Panicum
decompositum, R. Br., N.O. Gramineae. See
Millet. It is called Umbrella-grass, from the
shape of the branches at the top of the stem representing the
ribs of an open umbrella.
Umbrella-tree, n. name given to Brassaia
actinophylla, Endl., N.O. Araliaceae, from the large
leaves being set, like umbrella-ribs, at the top of numerous
stems.
Umu, n. Maori word, signifying a native oven.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 75:
"The tangi had terminated; the umu or `cooking holes' were
smoking away for the feast."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika, a Maui,' p. 389:
"The native oven (umu hangi) is a circular hole of about two
feet in diameter and from six to twelve inches deep."
1872. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,' vol. v.
p. 96:
". . . being all in and around the umus (or native
ovens) in which they had been cooked."
1882. S. Locke, `Traditions of Taupo,' `Transactions of the
New Zealand Institute,' vol. xv. art. liv. p. 440:
"They killed Kurimanga the priest and cooked him in an oven,
from which circumstance the place is called Umu-Kuri."
1889. S. P. Smith, `Transactions of the New Zealand
Institute,' vol. xxii. p. 98:
"An oven of stones, exactly like a Maori umu or hangi."
1893. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,' vol. xxvi.
p. 432:
"The oumu or haangi, in which food was cooked, was only
a hole scooped in the ground, of a size proportioned to that
which was to be cooked."
Union Nut, n. a fine cabinet timber,
Bosistoa sapindiformis, F. v. M., N.O. Rutaceae.
"Unlock the lands." A political cry in Victoria,
meaning open up for Free-selection (q.v.) the lands
held by squatters on lease.
1887. J. F. Hogan, `The Irish in Australia,' p. 290:
"The democratic party, that had for its watchword the
expressive phrase, `Unlock the lands.'"
Unpayable, adj. not likely to pay for working;
not capable of yielding a profit over working expenses.
(A very rare use.)
1896. `The Argus,' Dec. 26, p. 5, col. 3:
"Unpayable Lines.--The Commissioner of Railways has had a
return prepared showing the results of the working of 48 lines
for the year ending 30th June, 1896. Of these, 33, covering
515 miles, do not pay working expenses, and are reckoned to be
the worst lines in the colony."
Utu, n. a Maori word for "Return, price paid,
reward, ransom, satisfaction for injuries received, reply."
(Williams.) Sometimes corrupted by Englishmen into Hoot
(q.v.).
1840. J. S. Polack, `Manners and Customs of New Zealand,'
vol. ii. p. 63:
"Utu or payment is invariably expected for any injustice
committed, and is exacted in some shape, the sufferer feeling
debased in his own opinion until he obtains satisfaction. The
Utu, similar to the tapu, enters into everything
connected with this people."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 29:
"He asserted that we should pay for the tapu; but suggested as
an amendment that the utu or `payment' should be handed to
him."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 252:
"Utu, which may be freely translated `blood for blood,'
is with him [the Maori] a sacred necessity. It is the
lex talionis carried out to the letter. The exact
interpretation of the formidable little word `Utu' is,
I believe, `payment.'"
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 61:
"The learned commissioner's court was instantly besieged by
bands of natives vociferating for more `utu' (payment), and
threatening the settlers with the tomahawk if more `utu' were
not instantly accorded."
1872. A. Domett, `Ranolf,' p. 470:
"Besides that, for such shining service done,
A splendid claim, he reckoned, would arise
For `utu'--compensation or reward."
1873. H. Carleton, `Life of Henry Williams,' p. 79:
"Blood for blood, or at least blood money, is Maori law.
Better the blood of the innocent than none at all, is a
recognised maxim of the Maori law of utu."
V
Vandemonian, n. and adj. belonging to
Van Diemen's land, the old name of Tasmania; generally used
of the convicts of the early days; and the demon in
the word is a popular application of the law of Hobson-Jobson.
Now obsolete.
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' (edition 1855), p. 533:
"The Van Diemonians, as they unpleasingly call themselves,
or permit themselves to be called, are justly proud of their
horse-flesh."
1853. S. Sidney, `Three Colonies of Australia' (2nd edit.),
p. 171:
"One of the first acts of the Legislative Assemblies created by
the Australian Reform Bill of 1850 was to pass . . . acts
levelled against Van Diemonian expirees."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Victoria,' vol. i, p. 367:
"Unquestionably some of the Van Diemenian convicts."
1867. `Cassell's Magazine,' p. 440:
"`I never wanted to leave England,' I have heard an old
Vandemonian observe boastfully. `I wasn't like one of these
`Jemmy Grants' (cant term for `emigrants'); I could always
earn a good living; it was the Government as took and sent me
out."
Vandemonianism, n. rowdy conduct like that of
an escaped convict; the term is now obsolete.
1863. `Victorian Hansard,' April 22, vol. ix. p. 701:
"Mr. Houston looked upon the conduct of hon. gentlemen opposite
as ranging from the extreme of vandemonianism to the extreme of
nambypambyism."
Van Diemen's Land, the name given to the colony now
called Tasmania, by Abel Jansz Tasman, the Dutch navigator,
in 1642, after Anthony Van Diemen, Governor-General of the
Dutch East Indies. The name was changed to Tasmania
(q.v.) in 1853, on the granting of Responsible Government.
Vedalia, n. a genus of greedily predatory
ladybirds. The V. cardinalis of Australia was imported
by the United States Government from Australia and New Zealand
into California in 1888-89, in order to kill the fluted
scale (Icerya purchasi), a fruit-pest. It destroyed
the scale in nine months.
Velvet-fish, n. name given in Tasmania
to the fish Holoxenus cutaneus, Gunth., family
Cirrhitidae. The skin is covered with minute
appendages, so soft to the touch as to suggest velvet;
the colour is deep purplish red.
Verandah, n. In Australia, the heat of the sun
makes verandahs much commoner than in England. They are an
architectural feature of all dwelling-houses in suburb or in
bush, and of most City shops, where they render the broad
side-walks an almost continuous arcade. "Under the Verandah "
has acquired the meaning, "where city men most do congregate."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. xxvii.
p. 418:
"In Melbourne there is the `verandah'; in Sandhurst there is a
`verandah'; in Ballaarat there is a `verandah.' The verandah is
a kind of open exchange--some place on the street pavement,
apparently selected by chance, on which the dealers in mining
shares do congregate."
1895. Modern. Private Letter of an Australian on Tour:
"What I miss most in London is the Verandahs. With this
everlasting rain there is no place to get out of a shower,
as in Melbourne. But I suppose it pays the umbrella-makers."
V-hut, a term used in the province of Canterbury,
New Zealand. See quotations.
1857. R. B. Paul, `Letters from Canterbury,' p. 57:
"The form is that of a V hut, the extremities of the
rafters being left bare, so as to form buttresses to the walls"
(of the church).
1863. S. Butler, `First Year in Canterbury,' p. 73:
"I am now going to put up a V-hut on the country that I took up
on the Rangitata. . . . It consists of a small roof set up on
the ground; it is a hut all roof and no walls."
1879. C. L.Innes, `Canterbury Sketches,' p. 20:
"In case my readers may not know what a `V' hut is like, I will
describe one:--It is exactly as if you took the roof off a
house and stood it on the ground, you can only stand upright in
the middle."
1896. Jan. A Traveller's note:
"Not long ago a Canterbury lady said--`I was born in a V-hut,
and christened in a pie-dish.'"
Victoria, n. the name of the smallest of all
the Australian colonies. It was separated from New South Wales
in 1851, when it was named after Queen Victoria. Sir Thomas
Mitchell had before given it the name of "Australia Felix," and
Dr. J. D. Lang wanted the name "Phillipsland." He published a
book with that title in 1847. Previous to separation, the name
used was "the Port Phillip District of New South Wales."
Village Settlement, the system, first adopted in New
Zealand, whence it spread to the other colonies, of settling
families on the land in combination. The Government usually
helps at first with a grant of money as well as granting the
land.
Vine, n. In Australia, the word is loosely
applied to many trailing or creeping plants, which help to
form scrubs and thickets. In the more marked cases specific
adjectives are used with the word. See following words.
1849. J. P. Townsend, `Rambles in New South Wales,' p. 22:
"With thick creepers, commonly called `vines.'"
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. ii. p. 21:
"Impenetrable vine-scrubs line the river-banks at intervals."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 25:
"Vitis in great abundance and of many varieties are found
especially in the scrubs, hence the colonists call this sort
of brush, vine-scrub."
Vine, Balloon. See Balloon Vine.
Vine, Burdekin. Called also Round Yam,
Vitis opaca, F. v. M., N.O. Ampelideae.
Vine, Caustic, i.q. Caustic-Plant (q.v.).
Vine, Lawyer. See Lawyer.
Vine, Macquarie Harbour, or Macquarie Harbour
Grape (q.v.). Same as Native Ivy. See Ivy.
1891. `Chambers' Encyclopaedia,' s.v. Polygonaeae:
"Muhlenbeckia adpressa is the Macquarie Harbour Vine of
Tasmania, an evergreen climbing or trailing shrub of most rapid
growth, sometimes 60 feet in length. It produces racemes of
fruit somewhat resembling grapes or currants, the nut being
invested with the large and fleshy segments of the calyx. The
fruit is sweetish and subacid, and is used for tarts."
1884. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains,' p. 99:
"How we saw the spreading myrtles,
Saw the cypress and the pine,
Saw the green festoons and bowers
Of the dark Macquarie vine,
Saw the blackwoods and the box-trees,
And the spiral sassafrases,
Saw the fairy fern-trees mantled
With their mossy cloak of grasses."
Vine, Native Pepper. See Climbing Pepper,
under Pepper.
Vine, Wonga Wonga. See Wonga Wonga Vine.
W
Waddy. (1) An aboriginal's war club. But the word is
used for wood generally, even for firewood. In a kangaroo
hunt, a man will call out, "Get off and kill it with a waddy,"
i.e. any stick casually picked up. In pigeon-English, "little
fellow waddy" means a small piece of wood.
In various dictionaries, e.g. Stanford, the word is entered as
of aboriginal origin, but many now hold that it is the English
word wood mispronounced by aboriginal lips.
L. E. Threlkeld, in his `Australian Grammar,' at p. 10, enters
it as a "barbarism "--"waddy, a cudgel." A `barbarism,'
with Threlkeld, often means no more than `not in use on the
Hunter River'; but in this case his remark may be more
appropriate.
On the other hand, the word is given as an aboriginal word in
Hunter's `Vocabulary of the Sydney Dialect' (1793), and in
Ridley's `Kamilaroi' (1875), as used at George's River. The
Rev. J. Mathew writes:
"The aboriginal words for fire and wood are very
often, in fact nearly always, interchangeable, or interchanged,
at different places. The old Tasmanian and therefore original
Australian term for wood and fire, or one or the other
according to dialect, is wi (wee) sometimes win.
These two forms occur in many parts of Australia with numerous
variants, wi being obviously the radical form. Hence
there were such variants as wiin, waanap, weenth
in Victoria, and at Sydney gweyong, and at Botany Bay
we, all equivalent to fire. Wi sometimes took on
what was evidently an affixed adjective or modifying particle,
giving such forms as wibra, wygum, wyber,
wurnaway. The modifying part sometimes began with the
sound of d or j (into which of course d
enters as an element). Thus modified, wi became
wadjano on Murchison River, Western Australia;
wachernee at Burke River, Gulf of Carp.; wichun
on the Barcoo; watta on the Hunter River, New South
Wales; wudda at Queanbeyan, New South Wales. These last
two are obviously identical with the Sydney waddy =
`wood.' The argument might be lengthened, but I think what I
have advanced shows conclusively that Waddy is the
Tasmanian word wi + a modifying word or particle."
1814. Flinders, `Voyage,' vol. ii. p. 189:
"Some resembling the whaddie, or wooden sword of the natives of
Port Jackson."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 20:
"It is amusing to see the consequential swagger of some of
these dingy dandies, as they pass lordly up our streets, with a
waddie twirling in their black paws."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 66:
"Such a weapon as their waddy is: it is formed like a large
kitchen poker, and nearly as heavy, only much shorter in the
handle. The iron-bark wood, of which it is made, is very hard,
and nearly as heavy as iron."
1844. Mrs. Meredith, `Notes and Sketches of New South Wales,'
p. 106:
"The word `waddie,' though commonly applied to the weapons of
the New South Wales aborigines, does not with them mean any
particular implement, but is the term used to express wood of
any kind, or trees. `You maan waddie 'long of fire,' means
`Go and fetch firewood.'"
1845. J. O. Balfour, `Sketch of New South Wales,' p. 17:
"The Lachlan black, who, with his right hand full of spears,
his whaddie and heleman in his left, was skipping in the air,
shouting his war cry."
185o. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 54:
"A waddy, a most formidable bludgeon."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 101:
"The waddy is a heavy, knobbed club about two feet long, and is
used for active service, foreign or domestic. It brains the
enemy in the battle, or strikes senseless the poor gin in cases
of disobedience or neglect."
1864. `Once a Week,' Dec. 31, p. 45, `The Bulla Bulla
Bunyip':
"The landlord swore to the apparition of a huge blackfellow
flourishing a phantasmal `waddy.'"
1879. C. W. Schuermann, `Native Tribes of Australia--Port
Lincoln Tribe,' p. 214:
"The wirris, by the whites incorrectly named waddies, are also
made of gum saplings; they are eighteen inches in length, and
barely one inch in diameter, the thin end notched in order to
afford a firm hold for the hand, while towards the other end
there is a slight gradual bend like that of a sword; they are,
however, without knobs, and every way inferior to the wirris of
the Adelaide tribes. The natives use this weapon principally
for throwing at kangaroo-rats or other small animals."
1886. R. Henty, `Australiana,' p. 18:
"The `waddy' is a powerful weapon in the hands of the native.
With unerring aim he brings down many a bird, and so materially
assists in replenishing the family larder."
1892. J. Fraser, `Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 74:
"A general name for all Australian clubs is `waddy,' and,
although they are really clubs, they are often used as missiles
in battle."
(2) The word is sometimes used for a walking-stick.
Waddy, v. trans. to strike with a waddy.
1855. Robert Lowe (Viscount Sherbrooke), `Songs of the
Squatters,' canto ii. st. 7:
"When the white thieves had left me, the black thieves
appeared,
My shepherds they waddied, my cattle they speared."
1869. `Victorian Hansard,' Nov. 18, vol. ix. p. 2310, col. 2:
"They were tomahawking them, and waddying them, and breaking
their backs."
1882. A. Tolmer, `Reminiscences,' p. 291:
"In the scuffle the native attempted to waddy him."
1893. `The Argus,' April 8, p. 4, col. 3:
"Only three weeks before he had waddied his gin to death
for answering questions asked her by a blacktracker."
1896. A. B. Paterson, `Man from Snowy River,' p. 45:
"For they waddied one another, till the plain was strewn with
dead,
While the score was kept so even that they neither got
ahead."
Waddy Wood, or White Wood, n. name
given in Tasmania to the tree Pittosporum bicolor,
Hook., N.O. Pittosporeae; from which the aboriginals
there chiefly made their Waddies.
1851. `Papers and Proceedings of the Royal Society of Van
Diemen's Land,' vol. i. p. 156:
"11th October, 1848. . . a sample of a very fine close-grained
white timber, considered by him suitable for wood-engraving
purposes, obtained in a defile of Mount Wellington. It seems
to be the young wood of Pittosporum bicolor, formerly in
high estimation amongst the Aborigines of Tasmania, on account
of its combined qualities of density, hardness, and tenacity,
as the most suitable material of which to make their warlike
implement the waddie."
Wagtail, or Wagtail Fly-catcher, n.
an Australian bird, Rhipidura tricolor, the
Black-and-white Fantail, with black-and-white plumage
like a pied wagtail. See also quotation, 1896. The name is
applied sometimes in Gippsland, and was first used in Western
Australia as a name for the Black-and-white Fantail.
See Fantail.
1885. R. M. Praed, `Head-Station,' p. 24:
"He pointed to a Willy-wagtail which was hopping cheerfully
from stone to stone."
1896. A. J. North, `List of the Insectivorous Birds of New
South Wales,' pt i. p. 13:
"Salltoprocta motacilloides, Vig. and Horsf. `Black and
White Fantail.' `Water Wagtail.'. . . From this bird's habit
of constantly swaying its lengthened tail feathers from side to
side it is locally known in many districts as the `Willy
Wagtail.'"
Wahine, n. Maori word for a woman.
The i is long.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 29:
"Having enquired how many (wives) the Kings of England had, he
laughed heartily at finding they were not so well provided, and
repeatedly counted `four wahine' (women) on his fingers."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), p. 289:
"A group of whyenees and piccaninnies."
1893. `Otago Witness,' Dec. 21, p. 11, col. 5:
"It is not fit that a daughter of the great tribe should be
the slave-wife of the pakeha and the slave of the white wahine."
Waipiro, n. Maori name for spirits,--
literally, stinking water, from piro, stinking,
and wai, water. In New Zealand geography, the word
Wai is very common as the first part of many names
of harbours, lakes, etc. Compare North-American Indian
Fire-water.
1845. W. Brown, `New Zealand and its Inhabitants,' p. 132:
"Another native keeps a grog-shop, and sells his
waipero, as he says, to Hourangi drunken
pakehas."
1863. F. Maning (Pakeha Maori), `Old New Zealand,' p. 169:
"He would go on shore, in spite of every warning, to get some
water to mix with his waipiro, and was not his canoe
found next day floating about with his paddle and two empty
case bottles in it?"
1873. Lt.-col. St. John, `Pakeha Rambles through Maori
Lands,' p. 167:
"When we see a chance of getting at waipiro, we don't stick at
trifles."
1887. The Warrigal, `Picturesque New Zealand,' `Canterbury
Weekly Press,' March 11:
"The priest was more than epigrammatic when he said that the
Maoris' love for `waipiro' (strong waters) was stronger than
their morals."
Wairepo, n. Maori name for the fish called
Stingray.
Wait-a-while, n. also called
Stay-a-while: a thicket tree.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 306:
"Acacia colletioides, A. Cunn., N.O. Leguminosae,
`Wait-a-while' (a delicate allusion to the predicament of a
traveller desirous of penetrating a belt of it)."
Waka, n. Maori word for canoe. Waka
huia is a box for keeping feathers, originally the
feathers of the huia (q.v.).
1874. W. M. Baynes, `Narrative of Edward Crewe,' p. 81:
"`Whaka' is the native name, or rather the native genetic term,
for all canoes, of which there are many different kinds, as
tete, pekatu, kopapa, and others answering in variety to our
several descriptions of boats, as a `gig,' a `whaleboat,' a
`skiff,' a `dingy,' etc."
1878. R. C. Barstow, `On the Maori Canoe,' `Transactions
of the New Zealand Institute,' vol. xi. art. iv. p. 72:
"Canoes may be divided into four classes; Waka-taua
or Waka-hitau were canoes, fully carved; the
Waka-tetee, which, generally smaller, had a plain
figure-head and stern; Waka-tiwai, an ordinary canoe
of one piece, and the kopapa or small canoe, usually
used for fishing, travelling to cultivation, etc."
Wakiki, n. shell money of the South Sea
Islands.
Waler, n. Anglo-Indian name for an Australian
horse imported from New South Wales into India, especially for
the cavalry. Afterwards used for any horse brought from
Australia.
1863. B. A. Heywood, `Vacation Tour at the Antipodes,' p. 134:
"Horses are exported largely from Australia to India even.
I have heard men from Bengal talk of the `Walers,' meaning
horses from New South Wales."
1866. G. 0. Trevelyan, `Dawk Bungalow,' p. 223 [Yule's
`Hobson Jobson']:
"Well, young Shaver, have you seen the horses? How is the
Waler's off fore-leg?"
1873. `Madras Mail,' June 25 [Yule's `Hobson Jobson']:
"For sale. A brown Waler gelding."
1888. R. Kipling, `Plain Tales from the Hills,' p. 224:
"The soul of the Regiment lives in the Drum-Horse who carries
the silver kettle-drums. He is nearly always a big piebald
Waler."
1896. `The Melburnian,' Aug. 28, p. 62:
"C. R. Gaunt is Senior Subaltern of the 4th (Royal Irish)
Dragoon Guards, at present stationed at Rawul Pindi in India.
He won the Regimental Cup Steeplechase this year on an
Australian mare of his own. Australian horses are called
`Walers' in India, from the circumstance of their being
generally imported from New South Wales."
Walking-Leaf, n. See Phasmid.
Walking-stick, n. See Phasmid.
Walking-stick Palm, n. See under Palm.
Wallaby, n. a name used for the smaller kinds
of Kangaroos of the genus Macropus (q.v.), formerly
classed as Halmaturus. An aboriginal word. See
Collins, 1798, below. (Wolbai, in the Kabi dialect of
South Queensland, means a young creature.) Also spelt
Walloby, Wallabee, and Wallobi. As in the case
of Kangaroo (q.v.), the plural is a little uncertain,
Wallaby or Wallabies. Some of them are sometimes
called Brush-Kangaroos (q.v.). The following are the
species--
Agile Wallaby--
Macropus agilis, Gould.
Aru Island W.--
M. brunnii, Schraeber.
Black-gloved W.--
M. irma, Jourd.
Black-striped W.--
M. dorsalis, Gray.
Black-tailed W.--
M. ualabatus, Less. and Garm.
Branded W.--
M. stigmaticus, Gould.
Cape York W.--
M. coxeni, Gray.
Dama W.--
M. eugenii, Desm.
Pademelon--
M. thetidis, Less.
Parma W.--
M. parma , Waterh.
Parry's W.--
M. parryi, Bennett.
Red-legged W.--
M. wilcoxi, McCoy.
Red-necked W., Grey's W.--
M. ruficollis, Desm.
Rufous-bellied W.--
M. billardieri, Desm.
Short-tailed W.--
M. brachyurus, Quoy and Gaim.
Sombre W.--
M. brownii, Ramsay.
In addition, there are six species of Rock-Wallaby
(q.v.), genus Petrogale (q.v.). See also
Paddymelon.
Three species of Nail-tailed Wallabies, genus
Onychogale (q.v.), are confined to Australia.
They are the Nail-tailed Wallaby, Onychogale unguifera,
Gould; Bridled W., O. frenata, Gould; Crescent W.,
O. lunata, Gould.
Three species of Hare-Wallabies (genus
Lagorchestes, q.v.), confined to Australia, are the
Spectacled Hare-Wallaby, Lagorchestes conspiculatus,
Gould; Common H. W., L. leporoides, Gould; Rufous H. W.,
L. hirsutus, Gould.
One species, called the Banded-Wallaby (genus,
Lagostrophus, q.v.), confined to Western Australia,
is L. fasciatus, Peron and Less.
For etymology, see Wallaroo.
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' p. 614 [Vocabulary]:
"Wal-li-bah--a black kangaroo."
1830. R. Dawson' `Present State of Australia,' p. 111:
"In the long coarse grass with which these flats are always
covered, a species of small kangaroo is usually found, which
the natives call the `wallaby.' Their colour is darker than
that of the forest kangaroo, approaching almost to that of a
fox, and they seat themselves in the grass like a hare or a
rabbit."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 28:
"The wallabee is not very common."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i. c. ix.
p. 267:
"The Wallaby are numerous on this part of the island."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 49:
"Rock wallabies were very numerous."
Ibid. c. xii. p. 418:
"They returned with only a red wallabi (Halmaturus
agilis)."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 37:
"The rock Wallaby, or Badger, also belongs to the family of the
kangaroo; its length from the nose to the end of the tail is
three feet; the colour of the fur being grey-brown."
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 12:
"Sipping doubtfully, but soon swallowing with relish, a plate
of wallabi-tail soup."
1865. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `History of the Discovery
and Exploration of Australia,' vol. ii. p. 18:
"Eyre succeeded in shooting a fine wallaby."
[Note]: "A small kind of kangaroo, inhabiting the scrub."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' c. vii.
p. 117:
"I have also been frowned upon by bright eyes because I could
not eat stewed wallabi. Now the wallabi is a little kangaroo,
and to my taste it is not nice to eat even when stewed to the
utmost with wine and spices."
1880. Garnet Watch, `Victoria in 1880,' p. 7:
"To hear . . . that wallabies are `the women of the native
race' cannot but be disconcerting to the well-regulated
colonial mind." [He adds a footnote]: "It is on record that a
journalistically fostered impression once prevailed, to high
English circles, to the effect that a certain colonial Governor
exhibited immoral tendencies by living on an island in the
midst of a number of favourite wallabies, whom he was known
frequently to caress."
188x. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 213:
"Now one hears the pat-pat-pat of a wallaby."
1885. J. B. Stephens, `To a Black Gin,' p. 5:
"Of tons of 'baccy, and tons more to follow,--
Of wallaby as much as thou could'st swallow,--
Of hollow trees, with 'possums in the hollow."
1886. J. A. Froude, `Oceana,' p. 309:
"My two companions . . . went off with the keeper [sic] to
shoot wallaby. Sir George (Grey) has a paternal affection for
all his creatures, and hates to have them killed. But the
wallaby multiply so fast that the sheep cannot live for them,
and several thousands have to be destroyed annually."
1888. Sir C. Gavan Duffy, in the `Contemporary Review,'
vol. liii. p. 3:
"`Morality!' exclaimed the colonist. `What does your lordship
suppose a wallaby to be?' `Why, a half-caste, of course.'
`A wallaby, my lord, is a dwarf kangaroo!'"
Wallaby-Bush, n. a tall shrub or tree,
Beyeria viscosa, Miq., N.O. Euphorbiaceae.
Same as the Pinkwood of Tasmania.
Wallaby-Grass, n. an Australian grass,
Danthonia penicillata, F. v. M., N.O. Gramineae.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 82:
"`Wallaby Grass.' This perennial artificial grass is useful
for mixed pasture."
Wallaby-skin, the skin, with the hair on it,
of the wallaby, prized as a warm and ornamental fur for rugs.
1890. `The Argus,' June13, p.6, col. 2:
"A quantity of hair, a wallaby-skin rug.
Wallaby track, On the, or On the Wallaby,
or Out on the Wallaby, or simply Wallaby,
as adj. [slang]. Tramping the country on foot, looking
for work. Often in the bush the only perceptible tracks, and
sometimes the only tracks by which the scrub can be penetrated,
are the tracks worn down by the Wallaby, as a hare
tramples its "form." These tracks may lead to water or they
may be aimless and rambling. Thus the man "on the
wallaby" may be looking for food or for work,
or aimlessly wandering by day and getting food and shelter
as a Sundowner (q.v.) at night.
1869. Marcus Clarke, `Peripatetic Philosopher' (Reprint),
p. 41:
"The Wimmera district is noted for the hordes of vagabond
`loafers' that it supports, and has earned for itself the name
of `The Feeding Track.' I remember an old bush ditty, which I
have heard sung when I was on the `Wallaby.' . . . At
the station where I worked for some time (as `knockabout man')
three cooks were kept during the `wallaby' season--one for the
house, one for the men, and one for the travellers."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Colonial Reformer,' p. 82:
"`What is the meaning of `out on the wallaby'?' asked Ernest.
`Well, it's bush slang, sir, for men just as you or I might be
now, looking for work or something to eat; if we can't get
work, living on the country, till things turn round a little.'"
Ibid. p. 388:
"Our friends who pursue the ever-lengthening but not arduous
track of the wallaby in Australia."
1893. Gilbert Parker, `Pierre and his People,' p. 242:
"The wallaby track? That's the name in Australia for trampin'
west, through the plains of the Never Never Country, lookin'
for the luck o' the world."
1894. Longmans' `Notes on Books' (May 31), p. 206:
"`On the Wallaby: a Book of Travel and Adventure.' `On the
Wallaby' is an Australianism for `on the march,' and it is
usually applied to persons tramping the bush in search of
employment."
1894. Jennings Carmichael, in `Australasian,' Dec. 22,
p. 1127, col. 5:
"A `wallaby' Christmas, Jack, old man!--
Well, a worse fate might befall us!
The bush must do for our church to-day,
And birds be the bells to call us.
The breeze that comes from the shore beyond,
Thro' the old gum-branches swinging,
Will do for our solemn organ chords,
And the sound of children singing."
1896. H. Lawson, `When the World was Wide,' p. 134:
"Though joys of which the poet rhymes
Was not for Bill an' me
I think we had some good old times
Out on the Wallaby."
Wallaroo, n. native name for a large species
of Kangaroo, the mountain kangaroo, Macropus robustus,
Gould. The black variety of Queensland and New South Wales is
called locally the Wallaroo, the name Euro being
given in South and Central Australia to the more rufous-
coloured variety of the same species.
In the aboriginal language, the word walla meant
`to jump,' and walla-walla `to jump quickly.'
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.:
"The wallaroo, of a blackish colour, with coarse shaggy fur,
inhabiting the hills."
1846. C. P. Hodgson, `Reminiscences of Australia,' p. 157:
"Some very fierce and ready to attack man, such as the large
mountain `wolloroo.'"
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 481:
"Charley shot a Wallooroo just as it was leaping, frightened
by our footsteps, out of its shady retreat to a pointed rock."
[On p. 458, Leichhardt spells Wallurus, plural]
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 50:
"The Wallaroos grope through the tufts of the grass."
1868 (before). C. Harpur, `Creek of the Four Graves'(edition
1883), p. 49:
"Up the steep,
Between the climbing forest-growths they saw,
Perched on the bare abutments of the hills,
Where haply yet some lingering gleam fell through,
The wallaroo look forth."
[Footnote]: "A kind of large kangaroo, peculiar to the higher
and more difficult mountains."
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 328:
"A wallaroo, a peculiar kind of kangaroo (Macropus
robustus), which was kept tame at a station, showed a
marked fondness for animal food, particularly for boiled salt
beef. A dove had been its companion, and these two animals
were the best of friends for half-a-year, when the wallaroo one
day killed its companion and partly ate it."
1895. `The Australasian,' June 22, 1181, col. 1 [Answers to
Correspondents]:
"Professor Baldwin Spencer kindly deals with the question as
follows:--What is the distinction between a wallaroo and a
wallaby?--A wallaroo is a special form of kangaroo (Macropus
robustus) living in the inland parts of Queensland and New
South Wales. Wallaby is the name given to several kinds of
smaller kangaroos, such as the common scrub wallaby
(Macropus ualabatus) of Victoria. The wallaroo is
stouter and heavier in build, its fur thicker and coarser,
and the structure of its skull is different from that of an
ordinary wallaby."
Wallflower, Native, n. a Tasmanian name for
Pultenaea subumbellata, Hook., N.O. Leguminosae.
In Australia, used as another name for one of the Poison-
Bushes (q-v.).
Wandoo, n. Western Australian aboriginal
word for the White Gum-tree of Western Australia,
Eucalyptus redunca, Schauer, N.O. Myrtaceae.
It has a trunk sometimes attaining seventeen feet in diameter,
and yields a hard durable wood highly prized by wheelwrights.
Waratah, n. an Australian flower. There are
three species, belonging to the genus Telopea,
N.O. Proteaceae. The New South Wales species,
T. speciosissima, R. Br., forms a small shrub
growing on hill-sides, as does also the Tasmanian species,
T. truncata, R. Br.; the Victorian species,
T. oreades, F. v. M., called the Gippsland
Waratah, grows to a height of fifty feet. It has a bright
crimson flower about three inches in diameter, very regular.
Sometimes called the Australian or Native Tulip.
As emblematic of Australia, it figures on certain of the New
South Wales stamps and postcards. The generic name,
Telopea (q.v.), has been corrupted into Tulip
(q.v.). Its earliest scientific generic name was
Embothrium, Smith.
1793. E. Smith, `Specimen of Botany of New Holland,' p. 19:
"The most magnificent plant which the prolific soil of New
Holland affords is, by common consent both of Europeans and
Natives, the Waratah."
1801. Governor King, in `Historical Records of New South
Wales' (1896), vol, iv. p. 514 (a Letter to Sir Joseph Banks):
"I have also sent in the Albion a box of waratahs, and the
earth is secured with the seed."
1802. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales,' vol. ii.
p. 66:
"Bennillong assisted, placing the head of the corpse, near
which he stuck a beautiful war-ra-taw."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 98:
[Description, but not the name.]
"A plant called the gigantic lily also flourishes on the tops
of these mountains, in all its glory. Its stems, which are
jointy, are sometimes as large as a man's wrist, and ten feet
high, with a pink and scarlet flower at the top, which when in
full blossom (as it then was) is nearly the size of a small
spring cabbage."
1830. `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 66:
"Interspersed with that magnificent shrub called warratah or
tulip-tree, and its beautiful scarlet flowers."
1857. D. Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 44:
"The most common of them was, however, the Telopia [sic]
Tasmaniensis, or waratah, or scarlet tulip tree, as it has
been occasionally termed by stock-keepers."
1864. J. S. Moore, `Spring Life Lyrics,' p. 115:
"The lily pale and waratah bright
Shall encircle your shining hair."
1883. D. B. W. Sladen, `Poetry of Exiles':
"And waratah, with flame-hued royal crown,
Proclaim the beauties round Australia's own."
1885. Wanderer, `Beauteous Terrorist,' etc., p. 62:
"And the waratahs in state,
With their queenly heads elate,
And their flamy blood-red crowns,
And their stiff-frill'd emerald gowns."
1888. D. Macdonald, I Gum Boughs,' p. 188:
"Outside the tropical Queensland forests, the scarlet flowering
gum of Western Australia, and the Waratah, of Blue Mountains
fame, are its [i.e. the wattle's] only rivals."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 5, p. 9, col. 1:
"The memory of many residents runs back to the time when the
waratah and the Christmas-bush, the native rose and fuchsia,
grew where thickly-peopled suburbs now exist. . . . The
waratah recedes yearly."
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Sept. 2, p. 5, col. 6:
"The wattles and waratahs are creditable instances of the
value of our Australian flowers for art purposes, and the
efforts of the artists to win recognition for their
adaptability as subjects for the artist's brush are deserving
of acknowledgment."
Warbler, n. This English birdname is applied
loosely to many birds of different genera in Australia and New
Zealand.
The majority of the Australian Warblers have now had other
names assigned to them. (See Fly-eater and
Gerygone.) The name has been retained in Australia
for the following species--
Grass Warbler--
Cisticola exilis, Lath.
Grey W.--
Gerygone flaviventris, Gray.
Long-billed Reed W.--
Calamoherpe longirostris, Gould.
Reed W.--
Acrocephalus australis, Gould.
Rock W.--
Origma rubricata, Lath.
In New Zealand, it is now only specifically applied to the--
Bush Warbler--
Gerygone silvestris, Potts.
Chatham Island W.--
G. albofrontata, Gray.
Grey W.--
G. flaviventris, Gray; Maori name, Riro-riro.
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'.
119:
"Grey Warbler (Gerygone flaviventris) also belongs
to an Australian genus. It is remarkable for its curious and
beautifully formed nest, and as being the foster-parent to the
Longtailed Cuckoo, which lays its eggs in the Warbler's nest."
Warden, n. The term is applied specifically to
the Government officer, with magisterial and executive powers,
in charge of a goldfield.
1861. Mrs. Meredith, `Over the Straits,' c. iv. p. 141:
"The chief official in a digging settlement, the padra [sic] of
the district, is entitled the warden."
Warehou, n. Maori name for
the fish Neptonemus brama, Gunth., called
Snotgall-Trevally in Tasmania, and called
also Sea-Bream. See Trevally.
Warrener, n. a name applied by Tasmanian
children to the larger specimens of the shells called
Mariners (q.v.). The name is an adaptation,
by the law of Hobson-Jobson, from a Tasmanian aboriginal word,
Yawarrenah, given by Milligan (`Vocabulary,' 1890), as
used by tribes, from Oyster Bay to Pittwater, for the ear-shell
(Haliotis). The name has thus passed from shell to
shell, and in its English application has passed on also to
the marine shell, Turbo undulatus.
Warrigal, n. and adj. an aboriginal
word, originally meaning a Dog. Afterwards extended as an
adjective to mean wild; then used for a wild
horse, wild natives, and in bush-slang for a
worthless man. The following five quotations from vocabularies
prove the early meaning of the word in the Port Jackson
district, and its varying uses at later dates elsewhere.
1793. Governor Hunter, `Port Jackson,' p. 411:
"Warregal--a large dog."
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' p. 614 [Vocab.]:
"Wor-re-gal--dog."
1859. D. Bunce, `Language of Aborigines of Victoria,' p. 17:
"Ferocious, savage, wild--warragul." (adj.)
Ibid. p. 46:
"Wild savage--worragal." (noun.) 1879.
Wyatt, `Manners of Adelaide Tribes,' p. 21:
"Warroo=wild."
The quotations which follow are classed under the different
meanings borne by the word.
(1) A Wild Dog.
1855. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' p. 153:
"I have heard that the dingo, warragal or native dog,
does not hunt in packs like the wolf and jackal."
1880. J. Holdsworth, `Station Hunting':
"To scoop its grassless grave
Past reach of kites and prowling warrigals."
1887. `Illustrated Australian News,' March 5:
[A picture of two dingoes, and beneath them the following
quotation from Kendall--]:
"The warrigal's lair is pent in bare
Black rocks, at the gorge's mouth."
1888. `Australian Ballads and Rhymes' (edition Sladen),,
p. 297:
"The following little poem, entitled `The Warrigal' (Wild Dog)
will prove that he (H. Kendall) observed animal life as
faithfully as still life and landscape:
`The sad marsh-fowl and the lonely owl
Are heard in the fog-wreath's grey,
Where the Warrigal wakes, and listens and takes
To the woods that shelter the prey.'"
1890. G. A. Sala, in `The Argus,' Sept. 20, p. 13, col. 1:
"But at present warrigal means a wild dog."
1891. J. B. O`Hara, `Songs of the South,' p. 22:
"There, night by night, I heard the call
The inharmonious warrigal
Made, when the darkness swiftly drew
Its curtains o'er the starry blue."
(2) A Horse.
1881. `The Australasian,' May 21, p. 647, col. 4 ["How we
ran in `The Black Warragal'": Ernest G. Millard, Bimbowrie,
South Australia]:
"You must let me have Topsail today, Boss,.
If we're going for that Warrigal mob."
1888. Gilbert Parker, `Round the Compass in Australia,' p. 44:
"Six wild horses--warrigals or brombies, as they are
called--have been driven down, corralled, and caught.
They have fed on the leaves of the myall and stray bits of
salt-bush. After a time they are got within the traces.
They are all young, and they look not so bad."
1890. `The Argus, `June 14, p.4, col. 2:
"Mike will fret himself to death in a stable, and maybe kill
the groom. Mike's a warrigal he is."
(3) Applied to Aborigines. [See Bunce quotation, 1859.]
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. xii. p. 249:
"He's a good shot, and these warrigal devils know it."
1896. Private Letter from Station near Palmerville, North
Queensland:
"Warrigal. In this Cook district, and I believe in many
others, a blackfellow who has broken any of the most stringent
tribal laws, which renders him liable to be killed on sight by
certain other blacks, is warri, an outlaw."
(4) As adjective meaning wild.
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Colonial Reformer,' c. viii. p. 68:
"Here's a real good wholesome cabbage--warrigal cabbage the
shepherds call it."
Warrina, n. See Warrener.
Washdirt, n. any alluvial deposit from which
gold is obtained by washing; or "the auriferous gravel, sand,
clay, or cement, in which the greatest proportion of gold is
found." (Brough Smyth's `Glossary,' 1869.) Often called
dirt (q.v.).
1896. `Melbourne Argus,' April 30, p. 7, col. 6:
"In colour the washdirt is of a browner and more iron-stained
appearance than the white free wash met across the creek."
Waterbush, n. an Australian tree,
i.q. Native Daphne. See Daphne.
Watergrass, n. a Tasmanian name for Manna
grass, Poa fluitans, Scop., N.O. Gramineae.
Water-Gum, n. See Gum.
Water-hole, n. The word pond is seldom
used in Australia. Any pond, natural or artificial, is called
a Water-hole. The word also denotes a depression or
cavity in the bed of an intermittent river, which remains full
during the summer when the river itself is dry.
1833. C. Sturt, `Southern Australia,' vol. i. c. ii. p. 80:
"There was no smoke to betray a water-hole."
1853. S. Sidney, `Three Colonies of Australia,' p. 245:
"The deep pools, called colonially `water-holes.'"
1862. F. J. Jobson, `Australia,' c. vii. p. 181:
"`Water-holes' appeared at intervals, but they seemed to have
little water in them."
1864. J. McDouall Stuart, `Explorations in Australia,' p. 58:
"About four miles from last night's camp the chain of large
water-holes commences, and continues beyond tonight's camp."
1875. Wood and Lapham, `Waiting for the Mail,' p. 15:
"The water-hole was frozen over, so she was obliged to go on
farther, where the water ran."
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), June 26, p. 94, col. 1:
"A bottomless water-hole, about 300 feet wide, exists at
Maryvale homestead, Gipps Land."
1878. Mrs. H. Jones, `Broad Outlines of Long Years in
Australia,' p. 97:
"`That will be another water-hole.' `What an ugly word . . .
why don't you call them pools or ponds?' `I can't tell you why
they bear such a name, but we never call them anything else,
and if you begin to talk of pools or ponds you'll get well
laughed at.'"
1896. `The Argus,' March 30, p. 6, col. 9:
[The murderer] has not since been heard of. Dams and
waterholes have been dragged . . . but without result."
Water-Lily. See Lily.
Water-Mole, i.q. Platypus (q.v.).
Water-Myrtle, an Australian tree, Tristania
neriifolia, R. Br., N.O. Myrtaceae.
Water-Tree, n. a tree from which water is
obtained by tapping the roots, Hakea leucoptera, R. Br.,
N.O. Proteaceae; called also Needle-bush. The
quotation describes the process, but does not name the tree.
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' p. 199:
"I expressed my thirst and want of water. Looking as if they
understood me, they [the aboriginals] hastened to resume their
work, and I discovered that they dug up the roots for the sake
of drinking the sap . . . They first cut these roots into
billets, and then stripped off the bark or rind, which they
sometimes chew, after which, holding up the billet, and
applying one end to the mouth, they let the juice drop into
it."
Wattle, n. The name is given to very many of
the various species of Acacia (q.v.), of which there
are about 300 in Australia, besides those in Tasmania and
New Zealand. There is no English tree of that name, but the
English word, which is common, signifies "a twig, a flexible
rod, usually a hurdle; . . . the original sense is something
twined or woven together; hence it came to mean a hurdle, woven
with twigs; Anglo-Saxon, watel, a hurdle." (Skeat.)
In England the supple twigs of the osier-willow are used for
making such hurdles. The early colonists found the long pliant
boughs and shoots of the indigenous Acacias a ready
substitute for the purpose, and they used them for constructing
the partitions and outer-walls of the early houses, by forming
a "wattling" and daubing it with plaster or clay. (See
Wattle-and-dab.) The trees thus received the name of
Wattle-trees, quickly contracted to Wattle. Owing to
its beautiful, golden, sweet-scented clusters of flowers,
the Wattle is the favourite tree of the Australian poets
and painters. The bark is very rich in tannin. (See
Wattle-bark.) The tree was formerly called
Mimosa (q.v.). The following list of vernacular names
of the various Wattles is compiled from Maiden's `Useful
Native Plants'; it will be seen that the same vernacular name
is sometimes applied to several different species--
Black Wattle--
Acacia binervata, De C., of Illawarra and South.
A. decurrens, Willd., older colonists of New South
Wales.
A. cunninghamii, Hook.
A. nervifolia, Cunn.
Broad-leaved W.--
A. pycnantha, Benth.
Broom W.--
A. calamifolia, Sweet.
Feathery W.--
A. decurrens, Willd.
Golden W. (q.v.)--
A. pycnantha, Benth.; in Victoria, South Australia,
and Tasmania. It is also called Green Wattle, and also,
for the sake of distinction between some other tan-bark wattles,
the Broad-leaved Wattle.
A. longifolia, Willd.; in New South Wales and
Queensland.
Green W.--
A. decurrens, Willd., older colonists New South Wales.
A. pycnantha, Benth.
A. discolor, Willd.; so called in Tasmania, and called
also there River Wattle.
Hickory W.--
A. aulacocarpa, Cunn.
Prickly W.--
A. sentis, F. v. M.
A. juniperina, Willd.
Silver W.--
A. dealbata, Link. Silver Wattle,
owing to the whiteness of the trunk, and the silvery
or ashy hue of its young foliage.
A. decurrens, Willd.
A. melanoxylon, R. Br. (Blackwood).
A. podalyriafolia, Cunn.; called Silver Wattle,
as it has foliage of a more or less grey, mealy, or silvery
appearance.
Weeping W.--
A. saligna, Wendl.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 201:
"The acacias are the common wattles of this country, their bark
affording excellent tan, as well as an extract to export to
England; while from their trunks and branches clear
transparent beads of the purest Arabian gum are seen suspended
in the dry spring weather, which our young currency bantlings
eagerly search after and regale themselves with."
1827. Vigors and Horsfield, `Transactions of Linnaean
Society,' vol. xv. p. 328:
"One of my specimens . . . I shot in a green wattle-tree close
to Government House."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' c. ii. p. 23:
"The black and silver Wattle (the Mimosa), are trees
used in housework and furniture."
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 134:
"Leptospermum lanigerum, hoary tea-tree, Acacia
decurrens, and black wattle; Corraea alba, Cape
Barren tea. The leaves of these have been used as substitutes
for tea in the colonies."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. ii.
c. iv. p. 132:
"Black wattle . . . indication of good soil . . . produce
gum."
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849.' p. 32:
"Few, indeed, of the native Australian flowers emit any perfume
except the golden and silver wattle (the Mimosae tribe):
these charm the senses, and fully realize the description we
read of in the `Arabian Nights' Entertainments' of those
exotics, the balmy perfume of which is exhaled far and near."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 337:
"These trees were termed `Wattles,' from being used, in the
early days of the colony, for forming a network or wattling of
the supple twigs for the reception of the plaster in the
partitions of the houses."
1862. W. Archer, `Products of Tasmania,' p. 40:
"Silver Wattle (Acacia dealbata, Lindl.), so called
from the whiteness of the trunk and the silvery green of
the foliage."
1862. G. T. Lloyd, `Twenty-three Years in Tasmania and
Victoria,' p. 33:
"The mimosa, or wattle, . . . ushers in the Spring with its
countless acres of charming and luxuriant yellow and highly
scented blossom . . . The tanning properties of its bark are
nearly equal in value to those of the English oak."
1867. A. G. Middleton, `Earnest,' p. 132:
"The maidens were with golden wattles crowned."
1877. F. V. Mueller, `Botanic Teachings,' p. 24:
"The generic name [Acacia] is so familiarly known, that the
appellation `Wattle' might well be dispensed with. Indeed the
name Acacia is in full use in works on travels and in many
popular writings for the numerous Australian species."
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 837:
"Called `Silver Wattle.' The bark, which is used for tanning,
is said to give a light colour to leather; value, L3 10s. per
ton."
1885. H. Finch-Hatton, `Advance Australia,' p. 43:
"A dense clump of wattles, a sort of mimosa--tall, feathery,
graceful trees, with leaves like a willow and sweet-scented
yellow flowers."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 349:
"The ordinary name for species of the genus Acacia in
the colonies is `Wattle.' The name is an old English one, and
signifies the interlacing of boughs together to form a kind of
wicker-work. The aboriginals used them in the construction of
their abodes, and the early colonists used to split the stems
of slender species into laths for `wattling' the walls of their
rude habitations."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 122:
"It pleased him yearly to see the fluffy yellow balls bedeck
his favourite trees. One would have said in the morning that
a shower of golden shot had bespangled them in the night-time.
Late in the autumn, too, an adventurous wattle would sometimes
put forth some semi-gilded sprays--but sparsely, as if under
protest."
1896. J. B. O`Hara, `Songs of the South' (Second Series),
p. 22:
"Yet the spring shed blossoms around the ruin,
The pale pink hues of the wild briar rose,
The wild rose wasted by winds that blew in
The wattle bloom that the sun-god knows."
Wattle-and-Dab, a rough mode of architecture, very
common in Australia at an early date. The phrase and its
meaning are Old English. It was originally
Wattle-and-daub. The style, but not the word, is
described in the quotation from Governor Phillip, 1789.
1789. Governor Phillip, `Voyage to Botany Bay,' p. 124:
"The huts of the convicts were still more slight, being
composed only of upright posts, wattled with slight twigs,
and plaistered up with clay."
1836. Ross, `Hobart Town Almanack,' p. 66:
"Wattle and daub. . . . You then bring home from the
bush as many sods of the black or green wattle (acacia
decurrens or affinis) as you think will suffice.
These are platted or intertwined with the upright posts in the
manner of hurdles, and afterwards daubed with mortar made of
sand or loam, and clay mixed up with a due proportion of the
strong wiry grass of the bush chopped into convenient lengths
and well beaten up with it, as a substitute for hair."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 201:
"The hut of the labourer was usually formed of plaited twigs
or young branches plastered over with mud, and known by the
summary definition of `wattle and dab.'"
1852. Mrs. Meredith, `My Home in Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 179:
"Wattles, so named originally, I conceive, from several of the
genus being much used for `wattling' fences or huts. A `wattle
and dab' but is formed, in a somewhat Robinson Crusoe style, of
stout stakes driven well into the ground, and thickly
interlaced with the tough, lithe wattle-branches, so as to make
a strong basket-work, which is then dabbed and plastered over
on both sides with tenacious clay mortar, and finally
thatched."
1879. W. J. Barry, `Up and Down,' p. 21:
"It was built of what is known as `wattle and dab,' or poles
and mud, and roofed with the bark of the gum-tree."
1883. E. M. Curr, `Recollections of Squatting,' p. 5:
"Others were of weather boards, wattle and dab, or slabs."
Wattle-bark, n. the bark of the wattle;
much used in tanning, and forms a staple export.
1875. `Spectator' (Melbourne), Aug. 14, p. 178 col. 2:
"A proprietor of land at Mount Gambier has refused L4000 for
the wattle-bark on his estate."
1877. [? Exact date lost.] `Melbourne Punch':
"What'll bark? Why, a dog'll."
1883. F. M. Bailey, `Synopsis of Queensland Flora,' p. 140:
"The bark of this species is used in tanning light skins, but
the bark is considered weak in tannin, and only worth thirty
shillings per ton in Queensland. Called `Black-wattle bark.'"
1893. `Melbourne Stock and Station Journal,' May 10 [advt.]:
"Bark.--There is a moderate inquiry for good descriptions, but
faulty are almost unsaleable:--Bundled Black Wattle, superior,
L5 to L6 per ton; do. do., average, L3 to L4 10s. per ton;
chopped Black Wattle, L5 to L6 5s. per ton; ground, approved
brands, up to L8 per ton; do., average, L5 to L6 per ton."
1896. `The Leader,' a weekly column:
"Kennel Gossip. By Wattle Bark."
Wattled Bee-eater. See Bee-eater.
Wattle-bird, n. an Australian bird, so called
from the wattles or fleshy appendages hanging to his ear. In
the Yellow species they are an inch long. The species
are--
Brush Wattle-bird--
Anelobia mellivora, Lath.
Little W.--
A. lunulata, Gould.
Red W.--
Acanthochaera carunculata, Lath.
Yellow W.--
A. inauris, Gould.
The earlier scientific names occur in the quotation, 1848.
In New Zealand, the Kokako (q.v.) is also called a
Wattle-bird, and the name used to be applied to the
Tui (q.v.).
1820. W. C. Wentworth, `Description of New South Wales,'
p. 152:
"The wattle-bird, which is about the size of a snipe,
and considered a very great delicacy."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv.:
"Anthochaera inauris, Wattled Honey-eater; Wattled Bird
of the Colonists of Van Diemen's Land" (pl. 54).
"A. Carunculata, Wattled Bird of the Colonists; the
Merops Carunculatus of older writers "(pl. 55).
"A. Mellivora, Vig. and Horsf., Bush Wattle Bird"
(pl. 56). "A. Lunulata, Gould, Little Wattle Bird,
Colonists of Swan River" (pl. 57).
1857. W. Howitt, `Tallangetta,' vol. ii. p. 11:
"Kangaroo-steaks frying on the fire, with a piece of cold
beef, and a wattle-bird pie also ready on the board."
1859. D. Bunce, `Australasiatic Reminiscences,' p. 62:
"The notes peculiar to the Ornithorhynchus paradoxus,
or platypus, wattle-bird, and leather-head, or old soldier
bird, added in no small degree to the novelties. . . . The
wattle-bird has been not inaptly termed the `what's
o'clock,'--the leather-head the `stop-where-you-are.'"
1864. E. F. Hughes, `Portland Bay,' p. 9:
"Tedious whistle of the Wattle-bird."
186. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia, vol. i. p. 111:
"This bird they called the Wattle-bird, and also the Poy-bird,
from its having little tufts of curled hair under its throat,
which they called poies, from the Otaheitan word for ear-rings.
The sweetness of this bird's note they described as
extraordinary, and that its flesh was delicious, but that it
was a shame to kill it."
1885. J. Hood, `Land of Fern,' p. 36:
"The wattle-bird, with joyous scream
Bathes her soft plumage in the cooling stream."
1871. T. Bracken, `Behind the Tomb,' p. 79:
"The wattle-bird sings in the leafy plantation."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 119:
"The pretty, graceful wattle-birds are . . . much esteemed
for the table, cooked as snipe and woodcocks are in England
. . . Our pretty, elegant wattle-bird wears a pair of long
pendant drops, shaded from the deepest amber to white, lovelier
than any goldsmith's work. Its greyish plumage, too, is very
beautiful; the feathers on the breast are long, pointed, and
tinted with golden yellow."
1890. Tasma, `In her Earliest Youth,' p. 265:
"The droll double note of the wattle-bird."
1890. `Victorian Statutes-Game Act' (Third Schedule):
"Close season. All Honey-eaters (except Wattle-birds and
Leatherheads); from 1st day of August to loth day of December."
Wattle-gold, n. poetic name for the blossom
of the Wattle.
1870. A. L. Gordon, `Bush Ballads, Dedn., p. 9:
"In the spring, when the wattle-gold trembles
`Twixt shadow and shine."
1883. Keighley, `Who are You?' p. 54:
"My wealth has gone, like the wattle-gold
You bound one day on my childish brow."
Wattle-gum, n. the gum exuding
from the Wattles.
1862. W. Archer, `Products of Tasmania,' p. 41:
"Wattle-Gum, the gum of the Silver Wattle (Acacia
dealbata, Lindl.), is exceedingly viscous, and probably
quite as useful as Gum-Arabic. The gum of the Black Wattle
(Acacia mollissima, Willd.), which is often mixed with
the other, is very often inferior to it, being far less
viscous."
Wax-cluster, n. an Australian shrub,
Gaultheria hispida, R. Br., N.O. Ericaceae. A
congener of the English winter-green, or American checkerberry,
with white berries, in taste resembling gooseberries; called
also Chucky-chucky (q.v.), and Native Arbutus.
1834. Ross, `Van Diemen's Land Annual,' p. 133:
"Gaultheria hispida. The wax-cluster, abundant in the
middle region of Mount Wellington, and in other elevated and
moist situations in the colony. This fruit is formed by the
thickened divisions of the calyx, enclosing the small seed
vessel; when it is ripe it is of a snowy white. The flavour is
difficult to describe, but it is not unpleasant. In tarts the
taste is something like that of young gooseberries, with a
slight degree of bitterness."
1880. Mrs. Meredith, `Tasmanian Friends and Foes,' p. 11
[Footnote]:
"Gaultheria hispida.--The `Snowberry' or `Wax cluster'
is also called native Arbutus, from the form of the white
flowers which precede the fruit. The latter is of a peculiar
brioche-like form, and as the deep clefts open, the crimson
seed-cells peep through."
Wax-Eye, i.q. one of the many names for the bird
called Silver-Eye, White-Eye, Blight-Bird,
etc. See Zosterops.
Waybung, n. aboriginal name for an Australian
Chough, Corcorax melanoramphus, Vieill.
Weaver-bird, n. The English name
Weaver-bird, in its present broad sense as applied
to a wide variety of birds, is modern. It alludes to their
dexterity in "weaving" their nests. It is applied in Australia
to Callornis metallica, a kind of Starling.
1890. C. Lumholtz, `Among Cannibals,' p. 96:
"The elegant, metallic-looking, `glossy starlings' (Callornis
metallica) greedily swoop, with a horrible shriek, upon the
fruit of the Australian cardamom tree. The ingenious nests of
this bird were found in the scrubs near Herbert Vale--a great
many in the same tree. Although this bird is a starling, the
colonists call it `weaver-bird.'"
Wedge-bill, n. an Australian bird. This
English name for a species of humming-bird is applied in
Australia to Sphenostoma cristata, Gould.
1890. `Victorian Statutes--Game Act' (Third Schedule):
"Wedge-bill. [Close season.] From 1st day of August to 10th
day of December next following in each year."
Weeping-Gum. See Gum.
Weeping-Myall, n. an Australian tree, Acacia
pendula, Cunn., N.O. Leguminosae. See Myall.
Weka, n. the Maori name for the Wood-hen
(q.v.) of New Zealand, so called from its note. There are two
species--
South-Island Weka, or Wood-hen--
Ocydromus australis, Strick.
North-Island W., or W.-h.--
Ocydromus brachypterus, Buller.
The specimens intergrade to such an extent that precise
limitation of species is extremely difficult; but Sir W. L.
Buller set them out as these two in 1878, regarding other
specimens as varieties. The birds are sometimes called
Weka-Rails, and the Maori name of Weka-pango is
given to the Black Wood-hen (0. fuscus, Du Bus.).
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 95:
"Two young weka, or wood-hens, about as large as sparrows
. . . were esteemed a valuable addition to our scanty supper."
1864. R. L. A. Davies, `Poems and Literary Remains' (edition
1884), p. 263:
"Wood-hens, or Waikas, are a great stand-by in the bush.
Their cry can be imitated, and a man knowing their language
and character can catch them easily. They call each other by
name, pronounced `Weeka,' latter syllable being shrill and
prolonged, an octave higher than the first note. . . . The
wood-hen is about the size of a common barn-door fowl; its
character is cunning, yet more fierce than cunning, and more
inquisitive than either."
1865. Lady Barker, `Station Life in New Zealand,' p. 28:
"Until the numbers of the wekas are considerably reduced. They
are very like a hen pheasant without the long tail-feathers,
and until you examine them you cannot tell they have no wings,
though there is a sort of small pinion among the feathers, with
a claw at the end of it. They run very swiftly, availing
themselves cleverly of the least bit of cover."
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 167:
"Another famous bird of chase with the natives is the weka
(Ocydromus Australis), or the wood-hen, belonging to
the class of rails, which have already become quite scarce upon
North Island. In the grassy plains and forests of the Southern
Alps, however, they are still found in considerable numbers.
It is a thievish bird, greedy after everything that glistens;
it frequently carries off spoons, forks, and the like, but it
also breaks into hen-coops, and picks and sucks the eggs."
1882. T. H. Potts, `Out in the Open,' p. 286:
"Fortunately, the weka bears so obnoxious a character as an
evil-doer that any qualm of conscience on the score of cruelty
is at once stilled when one of these feathered professors of
diablerie is laid to rest."
1888. W. L. Buller, `Birds of New Zealand,' vol. ii. p. 105:
[A full description.]
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby,' p. 82:
"We-ki! we-ki! we-ka! Three times the plaintive cry of
the `wood-hen' was heard. It was a preconcerted signal."
Weka, Rail, n. See Weka.
Well-in, adj. answering to `well off,' `well to
do,' `wealthy'; and ordinarily used, in Australia, instead of
these expressions.
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 1:
"He's a well-in squatter that took up runs or bought them
cheap before free-selection, and land-boards, and rabbits, and
all the other bothers that turn a chap's hair grey before his
time."
Western Australia, the part of the Continent first
sighted in 1527 by a Portuguese, and the last to receive
responsible government, in 1890. It had been made a Crown
colony in 1829.
Westralia, n. a common abbreviation for
Western Australia (q.v.). The word was coined to meet
the necessities of the submarine cable regulations, which
confine messages to words containing not more than ten letters.
1896. `The Studio,' Oct., p. 151:
"The latest example is the El Dorado of Western Australia,
or as she is beginning to be more generally called `Westralia,'
a name originally invented by the necessity of the electric
cable, which limits words to ten letters, or else charges
double rate."
1896. `Nineteenth Century,' Nov., p. 711 [Title of article]:
"The Westralian Mining Boom."
Weta, n. Maori name for a New Zealand insect--
a huge, ugly grasshopper, Deinacrula megacephala,
called by bushmen the Sawyer.
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 123:
"The weta, a suspicious-looking, scorpion-like creature,
apparently replete with `high concocted venom,' but perfectly
harmless."
1863. S. Butler, `First Year in Canterbury Settlement,'
p. 141:
"One of the ugliest-looking creatures that I have ever seen.
It is called `Weta,' and is of tawny scorpion-like colour,
with long antenna and great eyes, and nasty squashy-looking
body, with (I think) six legs. It is a kind of animal which no
one would wish to touch: if touched, it will bite sharply, some
say venomously. It is very common but not often seen, and
lives chiefly among dead wood and under stones."
1888. J. Adams, `On the Botany of Te Moehau,' `Transactions of
New Zealand Institute,' vol. xxi. art. ii. p. 41:
"Not a sound was heard in that lonely forest, except at long
intervals the sharp noise produced by the weta."
W. F.'s, old Tasmanian term for wild cattle.
1891. James Fenton, `Bush Life in Tasmania Fifty Years Ago,'
p. 24:
"Round up a mob of the wildest W.F.'s that ever had their ears
slit."
[Note]: "This was the brand on Mr. William Field's wild
cattle."
Whalebone-Tree, n. i.q. Mint-Tree
(q.v.).
Whaler, n. used specifically as slang
for a Sundowner (q.v.); one who cruises about.
1893. `Sydney Morning Herald,' Aug. 12, p. 8. col. 8:
"The nomad, the `whaler,' it is who will find the new order
hostile to his vested interest of doing nothing."
Whaler/2, n. name given in Sydney to the Shark,
Carcharias brachyurus, Gunth., which is not confined to
Australasia.
Whare, n. Maori word for a house;
a dissyllable, variously spelt, rhyming with `quarry.'
It is often quaintly joined with English words; e.g. a
sod-whare, a cottage built with sods. In a Maori
vocabulary, the following are given: whare-kingi,
a castle; whare-karakia, a church; whare-here,
the lock-up.
1820. `Grammar and Vocabulary of Language of New Zealand'
(Church Missionary Society), p. 225:
"Ware, s. a house, a covering."
1833. `Henry Williams' Journal: Carleton's Life,' p. 151:
"The Europeans who were near us in a raupo whare
(rush house)."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 26:
"We were much amused at seeing the ware-puni, or sleeping-
houses, of the natives. These are exceedingly low, and covered
with earth, on which weeds very often grow. They resemble in
shape and size a hot-bed with the glass off."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes,' c. x. p. 265 (Third
Edition, 1855):
"Sitting in the sun at the mouth of his warree, smoking his
pipe."
1854. W. Golder, `Pigeons' Parliament,' [Notes] p. 76:
"I fell upon what I thought a good place on which to fix my
warre, or bush-cottage."
1857. `Paul's Letters from Canterbury,' p. 89:
"Then pitch your tent, or run up a couple of grass
warres somewhat bigger than dog-kennels."
1871. C. L. Money, `Knocking About in New Zealand,' p. 33:
"The old slab wharry."
Ibid. p. 132:
"The village was sacked and the wharries one after another set
fire to and burnt.'"
1877. Anon., `Colonial Experiences or Incidents of Thirty-Four
Years in New Zealand,' p. 87:
"In the roughest colonial whare there is generally one or more
places fitted up called bunks."
1882. R. C. Barstow, `Transactions of the New Zealand
Institute,' vol. xv. art. liii. p. 428:
"Raupo whares were put up."
1889. `Cornhill Magazine,' Jan., p. 35:
"Ten minutes more brought us to my friend's `whare,'--the Maori
name for house."
1886. `Otago Witness,' Jan. 23, p. 42:
"The pas close at hand give up their population,--only the
blind, the sick, and the imbecile being left to guard the
grimy, smoke-dried whares."
Whata, n. Maori word for a storehouse on posts
or other supports, like a Pataka (q.v.). Futtah
(q.v.) is a corruption, probably of Irish origin.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 167:
"In one corner was a ware-puni, occupied by Barrett and his
family, and in the middle a wata, or `storehouse,' stuck upon
four poles about six feet high, and only approachable by a
wooden log with steps cut in it."
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 57:
"A chief would not pass under a stage or wata (a food-store)."
Ibid. p. 468:
"Wata, stand or raised platform for food: Fata,
Tahaiti."
[Also an illustration, "an ornamental food-store," p. 377.]
1891. Rev. J. Stack, `Report of Australasian Association
for Advancement of Science,' #G. vol. iii. p. 378:
"The men gathered the food and stored it in Whatas or store-
rooms, which were attached to every chief's compound, and built
on tall posts protect the contents from damp and rats."
Whau, n. Maori name for the New Zealand
Cork-tree, Entelea arborescens, R. Br.,
N.O. Tiliaceae.
Whee-Whee, n. a bird not identified.
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 232:
"In the morning the dull monotonous double note of the
whee-whee (so named from the sound of its calls), chiming in at
regular intervals as the tick of a clock, warns us . . . it
is but half an hour to dawn."
Whekau, n. Maori name for the bird
Sceloglaux albifacies, Gray, a New Zealand owl,
which is there called the Laughing-Jackass.
See Jackass.
1869. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia' [Supplement]:
"Sceloglaux Albifacies, Wekau. Another of the strange
inhabitants of our antipodal country, New Zealand. An owl it
unquestionably is, but how widely does it differ from every
other member of its family."
1885. A. Reischek, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xviii. art. xiii. p. 97:
"Athene albifacies, Laughing owl (whekau). Owls are
more useful than destructive, but this species I never saw in
the north or out-lying islands, and in the south it is
extremely rare, and preys mostly on rats."
1885. `Transactions of the New Zealand Institute,' vol. xviii.
p. 101:
"Already several species have disappeared from the mainland
. . . or are extremely rare, such as . . . Laughing owl
(Whekau)."
Whelk, or Native Whelk, n.
a marine mollusc, Trochocochlea constricta.
See Perriwinkle.
Whilpra, n. See quotation, and compare
the Maori word Tupara (q.v.)
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kumai,' p. 211:
"The term whilpra being a corruption of wheelbarrow, which the
Lake Torrens natives have acquired from the whites as the name
for a cart or waggon."
Whio, n. (originally Whio-Whio),
alsoWio, Maori name for the New Zealand Duck,
Hymenolaemus malacorhynchus, Gmell., called the
Blue-Duck or Mountain Duck of New Zealand.
See Duck, Professor Parker's quotation, 1889.
The bird has a whistling note. The Maori verb, whio,
means to whistle.
1855. Rev. R. Taylor, `Te Ika a Maui,' p. 407:
"Wio (Hymenolaemus malacorhynchus), the blue duck,
is found abundantly in the mountain-streams of the south part
of the North Island, and in the Middle Island. It takes its
name from its cry."
1877. W. Buller, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. x. art. xix. p. 199:
"Captain Mair informs me that the wio is plentiful in all the
mountain-streams in the Uriwera country. When marching with the
native contingent in pursuit of Te Kooti, as many as forty or
fifty were sometimes caught in the course of the day, some
being taken by hand, or knocked over with sticks or stones,
so very tame and stupid were they."
1885. H. Martin, `Transactions of New Zealand Institute,'
vol. xviii. art. xxii. p. 113:
"Hymenolaemus malacorhynchus, Whio, Blue Duck.
Both Islands." [From a list of New Zealand birds that
ought to be protected.]
Whip-bird, n. See Coach-whip.
Whip-snake, n. or Little Whip-Snake.
See under Snake.
Whip-stick, n. variety of dwarf
Eucalypt; one of the Mallees; forming thick scrub.
1874. M. C., `Explorers,' p. 123:
"He had lost his way, when he would fain have crost
A patch of whip-stick scrub."
Whip-tail, n. (1) A fancy name for a small
Kangaroo. See Pretty-Faces, quotation.
(2) A Tasmanian fish; see under Tasmanian Whiptail.
Whistling Dick, n. Tasmanian name for a
Shrike-Thrush. Called also Duke- Willy.
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,'vol. ii. pl. 77:
"Colluricincla Selbii, Jard., Whistling Dick of the
Colonists of Van Diemen's Land."
Whistling Duck, n. See Duck. The bird
named below by Leichhardt appears to be a mistake; vide Gould's
list at word Duck.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 287:
"The Leptotarsis, Gould (whistling duck), which
habitually crowd close together on the water."
Whitebait, n. a fish; not, as in England,
the fry of the herring and sprat, but in Victoria, Engraulis
antarcticus, Castln.; and in New Zealand, the young fry of
Galaxias attenuatus, Jenyns (Inanga, q.v.).
The young of the New Zealand Smelt (q.v.), Retropinna
richardsonii, Gill, are also called Whitebait,
both in New Zealand and in Tasmania.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 85:
"Anchovies or Engraulis have a compressed body with a
very wide lateral mouth, and a projecting upper jaw. Scales
large. We have two species--E. antarcticus, Casteln.,
and E. nasutus, Casteln. The first-named species is by
many erroneously believed to be identical, or at most a variety
of E. encrassicholus of Europe. Count Castelnau states
that it is very common in the Melbourne market at all seasons,
and goes by the name of `whitebait.'"
1883. `Royal Commission on Fisheries of Tasmania, p. iv:
"Retropinna Richardsonii, whitebait or smelt. Captured
in great abundance in the river Tamar, in the prawn nets,
during the months of February and March, together with a
species of Atherina, and Galaxias attenuatus,
and are generally termed by fishermen whitebait. Dr. Guenther
had formerly supposed that this species was confined to New
Zealand; it appears, however, to be common to Australia and
Tasmania."
Whitebeard, n. name applied to the plant
Styphelia ericoides, N.O. Epacrideae.
White-Eye, n. another name for the bird called
variously Silver-Eye, Wax-Eye,
Blight-Bird, etc., Zosterops (q.v.).
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. iv. pl. 81:
"Zosterops Dorsalis, Vig. and Horsf, Grey-backed
Zosterops; White-eye, Colonists of New South Wales."
1896. `The Australasian,' Nov. 14, p. 461:
"The unique migration on the part of the white-eyes has not
been satisfactorily accounted for. One authority invents the
ingenious theory that the original white-eyes went to New
Zealand after the memorable `Black Thursday' of Australia in
1851."
White-face, n. a name applied to the Australian
bird, Xerophila leucopsis, Gould. Another species is
the Chestnut-breasted White face, X. pectoralis,
Gould.
White Gallinule, n. one of the birds of the
family called Rails. The White Gallinule was
recorded from New South Wales in 1890, and also from Lord Howe
Island, off the coast, and from Norfolk Island. The modern
opinion is that it never existed save in these two islands, and
that it is now extinct. It was a bird of limited powers of
flight, akin to the New Zealand bird, Notornis mantilli
which is also approaching extinction. Only two skins of the
White Gallinule are known to be in existence.
1789. Governor Phillip,' Voyage to Botany Bay,' p. 273 and
fig.:
"White Gallinule. This beautiful bird greatly resembles the
purple Gallinule in shape and make, but is much superior in
size, being as large as a dunghill fowl. . . . This species
is pretty common on Lord Howe's Island, Norfolk Island, and
other places, and is a very tame species."
1882. E. P. Ramsay, `Proceedings of the Linnaean Society of
New South Wales,' p. 86:
"The attention of some of our early Naturalists was drawn
to this Island by finding there, the now extinct `White
Gallinule,' then called (Fulica alba), but which
proves to be a species of Notornis."
White-head, n. a bird of New Zealand,
Clitonyx albicapilla, Buller. Found in North Island,
but becoming very rare. See Clitonyx.
White-lipped Snake, n. See under Snake.
White-Pointer, n. a New South Wales name for
the White-Shark. See Shark.
White-top, n. another name for Flintwood
(q.v.).
White-Trevally, n. an Australian fish.
See Trevally.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish and Fisheries of New
South Wales,' p. 59:
"Caranx georgianus, the `white trevally.' . . There are
several other species of Caranx in Port Jackson. In Victoria
it is called silver bream. Count Castelnau says it is very
beautiful when freshly taken from the water, the upper part
being a light celestial blue or beautiful purple, the lower
parts of a silvery white with bright iridescent tinges . . .
There is another fish called by this name which has already
been described amongst the Teuthidae, but this is the
White Trevally as generally known by New South Wales
fishermen."
Whitewood, n. another name for
Cattle-Bush (q.v.). A Tasmanian name for
Pittosporum bicolor, Hook., N.O. Pittosporeae.
Called Cheesewood in Victoria, and variously applied,
as a synonym, to other trees; it is also called Waddy-wood
(q.v.).
Whiting, n. Four species of the fish of the
genus Sillago are called Whiting in Australia
(see quotation). The New Zealand Whiting is
Pseudophycis breviusculus, Richards., and the
Rock-Whiting of New South Wales is Odax
semifaciatus, Cuv. and Val., and O. richardsonii,
Gunth.; called also Stranger (q.v.). Pseudophycis
is a Gadoid, Sillago belongs to the
Trachinidae, and Odax to the family
Labridae or Wrasses.
1882. Rev. J. E. Tenison-Woods, `Fish of New South Wales,'
p. 65:
"The `whitings' are not like those of Europe. There are, in
all, four Australian species--the common sand-whiting
(Sillago maculata), abundant on the New South Wales
coast; the trumpeter-whiting (S. bassensis),
also abundant here, and the most common species in Brisbane;
S. punctata, the whiting of Melbourne, and rare on
this coast; and S. ciliata."
Widgeon, n. the common English name for a Duck
of the genus Mareca, extended generally by sportsmen to
any wild duck. In Australia, it is used as another name for
the Pink-eyed (or Pink-eared) Duck. It is
also used, as in England, by sportsmen as a loose term for many
species of Wild-Duck generally.
Wild Dog, n. i.q. Dingo (q.v.).
Wild Geranium, n. In Australia, the species
is Pelargonium australe, Willd., N.O. Geraniaceae.
Wild Irishman, a spiny New Zealand shrub, Discaria
toumatou, Raoul, N.O. Rhamneae. The Maori name is
Tumata-Kuru (q.v.).
1867. F. Hochstetter, `New Zealand,' p. 133:
"Certain species of Acyphilla and Discaria,
rendering many tracts, where they grow in larger quantities,
wholly inaccessible. On account of their slender blades
terminating in sharp spines the colonists have named them
`spear-grass,' `wild Irishman,' and `wild Spaniard.'"
[This is a little confused. There are two distinct plants in
New Zealand--
(1) Discaria toumatou, a spiny shrub or tree;
called Tumatakuru Matagory, and Wild Irishman.
(2) Aciphylla colensoi, a grass, called
Sword-grass, Spear grass, Spaniard,
and Scotchman.
1875. Lady Barker, `Station Amusements in New Zealand,' p. 35:
"Interspersed with the Spaniards are generally clumps
of `Wild Irishman'--a straggling sturdy bramble, ready
to receive and scratch you well if you attempt to avoid the
Spaniard's weapons."
1883. J. Hector, `Handbook of New Zealand, p. 131:
"Tumata kuru, Wild Irishman. A bush or small tree with
spreading branches; if properly trained would form a handsome
hedge that would be stronger than whitethorn. The species were
used by the Maoris for tattooing."
1892. Malcolm Ross, `Aorangi,' p. 37:
"Almost impenetrable scrub, composed mainly of wild
Irishman (Discaria toumatou) and Sword-grass
(Aciphylla Colensoi)."
1896. `The Australasian,' Aug. 28, p. 407, col. 5:
". . . national appellations are not satisfactory. It seems
uncivil to a whole nation--another injustice to Ireland--to
call a bramble a wild Irishman, or a pointed grass, with the
edges very sharp and the point like a bayonet, a Spaniard. One
could not but be amused to find the name Scotchman applied to a
smaller kind of Spaniard."
Wild Parsnip, n. See Parsnip.
Wild Rosemary, n. See Rosemary.
Wild Turkey, n. See Turkey.
Wild Yam, n. a parasitic orchid, Gastrodia
sesamoides, R. Br., N.O. Orchideae.
Wilga, n. a tree. Called also Dogwood
and Willow, Geijera parviflora, Lindl.,
N.O. Rutaceae. Adopted by the colonists from the
aboriginal name.
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 123:
"We rode out through a wilga scrub."
(p. 230): "She'd like to be buried there--under a spreading
wilga tree."
Willow Myrtle, n. a tree, Agonis
flexuosa, De C., N.O. Myrtaceae, with willow-like
leaves and pendent branches, native of West Australia, and
cultivated for ornament as a greenhouse shrub.
Willow, Native, n. i.q. Boobialla
(q.v.), and also another name for the Poison-berry Tree
(q.v.).
Willy-Wagtail, n. i.q. Wagtail (q.v.).
Willy Willy, n. native name for a storm on
North-west of Australia.
1894. `The Age,' Jan. 20, p. 13, col. 4 [Letter by `Bengalee']:
"Seeing in your issue of this morning a telegraphic report of a
`willy willy' in the north-west portion of West Australia, it
may be of interest to hear a little about these terrific storms
of wind and rain. The portion of the western coast most
severely visited by these scourges is said to be between the
North-wet Cape and Roebuck Bay; they sometimes reach as far
south as Carnarvon and north as far as Derby. The approach of
one of these storms is generally heralded by a day or too of
hot, oppressive weather, and a peculiar haze. Those having
barometers are warned of atmospheric disturbances; at other
times they come up very suddenly. The immense watercourses to
be seen in the north-west country, the bed of the Yule River,
near Roebourne, for instance, and many other large creeks and
rivers, prove the terrible force and volume of water that falls
during the continuance of one of these storms. The bed of the
Yule River is fully a mile wide, and the flood marks on some of
the trees are sufficient proof of the immense floods that
sometimes occur. Even in sheltered creeks and harbours the
wind is so violent that luggers and other small craft are blown
clean over the mangrove bushes and left high and dry, sometimes
a considerable distance inland. The willy willy is the name
given to these periodical storms by the natives in the
north-west."
1895. C. M. Officer, Private Letter:
"In the valley of the Murray between Swan Hill and Wentworth,
in the summer time during calm weather, there are to be seen
numerous whirlwinds, carrying up their columns of dust many
yards into the air. These are called by the name willy willy."
Windmill J.P., expression formerly used in New South
Wales for any J.P. who was ill-educated and supposed to sign
his name with a cross x.
Wine-berry, n. See Tutu. In Australia,
the name is given to Polyosma cunninghamii, Benn.,
N.O. Saxifrageae.
Winery, n. an establishment for making
wines. An American word which is being adopted in Australia.
1893. `The Argus,' Oct. 6, p. 7, col. 6
[Letter headed `Wineries']:
"I would suggest that the idea of small local wineries, each
running on its own lines, be abandoned, and one large company
formed, having its headquarters in Melbourne with wineries in
various centres. The grapes could be brought to these depots
by the growers, just as the milk is now brought to the
creameries."
Winter Cherry, n. See Balloon Vine.
Winter Country, in New Zealand (South Island),
land so far unaffected by snow that stock is wintered on it.
Wire-grass, and Wiry-grass. See
Grass.
1883. E. M. Curr, `Recollections of Squatting in Victoria'
(1841-1851), p. 81:
"Sparsely-scattered tussocks of the primest descriptions;
the wire-grass, however, largely predominating over the
kangaroo-grass."
Wirrah, n. aboriginal name for a fish
of New South Wales, Plectropoma ocellatum, Gunth.
1884. E. P. Ramsav. `Fisheries Exhibition Literature,'
vol. v. p. 311:
"Another of the Percidae . . . the wirrah of the
fishermen, is more plentiful. It is when first caught a
handsome fish, of a pale olive-brown or olive-green colour,
with numerous bright blue dots on spots of a lighter tint."
Witchetty, n. native name for the grub-like
larva of one or more species of longicorn beetles. The natives
dig it out of the roots of shrubs, decaying timber and earth,
in which it lives, and eat it with relish. It is sometimes
even roasted and eaten by white children.
1894. R. Lydekker, `Marsupialia,' p. 191:
"Dr. Stirling writes . . . [The marsupial mole] was fed on
the `witchetty' (a kind of grub) . . . two or three small
grubs, or a single large one, being given daily."
Wiwi, n. Maori name for a jointed rush.
1842. W. R. Wade, `A Journey in the Northern Island of New
Zealand,' `New Zealand Reader,' p. 122:
"The roof is usually completed with a thick coating of wiwi
(a small rush), and then the sides receive a second coating
of raupo, and sometimes of the wiwi over all."
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 380:
"[The walls] were lined outside with the wiwi or fine grass."
[See also Raupo, 1843 quotation.]
Wiwi/2, n. slang name for a Frenchman,
from "Oui, Oui!"
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 94:
"If I had sold the land to the white missionaries, might they
not have sold it again to the Wiwi (Frenchmen) or Americans."
1857. C. Hursthouse, `New Zealand, the Britain of the South,'
vol. i. p. 14:
"De Surville's painful mode of revenge, and the severe
chastisement which the retaliatory murder of Marion brought on
the natives, rendered the Wee-wees (Oui, oui), or people of the
tribe of Marion, hateful to the New Zealanders for the next
half-century."
1859. A. S. Thomson, `Story of New Zealand,' vol. i. p. 236:
"Before the Wewis, as the French are now called, departed."
1873. H. Carleton, `Life of Henry Williams,' p. 92:
"The arrival of a French man-of-war was a sensational event
to the natives, who had always held the Oui-oui's in dislike."
1881. Anon., `Percy Pomo,' p. 207:
"Has [sic] the Weewees puts it."
Wiwi/3, n. aboriginal name for a native weapon.
1845. Charles Griffith, `Present State and Prospects of the
Port Phillip District of New South Wales,' p. 155:
"The wiwi is an instrument not so well known. It is composed
of a long straight withy, about two feet long, to which is
attached a head, made of a piece of wood four inches long,
in the shape of two cones joined together at the base . . .
This they strike against the ground, at a little distance to
one side of them, whence it rises at right angles to its first
direction, and flies with the swiftness of an arrow for about
one hundred yards, and at a height of about ten feet from the
ground."
Wobbegong, n. a New South Wales aboriginal name
for a species of Shark, Crassorhinus barbatus, Linn.,
family Scyllidae; also known as the Carpet-Shark,
from the beautifully mottled skin. The fish is not peculiar to
Australia, but the name is.
Wobbles, n. a disease in horses caused by
eating palm-trees in Western Australia.
1896. `The Australasian,' Feb. 15, p. 319:
"The palm-trees for years cost annoyance and loss to farmers
and graziers. Their stock being troubled with a disease called
`wobbles,' which attacked the limbs and ended in death.
A commission of experts was appointed, who traced the disease
to the palms, of which the cattle were very fond."
Wolf, n. called also Native Wolf,
Marsupial Wolf and Zebra Wolf, Tasmanian
Tiger and Hyaena; genus, Thylacinus (q.v.).
It is the largest carnivorous marsupial extant, and is so much
like a wolf in appearance that it well deserves its vernacular
name of Wolf, though now-a-days it is generally called
Tiger. See Tasmanian Tiger.
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"The first occupants we notice in this cage are two marsupial
wolves, Thylacinus cynocephalus, or Tasmanian tigers as
they are commonly called. These animals are becoming scarce,
as, owing to their destructiveness among sheep, they are
relentlessly persecuted by run-holders."
Wollomai, n. the aboriginal name of the fish
called Schnapper (q.v.). In 1875 a horse named
Wollomai won the Melbourne Cup. Since then numerous
houses and estates have been named Wollomai.
Wombat, n. a marsupial animal of the genus
Phascolomys (q.v.). It is a corruption of the
aboriginal name. There are various spellings; that nearest
to the aboriginal is womback, but the form wombat
is now generally adopted. The species are--the Common Wombat,
Phascolomys mitchelli, Owen; Tasmanian W.,
P. ursinus, Shaw; Hairy-nosed W., P. latifrons,
Owen.
1798. M. Flinders, `Voyage to Terra Australis (1814),'
Intro. p. cxxviii, `Journal,' Feb. 16:
"Point Womat, a rocky projection of Cape Barren Island, where a
number of the new animals called womit were seen, and killed."
Ibid. p. cxxxv:
"This little bear-like quadruped is known in New South Wales,
and called by the natives, womat, wombat, or
womback, according to the different dialects,
or perhaps to the different renderings of the wood rangers
who brought the information . . . It burrows like the badger."
1799. D. Collins, `Account of New South Wales (1802),'
vol. ii. p. 153 [`Bass's Journal,' Jan.]:
"The Wom-bat (or, as it is called by the natives of Port
Jackson, the Womback,) is a squat, thick, short-legged,
and rather inactive quadruped, with great appearance of stumpy
strength, and somewhat bigger than a large turnspit dog."
1802. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' vol. ii. p. 156:
"In the opinion of Mr. Bass this Wombat seemed to be very
oeconomically made."
18x3. `History of New South Wales' 0818), p. 431:
"An animal named a wombat, about the size of a small
turnspit-dog, has been found in abundance in Van Diemen's Land,
and also, though less frequently, in other parts of New South
Wales. Its flesh has in taste a resemblance to pork."
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 318:
"The wombat, a large animal of the size of a mastiff,
burrowing in the ground, feeding on grass and roots
and attaining considerable fatness."
1832. J. Bischoff, `Van Diemen's Land,' p. 175:
"The dogs had caught . . . two badgers or woombacks."
1846. G. H. Haydon, `Five Years in Australia Felix,' p. 58:
"The Wombat is a large kind of badger, which burrows in the
ground to a considerable depth, and is taken by the blacks for
food; it makes a noise, when attacked in its hole, something
similar to the grunting of a pig."
1848. W. Westgarth, `Australia Felix,' p. 129:
"Mere rudimentary traces (of a pouch) in the pig-like wombat."
1853. J. West, `History of Tasmania,' vol. i. p. 325:
"The Wombat, commonly called in the colony Badger
(Phascolomys wombat, Peron.), is an animal weighing
forty to eighty pounds, having a large body with short legs.
Notwithstanding its burrowing habits, and the excessive
thickness and toughness of its skin, it is usually so easily
killed that it is becoming less and less common."
1855. W. Blandowski, `Transactions of Philosophical Society
of Victoria,' vol. i. p. 67:
"Wombat. This clumsy, but well-known animal (Phascolomys
wombat), during the day conceals himself in his gloomy lair
in the loneliest recesses of the mountains, and usually on the
banks of a creek, and at night roams about in search of food,
which it finds by grubbing about the roots of gigantic
eucalypti."
1855. W. Howitt, `Two Years in Vic. toria,' vol. i. p. 211:
"The wombat resembles a large badger in the shortness of its
legs, but has a little of the pig and the bear in its shape,
hair, and movements."
1862. W. M. Thackeray, `Roundabout Papers,' p. 82:
"Our dear wambat came up and had himself scratched very
affably. . . .
"Then I saw the grey wolf, with mutton in his maw;
Then I saw the wambat waddle in the straw."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kumai,' p. 265:
"Wombat is cooked, then opened and skinned."
1888. D. Macdonald, `Gum Boughs,' p. 81:
"The wombat is very powerful, and can turn a boulder almost
as large as itself out of the way when it bars the road."
1889. Cassell's `Picturesque Australasia,' vol. iv. p. 183:
"There are large numbers of wombats in the district, and these
animals, burrowing after the fashion of rabbits, at times reach
great depths, and throw up large mounds."
1894. `The Argus,' June 23, p. 11, col. 4:
"The wombat's grunt is strictly in harmony with his piggish
appearance."
Wombat-hole, n. hole made by Wombat
(q.v.).
1891. Mrs. Cross (Ada Cambridge), `The Three Miss Kings,'
p. 181:
"He took them but a little way from where they had camped, and
disclosed in the hillside what looked like a good-sized wombat
or rabbit-hole."
Wommera. See Woomera.
Wonga, n. aboriginal name for the bulrush,
Typha angustifolia, Linn. It is the same as the
Raupo (q.v.) of New Zealand, and is also known as
Bulrush, Cat's Tail and Reed Mace,
and in Europe as the `Asparagus of the Cossacks.'
For etymology, see next word.
Wonga-wonga, n. an Australian pigeon,
Leucosarcia picata, Lath.; it has very white flesh.
The aboriginal word wonga is explained as coming from
root signifying the idea of `quiver motion,' `sudden springing up'
and the word is thus applied as a name for the bulrush,
the vine, and the pigeon. Some, however, think
that the name of the pigeon is from the bird's note. In
Gippsland, it was called by the natives Wauk-wauk-au,
sc. `that which makes wauk-wauk.'
1827. P. Cunningham, `Two Years in New South Wales,' vol. i.
p. 321:
"We have a large pigeon named the Wanga-wanga, of the size and
appearance of the ringdove, which is exquisite eating also."
1846. J. L. Stokes, `Discoveries in Australia,' vol. i. c. x.
p. 314:
"At Captain King's table I tasted the Wonga-wonga pigeon."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. v. pl. 63:
"Leucosarcia Picata, Wonga-wonga, Aborigines of New
South Wales; White-fleshed and Wonga-wonga Pigeon, Colonists
of New South Wales."
1852. G. C. Mundy, `Our Antipodes' (edition 1855), c. i.
p. 12:
"A delicate wing of the Wonga-wonga pigeon."
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 174:
"Nothing can surpass in delicacy the white flesh of the
Wonga-wonga (Leucosarcia picata)."
1881. A. C. Grant, `Bush Life in Queensland,' vol. i. p. 213:
"Hark! there goes a Wonga-wonga, high up in the topmost
branches of the great cedar."
1891. `Guide to Zoological Gardens, Melbourne':
"The Wonga-Wonga (Leucosarcia Picata) is also
represented. This Pigeon, though less bright in plumage than
the last-named, exceeds it in size; both are excellent eating."
Wonga-wonga Vine, n. a name for the hardy,
evergreen climber, Tecoma australis, R. Br.,
N.O. Bignoniaceae. There are several varieties, all
distinguished by handsome flowers in terminal panicles. They
are much cultivated in gardens and for ornamental bower-trees.
Woodhen, n. a name given to several birds
of New Zealand of the Rail family, and of the genus
Ocydromus; some of them are called by the Maori name
of Weka (q.v.). The species are--
Black Woodhen--
Ocydromus fuscus, Du Bus.; Maori name,
Weka-pango.
Brown W.--
O. earli, Gray.
Buff W.--
O. australis, Gray; called also Weka.
North-Island W.--
O. brachypterus, Buller; called also Weka.
South-Island W.--
Same as Buff W.; see above.
1845. E. J. Wakefield, `Adventures in New Zealand,' vol. ii.
p. 95:
"Two young weka, or wood-hens, about as large as sparrows . . .
were esteemed a valuable addition to our scanty supper."
1889. Vincent Pyke, `Wild Will Enderby,' p. 82:
"We-ka! we-ka! we-ka! Three times the plaintive cry
of the `wood hen `was heard. It was a preconcerted signal."
Wood-duck, n. a name given by the colonists of
New South Wales and "Swan River" to the Maned Goose,
Branta jubata, Latham.
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 147:
"The wood-duck (Bernicla jubata) abounded on the larger
water-holes."
1848. J. Gould, `Birds of Australia,' vol. vii. pl. 3:
"Bernicla jubata, Maned Goose; Wood-Duck, Colonists of
New South Wales and Swan River."
Wood Natives, or Wood Savages, obsolete names
for the Australian aborigines.
1817. O'Hara, `History of New South Wales,' p. 161:
". . . robbed by a number of the inland or wood natives . . ."
Ibid. p. 201:
"The combats of the natives near Sydney were sometimes
attended by parties of the inland or wood savages."
Wooden Pear, n. a tree peculiar to New South
Wales and Queensland, Xylomelum pyriforme, Smith,
N.O. Proteaceae; called also Native Pear.
1860. G. Bennett, `Gatherings of a Naturalist,' p. 322:
"The Wooden Pear-tree of the colonists (Xylomelum
pyriforme) is peculiar to Australia; its general appearance
is very ornamental, especially when the tree is young;
the flowers grow in clusters in long spikes, but are not
conspicuous. This tree attains the height of from fifteen to
twenty feet, and a circumference of six to eight feet. It is
branchy; the wood is of dark colour, and being prettily marked,
would form an ornamental veneering for the cabinet-maker.
When young, in the Australian bush, this tree bears a close
resemblance to the young Warratah, or Tulip-tree (Telopea
speciosissima)."
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 615:
"Native Pear-Wooden Pear. This moderate-sized tree produces a
dark-coloured, prettily-marked wood. It is occasionally used
for making picture-frames, for ornamental cabinet-work, for
veneers, and walking-sticks. When cut at right-angles to the
medullary rays it has a beautiful, rich, sober marking."
Woollybutt, a name given to one of the Gum trees,
Eucalyptus longifolia, Link. See Gum.
1843. James Backhouse, `Narrative of a Visit to the Australian
Colonies,' p. 445 (October 1836.):
"One called here the Woolly Butted Gum seems identical with the
black butted gum of Tasmania."
1894. `Melbourne Museum Catalogue Economic Woods,' p. 28:
"The Woollybutt grown at Illawarra is in very high repute for
wheelwright's work "
Woolly-headed Grass, n. an indigenous
Australian grass, Andropogon bombycinus, R. Br.
1889. J. H. Maiden, `Useful Native Plants,' p. 72:
"Woolly-headed Grass, a valuable pasture-grass, highly spoken
of by stock-owners, and said to be very fattening."
Wool-man, n. aboriginal mispronunciation of
old man (q.v.).
1830. Robert Dawson, `The Present State of Australia,' p. 139:
"The male kangaroos were called by my natives old men,
`wool-man,' and the females, young ladies, `young liddy.'"
Wool-shed, n. the principal building of
a station, at which the shearing and wool-packing is done.
Often called the Shed.
1850. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip,' vol. ii. p. 23:
"In some instances the flood has swept away the wool-sheds."
1851. `Australasian' [Quarterly], vol. i. p. 298:
". . . we next visit the `wool-shed,' and find the original
slab-built shed has been swept away, to make room for an
imposing erection of broad-paling . . ."
1873. A. Trollope, `Australia and New Zealand,' vol. i.
p. 126:
"The wool-shed is a large building open on every side, with a
high-pitched roof,--all made of wood and very rough. The sheep
are driven in either at one end or both, or at three sides,
according to the size of the station and the number of sheep to
be shorn. They are then assorted into pens, from which the
shearers take them on to the board;--two, three or four shearers
selecting their sheep from each pen. The floor, on which the
shearers absolutely work, is called `the board.'"
1890. `The Argus,' Aug. 9, p. 4, col. 1:
"You would find them down at Reed's wool-shed now."
Woomera, n. an aboriginal name for a
throwing-stick (q.v.); spelt in various ways (seven in
the quotations), according as different writers have tried to
express the sound of the aboriginal word.
1793. Governor Hunter, `Voyage,' p. 407 [in a Vocabulary]:
"Womar--a throwing stick."
1798. D. Collins, `Account of English Colony in New South
Wales,' p. 613:
"Wo-mer-ra--throwing stick."
1814. L. E. Threlkeld, `Australian Grammar' [as spoken on
Hunter's River, etc.], p. 10:
"As a barbarism--wommerru, a weapon."
1830. R. Dawson, `Present State of Australia,' p. 240:
"Pieces of hard iron-bark to represent their war weapon, the
womerah . . . the whirling womerahs."
1839. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions into the Interior
of Eastern Australia,' vol. ii. p. 342:
"The spear is thrown by means of a wammera, which is
a slight rod, about three feet long, having at one end a niche
to receive the end of a spear."
1847. L. Leichhardt, `Overland Expedition,' p. 492:
"But showed the greatest reluctance in parting with their
throwing-sticks (wommalas)."
185o. J. B. Clutterbuck, `Port Phillip in 1849,' p. 58:
"They employ also, as a warlike weapon, a smaller kind of spear
or javelin, which is discharged by means of a notched stick
called a Woomera; and with this simple artillery I have seen
them strike objects at 150 yards' distance. They also employ
this minor spear in capturing the Bustard."
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings among the Gum-trees,'
p. 13:
"Then the Wamba Wamba warriors,
Sprang unto their feet with Tchgrels
Ready fitted to their Womrahs."
Ibid. (In Glossary) pp. 84, 85:
"Tchgrel, reed spear.
Womrah, spear heaver."
1868. J. Bonwick, `John Batman, the Founder of Victoria,'
p. 20:
"Taking with him, therefore, on board the Port Phillip,
presents of spears, wommeras, boomerangs, and stone tomahawks,
he tried to get from the Williamstown waters."
1889. P. Beveridge, `Aborigines of Victoria and Riverina,'
p. 48:
"Spears all ready shipped, that is, having the hook of the
Womerar (throwing-stick) placed in the small cavity made for
that purpose in the end of the spear, with both raised in
readiness for launching at the object."
1892. J. Fraser, `Aborigines of New South Wales,' p. 73:
"The `womara' is an instrument of wood, from twenty-four to
thirty inches long, and a little thicker than a spear. Unlike
the spear, it is not thrown at the enemy in battle, but remains
always in the black man's hand . . . he ornaments it
profusely, back and front. . . . The point is turned up,
exactly like the point of a lady's crochet needle. . . .
The spears have a dimpled hole worked in their butt end, which
hole receives the point of the hook end of the `throw-stick.'"
Worm-Snake, n. See under Snake.
Wrasse, n. This English name for many fishes is
given, in New Zealand, to Labrichthys bothryocosmus,
Richards. Called also Poddly, Spotty, and
Kelp-fish.
Wreck-fish, n. The Australian species is
Polyprion ceruleum, family Percoidae. Guenther says
that the European species has the habit of accompanying
floating wood. Hence the name.
Wren, n. This common English bird-name is
assigned in Australia to birds of several genera, viz.--
Banded Wren--
Malurus splendens, Quoy and Gaim.
Black-backed W.--
M. melanotus, Gould.
Blue W.--
M. cyaneus, Lath.
Blue-breasted W.--
M. pulcherrimus, Gould.
Bower's W.--
M. cruentatus, Gould.
Chestnut-rumped Ground W.--
Hylacola pyrrhopygia, Vig. and Hors.
Emu-wren (q.v.)--
Stipiturus malachurus, Lath.
Goyder's Grass W.--
Amytis goyderi, Gould.
Grass W.--
A. textilis, Quoy and Gaim.; called by Gould
the Textile Wren.
Large-tailed Grass W.--
A. macrura, Gould.
Longtailed W.--
Malurus gouldii, Sharpe.
Lovely W.--
M. amabilis, Gould.
Orange-backed W.--
M. melanocephalus, Vig. and Hors.
Purple-crowned W.--
M. coronatus, Gould.
Red-rumped Ground W.--
Hylacola cauta, Gould.
Red-winged W.--
Malurus elegans, Gould.
Silvery Blue W.--
M. cyanochlamys, Gould.
Striated Grass W.--
Amytis striatus, Gould;
called also the Porcupine bird (q.v.).
Turquoise W.--
Malurus callainus, Gould.
Variegated W.--
M. lamberti, Vig. and Hors.
White-backed W.--
M. leuconotus, Gould.
White-winged W.--
M. leucopterus, Quoy and Gaim.
See also Scrub-Wren.
In New Zealand, the name is applied to the Bush-Wren,
Xenicus longipes, Gmel., and the Rock (or Mountain)
Wren, X. gilviventris, von Pelz.
Wry-billed Plover, n. a very rare bird
of New Zealand, Anarhynchus frontalis, Quoy and Gaim.
1889. Prof. Parker, `Catalogue of New Zealand Exhibition,'
p. 116:
"The curious wry-billed plover . . . the only bird known in
which the bill is turned not up or down, but to one side--the
right."
Wurley, n. aboriginal name for an aboriginal's
hut. For other words expressing the same thing, see list under
Humpy. In the dialect of the South-East of South
Australia oorla means a house, or a camp, or a bird's
nest.
1862. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 110:
"Seeking, hoping help to find;
Sleeping in deserted wurleys."
1865. W. Howitt, `Discovery in Australia,' vol. ii. p. 233:
"Immediately went across to the blacks' wurleys, where I found
King sitting in a but which the natives had made for him."
1879. G. Taplin, `Native Tribes of South Australia,' p. 12,
and Note:
"In case of a man having two wives, the elder is always
regarded as the mistress of the hut or wurley. The word
wurley is from the language of the Adelaide tribe.
The Narrinyeri word is mante. I have used `wurley'
because it is more generally understood by the colonists."
1880. P. J. Holdsworth, `Station Hunting on the Warrego':
"`My hand
Must weather-fend the wurley'. This he did.
He bound the thick boughs close with bushman's skill,
Till not a gap was left where raging showers
Or gusts might riot. Over all he stretched
Strong bands of cane-grass, plaited cunningly."
1886. H. C. Kendall, `Poems,' p. 42
"He took
His axe, and shaped with boughs and wattle-forks
A wurley, fashioned like a bushman's roof."
X
Xanthorrhoea, n. scientific name for a genus
of Australian plants, N.O. Liliaceae, having thick
palm-like trunks. They exude a yellow resin.
(Grk. Xanthos, yellow, and rhoia, a flow,
sc. of the resin.) They are called Black Boys
and Grass-trees (q.v.).
Y
Yabber, n. Used for the talk of the aborigines.
Some think it is the English word jabber, with the first
letter pronounced as in German; but it is pronounced by the
aborigines yabba, without a final r. Ya
is an aboriginal stem, meaning to speak. In the Kabi dialect,
yaman is to speak: in the Wiradhuri, yarra.
1874. M. K. Beveridge, `Lost Life,' pt. iii. p. 37:
"I marked
Much yabber that I did not know."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 28:
"Longing to fire a volley of blacks' yabber across a London
dinner-table."
1886. R. Henty, `Australiana,' p. 23:
"The volleys of abuse and `yabber yabber' they would then utter
would have raised the envy of the greatest `Mrs. Moriarty' in
the Billingsgate fishmarket."
1888. Rolf Boldrewood, `Robbery under Arms,' p. 55:
"Is it French or Queensland blacks' yabber? Blest if I
understand a word of it."
Yabber, v. intr. (See noun.)
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 19:
"They yabbered unsuspiciously to each other."
1887. J. Farrell, `How he died,' p. 126:
"He's yabbering some sort of stuff in his sleep."
Yabby, n. properly Yappee, aboriginal
name for a small crayfish found in water-holes in many parts
of Australia, Astacopsis bicarinatus. The Rev. F. A.
Hagenauer gives Yappy, in `Curr's Australian Race,'
vol. iii. p. 554, as a Gippsland word. Such variants as
the following occur--Yappitch, kapich, yabbechi,
yaabity. The distinction between the thin and thick
consonants is usually uncertain.
1894. `The Argus,' Oct. 6, p. 11, col. 2:
"In the case of small crayfish, called `yabbies,' . . . these
may be found all over Australia, both in large and small
lagoons. These creatures, whilst nearing a drought, and as the
supply of water is about to fail, burrow deeply in the beds of
the lagoons, water-holes, or swamps, piling up the excavations
on the surface over their holes, which I take, amongst other
reasons, to be a provision against excessive heat."
1897. `The Australasian,' Jan. 30, p. 224, col. 4:
"The bait used is `yabby,' a small crayfish found in the sand
on the beach at low tide. The getting of the bait itself is
very diverting. The yabbies are most prized by fish and
fishermen, and the most difficult to obtain. The game is very
shy, and the hunter, when he has found the burrow, has to dig
rapidly to overtake it, for the yabby retires with marvellous
rapidity, and often half a dozen lifts of wet sand have to be
made before he is captured. There is no time to be lost. In
quite twenty-five per cent. of the chases the yabbies get away
through flooding and collapse of the hole."
Yakka, v. frequently used in Queensland bush-towns.
"You yacka wood? Mine, give 'im tixpence;"--a sentence often
uttered by housewives. It is given by the Rev. W. Ridley, in
his `Kamilaroi, and other Australian Languages,' p. 86, as the
Turrubul (Brisbane) term for work, probably cognate with
yugari, make, same dialect, and yengga, make,
Kabi dialect, Queensland. It is used primarily for doing
work of any kind, and only by English modification (due to
"hack") for cut. The spelling yacker is to be
avoided, as the final r is not heard in the native
pronunciation.
Yam, n. a West Australian tuber, Dioscorea
hastifolia, Ness., N.O. Dioscorideae. "One of the
hardiest of the Yams. The tubers are largely consumed by the
local aborigines for food; it is the only plant on which they
bestow any kind of cultivation." (Mueller, apud Maiden,
p. 22.)
Yam, Long, n. a tuber, Discorea
transversa, R. Br., N.O. Dioscorideae. "The small
tubers are eaten by the aborigines without any preparation."
(Thozet, apud Maiden, p. 23.)
Yam, Native, n. a tuber, Ipomaea spp.,
N.O. Convolvulaceae. The tubers are sometimes eaten
by the aboriginals.
Yam, Round, n. i.q. Burdekin Vine, under
Vine.
Yam-stick, n. See quotation 1882, Tolmer.
1863. M. K. Beveridge, `Gatherings,' p. 27.
"One leg's thin as Lierah's yamstick."
1880. Fison and Howitt, `Kamilaroi and Kurnai,' p. 195:
"Behind the pair stands the boy's mother holding her
`yam-stick' erect, resting on the ground."
1882. A. Tolmer, `Reminiscences,' vol. ii. p. 101:
"The natives dig these roots with the yam-stick, an
indispensable implement with them made of hard wood, about
three feet in length, thick at one end and edged; it is
likewise used amongst the aboriginal tribes of South Australia,
like the waddy, as a weapon of offence."
1890. Rolf Boldrewood, `Squatter's Dream,' c. iii. p. 31:
"Why, ole Nanny fight you any day with a yam-stick."
Yama, n. aboriginal name for a tree;
probably a variant of Yarrah (q.v.).
1838. T. L. Mitchell, `Three Expeditions,' vol. ii. p. 54:
"The `Yama,' a species of the eucalyptus inhabiting the
immediate banks, grew here, as on the Darling, to a gigantic
size. . . . The `yama' is certainly a pleasing object, in
various respects; its shining bark and lofty height inform the
traveller at a distance of the presence of water; or at least
the bed of a river or lake."
Yan Yean, n. the reservoir from which Melbourne
obtains its water supply: hence commonly used for water from
the tap.
1871. Dogberry Dingo, `Australian Rhymes and jingles,' p. 8:
"O horror! What is this I find?
The Yan Yean is turned off."
Yarra-Bend, n. equivalent to the English word
Bedlam. The first lunatic asylum of the colony of
Victoria stood near Melbourne on a bend of the river Yarra.
Yarrah, n. aboriginal name for a species of
Eucalyptus, E. rostrata, Schlecht; often called the
River Gum, from its habit of growing along the banks of
watercourses, especially in the dry interior of the continent.
According to Dr. Woolls (apud Maiden, p. 511),
Yarrah is "a name applied by the aboriginals to almost
any tree." The word is not to be confused with Jarrah
(q.v.). As to etymology, see Yarraman.
Yarra-Herring, n. name given in Melbourne to a
fresh-water fish, Prototroctes maraena, Gunth.; called
also Grayling (q.v.).
Yarraman, n. aboriginal name for a horse.
Various etymologies are suggested; see quotation, 1875.
The river "Yarra Yarra" means ever flowing, sc. fast.
[A possible derivation is from Yaran, a common word in
New South Wales and South Queensland, and with slight variation
one of the most common words in Australia, for beard and
sometimes hair. The mane would suggest the name.
--J. Mathew.]
1848. T. L. Mitchell, `Tropical Australia,' p. 270:
"It was remarkable that on seeing the horses, they exclaimed
`Yarraman,' the colonial natives' name for a horse, and that of
these animals they were not at all afraid, whereas they seemed
in much dread of the bullocks."
1875. W. Ridley, `Kamilaroi and other Australian Languages,'
p. 21:
"Horse-yaraman. All the Australians use this name, probably
from the neighing of the horse, or as some think from `yira'
or `yera,' teeth (teeth), and `man' (with)."
Ibid. p. 104:
"Language of George's River. Horse--yaraman (from `yara,' throw
fast)."
1885. R. M. Praed, `Australian Life,' p. 4:
"Yarraman being the native word for horse."
Yarran, n. aboriginal name adopted by the
colonists for several Acacias (q.v.)--Acacia
homalophylla, A. Cunn., called also Spearwood;
A. linifolia, Willd., called also Sally; A.
pendula, A. Cunn., called also Boree, and
Weeping or True Myall (see Myall).
1891. Rolf Boldrewood, `A Sydney-side Saxon,' p. 99:
"That infernal horse . . . pretty near broke my leg and
chucked me out over a yarran stump."
Yate, or Yate-tree, n. a large West
Australian tree, Eucalyptus cornuta, Labill., yielding
a hard tough elastic wood considered equal to the best ash.
Yellow-belly, n. In New South Wales, the name
is given to a fresh-water fish, Ctenolates auratus;
called also Golden-Perch. See Perch. In Dunedin
especially, and New Zealand generally, it is a large flounder,
also called Lemon-Sole, or Turbot (q.v.).
Yellow Fever, sc. the gold-fever.
1861. T. McCombie, `Australian Sketches,' p. 47:
"Evident symptoms of the return of the `yellow' fever,
and a journey to the new goldfields seemed to be the only cure."
Yellow-head, n. name given to a bird of New
Zealand, Clitonyx ochrocephala, or Native Canary
(q.v.), common in South Island. See Clitonyx.
Yellow Jacket, n. a name given to various
gum-trees, and especially to Eucalyptus melliodora,
Cunn., E. ochrophlora, F. v. M., and E. rostrata,
Schlecht, all of the N.O. Myrtaceae. They all have a
smooth yellowish bark, and many other names are applied to the
same trees.
Yellow Lily, n. a Tasmanian name for the
Native Leek. See Leek.
Yellow-tail, n. The name is given in Victoria
to the fish Caranx trachurus, Cuv. and Val.; the
Horse-Mackerel (q.v.) of England. In New South Wales,
it is Trachurus declivis, a slightly different species,
also called Scad; but the two fish are perhaps the same.
Seriola grandis, Castln., also of the Carangidae
family, is likewise called Yellow-tail in Melbourne. In
New Zealand, the word is used for the fish Latris
lineata, of the family of Sciaenidae, and is also a
name for the King-fish, Seriola lalandii, and for
the Trevally.
Yellow Thyme, n. a herb, Hibbertia
serpyllifolia, R. Br., N.O. Dilleneaceae.
Yellow-wood, a name applied to several Australian
trees with the epithets of Dark, Light, Deep, etc., in
allusion to the colour of their timber, which is allied to
Mahogany. They are--Acronychia laevis, Forst.,
N.O. Rutaceae; Rhus rhodanthema, F. v. M.,
N.O. Anacardiaciae; Flindersia oxleyana,
F. v. M., N.O. Meliaceae. See also Satin-wood.
Yuro, n. i.q. Euro (q.v.).
Z
Zebra-fish, n. name given to the fish
Neotephraeops zebra, Richards.
Zebra-Wolf, n. i.q. Tasmanian Wolf,
or Tasmanian Tiger (q.v.).
Zelanian, a scientific term, meaning `pertaining to
New Zealand,' from Zelania, a Latinised form of
Zealand.
Zosterops, n. the scientific name of a genus
of Australian birds, often called also popularly by that name,
and by the names of Wax-eye, White-eye,
Silver-eye (q.v.), Ring-eye, Blight-bird
(q.v.), etc. From the Greek zowstaer, a girdle,
`anything that goes round like a girdle' (`L. & S.'), and
'owps, the eye; the birds of the genus have a white
circle round their eyes. The bird was not generally known in
New Zealand until after Black Thursday (q.v.), in 1851,
when it flew to the Chatham Islands. Some observers, however,
noted small numbers of one species in Milford Sound in 1832.
New Zealand birds are rarely gregarious, but the
Zosterops made a great migration, in large flocks,
from the South Island to the North Island in 1856,
and the Maori name for the bird is `The Stranger' (Tau-hou).
Nevertheless, Buller thinks that the species
Z. caerulescens is indigenous in New Zealand.
(See under Silver-eye, quotation 1888.)
The species are--
Zosterops caerulescens, Lath.
Green-backed Z.--
Z. gouldi, Bp.; called also Grape-eater,
and Fig-eater (q.v.).
Gulliver's Z.--
Z. gulliveri, Castln. and Ramsay.
Pale-bellied Z.--
Z. albiventer, Homb. and Jacq.
Yellow Z.--
Z. lutea, Gould.
Yellow-rumped Z.--
Z. westernensis, Quoy and Gaim.
Yellow-throated Z.--
Z. flavogularis, Masters.
1897. A. J. Campbell (in `The Australasian,' Jan. 23), p. 180,
col. 3:
"I have a serious charge to prefer against this bird [the Tawny
Honeyeater] as well as against some of its near relatives,
particularly those that inhabit Western Australia, namely, the
long-billed, the spine-billed, and the little white-eye or
zosterops. During certain seasons they regale themselves too
freely with the seductive nectar of the flaming bottle-brush
(Callistemon). They become tipsy, and are easily caught
by hand under the bushes.In the annals of ornithology I know of
no other instance of birds getting intoxicated."
Edward E. Morris
Austral English: A Dictionary of Australasian Words Phrases and
Usages
End of Project Gutenberg's A Dictionary of Austral English, by Edward Morris
*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK AUSTRAL ENGLISH ***
Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.
Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.
START: FULL LICENSE
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™
electronic works
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
you share it without charge with others.
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you
are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg™ License.
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
provided that:
• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation.”
• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
works.
• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
receipt of the work.
• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.
1.F.
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation
Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.
Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.
Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.
This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.